diff options
| author | Roger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org> | 2025-10-15 05:27:00 -0700 |
|---|---|---|
| committer | Roger Frank <rfrank@pglaf.org> | 2025-10-15 05:27:00 -0700 |
| commit | 426095c905a346f6d76a0b3b030ddfabbd4779f3 (patch) | |
| tree | 927b1978633a578d81974d06dbd382e8d420a5d8 | |
| -rw-r--r-- | .gitattributes | 3 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 6138-0.txt | 8384 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 6138-0.zip | bin | 0 -> 183935 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 6138-h.zip | bin | 0 -> 250711 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 6138-h/6138-h.htm | 9238 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | 6138-h/images/tpb.jpg | bin | 0 -> 59385 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | 6138-h/images/tps.jpg | bin | 0 -> 4612 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | LICENSE.txt | 11 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | README.md | 2 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/lfhb10.txt | 8646 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/lfhb10.zip | bin | 0 -> 183847 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/lfhb10h.htm | 7776 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/lfhb10h.zip | bin | 0 -> 182886 bytes |
13 files changed, 34060 insertions, 0 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes new file mode 100644 index 0000000..6833f05 --- /dev/null +++ b/.gitattributes @@ -0,0 +1,3 @@ +* text=auto +*.txt text +*.md text diff --git a/6138-0.txt b/6138-0.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..1c0c428 --- /dev/null +++ b/6138-0.txt @@ -0,0 +1,8384 @@ +The Project Gutenberg eBook, Life and Habit, by Samuel Butler, Edited by +R. A. Streatfeild + + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + + + + +Title: Life and Habit + + +Author: Samuel Butler + +Editor: R. A. Streatfeild + +Release Date: August 2, 2014 [eBook #6138] +[This file was first posted on November 18, 2002] + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: UTF-8 + + +***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LIFE AND HABIT*** + + +Transcribed from the 1910 Jonathan Cape edition by David Price, email +ccx074@pglaf.lorg + + + + + + Life and Habit + + + _By_ + Samuel Butler + + [Picture: Decorative graphic] + + * * * * * + + Jonathan Cape + Eleven Gower Street, London + + * * * * * + + FIRST PUBLISHED 1878 + + SECOND EDITION 1878 + + NEW EDITION WITH ADDENDA AND + PREFACE BY R. A. STREATFEILD 1910 + + REPRINTED 1924 + + * * * * * + + PRINTED IN GREAT BRITAIN BY BUTLER AND TANNER LTD., FROME AND LONDON + + * * * * * + + THIS BOOK IS INSCRIBED + TO + CHARLES PAINE PAULI, Esq. + BARRISTER-AT-LAW + IN ACKNOWLEDGEMENT OF HIS INVALUABLE + CRITICISM OF THE PROOF-SHEETS OF THIS AND + OF MY PREVIOUS BOOKS + AND IN RECOGNITION OF AN OLD AND + WELL-TRIED-FRIENDSHIP + + + + +PREFACE. + + +SINCE Samuel Butler published “Life and Habit” thirty-three {vii} years +have elapsed—years fruitful in change and discovery, during which many of +the mighty have been put down from their seat and many of the humble have +been exalted. I do not know that Butler can truthfully be called humble, +indeed, I think he had very few misgivings as to his ultimate triumph, +but he has certainly been exalted with a rapidity that he himself can +scarcely have foreseen. During his lifetime he was a literary pariah, +the victim of an organized conspiracy of silence. He is now, I think it +may be said without exaggeration, universally accepted as one of the most +remarkable English writers of the latter part of the nineteenth century. +I will not weary my readers by quoting the numerous tributes paid by +distinguished contemporary writers to Butler’s originality and force of +mind, but I cannot refrain from illustrating the changed attitude of the +scientific world to Butler and his theories by a reference to “Darwin and +Modern Science,” the collection of essays published in 1909 by the +University of Cambridge, in commemoration of the Darwin centenary. In +that work Professor Bateson, while referring repeatedly to Butler’s +biological works, speaks of him as “the most brilliant and by far the +most interesting of Darwin’s opponents, whose works are at length +emerging from oblivion.” With the growth of Butler’s reputation “Life +and Habit” has had much to do. It was the first and is undoubtedly the +most important of his writings on evolution. From its loins, as it were, +sprang his three later books, “Evolution Old and New,” “Unconscious +Memory,” and “Luck or Cunning”, which carried its arguments further +afield. It will perhaps interest Butler’s readers if I here quote a +passage from his note-books, lately published in the “New Quarterly +Review” (Vol. III. No. 9), in which he summarizes his work in biology: + +“To me it seems that my contributions to the theory of evolution have +been mainly these: + +“1. The identification of heredity and memory, and the corollaries +relating to sports, the reversion to remote ancestors, the phenomena of +old age, the causes of the sterility of hybrids, and the principles +underlying longevity—all of which follow as a matter of course. This was +‘Life and Habit’ [1877]. + +“2. The re-introduction of teleology into organic life, which to me +seems hardly, if at all, less important than the ‘Life and Habit’ theory. +This was ‘Evolution Old and New’ [1879]. + +“3. An attempt to suggest an explanation of the physics of memory. This +was Unconscious Memory’ [1880]. I was alarmed by the suggestion and +fathered it upon Professor Hering, who never, that I can see, meant to +say anything of the kind, but I forced my view upon him, as it were, by +taking hold of a sentence or two in his lecture, ‘On Memory as a +Universal Function of Organised Matter,’ and thus connected memory with +vibrations. + +“What I want to do now (1885) is to connect vibrations not only with +memory but with the physical constitution of that body in which the +memory resides, thus adopting Newland’s law (sometimes called +Mendelejeff’s law) that there is only one substance, and that the +characteristics of the vibrations going on within it at any given time +will determine whether it will appear to us as, we will say, hydrogen, or +sodium, or chicken doing this, or chicken doing the other.” [This is +touched upon in the concluding chapter of “Luck or Cunning?” 1887]. + +The present edition of “Life and Habit” is practically a re-issue of that +of 1878. I find that about the year 1890, although the original edition +was far from being exhausted, Butler began to make corrections of the +text of “Life and Habit,” presumably with the intention of publishing a +revised edition. The copy of the book so corrected is now in my +possession. In the first five chapters there are numerous emendations, +very few of which, however, affect the meaning to any appreciable extent, +being mainly concerned with the excision of redundancies and the +simplification of style. I imagine that by the time he had reached the +end of the fifth chapter Butler realised that the corrections he had made +were not of sufficient importance to warrant a new edition, and +determined to let the book stand as it was. I believe, therefore, that I +am carrying out his wishes in reprinting the present edition from the +original plates. I have found, however, among his papers three entirely +new passages, which he probably wrote during the period of correction and +no doubt intended to incorporate into the revised edition. Mr. Henry +Festing Jones has also given me a copy of a passage which Butler wrote +and gummed into Mr. Jones’s copy of “Life and Habit.” These four +passages I have printed as an appendix at the end of the present volume. + +One more point deserves notice. Butler often refers in “Life and Habit” +to Darwin’s “Variations of Animals and Plants under Domestication.” When +he does so it is always under the name “Plants and Animals.” More often +still he refers to Darwin’s “Origin of Species by means Natural +Selection,” terming it at one time “Origin of Species” and at another +“Natural Selection,” sometimes, as on p. 278, using both names within a +few lines of each other. Butler was as a rule scrupulously careful about +quotations, and I can offer no explanation of this curious confusion of +titles. + + R. A. STREATFEILD. + +_November_, 1910. + + + + +AUTHOR’S PREFACE. + + +THE Italics in the passages quoted in this book are generally mine, but I +found it almost impossible to call the reader’s attention to this upon +every occasion. I have done so once or twice, as thinking it necessary +in these cases that there should be no mistake; on the whole, however, I +thought it better to content myself with calling attention in a preface +to the fact that the author quoted is not, as a general rule, responsible +for the Italics. + + S. BUTLER. + +_November_ 13, 1877. + + + + +CONTENTS. + + PAGE + PREFACE BY R. A. STREATFEILD vii + AUTHOR’S ORIGINAL PREFACE x + CHAPTER + I. ON CERTAIN ACQUIRED HABITS 1 + II. CONSCIOUS AND UNCONSCIOUS KNOWERS—THE LAW AND 20 + GRACE + III. APPLICATION OF FOREGOING CHAPTERS TO CERTAIN 43 + HABITS ACQUIRED AFTER BIRTH WHICH ARE COMMONLY + CONSIDERED INSTINCTIVE + IV. APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING PRINCIPLES TO 59 + ACTIONS AND HABITS ACQUIRED BEFORE BIRTH + V. PERSONAL IDENTITY 78 + VI. PERSONAL IDENTITY—(_continued_) 91 + VII. OUR SUBORDINATE PERSONALITIES 104 + VIII. APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING CHAPTERS—THE 125 + ASSIMILATION OF OUTSIDE MATTER + IX. ON THE ABEYANCE OF MEMORY 150 + X. WHAT WE SHOULD EXPECT TO FIND IF 166 + DIFFERENTIATIONS OF STRUCTURE AND INSTINCT ARE + MAINLY DUE TO MEMORY + XI. INSTINCT AS INHERITED MEMORY 198 + XII. INSTINCTS OF NEUTER INSECTS 220 + XIII. LAMARCK AND MR. DARWIN 252 + XIV. MR. MIVART AND MR. DARWIN 273 + XV. CONCLUDING REMARKS 294 + APPENDIX AUTHOR’S ADDENDA 308 + + + + +CHAPTER I. +ON CERTAIN ACQUIRED HABITS. + + +IT will be our business in the following chapters to consider whether the +unconsciousness, or quasi-unconsciousness, with which we perform certain +acquired actions, would seem to throw any light upon Embryology and +inherited instincts, and otherwise to follow the train of thought which +the class of actions above-mentioned would suggest; more especially in so +far as they appear to bear upon the origin of species and the +continuation of life by successive generations, whether in the animal or +vegetable kingdoms. + +In the outset, however, I would wish most distinctly to disclaim for +these pages the smallest pretension to scientific value, originality, or +even to accuracy of more than a very rough and ready kind—for unless a +matter be true enough to stand a good deal of misrepresentation, its +truth is not of a very robust order, and the blame will rather lie with +its own delicacy if it be crushed, than with the carelessness of the +crusher. I have no wish to instruct, and not much to be instructed; my +aim is simply to entertain and interest the numerous class of people who, +like myself, know nothing of science, but who enjoy speculating and +reflecting (not too deeply) upon the phenomena around them. I have +therefore allowed myself a loose rein, to run on with whatever came +uppermost, without regard to whether it was new or old; feeling sure that +if true, it must be very old or it never could have occurred to one so +little versed in science as myself; and knowing that it is sometimes +pleasanter to meet the old under slightly changed conditions, than to go +through the formalities and uncertainties of making new acquaintance. At +the same time, I should say that whatever I have knowingly taken from any +one else, I have always acknowledged. + +It is plain, therefore, that my book cannot be intended for the perusal +of scientific people; it is intended for the general public only, with +whom I believe myself to be in harmony, as knowing neither much more nor +much less than they do. + +Taking then, the art of playing the piano as an example of the kind of +action we are in search of, we observe that a practised player will +perform very difficult pieces apparently without effort, often, indeed, +while thinking and talking of something quite other than his music; yet +he will play accurately and, possibly, with much expression. If he has +been playing a fugue, say in four parts, he will have kept each part well +distinct, in such a manner as to prove that his mind was not prevented, +by its other occupations, from consciously or unconsciously following +four distinct trains of musical thought at the same time, nor from making +his fingers act in exactly the required manner as regards each note of +each part. + +It commonly happens that in the course of four or five minutes a player +may have struck four or five thousand notes. If we take into +consideration the rests, dotted notes, accidentals, variations of time, +&c., we shall find his attention must have been exercised on many more +occasions than when he was actually striking notes: so that it may not be +too much to say that the attention of a first-rate player may have been +exercised—to an infinitesimally small extent—but still truly exercised—on +as many as ten thousand occasions within the space of five minutes, for +no note can be struck nor point attended to without a certain amount of +attention, no matter how rapidly or unconsciously given. + +Moreover, each act of attention has been followed by an act of volition, +and each act of volition by a muscular action, which is composed of many +minor actions; some so small that we can no more follow them than the +player himself can perceive them; nevertheless, it may have been +perfectly plain that the player was not attending to what he was doing, +but was listening to conversation on some other subject, not to say +joining in it himself. If he has been playing the violin, he may have +done all the above, and may also have been walking about. Herr Joachim +would unquestionably be able to do all that has here been described. + +So complete would the player’s unconsciousness of the attention he is +giving, and the brain power he is exerting appear to be, that we shall +find it difficult to awaken his attention to any particular part of his +performance without putting him out. Indeed we cannot do so. We shall +observe that he finds it hardly less difficult to compass a voluntary +consciousness of what he has once learnt so thoroughly that it has +passed, so to speak, into the domain of unconsciousness, than he found it +to learn the note or passage in the first instance. The effort after a +second consciousness of detail baffles him—compels him to turn to his +music or play slowly. In fact it seems as though he knew the piece too +well to be able to know that he knows it, and is only conscious of +knowing those passages which he does not know so thoroughly. + +At the end of his performance, his memory would appear to be no less +annihilated than was his consciousness of attention and volition. For of +the thousands of acts requiring the exercise of both the one and the +other, which he has done during the five minutes, we will say, of his +performance, he will remember hardly one when it is over. If he calls to +mind anything beyond the main fact that he has played such and such a +piece, it will probably be some passage which he has found more difficult +than the others, and with the like of which he has not been so long +familiar. All the rest he will forget as completely as the breath which +he has drawn while playing. + +He finds it difficult to remember even the difficulties he experienced in +learning to play. A few may have so impressed him that they remain with +him, but the greater part will have escaped him as completely as the +remembrance of what he ate, or how he put on his clothes, this day ten +years ago; nevertheless, it is plain he remembers more than he remembers +remembering, for he avoids mistakes which he made at one time, and his +performance proves that all the notes are in his memory, though if called +upon to play such and such a bar at random from the middle of the piece, +and neither more nor less, he will probably say that he cannot remember +it unless he begins from the beginning of the phrase which leads to it. +Very commonly he will be obliged to begin from the beginning of the +movement itself, and be unable to start at any other point unless he have +the music before him; and if disturbed, as we have seen above, he will +have to start _de novo_ from an accustomed starting-point. + +Yet nothing can be more obvious than that there must have been a time +when what is now so easy as to be done without conscious effort of the +brain was only done by means of brain work which was very keenly +perceived, even to fatigue and positive distress. Even now, if the +player is playing something the like of which he has not met before, we +observe he pauses and becomes immediately conscious of attention. + +We draw the inference, therefore, as regards pianoforte or violin +playing, that the more the familiarity or knowledge of the art, the less +is there consciousness of such knowledge; even so far as that there +should seem to be almost as much difficulty in awakening consciousness +which has become, so to speak, latent,—a consciousness of that which is +known too well to admit of recognised self-analysis while the knowledge +is being exercised—as in creating a consciousness of that which is not +yet well enough known to be properly designated as known at all. On the +other hand, we observe that the less the familiarly or knowledge, the +greater the consciousness of whatever knowledge there is. + +Considering other like instances of the habitual exercise of intelligence +and volition, which, from long familiarity with the method of procedure, +escape the notice of the person exercising them, we naturally think of +writing. The formation of each letter requires attention and volition, +yet in a few minutes a practised writer will form several hundred +letters, and be able to think and talk of something else all the time he +is doing so. It will not probably remember the formation of a single +character in any page that he has written; nor will he be able to give +more than the substance of his writing if asked to do so. He knows how +to form each letter so well, and he knows so well each word that he is +about to write, that he has ceased to be conscious of his knowledge or to +notice his acts of volition, each one of which is, nevertheless, followed +by a corresponding muscular action. Yet the uniformity of our +handwriting, and the manner in which we almost invariably adhere to one +method of forming the same character, would seem to suggest that during +the momentary formation of each letter our memories must revert (with an +intensity too rapid for our perception) to many if not to all the +occasions on which we have ever written the same letter previously—the +memory of these occasions dwelling in our minds as what has been called a +residuum—an unconsciously struck balance or average of them all—a fused +mass of individual reminiscences of which no trace can be found in our +consciousness, and of which the only effect would seem to lie in the +gradual changes of handwriting which are perceptible in most people till +they have reached middle-age, and sometimes even later. So far are we +from consciously remembering any one of the occasions on which we have +written such and such a letter, that we are not even conscious of +exercising our memory at all, any more than we are in health conscious of +the action of our heart. But, if we are writing in some unfamiliar way, +as when printing our letters instead of writing them in our usual running +hand, our memory is so far awakened that we become conscious of every +character we form; sometimes it is even perceptible as memory to +ourselves, as when we try to remember how to print some letter, for +example a g, and cannot call to mind on which side of the upper half of +the letter we ought to put the link which connects it with the lower, and +are successful in remembering; but if we become very conscious of +remembering, it shows that we are on the brink of only trying to +remember,—that is to say, of not remembering at all. + +As a general rule, we remember for a time the substance of what we have +written, for the subject is generally new to us; but if we are writing +what we have often written before, we lose consciousness of this too, as +fully as we do of the characters necessary to convey the substance to +another person, and we shall find ourselves writing on as it were +mechanically while thinking and talking of something else. So a paid +copyist, to whom the subject of what he is writing is of no importance, +does not even notice it. He deals only with familiar words and familiar +characters without caring to go behind them, and thereupon writes on in a +quasi-unconscious manner; but if he comes to a word or to characters with +which he is but little acquainted, he becomes immediately awakened to the +consciousness of either remembering or trying to remember. His +consciousness of his own knowledge or memory would seem to belong to a +period, so to speak, of twilight between the thick darkness of ignorance +and the brilliancy of perfect knowledge; as colour which vanishes with +extremes of light or of shade. Perfect ignorance and perfect knowledge +are alike unselfconscious. + +The above holds good even more noticeably in respect of reading. How +many thousands of individual letters do our eyes run over every morning +in the “Times” newspaper, how few of them do we notice, or remember +having noticed? Yet there was a time when we had such difficulty in +reading even the simplest words, that we had to take great pains to +impress them upon our memory so as to know them when we came to then +again. Now, not even a single word of all we have seen will remain with +us, unless it is a new one, or an old one used in an unfamiliar sense, in +which case we notice, and may very likely remember it. Our memory +retains the substance only, the substance only being unfamiliar. +Nevertheless, although we do not perceive more than the general result of +our perception, there can be no doubt of our having perceived every +letter in every word that we have read at all, for if we come upon a word +misspelt our attention is at once aroused; unless, indeed, we have +actually corrected the misspelling, as well as noticed it, unconsciously, +through exceeding familiarity with the way in which it ought to be spelt. +Not only do we perceive the letters we have seen without noticing that we +have perceived them, but we find it almost impossible to notice that we +notice them when we have once learnt to read fluently. To try to do so +puts us out, and prevents our being able to read. We may even go so far +as to say that if a man can attend to the individual characters, it is a +sign that he cannot yet read fluently. If we know how to read well, we +are as unconscious of the means and processes whereby we attain the +desired result as we are about the growth of our hair or the circulation +of our blood. So that here again it would seem that we only know what we +know still to some extent imperfectly, and that what we know thoroughly +escapes our conscious perception though none the less actually perceived. +Our perception in fact passes into a latent stage, as also our memory and +volition. + +Walking is another example of the rapid exercise of volition with but +little perception of each individual act of exercise. We notice any +obstacle in our path, but it is plain we do not notice that we perceive +much that we have nevertheless been perceiving; for if a man goes down a +lane by night he will stumble over many things which he would have +avoided by day, although he would not have noticed them. Yet time was +when walking was to each one of us a new and arduous task—as arduous as +we should now find it to wheel a wheelbarrow on a tight-rope; whereas, at +present, though we can think of our steps to a certain extent without +checking our power to walk, we certainly cannot consider our muscular +action in detail without having to come to a dead stop. + +Talking—especially in one’s mother tongue—may serve as a last example. +We find it impossible to follow the muscular action of the mouth and +tongue in framing every letter or syllable we utter. We have probably +spoken for years and years before we became aware that the letter h is a +labial sound, and until we have to utter a word which is difficult from +its unfamiliarity we speak “trippingly on the tongue” with no attention +except to the substance of what we wish to say. Yet talking was not +always the easy matter to us which it is at present—as we perceive more +readily when we are learning a new language which it may take us months +to master. Nevertheless, when we have once mastered it we speak it +without further consciousness of knowledge or memory, as regards the more +common words, and without even noticing our consciousness. Here, as in +the other instances already given, as long as we did not know perfectly, +we were conscious of our acts of perception, volition, and reflection, +but when our knowledge has become perfect we no longer notice our +consciousness, nor our volition; nor can we awaken a second artificial +consciousness without some effort, and disturbance of the process of +which we are endeavouring to become conscious. We are no longer, so to +speak, under the law, but under grace. + +An ascending scale may be perceived in the above instances. + +In playing, we have an action acquired long after birth, difficult of +acquisition, and never thoroughly familiarised to the power of absolutely +unconscious performance, except in the case of those who have either an +exceptional genius for music, or who have devoted the greater part of +their time to practising. Except in the case of these persons it is +generally found easy to become more or less conscious of any passage +without disturbing the performance, and our action remains so completely +within our control that we can stop playing at any moment we please. + +In writing, we have an action generally acquired earlier, done for the +most part with great unconsciousness of detail, fairly well within our +control to stop at any moment; though not so completely as would be +imagined by those who have not made the experiment of trying to stop in +the middle of a given character when writing at fit speed. Also, we can +notice our formation of any individual character without our writing +being materially hindered. + +Reading is usually acquired earlier still. We read with more +unconsciousness of attention than we write. We find it more difficult to +become conscious of any character without discomfiture, and we cannot +arrest ourselves in the middle of a word, for example, and hardly before +the end of a sentence; nevertheless it is on the whole well within our +control. + +Walking is so early an acquisition that we cannot remember having +acquired it. In running fast over average ground we find it very +difficult to become conscious of each individual step, and should +possibly find it more difficult still, if the inequalities and roughness +of uncultured land had not perhaps caused the development of a power to +create a second consciousness of our steps without hindrance to our +running or walking. Pursuit and flight, whether in the chase or in war, +must for many generations have played a much more prominent part in the +lives of our ancestors than they do in our own. If the ground over which +they had to travel had been generally as free from obstruction as our +modern cultivated lands, it is possible that we might not find it as easy +to notice our several steps as we do at present. Even as it is, if while +we are running we would consider the action of our muscles, we come to a +dead stop, and should probably fall if we tried to observe too suddenly; +for we must stop to do this, and running, when we have once committed +ourselves to it beyond a certain point, is not controllable to a step or +two without loss of equilibrium. + +We learn to talk, much about the same time that we learn to walk, but +talking requires less muscular effort than walking, and makes generally +less demand upon our powers. A man may talk a long while before he has +done the equivalent of a five-mile walk; it is natural, therefore, that +we should have had more practice in talking than in walking, and hence +that we should find it harder to pay attention to our words than to our +steps. Certainly it is very hard to become conscious of every syllable +or indeed of every word we say; the attempt to do so will often bring us +to a check at once; nevertheless we can generally stop talking if we wish +to do so, unless the crying of infants be considered as a kind of +_quasi_-speech: this comes earlier, and is often quite uncontrollable, or +more truly perhaps is done with such complete control over the muscles by +the will, and with such absolute certainty of his own purpose on the part +of the wilier, that there is no longer any more doubt, uncertainty, or +suspense, and hence no power of perceiving any of the processes whereby +the result is attained—as a wheel which may look fast fixed because it is +so fast revolving. {13} + +We may observe therefore in this ascending scale, imperfect as it is, +that the older the habit the longer the practice, the longer the +practice, the more knowledge—or, the less uncertainty; the less +uncertainty the less power of conscious self-analysis and control. + +It will occur to the reader that in all the instances given above, +different individuals attain the unconscious stage of perfect knowledge +with very different degrees of facility. Some have to attain it with a +great sum; others are free born. Some learn to play, to read, write, and +talk, with hardly an effort—some show such an instinctive aptitude for +arithmetic that, like Zerah Colburn, at eight years old, they achieve +results without instruction, which in the case of most people would +require a long education. The account of Zerah Colburn, as quoted from +Mr. Baily in Dr. Carpenter’s “Mental Physiology,” may perhaps be given +here. + +“He raised any number consisting of _one_ figure progressively to the +tenth power, giving the results (by actual multiplication and not by +memory) _faster than they could be set down in figures_ by the person +appointed to record them. He raised the number 8 progressively to the +_sixteenth_ power, and in naming the last result, which consisted of 15 +figures, he was right in every one. Some numbers consisting of _two_ +figures he raised as high as the eighth power, though he found a +difficulty in proceeding when the products became very large. + +“On being asked the _square root_ of 106,929, he answered 327 before the +original number could be written down. He was then required to find the +cube root of 268,336,125, and with equal facility and promptness he +replied 645. + +“He was asked how many minutes there are in 48 years, and before the +question could be taken down he replied 25,228,800, and immediately +afterwards he gave the correct number of seconds. + +“On being requested to give the factors which would produce the number +247,483, he immediately named 941 and 263, which are the only two numbers +from the multiplication of which it would result. On 171,395 being +proposed, he named 5 × 34,279, 7 × 24,485, 59 × 2905, 83 × 2065, 35 × +4897, 295 × 581, and 413 × 415. + +“He was then asked to give the factors of 36,083, but he immediately +replied that it had none, which was really the case, this being a prime +number. Other numbers being proposed to him indiscriminately, he always +succeeded in giving the correct factors except in the case of prime +numbers, which he generally discovered almost as soon as they were +proposed to him. The number 4,294,967,297, which is 232 + 1, having been +given him, he discovered, as Euler had previously done, that it was not +the prime number which Fermat had supposed it to be, but that it is the +product of the factors 6,700,417 × 641. The solution of this problem was +only given after the lapse of some weeks, but the method he took to +obtain it clearly showed that he had not derived his information from any +extraneous source. + +“When he was asked to multiply together numbers both consisting of more +than these figures, he seemed to decompose one or both of them into its +factors, and to work with them separately. Thus, on being asked to give +the square of 4395, he multiplied 293 by itself, and then twice +multiplied the product by 15. And on being asked to tell the square of +999,999 he obtained the correct result, 999,998,000,001, by twice +multiplying the square of 37,037 by 27. He then of his own accord +multiplied that product by 49, and said that the result (viz., +48,999,902,000,049) was equal to the square of 6,999,993. He afterwards +multiplied this product by 49, and observed that the result (viz., +2,400,995,198,002,401) was equal to the square of 48,999,951. He was +again asked to multiply the product by 25, and in naming the result +(viz., 60,024,879,950,060,025) he said it was equal to the square of +244,999,755. + +“On being interrogated as to the manner in which he obtained these +results, the boy constantly said he did not know _how_ the answers came +into his mind. In the act of multiplying two numbers together, and in +the raising of powers, it was evident (alike from the facts just stated +and from the motion of his lips) that _some_ operation was going forward +in his mind; yet that operation could not (from the readiness with which +his answers were furnished) have been at all allied to the usual modes of +procedure, of which, indeed, he was entirely ignorant, not being able to +perform on paper a simple sum in multiplication or division. But in the +extraction of roots, and in the discovery of the factors of large +numbers, it did not appear that any operation _could_ take place, since +he gave answers _immediately_, or in a very few seconds, which, according +to the ordinary methods, would have required very difficult and laborious +calculations, and prime numbers cannot be recognised as such by any known +rule.” + +I should hope that many of the above figures are wrong. I have verified +them carefully with Dr. Carpenter’s quotation, but further than this I +cannot and will not go. Also I am happy to find that in the end the boy +overcame the mathematics, and turned out a useful but by no means +particularly calculating member of society. + +The case, however, is typical of others in which persons have been found +able to do without apparent effort what in the great majority of cases +requires a long apprenticeship. It is needless to multiply instances; +the point that concerns us is, that knowledge under such circumstances +being very intense, and the ease with which the result is produced +extreme, it eludes the conscious apprehension of the performer himself, +who only becomes conscious when a difficulty arises which taxes even his +abnormal power. Such a case, therefore, confirms rather than militates +against our opinion that consciousness of knowledge vanishes on the +knowledge becoming perfect—the only difference between those possessed of +any such remarkable special power and the general run of people being, +that the first are born with such an unusual aptitude for their +particular specialty that they are able to dispense with all or nearly +all the preliminary exercise of their faculty, while the latter must +exercise it for a considerable time before they can get it to work +smoothly and easily; but in either case when once the knowledge is +intense it is unconscious. + +Nor again would such an instance as that of Zerah Colburn warrant us in +believing that this white heat, as it were, of unconscious knowledge can +be attained by any one without his ever having been originally cold. +Young Colburn, for example, could not extract roots when he was an embryo +of three weeks’ standing. It is true we can seldom follow the process, +but we know there must have been a time in every case when even the +desire for information or action had not been kindled; the forgetfulness +of effort on the part of those with exceptional genius for a special +subject is due to the smallness of the effort necessary, so that it makes +no impression upon the individual himself, rather than to the absence of +any effort at all. {18} + +It would, therefore, appear as though perfect knowledge and perfect +ignorance were extremes which meet and become indistinguishable from one +another; so also perfect volition and perfect absence of volition, +perfect memory and utter forgetfulness; for we are unconscious of +knowing, willing, or remembering, either from not yet having known or +willed, or from knowing and willing so well and so intensely as to be no +longer conscious of either. Conscious knowledge and volition are of +attention; attention is of suspense; suspense is of doubt; doubt is of +uncertainty; uncertainty is of ignorance; so that the mere fact of +conscious knowing or willing implies the presence of more or less novelty +and doubt. + +It would also appear as a general principle on a superficial view of the +foregoing instances (and the reader may readily supply himself with +others which are perhaps more to the purpose), that unconscious knowledge +and unconscious volition are never acquired otherwise than as the result +of experience, familiarity, or habit; so that whenever we observe a +person able to do any complicated action unconsciously, we may assume +both that he must have done it very often before he could acquire so +great proficiency, and also that there must have been a time when he did +not know how to do it at all. + +We may assume that there was a time when he was yet so nearly on the +point of neither knowing nor willing perfectly, that he was quite alive +to whatever knowledge or volition he could exert; going further back, we +shall find him still more keenly alive to a less perfect knowledge; +earlier still, we find him well aware that he does not know nor will +correctly, but trying hard to do both the one and the other; and so on, +back and back, till both difficulty and consciousness become little more +than a sound of going in the brain, a flitting to and fro of something +barely recognisable as the desire to will or know at all—much less as the +desire to know or will definitely this or that. Finally, they retreat +beyond our ken into the repose—the inorganic kingdom—of as yet unawakened +interest. + +In either case,—the repose of perfect ignorance or of perfect +knowledge—disturbance is troublesome. When first starting on an Atlantic +steamer, our rest is hindered by the screw; after a short time, it is +hindered if the screw stops. A uniform impression is practically no +impression. One cannot either learn or unlearn without pains or pain. + + + + +CHAPTER II. +CONSCIOUS AND UNCONSCIOUS KNOWERS—THE LAW AND GRACE. + + +IN this chapter we shall show that the law, which we have observed to +hold as to the vanishing tendency of knowledge upon becoming perfect, +holds good not only concerning acquired actions or habits of body, but +concerning opinions, modes of thought, and mental habits generally, which +are no more recognised as soon as firmly fixed, than are the steps with +which we go about our daily avocations. I am aware that I may appear in +the latter part of the chapter to have wandered somewhat beyond the +limits of my subject, but, on the whole, decide upon leaving what I have +written, inasmuch as it serves to show how far-reaching is the principle +on which I am insisting. Having said so much, I shall during the +remainder of the book keep more closely to the point. + +Certain it is that we know best what we are least conscious of knowing, +or at any rate least able to prove, as, for example, our own existence, +or that there is a country England. If any one asks us for proof on +matters of this sort, we have none ready, and are justly annoyed at being +called to consider what we regard as settled questions. Again, there is +hardly anything which so much affects our actions as the centre of the +earth (unless, perhaps, it be that still hotter and more unprofitable +spot the centre of the universe), for we are incessantly trying to get as +near it as circumstances will allow, or to avoid getting nearer than is +for the time being convenient. Walking, running, standing, sitting, +lying, waking, or sleeping, from birth till death it is a paramount +object with us; even after death—if it be not fanciful to say so—it is +one of the few things of which what is left of us can still feel the +influence; yet what can engross less of our attention than this dark and +distant spot so many thousands of miles away? + +The air we breathe, so long as it is neither too hot nor cold, nor rough, +nor full of smoke—that is to say, so long as it is in that state within +which we are best acquainted—seldom enters into our thoughts; yet there +is hardly anything with which we are more incessantly occupied night and +day. + +Indeed, it is not too much to say that we have no really profound +knowledge upon any subject—no knowledge on the strength of which we are +ready to act at all moments unhesitatingly without either preparation or +after-thought—till we have left off feeling conscious of the possession +of such knowledge, and of the grounds on which it rests. A lesson +thoroughly learned must be like the air which feels so light, though +pressing so heavily against us, because every pore of our skin is +saturated, so to speak, with it on all sides equally. This perfection of +knowledge sometimes extends to positive disbelief in the thing known, so +that the most thorough knower shall believe himself altogether ignorant. +No thief, for example, is such an utter thief—so _good_ a thief—as the +kleptomaniac. Until he has become a kleptomaniac, and can steal a horse +as it were by a reflex action, he is still but half a thief, with many +unthievish notions still clinging to him. Yet the kleptomaniac is +probably unaware that he can steal at all, much less that he can steal so +well. He would be shocked if he were to know the truth. So again, no +man is a great hypocrite until he has left off knowing that he is a +hypocrite. The great hypocrites of the world are almost invariably under +the impression that they are among the very few really honest people to +be found and, as we must all have observed, it is rare to find any one +strongly under this impression without ourselves having good reason to +differ from him. + +Our own existence is another case in point. When we have once become +articulately conscious of existing, it is an easy matter to begin +doubting whether we exist at all. As long as man was too unreflecting a +creature to articulate in words his consciousness of his own existence, +he knew very well that he existed, but he did not know that he knew it. +With introspection, and the perception recognised, for better or worse, +that he was a fact, came also the perception that he had no solid ground +for believing that he was a fact at all. That nice, sensible, +unintrospective people who were too busy trying to exist pleasantly to +trouble their heads as to whether they existed or no—that this best part +of mankind should have gratefully caught at such a straw as “_cogito ergo +sum_,” is intelligible enough. They felt the futility of the whole +question, and were thankful to one who seemed to clench the matter with a +cant catchword, especially with a catchword in a foreign language; but +how one, who was so far gone as to recognise that he could not prove his +own existence, should be able to comfort himself with such a begging of +the question, would seem unintelligible except upon the ground of sheer +exhaustion. + +At the risk of appearing to wander too far from the matter in hand, a few +further examples may perhaps be given of that irony of nature, by which +it comes about that we so often most know and are, what we least think +ourselves to know and be—and on the other hand hold most strongly what we +are least capable of demonstrating. + +Take the existence of a Personal God,—one of the most profoundly-received +and widely-spread ideas that have ever prevailed among mankind. Has +there ever been a _demonstration_ of the existence of such a God as has +satisfied any considerable section of thinkers for long together? Hardly +has what has been conceived to be a demonstration made its appearance and +received a certain acceptance as though it were actual proof, when it has +been impugned with sufficient success to show that, however true the fact +itself, the demonstration is naught. I do not say that this is an +argument against the personality of God; the drift, indeed, of the +present reasoning would be towards an opposite conclusion, inasmuch as it +insists upon the fact that what is most true and best known is often +least susceptible of demonstration owing to the very perfectness with +which it is known; nevertheless, the fact remains that many men in many +ages and countries—the subtlest thinkers over the whole world for some +fifteen hundred years—have hunted for a demonstration of God’s personal +existence; yet though so many have sought,—so many, and so able, and for +so long a time—none have found. There is no demonstration which can be +pointed to with any unanimity as settling the matter beyond power of +reasonable cavil. On the contrary, it may be observed that from the +attempt to prove the existence of a personal God to the denial of that +existence altogether, the path is easy. As in the case of our own +existence, it will be found that they alone are perfect believers in a +personal Deity and in the Christian religion who have not yet begun to +feel that either stands in need of demonstration. We observe that most +people, whether Christians, or Jews, or Mohammedans, are unable to give +their reasons for the faith that is in them with any readiness or +completeness; and this is sure proof that they really hold it so utterly +as to have no further sense that it either can be demonstrated or ought +to be so, but feel towards it as towards the air which they breathe but +do not notice. On the other hand, a living prelate was reported in the +“Times” to have said in one of his latest charges: “My belief is that a +widely extended good practice must be founded upon Christian doctrine.” +The fact of the Archbishop’s recognising this as among the number of his +beliefs is conclusive evidence with those who have devoted attention to +the laws of thought, that his mind is not yet clear as to whether or no +there is any connection at all between Christian doctrine and widely +extended good practice. {25} + +Again, it has been often and very truly said that it is not the conscious +and self-styled sceptic, as Shelley for example, who is the true +unbeliever. Such a man as Shelley will, as indeed his life abundantly +proves, have more in common than not with the true unselfconscious +believer. Gallio again, whose indifference to religious animosities has +won him the cheapest immortality which, so far as I can remember, was +ever yet won, was probably if the truth were known, a person of the +sincerest piety. It is the unconscious unbeliever who is the true +infidel, however greatly he would be surprised to know the truth. Mr. +Spurgeon was reported as having recently asked the Almighty to “change +our rulers _as soon as possible_.” There lurks a more profound distrust +of God’s power in these words than in almost any open denial of His +existence. + +So it rather shocks us to find Mr. Darwin writing (“Plants and Animals +under Domestication,” vol. ii., p. 275): “No doubt, in every case there +must have been some exciting cause.” And again, six or seven pages +later: “No doubt, each slight variation must have its efficient cause.” +The repetition within so short a space of this expression of confidence +in the impossibility of causeless effects would suggest that Mr. Darwin’s +mind at the time of writing was, unconsciously to himself, in a state of +more or less uneasiness as to whether effects could not occasionally come +about of themselves, and without cause of any sort,—that he may have been +standing, in fact, for a short time upon the brink of a denial of the +indestructibility of force and matter. + +In like manner, the most perfect humour and irony is generally quite +unconscious. Examples of both are frequently given by men whom the world +considers as deficient in humour; it is more probably true that these +persons are unconscious of their own delightful power through the very +mastery and perfection with which they hold it. There is a play, for +instance, of genuine fun in some of the more serious scientific and +theological journals which for some time past we have looked for in vain +in “—.” + +The following extract, from a journal which I will not advertise, may +serve as an example: + +“Lycurgus, when they had abandoned to his revenge him who had put out his +eyes, took him home, and the punishment he inflicted upon him was +sedulous instructions to virtue.” Yet this truly comic paper does not +probably know that it is comic, any more than the kleptomaniac knows that +he steals, or than John Milton knew he was a humorist when he wrote a +hymn upon the circumcision, and spent his honeymoon in composing a +treatise on divorce. No more again did Goethe know how exquisitely +humorous he was when he wrote, in his Wilhelm Meister, that a beautiful +tear glistened in Theresa’s right eye, and then went on to explain that +it glistened in her right eye and not in her left, because she had had a +wart on her left which had been removed—and successfully. Goethe +probably wrote this without a chuckle; he believed what a good many +people who have never read Wilhelm Meister believe still, namely, that it +was a work full of pathos, of fine and tender feeling; yet a less +consummate humorist must have felt that there was scarcely a paragraph in +it from first to last the chief merit of which did not lie in its +absurdity. + +Another example may be taken from Bacon of the manner in which sayings +which drop from men unconsciously, give the key of their inner thoughts +to another person, though they themselves know not that they have such +thoughts at all; much less that these thoughts are their only true +convictions. In his Essay on Friendship the great philosopher writes: +“Reading good books on morality is a little flat and dead.” Innocent, +not to say pathetic, as this passage may sound it is pregnant with +painful inferences concerning Bacon’s moral character. For if he knew +that he found reading good books of morality a little flat and dead, it +follows he must have tried to read them; nor is he saved by the fact that +he found them a little flat and dead; for though this does indeed show +that he had begun to be so familiar with a few first principles as to +find it more or less exhausting to have his attention directed to them +further—yet his words prove that they were not so incorporate with him +that he should feel the loathing for further discourse upon the matter +which honest people commonly feel now. It will be remembered that he +took bribes when he came to be Lord Chancellor. + +It is on the same principle that we find it so distasteful to hear one +praise another for earnestness. For such praise raises a suspicion in +our minds (_pace_ the late Dr. Arnold and his following) that the +praiser’s attention must have been arrested by sincerity, as by something +more or less unfamiliar to himself. So universally is this recognised +that the world has for some time been discarded entirely by all reputable +people. Truly, if there is one who cannot find himself in the same room +with the life and letters of an earnest person without being made +instantly unwell, the same is a just man and perfect in all his ways. + +But enough has perhaps been said. As the fish in the sea, or the bird in +the air, so unreasoningly and inarticulately safe must a man feel before +he can be said to know. It is only those who are ignorant and +uncultivated who can know anything at all in a proper sense of the words. +Cultivation will breed in any man a certainty of the uncertainty even of +his most assured convictions. It is perhaps fortunate for our comfort +that we can none of us be cultivated upon very many subjects, so that +considerable scope for assurance will still remain to us; but however +this may be, we certainly observe it as a fact that the greatest men are +they who are most uncertain in spite of certainty, and at the same time +most certain in spite of uncertainty, and who are thus best able to feel +that there is nothing in such complete harmony with itself as a flat +contradiction in terms. For nature hates that any principle should +breed, so to speak, hermaphroditically, but will give to each an help +meet for it which shall cross it and be the undoing of it; as in the case +of descent with modification, of which the essence would appear to be +that every offspring should resemble its parents, and yet, at the same +time, that no offspring should resemble its parents. But for the +slightly irritating stimulant of this perpetual crossing, we should pass +our lives unconsciously as though in slumber. + +Until we have got to understand that though black is not white, yet it +may be whiter than white itself (and any painter will readily paint that +which shall show obviously as black, yet it shall be whiter than that +which shall show no less obviously as white), we may be good logicians, +but we are still poor reasoners. Knowledge is in an inchoate state as +long as it is capable of logical treatment; it must be transmuted into +that sense or instinct which rises altogether above the sphere in which +words can have being at all, otherwise it is not yet vital. For sense is +to knowledge what conscience is to reasoning about right and wrong; the +reasoning must be so rapid as to defy conscious reference to first +principles, and even at times to be apparently subversive of them +altogether, or the action will halt. It must, in fact, become automatic +before we are safe with it. While we are fumbling for the grounds of our +conviction, our conviction is prone to fall, as Peter for lack of faith +sinking into the waves of Galilee; so that the very power to prove at all +is an _à priori_ argument against the truth—or at any rate the practical +importance to the vast majority of mankind—of all that is supported by +demonstration. For the power to prove implies a sense of the need of +proof, and things which the majority of mankind find practically +important are in ninety-nine cases out of a hundred above proof. The +need of proof becomes as obsolete in the case of assumed knowledge, as +the practice of fortifying towns in the middle of an old and long settled +country. Who builds defences for that which is impregnable or little +likely to be assailed? The answer is ready, that unless the defences had +been built in former times it would be impossible to do without them now; +but this does not touch the argument, which is not that demonstration is +unwise, but that as long as a demonstration is still felt necessary, and +therefore kept ready to hand, the subject of such demonstration is not +yet securely known. _Qui s’excuse_, _s’accuse_; and unless a matter can +hold its own without the brag and self-assertion of continual +demonstration, it is still more or less of a parvenu, which we shall not +lose much by neglecting till it has less occasion to blow its own +trumpet. The only alternative is that it is an error in process of +detection, for if evidence concerning any opinion has long been denied +superfluous, and ever after this comes to be again felt necessary, we +know that the opinion is doomed. + +If there is any truth in the above, it should follow that our conception +of the words “science” and “scientific” should undergo some modification. +Not that we should speak slightingly of science, but that we should +recognise more than we do, that there are two distinct classes of +scientific people corresponding not inaptly with the two main parties +unto which the political world is divided. The one class is deeply +versed in those sciences which have already become the common property of +mankind; enjoying, enforcing, perpetuating, and engraving still more +deeply unto the mind of man acquisitions already approved by common +experience, but somewhat careless about extension of empire, or at any +rate disinclined, for the most part, to active effort on their own part +for the sake of such extension—neither progressive, in fact, nor +aggressive—but quiet, peaceable people, who wish to live and let live, as +their fathers before them; while the other class is chiefly intent upon +pushing forward the boundaries of science, and is comparatively +indifferent to what is known already save in so far as necessary for +purposes of extension. These last are called pioneers of science, and to +them alone is the title “scientific” commonly accorded; but pioneers, +unimportant to an army as they are, are still not the army itself; which +can get on better without the pioneers than the pioneers without the +army. Surely the class which knows thoroughly well what it knows, and +which adjudicates upon the value of the discoveries made by the +pioneers—surely this class has as good a right or better to be called +scientific than the pioneers themselves. + +These two classes above described blend into one another with every shade +of gradation. Some are admirably proficient in the well-known +sciences—that is to say, they have good health, good looks, good temper, +common sense, and energy, and they hold all these good things in such +perfection as to lie altogether without introspection—to be not under the +law, but so utterly and entirely under grace that every one who sees them +likes them. But such may, and perhaps more commonly will, have very +little inclination to extend the boundaries of human knowledge; their aim +is in another direction altogether. Of the pioneers, on the other hand, +some are agreeable people, well versed in the older sciences, though +still more eminent as pioneers, while others, whose services in this last +capacity have been of inestimable value, are noticeably ignorant of the +sciences which have already become current with the larger part of +mankind—in other words, they are ugly, rude, and disagreeable people, +very progressive, it may be, but very aggressive to boot. + +The main difference between these two classes lies in the fact that the +knowledge of the one, so far as it is new, is known consciously, while +that of the other is unconscious, consisting of sense and instinct rather +than of recognised knowledge. So long as a man has these, and of the +same kind as the more powerful body of his fellow-countrymen, he is a +true man of science, though he can hardly read or write. As my great +namesake said so well, “He knows what’s what, and that’s as high as +metaphysic wit can fly.” As usual, these true and thorough knowers do +not know that they are scientific, and can seldom give a reason for the +faith that is in them. They believe themselves to be ignorant, +uncultured men, nor can even the professors whom they sometimes outwit in +their own professorial domain perceive that they have been outwitted by +men of superior scientific attainments to their own. The following +passage from Dr. Carpenter’s “Mesmerism, Spiritualism,” &c., may serve as +an illustration:— + +“It is well known that persons who are conversant with the geological +structure of a district are often able to indicate with considerable +certainty in what spot and at what depth water will be found; and men _of +less scientific knowledge_, _but of considerable practical +experience_”—(so that in Dr. Carpenter’s mind there seems to be some sort +of contrast or difference in kind between the knowledge which is derived +from observation of facts and scientific knowledge)—“frequently arrive at +a true conclusion upon this point without being able to assign reasons +for their opinions. + +“Exactly the same may be said in regard to the mineral structure of a +mining district; the course of a metallic vein being often correctly +indicated by the shrewd guess of an _observant_ workman, when _the +scientific reasoning_ of the mining engineer altogether fails.” + +Precisely. Here we have exactly the kind of thing we are in search of: +the man who has observed and observed till the facts are so thoroughly in +his head that through familiarity he has lost sight both of them and of +the processes whereby he deduced his conclusions from them—is apparently +not considered scientific, though he knows how to solve the problem +before him; the mining engineer, on the other hand, who reasons +scientifically—that is to say, with a knowledge of his own knowledge—is +found not to know, and to fail in discovering the mineral. + +“It is an experience we are continually encountering in other walks of +life,” continues Dr. Carpenter, “that particular persons are guided—some +apparently by an original and others by _an acquired intuition_—to +conclusions for which they can give no adequate reason, but which +subsequent events prove to have been correct.” And this, I take it, +implies what I have been above insisting on, namely, that on becoming +intense, knowledge seems also to become unaware of the grounds on which +it rests, or that it has or requires grounds at all, or indeed even +exists. The only issue between myself and Dr. Carpenter would appear to +be, that Dr. Carpenter, himself an acknowledged leader in the scientific +world, restricts the term “scientific” to the people who know that they +know, but are beaten by those who are not so conscious of their own +knowledge; while I say that the term “scientific” should be applied (only +that they would not like it) to the nice sensible people who know what’s +what rather than to the discovering class. + +And this is easily understood when we remember that the pioneer cannot +hope to acquire any of the new sciences in a single lifetime so perfectly +as to become unaware of his own knowledge. As a general rule, we observe +him to be still in a state of active consciousness concerning whatever +particular science he is extending, and as long as he is in this state he +cannot know utterly. It is, as I have already so often insisted on, +those who do not know that they know so much who have the firmest grip of +their knowledge: the best class, for example, of our English youth, who +live much in the open air, and, as Lord Beaconsfield finely said, never +read. These are the people who know best those things which are best +worth knowing—that is to say, they are the most truly scientific. +Unfortunately, the apparatus necessary for this kind of science is so +costly as to be within the reach of few, involving, as it does, an +experience in the use of it for some preceding generations. Even those +who are born with the means within their reach must take no less pains, +and exercise no less self-control, before they can attain the perfect +unconscious use of them, than would go to the making of a James Watt or a +Stephenson; it is vain, therefore, to hope that this best kind of science +can ever be put within the reach of the many; nevertheless it may be +safely said that all the other and more generally recognised kinds of +science are valueless except in so far as they tend to minister to this +the highest kind. They have no _raison d’être_ except so far as they +tend to do away with the necessity for work, and to diffuse good health, +and that good sense which is above self-consciousness. They are to be +encouraged because they have rendered the most fortunate kind of modern +European possible, and because they tend to make possible a still more +fortunate kind than any now existing. But the man who devotes himself to +science cannot—with the rarest, if any, exceptions—belong to this most +fortunate class himself. He occupies a lower place, both scientifically +and morally, for it is not possible but that his drudgery should somewhat +soil him both in mind and health of body, or, if this be denied, surely +it must let him and hinder him in running the race for unconsciousness. +We do not feel that it increases the glory of a king or great nobleman +that he should excel in what is commonly called science. Certainly he +should not go further than Prince Rupert’s drops. Nor should he excel in +music, art, literature, or theology—all which things are more or less +parts of science. He should be above them all, save in so far as he can +without effort reap renown from the labours of others. It is a _lâche_ +in him that he should write music or books, or paint pictures at all; but +if he must do so, his work should be at best contemptible. Much as we +must condemn Marcus Aurelius, we condemn James I. ever more severely. + +It is a pity there should exist so general a confusion of thought upon +this subject, for it may be asserted without fear of contradiction that +there is hardly any form of immorality now rife which produces more +disastrous effects upon those who give themselves up to it, and upon +society in general, than the so-called science of those who know that +they know too well to be able to know truly. With very clever people—the +people who know that they know—it is much as with the members of the +early Corinthian Church, to whom St. Paul wrote, that if they looked +their numbers over, they would not find many wise, nor powerful, nor +well-born people among them. Dog-fanciers tell us that performing dogs +never carry their tails; such dogs have eaten of the tree of knowledge, +and are convinced of sin accordingly—they know that they know things, in +respect of which, therefore, they are no longer under grace, but under +the law, and they have yet so much grace left as to be ashamed. So with +the human clever dog; he may speak with the tongues of men and angels, +but so long as he knows that he knows, his tail will droop. More +especially does this hold in the case of those who are born to wealth and +of old family. We must all feel that a rich young nobleman with a taste +for science and principles is rarely a pleasant object. We do not even +like the rich young man in the Bible who wanted to inherit eternal life, +unless, indeed, he merely wanted to know whether there was not some way +by which he could avoid dying, and even so he is hardly worth +considering. Principles are like logic, which never yet made a good +reasoner of a bad one, but might still be occasionally useful if they did +not invariably contradict each other whenever there is any temptation to +appeal to them. They are like fire, good servants but bad masters. As +many people or more have been wrecked on principle as from want of +principle. They are, as their name implies, of an elementary character, +suitable for beginners only, and he who has so little mastered them as to +have occasion to refer to them consciously, is out of place in the +society of well-educated people. The truly scientific invariably hate +him, and, for the most part, the more profoundly in proportion to the +unconsciousness with which they do so. + +If the reader hesitates, let him go down into the streets and look in the +shop-windows at the photographs of eminent men, whether literary, +artistic, or scientific, and note the work which the consciousness of +knowledge has wrought on nine out of every ten of them; then let him go +to the masterpieces of Greek and Italian art, the truest preachers of the +truest gospel of grace; let him look at the Venus of Milo, the +Discobolus, the St. George of Donatello. If it had pleased these people +to wish to study, there was no lack of brains to do it with; but imagine +“what a deal of scorn” would “look beautiful” upon the Venus of Milo’s +face if it were suggested to her that she should learn to read. Which, +think you, knows most, the Theseus, or any modern professor taken at +random? True, the advancement of learning must have had a great share in +the advancement of beauty, inasmuch as beauty is but knowledge perfected +and incarnate—but with the pioneers it is _sic vos non vobis_; the grace +is not for them, but for those who come after. Science is like offences. +It must needs come, but woe unto that man through whom it comes; for +there cannot be much beauty where there is consciousness of knowledge, +and while knowledge is still new it must in the nature of things involve +much consciousness. + +It is not knowledge, then, that is incompatible with beauty; there cannot +be too much knowledge, but it must have passed through many people who it +is to be feared must be more or less disagreeable, before beauty or grace +will have anything to say to it; it must be so incarnate in a man’s whole +being that he shall not be aware of it, or it will fit him constrainedly +as one under the law, and not as one under grace. + +And grace is best, for where grace is, love is not distant. Grace! the +old Pagan ideal whose charm even unlovely Paul could not understand, but, +as the legend tells us, his soul fainted within him, his heart misgave +him, and, standing alone on the seashore at dusk, he “troubled deaf +heaven with his bootless cries,” his thin voice pleading for grace after +the flesh. + +The waves came in one after another, the sea-gulls cried together after +their kind, the wind rustled among the dried canes upon the sandbanks, +and there came a voice from heaven saying, “Let My grace be sufficient +for thee.” Whereon, failing of the thing itself, he stole the word and +strove to crush its meaning to the measure of his own limitations. But +the true grace, with her groves and high places, and troups of young men +and maidens crowned with flowers, and singing of love and youth and +wine—the true grace he drove out into the wilderness—high up, it may be, +into Piora, and into such-like places. Happy they who harboured her in +her ill report. + +It is common to hear men wonder what new faith will be adopted by mankind +if disbelief in the Christian religion should become general. They seem +to expect that some new theological or quasi-theological system will +arise, which, _mutatis mutandis_, shall be Christianity over again. It +is a frequent reproach against those who maintain that the supernatural +element of Christianity is without foundation, that they bring forward no +such system of their own. They pull down but cannot build. We sometimes +hear even those who have come to the same conclusions as the destroyers +say, that having nothing new to set up, they will not attack the old. +But how can people set up a new superstition, knowing it to be a +superstition? Without faith in their own platform, a faith as intense as +that manifested by the early Christians, how can they preach? A new +superstition will come, but it is in the very essence of things that its +apostles should have no suspicion of its real nature; that they should no +more recognise the common element between the new and the old than the +early Christians recognised it between their faith and Paganism. If they +did, they would be paralysed. Others say that the new fabric may be seen +rising on every side, and that the coming religion is science. Certainly +its apostles preach it without misgiving, but it is not on that account +less possible that it may prove only to be the coming superstition—like +Christianity, true to its true votaries, and, like Christianity, false to +those who follow it introspectively. + +It may well be we shall find we have escaped from one set of taskmasters +to fall into the hands of others far more ruthless. The tyranny of the +Church is light in comparison with that which future generations may have +to undergo at the hands of the doctrinaires. The Church did uphold a +grace of some sort as the _summum bonum_, in comparison with which all +so-called earthly knowledge—knowledge, that is to say, which had not +passed through so many people as to have become living and incarnate—was +unimportant. Do what we may, we are still drawn to the unspoken teaching +of her less introspective ages with a force which no falsehood could +command. Her buildings, her music, her architecture, touch us as none +other on the whole can do; when she speaks there are many of us who think +that she denies the deeper truths of her own profounder mind, and +unfortunately her tendency is now towards more rather than less +introspection. The more she gives way to this—the more she becomes +conscious of knowing—the less she will know. But still her ideal is in +grace. + +The so-called man of science, on the other hand, seems now generally +inclined to make light of all knowledge, save of the pioneer character. +His ideal is in self-conscious knowledge. Let us have no more Lo, here, +with the professor; he very rarely knows what he says he knows; no sooner +has he misled the world for a sufficient time with a great flourish of +trumpets than he is toppled over by one more plausible than himself. He +is but medicine-man, augur, priest, in its latest development; useful it +may be, but requiring to be well watched by those who value freedom. +Wait till he has become more powerful, and note the vagaries which his +conceit of knowledge will indulge in. The Church did not persecute while +she was still weak. Of course every system has had, and will have, its +heroes, but, as we all very well know, the heroism of the hero is but +remotely due to system; it is due not to arguments, nor reasoning, nor to +any consciously recognised perceptions, but to those deeper sciences +which lie far beyond the reach of self-analysis, and for the sturdy of +which there is but one schooling—to have had good forefathers for many +generations. + +Above all things, let no unwary reader do me the injustice of believing +in _me_. In that I write at all I am among the dammed. If he must +believe in anything, let him believe in the music of Handel, the painting +of Giovanni Bellini, and in the thirteenth chapter of St. Paul’s First +Epistle to the Corinthians. + +But to return. Whenever we find people knowing that they know this or +that, we have the same story over and over again. They do not yet know +it perfectly. + +We come, therefore, to the conclusion that our knowledge and reasoning +thereupon, only become perfect, assured, unhesitating, when they have +become automatic, and are thus exercised without further conscious effort +of the mind, much in the same way as we cannot walk nor read nor write +perfectly till we can do so automatically. + + + + +CHAPTER III. +APPLICATION OF FOREGOING CHAPTERS TO CERTAIN HABITS ACQUIRED AFTER BIRTH +WHICH ARE COMMONLY CONSIDERED INSTINCTIVE. + + +WHAT is true of knowing is also true of willing. The more intensely we +will, the less is our will deliberate and capable of being recognised as +will at all. So that it is common to hear men declare under certain +circumstances that they had no will, but were forced into their own +action under stress of passion or temptation. But in the more ordinary +actions of life, we observe, as in walking or breathing, that we do not +will anything utterly and without remnant of hesitation, till we have +lost sight of the fact that we are exercising our will. + +The question, therefore, is forced upon us, how far this principle +extends, and whether there may not be unheeded examples of its operation +which, if we consider them, will land us in rather unexpected +conclusions. If it be granted that consciousness of knowledge and of +volition vanishes when the knowledge and the volition have become intense +and perfect, may it not be possible that many actions which we do without +knowing how we do them, and without any conscious exercise of the +will—actions which we certainly could not do if we tried to do them, nor +refrain from doing if for any reason we wished to do so—are done so +easily and so unconsciously owing to excess of knowledge or experience +rather than deficiency, we having done them too often, knowing how to do +them too well, and having too little hesitation as to the method of +procedure, to be capable of following our own action without the utter +derangement of such action altogether; or, in other cases, because we +have so long settled the question, that we have stowed away the whole +apparatus with which we work in corners of our system which we cannot now +conveniently reach? + +It may be interesting to see whether we can find any class or classes of +actions which would seem to link actions which for some time after birth +we could not do at all, and in which our proficiency has reached the +stage of unconscious performance obviously through repeated effort and +failure, and through this only, with actions which we could do as soon as +we were born, and concerning which it would at first sight appear absurd +to say that they can have been acquired by any process in the least +analogous to that which we commonly call experience, inasmuch as the +creature itself which does them has only just begun to exist, and cannot, +therefore, in the very nature of things, have had experience. + +Can we see that actions, for the acquisition of which experience is such +an obvious necessity, that whenever we see the acquisition we assume the +experience, gradate away imperceptibly into actions which would seem, +according to all reasonable analogy, to presuppose experience, of which, +however, the time and place seem obscure, if not impossible? + +Eating and drinking would appear to be such actions. The new-born child +cannot eat, and cannot drink, but he can swallow as soon as he is born; +and swallowing would appear (as we may remark in passing) to have been an +earlier faculty of animal life than that of eating with teeth. The ease +and unconsciousness with which we eat and drink is clearly attributable +to practice; but a very little practice seems to go a long way—a +suspiciously small amount of practice—as though somewhere or at some +other time there must have been more practice than we can account for. +We can very readily stop eating or drinking, and can follow our own +action without difficulty in either process; but, as regards swallowing, +which is the earlier habit, we have less power of self-analysis and +control: when we have once committed ourselves beyond a certain point to +swallowing, we must finish doing so,—that is to say, our control over the +operation ceases. Also, a still smaller experience seems necessary for +the acquisition of the power to swallow than appeared necessary in the +case of eating; and if we get into a difficulty we choke, and are more at +a loss how to become introspective than we are about eating and drinking. + +Why should a baby be able to swallow—which one would have said was the +more complicated process of the two—with so much less practice than it +takes him to learn to eat? How comes it that he exhibits in the case of +the more difficult operation all the phenomena which ordinarily accompany +a more complete mastery and longer practice? Analogy would certainly +seem to point in the direction of thinking that the necessary experience +cannot have been wanting, and that, too, not in such a quibbling sort as +when people talk about inherited habit or the experience of the race, +which, without explanation, is to plain-speaking persons very much the +same, in regard to the individual, as no experience at all, but _bonâ +fide_ in the child’s own person. + +Breathing, again, is an action acquired after birth, generally with some +little hesitation and difficulty, but still acquired in a time seldom +longer, as I am informed, than ten minutes or a quarter of an hour. For +an ant which has to be acquired at all, there would seem here, as in the +case of eating, to be a disproportion between, on the one hand, the +intricacy of the process performed, and on the other, the shortness of +the time taken to acquire the practice, and the ease and unconsciousness +with which its exercise is continued from the moment of acquisition. + +We observe that in later life much less difficult and intricate +operations than breathing acquire much longer practice before they can be +mastered to the extent of unconscious performance. We observe also that +the phenomena attendant on the learning by an infant to breathe are +extremely like those attendant upon the repetition of some performance by +one who has done it very often before, but who requires just a little +prompting to set him off, on getting which, the whole familiar routine +presents itself before him, and he repeats his task by rote. Surely then +we are justified in suspecting that there must have been more _bonâ fide_ +personal recollection and experience, with more effort and failure on the +part of the infant itself than meet the eye. + +It should be noticed, also, that our control over breathing is very +limited. We can hold our breath a little, or breathe a little faster for +a short time, but we cannot do this for long, and after having gone +without air for a certain time we must breath. + +Seeing and hearing require some practice before their free use is +mastered, but not very much. They are so far within our control that we +can see more by looking harder, and hear more by listening +attentively—but they are beyond our control in so far as that we must see +and hear the greater part of what presents itself to us as near, and at +the same time unfamiliar, unless we turn away or shut our eyes, or stop +our ears by a mechanical process; and when we do this it is a sign that +we have already involuntarily seen or heard more than we wished. The +familiar, whether sight or sound, very commonly escapes us. + +Take again the processes of digestion, the action of the heart, and the +oxygenisation of the blood—processes of extreme intricacy, done almost +entirely unconsciously, and quite beyond the control of our volition. + +Is it possible that our unconsciousness concerning our own performance of +all these processes arises from over-experience? + +Is there anything in digestion, or the oxygenisation of the blood, +different in kind to the rapid unconscious action of a man playing a +difficult piece of music on the piano? There may be in degree, but as a +man who sits down to play what he well knows, plays on, when once +started, almost, as we say, mechanically, so, having eaten his dinner, he +digests it as a matter of course, unless it has been in some way +unfamiliar to him, or he to it, owing to some derangement or occurrence +with which he is unfamiliar, and under which therefore he is at a loss +now to comport himself, as a player would be at a loss how to play with +gloves on, or with gout in his fingers, or if set to play music upside +down. + +Can we show that all the acquired actions of childhood and after-life, +which we now do unconsciously, or without conscious exercise of the will, +are familiar acts—acts which we have already done a very great number of +times? + +Can we also show that there are no acquired actions which we can perform +in this automatic manner, which were not at one time difficult, requiring +attention, and liable to repeated failure, our volition failing to +command obedience from the members which should carry its purposes into +execution? + +If so, analogy will point in the direction of thinking that other acts +which we do even more unconsciously may only escape our power of +self-examination and control because they are even more familiar—because +we have done them oftener; and we may imagine that if there were a +microscope which could show us the minutest atoms of consciousness and +volition, we should find that even the apparently most automatic actions +were yet done in due course, upon a balance of considerations, and under +the deliberate exercise of the will. + +We should also incline to think that even such an action as the +oxygenisation of its blood by an infant of ten minutes’ old, can only be +done so well and so unconsciously, after repeated failures on the part of +the infant itself. + +True, as has been already implied, we do not immediately see when the +baby could have made the necessary mistakes and acquired that infinite +practice without which it could never go through such complex processes +satisfactorily; we have therefore invented the words “hereditary +instinct,” and consider them as accounting for the phenomenon; but a very +little reflection will show that though these words may be a very good +way of stating the difficulty, they do little or nothing towards removing +it. + +Why should hereditary instinct enable a creature to dispense with the +experience which we see to be necessary in all other cases before +difficult operations can be performed successfully? + +What is this talk that is made about the experience _of the race_, as +though the experience of one man could profit another who knows nothing +about him? If a man eats his dinner, it nourishes _him_ and not his +neighbour; if he learns a different art, it is _he_ that can do it and +not his neighbour. Yet, practically, we see that the vicarious +experience, which seems so contrary to our common observation, does +nevertheless appear to hold good in the case of creatures and their +descendants. Is there, then, any way of bringing these apparently +conflicting phenomena under the operation of one law? Is there any way +of showing that this experience of the race, of which so much is said +without the least attempt to show in what way it may or does become the +experience of the individual, is in sober seriousness the experience of +one single being only, repeating in a great many different ways certain +performances with which he has become exceedingly familiar? + +It would seem that we must either suppose the conditions of experience to +differ during the earlier stages of life from those which we observe them +to become during the heyday of any existence—and this would appear very +gratuitous, tolerable only as a suggestion because the beginnings of life +are so obscure, that in such twilight we may do pretty much whatever we +please without danger of confutation—or that we must suppose the +continuity of life and sameness between living beings, whether plants or +animals, and their descendants, to be far closer than we have hitherto +believed; so that the experience of one person is not enjoyed by his +successor, so much as that the successor is _bonâ fide_ but a part of the +life of his progenitor, imbued with all his memories, profiting by all +his experiences—which are, in fact, his own—and only unconscious of the +extent of his own memories and experiences owing to their vastness and +already infinite repetitions. + +Certainly it presents itself to us at once as a singular coincidence— + +I. That we are _most conscious of_, _and have most control over_, such +habits as speech, the upright position, the arts and sciences, which are +acquisitions peculiar to the human race, always acquired after birth, and +not common to ourselves and any ancestor who had not become entirely +human. + +II. That we are _less conscious of_, _and have less control over_, +eating and drinking, swallowing, breathing, seeing and hearing, which +were acquisitions of our prehuman ancestry, and for which we had provided +ourselves with all the necessary apparatus before we saw light, but which +are still, geologically speaking, recent, or comparatively recent. + +III. That we are _most unconscious of_, _and have least control over_, +our digestion and circulation, which belonged even to our invertebrate +ancestry, and which are habits, geologically speaking, of extreme +antiquity. + +There is something too like method in this for it to be taken as the +result of mere chance—chance again being but another illustration of +Nature’s love of a contradiction in terms; for everything is chance, and +nothing is chance. And you may take it that all is chance or nothing +chance, according as you please, but you must not have half chance and +half not chance. + +Does it not seem as though the older and more confirmed the habit, the +more unquestioning the act of volition, till, in the case of the oldest +habits, the practice of succeeding existences has so formulated the +procedure, that, on being once committed to such and such a line beyond a +certain point, the subsequent course is so clear as to be open to no +further doubt, to admit of no alternative, till the very power of +questioning is gone, and even the consciousness of volition? And this +too upon matters which, in earlier stages of a man’s existence, admitted +of passionate argument and anxious deliberation whether to resolve them +thus or thus, with heroic hazard and experiment, which on the losing side +proved to be vice, and on the winning virtue. For there was passionate +argument once what shape a man’s teeth should be, nor can the colour of +his hair be considered as ever yet settled, or likely to be settled for a +very long time. + +It is one against legion when a creature tries to differ from his own +past selves. He must yield or die if he wants to differ widely, so as to +lack natural instincts, such as hunger or thirst, or not to gratify them. +It is more righteous in a man that he should “eat strange food,” and that +his cheek should “so much as lank not,” than that he should starve if the +strange food be at his command. His past selves are living in him at +this moment with the accumulated life of centuries. “Do this, this, +this, which we too have done, and found our profit in it,” cry the souls +of his forefathers within him. Faint are the far ones, coming and going +as the sound of bells wafted on to a high mountain; loud and clear are +the near ones, urgent as an alarm of fire. “Withhold,” cry some. “Go on +boldly,” cry others. “Me, me, me, revert hitherward, my descendant,” +shouts one as it were from some high vantage-ground over the heads of the +clamorous multitude. “Nay, but me, me, me,” echoes another; and our +former selves fight within us and wrangle for our possession. Have we +not here what is commonly called an _internal tumult_, when dead +pleasures and pains tug within us hither and thither? Then may the +battle be decided by what people are pleased to call our own experience. +Our own indeed! What is our own save by mere courtesy of speech? A +matter of fashion. Sanction sanctifieth and fashion fashioneth. And so +with death—the most inexorable of all conventions. + +However this may be, we may assume it as an axiom with regard to actions +acquired after birth, that we never do them automatically save as the +result of long practice, and after having thus acquired perfect mastery +over the action in question. + +But given the practice or experience, and the intricacy of the process to +be performed appears to matter very little. There is hardly anything +conceivable as being done by man, which a certain amount of familiarity +will not enable him to do, as it were mechanically and without conscious +effort. “The most complex and difficult movements,” writes Mr Darwin, +“can in time be performed without the least effort or consciousness.” +All the main business of life is done thus unconsciously or +semi-unconsciously. For what is the main business of life? We work that +we may eat and digest, rather than eat and digest that we may work; this, +at any rate, is the normal state of things: the more important business +then is that which is carried on unconsciously. So again the action of +the brain, which goes on prior to our realising the idea in which it +results, is not perceived by the individual. So also all the deeper +springs of action and conviction. The residuum with which we fret and +worry ourselves is a mere matter of detail, as the higgling and haggling +of the market, which is not over the bulk of the price, but over the last +halfpenny. + +Shall we say, then, that a baby of a day old sucks (which involves the +whole principle of the pump, and hence a profound practical knowledge of +the laws of pneumatics and hydrostatics), digests, oxygenises its blood +(millions of years before Sir Humphry Davy discovered oxygen), sees and +hears—all most difficult and complicated operations, involving a +knowledge of the facts concerning optics and acoustics, compared with +which the discoveries of Newton sink into utter insignificance? Shall we +say that a baby can do all these things at once, doing them so well and +so regularly, without being even able to direct its attention to them, +and without mistake, and at the same time not know how to do them, and +never have done them before? + +Such an assertion would be a contradiction to the whole experience of +mankind. Surely the _onus probandi_ must rest with him who makes it. + +A man may make a lucky hit now and again by what is called a fluke, but +even this must be only a little in advance of his other performances of +the same kind. He may multiply seven by eight by a fluke after a little +study of the multiplication table, but he will not be able to extract the +cube root of 4913 by a fluke, without long training in arithmetic, any +more than an agricultural labourer would be able to operate successfully +for cataract. If, then, a grown man cannot perform so simple an +operation as that we will say, for cataract, unless he have been long +trained in other similar operations, and until he has done what comes to +the same thing many times over, with what show of reason can we maintain +that one who is so far less capable than a grown man, can perform such +vastly more difficult operations, without knowing how to do them, and +without ever having done them before? There is no sign of “fluke” about +the circulation of a baby’s blood. There may perhaps be some little +hesitation about its earliest breathing, but this, as a general rule, +soon passes over, both breathing and circulation, within an hour after +birth, being as regular and easy as at any time during life. Is it +reasonable, then, to say that the baby does these things without knowing +how to do them, and without ever having done them before, and continues +to do them by a series of lifelong flukes? + +It would be well if those who feel inclined to hazard such an assertion +would find some other instances of intricate processes gone through by +people who know nothing about them, and never had any practice therein. +What _is_ to know how to do a thing? Surely to do it. What is proof +that we know how to do a thing? Surely the fact that we can do it. A +man shows that he knows how to throw the boomerang by throwing the +boomerang. No amount of talking or writing can get over this; _ipso +facto_, that a baby breathes and makes its blood circulate, it knows how +to do so and the fact that it does not know its own knowledge is only +proof of the perfection of that knowledge, and of the vast number of past +occasions on which it must have been exercised already. As we have said +already, it is less obvious when the baby could have gained its +experience, so as to be able so readily to remember exactly what to do; +but it is more easy to suppose that the necessary occasions cannot have +been wanting, than that the power which we observe should have been +obtained without practice and memory. + +If we saw any self-consciousness on the baby’s part about its breathing +or circulation, we might suspect that it had had less experience, or +profited less by its experience, than its neighbours—exactly in the same +manner as we suspect a deficiency of any quality which we see a man +inclined to parade. We all become introspective when we find that we do +not know our business, and whenever we are introspective we may generally +suspect that we are on the verge of unproficiency. Unfortunately, in the +case of sickly children, we observe that they sometimes do become +conscious of their breathing and circulation, just as in later life we +become conscious that we have a liver or a digestion. In that case there +is always something wrong. The baby that becomes aware of its breathing +does not know how to breathe, and will suffer for his ignorance and +incapacity, exactly in the same way as he will suffer in later life for +ignorance and incapacity in any other respect in which his peers are +commonly knowing and capable. In the case of inability to breath, the +punishment is corporal, breathing being a matter of fashion, so old and +long settled that nature can admit of no departure from the established +custom, and the procedure in case of failure is as much formulated as the +fashion itself in the case of the circulation, the whole performance has +become one so utterly of rote, that the mere discovery that we could do +it at all was considered one of the highest flights of human genius. + +It has been said a day will come when the Polar ice shall have +accumulated, till it forms vast continents many thousands of feet above +the level of the sea, all of solid ice. The weight of this mass will, it +is believed, cause the world to topple over on its axis, so that the +earth will be upset as an ant-heap overturned by a ploughshare. In that +day time icebergs will come crunching against our proudest cities, razing +them from off the face of the earth as though they were made of rotten +blotting-paper. There is no respect now of Handel nor of Shakespeare; +the works of Rembrandt and Bellini fossilise at the bottom of the sea. +Grace, beauty, and wit, all that is precious in music, literature, and +art—all gone. In the morning there was Europe. In the evening there are +no more populous cities nor busy hum of men, but a sea of jagged ice, a +lurid sunset, and the doom of many ages. Then shall a scared remnant +escape in places, and settle upon the changed continent when the waters +have subsided—a simple people, busy hunting shellfish on the drying ocean +beds, and with little time for introspection yet they can read and write +and sum, for by that time these accomplishments will have become +universal, and will be acquired as easily as we now learn to talk; but +they do so as a matter of course, and without self-consciousness. Also +they make the simpler kinds of machinery too easily to be able to follow +their own operations—the manner of their own apprenticeship being to them +as a buried city. May we not imagine that, after the lapse of another +ten thousand years or so, some one of them may again become cursed with +lust of introspection, and a second Harvey may astonish the world by +discovering that it can read and write, and that steam-engines do not +grow, but are made? It may be safely prophesied that he will die a +martyr, and be honoured in the fourth generation. + + + + +CHAPTER IV. +APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING PRINCIPLES TO ACTIONS AND HABITS ACQUIRED +BEFORE BIRTH. + + +BUT if we once admit the principle that consciousness and volition have a +tendency to vanish as soon as practice has rendered any habit exceedingly +familiar, so that the mere presence of an elaborate but unconscious +performance shall carry with it a presumption of infinite practice, we +shall find it impossible to draw the line at those actions which we see +acquired after birth, no matter at how early a period. The whole history +and development of the embryo in all its stages forces itself on our +consideration. Birth has been made too much of. It is a salient feature +in the history of the individual, but not more salient than a hundred +others, and far less so than the commencement of his existence as a +single cell uniting in itself elements derived from both parents, or +perhaps than any point in his whole existence as an embryo. For many +years after we are born we are still very incomplete. We cease to +oxygenise our blood vicariously as soon as we are born, but we still +derive our sustenance from our mothers. Birth is but the beginning of +doubt, the first hankering after scepticism, the dreaming of a dawn of +trouble, the end of certainty and of settled convictions. Not but what +before birth there have been unsettled convictions (more’s the pity) with +not a few, and after birth we have still so made up our minds upon many +points as to have no further need of reflection concerning them; +nevertheless, in the main, birth is the end of that time when we really +knew our business, and the beginning of the days wherein we know not what +we would do, or do. It is therefore the beginning of consciousness, and +infancy is as the dosing of one who turns in his bed on waking, and takes +another short sleep before he rises. When we were yet unborn, our +thoughts kept the roadway decently enough; then were we blessed; we +thought as every man thinks, and held the same opinions as our fathers +and mothers had done upon nearly every subject. Life was not an art—and +a very difficult art—much too difficult to be acquired in a lifetime; it +was a science of which we were consummate masters. + +In this sense, then, birth may indeed be looked upon as the most salient +feature in a man’s life; but this is not at all the sense in which it is +commonly so regarded. It is commonly considered as the point at which we +begin to live. More truly it is the point at which we leave off knowing +how to live. + +A chicken, for example, is never so full of consciousness, activity, +reasoning faculty, and volition, as when it is an embryo in the eggshell, +making bones, and flesh, and feathers, and eyes, and claws, with nothing +but a little warmth and white of egg to make them from. This is indeed +to make bricks with but a small modicum of straw. There is no man in the +whole world who knows consciously and articulately as much as a +half-hatched hen’s egg knows unconsciously. Surely the egg in its own +way must know quite as much as the chicken does. We say of the chicken +that it knows how to run about as soon as it is hatched. So it does; but +had it no knowledge before it was hatched? What made it lay the +foundations of those limbs which should enable it to run about? What +made it grow a horny tip to its bill before it was hatched, so that it +might peck all round the larger end of the eggshell and make a hole for +itself to get out at? Having once got outside the eggshell, the chicken +throws away this horny tip; but is it reasonable to suppose that it would +have grown it at all unless it had known that it would want something +with which to break the eggshell? And again, is it in the least +agreeable to our experience that such elaborate machinery should be made +without endeavour, failure, perseverance, intelligent contrivance, +experience, and practice? + +In the presence of such considerations, it seems impossible to refrain +from thinking that there must be a closer continuity of identity, life, +and memory, between successive generations than we generally imagine. To +shear the thread of life, and hence of memory, between one generation and +its successor, is so to speak, a brutal measure, an act of intellectual +butchery, and like all such strong high-handed measures, a sign of +weakness in him who is capable of it till all other remedies have been +exhausted. It is mere horse science, akin to the theories of the +convulsionists in the geological kingdom, and of the believers in the +supernatural origin of the species of plants and animals. Yet it is to +be feared that we have not a few among us who would feel shocked rather +at the attempt towards a milder treatment of the facts before them, than +at a continuance of the present crass tyranny with which we try to crush +them inside our preconceived opinions. It is quite common to hear men of +education maintain that not even when it was on the point of being +hatched, had the chicken sense enough to know that it wanted to get +outside the eggshell. It did indeed peck all round the end of the shell, +which, if it wanted to get out, would certainly be the easiest way of +effecting its purpose; but it did not, they say, peck because it was +aware of this, but “promiscuously.” Curious, such a uniformity of +promiscuous action among so many eggs for so many generations. If we see +a man knock a hole in a wall on finding that he cannot get out of a place +by any other means, and if we see him knock this hole in a very +workmanlike way, with an implement with which he has been at great pains +to make for a long the past, but which he throws away as soon as he has +no longer use for it, thus showing that he had made it expressly for the +purpose of escape, do we say that this person made the implement and +broke the wall of his prison promiscuously? No jury would acquit a +burglar on these grounds. Then why, without much more evidence to the +contrary than we have, or can hope to have, should we not suppose that +with chickens, as with men, signs of contrivance are indeed signs of +contrivance, however quick, subtle, and untraceable, the contrivance may +be? Again, I have heard people argue that though the chicken, when +nearly hatched, had such a glimmering of sense that it pecked the shell +because it wanted to get out, yet that it is not conceivable that, so +long before it was hatched, it should have had the sense to grow the +horny tip to its bill for use when wanted. This, at any rate, they say, +it must have grown, as the persons previously referred to would maintain, +promiscuously. + +Now no one indeed supposes that the chicken does what it does, with the +same self-consciousness with which a tailor makes a suit of clothes. Not +any one who has thought upon the subject is likely to do it so great an +injustice. The probability is that it knows what it is about to an +extent greater than any tailor ever did or will, for, to say the least of +it, many thousands of years to come. It works with such absolute +certainty and so vast an experience, that it is utterly incapable of +following the operations of its own mind—as accountants have been known +to add up long columns of pounds, shillings, and pence, running the three +fingers of one hand, a finger for each column, up the page, and putting +the result down correctly at the bottom, apparently without an effort. +In the case of the accountant, we say that the processes which his mind +goes through are so rapid and subtle as to elude his own power of +observation as well as ours. We do not deny that his mind goes though +processes of some kind; we very readily admit that it must do so, and say +that these processes are so rapid and subtle, owing, as a general rule, +to long experience in addition. Why then should we find it so difficult +to conceive that this principle, which we observe to play so large a part +in mental physiology, wherever we can observe mental physiology at all, +may have a share also in the performance of intricate operations +otherwise inexplicable, though the creature performing them is not man, +or man only in embryo? + +Again, after the chicken is hatched, it grows more feathers and bones and +blood, but we still say that it knows nothing about all this. What then +do we say it _does_ know? One is almost ashamed to confess that we only +credit it with knowing what it appears to know by processes which we find +it exceedingly easy to follow, or perhaps rather, which we find it +absolutely impossible to avoid following, as recognising too great a +family likeness between them, and those which are most easily followed in +our own minds, to be able to sit down in comfort under a denial of the +resemblance. Thus, for example, if we see a chicken running away from a +fox, we do admit that the chicken knows the fox would kill it if it +caught it. + +On the other hand, if we allow that the half-hatched chicken grew the +horny tip to be ready for use, with an intensity of unconscious +contrivance which can be only attributed to experience, we are driven to +admit that from the first moment the men began to sit upon it—and earlier +too than this—the egg was always full of consciousness and volition, and +that during its embryological condition the unhatched chicken is doing +exactly what it continues doing from the moment it is hatched till it +dies; that is to say, attempting to better itself, doing (as Aristotle +says all creatures do all things upon all occasions) what it considers +most for its advantage under the existing circumstances. What it may +think most advantageous will depend, while it is in the eggshell, upon +exactly the same causes as will influence its opinions in later life—to +wit, upon its habits, its past circumstances and ways of thinking; for +there is nothing, as Shakespeare tells us, good or ill, but thinking +makes it so. + +The egg thinks feathers much more to its advantage than hair or fur, and +much more easily made. If it could speak, it would probably tell us that +we could make them ourselves very easily after a few lessons, if we took +the trouble to try, but that hair was another matter, which it really +could not see how any protoplasm could be got to make. Indeed, during +the more intense and active part of our existence, in the earliest +stages, that is to say, of our embryological life, we could probably have +turned our protoplasm into feathers instead of hair if we had cared about +doing so. If the chicken can make feathers, there seems no sufficient +reason for thinking that we cannot do so, beyond the fact that we prefer +hair, and have preferred it for so many ages that we have lost the art +along with the desire of making feathers, if indeed any of our ancestors +ever possessed it. The stuff with which we make hair is practically the +same as that with which chickens make feathers. It is nothing but +protoplasm, and protoplasm is like certain prophecies, out of which +anything can be made by the creature which wants to make it. Everything +depends upon whether a creature knows its own mind sufficiently well, and +has enough faith in its own powers of achievement. When these two +requisites are wanting, the strongest giant cannot lift a two-ounce +weight; when they are given, a bullock can take an eyelash out of its eye +with its hind-foot, or a minute jelly speck can build itself a house out +of various materials which it will select according to its purpose with +the nicest care, though it have neither brain to think with, nor eyes to +see with, nor hands nor feet to work with, nor is it anything but a +minute speck of jelly—faith and protoplasm only. + +That this is indeed so, the following passage from Dr. Carpenter’s +“Mental Physiology” may serve to show:— + +“The simplest type of an animal consists of a minute mass of +‘protoplasm,’ or living jelly, which is not yet _differentiated_ into +‘organs;’ every part having the same endowments, and taking an equal +share in every action which the creature performs. One of these ‘jelly +specks,’ the amœba, moves itself about by changing the form of its body, +extemporising a foot (or pseudopodium), first in one direction, and then +in another; and then, when it has met with a nutritive particle, +extemporises a stomach for its reception, by wrapping its soft body +around it. Another, instead of going about in search of food, remains in +one place, but projects its protoplasmic substance into long pseudopodia, +which entrap and draw in very minute particles, or absorb nutrient +material from the liquid through which they extend themselves, and are +continually becoming fused (as it were) into the central body, which is +itself continually giving off new pseudopodia. Now we can scarcely +conceive that a creature of such simplicity should possess any distinct +_consciousness_ of its needs” (why not?), “or that its actions should be +directed by any _intention_ of its own; and yet the writer has lately +found results of the most singular elaborateness to be wrought out by the +instrumentality of these minute jelly specks, which build up tests or +casings of the most regular geometrical symmetry of form, and of the most +artificial construction.” + +On this Dr. Carpenter remarks:—“Suppose a human mason to be put down by +the side of a pile of stones of various shapes and sizes, and to be told +to build a dome of these, smooth on both surfaces, without using more +than the least possible quantity of a very tenacious, but very costly, +cement, in holding the stones together. If he accomplished this well, he +would receive credit for great intelligence and skill. Yet this is +exactly what these little ‘jelly specks’ do on a most minute scale; the +‘tests’ they construct, when highly magnified, bearing comparison with +the most skilful masonry of man. From _the same sandy bottom_ one +species picks up the _coarser_ quartz grains, cements them together with +_phosphate of iron_ secreted from its own substance” (should not this +rather be, “which it has contrived in some way or other to manufacture”?) +and thus constructs a flask-shaped ‘test,’ having a short neck and a +large single orifice. Another picks up the _finest_ grains, and puts +them together, with the same cement, into perfectly spherical ‘tests’ of +the most extraordinary finish, perforated with numerous small pores +disposed at pretty regular intervals. Another selects the _minutest_ +sand grains and the terminal portions of sponge spicules, and works them +up together—apparently with no cement at all, by the mere laying of the +spicules—into perfect white spheres, like homœopathic globules, each +having a single-fissured orifice. And another, which makes a straight, +many-chambered ‘test,’ that resembles in form the chambered shell of an +orthoceratite—the conical mouth of each chamber projecting into the +cavity of the next—while forming the walls of its chambers of ordinary +sand grains rather loosely held together, shapes the conical mouth of the +successive chambers by firmly cementing together grains of ferruginous +quartz, which it must have picked out from the general mass.” + +“To give these actions,” continues Dr. Carpenter, “the vague designation +of ‘instinctive’ does not in the least help us to account for them, since +what we want is to discover the _mechanism_ by which they are worked out; +and it is most difficult to conceive how so artificial a selection can be +made by a creature so simple” (Mental Physiology, 4th ed. pp. 41–43) + +This is what protoplasm can do when it has the talisman of faith—of faith +which worketh all wonders, either in the heavens above, or in the earth +beneath, or in the waters under the earth. Truly if a man have faith, +even as a grain of mustard seed, though he may not be able to remove +mountains, he will at any rate be able to do what is no less +difficult—make a mustard plant. + +Yet this is but a barren kind of comfort, for we have not, and in the +nature of things cannot have, sufficient faith in the unfamiliar, +inasmuch as the very essence of faith involves the notion of familiarity, +which can grow but slowly, from experience to confidence, and can make no +sudden leap at any time. Such faith cannot be founded upon reason,—that +is to say, upon a recognised perception on the part of the person holding +it that he is holding it, and of the reasons for his doing so—or it will +shift as other reasons come to disturb it. A house built upon reason is +a house built upon the sand. It must be built upon the current cant and +practice of one’s peers, for this is the rock which, though not +immovable, is still most hard to move. + +But however this may be, we observe broadly that the intensity of the +will to make this or that, and of the confidence that one can make it, +depends upon the length of time during which the maker’s forefathers have +wanted the same thing before it; the older the custom the more inveterate +the habit, and, with the exception, perhaps, that the reproductive system +is generally the crowning act of development—an exception which I will +hereafter explain—the earlier its manifestation, until, for some reason +or another, we relinquish it and take to another, which we must, as a +general rule, again adhere to for a vast number of generations, before it +will permanently supplant the older habit. In our own case, the habit of +breathing like a fish through gills may serve as an example. We have now +left off this habit, yet we did it formerly for so many generations that +we still do it a little; it still crosses our embryological existence +like a faint memory or dream, for not easily is an inveterate habit +broken. On the other hand—again speaking broadly—the more recent the +habit the later the fashion of its organ, as with the teeth, speech, and +the higher intellectual powers, which are too new for development before +we are actually born. + +But to return for a short time to Dr. Carpenter. Dr. Carpenter evidently +feels, what must indeed be felt by every candid mind, that there is no +sufficient reason for supposing that these little specks of jelly, +without brain or eyes, or stomach, or hands, or feet, but the very lowest +known form of animal life, are not imbued with a consciousness of their +needs, and the reasoning faculties which shall enable them to gratify +those needs in a manner, all things considered, equalling the highest +flights of the ingenuity of the highest animal—man. This is no +exaggeration. It is true, that in an earlier part of the passage, Dr. +Carpenter has said that we can scarcely conceive so simple a creature to +“possess any distinct _consciousness_ of its needs, or that its actions +should be directed by any intention of its own;” but, on the other hand, +a little lower down he says, that if a workman did what comes to the same +thing as what the amœba does, he “would receive credit for great +intelligence and skill.” Now if an amœba can do that, for which a +workman would receive credit as for a highly skilful and intelligent +performance, the amœba should receive no less credit than the workman; he +should also be no less credited with skill and intelligence, which words +unquestionably involve a distinct consciousness of needs and an action +directed by an intention of its own. So that Dr. Carpenter seems rather +to blow hot and cold with one breath. Nevertheless there can be no doubt +to which side the minds of the great majority of mankind will incline +upon the evidence before them; they will say that the creature is highly +reasonable and intelligent, though they would readily admit that long +practice and familiarity may have exhausted its powers of attention to +all the stages of its own performance, just as a practised workman in +building a wall certainly does not consciously follow all the processes +which he goes through. + +As an example, however, of the extreme dislike which philosophers of a +certain school have for making the admissions which seem somewhat +grudgingly conceded by Dr. Carpenter, we may take the paragraph which +immediately follows the ones which we have just quoted. Dr. Carpenter +there writes:— + +“The writer has often amused himself and others, when by the seaside, +with getting a _terebella_ (a marine worm that cases its body in a sandy +tube) out of its house, and then, putting it into a saucer of water with +a supply of sand and comminuted shell, watching its appropriation of +these materials in constructing a new tube. The extended tentacles soon +spread themselves over the bottom of the saucer and lay hold of whatever +comes in their way, ‘all being fish that comes to their net,’ and in half +an hour or thereabouts the new house is finished, though on a very rude +and artificial type. Now here the organisation is far higher; the +instrumentality obviously serves the needs of the animal and suffices for +them; and we characterise the action, on account of its uniformity and +apparent _un_intelligence, as instinctive.” + +No comment will, one would think, be necessary to make the reader feel +that the difference between the terebella and the amœba is one of degree +rather than kind, and that if the action of the second is as conscious +and reasonable as that, we will say, of a bird making her nest, the +action of the first should be so also. It is only a question of being a +little less skilful, or more so, but skill and intelligence would seem +present in both cases. Moreover, it is more clever of the terebella to +have made itself the limbs with which it can work, than of the amœba to +be able to work without the limbs; and perhaps it is more sensible also +to want a less elaborate dwelling, provided it is sufficient for +practical purposes. But whether the terebella be less intelligent than +the amœba or not, it does quite enough to establish its claim to +intelligence of a higher order; and one does not see ground for the +satisfaction which Dr. Carpenter appears to find at having, as it were, +taken the taste of the amœba’s performance out of our mouth, by setting +us about the less elaborate performance of the terebella, which he thinks +we can call unintelligent and instinctive. + +I may be mistaken in the impression I have derived from the paragraphs I +have quoted. I commonly say they give me the impression that I have +tried to convey to the reader, _i.e._, that the writer’s assent to +anything like intelligence, or consciousness of needs, an animal low down +in the scale of life, is grudging, and that he is more comfortable when +he has got hold of onto to which he can point and say that mere, at any +rate, is an unintelligent and merely instinctive creature. I have only +called attention to the passage as an example of the intellectual bias of +a large number of exceedingly able and thoughtful persons, among whom, so +far as I am able to form an opinion at all, few have greater claims to +our respectful attention than Dr. Carpenter himself. + +For the embryo of a chicken, then, we damn exactly the same kind of +reasoning power and contrivance which we damn for the amœba, or for our +own intelligent performances in later life. We do not claim for it much, +if any, perception of its own forethought, for we know very well that it +is among the most prominent features of intellectual activity that, after +a number of repetitions, it ceases to be perceived, and that it does not, +in ordinary cases, cease to be perceived till after a very great number +of repetitions. The fact that the embryo chicken makes itself always as +nearly as may be in the same way, would lead us to suppose that it would +be unconscious of much of its own action, _provided it were always the +same chicken which made itself over and over again_. So far we can see, +it always _is_ unconscious of the greater part of its own wonderful +performance. Surely then we have a presumption that _it is the same +chicken which makes itself over and over again_; for such unconsciousness +is not won, so far as our experience goes, by any other means than by +frequent repetition of the same act on the part of one and the same +individual. How this can be we shall perceive in subsequent chapters. +In the meantime, we may say that all knowledge and volition would seem to +be merely parts of the knowledge and volition of the primordial cell +(whatever this may be), which slumbers but never dies—which has grown, +and multiplied, and differentiated itself into the compound life of the +womb, and which never becomes conscious of knowing what it has once +learnt effectually, till it is for some reason on the point of, or in +danger of, forgetting it. + +The action, therefore, of an embryo making its way up in the world from a +simple cell to a baby, developing for itself eyes, ears, hands, and feet +while yet unborn, proves to be exactly of one and the same kind as that +of a man of fifty who goes into the City and tells his broker to buy him +so many Great Northern A shares—that is to say, an effort of the will +exercised in due course on a balance of considerations as to the +immediate expediency, and guided by past experience; while children who +do not reach birth are but prenatal spendthrifts, ne’er-do-weels, +inconsiderate innovators, the unfortunate in business, either through +their own fault or that of others, or through inevitable mischances, +beings who are culled out before birth instead of after; so that even the +lowest idiot, the most contemptible in health or beauty, may yet reflect +with pride that they were _born_. Certainly we observe that those who +have had good fortune (mother and sole cause of virtue, and sole virtue +in itself), and have profited by their experience, and known their +business best before birth, so that they made themselves both to be and +to look well, do commonly on an average prove to know it best in +after-life: they grow their clothes best who have grown their limbs best. +It is rare that those who have not remembered how to finish their own +bodies fairly well should finish anything well in later life. But how +small is the addition to their unconscious attainments which even the +Titans of human intellect have consciously accomplished, in comparison +with the problems solved by the meanest baby living, nay, even by one +whose birth is untimely! In other words, how vast is that back knowledge +over which we have gone fast asleep, through the prosiness of perpetual +repetition; and how little in comparison, is that whose novelty keeps it +still within the scope of our conscious perception! What is the +discovery of the laws of gravitation as compared with the knowledge which +sleeps in every hen’s egg upon a kitchen shelf? + +It is all a matter of habit and fashion. Thus we see kings and +councillors of the earth admired for facing death before what they are +pleased to call dishonour. If, on being required to go without anything +they have been accustomed to, or to change their habits, or do what is +unusual in the case of other kings under like circumstances, then, if +they but fold their cloak decently around them, and die upon the spot of +shame at having had it even required of them to do thus or thus, then are +they kings indeed, of old race, that know their business from generation +to generation. Or if, we will say, a prince, on having his dinner +brought to him ill-cooked, were to feel the indignity so keenly as that +he should turn his face to the wall, and breathe out his wounded soul in +one sigh, do we not admire him as a “_real_ prince,” who knows the +business of princes so well that he can conceive of nothing foreign to it +in connection with himself, the bare effort to realise a state of things +other than what princes have been accustomed to being immediately fatal +to him? Yet is there no less than this in the demise of every +half-hatched hen’s egg, shaken rudely by a schoolboy, or neglected by a +truant mother; for surely the prince would not die if he knew how to do +otherwise, and the hen’s egg only dies of being required to do something +to which it is not accustomed. + +But the further consideration of this and other like reflections would +too long detain us. Suffice it that we have established the position +that all living creatures which show any signs of intelligence, must +certainly each one have already gone through the embryonic stages an +infinite number of times, or they could no more have achieved the +intricate process of self-development unconsciously, than they could play +the piano unconsciously without any previous knowledge of the instrument. +It remains, therefore, to show the when and where of their having done +so, and this leads us naturally to the subject of the following +chapter—Personal Identity. + + + + +CHAPTER V. +PERSONAL IDENTITY. + + +“STRANGE difficulties have been raised by some,” says Bishop Butler, +“concerning personal identity, or the sameness of living agents as +implied in the notion of our existing now and hereafter, or indeed in any +two consecutive moments.” But in truth it is not easy to see the +strangeness of the difficulty, if the words either “personal” or +“identity” are used in any strictness. + +Personality is one of those ideas with which we are so familiar that we +have lost sight of the foundations upon which it rests. We regard our +personality as a simple definite whole; as a plain, palpable, individual +thing, which can be seen going about the streets or sitting indoors at +home, which lasts us our lifetime, and about the confines of which no +doubt can exist in the minds of reasonable people. But in truth this +“we,” which looks so simple and definite, is a nebulous and indefinable +aggregation of many component parts which war not a little among +themselves, our perception of our existence at all being perhaps due to +this very clash of warfare, as our sense of sound and light is due to the +jarring of vibrations. Moreover, as the component parts of our identity +change from moment to moment, our personality becomes a thing dependent +upon the present, which has no logical existence, but lives only upon the +sufferance of times past and future, slipping out of our hands into the +domain of one or other of these two claimants the moment we try to +apprehend it. And not only is our personality as fleeting as the present +moment, but the parts which compose it blend some of them so +imperceptibly into, and are so inextricably linked on to, outside things +which clearly form no part of our personality, that when we try to bring +ourselves to book, and determine wherein we consist, or to draw a line as +to where we begin or end, we find ourselves completely baffled. There is +nothing but fusion and confusion. + +Putting theology on one side, and dealing only with the common daily +experience of mankind, our body is certainly part of our personality. +With the destruction of our bodies, our personality, as far as we can +follow it, comes to a full stop; and with every modification of them it +is correspondingly modified. But what are the limits of our bodies? +They are composed of parts, some of them so unessential as to be hardly +included in personality at all, and to be separable from ourselves +without perceptible effect, as the hair, nails, and daily waste of +tissue. Again, other parts are very important, as our hands, feet, arms, +legs, &c., but still are no essential parts of our “self” or “soul,” +which continues to exist in spite of their amputation. Other parts, as +the brain, heart, and blood, are so essential that they cannot be +dispensed with, yet it is impossible to say that personality consists in +any one of them. + +Each one of these component members of our personality is continually +dying and being born again, supported in this process by the food we eat, +the water we drink, and the air we breathe; which three things link us +on, and fetter us down, to the organic and inorganic world about us. For +our meat and drink, though no part of our personality before we eat and +drink, cannot, after we have done so, be separated entirely from us +without the destruction of our personality altogether, so far as we can +follow it; and who shall say at what precise moment our food has or has +not become part of ourselves? A famished man eats food; after a short +time his whole personality is so palpably affected that we know the food +to have entered into him and taken, as it were, possession of him; but +who can say at what precise moment it did so? Thus we find that we are +rooted into outside things and melt away into them, nor can any man say +he consists absolutely in this or that, nor define himself so certainly +as to include neither more nor less than himself; many undoubted parts of +his personality being more separable from it, and changing it less when +so separated, both to his own senses and those of other people, than +other parts which are strictly speaking no parts at all. + +A man’s clothes, for example, as they lie on a chair at night are no part +of him, but when he wears them they would appear to be so, as being a +kind of food which warms him and hatches him, and the loss of which may +kill him of cold. If this be denied, and a man’s clothes be considered +as no part of his self, nevertheless they, with his money, and it may +perhaps be added his religious opinions, stamp a man’s individuality as +strongly as any natural feature could stamp it. Change in style of +dress, gain or loss of money, make a man feel and appear more changed +than having his chin shaved or his nails cut. In fact, as soon as we +leave common parlance on one side, and try for a scientific definition of +personality, we find that there is none possible, any more than there can +be a demonstration of the fact that we exist at all—a demonstration for +which, as for that of a personal God, many have hunted but none have +found. The only solid foundation is, as in the case of the earth’s +crust, pretty near the surface of things; the deeper we try to go, the +damper and darker and altogether more uncongenial we find it. There is +no knowing into what quagmire of superstition we may not find ourselves +drawn, if we once cut ourselves adrift from those superficial aspects of +things, in which alone our nature permits us to be comforted. + +Common parlance, however, settles the difficulty readily enough (as +indeed it settles most others if they show signs of awkwardness) by the +simple process of ignoring it: we decline, and very properly, to go into +the question of where personality begins and ends, but assume it to be +known by every one, and throw the onus of not knowing it upon the +over-curious, who had better think as their neighbours do, right or +wrong, or there is no knowing into what villainy they may not presently +fall. + +Assuming, then, that every one knows what is meant by the word “person” +(and such superstitious bases as this are the foundations upon which all +action, whether of man, beast, or plant, is constructed and rendered +possible; for even the corn in the fields grows upon a superstitious +basis as to its own existence, and only turns the earth and moisture into +wheat through the conceit of its own ability to do so, without which +faith it were powerless; and the lichen only grows upon the granite rock +by first saying to itself, “I think I can do it;” so that it would not be +able to grow unless it thought it could grow, and would not think it +could grow unless it found itself able to grow, and thus spends its life +arguing in a most vicious circle, basing its action upon a hypothesis, +which hypothesis is in turn based upon its action)—assuming that we know +what is meant by the word “person,” we say that we are one and the same +from the moment of our birth to the moment of our death, so that whatever +is done by or happens to any one between birth and death, is said to +happen to or be done by one individual. This in practice is found to be +sufficient for the law courts and the purposes of daily life, which, +being full of hurry and the pressure of business, can only tolerate +compromise, or conventional rendering of intricate phenomena. When facts +of extreme complexity have to be daily and hourly dealt with by people +whose time is money, they must be simplified, and treated much as a +painter treats them, drawing them in squarely, seizing the more important +features, and neglecting all that does not assert itself as too essential +to be passed over—hence the slang and cant words of every profession, and +indeed all language; for language at best is but a kind of “patter,” the +only way, it is true, in many cases, of expressing our ideas to one +another, but still a very bad way, and not for one moment comparable to +the unspoken speech which we may sometimes have recourse to. The +metaphors and _façons de parler_ to which even in the plainest speech we +are perpetually recurring (as, for example, in this last two lines, +“plain,” “perpetually,” and “recurring,” are all words based on metaphor, +and hence more or less liable to mislead) often deceive us, as though +there were nothing more than what we see and say, and as though words, +instead of being, as they are, the creatures of our convenience, had some +claim to be the actual ideas themselves concerning which we are +conversing. + +This is so well expressed in a letter I have recently received from a +friend, now in New Zealand, and certainly not intended by him for +publication, that I shall venture to quote the passage, but should say +that I do so without his knowledge or permission which I should not be +able to receive before this book must be completed. + +“Words, words, words,” he writes, “are the stumbling-blocks in the way of +truth. Until you think of things as they are, and not of the words that +misrepresent them, you cannot think rightly. Words produce the +appearance of hard and fast lines where there are none. Words divide; +thus we call this a man, that an ape, that a monkey, while they are all +only differentiations of the same thing. To think of a thing they must +be got rid of: they are the clothes that thoughts wear—only the clothes. +I say this over and over again, for there is nothing of more importance. +Other men’s words will stop you at the beginning of an investigation. A +man may play with words all his life, arranging them and rearranging them +like dominoes. If I could _think_ to you without words you would +understand me better.” + +If such remarks as the above hold good at all, they do so with the words +“personal identity.” The least reflection will show that personal +identity in any sort of strictness is an impossibility. The expression +is one of the many ways in which we are obliged to scamp our thoughts +through pressure of other business which pays us better. For surely all +reasonable people will feel that an infant an hour before birth, when in +the eye of the law he has no existence, and could not be called a peer +for another sixty minutes, though his father were a peer, and already +dead,—surely such an embryo is more personally identical with the baby +into which he develops within an hour’s time than the born baby is so +with itself (if the expression may be pardoned), one, twenty, or it may +be eighty years after birth. There is more sameness of matter; there are +fewer differences of any kind perceptible by a third person; there is +more sense of continuity on the part of the person himself; and far more +of all that goes to make up our sense of sameness of personality between +an embryo an hour before birth and the child on being born, than there is +between the child just born and the man of twenty. Yet there is no +hesitation about admitting sameness of personality between these two +last. + +On the other hand, if that hazy contradiction in terms, “personal +identity,” be once allowed to retreat behind the threshold of the womb, +it has eluded us once for all. What is true of one hour before birth is +true of two, and so on till we get back to the impregnate ovum, which may +fairly claim to have been personally identical with the man of eighty +into which it ultimately developed, in spite of the fact that there is no +particle of same matter nor sense of continuity between them, nor +recognised community of instinct, nor indeed of anything which goes to +the making up of that which we call identity. + +There is far more of all these things common to the impregnate ovum and +the ovum immediately before impregnation, or again between the impregnate +ovum, and both the ovum before impregnation and the spermatozoon which +impregnated it. Nor, if we admit personal identity between the ovum and +the octogenarian, is there any sufficient reason why we should not admit +it between the impregnate ovum and the two factors of which it is +composed, which two factors are but offshoots from two distinct +personalities, of which they are as much part as the apple is of the +apple-tree; so that an impregnate ovum cannot without a violation of +first principles be debarred from claiming personal identity with both +its parents, and hence, by an easy chain of reasoning, _with each of the +impregnate ova from which its parents were developed_. + +So that each ovum when impregnate should be considered not as descended +from its ancestors, but as being a continuation of the personality of +every ovum in the chain of its ancestry, which every ovum _it actually +is_ quite as truly as the octogenarian _is_ the same identity with the +ovum from which he has been developed. + +This process cannot stop short of the primordial cell, which again will +probably turn out to be but a brief resting-place. We therefore prove +each one of us to _be actually_ the primordial cell which never died nor +dies, but has differentiated itself into the life of the world, all +living beings whatever, being one with it, and members one of another. + +To look at the matter for a moment in another light, it will be admitted +that if the primordial cell had been killed before leaving issue, all its +possible descendants would have been killed at one and the same time. It +is hard to see how this single fact does not establish at the point, as +it were, of a logical bayonet, an identity, between any creature and all +others that are descended from it. + +In Bishop Butler’s first dissertation on personality, we find expressed +very much the same opinions as would follow from the above +considerations, though they are mentioned by the Bishop only to be +condemned, namely, “that personality is not a permanent but a transient +thing; that it lives and dies, begins and ends continually; that no man +can any more remain one and the same person two moments together, than +two successive moments can be one and the same moment;” in which case, he +continues, our present self would not be “in reality the same with the +self of yesterday, but another like self or person coming up in its room +and mistaken for it, to which another self will succeed to-morrow.” This +view the Bishop proceeds to reduce to absurdity by saying, “It must be a +fallacy upon ourselves to charge our present selves with anything we did, +or to imagine our present selves interested in anything which befell us +yesterday; or that our present self will be interested in what will +befall us to-morrow. This, I say, must follow, for if the self or person +of to-day and that of to-morrow are not the same, but only like persons, +the person of to-day is really no more interested in what will befall the +person of to-morrow than in what will befall any other person. It may be +thought, perhaps, that this is not a just representation of the opinion +we are speaking of, because those who maintain it allow that a person is +the same as far back as his remembrance reaches. And indeed they do use +the words _identity_ and _same person_. Nor will language permit these +words to be laid aside, since, if they were, there must be I know not +what ridiculous periphrasis substituted in the room of them. But they +cannot consistently with themselves mean that the person is really the +same. For it is self-evident that the personality cannot be really the +same, if, as they expressly assert, that in which it consists is not the +same. And as consistently with themselves they cannot, so I think it +appears they do not mean that the person is really the same, but only +that he is so in a fictitious sense; in such a sense only as they +assert—for this they do assert—that any number of persons whatever may be +the same person. The bare unfolding of this notion, and laying it thus +naked and open, seems the best confutation of it.” + +This fencing, for it does not deserve the name of serious disputation, is +rendered possible by the laxness with which the words “identical” and +“identity” are commonly used. Bishop Butler would not seriously deny +that personality undergoes great changes between infancy and old age, and +hence that it must undergo some change from moment to moment. So +universally is this recognised, that it is common to hear it said of such +and such a man that he is not at all the person he was, or of such and +such another that he is twice the man he used to be—expressions than +which none nearer the truth can well be found. On the other hand, those +whom Bishop Butler is intending to confute would be the first to admit +that, though there are many changes between infancy and old age, yet they +come about in any one individual under such circumstances as we are all +agreed in considering as the factors of personal identity rather than as +hindrances thereto—that is to say, there has been no death on the part of +the individual between any two phases of his existence, and any one phase +has had a permanent though perhaps imperceptible effect upon all +succeeding ones. So that no one ever seriously argued in the manner +supposed by Bishop Butler, unless with modifications and saving clauses, +to which it does not suit his purpose to call attention. + +Identical strictly means “one and the same;” and if it were tied down to +its strictest usage, it would indeed follow very logically, as we have +said already, that no such thing as personal identity is possible, but +that the case actually is as Bishop Butler has supposed his opponents +without qualification to maintain it. In common use, however, the word +“identical” is taken to mean anything so like another that no vital or +essential differences can be perceived between them; as in the case of +two specimens of the same kind of plant, when we say they are identical +in spite of considerable individual differences. So with two impressions +of a print from the same plate; so with the plate itself, which is +somewhat modified with every impression taken from it. In like manner +“identity” is not held to its strict meaning—absolute sameness—but is +predicated rightly of a past and present which are now very widely +asunder, provided they have been continuously connected by links so small +as not to give too sudden a sense of change at any one point; as, for +instance, in the case of the Thames at Oxford and Windsor or again at +Greenwich, we say the same river flows by all three places, by which we +mean that much of the water at Greenwich has come down from Oxford and +Windsor in a continuous stream. How sudden a change at any one point, or +how great a difference between the two extremes is sufficient to bar +identity, is one of the most uncertain things imaginable, and seems to be +decided on different grounds in different cases, sometimes very +intelligibly, and again at others arbitrarily and capriciously. + +Personal identity is barred at one end, in the common opinion, by birth, +and at the other by death. Before birth, a child cannot complain either +by himself or another, in such way as to set the law in motion; after +death he is in like manner powerless to make himself felt by society, +except in so far as he can do so by acts done before the breath has left +his body. At any point between birth and death he is liable, either by +himself or another, to affect his fellow-creatures; hence, no two other +epochs can be found of equal convenience for social purposes, and +therefore they have been seized by society as settling the whole question +of when personal identity begins and ends—society being rightly concerned +with its own practical convenience, rather than with the abstract truth +concerning its individual members. No one who is capable of reflection +will deny that the limitation of personality is certainly arbitrary to a +degree as regards birth, nor yet that it is very possibly arbitrary as +regards death; and as for intermediate points, no doubt it would be more +strictly accurate to say, “you are the now phase of the person I met last +night,” or “you are the being which has been evolved from the being I met +last night,” than “you are the person I met last night.” But life is too +short for the pen-phrases which would crowd upon us from every quarter, +if we did not set our face against all that is under the surface of +things, unless, that is to say, the going beneath the surface is, for +some special chance of profit, excusable or capable of extenuation. + + + + +CHAPTER VI. +PERSONAL IDENTITY—(_continued_). + + +HOW arbitrary current notions concerning identity really are, may perhaps +be perceived by reflecting upon some of the many different phases of +reproduction. + +Direct reproduction in which a creation reproduces another, the +_facsimile_, or nearly so, of itself may perhaps occur among the lowest +forms of animal life; but it is certainly not the rule among beings of a +higher order. + +A hen lays an egg, which egg becomes a chicken, which chicken, in the +course of time, becomes a hen. + +A moth lays an egg, which egg becomes a caterpillar, which caterpillar, +after going through several stages, becomes a chrysalis, which chrysalis +becomes a moth. + +A medusa begets a ciliated larva, the larva begets a polyp, the polyp +begets a strobila, and the strobila begets a medusa again; the cycle of +reproduction being completed in the fourth generation. + +A frog lays an egg, which egg becomes a tadpole; the tadpole, after more +or fewer intermediate stages, becomes a frog. + +The mammals lay eggs, which they hatch inside their own bodies, instead +of outside them; but the difference is one of degree and not of kind. In +all these cases how difficult is it to say where identity begins or ends, +or again where death begins or ends, or where reproduction begins or +ends. + +How small and unimportant is the difference between the changes which a +caterpillar undergoes before becoming a moth, and those of a strobila +before becoming a medusa. Yet in the one case we say the caterpillar +does not die, but is changed (though, if the various changes in its +existence be produced metagenetically, as is the case with many insects, +it would appear to make a clean sweep of every organ of its existence, +and start _de novo_, growing a head where its feet were, and so on—at +least twice between its lives as caterpillar and butterfly); in this +case, however, we say the caterpillar does not die, but is changed; +being, nevertheless, one personality with the moth, into which it is +developed. But in the case of the strobila we say that it is not +changed, but dies, and is no part of the personality of the medusa. + +We say the egg becomes the caterpillar, not by the death of the egg and +birth of the caterpillar, but by the ordinary process of nutrition and +waste—waste and repair—waste and repair continually. In like manner we +say the caterpillar becomes the chrysalis, and the chrysalis the moth, +not through the death of either one or the other, but by the development +of the same creature, and the ordinary processes of waste and repair. +But the medusa after three or four cycles becomes the medusa again, not, +we say, by these same processes of nutrition and waste, but by a series +of generations, each one involving an actual birth and an actual death. +Why this difference? Surely only because the changes in the offspring of +the medusa are marked by the leaving a little more husk behind them, and +that husk less shrivelled, than is left on the occasion of each change +between the caterpillar and the butterfly. A little more residuum, which +residuum, it may be, can move about; and though shrivelling from hour to +hour, may yet leave a little more offspring before it is reduced to +powder; or again, perhaps, because in the one case, though the actors are +changed, they are changed behind the scenes, and come on in parts and +dresses, more nearly resembling those of the original actors, than in the +other. + +When the caterpillar emerges from the egg, almost all that was inside the +egg has become caterpillar; the shell is nearly empty, and cannot move; +therefore we do not count it, and call the caterpillar a continuation of +the egg’s existence, and personally identical with the egg. So with the +chrysalis and the moth; but after the moth has laid her eggs she can +still move her wings about, and she looks nearly as large as she did +before she laid them; besides, she may yet lay a few more, therefore we +do not consider the moth’s life as continued in the life of her eggs, but +rather in their husk, which we still call the moth, and which we say dies +in a day or two, and there is an end of it. Moreover, if we hold the +moth’s life to be continued in that of her eggs, we shall be forced to +admit her to be personally identical with each single egg, and, hence, +each egg to be identical with every other egg, as far as the past, and +community of memories, are concerned; and it is not easy at first to +break the spell which words have cast around us, and to feel that one +person may become many persons, and that many different persons may be +practically one and the same person, as far as their past experience is +concerned; and again, that two or more persons may unite and become one +person, with the memories and experiences of both, though this has been +actually the case with every one of us. + +Our present way of looking at these matters is perfectly right and +reasonable, so long as we bear in mind that it is a _façon de parler_, a +sort of hieroglyphic which shall stand for the course of nature, but +nothing more. Repair (as is now universally admitted by physiologists) +is only a phase of reproduction, or rather reproduction and repair are +only phases of the same power; and again, death and the ordinary daily +waste of tissue, are phases of the same thing. As for identity it is +determined in any true sense of the word, not by death alone, but by a +combination of death and failure of issue, whether of mind or body. + +To repeat. Wherever there is a separate centre of thought and action, we +see that it is connected with its successive stages of being, by a series +of infinitely small changes from moment to moment, with, perhaps, at +times more startling and rapid changes, but, nevertheless, with no such +sudden, complete, and unrepaired break up of the preceding condition, as +we shall agree in calling death. The branching out from it at different +times of new centres of thought and action, has commonly as little +appreciable effect upon the parent-stock as the fall of an apple full of +ripe seeds has upon an apple-tree; and though the life of the parent, +from the date of the branching off of such personalities, is more truly +continued in these than in the residuum of its own life, we should find +ourselves involved in a good deal of trouble if we were commonly to take +this view of the matter. The residuum has generally the upper hand. He +has more money, and can eat up his new life more easily than his new +life, him. A moral residuum will therefore prefer to see the remainder +of his life in his own person, than in that of his descendants, and will +act accordingly. Hence we, in common with most other living beings, +ignore the offspring as forming part of the personality of the parent, +except in so far as that we make the father liable for its support and +for its extravagances (than which no greater proof need be wished that +the law is at heart a philosopher, and perceives the completeness of the +personal identity between father and son) for twenty-one years from +birth. In other respects we are accustomed, probably rather from +considerations of practical convenience than as the result of pure +reason, to ignore the identity between parent and offspring as completely +as we ignore personality before birth. With these exceptions, however, +the common opinion concerning personal identity is reasonable enough, and +is found to consist neither in consciousness of such identity, nor yet in +the power of recollecting its various phases (for it is plain that +identity survives the distinction or suspension of both these), but in +the fact that the various stages appear to the majority of people to have +been in some way or other linked together. + +For a very little reflection will show that identity, as commonly +predicated of living agents, does not consist in identity of matter, of +which there is no same particle in the infant, we will say, and the +octogenarian into whom he has developed. Nor, again, does it depend upon +sameness of form or fashion; for personality is felt to survive frequent +and radical modification of structure, as in the case of caterpillars and +other insects. Mr. Darwin, quoting from Professor Owen, tells us (Plants +and Animals under Domestication, vol. ii. p. 362, ed. 1875), that in the +case of what is called metagenetic development, “the new parts are not +moulded upon the inner surfaces of the old ones. The plastic force has +changed its mode of operation. _The outer case_, _and all that gave form +and character to the precedent individual_, _perish_, _and are cast off_; +_they are not changed_ into the corresponding parts of the same +individual. These are due to a new and distinct developmental process.” +Assuredly, there is more birth and death in the world than is dreamt of +by the greater part of us; but it is so masked, and on the whole, so +little to our purpose, that we fail to see it. Yet radical and sweeping +as the changes of organism above described must be, we do not feel them +to be more a bar to personal identity than the considerable changes which +take place in the structure of our own bodies between youth and old age. + +Perhaps the most striking illustration of this is to be found in the case +of some Echinoderms, concerning which Mr. Darwin tells us, that “the +animal in the second stage of development is formed almost like a bud +within the animal of the first stage, the latter being then cast off like +an old vestment, yet sometimes maintaining for a short period an +independent vitality” (“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” vol. ii. +p. 362, ed. 1875). + +Nor yet does personality depend upon any consciousness or sense of such +personality on the part of the creature itself—it is not likely that the +moth remembers having been a caterpillar, more than we ourselves remember +having been children of a day old. It depends simply upon the fact that +the various phases of existence have been linked together, by links which +we agree in considering sufficient to cause identity, and that they have +flowed the one out of the other in what we see as a continuous, though it +may be at times, a troubled stream. This is the very essence of +personality, but it involves the probable unity of all animal and +vegetable life, as being, in reality, nothing but one single creature, of +which the component members are but, as it were, blood corpuscles or +individual cells; life being a sort of leaven, which, if once introduced +into the world, will leaven it altogether; or of fire, which will consume +all it can burn; or of air or water, which will turn most things into +themselves. Indeed, no difficulty would probably be felt about admitting +the continued existence of personal identity between parents and their +offspring through all time (there being no _sudden_ break at any time +between the existence of any maternal parent and that of its offspring), +were it not that after a certain time the changes in outward appearance +between descendants and ancestors become very great, the two seeming to +stand so far apart, that it seems absurd in any way to say that they are +one and the same being; much in the same way as after a time—though +exactly when no one can say—the Thames becomes the sea. Moreover, the +separation of the identity is practically of far greater importance to it +than its continuance. We want to be ourselves; we do not want any one +else to claim part and parcel of our identity. This community of +identities is not found to answer in everyday life. When then our love +of independence is backed up by the fact that continuity of life between +parents and offspring is a matter which depends on things which are a +good deal hidden, and that thus birth gives us an opportunity of +pretending that there has been a sudden leap into a separate life; when +also we have regard to the utter ignorance of embryology, which prevailed +till quite recently, it is not surprising that our ordinary language +should be found to have regard to what is important and obvious, rather +than to what is not quite obvious, and is quite unimportant. + +Personality is the creature of time and space, changing, as time changes, +imperceptibly; we are therefore driven to deal with it as with all +continuous and blending things; as with time, for example, itself, which +we divide into days, and seasons, and times, and years, into divisions +that are often arbitrary, but coincide, on the whole, as nearly as we can +make them do so, with the more marked changes which we can observe. We +lay hold, in fact, of anything we can catch; the most important feature +in any existence as regards ourselves being that which we can best lay +hold of rather than that which is most essential to the existence itself. +We can lay hold of the continued personality of the egg and the moth into +which the egg develops, but it is less easy to catch sight of the +continued personality between the moth and the eggs which she lays; yet +the one continuation of personality is just as true and free from quibble +as the other. A moth becomes each egg that she lays, and that she does +so, she will in good time show by doing, now that she has got a fresh +start, as near as may be what she did when first she was an egg, and then +a moth, before; and this I take it, so far as I can gather from looking +at life and things generally, she would not be able to do if she had not +travelled the same road often enough already, to be able to know it in +her sleep and blindfold, that is to say, to remember it without any +conscious act of memory. + +So also a grain of wheat is linked with an ear, containing, we will say, +a dozen grains, by a series of changes so subtle that we cannot say at +what moment the original grain became the blade, nor when each ear of the +head became possessed of an individual centre of action. To say that +each grain of the head is personally identical with the original grain +would perhaps be an abuse of terms; but it can be no abuse to say that +each grain is a continuation of the personality of the original grain, +and if so, of every grain in the chain of its own ancestry; and that, as +being such a continuation, it must be stored with the memories and +experiences of its past existences, to be recollected under the +circumstances most favourable to recollection, _i.e._, when under similar +conditions to those when the impression was last made and last +remembered. Truly, then, in each case the new egg and the new grain _is_ +the egg, and the grain from which its parent sprang, as completely as the +full-grown ox is the calf from which it has grown. + +Again, in the case of some weeping trees, whose boughs spring up into +fresh trees when they have reached the ground, who shall say at what time +they cease to be members of the parent tree? In the case of cuttings +from plants it is easy to elude the difficulty by making a parade of the +sharp and sudden act of separation from the parent stock, but this is +only a piece of mental sleight of hand; the cutting remains as much part +of its parent plant as though it had never been severed from it; it goes +on profiting by the experience which it had before it was cut off, as +much as though it had never been cut off at all. This will be more +readily seen in the case of worms which have been cut in half. Let a +worm be cut in half, and the two halves will become fresh worms; which of +them is the original worm? Surely both. Perhaps no simpler case than +this could readily be found of the manner in which personality eludes us, +the moment we try to investigate its real nature. There are few ideas +which on first consideration appear so simple, and none which becomes +more utterly incapable of limitation or definition as soon as it is +examined closely. + +Finally, Mr. Darwin (“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” vol. ii. +p. 38, ed. 1875), writes— + +“Even with plants multiplied by bulbs, layers, &c., which may _in one +sense_ be said to form part of the same individual,” &c., &c.; and again, +p. 58, “The same rule holds good with plants when propagated by bulbs, +offsets, &c., which _in one sense_ still form parts of the same +individual,” &c. In each of these passages it is plain that the +difficulty of separating the personality of the offspring from that of +the parent plant is present to his mind. Yet, p. 351 of the same volume +as above, he tells us that asexual generation “is effected in many +ways—by the formation of buds of various kinds, and by fissiparous +generation, that is, by spontaneous or artificial division.” The +multiplication of plants by bulbs and layers clearly comes under this +head, nor will any essential difference be felt between one kind of +asexual generation and another; if, then, the offspring formed by bulbs +and layers is in one sense part of the original plant, so also, it would +appear, is all offspring developed by asexual generation in its manifold +phrases. + +If we now turn to p. 357, we find the conclusion arrived at, as it would +appear, on the most satisfactory evidence, that “sexual and asexual +reproduction are not seen to differ essentially; and . . . that asexual +reproduction, the power of regrowth, and development are all parts of one +and the same great law.” Does it not then follow, quite reasonably and +necessarily, that all offspring, however generated, is _in one sense_ +part of the individuality of its parent or parents. The question, +therefore, turns upon “in what sense” this may be said to be the case? +To which I would venture to reply, “In the same sense as the parent plant +(which is but the representative of the outside matter which it has +assimilated during growth, and of its own powers of development) is the +same individual that it was when it was itself an offset, or a cow the +same individual that it was when it was a calf—but no otherwise.” + +Not much difficulty will be felt about supposing the offset of a plant, +to be imbued with the memory of the past history of the plant of which it +is an offset. It is part of the plant itself; and will know whatever the +plant knows. Why, then, should there be more difficulty in supposing the +offspring of the highest mammals, to remember in a profound but +unselfconscious way, the anterior history of the creatures of which they +too have been part and parcel? + +Personal identity, then, is much like species itself. It is now, thanks +to Mr. Darwin, generally held that species blend or have blended into one +another; so that any possibility of arrangement and apparent subdivision +into definite groups, is due to the suppression by death both of +individuals and whole genera, which, had they been now existing, would +have linked all living beings by a series of gradations so subtle that +little classification could have been attempted. How it is that the one +great personality of life as a whole, should have split itself up into so +many centres of thought and action, each one of which is wholly, or at +any rate nearly, unconscious of its connection with the other members, +instead of having grown up into a huge polyp, or as it were coral reef or +compound animal over the whole world, which should be conscious but of +its own one single existence; how it is that the daily waste of this +creature should be carried on by the conscious death of its individual +members, instead of by the unconscious waste of tissue which goes on in +the bodies of each individual (if indeed the tissue which we waste daily +in our own bodies is so unconscious of its birth and death as we +suppose); how, again, that the daily repair of this huge creature life +should have become decentralised, and be carried on by conscious +reproduction on the part of its component items, instead of by the +unconscious nutrition of the whole from a single centre, as the nutrition +of our own bodies would appear (though perhaps falsely) to be carried on; +these are matters upon which I dare not speculate here, but on which some +reflections may follow in subsequent chapters. + + + + +CHAPTER VII. +OUR SUBORDINATE PERSONALITIES. + + +WE have seen that we can apprehend neither the beginning nor the end of +our personality, which comes up out of infinity as an island out of the +sea, so gently, that none can say when it is first visible on our mental +horizon, and fades away in the case of those who leave offspring, so +imperceptibly that none can say when it is out of sight. But, like the +island, whether we can see it or no, it is always there. Not only are we +infinite as regards time, but we are so also as regards extension, being +so linked on to the external world that we cannot say where we either +begin or end. If those who so frequently declare that man is a finite +creature would point out his boundaries, it might lead to a better +understanding. + +Nevertheless, we are in the habit of considering that our personality, or +soul, no matter where it begins or ends, and no matter what it comprises, +is nevertheless a single thing, uncompounded of other souls. Yet there +is nothing more certain than that this is not at all the case, but that +every individual person is a compound creature, being made up of an +infinite number of distinct centres of sensation and will, each one of +which is personal, and has a soul and individual existence, a +reproductive system, intelligence, and memory of its own, with probably +its hopes and fears, its times of scarcity and repletion, and a strong +conviction that it is itself the centre of the universe. + +True, no one is aware of more than one individuality in his own person at +one time. We are, indeed, often greatly influenced by other people, so +much so, that we act on many occasions in accordance with their will +rather than our own, making our actions answer to their sensations, and +register the conclusions of their cerebral action and not our own; for +the time being, we become so completely part of them, that we are ready +to do things most distasteful and dangerous to us, if they think it for +their advantage that we should do so. Thus we sometimes see people +become mere processes of their wives or nearest relations. Yet there is +a something which blinds us, so that we cannot see how completely we are +possessed by the souls which influence us upon these occasions. We still +think we are ourselves, and ourselves only, and are as certain as we can +be of any fact, that we are single sentient beings, uncompounded of other +sentient beings, and that our action is determined by the sole operation +of a single will. + +But in reality, over and above this possession of our souls by others of +our own species, the will of the lower animals often enters into our +bodies and possesses them, making us do as they will, and not as we will; +as, for example, when people try to drive pigs, or are run away with by a +restive horse, or are attacked by a savage animal which masters them. It +is absurd to say that a person is a single “ego” when he is in the +clutches of a lion. Even when we are alone, and uninfluenced by other +people except in so far as we remember their wishes, we yet generally +conform to the usages which the current feeling of our peers has taught +us to respect; their will having so mastered our original nature, that, +do what we may, we can never again separate ourselves and dwell in the +isolation of our own single personality. And even though we succeeded in +this, and made a clean sweep of every mental influence which had ever +been brought to bear upon us, and though at the same time we were alone +in some desert where there was neither beast nor bird to attract our +attention or in any way influence our action, yet we could not escape the +parasites which abound within us; whose action, as every medical man well +knows, is often such as to drive men to the commission of grave crimes, +or to throw them into convulsions, make lunatics of them, kill them—when +but for the existence and course of conduct pursued by these parasites +they would have done no wrong to any man. + +These parasites—are they part of us or no? Some are plainly not so in +any strict sense of the word, yet their action may, in cases which it is +unnecessary to detail, affect us so powerfully that we are irresistibly +impelled to act in such or such a manner; and yet we are as wholly +unconscious of any impulse outside of our own “ego” as though they were +part of ourselves; others again are essential to our very existence, as +the corpuscles of the blood, which the best authorities concur in +supposing to be composed of an infinite number of living souls, on whose +welfare the healthy condition of our blood, and hence of our whole +bodies, depends. We breathe that they may breathe, not that we may do +so; we only care about oxygen in so far as the infinitely small beings +which course up and down in our veins care about it: the whole +arrangement and mechanism of our lungs may be our doing, but is for their +convenience, and they only serve us because it suits their purpose to do +so, as long as we serve them. Who shall draw the line between the +parasites which are part of us, and the parasites which are not part of +us? Or again, between the influence of those parasites which are within +us, but are yet not _us_, and the external influence of other sentient +beings and our fellow-men? There is no line possible. Everything melts +away into everything else; there are no hard edges; it is only from a +little distance that we see the effect as of individual features and +existences. When we go close up, there is nothing but a blur and +confused mass of apparently meaningless touches, as in a picture by +Turner. + +The following passage from Mr. Darwin’s provisional theory of Pangenesis, +will sufficiently show that the above is no strange and paradoxical view +put forward wantonly, but that it follows as a matter of course from the +conclusions arrived at by those who are acknowledged leaders in the +scientific world. Mr. Darwin writes thus:— + +“_The functional independence of the elements or units of the +body_.—Physiologists agree that the whole organism consists of a +multitude of elemental parts, which are to a great extent independent of +one another. Each organ, says Claude Bernard, has its proper life, its +autonomy; it can develop and reproduce itself independently of the +adjoining tissues. A great German authority, Virchow, asserts still more +emphatically that each system consists of ‘an enormous mass of minute +centres of action. . . . Every element has its own special action, and +even though it derive its stimulus to activity from other parts, yet +alone effects the actual performance of duties. . . . Every single +epithelial and muscular fibre-cell leads a sort of parasitical existence +in relation to the rest of the body. . . . Every single bone corpuscle +really possesses conditions of nutrition peculiar to itself.’ Each +element, as Sir J. Paget remarks, lives its appointed time, and then +dies, and is replaced after being cast off and absorbed. I presume that +no physiologist doubts that, for instance, each bone corpuscle of the +finger differs from the corresponding corpuscle of the corresponding +joint of the toe,” &c., &c. (“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” +vol. ii. pp. 364, 365, ed. 1875). + +In a work on heredity by M. Ribot, I find him saying, “Some recent +authors attribute a memory” (and if so, surely every attribute of +complete individuality) “to every organic element of the body;” among +them Dr. Maudsley, who is quoted by M. Ribot, as saying, “The permanent +effects of a particular virus, such as that of the variola, in the +constitution, shows that the organic element remembers for the remainder +of its life certain modifications it has received. The manner in which a +cicatrix in a child’s finger grows with the growth of the body, proves, +as has been shown by Paget, that the organic element of the part does not +forget the impression it has received. What has been said about the +different nervous centres of the body demonstrates the existence of a +memory in the nerve cells diffused through the heart and intestines; in +those of the spinal cord, in the cells of the motor ganglia, and in the +cells of the cortical substance of the cerebal hemispheres.” + +Now, if words have any meaning at all, it must follow from the passages +quoted above, that each cell in the human body is a person with an +intelligent soul, of a low class, perhaps, but still differing from our +own more complex soul in degree, and not in kind; and, like ourselves, +being born, living, and dying. So that each single creature, whether man +or beast, proves to be as a ray of white light, which, though single, is +compounded of the red, blue, and yellow rays. It would appear, then, as +though “we,” “our souls,” or “selves,” or “personalities,” or by whatever +name we may prefer to be called, are but the _consensus_ and full flowing +stream of countless sensations and impulses on the part of our tributary +souls or “selves,” who probably know no more that we exist, and that they +exist as part of us, than a microscopic water-flea knows the results of +spectrum analysis, or than an agricultural labourer knows the working of +the British constitution: and of whom we know no more, until some +misconduct on our part, or some confusion of ideas on theirs, has driven +them into insurrection, than we do of the habits and feelings of some +class widely separated from our own. + +These component souls are of many and very different natures, living in +territories which are to them vast continents, and rivers, and seas, but +which are yet only the bodies of our other component souls; coral reefs +and sponge-beds within us; the animal itself being a kind of mean +proportional between its house and its soul, and none being able to say +where house ends and animal begins, more than they can say where animal +ends and soul begins. For our bones within us are but inside walls and +buttresses, that is to say, houses constructed of lime and stone, as it +were, by coral insects; and our houses without us are but outside bones, +a kind of exterior skeleton or shell, so that we perish of cold if +permanently and suddenly deprived of the coverings which warm us and +cherish us, as the wing of a hen cherishes her chickens. If we consider +the shells of many living creatures, we shall find it hard to say whether +they are rather houses, or part of the animal itself, being, as they are, +inseparable from the animal, without the destruction of its personality. + +Is it possible, then, to avoid imagining that if we have within us so +many tributary souls, so utterly different from the soul which they unite +to form, that they neither can perceive us, nor we them, though it is in +us that they live and move and have their being, and though we are what +we are, solely as the result of their co-operation—is it possible to +avoid imagining that we may be ourselves atoms, undesignedly combining to +form some vaster being, though we are utterly incapable of perceiving +that any such being exists, or of realising the scheme or scope of our +own combination? And this, too, not a spiritual being, which, without +matter, or what we think matter of some sort, is as complete nonsense to +us as though men bade us love and lean upon an intelligent vacuum, but a +being with what is virtually flesh and blood and bones; with organs, +senses, dimensions, in some way analogous to our own, into some other +part of which being, at the time of our great change we must infallibly +re-enter, starting clean anew, with bygones bygones, and no more ache for +ever from either age or antecedents. Truly, sufficient for the life is +the evil thereof. Any speculations of ours concerning the nature of such +a being, must be as futile and little valuable as those of a blood +corpuscle might be expected to be concerning the nature of man; but if I +were myself a blood corpuscle, I should be amused at making the discovery +that I was not only enjoying life in my own sphere, but was _bonâ fide_ +part of an animal which would not die with myself, and in which I might +thus think of myself as continuing to live to all eternity, or to what, +as far as my power of thought would carry me, must seem practically +eternal. But, after all, the amusement would be of a rather dreary +nature. + +On the other hand, if I were the being of whom such an introspective +blood corpuscle was a component item, I should conceive he served me +better by attending to my blood and making himself a successful +corpuscle, than by speculating about my nature. He would serve me best +by serving himself best, without being over curious. I should expect +that my blood might suffer if his brain were to become too active. If, +therefore, I could discover the vein in which he was, I should let him +out to begin life anew in some other and, _quâ_ me, more profitable +capacity. + +With the units of our bodies it is as with the stars of heaven: there is +neither speech nor language, but their voices are heard among them. Our +will is the _fiat_ of their collective wisdom, as sanctioned in their +parliament, the brain; it is they who make us do whatever we do—it is +they who should be rewarded if they have done well, or hanged if they +have committed murder. When the balance of power is well preserved among +them, when they respect each other’s rights and work harmoniously +together, then we thrive and are well; if we are ill, it is because they +are quarrelling with themselves, or are gone on strike for this or that +addition to their environment, and our doctor must pacify or chastise +them as best he may. They are we and we are they; and when we die it is +but a redistribution of the balance of power among them or a change of +dynasty, the result, it may be, of heroic struggle, with more epics and +love romances than we could read from now to the Millennium, if they were +so written down that we could comprehend them. + +It is plain, then, that the more we examine the question of personality +the more it baffles us, the only safeguard against utter confusion and +idleness of thought being to fall back upon the superficial and common +sense view, and refuse to tolerate discussions which seem to hold out +little prospect of commercial value, and which would compel us, if +logically followed, to be at the inconvenience of altering our opinions +upon matters which we have come to consider as settled. + +And we observe that this is what is practically done by some of our +ablest philosophers, who seem unwilling, if one may say so without +presumption, to accept the conclusions to which their own experiments and +observations would seem to point. + +Dr. Carpenter, for example, quotes the well-known experiments upon +headless frogs. If we cut off a frog’s head and pinch any part of its +skin, the animal at once begins to move away with the same regularity as +though the brain had not been removed. Flourens took guinea-pigs, +deprived them of the cerebral lobes, and then irritated their skin; the +animals immediately walked, leaped, and trotted about, but when the +irritation was discontinued they ceased to move. Headless birds, under +excitation, can still perform with their wings the rhythmic movements of +flying. But here are some facts more curious still, and more difficult +of explanation. If we take a frog or a strong and healthy triton, and +subject it to various experiments; if we touch, pinch, or burn it with +acetic acid, and if then, after decapitating the animal, we subject it to +the same experiments, it will be seen that the reactions are exactly the +same; it will strive to be free of the pain, and to shake off the acetic +acid that is burning it; it will bring its foot up to the part of its +body that is irritated, and this movement of the member will follow the +irritation wherever it may be produced. + +The above is mainly taken from M. Ribot’s work on heredity rather than +Dr. Carpenter’s, because M. Ribot tells us that the head of the frog was +actually cut off, a fact which does not appear so plainly in Dr. +Carpenter’s allusion to the same experiments. But Dr. Carpenter tells us +that _after the brain of a frog has been removed_—which would seem to be +much the same thing as though its head were cut off—“if acetic acid be +applied over the upper and under part of the thigh, the foot of the same +side will wipe it away; _but if that foot be cut off_, _after some +ineffectual efforts and a short period of inaction_,” during which it is +hard not to surmise that the headless body is considering what it had +better do under the circumstances, “_the same movement will be made by +the foot of the opposite side_,” which, to ordinary people, would convey +the impression that the headless body was capable of feeling the +impressions it had received, and of reasoning upon them by a +psychological act; and this of course involves the possession of a soul +of some sort. + +Here is a frog whose right thigh you burn with acetic acid. Very +naturally it tries to get at the place with its right foot to remove the +acid. You then cut off the frog’s head, and put more acetic acid on the +some place: the headless frog, or rather the body of the late frog, does +just what the frog did before its head was cut off—it tries to get at the +place with its right foot. You now cut off its right foot: the headless +body deliberates, and after a while tries to do with its left foot what +it can no longer do with its right. Plain matter-of-fact people will +draw their own inference. They will not be seduced from the superficial +view of the matter. They will say that the headless body can still, to +some extent, feel, think, and act, and if so, that it must have a living +soul. + +Dr. Carpenter writes as follows:—“Now the performance of these, as well +as of many other movements, that show a most remarkable adaptation to a +purpose, might be supposed to indicate that sensations are called up by +the _impressions_, and that the animal can not only _feel_, but can +voluntarily direct its movements so as to get rid of the irritation which +annoys it. But such an inference would be inconsistent with other facts. +In the first place, the motions performed under such circumstances are +never spontaneous, but are always excited by a stimulus of some kind.” + +Here we pause to ask ourselves whether any action of any creature under +any circumstances is ever excited without “stimulus of some kind,” and +unless we can answer this question in the affirmative, it is not easy to +see how Dr. Carpenter’s objection is valid. + +“Thus,” he continues, “a decapitated frog” (here then we have it that the +frog’s head was actually cut off) “after the first violent convulsive +moments occasioned by the operation have passed away, remains at rest +until it is touched; and then the leg, or its whole body may be thrown +into sudden action, which suddenly subsides again.” (How does this +quiescence when it no longer feels anything show that the “leg or whole +body” had not perceived something which made it feel when it was not +quiescent?)—“Again we find that such movements may be performed not only +when the brain has been removed, the spinal cord remaining entire, but +also when the spinal cord has been itself cut across, so as to be divided +into two or more portions, each of them completely isolated from each +other, and from other parts of the nervous centres. Thus, if the head of +a frog be cut off, and its spinal cord be divided in the middle of the +back, so that its fore legs remain connected with the upper part, and its +hind legs with the lower, each pair of members may be excited to +movements by stimulants applied to itself; but the two pairs will not +exhibit any consentaneous motions, as they will do when the spinal cord +is undivided.” + +This may be put perhaps more plainly thus. If you take a frog and cut it +into three pieces—say, the head for one piece, the fore legs and shoulder +for another, and the hind legs for a third—and then irritate any one of +these pieces, you will find it move much as it would have moved under +like irritation if the animal had remained undivided, but you will no +longer find any concert between the movements of the three pieces; that +is to say, if you irritate the head, the other two pieces will remain +quiet, and if you irritate the hind legs, you will excite no action in +the fore legs or head. + +Dr. Carpenter continues: “Or if the spinal cord be cut across without the +removal of the brain, the lower limbs may be _excited_ to movement by an +appropriate stimulant, though the animal has clearly no power over them, +whilst the upper part remains under its control as completely as before.” + +Why are the head and shoulders “the animal” more than the hind legs under +these circumstances? Neither half can exist long without the other; the +two parts, therefore, being equally important to each other, we have +surely as good a right to claim the title of “the animal” for the hind +legs, and to maintain that they have no power over the head and +shoulders, as any one else has to claim the animalship for these last. +What we say is, that the animal has ceased to exist as a frog on being +cut in half, and that the two halves are no longer, either of them, the +frog, but are simply pieces of still living organism, each of which has a +soul of its own, being capable of sensation, and of intelligent +psychological action as the consequence of sensations, though the one +part has probably a much higher and more intelligent soul than the other, +and neither part has a soul for a moment comparable in power and +durability to that of the original frog. + +“Now it is scarcely conceivable,” continues Dr Carpenter, “that in this +last case sensations should be felt and volition exercised through the +instrumentality of that portion of the spinal cord which remains +connected with the nerves of the posterior extremities, but which is cut +off from the brain. For if it were so, there must be two distinct +centres of sensation and will in the same animal, the attributes of the +brain not being affected; and by dividing the spinal cord into two or +more segments we might thus create in the body of one animal two or more +such independent centres in addition to that which holds its proper place +in the head.” + +In the face of the facts before us, it does not seen far-fetched to +suppose that there _are_ two, or indeed an infinite number of centres of +sensation and will in an animal, the attributes of whose brain are not +affected but that these centres, while the brain is intact, habitually +act in connection with and in subordination to that central authority; as +in the ordinary state of the fish trade, fish is caught, we will say, at +Yarmouth, sent up to London, and then sent down to Yarmouth again to be +eaten, instead of being eaten at Yarmouth when caught. But from the +phenomena exhibited by three pieces of an animal, it is impossible to +argue that the causes of the phenomena were present in the quondam animal +itself; the memory of an infinite series of generations having so +habituated the local centres of sensation and will, to act in concert +with the central government, that as long as they can get at that +government, they are absolutely incapable of acting independently. When +thrown on their own resources, they are so demoralised by ages of +dependence on the brain, that they die after a few efforts at +self-assertion, from sheer unfamiliarity with the position, and inability +to recognise themselves when disjointed rudely from their habitual +associations. + +In conclusion, Dr. Carpenter says, “To say that two or more distinct +centres of sensation and will are present in such a case, would really be +the same as saying that we have the power of constituting two or more +distinct egos in one body, _which is manifestly absurd_.” One sees the +absurdity of maintaining that we can make one frog into two frogs by +cutting a frog into two pieces, but there is no absurdity in believing +that the two pieces have minor centres of sensation and intelligence +within themselves, which, when the animal is entire, act in much concert +with the brain, and with each other, that it is not easy to detect their +originally autonomous character, but which, when deprived of their power +of acting in concert, are thrown back upon earlier habit, now too long +forgotten to be capable of permanent resumption. + +Illustrations are apt to mislead, nevertheless they may perhaps be +sometimes tolerated. Suppose, for example, that London to the extent, +say, of a circle with a six-mile radius from Charing Cross, were utterly +annihilated in the space of five minutes during the Session of +Parliament. Suppose, also, that two entirely impassable barriers, say of +five miles in width, half a mile high, and red hot, were thrown across +England; one from Gloucester to Harwich, and another from Liverpool to +Hull, and at the same time the sea were to become a mass of molten lava, +so no water communication should be possible; the political, mercantile, +social, and intellectual life of the country would be convulsed in a +manner which it is hardly possible to realise. Hundreds of thousands +would die through the dislocation of existing arrangements. +Nevertheless, each of the three parts into which England was divided +would show signs of provincial life for which it would find certain +imperfect organisms ready to hand. Bristol, Birmingham, Liverpool, and +Manchester, accustomed though they are to act in subordination to London, +would probably take up the reins of government in their several sections; +they would make their town councils into local governments, appoint +judges from the ablest of their magistrates, organise relief committees, +and endeavour as well as they could to remove any acetic acid that might +be now poured on Wiltshire, Warwickshire, or Northumberland, but no +concert between the three divisions of the country would be any longer +possible. Should we be justified, under these circumstances, in calling +any of the three parts of England, England? Or, again, when we observed +the provincial action to be as nearly like that of the original undivided +nation as circumstances would allow, should we be justified in saying +that the action, such as it was, was not political? And, lastly, should +we for a moment think that an admission that the provincial action was of +a _bonâ fide_ political character would involve the supposition that +England, undivided, had more than one “ego” as England, no matter how +many subordinate “egos” might go to the making of it, each one of which +proved, on emergency, to be capable of a feeble autonomy? + +M. Ribot would seem to take a juster view of the phenomenon when he says +(p. 222 of the English translation)— + +“We can hardly say that here the movements are co-ordinated like those of +a machine; the acts of the animal are adapted to a special end; we find +in them the characters of intelligence and will, a knowledge and choice +of means, since they are as variable as the cause which provokes them. + +“If these, then, and similar acts, were such that both the impressions +which produced them and the acts themselves were perceived by the animal, +would they not be called psychological? Is there not in them all that +constitutes an intelligent act—adaptation of means to ends; not a general +and vague adaptation, but a determinate adaptation to a determinate end? +In the reflex action we find all that constitutes in some sort the very +groundwork of an intelligent act—that is to say, the same series of +stages, in the same order, with the same relations between them. We have +thus, in the reflex act, all that constitutes the psychological act +except consciousness. The reflex act, which is physiological, differs in +nothing from the psychological act, save only in this—that it is without +consciousness.” + +The only remark which suggests itself upon this, is that we have no right +to say that the part of the animal which moves does not also perceive its +own act of motion, as much as it has perceived the impression which has +caused it to move. It is plain “the animal” cannot do so, for the animal +cannot be said to be any longer in existence. Half a frog is not a frog; +nevertheless, if the hind legs are capable, as M. Ribot appears to admit, +of “perceiving the impression” which produces their action, and if in +that action there is (and there would certainly appear to be so) “all +that constitutes an intelligent act, . . . a determinate adaptation to a +determinate end,” one fails to see on what ground they should be supposed +to be incapable of perceiving their own action, in which case the action +of the hind legs becomes distinctly psychological. + +Secondly, M. Ribot appears to forget that it is the tendency of all +psychological action to become unconscious on being frequently repeated, +and that no line can be drawn between psychological acts and those reflex +acts which he calls physiological. All we can say is, that there are +acts which we do without knowing that we do them; but the analogy of many +habits which we have been able to watch in their passage from laborious +consciousness to perfect unconsciousness, would suggest that all action +is really psychological, only that the soul’s action becomes invisible to +ourselves after it has been repeated sufficiently often—that there is, in +fact, a law as simple as in the case of optics or gravitation, whereby +conscious perception of any action shall vary inversely as the square, +say, of its being repeated. + +It is easy to understand the advantage to the individual of this power of +doing things rightly without thinking about them; for were there no such +power, the attention would be incapable of following the multitude of +matters which would be continually arresting it; those animals which had +developed a power of working automatically, and without a recurrence to +first principles when they had once mastered any particular process, +would, in the common course of events, stand a better chance of +continuing their species, and thus of transmitting their new power to +their descendants. + +M. Ribot declines to pursue the subject further, and has only cursorily +alluded to it. He writes, however, that, on the “obscure problem” of the +difference between reflex and psychological actions, some say, “when +there can be no consciousness, because the brain is wanting, there is, in +spite of appearances, only mechanism,” whilst others maintain, that “when +there is selection, reflection, psychical action, there must also be +consciousness in spite of appearances.” A little later (p. 223), he +says, “It is quite possible that if a headless animal could live a +sufficient length of time” (that is to say, if _the hind legs of an +animal_ could live a sufficient length of time without the brain), “there +would be found in it” (_them_) “a consciousness like that of the lower +species, which would consist merely in the faculty of apprehending the +external world.” (Why merely? It is more than apprehending the outside +world to be able to try to do a thing with one’s left foot, when one +finds that one cannot do it with one’s right.) “It would not be correct +to say that the amphioxus, the only one among fishes and vertebrata which +has a spinal cord without a brain, has no consciousness because it has no +brain; and if it be admitted that the little ganglia of the invertebrata +can form a consciousness, the same may hold good for the spinal cord.” + +We conclude, therefore, that it is within the common scope and meaning of +the words “personal identity,” not only that one creature can become many +as the moth becomes manifold in her eggs, but that each individual may be +manifold in the sense of being compounded of a vast number of subordinate +individualities which have their separate lives within him, with their +hopes, and fears, and intrigues, being born and dying within us, many +generations, of them during our single lifetime. + +“An organic being,” writes Mr. Darwin, “is a microcosm, a little +universe, formed of a host of self-propagating organisms, inconceivably +minute, and numerous as the stars in heaven.” + +As these myriads of smaller organisms are parts and processes of us, so +are we but parts and processes of life at large. + + + + +CHAPTER VIII. +APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING CHAPTERS—THE ASSIMILATION OF OUTSIDE MATTER. + + +LET us now return to the position which we left at the end of the fourth +chapter. We had then concluded that the self-development of each new +life in succeeding generations—the various stages through which it passes +(as it would appear, at first sight, without rhyme or reason)—the manner +in which it prepares structures of the most surpassing intricacy and +delicacy, for which it has no use at the time when it prepares them—and +the many elaborate instincts which it exhibits immediately on, and indeed +before, birth—all point in the direction of habit and memory, as the only +causes which could produce them. + +Why should the embryo of any animal go through so many +stages—embryological allusions to forefathers of a widely different type? +And why, again, should the germs of the same kind of creature always go +through the same stages? If the germ of any animal now living is, in its +simplest state, but part of the personal identity of one of the original +germs of all life whatsoever, and hence, if any now living organism must +be considered without quibble as being itself millions of years old, and +as imbued with an intense though unconscious memory of all that it has +done sufficiently often to have made a permanent impression; if this be +so, we can answer the above questions perfectly well. The creature goes +through so many intermediate stages between its earliest state as life at +all, and its latest development, for the simplest of all reasons, namely, +because this is the road by which it has always hitherto travelled to its +present differentiation; this is the road it knows, and into every turn +and up or down of which, it has been guided by the force of circumstances +and the balance of considerations. These, acting in such a manner for +such and such a time, caused it to travel in such and such fashion, which +fashion having been once sufficiently established, becomes a matter of +trick or routine to which the creature is still a slave, and in which it +confirms itself by repetition in each succeeding generation. + +Thus I suppose, as almost every one else, so far as I can gather, +supposes, that we are descended from ancestors of widely different +characters to our own. If we could see some of our forefathers a million +years back, we should find them unlike anything we could call man; if we +were to go back fifty million years, we should find them, it may be, +fishes pure and simple, breathing through gills, and unable to exist for +many minutes in air. + +It is admitted on all hands that there is more or less analogy between +the embryological development of the individual, and the various phases +or conditions of life through which his forefathers have passed. I +suppose, then, that the fish of fifty million years back and the man of +to-day are one single living being, in the same sense, or very nearly so, +as the octogenarian is one single living being with the infant from which +he has grown; and that the fish has lived himself into manhood, not as we +live out our little life, living, and living, and living till we die, but +living by pulsations, so to speak; living so far, and after a certain +time going into a new body, and throwing off the old; making his body +much as we make anything that we want, and have often made already, that +is to say, as nearly as may be in the same way as he made it last time; +also that he is as unable as we ourselves are, to make what he wants +without going through the usual processes with which he is familiar, even +though there may be other better ways of doing the same thing, which +might not be far to seek, if the creature thought them better, and had +not got so accustomed to such and such a method, that he would only be +baffled and put out by any attempt to teach him otherwise. + +And this oneness of personality between ourselves and our supposed +fishlike ancestors of many millions of years ago, must hold also between +each individual one of us and the single pair of fishes from which we are +each (on the present momentary hypothesis) descended; and it must also +hold between such pair of fishes and all their descendants besides man, +it may be some of them birds, and others fishes; all these descendants, +whether human or otherwise, being but the way in which the creature +(which was a pair of fishes when we first took it in hand though it was a +hundred thousand other things as well, and had been all manner of other +things before any part of it became fishlike) continues to exist—its +manner, in fact, of growing. As the manner in which the human body grows +is by the continued birth and death, in our single lifetime, of many +generations of cells which we know nothing about, but say that we have +had only one hand or foot all our lives, when we have really had many, +one after another; so this huge compound creature, LIFE, probably thinks +itself but one single animal whose component cells, as it may imagine, +grow, and it may be waste and repair, but do not die. + +It may be that the cells of which we are built up, and which we have +already seen must be considered as separate persons, each one of them +with a life and memory of its own—it may be that these cells reckon time +in a manner inconceivable by us, so that no word can convey any idea of +it whatever. What may to them appear a long and painful process may to +us be so instantaneous as to escape us altogether, we wanting some +microscope to show us the details of time. If, in like manner, we were +to allow our imagination to conceive the existence of a being as much in +need of a microscope for our time and affairs as we for those of our own +component cells, the years would be to such a being but as the winkings +or the twinklings of an eye. Would he think, then, that all the ants and +flies of one wink were different from those of the next? or would he not +rather believe that they were always the same flies, and, again, always +the same men and women, if he could see them at all, and if the whole +human race did not appear to him as a sort of spreading and lichen-like +growth over the earth, not differentiated at all into individuals? With +the help of a microscope and the intelligent exercise of his reason, he +would in time conceive the truth. He would put Covent Garden Market on +the field of his microscope, and would perhaps write a great deal of +nonsense about the unerring “instinct” which taught each costermonger to +recognise his own basket or his own donkey-cart; and this, _mutatis +mutandis_, is what we are getting to do as regards our own bodies. What +I wish is, to make the same sort of step in an upward direction which has +already been taken in a downward one, and to show reason for thinking +that we are only component atoms of a single compound creature, LIFE, +which has probably a distinct conception of its own personality though +none whatever of ours, more than we of our own units. I wish also to +show reason for thinking that this creature, LIFE, has only come to be +what it is, by the same sort of process as that by which any human art or +manufacture is developed, _i.e._, through constantly doing the same thing +over and over again, beginning from something which is barely +recognisable as faith, or as the desire to know, or do, or live at all, +and as to the origin of which we are in utter darkness,—and growing till +it is first conscious of effort, then conscious of power, then powerful +with but little consciousness, and finally, so powerful and so charged +with memory as to be absolutely without all self-consciousness whatever, +except as regards its latest phases in each of its many differentiations, +or when placed in such new circumstances as compel it to choose between +death and a reconsideration of its position. + +No conjecture can be hazarded as to how the smallest particle of matter +became so imbued with faith that it must be considered as the beginning +of LIFE, or as to what such faith is, except that it is the very essence +of all things, and that it has no foundation. + +In this way, then, I conceive we can fairly transfer the experience of +the race to the individual, without any other meaning to our words than +what they would naturally suggest; that is to say, that there is in every +impregnate ovum a _bonâ fide_ memory, which carries it back not only to +the time when it was last an impregnate ovum, but to that earlier date +when it was the very beginning of life at all, which same creature it +still is, whether as man or ovum, and hence imbued, so far as time and +circumstance allow, with all its memories. Surely this is no strained +hypothesis; for the mere fact that the germ, from the earliest moment +that we are able to detect it, appears to be so perfectly familiar with +its business, acts with so little hesitation and so little introspection +or reference to principles, this alone should incline us to suspect that +it must be armed with that which, so far as we observe in daily life, can +alone ensure such a result—to wit, long practice, and the memory of many +similar performances. + +The difficulty is, that we are conscious of no such memory in our own +persons, and beyond the one great proof of memory given by the actual +repetition of the performance—and of some of the latest deviations from +the ordinary performance (and this proof ought in itself, one would have +thought, to outweigh any save the directest evidence to the contrary) we +can detect no symptom of any such mental operation as recollection on the +part of the embryo. On the other hand, we have seen that we know most +intensely those things that we are least conscious of knowing; we will +most intensely what we are least conscious of willing; we feel +continually without knowing that we feel, and our attention is hourly +arrested without our attention being arrested by the arresting of our +attention. Memory is no less capable of unconscious exercise, and on +becoming intense through frequent repetition, vanishes no less completely +as a conscious action of the mind than knowledge and volition. We must +all be aware of instances in which it is plain we must have remembered, +without being in the smallest degree conscious of remembering. Is it +then absurd to suppose that our past existences have been repeated on +such a vast number of occasions that the germ, linked on to all preceding +germs, and, by once having become part of their identity, imbued with all +their memories, remembers too intensely to be conscious of remembering, +and works on with the same kind of unconsciousness with which we play, or +walk, or read, until something unfamiliar happens to us? and is it not +singularly in accordance with this view that consciousness should begin +with that part of the creature’s performance with which it is least +familiar, as having repeated it least often—that is to say, in our own +case, with the commencement of our human life—at birth, or thereabouts? + +It is certainly noteworthy that the embryo is never at a loss, unless +something happens to it which has not usually happened to its +forefathers, and which in the nature of things it cannot remember. + +When events are happening to it which have ordinarily happened to its +forefathers, and which it would therefore remember, if it was possessed +of the kind of memory which we are here attributing to it, _it acts +precisely as it would act if it were possessed of such memory_. + +When, on the other hand, events are happening to it which, if it has the +kind of memory we are attributing to it, would baffle that memory, or +which have rarely or never been included in the category of its +recollections, _it acts precisely as a creature acts when its +recollection is disturbed_, _or when it is required to do something which +it has never done before_. + +We cannot remember having been in the embryonic stage, but we do not on +that account deny that we ever were in such a stage at all. On a little +reflection it will appear no more reasonable to maintain that, when we +were in the embryonic stage, we did not remember our past existences, +than to say that we never were embryos at all. We cannot remember what +we did or did not recollect in that state; we cannot now remember having +grown the eyes which we undoubtedly did grow, much less can we remember +whether or not we then remembered having grown them before; but it is +probable that our memory was then, in respect of our previous existences +as embryos, as much more intense than it is now in respect of our +childhood, as our power of acquiring a new language was greater when we +were one or two years old, than when we were twenty. And why should this +power of acquiring languages be greater at two years than at twenty, but +that for many generations we have learnt to speak at about this age, and +hence look to learn to do so again on reaching it, just as we looked to +making eyes, when the time came at which we were accustomed to make them. + +If we once had the memory of having been infants (which we had from day +to day during infancy), and have lost it, we may well have had other and +more intense memories which we have lost no less completely. Indeed, +there is nothing more extraordinary in the supposition that the +impregnate ovum has an intense sense of its continuity with, and +therefore of its identity with, the two impregnate ova from which it has +sprung, than in the fact that we have no sense of our continuity with +ourselves as infants. If then, there is no _à priori_ objection to this +view, and if the impregnate ovum acts in such a manner as to carry the +strongest conviction that it must have already on many occasions done +what it is doing now, and that it has a vivid though unconscious +recollection of what all, and more especially its nearer, ancestral ova +did under similar circumstances, there would seem to be little doubt what +conclusion we ought to come to. + +A hen’s egg, for example, as soon as the hen begins to sit, sets to work +immediately to do as nearly as may be what the two eggs from which its +father and mother were hatched did when hens began to sit upon them. The +inference would seem almost irresistible,—that the second egg remembers +the course pursued by the eggs from which it has sprung, and of whose +present identity it is unquestionably a part-phase; it also seems +irresistibly forced upon us to believe that the intensity of this memory +is the secret of its easy action. + +It has, I believe, been often remarked, that a hen is only an egg’s way +of making another egg. Every creature must be allowed to “run” its own +development in its own way; the egg’s way may seem a very roundabout +manner of doing things; but it _is_ its way, and it is one of which man, +upon the whole, has no great reason to complain. Why the fowl should be +considered more alive than the egg, and why it should be said that the +hen lays the egg, and not that the egg lays the hen, these are questions +which lie beyond the power of philosophic explanation, but are perhaps +most answerable by considering the conceit of man, and his habit, +persisted in during many ages, of ignoring all that does not remind him +of himself, or hurt him, or profit him; also by considering the use of +language, which, if it is to serve at all, can only do so by ignoring a +vast number of facts which gradually drop out of mind from being out of +sight. But, perhaps, after all, the real reason is, that the egg does +not cackle when it has laid the hen, and that it works towards the hen +with gradual and noiseless steps, which we can watch if we be so minded; +whereas, we can less easily watch the steps which lead from the hen to +the egg, but hear a noise, and see an egg where there was no egg. +Therefore, we say, the development of the fowl from the egg bears no sort +of resemblance to that of the egg from the fowl, whereas, in truth, a +hen, or any other living creature, is only the primordial cell’s way of +going back upon itself. + +But to return. We see an egg, A, which evidently knows its own meaning +perfectly well, and we know that a twelvemonth ago there were two other +such eggs, B and C, which have now disappeared, but from which we know A +to have been so continuously developed as to be part of the present form +of their identity. A’s meaning is seen to be precisely the same as B and +C’s meaning; A’s personal appearance is, to all intents and purposes, B +and C’s personal appearance; it would seem, then, unreasonable to deny +that A is only B and C come back, with such modification as they may have +incurred since their disappearance; and that, in spite of any such +modification, they remember in A perfectly well what they did as B and C. + +We have considered the question of personal identity so as to see +whether, without abuse of terms, we can claim it as existing between any +two generations of living agents (and if between two, then between any +number up to infinity), and we found that we were not only at liberty to +claim this, but that we are compelled irresistibly to do so, unless, that +is to say, we would think very differently concerning personal identity +than we do at present. We found it impossible to hold the ordinary +common sense opinions concerning personal identity, without admitting +that we are personally identical with all our forefathers, who have +successfully assimilated outside matter to themselves, and by +assimilation imbued it with all their own memories; we being nothing else +than this outside matter so assimilated and imbued with such memories. +This, at least, will, I believe, balance the account correctly. + +A few remarks upon the assimilation of outside matter by living organisms +may perhaps be hazarded here. + +As long as any living organism can maintain itself in a position to which +it has been accustomed, more or less nearly, both in its own life and in +those of its forefathers, nothing can harm it. As long as the organism +is familiar with the position, and remembers its antecedents, nothing can +assimilate it. It must be first dislodged from the position with which +it is familiar, as being able to remember it, before mischief can happen +to it. Nothing can assimilate living organism. + +On the other hand, the moment living organism loses sight of its own +position and antecedents, it is liable to immediate assimilation, and to +be thus familiarised with the position and antecedents of some other +creature. If any living organism be kept for but a very short time in a +position wholly different from what it has been accustomed to in its own +life, and in the lives of its forefathers, it commonly loses its memories +completely, once and for ever; but it must immediately acquire new ones, +for nothing can know nothing; everything must remember either its own +antecedents, or some one else’s. And as nothing can know nothing, so +nothing can believe in nothing. + +A grain of corn, for example, has never been accustomed to find itself in +a hen’s stomach—neither it nor its forefathers. For a grain so placed +leaves no offspring, and hence cannot transmit its experience. The first +minute or so after being eaten, it may think it has just been sown, and +begin to prepare for sprouting, but in a few seconds, it discovers the +environment to be unfamiliar; it therefore gets frightened, loses its +head, is carried into the gizzard, and comminuted among the gizzard +stones. The hen succeeded in putting it into a position with which it +was unfamiliar; from this it was an easy stage to assimilating it +entirely. Once assimilated, the grain ceases to remember any more as a +grain, but becomes initiated into all that happens to, and has happened +to, fowls for countless ages. Then it will attack all other grains +whenever it sees them; there is no such persecutor of grain, as another +grain when it has once fairly identified itself with a hen. + +We may remark in passing, that if anything be once familiarised with +anything, it is content. The only things we really care for in life are +familiar things; let us have the means of doing what we have been +accustomed to do, of dressing as we have been accustomed to dress, of +eating as we have been accustomed to eat, and let us have no less liberty +than we are accustomed to have, and last, but not least, let us not be +disturbed in thinking as we have been accustomed to think, and the vast +majority of mankind will be very fairly contented—all plants and animals +will certainly be so. This would seem to suggest a possible doctrine of +a future state; concerning which we may reflect that though, after we +die, we cease to be familiar with ourselves, we shall nevertheless become +immediately familiar with many other histories compared with which our +present life must then seem intolerably uninteresting. + +This is the reason why a very heavy and sudden shock to the nervous +system does not pain, but kills outright at once; while one with which +the system can, at any rate, try to familiarise itself is exceedingly +painful. We cannot bear unfamiliarity. The part that is treated in a +manner with which it is not familiar cries immediately to the brain—its +central government—for help, and makes itself generally as troublesome as +it can, till it is in some way comforted. Indeed, the law against +cruelty to animals is but an example of the hatred we feel on seeing even +dumb creatures put into positions with which they are not familiar. We +hate this so much for ourselves, that we will not tolerate it for other +creatures if we can possibly avoid it. So again, it is said, that when +Andromeda and Perseus had travelled but a little way from the rock where +Andromeda had so long been chained, she began upbraiding him with the +loss of her dragon, who, on the whole, she said, had been very good to +her. The only things we really hate are unfamiliar things, and though +nature would not be nature if she did not cross our love of the familiar +with a love also of the unfamiliar, yet there can be no doubt which of +the two principles is master. + +Let us return, however, to the grain of corn. If the grain had had +presence of mind to avoid being carried into the gizzard stones, as many +seeds do which are carried for hundreds of miles in birds’ stomachs, and +if it had persuaded itself that the novelty of the position was not +greater than it could very well manage to put up with—if, in fact, it had +not known when it was beaten—it might have stuck in the hen’s stomach and +begun to grow; in this case it would have assimilated a good part of the +hen before many days were over; for hens are not familiar with grains +that grow in their stomachs, and unless the one in question was as +strongminded for a hen, as the grain that could avoid being assimilated +would be for a grain, the hen would soon cease to take an interest in her +antecedents. It is to be doubted, however, whether a grain has ever been +grown which has had strength of mind enough to avoid being set off its +balance on finding itself inside a hen’s gizzard. For living organism is +the creature of habit and routine, and the inside of a gizzard is not in +the grain’s programme. + +Suppose, then, that the grain, instead of being carried into the gizzard, +had stuck in the hen’s throat and choked her. It would now find itself +in a position very like what it had often been in before. That is to +say, it would be in a damp, dark, quiet place, not too far from light, +and with decaying matter around it. It would therefore know perfectly +well what to do, and would begin to grow until disturbed, and again put +into a position with which it might, very possibly, be unfamiliar. + +The great question between vast masses of living organism is simply this: +“Am I to put you into a position with which your forefathers have been +unfamiliar, or are you to put me into one about which my own have been in +like manner ignorant?” Man is only the dominant animal on the earth, +because he can, as a general rule, settle this question in his own +favour. + +The only manner in which an organism, which has once forgotten its +antecedents, can ever recover its memory, is by being assimilated by a +creature of its own kind; one, moreover, which knows its business, or is +not in such a false position as to be compelled to be aware of being so. +It was, doubtless, owing to the recognition of this fact, that some +Eastern nations, as we are told by Herodotus, were in the habit of eating +their deceased parents—for matter which has once been assimilated by any +identity or personality, becomes for all practical purposes part of the +assimilating personality. + +The bearing of the above will become obvious when we return, as we will +now do, to the question of personal identity. The only difficulty would +seem to lie in our unfamiliarity with the real meanings which we attach +to words in daily use. Hence, while recognising continuity without +sudden break as the underlying principle of identity, we forget that this +involves personal identity between all the beings who are in one chain of +descent, the numbers of such beings, whether in succession, or +contemporaneous, going for nothing at all. Thus we take two eggs, one +male and one female, and hatch them; after some months the pair of fowls +so hatched, having succeeded in putting a vast quantity of grain and +worms into false positions, become full-grown, breed, and produce a dozen +new eggs. + +Two live fowls and a dozen eggs are the present phase of the personality +of the two original eggs. They are also part of the present phase of the +personality of all the worms and grain which the fowls have assimilated +from their leaving the eggshell; but the personalities of these last do +not count; they have lost their grain and worm memories, and are instinct +with the memorises of the whole ancestry of the creature which has +assimilated them. + +We cannot, perhaps, strictly say that the two fowls and the dozen new +eggs actually _are_ the two original eggs; these two eggs are no longer +in existence, and we see the two birds themselves which were hatched from +them. A bird cannot be called an egg without an abuse of terms. +Nevertheless, it is doubtful how far we should not say this, for it is +only with a mental reserve—and with no greater mental reserve—that we +predicate absolute identity concerning any living being for two +consecutive moments; and it is certainly as free from quibble to say to +two fowls and a dozen eggs, “you are the two eggs I had on my kitchen +shelf twelve months ago,” as to say to a man, “you are the child whom I +remember thirty years ago in your mother’s arms.” In either case we +mean, “you have been continually putting other organisms into a false +position, and then assimilating them, ever since I last saw you, while +nothing has yet occurred to put _you_ into such a false position as to +have made you lose the memory of your antecedents.” + +It would seem perfectly fair, therefore, to say to any egg of the twelve, +or to the two fowls and the whole twelve eggs together, “you were a +couple of eggs twelve months ago; twelve months before that you were four +eggs;” and so on, _ad infinitum_, the number neither of the ancestors nor +of the descendants counting for anything, and continuity being the sole +thing looked to. From daily observation we are familiar with the fact +that identity does both unite with other identities, so that a single new +identity is the result, and does also split itself up into several +identities, so that the one becomes many. This is plain from the manner +in which the male and female sexual elements unite to form a single ovum, +which we observe to be instinct with the memories of both the individuals +from which it has been derived; and there is the additional +consideration, that each of the elements whose fusion goes to make up the +impregnate ovum, is held by some to be itself composed of a fused mass of +germs, which stand very much in the same relation to the spermatozoon and +ovum, as the living cellular units of which we are composed do to +ourselves—that is to say, are living independent organisms, which +probably have no conception of the existence of the spermatozoon nor of +the ovum, more than the spermatozoon or ovum have of theirs. + +This, at least, is what I gather from Mr. Darwin’s provisional theory of +Pangenesis; and, again, from one of the concluding sentences in his +“Effects of Cross and Self Fertilisation,” where, asking the question why +two sexes have been developed, he replies that the answer seems to lie +“in the great good which is derived from the fusion of two somewhat +differentiated individuals. With the exception,” he continues, “or the +lowest organisms this is possible only by means of the sexual +elements—_these consisting of cells separated from the body_” (_i.e._, +separated from the bodies of each parent) “_containing the germs of every +part_” (_i.e._, consisting of the seeds or germs from which each +individual cell of the coming organism will be developed—these seeds or +germs having been shed by each individual cell of the parent forms), +“_and capable of being fused completely together_” (_i.e._, so at least I +gather, capable of being fused completely, in the same way as the cells +of our own bodies are fused, and thus, of forming a single living +personality in the case of both the male and female element; which +elements are themselves capable of a second fusion so as to form the +impregnate ovum). This single impregnate ovum, then, is a single +identity that has taken the place of and come up in the room of two +distinct personalities, each of whose characteristics it, to a certain +extent, partakes, and which consist, each one of them, of the fused germs +of a vast mass of other personalities. + +As regards the dispersion of one identity into many, this also is a +matter of daily observation in the case of all female creatures that are +with egg or young; the identity of the young with the female parent is in +many respects so complete, as to need no enforcing, in spite of the +entrance into the offspring of all the elements derived from the male +parent, and of the gradual separation of the two identities, which +becomes more and more complete, till in time it is hard to conceive that +they can ever have been united. + +Numbers, therefore, go for nothing; and, as far as identity or continued +personality goes, it is as fair to say to the two fowls, above referred +to, “you were four fowls twelve months ago,” as it is to say to a dozen +eggs, “you were two eggs twelve months ago.” But here a difficulty meets +us; for if we say, “you were two eggs twelve months ago,” it follows that +we mean, “you are now those two eggs;” just as when we say to a person, +“you were such and such a boy twenty years ago,” we mean, “you are now +that boy, or all that represents him;” it would seem, then, that in like +manner we should say to the two fowls, “you _are_ the four fowls who +between them laid the two eggs from which you sprung.” But it may be +that all these four fowls are still to be seen running about; we should +be therefore saying, “you two fowls are really not yourselves only, but +you are also the other four fowls into the bargain;” and this might be +philosophically true, and might, perhaps, be considered so, but for the +convenience of the law courts. + +The difficulty would seem to arise from the fact that the eggs must +disappear before fowls can be hatched from them, whereas, the hens so +hatched may outlive the development of other hens, from the eggs which +they in due course have laid. The original eggs being out of sight are +out of mind, and it is without an effort that we acquiesce in the +assertion,—that the dozen new eggs actually are the two original ones. +But the original four fowls being still in sight, cannot be ignored, we +only, therefore, see the new ones as growths from the original ones. + +The strict rendering of the facts should be, “you are part of the present +phase of the identity of such and such a past identity,” _i.e._, either +of the two eggs or the four fowls, as the case may be; this will put the +eggs and the fowls, as it were, into the same box, and will meet both the +philosophical and legal requirement of the case, only it is a little +long. + +So far then, as regards actual identity of personality; which, we find, +will allow us to say, that eggs are part of the present phase of a +certain past identity, whether of other eggs, or of fowls, or chickens, +and in like, manner that chickens are part of the present phase of +certain other chickens, or eggs, or fowls; in fact, that anything is part +of the present phase of any past identity in the line of its ancestry. +But as regards the actual memory of such identity (unconscious memory, +but still clearly memory), we observe that the egg, as long as it is an +egg, appears to have a very distinct recollection of having been an egg +before, and the fowl of having been a fowl before, but that neither egg +nor fowl appear to have any recollection of any other stage of their past +existences, than the one corresponding to that in which they are +themselves at the moment existing. + +So we, at six or seven years old, have no recollection of ever having +been infants, much less of having been embryos; but the manner in which +we shed our teeth and make new ones, and the way in which we grow +generally, making ourselves for the most part exceedingly like what we +made ourselves, in the person of some one of our nearer ancestors, and +not unfrequently repeating the very blunders which we made upon that +occasion when we come to a corresponding age, proves most incontestably +that we remember our past existences, though too utterly to be capable of +introspection in the matter. So, when we grow wisdom teeth, at the age +it may be of one or two and twenty, it is plain we remember our past +existences at that age, however completely we may have forgotten the +earlier stages of our present existence. It may be said that it is the +jaw which remembers, and not we, but it seems hard to deny the jaw a +right of citizenship in our personality; and in the case of a growing +boy, every part of him seems to remember equally well, and if every part +of him combined does not make _him_, there would seem but little use in +continuing the argument further. + +In like manner, a caterpillar appears not to remember having been an egg, +either in its present or any past existence. It has no concern with eggs +as soon as it is hatched, but it clearly remembers not only having been a +caterpillar before, but also having turned itself into a chrysalis +before; for when the time comes for it to do this, it is at no loss, as +it would certainly be if the position was unfamiliar, but it immediately +begins doing what it did when last it was in a like case, repeating the +process as nearly as the environment will allow, taking every step in the +same order as last time, and doing its work with that ease and perfection +which we observe to belong to the force of habit, and to be utterly +incompatible with any other supposition than that of long long practice. + +Once having become a chrysalis, its memory of its caterpillarhood appears +to leave it for good and all, not to return until it again assumes the +shape of a caterpillar by process of descent. Its memory now overleaps +all past modifications, and reverts to the time when it was last what it +is now, and though it is probable that both caterpillar and chrysalis, on +any given day of their existence in either of these forms, have some sort +of dim power of recollecting what happened to them yesterday, or the day +before; yet it is plain their main memory goes back to the corresponding +day of their last existence in their present form, the chrysalis +remembering what happened to it on such a day far more practically, +though less consciously, than what happened to it yesterday; and +naturally, for yesterday is but once, and its past existences have been +legion. Hence, it prepares its wings in due time, doing each day what it +did on the corresponding day of its last chrysalishood and at length +becoming a moth; whereon its circumstances are so changed that it loses +all sense of its identity as a chrysalis (as completely as we, for +precisely the same reason, lose all sense of our identity with ourselves +as infants), and remembers nothing but its past existences as a moth. + +We observe this to hold throughout the animal and vegetable kingdoms. In +any one phase of the existence of the lower animals, we observe that they +remember the corresponding stage, and a little on either side of it, of +all their past existences for a very great length of time. In their +present existence they remember a little behind the present moment +(remembering more and more the higher they advance in the scale of life), +and being able to foresee about as much as they could foresee in their +past existences, sometimes more and sometimes less. As with memory, so +with prescience. The higher they advance in the scale of life the more +prescient they are. It must, of course, be remembered, and will later on +be more fully dwelt upon, that no offspring can remember anything which +happens to its parents after it and its parents have parted company; and +this is why there is, perhaps, more irregularity as regards our +wisdom-teeth than about anything else that we grow; inasmuch as it must +not uncommonly have happened in a long series of generations, that the +offspring has been born before the parents have grown their wisdom-teeth, +and thus there will be faults in the memory. + +Is there, then, anything in memory, as we observe it in ourselves and +others, under circumstances in which we shall agree in calling it memory +pure and simple without ambiguity of terms—is there anything in memory +which bars us from supposing it capable of overleaping a long time of +abeyance, and thus of enabling each impregnate ovum, or each grain, to +remember what it did when last in a like condition, and to go on +remembering the corresponding period of its prior developments throughout +the whole period of its present growth, though such memory has entirely +failed as regards the interim between any two corresponding periods, and +is not consciously recognised by the individual as being exercised at +all? + + + + +CHAPTER IX. +ON THE ABEYANCE OF MEMORY. + + +LET us assume, for the moment, that the action of each impregnate germ is +due to memory, which, as it were, pulsates anew in each succeeding +generation, so that immediately on impregnation, the germ’s memory +reverts to the last occasion on which it was in a like condition, and +recognising the position, is at no loss what to do. It is plain that in +all cases where there are two parents, that is to say, in the greater +number of cases, whether in the vegetable or animal kingdoms, there must +be two such last occasions, each of which will have an equal claim upon +the attention of the new germ. Its memory would therefore revert to +both, and though it would probably adhere more closely to the course +which it took either as its father or its mother, and thus come out +eventually male or female, yet it would be not a little influenced by the +less potent memory. + +And not only this, but each of the germs to which the memory of the new +germ reverts, is itself imbued with the memories of its own parent germs, +and these again with the memories of preceding generations, and so on _ad +infinitum_; so that, _ex hypothesi_, the germ must become instinct with +all these memories, epitomised as after long time, and unperceived though +they may well be, not to say obliterated in part or entirely so far as +many features are concerned, by more recent impressions. In this case, +we must conceive of the impregnate germ as of a creature which has to +repeat a performance already repeated before on countless different +occasions, but with no more variation on the more recent ones than is +inevitable in the repetition of any performance by an intelligent being. + +Now if we take the most parallel case to this which we can find, and +consider what we should ourselves do under such circumstances, that is to +say, if we consider what course is actually taken by beings who are +influenced by what we all call memory, when they repeat an already +often-repeated performance, and if we find a very strong analogy between +the course so taken by ourselves, and that which from whatever cause we +observe to be taken by a living germ, we shall surely be much inclined to +think that there must be a similarity in the causes of action in each +case; and hence, to conclude, that the action of the germ is due to +memory. + +It will, therefore, be necessary to consider the general tendency of our +minds in regard to impressions made upon us, and the memory of such +impressions. + +Deep impressions upon the memory are made in two ways, differing rather +in degree than kind, but with two somewhat widely different results. +They are made:— + +I. By unfamiliar objects, or combinations, which come at comparatively +long intervals, and produce their effect, as it were, by one hard blow. +The effect of these will vary with the unfamiliarity of the impressions +themselves, and the manner in which they seem likely to lead to a further +development of the unfamiliar, _i.e._, with the question, whether they +seem likely to compel us to change our habits, either for better or +worse. + +Thus, if an object or incident be very unfamiliar, as, we will say, a +whale or an iceberg to one travelling to America for the first time, it +will make a deep impression, though but little affecting our interests; +but if we struck against the iceberg and were shipwrecked, or nearly so, +it would produce a much deeper impression, we should think much more +about icebergs, and remember much more about them, than if we had merely +seen one. So, also, if we were able to catch the whale and sell its oil, +we should have a deep impression made upon us. In either case we see +that the amount of unfamiliarity, either present or prospective, is the +main determinant of the depth of the impression. + +As with consciousness and volition, so with sudden unfamiliarity. It +impresses us more and more deeply the more unfamiliar it is, until it +reaches such a point of impressiveness as to make no further impression +at all; on which we then and there die. For death only kills through +unfamiliarity—that is to say, because the new position, whatever it is, +is so wide a cross as compared with the old one, that we cannot fuse the +two so as to understand the combination; hence we lose all recognition +of, and faith in, ourselves and our surroundings. + +But however much we imagine we remember concerning the details of any +remarkable impression which has been made us by a single blow, we do not +remember as much or nearly as much as we think we do. The subordinate +details soon drop out of mind. Those who think they remember even such a +momentous matter as the battle of Waterloo recall now probably but +half-a-dozen episodes, a gleam here, and a gleam there, so that what they +call remembering the battle of Waterloo, is, in fact, little more than a +kind of dreaming—so soon vanishes the memory of any unrepeated +occurrence. + +As for smaller impressions, there is very little of what happens to us in +each week that will be in our memories a week hence; a man of eighty +remembers few of the unrepeated incidents of his life beyond those of the +last fortnight, a little here, and a little there, forming a matter of +perhaps six weeks or two months in all, if everything that he can call to +mind were acted over again with no greater fulness than he can remember +it. As for incidents that have been often repeated, his mind strikes a +balance of its past reminiscences, remembering the two or three last +performances, and a general method of procedure, but nothing more. + +If, then, the recollection of all that is not very novel, or very often +repeated, so soon fades from our own minds, during what we consider as +our single lifetime, what wonder that the details of our daily experience +should find no place in that brief epitome of them which is all we can +give in so small a volume as offspring? + +If we cannot ourselves remember the hundred-thousandth part of what +happened to us during our own childhood, how can we expect our offspring +to remember more than what, through frequent repetition, they can now +remember as a residuum, or general impression. On the other hand, +whatever we remember in consequence of but a single impression, we +remember consciously. We can at will recall details, and are perfectly +well aware, when we do so, that we are recollecting. A man who has never +seen death looks for the first time upon the dead face of some near +relative or friend. He gazes for a few short minutes, but the impression +thus made does not soon pass out of his mind. He remembers the room, the +hour of the day or night, and if by day, what sort of a day. He +remembers in what part of the room, and how disposed the body of the +deceased was lying. Twenty years afterwards he can, at will, recall all +these matters to his mind, and picture to himself the scene as he +originally witnessed it. + +The reason is plain; the impression was very unfamiliar, and affected the +beholder, both as regards the loss of one who was dear to him, and as +reminding him with more than common force that he will one day die +himself. Moreover the impression was a simple one, not involving much +subordinate detail; we have in this case, therefore, an example of the +most lasting kind of impression that can be made by a single unrepeated +event. But if we examine ourselves closely, we shall find that after a +lapse of years we do not remember as much as we think we do, even in such +a case as this; and that beyond the incidents above mentioned, and the +expression upon the face of the dead person, we remember little of what +we can so consciously and vividly recall. + +II. Deep impressions are also made by the repetition, more or less +often, of a feeble impression which, if unrepeated, would have soon +passed out of our minds. We observe, therefore, that we remember best +what we have done least often—any unfamiliar deviation, that is to say, +from our ordinary method of procedure—and what we have done most often, +with which, therefore, we are most familiar; our memory being mainly +affected by the force of novelty and the force of routine—the most +unfamiliar, and the most familiar, incidents or objects. + +But we remember impressions which have been made upon us by force of +routine, in a very different way to that in which we remember a single +deep impression. As regards this second class, which comprises far the +most numerous and important of the impressions with which our memory is +stored, it is often only by the fact of our performance itself that we +are able to recognise or show to others that we remember at all. We +often do not remember how, or when, or where we acquired our knowledge. +All we remember is, that we did learn, and that at one time and another +we have done this or that very often. + +As regards this second class of impressions we may observe:— + +1. That as a general rule we remember only the individual features of +the last few repetitions of the act—if, indeed, we remember this much. +The influence of preceding ones is to be found only in the general +average of the procedure, which is modified by them, but unconsciously to +ourselves. Take, for example, some celebrated singer, or pianoforte +player, who has sung the same air, or performed the same sonata several +hundreds or, it may be, thousands of times: of the details of individual +performances, he can probably call to mind none but those of the last few +days, yet there can be no question that his present performance is +affected by, and modified by, all his previous ones; the care he has +bestowed on these being the secret of his present proficiency. + +In each performance (the performer being supposed in the same state of +mental and bodily health), the tendency will be to repeat the immediately +preceding performances more nearly than remoter ones. It is the common +tendency of living beings to go on doing what they have been doing most +recently. The last habit is the strongest. Hence, if he took great +pains last time, he will play better now, and will take a like degree of +pains, and play better still next time, and so go on improving while life +and vigour last. If, on the other hand, he took less pains last time, he +will play worse now, and be inclined to take little pains next time, and +so gradually deteriorate. This, at least, is the common everyday +experience of mankind. + +So with painters, actors, and professional men of every description; +after a little while the memory of many past performances strikes a sort +of fused balance in the mind, which results in a general method of +procedure with but little conscious memory of even the latest +performances, and with none whatever of by far the greater number of the +remoter ones. + +Still, it is noteworthy, that the memory of some even of these will +occasionally assert itself, so far as we can see, arbitrarily, the reason +why this or that occasion should still haunt us, when others like them +are forgotten, depending on some cause too subtle for our powers of +observation. + +Even with such a simple matter as our daily dressing and undressing, we +may remember some few details of our yesterday’s toilet, but we retain +nothing but a general and fused recollection of the many thousand earlier +occasions on which we have dressed, or gone to bed. Men invariably put +the same leg first into their trousers—this is the survival of memory in +a residuum; but they cannot, till they actually put on a pair of +trousers, remember which leg they _do_ put in first; this is the rapid +fading away of any small individual impression. + +The seasons may serve as another illustration; we have a general +recollection of the kind of weather which is seasonable for any month in +a year; what flowers are due about what time, and whether the spring is +on the whole backward or early; but we cannot remember the weather on any +particular day a year ago, unless some unusual incident has impressed it +upon our memory. We can remember, as a general rule, what kind of season +it was, upon the whole, a year ago, or perhaps, even two years; but more +than this, we rarely remember, except in such cases as the winter of +1854–1855, or the summer of 1868; the rest is all merged. + +We observe, then, that as regards small and often repeated impressions, +our tendency is to remember best, and in most detail, what we have been +doing most recently, and what in general has occurred most recently, but +that the earlier impressions though forgotten individually, are +nevertheless, not wholly lost. + +2. When we have done anything very often, and have got into the habit of +doing it, we generally take the various steps in the same order; in many +cases this seems to be a _sine quâ non_ for our repetition of the action +at all. Thus, there is probably no living man who could repeat the words +of “God save the Queen” backwards, without much hesitation and many +mistakes; so the musician and the singer must perform their pieces in the +order of the notes as written, or at any rate as they ordinarily perform +them; they cannot transpose bars or read them backwards, without being +put out, nor would the audience recognise the impressions they have been +accustomed to, unless these impressions are made in the accustomed order. + +3. If, when we have once got well into the habit of doing anything in a +certain way, some one shows us some other way of doing it, or some way +which would in part modify our procedure, or if in our endeavours to +improve, we have hit upon some new idea which seems likely to help us, +and thus we vary our course, on the next occasion we remember this idea +by reason of its novelty, but if we try to repeat it, we often find the +residuum of our old memories pulling us so strongly into our old groove, +that we have the greatest difficulty in repeating our performance in the +new manner; there is a clashing of memories, a conflict, which if the +idea is very new, and involves, so to speak, too sudden a cross—too wide +a departure from our ordinary course—will sometimes render the +performance monstrous, or baffle us altogether, the new memory failing to +fuse harmoniously with the old. If the idea is not too widely different +from our older ones, we can cross them with it, but with more or less +difficulty, as a general rule in proportion to the amount of variation. +The whole process of understanding a thing consists in this, and, so far +as I can see at present, in this only. + +Sometimes we repeat the new performance for a few times, in a way which +shows that the fusion of memories is still in force; and then insensibly +revert to the old, in which case the memory of the new soon fades away, +leaving a residuum too feeble to contend against that of our many earlier +memories of the same kind. If, however, the new way is obviously to our +advantage, we make an effort to retain it, and gradually getting into the +habit of using it, come to remember it by force of routine, as we +originally remembered it by force of novelty. Even as regards our own +discoveries, we do not always succeed in remembering our most improved +and most striking performances, so as to be able to repeat them at will +immediately: in any such performance we may have gone some way beyond our +ordinary powers, owing to some unconscious action of the mind. The +supreme effort has exhausted us, and we must rest on our oars a little, +before we make further progress; or we may even fall back a little, +before we make another leap in advance. + +In this respect, almost every conceivable degree of variation is +observable, according to differences of character and circumstances. +Sometimes the new impression has to be made upon us many times from +without, before the earlier strain of action is eliminated; in this case, +there will long remain a tendency to revert to the earlier habit. +Sometimes, after the impression has been once made, we repeat our old way +two or three times, and then revert to the new, which gradually ousts the +old; sometimes, on the other hand, a single impression, though involving +considerable departure from our routine, makes its mark so deeply that we +adopt the new at once, though not without difficulty, and repeat it in +our next performance, and henceforward in all others; but those who vary +their performance thus readily will show a tendency to vary subsequent +performances according as they receive fresh ideas from others, or reason +them out independently. They are men of genius. + +This holds good concerning all actions which we do habitually, whether +they involve laborious acquirement or not. Thus, if we have varied our +usual dinner in some way that leaves a favourable impression upon our +minds, so that our dinner may, in the language of the horticulturist, be +said to have “sported,” our tendency will be to revert to this particular +dinner either next day, or as soon as circumstances will allow, but it is +possible that several hundred dinners may elapse before we can do so +successfully, or before our memory reverts to this particular dinner. + +4. As regards our habitual actions, however unconsciously we remember +them, we, nevertheless, remember them with far greater intensity than +many individual impressions or actions, it may be of much greater moment, +that have happened to us more recently. Thus, many a man who has +familiarised himself, for example, with the odes of Horace, so as to have +had them at his fingers’ ends as the result of many repetitions, will be +able years hence to repeat a given ode, though unable to remember any +circumstance in connection with his having learnt it, and no less unable +to remember when he repeated it last. A host of individual +circumstances, many of them not unimportant, will have dropped out of his +mind, along with a mass of literature read but once or twice, and not +impressed upon the memory by several repetitions; but he returns to the +well-known ode with so little effort, that he would not know that he was +remembering unless his reason told him so. The ode seems more like +something born with him. + +We observe, also, that people who have become imbecile, or whose memory +is much impaired, yet frequently retain their power of recalling +impression which have been long ago repeatedly made upon them. + +In such cases, people are sometimes seen to forget what happened last +week, yesterday, or an hour ago, without even the smallest power of +recovering their recollection; but the oft repeated earlier impression +remains, though there may be no memory whatever of how it came to be +impressed so deeply. The phenomena of memory, therefore, are exactly +like those of consciousness and volition, in so far as that the +consciousness of recollection vanishes, when the power of recollection +has become intense. When we are aware that we are recollecting, and are +trying, perhaps hard, to recollect, it is a sign that we do not recollect +utterly. When we remember utterly and intensely, there is no conscious +effort of recollection; our recollection can only be recognised by +ourselves and others, through our performance itself, which testifies to +the existence of a memory, that we could not otherwise follow or detect. + +5. When circumstances have led us to change our habits of life—as when +the university has succeeded school, or professional life the +university—we get into many fresh ways, and leave many old ones. But on +revisiting the old scene, unless the lapse of time has been inordinately +great, we experience a desire to revert to old habits. We say that old +associations crowd upon us. Let a Trinity man, after thirty years +absence from Cambridge, pace for five minutes in the cloister of +Neville’s Court, and listen to the echo of his footfall, as it licks up +against the end of the cloister, or let an old Johnian stand wherever he +likes in the third Court of St. John’s, in either case he will find the +thirty years drop out of his life, as if they were half-an-hour; his life +will have rolled back upon itself, to the date when he was an +undergraduate, and his instinct will be to do almost mechanically, +whatever it would have come most natural to him to do, when he was last +there at the same season of the year, and the same hour of the day; and +it is plain this is due to similarity of environment, for if the place he +revisits be much changed, there will be little or no association. + +So those who are accustomed at intervals to cross the Atlantic, get into +certain habits on board ship, different to their usual ones. It may be +that at home they never play whist; on board ship they do nothing else +all the evening. At home they never touch spirits; on the voyage they +regularly take a glass of something before they go to bed. They do not +smoke at home; here they are smoking all day. Once the voyage is at an +end, they return without an effort to their usual habits, and do not feel +any wish for cards, spirits, or tobacco. They do not remember yesterday, +when they did want all these things; at least, not with such force as to +be influenced by it in their desires and actions; their true memory—the +memory which makes them want, and do, reverts to the last occasion on +which they were in circumstances like their present; they therefore want +now what they wanted then, and nothing more; but when the time comes for +them to go on shipboard again, no sooner do they smell the smell of the +ship, than their real memory reverts to the times when they were last at +sea, and striking a balance of their recollections, they smoke, play +cards, and drink whisky and water. + +We observe it then as a matter of the commonest daily occurrence within +our own experience, that memory does fade completely away, and recur with +the recurrence of surroundings like those which made any particular +impression in the first instance. We observe that there is hardly any +limit to the completeness and the length of time during which our memory +may remain in abeyance. A smell may remind an old man of eighty of some +incident of his childhood, forgotten for nearly as many years as he has +lived. In other words, we observe that when an impression has been +repeatedly made in a certain sequence on any living organism—that +impression not having been prejudicial to the creature itself—the +organism will have a tendency, on reassuming the shape and conditions in +which it was when the impression was last made, to remember the +impression, and therefore to do again now what it did then; all +intermediate memories dropping clean out of mind, so far as they have any +effect upon action. + +6. Finally, we should note the suddenness and apparent caprice with +which memory will assert itself at odd times; we have been saying or +doing this or that, when suddenly a memory of something which happened to +us, perhaps in infancy, comes into our head; nor can we in the least +connect this recollection with the subject of which we have just been +thinking, though doubtless there has been a connection, too rapid and +subtle for our apprehension. + +The foregoing phenomena of memory, so far as we can judge, would appear +to be present themselves throughout the animal and vegetable kingdoms. +This will be readily admitted as regards animals; as regards plants it +may be inferred from the fact that they generally go on doing what they +have been doing most lately, though accustomed to make certain changes at +certain points in their existence. When the time comes for these +changes, they appear to know it, and either bud forth into leaf or shed +their leaves, as the case may be. If we keep a bulb in a paper bag it +seems to remember having been a bulb before, until the time comes for it +to put forth roots and grow. Then, if we supply it with earth and +moisture, it seems to know where it is, and to go on doing now whatever +it did when it was last planted; but if we keep it in the bag too long, +it knows that it ought, according to its last experience, to be treated +differently, and shows plain symptoms of uneasiness; it is distracted by +the bag, which makes it remember its bulbhood, and also by the want of +earth and water, without which associations its memory of its previous +growth cannot be duly kindled. Its roots, therefore, which are most +accustomed to earth and water, do not grow; but its leaves, which do not +require contact with these things to jog their memory, make a more +decided effort at development—a fact which would seem to go strongly in +favour of the functional independence of the parts of all but the very +simplest living organisms, if, indeed, more evidence were wanted in +support of this. + + + + +CHAPTER X. +WHAT WE SHOULD EXPECT TO FIND IF DIFFERENTIATIONS OF STRUCTURE AND +INSTINCT ARE MAINLY DUE TO MEMORY. + + +TO repeat briefly;—we remember best our last few performances of any +given kind, and our present performance is most likely to resemble one or +other of these; we only remember our earlier performances by way of +residuum; nevertheless, at times, some older feature is liable to +reappear. + +We take our steps in the same order on each successive occasion, and are +for the most part incapable of changing that order. + +The introduction of slightly new elements into our manner is attended +with benefit; the new can be fused with the old, and the monotony of our +action is relieved. But if the new element is too foreign, we cannot +fuse the old and new—nature seeming equally to hate too wide a deviation +from our ordinary practice, and no deviation at all. Or, in plain +English—if any one gives us a new idea which is not too far ahead of us, +such an idea is often of great service to us, and may give new life to +our work—in fact, we soon go back, unless we more or less frequently come +into contact with new ideas, and are capable of understanding and making +use of them; if; on the other hand, they are too new, and too little led +up to, so that we find them too strange and hard to be able to understand +them and adopt them, then they put us out, with every degree of +completeness—from simply causing us to fail in this or that particular +part, to rendering us incapable of even trying to do our work at all, +from pure despair of succeeding. + +It requires many repetitions to fix an impression firmly; but when it is +fixed, we cease to have much recollection of the manner in which it came +to be so, or of any single and particular recurrence. + +Our memory is mainly called into action by force of association and +similarity in the surroundings. We want to go on doing what we did when +we were last as we are now, and we forget what we did in the meantime. + +These rules, however, are liable to many exceptions; as for example, that +a single and apparently not very extraordinary occurrence may sometimes +produce a lasting impression, and be liable to return with sudden force +at some distant time, and then to go on returning to us at intervals. +Some incidents, in fact, we know not how nor why, dwell with us much +longer than others which were apparently quite as noteworthy or perhaps +more so. + +Now I submit that if the above observations are just, and if, also, the +offspring, after having become a new and separate personality, yet +retains so much of the old identity of which it was once indisputably +part, that it remembers what it did when it was part of that identity as +soon as it finds itself in circumstances which are calculated to refresh +its memory owing to their similarity to certain antecedent ones, then we +should expect to find:— + +I. That offspring should, as a general rule, resemble its own most +immediate progenitors; that is to say, that it should remember best what +it has been doing most recently. The memory being a fusion of its +recollections of what it did, both when it was its father and also when +it was its mother, the offspring should have a very common tendency to +resemble both parents, the one in some respects, and the other in others; +but it might also hardly less commonly show a more marked recollection of +the one history than of the other, thus more distinctly resembling one +parent than the other. And this is what we observe to be the case. Not +only so far as that the offspring is almost invariably either male or +female, and generally resembles rather the one parent than the other, but +also that in spite of such preponderance of one set of recollections, the +sexual characters and instincts of the _opposite_ sex appear, whether in +male or female, though undeveloped and incapable of development except by +abnormal treatment, such as has occasionally caused milk to be developed +in the mammary glands of males; or by mutilation, or failure of sexual +instinct through age, upon which, male characteristics frequently appear +in the females of any species. + +Brothers and sisters, each giving their own version of the same story, +though in different words, should resemble each other more closely than +more distant relations. This too we see. + +But it should frequently happen that offspring should resemble its +penultimate rather than its latest phase, and should thus be more like a +grand-parent than a parent; for we observe that we very often repeat a +performance in a manner resembling that of some earlier, but still +recent, repetition; rather than on the precise lines of our very last +performance. First-cousins may in this case resemble each other more +closely than brothers and sisters. + +More especially, we should not expect very successful men to be fathers +of particularly gifted children; for the best men are, as it were, the +happy thoughts and successes of the race—nature’s “flukes,” so to speak, +in her onward progress. No creature can repeat at will, and immediately, +its highest flight. It needs repose. The generations are the essays of +any given race towards the highest ideal which it is as yet able to see +ahead of itself, and this, in the nature of things, cannot be very far; +so that we should expect to see success followed by more or less failure, +and failure by success—a very successful creature being a _great_ +“fluke.” And this is what we find. + +In its earlier stages the embryo should be simply conscious of a general +method of procedure on the part of its forefathers, and should, by reason +of long practice, compress tedious and complicated histories into a very +narrow compass, remembering no single performance in particular. For we +observe this in nature, both as regards the sleight-of-hand which +practice gives to those who are thoroughly familiar with their business, +and also as regards the fusion of remoter memories into a general +residuum. + +II. We should expect to find that the offspring, whether in its +embryonic condition, or in any stage of development till it has reached +maturity, should adopt nearly the same order in going through all its +various stages. There should be such slight variations as are +inseparable from the repetition of any performance by a living being (as +contrasted with a machine), but no more. And this is what actually +happens. A man may cut his wisdom-teeth a little later than he gets his +beard and whiskers, or a little earlier; but on the whole, he adheres to +his usual order, and is completely set off his balance, and upset in his +performance, if that order be interfered with suddenly. It is, however, +likely that gradual modifications of order have been made and then +adhered to. + +After any animal has reached the period at which it ordinarily begins to +continue its race, we should expect that it should show little further +power of development, or, at any rate, that few great changes of +structure or fresh features should appear; for we cannot suppose +offspring to remember anything that happens to the parent subsequently to +the parent’s ceasing to contain the offspring within itself; from the +average age, therefore, of reproduction, offspring would cease to have +any further experience on which to fall back, and would thus continue to +make the best use of what it already knew, till memory failing either in +one part or another, the organism would begin to decay. + +To this cause must be referred the phenomena of old age, which +interesting subject I am unable to pursue within the limits of this +volume. + +Those creatures who are longest in reaching maturity might be expected +also to be the longest lived; I am not certain, however, how far what is +called alternate generation militates against this view, but I do not +think it does so seriously. + +Lateness of marriage, provided the constitution of the individuals +marrying is in no respect impaired, should also tend to longevity. + +I believe that all the above will be found sufficiently well supported by +facts. If so, when we feel that we are getting old we should try and +give our cells such treatment as they will find it most easy to +understand, through their experience of their own individual life, which, +however, can only guide them inferentially, and to a very small extent; +and throughout life we should remember the important bearing which memory +has upon health, and both occasionally cross the memories of our +component cells with slightly new experiences, and be careful not to put +them either suddenly or for long together into conditions which they will +not be able to understand. Nothing is so likely to make our cells forget +themselves, as neglect of one or other of these considerations. They +will either fail to recognise themselves completely, in which case we +shall die; or they will go on strike, more or less seriously as the case +may be, or perhaps, rather, they will try and remember their usual +course, and fail; they will therefore try some other, and will probably +make a mess of it, as people generally do when they try to do things +which they do not understand, unless indeed they have very exceptional +capacity. + +It also follows that when we are ill, our cells being in such or such a +state of mind, and inclined to hold a corresponding opinion with more or +less unreasoning violence, should not be puzzled more than they are +puzzled already, by being contradicted too suddenly; for they will not be +in a frame of mind which can understand the position of an open opponent: +they should therefore either be let alone, if possible, without notice +other than dignified silence, till their spleen is over, and till they +have remembered themselves; or they should be reasoned with as by one who +agrees with them, and who is anxious to see things as far as possible +from their own point of view. And this is how experience teaches that we +must deal with monomaniacs, whom we simply infuriate by contradiction, +but whose delusion we can sometimes persuade to hang itself if we but +give it sufficient rope. All which has its bearing upon politics, too, +at much sacrifice, it may be, of political principles, but a politician +who cannot see principles where principle-mongers fail to see them, is a +dangerous person. + +I may say, in passing, that the reason why a small wound heals, and +leaves no scar, while a larger one leaves a mark which is more or less +permanent, may be looked for in the fact that when the wound is only +small, the damaged cells are snubbed, so to speak, by the vast majority +of the unhurt cells in their own neighbourhood. When the wound is more +serious they can stick to it, and bear each other out that they were +hurt. + +III. We should expect to find a predominance of sexual over asexual +generation, in the arrangements of nature for continuing her various +species, inasmuch as two heads are better than one, and a _locus +pœnitentiæ_ is thus given to the embryo—an opportunity of correcting the +experience of one parent by that of the other. And this is what the more +intelligent embryos may be supposed to do; for there would seem little +reason to doubt that there are clever embryos and stupid embryos, with +better or worse memories, as the case may be, of how they dealt with +their protoplasm before, and better or worse able to see how they can do +better now; and that embryos differ as widely in intellectual and moral +capacity, and in a general sense of the fitness of things, and of what +will look well into the bargain, as those larger embryos—to wit, +children—do. Indeed it would seem probable that all our mental powers +must go through a quasi-embryological condition, much as the power of +keeping, and wisely spending, money must do so, and that all the +qualities of human thought and character are to be found in the embryo. + +Those who have observed at what an early age differences of intellect and +temper show themselves in the young, for example, of cats and dogs, will +find it difficult to doubt that from the very moment of impregnation, and +onward, there has been a corresponding difference in the embryo—and that +of six unborn puppies, one, we will say, has been throughout the whole +process of development more sensible and better looking—a nicer embryo, +in fact—than the others. + +IV. We should expect to find that all species, whether of plants or +animals, are occasionally benefited by a cross; but we should also expect +that a cross should have a tendency to introduce a disturbing element, if +it be too wide, inasmuch as the offspring would be pulled hither and +thither by two conflicting memories or advices, much as though a number +of people speaking at once were without previous warning to advise an +unhappy performer to vary his ordinary performance—one set of people +telling him he has always hitherto done thus, and the other saying no +less loudly that he did it thus;—and he were suddenly to become convinced +that they each spoke the truth. In such a case he will either completely +break down, if the advice be too conflicting, or if it be less +conflicting, he may yet be so exhausted by the one supreme effort of +fusing these experiences that he will never be able to perform again; or +if the conflict of experience be not great enough to produce such a +permanent effect as this, it will yet, if it be at all serious, probably +damage his performances on their next several occasions, through his +inability to fuse the experiences into a harmonious whole, or, in other +words, to understand the ideas which are prescribed to him; for to fuse +is only to understand. + +And this is absolutely what we find in fact. Mr. Darwin writes +concerning hybrids and first crosses:—“The male element may reach the +female element, but be incapable of causing an embryo to be developed, as +seems to have been the case with some of Thuret’s experiments on Fuci. +No explanation can be given of these facts any more than why certain +trees cannot be grafted on others.” + +I submit that what I have written above supplies a very fair _primâ +facie_ explanation. + +Mr. Darwin continues:— + +“Lastly, an embryo may be developed, and then perish at an early period. +This latter alternative has not been sufficiently attended to; but I +believe, from observations communicated to me by Mr. Hewitt, who has had +great experience in hybridising pheasants and fowls, that the early death +of the embryo is a very frequent cause of sterility in first crosses. +Mr. Salter has recently given the results of an examination of about five +hundred eggs produced from various crosses between three species of +Gallus and their hybrids; the majority of these eggs had been fertilised; +and in the majority of the fertilised eggs, the embryos had either been +partially developed, and had then perished, or had become nearly mature, +but the young chickens had been unable to break through the shell. Of +the chickens which were born more than four-fifths died within the first +few days, or at latest weeks, ‘without any obvious cause, apparently from +mere inability to live,’ so that from the five hundred eggs only twelve +chickens were reared” (“Origin of Species,” 249, ed. 1876). + +No wonder the poor creatures died, distracted as they were by the +internal tumult of conflicting memories. But they must have suffered +greatly; and the Society for the Prevention of Cruelty to Animals may +perhaps think it worth while to keep an eye even on the embryos of +hybrids and first crosses. Five hundred creatures puzzled to death is +not a pleasant subject for contemplation. Ten or a dozen should, I +think, be sufficient for the future. + +As regards plants, we read:— + +“Hybridised embryos probably often perish in like manner . . . of which +fact Max Wichura has given some striking cases with hybrid willows . . . +It may be here worth noticing, that in some cases of parthenogenesis, the +embryos within the eggs of silk moths, which have not been fertilised, +pass through their early stages of development, and then perish like the +embryos produced by a cross between distinct species” (_Ibid_). + +This last fact would at first sight seem to make against me, but we must +consider that the presence of a double memory, provided it be not too +conflicting, would be a part of the experience of the silk moth’s egg, +which might be then as fatally puzzled by the monotony of a single memory +as it would be by two memories which were not sufficiently like each +other. So that failure here must be referred to the utter absence of +that little internal stimulant of slightly conflicting memory which the +creature has always hitherto experienced, and without which it fails to +recognise itself. In either case, then, whether with hybrids or in cases +of parthenogenesis, the early death of the embryo is due to inability to +recollect, owing to a fault in the chain of associated ideas. All the +facts here given are an excellent illustration of the principle, +elsewhere insisted upon by Mr. Darwin, that _any_ great and sudden change +of surroundings has a tendency to induce sterility; on which head he +writes (“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” vol. ii. p. 143, ed. +1875):— + +“It would appear that any change in the habits of life, whatever their +habits may be, if great enough, tends to affect in an inexplicable manner +the powers of reproduction.” + +And again on the next page:— + +“Finally, we must conclude, limited though the conclusion is, that +changed conditions of life have an especial power of acting injuriously +on the reproductive system. The whole case is quite peculiar, for these +organs, though not diseased, are thus rendered incapable of performing +their proper functions, or perform them imperfectly.” + +One is inclined to doubt whether the blame may not rest with the +inability on the part of the creature reproduced to recognise the new +surroundings, and hence with its failing to know itself. And this seems +to be in some measure supported—but not in such a manner as I can hold to +be quite satisfactory—by the continuation of the passage in the “Origin +of Species,” from which I have just been quoting—for Mr. Darwin goes on +to say:— + +“Hybrids, however, are differently circumstanced before and after birth. +When born, and living in a country where their parents live, they are +generally placed under suitable conditions of life. But a hybrid +partakes of only half of the nature and condition of its mother; it may +therefore before birth, as long as it is nourished within its mother’s +womb, or within the egg or seed produced by its mother, be exposed to +conditions in some degree unsuitable, and consequently be liable to +perish at an early period . . . ” After which, however, the conclusion +arrived at is, that, “after all, the cause more probably lies in some +imperfection in the original act of impregnation, causing the embryo to +be imperfectly developed rather than in the conditions to which it is +subsequently exposed.” A conclusion which I am not prepared to accept. + +Returning to my second alternative, that is to say, to the case of +hybrids which are born well developed and healthy, but nevertheless +perfectly sterile, it is less obvious why, having succeeded in +understanding the conflicting memories of their parents, they should fail +to produce offspring; but I do not think the reader will feel surprised +that this should be the case. The following anecdote, true or false, may +not be out of place here:— + +“Plutarch tells us of a magpie, belonging to a barber at Rome, which +could imitate to a nicety almost every word it heard. Some trumpets +happened one day to be sounded before the shop, and for a day or two +afterwards the magpie was quite mute, and seemed pensive and melancholy. +All who knew it were greatly surprised at its silence; and it was +supposed that the sound of the trumpets had so stunned it as to deprive +it at once of both voice and hearing. It soon appeared, however, that +this was far from being the case; for, says Plutarch, the bird had been +all the time occupied in profound meditation, studying how to imitate the +sound of the trumpets; and when at last master of it, the magpie, to the +astonishment of all its friends, suddenly broke its long silence by a +perfect imitation of the flourish of trumpets it had heard, observing +with the greatest exactness all the repetitions, stops, and changes. +_The acquisition of this lesson had_, _however_, _exhausted the whole of +the magpie’s stock of intellect_, _for it made it forget everything it +had learned before_” (“Percy Anecdotes,” Instinct, p. 166). + +Or, perhaps, more seriously, the memory of every impregnate ovum from +which every ancestor of a mule, for example, has sprung, has reverted to +a very long period of time during which its forefathers have been +creatures like that which it is itself now going to become: thus, the +impregnate ovum from which the mule’s father was developed remembered +nothing but horse memories; but it felt its faith in these supported by +the recollection of a _vast number_ of previous generations, in which it +was, to all intents and purposes, what it now is. In like manner, the +impregnate ovum from which the mule’s mother was developed would be +backed by the assurance that it had done what it is going to do now a +hundred thousand times already. All would thus be plain sailing. A +horse and a donkey would result. These two are brought together; an +impregnate ovum is produced which finds an unusual conflict of memory +between the two lines of its ancestors, nevertheless, being accustomed to +_some_ conflict, it manages to get over the difficulty, _as on either +side it finds itself backed by a very long series of sufficiently steady +memory_. A mule results—a creature so distinctly different from either +horse or donkey, that reproduction is baffled, owing to the creature’s +having nothing but its own knowledge of itself to fall back upon, behind +which there comes an immediate dislocation, or fault of memory, which is +sufficient to bar identity, and hence reproduction, by rendering too +severe an appeal to reason necessary—for no creature can reproduce itself +on the shallow foundation which reason can alone give. Ordinarily, +therefore, the hybrid, or the spermatozoon or ovum, which it may throw +off (as the case may be), finds one single experience too small to give +it the necessary faith, on the strength of which even to try to reproduce +itself. In other cases the hybrid itself has failed to be developed; in +others the hybrid, or first cross, is almost fertile; in others it is +fertile, but produces depraved issue. The result will vary with the +capacities of the creatures crossed, and the amount of conflict between +their several experiences. + +The above view would remove all difficulties out of the way of evolution, +in so far as the sterility of hybrids is concerned. For it would thus +appear that this sterility has nothing to do with any supposed immutable +or fixed limits of species, but results simply from the same principle +which prevents old friends, no matter how intimate in youth, from +returning to their old intimacy after a lapse of years, during which they +have been subjected to widely different influences, inasmuch as they will +each have contracted new habits, and have got into new ways, which they +do not like now to alter. + +We should expect that our domesticated plants and animals should vary +most, inasmuch as these have been subjected to changed conditions which +would disturb the memory, and, breaking the chain of recollection, +through failure of some one or other of the associated ideas, would thus +directly and most markedly affect the reproductive system. Every reader +of Mr. Darwin will know that this is what actually happens, and also that +when once a plant or animal begins to vary, it will probably vary a good +deal further; which, again, is what we should expect—the disturbance of +the memory introducing a fresh factor of disturbance, which has to be +dealt with by the offspring as it best may. Mr. Darwin writes: “All our +domesticated productions, with the rarest exceptions, vary far more than +natural species” (“Plants and Animals,” &c., vol. ii. p. 241, ed. 1875). + +On my third supposition, _i.e._, when the difference between parents has +not been great enough to baffle reproduction on the part of the first +cross, but when the histories of the father and mother have been, +nevertheless, widely different—as in the case of Europeans and Indians—we +should expect to have a race of offspring who should seem to be quite +clear only about those points, on which their progenitors on both sides +were in accord before the manifold divergencies in their experiences +commenced; that is to say, the offspring should show a tendency to revert +to an early savage condition. + +That this indeed occurs may be seen from Mr. Darwin’s “Plants and Animals +under Domestication” (vol. ii. p. 21, ed. 1875), where we find that +travellers in all parts of the world have frequently remarked “_on the +degraded state and savage condition of crossed races of man_.” A few +lines lower down Mr. Darwin tells us that he was himself “struck with the +fact that, in South America, men of complicated descent between Negroes, +Indians, and Spaniards seldom had, whatever the cause might be, a good +expression.” “Livingstone” (continues Mr. Darwin) “remarks, ‘It is +unaccountable why half-castes are so much more cruel than the Portuguese, +but such is undoubtedly the case.’ An inhabitant remarked to +Livingstone, ‘God made white men, and God made black men, but the devil +made half-castes.’” A little further on Mr. Darwin says that we may +“perhaps infer that the degraded state of so many half-castes _is in part +due to reversion to a primitive and savage condition_, _induced by the +act of crossing_, even if mainly due to the unfavourable moral conditions +under which they are generally reared.” Why the crossing should produce +this particular tendency would seem to be intelligible enough, if the +fashion and instincts of offspring are, in any case, nothing but the +memories of its past existences; but it would hardly seem to be so upon +any of the theories now generally accepted; as, indeed, is very readily +admitted by Mr. Darwin himself, who even, as regards purely-bred animals +and plants, remarks that “we are quite unable to assign any proximate +cause” for their tendency to at times reassume long lost characters. + +If the reader will follow for himself the remaining phenomena of +reversion, he will, I believe, find them all explicable on the theory +that they are due to memory of past experiences fused, and modified—at +times specifically and definitely—by changed conditions. There is, +however, one apparently very important phenomenon which I do not at this +moment see how to connect with memory, namely, the tendency on the part +of offspring to revert to an earlier impregnation. Mr. Darwin’s +“Provisional Theory of Pangenesis” seemed to afford a satisfactory +explanation of this; but the connection with memory was not immediately +apparent. I think it likely, however, that this difficulty will vanish +on further consideration, so I will not do more than call attention to it +here. + +The instincts of certain neuter insects hardly bear upon reversion, but +will be dealt with at some length in Chapter XII. + +V. We should expect to find, as was insisted on in the preceding section +in reference to the sterility of hybrids, that it required many, or at +any rate several, generations of changed habits before a sufficiently +deep impression could be made upon the living being (who must be regarded +always as one person in his whole line of ascent or descent) for it to be +unconsciously remembered by him, when making himself anew in any +succeeding generation, and thus to make him modify his method of +procedure during his next embryological development. Nevertheless, we +should expect to find that sometimes a very deep single impression made +upon a living organism, should be remembered by it, even when it is next +in an embryonic condition. + +That this is so, we find from Mr. Darwin, who writes (“Plants and Animals +under Domestication,” vol. ii. p. 57, ed. 1875)—“There is ample evidence +that the effect of mutilations and of accidents, especially, or perhaps +exclusively, when followed by disease” (which would certainly intensify +the impression made), “are occasionally inherited. There can be no doubt +that the evil effects of the long continued exposure of the parent to +injurious conditions are sometimes transmitted to the offspring.” As +regards impressions of a less striking character, it is so universally +admitted that they are not observed to be repeated in what is called the +offspring, until they have been confirmed in what is called the parent, +for several generations, but that after several generations, more or +fewer as the case may be, they often are transmitted—that it seems +unnecessary to say more upon the matter. Perhaps, however, the following +passage from Mr. Darwin may be admitted as conclusive:— + +“That they” (acquired actions) “are inherited, we see with horses in +certain transmitted paces, such as cantering and ambling, which are not +natural to them—in the pointing of young pointers, and the setting of +young setters—in the peculiar manner of flight of certain breeds of the +pigeon, &c. We have analogous cases with mankind in the inheritance of +tricks or unusual gestures.” . . . (“Expression of the Emotions,” p. 29). + +In another place Mr. Darwin writes:— + +“How again can we explain _the inherited effects_ of the use or disuse of +particular organs? The domesticated duck flies less and walks more than +the wild duck, and its limb bones have become diminished and increased in +a corresponding manner in comparison with those of the wild duck. A +horse is trained to certain paces, and the colt inherits similar +consensual movements. The domesticated rabbit becomes tame from close +confinement; the dog intelligent from associating with man; the retriever +is taught to fetch and carry; and these mental endowments and bodily +powers are all inherited” (“Plants and Animals,” &c., vol. ii. p. 367, +ed. 1875). + +“Nothing,” he continues, “in the whole circuit of physiology is more +wonderful. How can the use or disuse of a particular limb, or of the +brain, affect a small aggregate of reproductive cells, seated in a +distant part of the body in such a manner that the being developed from +these cells inherits the character of one or both parents? Even an +imperfect answer to this question would be satisfactory” (“Plants and +Animals,” &c. vol. ii. p. 367, ed. 1875). + +With such an imperfect answer will I attempt to satisfy the reader, as to +say that there appears to be that kind of continuity of existence and +sameness of personality, between parents and offspring, which would lead +us to expect that the impressions made upon the parent should be +epitomised in the offspring, when they have been or have become important +enough, through repetition in the history of several so-called existences +to have earned a place in that smaller edition, which is issued from +generation to generation; or, in other words, when they have been made so +deeply, either at one blow or through many, that the offspring can +remember them. In practice we observe this to be the case—so that the +answer lies in the assertion that offspring and parent, being in one +sense but the same individual, there is no great wonder that, in one +sense, the first should remember what had happened to the latter; and +that too, much in the same way as the individual remembers the events in +the earlier history of what he calls his own lifetime, but condensed, and +pruned of detail, and remembered as by one who has had a host of other +matters to attend to in the interim. + +It is thus easy to understand why such a rite as circumcision, though +practised during many ages, should have produced little, if any, +modification tending to make circumcision unnecessary. On the view here +supported such modification would be more surprising than not, for unless +the impression made upon the parent was of a grave character—and probably +unless also aggravated by subsequent confusion of memories in the cells +surrounding the part originally impressed—the parent himself would not be +sufficiently impressed to prevent him from reproducing himself, as he had +already done upon an infinite number of past occasions. The child, +therefore, in the womb would do what the father in the womb had done +before him, nor should any trace of memory concerning circumcision be +expected till the eighth day after birth, when, but for the fact that the +impression in this case is forgotten almost as soon as made, some slight +presentiment of coming discomfort might, after a large number of +generations, perhaps be looked for as a general rule. It would not, +however, be surprising, that the effect of circumcision should be +occasionally inherited, and it would appear as though this was sometimes +actually the case. + +The question should turn upon whether the disuse of an organ has arisen:— + +1. From an internal desire on the part of the creature disusing it, to +be quit of an organ which it finds troublesome. + +2. From changed conditions and habits which render the organ no longer +necessary, or which lead the creature to lay greater stress on certain +other organs or modifications. + +3. From the wish of others outside itself; the effect produced in this +case being perhaps neither very good nor very bad for the individual, and +resulting in no grave impression upon the organism as a whole. + +4. From a single deep impression on a parent, affecting both himself as +a whole, and gravely confusing the memories of the cells to be +reproduced, or his memories in respect of those cells—according as one +adopts Pangenesis and supposes a memory to “run” each gemmule, or as one +supposes one memory to “run” the whole impregnate ovum—a compromise +between these two views being nevertheless perhaps possible, inasmuch as +the combined memories of all the cells may possibly _be_ the memory which +“runs” the impregnate ovum, just as we _are_ ourselves the combination of +all our cells, each one of which is both autonomous, and also takes its +share in the central government. But within the limits of this volume it +is absolutely impossible for me to go into this question. + +In the first case—under which some instances which belong more strictly +to the fourth would sometimes, but rarely, come—the organ should soon go, +and sooner or later leave no rudiment, though still perhaps to be found +crossing the life of the embryo, and then disappearing. + +In the second it should go more slowly, and leave, it may be, a +rudimentary structure. + +In the third it should show little or no sign of natural decrease for a +very long time. + +In the fourth there may be absolute and total sterility, or sterility in +regard to the particular organ, or a scar which shall show that the +memory of the wound and of each step in the process of healing has been +remembered; or there may be simply such disturbance in the reproduced +organ as shall show a confused recollection of injury. There may be +infinite gradations between the first and last of these possibilities. + +I think that the facts, as given by Mr. Darwin (“Plants and Animals,” +&c., vol. i. pp. 466–472, ed. 1875), will bear out the above to the +satisfaction of the reader. I can, however, only quote the following +passage:— + +“ . . . Brown Séquard has bred during thirty years many thousand +guinea-pigs, . . . nor has he ever seen a guinea-pig born without toes +which was not the offspring of parents _which had gnawed off their own +toes_, owing to the sciatic nerve having been divided. Of this fact +thirteen instances were carefully recorded, and a greater number were +seen; yet Brown Séquard speaks of such cases as among the rarer forms of +inheritance. It is a still more interesting fact—‘that the sciatic nerve +in the congenitally toeless animal has inherited the power of passing +through _all the different morbid states_ which have occurred in one of +its parents _from the time of division_ till after its reunion with the +peripheric end. It is not therefore the power of simply performing an +action which is inherited, but the power of performing a whole series of +actions in a certain order.’” + +I feel inclined to say it is not merely the original wound that is +remembered, but the whole process of cure which is now accordingly +repeated. Brown Séquard concludes, as Mr. Darwin tells us, “that what is +transmitted is the morbid state of the nervous system,” due to the +operation performed on the parents. + +A little lower down Mr. Darwin writes that Professor Rolleston has given +him two cases—“namely, of two men, one of whom had his knee, and the +other his cheek, severely cut, and both had children born with exactly +the same spot marked or scarred.” + +VI. When, however, an impression has once reached transmission +point—whether it be of the nature of a sudden striking thought, which +makes its mark deeply then and there, or whether it be the result of +smaller impressions repeated until the nail, so to speak, has been driven +home—we should expect that it should be remembered by the offspring as +something which he has done all his life, and which he has therefore no +longer any occasion to learn; he will act, therefore, as people say, +_instinctively_. No matter how complex and difficult the process, if the +parents have done it sufficiently often (that is to say, for a sufficient +number of generations), the offspring will remember the fact when +association wakens the memory; it will need no instruction, and—unless +when it has been taught to look for it during many generations—will +expect none. This may be seen in the case of the humming-bird sphinx +moth, which, as Mr. Darwin writes, “shortly after its emergence from the +cocoon, as shown by the bloom on its unruffled scales, may be seen poised +stationary in the air with its long hair-like proboscis uncurled, and +inserted into the minute orifices of flowers; _and no one I believe has +ever seen_ this moth learning to perform its difficult task, which +requires such unerring aim” (“Expression of the Emotions,” p. 30). + +And, indeed, when we consider that after a time the most complex and +difficult actions come to be performed by man without the least effort or +consciousness—that offspring cannot be considered as anything but a +continuation of the parent life, whose past habits and experiences it +epitomises when they have been sufficiently often repeated to produce a +lasting impression—that consciousness of memory vanishes on the memory’s +becoming intense, as completely as the consciousness of complex and +difficult movements vanishes as soon as they have been sufficiently +practised—and finally, that the real presence of memory is testified +rather by performance of the repeated action on recurrence of like +surroundings, than by consciousness of recollecting on the part of the +individual—so that not only should there be no reasonable bar to our +attributing the whole range of the more complex instinctive actions, from +first to last, to memory pure and simple, no matter how marvellous they +may be, but rather that there is so much to compel us to do so, that we +find it difficult to conceive how any other view can have been ever +taken—when, I say, we consider all these facts, we should rather feel +surprise that the hawk and sparrow still teach their offspring to fly, +than that the humming-bird sphinx moth should need no teacher. + +The phenomena, then, which we observe are exactly those which we should +expect to find. + +VII. We should also expect that the memory of animals, as regards their +earlier existences, was solely stimulated by association. For we find, +from Prof. Bain, that “actions, sensations, and states of feeling +occurring together, or in close succession, tend to grow together or +cohere in such a way that when any one of them is afterwards presented to +the mind, the others are apt to be brought up in idea” (“The Senses and +the Intellect,” 2d ed. 1864, p. 332). And Prof. Huxley says (“Elementary +Lessons in Physiology,” 5th ed. 1872, p. 306), “It may be laid down as a +rule that if any two mental states be called up together, or in +succession, with due frequency and vividness, the subsequent production +of the one of them will suffice to call up the other, _and that whether +we desire it or not_.” I would go one step further, and would say not +only whether we desire it or not, but _whether we are aware that the idea +has ever before been called up in our minds or not_. I should say that I +have quoted both the above passages from Mr. Darwin’s “Expression of the +Emotions” (p. 30, ed. 1872). + +We should, therefore, expect that when the offspring found itself in the +presence of objects which had called up such and such ideas for a +sufficient number of generations, that is to say, “with due frequency and +vividness”—it being of the same age as its parents were, and generally in +like case as when the ideas were called up in the minds of the +parents—the same ideas should also be called up in the minds of the +offspring “_whether they desire it or not_;” and, I would say also, +“whether they recognise the ideas as having ever before been present to +them or not.” + +I think we might also expect that no other force, save that of +association, should have power to kindle, so to speak, into the flame of +action the atomic spark of memory, which we can alone suppose to be +transmitted from one generation to another. + +That both plants and animals do as we should expect of them in this +respect is plain, not only from the performance of the most intricate and +difficult actions—difficult both physically and intellectually—at an age, +and under circumstances which preclude all possibility of what we call +instruction, but from the fact that deviations from the parental +instinct, or rather the recurrence of a memory, unless in connection with +the accustomed train of associations, is of comparatively rare +occurrence; the result, commonly, of some one of the many memories about +which we know no more than we do of the memory which enables a cat to +find her way home after a hundred-mile journey by train, and shut up in a +hamper, or, perhaps even more commonly, of abnormal treatment. + +VIII. If, then, memory depends on association, we should expect two +corresponding phenomena in the case of plants and animals—namely, that +they should show a tendency to resume feral habits on being turned wild +after several generations of domestication, and also that peculiarities +should tend to show themselves at a corresponding age in the offspring +and in the parents. As regards the tendency to resume feral habits, Mr. +Darwin, though apparently of opinion that the tendency to do this has +been much exaggerated, yet does not doubt that such a tendency exists, as +shown by well authenticated instances. He writes: “It has been +repeatedly asserted in the most positive manner by various authors that +feral animals and plants invariably return to their primitive specific +type.” + +This shows, at any rate, that there is a considerable opinion to this +effect among observers generally. + +He continues: “It is curious on what little evidence this belief rests. +Many of our domesticated animals could not subsist in a wild state,”—so +that there is no knowing whether they would or would not revert. “In +several cases we do not know the aboriginal parent species, and cannot +tell whether or not there has been any close degree of reversion.” So +that here, too, there is at any rate no evidence _against_ the tendency; +the conclusion, however, is that, notwithstanding the deficiency of +positive evidence to warrant the general belief as to the force of the +tendency, yet “the simple fact of animals and plants becoming feral does +cause some tendency to revert to the primitive state,” and he tells us +that “when variously-coloured tame rabbits are turned out in Europe, they +generally re-acquire the colouring of the wild animal;” “there can be no +doubt,” he says, “that this really does occur,” though he seems inclined +to account for it by the fact that oddly-coloured and conspicuous animals +would suffer much from beasts of prey and from being easily shot. “The +best known case of reversion:” he continues, “and that on which the +widely-spread belief in its universality apparently rests, is that of +pigs. These animals have run wild in the West Indies, South America, and +the Falkland Islands, and have everywhere re-acquired the dark colour, +the thick bristles, and great tusks of the wild boar; and the young have +re-acquired longitudinal stripes.” And on page 22 of “Plants and Animals +under Domestication” (vol. ii. ed. 1875) we find that “the re-appearance +of coloured, longitudinal stripes on young feral pigs cannot be +attributed to the direct action of external conditions. In this case, +and in many others, we can only say that any change in the habits of life +apparently favours a tendency, inherent or latent, in the species to +return to the primitive state.” On which one cannot but remark that +though any change may favour such tendency, yet the return to original +habits and surroundings appears to do so in a way so marked as not to be +readily referable to any other cause than that of association and +memory—the creature, in fact, having got into its old groove, remembers +it, and takes to all its old ways. + +As regards the tendency to inherit changes (whether embryonic, or during +post-natal development as ordinarily observed in any species), or +peculiarities of habit or form which do not partake of the nature of +disease, it must be sufficient to refer the reader to Mr. Darwin’s +remarks upon this subject (“Plants and Animals Under Domestication,” vol. +ii. pp. 51–57, ed. 1875). The existence of the tendency is not likely to +be denied. The instances given by Mr. Darwin are strictly to the point +as regards all ordinary developmental and metamorphic changes, and even +as regards transmitted acquired actions, and tricks acquired before the +time when the offspring has issued from the body of the parent, or on an +average of many generations does so; but it cannot for a moment be +supposed that the offspring knows by inheritance anything about what +happens to the parent subsequently to the offspring’s being born. Hence +the appearance of diseases in the offspring, at comparatively late +periods in life, but at the same age as, or earlier, than in the parents, +must be regarded as due to the fact that in each case the machine having +been made after the same pattern (which _is_ due to memory), is liable to +have the same weak points, and to break down after a similar amount of +wear and tear; but after less wear and tear in the case of the offspring +than in that of the parent, because a diseased organism is commonly a +deteriorating organism, and if repeated at all closely, and without +repentance and amendment of life, will be repeated for the worse. If we +do not improve, we grow worse. This, at least, is what we observe daily. + +Nor again can we believe, as some have fancifully imagined, that the +remembrance of any occurrence of which the effect has been entirely, or +almost entirely mental, should be remembered by offspring with any +definiteness. The intellect of the offspring might be affected, for +better or worse, by the general nature of the intellectual employment of +the parent; or a great shock to a parent might destroy or weaken the +intellect of the offspring; but unless a deep impression were made upon +the cells of the body, and deepened by subsequent disease, we could not +expect it to be remembered with any definiteness, or precision. We may +talk as we will about mental pain, and mental scars, but after all, the +impressions they leave are incomparably less durable than those made by +an organic lesion. It is probable, therefore, that the feeling which so +many have described, as though they remembered this or that in some past +existence, is purely imaginary, and due rather to unconscious recognition +of the fact that we certainly have lived before, than to any actual +occurrence corresponding to the supposed recollection. + +And lastly, we should look to find in the action of memory, as between +one generation and another, a reflection of the many anomalies and +exceptions to ordinary rules which we observe in memory, so far as we can +watch its action in what we call our own single lives, and the single +lives of others. We should expect that reversion should be frequently +capricious—that is to say, give us more trouble to account for than we +are either able or willing to take. And assuredly we find it so in fact. +Mr. Darwin—from whom it is impossible to quote too much or too fully, +inasmuch as no one else can furnish such a store of facts, so well +arranged, and so above all suspicion of either carelessness or want of +candour—so that, however we may differ from him, it is he himself who +shows us how to do so, and whose pupils we all are—Mr. Darwin writes: “In +every living being we may rest assured that a host of long-lost +characters lie ready to be evolved under proper conditions” (does not one +almost long to substitute the word “memories” for the word “characters?”) +“How can we make intelligible, and connect with other facts, this +wonderful and common capacity of reversion—this power of calling back to +life long-lost characters?” (“Plants and Animals,” &c., vol. ii. p. 369, +ed. 1875). Surely the answer may be hazarded, that we shall be able to +do so when we can make intelligible the power of calling back to life +long-lost memories. But I grant that this answer holds out no immediate +prospect of a clear understanding. + +One word more. Abundant facts are to be found which point inevitably, as +will appear more plainly in the following chapter, in the direction of +thinking that offspring inherits the memories of its parents; but I know +of no single fact which suggests that parents are in the smallest degree +affected (other than sympathetically) by the memories of their offspring +_after that offspring has been born_. Whether the unborn offspring +affects the memory of the mother in some particulars, and whether we have +here the explanation of occasional reversion to a previous impregnation, +is a matter on which I should hardly like to express an opinion now. +Nor, again, can I find a single fact which seems to indicate any memory +of the parental life on the part of offspring later than the average date +of the offspring’s quitting the body of the parent. + + + + +CHAPTER XI. +INSTINCT AS INHERITED MEMORY. + + +I HAVE already alluded to M. Ribot’s work on “Heredity,” from which I +will now take the following passages. + +M. Ribot writes:— + +“Instinct is innate, _i.e._, _anterior to all individual experience_.” +This I deny on grounds already abundantly apparent; but let it pass. +“Whereas intelligence is developed slowly by accumulated experience, +instinct is perfect from the first” (“Heredity,” p. 14). + +Obviously the memory of a habit or experience will not commonly be +transmitted to offspring in that perfection which is called “instinct,” +till the habit or experience has been repeated in several generations +with more or less uniformity; for otherwise the impression made will not +be strong enough to endure through the busy and difficult task of +reproduction. This of course involves that the habit shall have +attained, as it were equilibrium with the creature’s sense of its own +needs, so that it shall have long seemed the best course possible, +leaving upon the whole and under ordinary circumstances little further to +be desired, and hence that it should have been little varied during many +generations. We should expect that it would be transmitted in a more or +less partial, varying, imperfect, and intelligent condition before +equilibrium had been attained; it would, however, continually tend +towards equilibrium, for reasons which will appear more fully later on. + +When this stage has been reached, as regards any habit, the creature will +cease trying to improve; on which the repetition of the habit will become +stable, and hence become capable of more unerring transmission—but at the +same time improvement will cease; the habit will become fixed, and be +perhaps transmitted at an earlier and earlier age, till it has reached +that date of manifestation which shall be found most agreeable to the +other habits of the creature. It will also be manifested, as a matter of +course, without further consciousness or reflection, for people cannot be +always opening up settled questions; if they thought a matter over +yesterday they cannot think it all over again to-day, but will adopt for +better or worse the conclusion then reached; and this, too, even in spite +sometimes of considerable misgiving, that if they were to think still +further they could find a still better course. It is not, therefore, to +be expected that “instinct” should show signs of that hesitating and +tentative action which results from knowledge that is still so imperfect +as to be actively self-conscious; nor yet that it should grow or vary, +unless under such changed conditions as shall baffle memory, and present +the alternative of either invention—that is to say, variation—or death. +But every instinct must have poised through the laboriously intelligent +stages through which human civilisations _and mechanical inventions_ are +now passing; and he who would study the origin of an instinct with its +development, partial transmission, further growth, further transmission, +approach to more unreflecting stability, and finally, its perfection as +an unerring and unerringly transmitted instinct, must look to laws, +customs, _and machinery_ as his best instructors. Customs and machines +are instincts _and organs_ now in process of development; they will +assuredly one day reach the unconscious state of equilibrium which we +observe in the structures and instincts of bees and ants, and an approach +to which may be found among some savage nations. We may reflect, +however, not without pleasure, that this condition—the true millennium—is +still distant. Nevertheless the ants and bees seem happy; perhaps more +happy than when so many social questions were in as hot discussion among +them, as other, and not dissimilar ones, will one day be amongst +ourselves. + +And this, as will be apparent, opens up the whole question of the +stability of species, which we cannot follow further here, than to say, +that according to the balance of testimony, many plants and animals do +appear to have reached a phase of being from which they are hard to +move—that is to say, they will die sooner than be at the pains of +altering their habits—true martyrs to their convictions. Such races +refuse to see changes in their surroundings as long as they can, but when +compelled to recognise them, they throw up the game because they cannot +and will not, or will not and cannot, invent. And this is perfectly +intelligible, for a race is nothing but a long-lived individual, and like +any individual, or tribe of men whom we have yet observed, will have its +special capacities and its special limitations, though, as in the case of +the individual, so also with the race, it is exceedingly hard to say what +those limitations are, and why, having been able to go so far, it should +go no further. Every man and every race is capable of education up to a +certain point, but not to the extent of being made from a sow’s ear into +a silk purse. The proximate cause of the limitation seems to lie in the +absence of the wish to go further; the presence or absence of the wish +will depend upon the nature and surroundings of the individual, which is +simply a way of saying that one can get no further, but that as the song +(with a slight alteration) says:— + + “Some breeds do, and some breeds don’t, + Some breeds will, but this breed won’t, + I tried very often to see if it would, + But it said it really couldn’t, and I don’t think it could.” + +It may perhaps be maintained, that with time and patience, one might +train a rather stupid plough-boy to understand the differential calculus. +This might be done with the help of an inward desire on the part of the +boy to learn, but never otherwise. If the boy wants to learn or to +improve generally, he will do so in spite of every hindrance, till in +time he becomes a very different being from what he was originally. If +he does not want to learn, he will not do so for any wish of another +person. If he feels that he has the power he will wish; or if he wishes, +he will begin to think he has the power, and try to fulfil his wishes; +one cannot say which comes first, for the power and the desire go always +hand in hand, or nearly so, and the whole business is nothing but a most +vicious circle from first to last. But it is plain that there is more to +be said on behalf of such circles than we have been in the habit of +thinking. Do what we will, we must each one of us argue in a circle of +our own, from which, so long as we live at all, we can by no possibility +escape. I am not sure whether the frank acceptation and recognition of +this fact is not the best corrective for dogmatism that we are likely to +find. + +We can understand that a pigeon might in the course of ages grow to be a +peacock if there was a persistent desire on the part of the pigeon +through all these ages to do so. We know very well that this has not +probably occurred in nature, inasmuch as no pigeon is at all likely to +wish to be very different from what it is now. The idea of being +anything very different from what it now is, would be too wide a cross +with the pigeon’s other ideas for it to entertain it seriously. If the +pigeon had never seen a peacock, it would not be able to conceive the +idea, so as to be able to make towards it; if, on the other hand, it had +seen one, it would not probably either want to become one, or think that +it would be any use wanting seriously, even though it were to feel a +passing fancy to be so gorgeously arrayed; it would therefore lack that +faith without which no action, and with which, every action, is possible. + +That creatures have conceived the idea of making themselves like other +creatures or objects which it was to their advantage or pleasure to +resemble, will be believed by any one who turns to Mr. Mivart’s “Genesis +of Species,” where he will find (chapter ii.) an account of some very +showy South American butterflies, which give out such a strong odour that +nothing will eat them, and which are hence mimicked both in appearance +and flight by a very different kind of butterfly; and, again, we see that +certain birds, without any particular desire of gain, no sooner hear any +sound than they begin to mimick it, merely for the pleasure of mimicking; +so we all enjoy to mimick, or to hear good mimicry, so also monkeys +imitate the actions which they observe, from pure force of sympathy. To +mimick, or to wish to mimick, is doubtless often one of the first steps +towards varying in any given direction. Not less, in all probability, +than a full twenty per cent. of all the courage and good nature now +existing in the world, derives its origin, at no very distant date, from +a desire to appear courageous and good-natured. And this suggests a work +whose title should be “On the Fine Arts as bearing on the Reproductive +System,” of which the title must suffice here. + +Against faith, then, and desire, all the “natural selection” in the world +will not stop an amœba from becoming an elephant, if a reasonable time be +granted; without the faith and the desire, neither “natural selection” +nor artificial breeding will be able to do much in the way of modifying +any structure. When we have once thoroughly grasped the conception that +we are all one creature, and that each one of us is many millions of +years old, so that all the pigeons in the one line of an infinite number +of generations are still one pigeon only—then we can understand that a +bird, as different from a peacock as a pigeon is now, could yet have +wandered on and on, first this way and then that, doing what it liked, +and thought that it could do, till it found itself at length a peacock; +but we cannot believe either that a bird like a pigeon should be able to +apprehend any ideal so different from itself as a peacock, and make +towards it, or that man, having wished to breed a bird anything like a +peacock from a bird anything like a pigeon, would be able to succeed in +accumulating accidental peacock-like variations till he had made the bird +he was in search of, no matter in what number of generations; much less +can we believe that the accumulation of small fortuitous variations by +“natural selection” could succeed better. We can no more believe the +above, than we can believe that a wish outside a plough-boy could turn +him into a senior wrangler. The boy would prove to be too many for his +teacher, and so would the pigeon for its breeder. + +I do not forget that artificial breeding has modified the original type +of the horse and the dog, till it has at length produced the dray-horse +and the greyhound; but in each case man has had to get use and +disuse—that is to say, the desires of the animal itself—to help him. + +We are led, then, to the conclusion that all races have what for +practical purposes may be considered as their limits, though there is no +saying what those limits are, nor indeed why, in theory, there should be +any limits at all, but only that there are limits in practice. Races +which vary considerably must be considered as clever, but it may be +speculative, people who commonly have a genius in some special direction, +as perhaps for mimicry, perhaps for beauty, perhaps for music, perhaps +for the higher mathematics, but seldom in more than one or two +directions; while “inflexible organisations,” like that of the goose, may +be considered as belonging to people with one idea, and the greater +tendency of plants and animals to vary under domestication may be +reasonably compared with the effects of culture and education: that is to +say, may be referred to increased range and variety of experience or +perceptions, which will either cause sterility, if they be too +unfamiliar, so as to be incapable of fusion with preceding ideas, and +hence to bring memory to a sudden fault, or will open the door for all +manner of further variation—the new ideas having suggested new trains of +thought, which a clever example of a clever race will be only too eager +to pursue. + +Let us now return to M. Ribot. He writes (p. 14):—“The duckling hatched +by the hen makes straight for water.” In what conceivable way can we +account for this, except on the supposition that the duckling knows +perfectly well what it can, and what it cannot do with water, owing to +its recollection of what it did when it was still one individuality with +its parents, and hence, when it was a duckling before? + +“The squirrel, before it knows anything of winter, lays up a store of +nuts. A bird when hatched in a cage will, when given its freedom, build +for itself a nest like that of its parents, out of the same materials, +and of the same shape.” + +If this is not due to memory, even an imperfect explanation of what else +it can be due to, “would be satisfactory.” + +“Intelligence gropes about, tries this way and that, misses its object, +commits mistakes, and corrects them.” + +Yes. Because intelligence is of consciousness, and consciousness is of +attention, and attention is of uncertainty, and uncertainty is of +ignorance or want of consciousness. Intelligence is not yet thoroughly +up to its business. + +“Instinct advances with a mechanical certainty.” + +Why mechanical? Should not “with apparent certainty” suffice? + +“Hence comes its unconscious character.” + +But for the word “mechanical” this is true, and is what we have been all +along insisting on. + +“It knows nothing either of ends, or of the means of attaining them; it +implies no comparison, judgment, or choice.” + +This is assumption. What is certain is that instinct does not betray +signs of self-consciousness as to its own knowledge. It has dismissed +reference to first principles, and is no longer under the law, but under +the grace of a settled conviction. + +“All seems directed by thought.” + +Yes; because all _has been_ in earlier existences directed by thought. + +“Without ever arriving at thought.” + +Because it has _got past thought_, and though “directed by thought” +originally, is now travelling in exactly the opposite direction. It is +not likely to reach thought again, till people get to know worse and +worse how to do things, the oftener they practise them. + +“And if this phenomenon appear strange, it must be observed that +analogous states occur in ourselves. _All that we do from +habit—walking_, _writing_, _or practising a mechanical act_, _for +instance—all these and many other very complex acts are performed without +consciousness_. + +“Instinct appears stationary. It does not, like intelligence, seem to +grow and decay, to gain and to lose. It does not improve.” + +Naturally. For improvement can only as a general rule be looked for +along the line of latest development, that is to say, in matters +concerning which the creature is being still consciously exercised. +Older questions are settled, and the solution must be accepted as final, +for the question of living at all would be reduced to an absurdity, if +everything decided upon one day was to be undecided again the next; as +with painting or music, so with life and politics, let every man be fully +persuaded in his own mind, for decision with wrong will be commonly a +better policy than indecision—I had almost added with right; and a firm +purpose with risk will be better than an infirm one with temporary +exemption from disaster. Every race has made its great blunders, to +which it has nevertheless adhered, inasmuch as the corresponding +modification of other structures and instincts was found preferable to +the revolution which would be caused by a radical change of structure, +with consequent havoc among a legion of vested interests. Rudimentary +organs are, as has been often said, the survivals of these interests—the +signs of their peaceful and gradual extinction as living faiths; they are +also instances of the difficulty of breaking through any cant or trick +which we have long practised, and which is not sufficiently troublesome +to make it a serious object with us to cure ourselves of the habit. + +“If it does not remain perfectly invariable, at least it only varies +within very narrow limits; and though this question has been warmly +debated in our day, and is yet unsettled, we may yet say that in instinct +immutability is the law, variation the exception.” + +This is quite as it should be. Genius will occasionally rise a little +above convention, but with an old convention immutability will be the +rule. + +“Such,” continues M. Ribot, “are the admitted characters of instinct.” + +Yes; but are they not also the admitted characters of actions that are +due to memory? + +At the bottom of p. 15, M. Ribot quotes the following from Mr. Darwin:— + +“We have reason to believe that aboriginal habits are long retained under +domestication. Thus with the common ass, we see signs of its original +desert-life in its strong dislike to cross the smallest stream of water, +and in its pleasure in rolling in the dust. The same strong dislike to +cross a stream is common to the camel which has been domesticated from a +very early period. Young pigs, though so tame, sometimes squat when +frightened, and then try to conceal themselves, even in an open and bare +place. Young turkeys, and occasionally even young fowls, when the hen +gives the danger-cry, run away and try to hide themselves, like young +partridges or pheasants, in order that their mother may take flight, of +which she has lost the power. The musk duck in its native country often +perches and roosts on trees, and our domesticated musk ducks, though +sluggish birds, are fond of perching on the tops of barns, walls, &c. . . . +We know that the dog, however well and regularly fed, often buries +like the fox any superfluous food; we see him turning round and round on +a carpet as if to trample down grass to form a bed. . . . In the delight +with which lambs and kids crowd together and frisk upon the smallest +hillock we see a vestige of their former alpine habits.” + +What does this delightful passage go to show, if not that the young in +all these cases must still have a latent memory of their past existences, +which is called into an active condition as soon as the associated ideas +present themselves? + +Returning to M. Ribot’s own observations, we find he tells us that it +usually requires three or four generations to fix the results of +training, and to prevent a return to the instincts of the wild state. I +think, however, it would not be presumptuous to suppose that if an animal +after only three or four generations of training be restored to its +original conditions of life, it will forget its intermediate training and +return to its old ways, almost as readily as a London street Arab would +forget the beneficial effects of a weeks training in a reformatory +school, if he were then turned loose again on the streets. So if we +hatch wild ducks’ eggs under a tame duck, the ducklings “will have scarce +left the egg-shell when they obey the instincts of their race and take +their flight.” So the colts from wild horses, and mongrel young between +wild and domesticated horses, betray traces of their earlier memories. + +On this M. Ribot says: “Originally man had considerable trouble in taming +the animals which are now domesticated; and his work would have been in +vain had not heredity” (memory) “come to his aid. It may be said that +after man has modified a wild animal to his will, there goes on in its +progeny a silent conflict between two heredities” (memories), “the one +tending to fix the acquired modifications and the other to preserve the +primitive instincts. The latter often get the mastery, and only after +several generations is training sure of victory. But we may see that in +either case heredity” (memory) “always asserts its rights.” + +How marvellously is the above passage elucidated and made to fit in with +the results of our recognised experience, by the simple substitution of +the word “memory” for “heredity.” + +“Among the higher animals”—to continue quoting—“which are possessed not +only of instinct, but also of intelligence, nothing is more common than +to see mental dispositions, which have evidently been acquired, so fixed +by heredity, that they are confounded with instinct, so spontaneous and +automatic do they become. Young pointers have been known to point the +first time they were taken out, sometimes even better than dogs that had +been for a long time in training. The habit of saving life is hereditary +in breeds that have been brought up to it, as is also the shepherd dog’s +habit of moving around the flock and guarding it.” + +As soon as we have grasped the notion, that instinct is only the epitome +of past experience, revised, corrected, made perfect, and learnt by rote, +we no longer find any desire to separate “instinct” from “mental +dispositions, which have evidently been acquired and fixed by heredity,” +for the simple reason that they are one and the same thing. + +A few more examples are all that my limits will allow—they abound on +every side, and the difficulty lies only in selecting—M. Ribot being to +hand, I will venture to lay him under still further contributions. + +On page 19 we find:—“Knight has shown experimentally the truth of the +proverb, ‘a good hound is bred so,’ he took every care that when the pups +were first taken into the field, they should receive no guidance from +older dogs; yet the very first day, one of the pups stood trembling with +anxiety, having his eyes fixed and all his muscles strained _at the +partridges which their parents had been trained to point_. A spaniel +belonging to a breed which had been trained to woodcock-shooting, knew +perfectly well from the first how to act like an old dog, avoiding places +where the ground was frozen, and where it was, therefore, useless to seek +the game, as there was no scent. Finally, a young polecat terrier was +thrown into a state of great excitement the first time he ever saw one of +these animals, while a spaniel remained perfectly calm. + +“In South America, according to Roulin, dogs belonging to a breed that +has long been trained to the dangerous chase of the peccary, when taken +for the first time into the woods, know the tactics to adopt quite as +well as the old dogs, and that without any instruction. Dogs of other +races, and unacquainted with the tactics, are killed at once, no matter +how strong they may be. The American greyhound, instead of leaping at +the stag, attacks him by the belly, and throws him over, as his ancestors +had been trained to do in hunting the Indians. + +“Thus, then, heredity transmits modification no less than natural +instincts.” + +Should not this rather be—“thus, then, we see that not only older and +remoter habits, but habits which have been practised for a comparatively +small number of generations, may be so deeply impressed on the individual +that they may dwell in his memory, surviving the so-called change of +personality which he undergoes in each successive generation”? + +“There is, however, an important difference to be noted: the heredity of +instincts admits of no exceptions, while in that of modifications there +are many.” + +It may be well doubted how far the heredity of instincts admits of no +exceptions; on the contrary, it would seem probable that in many races +geniuses have from time to time arisen who remembered not only their past +experiences, as far as action and habit went, but have been able to rise +in some degree above habit where they felt that improvement was possible, +and who carried such improvement into further practice, by slightly +modifying their structure in the desired direction on the next occasion +that they had a chance of dealing with protoplasm at all. It is by these +rare instances of intellectual genius (and I would add of moral genius, +if many of the instincts and structures of plants and animals did not +show that they had got into a region as far above morals—other than +enlightened self-interest—as they are above articulate consciousness of +their own aims in many other respects)—it is by these instances of either +rare good luck or rare genius that many species have been, in all +probability, originated or modified. Nevertheless inappreciable +modification of instinct is, and ought to be, the rule. + +As to M. Ribot’s assertion, that to the heredity of modifications there +are many exceptions, I readily agree with it, and can only say that it is +exactly what I should expect; the lesson long since learnt by rote, and +repeated in an infinite number of generations, would be repeated +unintelligently, and with little or no difference, save from a rare +accidental slip, the effect of which would be the culling out of the +bungler who was guilty of it, or from the still rarer appearance of an +individual of real genius; while the newer lesson would be repeated both +with more hesitation and uncertainty, and with more intelligence; and +this is well conveyed in M. Ribot’s next sentence, for he says—“It is +only when variations have been firmly rooted; when having become organic, +they constitute a second nature, which supplants the first; when, like +instinct, they have assumed a mechanical character, that they can be +transmitted.” + +How nearly M. Ribot comes to the opinion which I myself venture to +propound will appear from the following further quotation. After dealing +with somnambulism, and saying, that if somnambulism were permanent and +innate, it would be impossible to distinguish it from instinct, he +continues:— + +“Hence it is less difficult than is generally supposed, to conceive how +intelligence may become instinct; we might even say that, leaving out of +consideration the character of innateness, to which we will return, we +have seen the metamorphosis take place. _There can then be no ground for +making instinct a faculty apart_, _sui generis_, a phenomenon so +mysterious, so strange, that usually no other explanation of it is +offered but that of attributing it to the direct act of the Deity. This +whole mistake is the result of a defective psychology which makes no +account of the unconscious activity of the soul.” + +We are tempted to add—“and which also makes no account of the _bonâ fide_ +character of the continued personality of successive generations.” + +“But we are so accustomed,” he continues, “to contrast the characters of +instinct with those of intelligence—to say that instinct is innate, +invariable, automatic, while intelligence is something acquired, +variable, spontaneous—that it looks at first paradoxical to assert that +instinct and intelligence are identical. + +“It is said that instinct is innate. But if, on the one hand, we bear in +mind that many instincts are acquired, and that, according to a theory +hereafter to be explained” (which theory, I frankly confess, I never was +able to get hold of), “_all instincts are only hereditary habits_” +(italics mine); “if, on the other hand, we observe that intelligence is +in some sense held to be innate by all modern schools of philosophy, +which agree to reject the theory of the _tabula rasa_” (if there is no +_tabula rasa_, there is continued psychological personality, or words +have lost their meaning), “and to accept either latent ideas, or _à +priori_ forms of thought” (surely only a periphrasis for continued +personality and memory) “or pre-ordination of the nervous system and of +the organism; _it will be seen that this character of innateness does not +constitute an absolute distinction between instinct and intelligence_. + +“It is true that intelligence is variable, but so also is instinct, as we +have seen. In winter, the Rhine beaver plasters his wall to windward; +once he was a builder, now a burrower; once he lived in society, now he +is solitary. Intelligence itself can scarcely be more variable . . . +instinct may be modified, lost, reawakened. + +“Although intelligence is, as a rule, conscious, it may also become +unconscious and automatic, without losing its identity. Neither is +instinct always so blind, so mechanical, as is supposed, for at times it +is at fault. The wasp that has faultily trimmed a leaf of its paper +begins again. The bee only gives the hexagonal form to its cell after +many attempts and alterations. It is difficult to believe that the +loftier instincts” (and surely, then, the more recent instincts) “of the +higher animals are not accompanied _by at least a confused +consciousness_. There is, therefore, no absolute distinction between +instinct and intelligence; there is not a single characteristic which, +seriously considered, remains the exclusive property of either. The +contrast established between instinctive acts and intellectual acts is, +nevertheless, perfectly true, but only when we compare the extremes. _As +instinct rises it approaches intelligence—as intelligence descends it +approaches instinct_.” + +M. Ribot and myself (if I may venture to say so) are continually on the +verge of coming to an understanding, when, at the very moment that we +seem most likely to do so, we fly, as it were, to opposite poles. Surely +the passage last quoted should be, “As instinct falls,” _i.e._, becomes +less and less certain of its ground, “it approaches intelligence; as +intelligence rises,” _i.e._, becomes more and more convinced of the truth +and expediency of its convictions—“it approaches instinct.” + +Enough has been said to show that the opinions which I am advancing are +not new, but I have looked in vain for the conclusions which, it appears +to me, M. Ribot should draw from his facts; throughout his interesting +book I find the facts which it would seem should have guided him to the +conclusions, and sometimes almost the conclusions themselves, but he +never seems quite to have reached them, nor has he arranged his facts so +that others are likely to deduce them, unless they had already arrived at +them by another road. I cannot, however, sufficiently express my +obligations to M. Ribot. + +I cannot refrain from bringing forward a few more instances of what I +think must be considered by every reader as hereditary memory. Sydney +Smith writes:— + +“Sir James Hall hatched some chickens in an oven. Within a few minutes +after the shell was broken, a spider was turned loose before this very +youthful brood; the destroyer of flies had hardly proceeded more than a +few inches, before he was descried by one of these oven-born chickens, +and, at one peck of his bill, immediately devoured. This certainly was +not imitation. A female goat very near delivery died; Galen cut out the +young kid, and placed before it a bundle of hay, a bunch of fruit, and a +pan of milk; the young kid smelt to them all very attentively, and then +began to lap the milk. This was not imitation. And what is commonly and +rightly called instinct, cannot be explained away, under the notion of +its being imitation” (Lecture xvii. on Moral Philosophy). + +It cannot, indeed, be explained away under the notion of its being +imitation, but I think it may well be so under that of its being memory. + +Again, a little further on in the same lecture, as that above quoted +from, we find:— + +“Ants and beavers lay up magazines. Where do they get their knowledge +that it will not be so easy to collect food in rainy weather, as it is in +summer? Men and women know these things, because their grandpapas and +grandmammas have told them so. Ants hatched from the egg artificially, +or birds hatched in this manner, have all this knowledge by intuition, +without the smallest communication with any of their relations. Now +observe what the solitary wasp does; she digs several holes in the sand, +in each of which she deposits an egg, though she certainly knows not (?) +that an animal is deposited in that egg, and still less that this animal +must be nourished with other animals. She collects a few green flies, +rolls them up neatly in several parcels (like Bologna sausages), and +stuffs one parcel into each hole where an egg is deposited. When the +wasp worm is hatched, it finds a store of provision ready made; and what +is most curious, the quantity allotted to each is exactly sufficient to +support it, till it attains the period of wasphood, and can provide for +itself. This instinct of the parent wasp is the more remarkable as it +does not feed upon flesh itself. Here the little creature has never seen +its parent; for by the time it is born, the parent is always eaten by +sparrows; and yet, without the slightest education, or previous +experience, it does everything that the parent did before it. Now the +objectors to the doctrine of instinct may say what they please, but young +tailors have no intuitive method of making pantaloons; a new-born mercer +cannot measure diaper; nature teaches a cook’s daughter nothing about +sippets. All these things require with us seven years’ apprenticeship; +but insects are like Molière’s persons of quality—they know everything +(as Molière says), without having learnt anything. ‘Les gens de qualité +savent tout, sans avoir rien appris.’” + +How completely all difficulty vanishes from the facts so pleasantly told +in this passage when we bear in mind the true nature of personal +identity, the ordinary working of memory, and the vanishing tendency of +consciousness concerning what we know exceedingly well. + +My last instance I take from M. Ribot, who writes:—“Gratiolet, in his +_Anatomie Comparèe du Système Nerveux_, states that an old piece of +wolf’s skin, with the hair all worn away, when set before a little dog, +threw the animal into convulsions of fear by the slight scent attaching +to it. The dog had never seen a wolf, and we can only explain this alarm +by the hereditary transmission of certain sentiments, coupled with a +certain perception of the sense of smell” (“Heredity,” p. 43). + +I should prefer to say “we can only explain the alarm by supposing that +the smell of the wolf’s skin”—the sense of smell being, as we all know, +more powerful to recall the ideas that have been associated with it than +any other sense—“brought up the ideas with which it had been associated +in the dog’s mind during many previous existences”—he on smelling the +wolf’s skin remembering all about wolves perfectly well. + + + + +CHAPTER XII. +INSTINCTS OF NEUTER INSECTS. + + +IN this chapter I will consider, as briefly as possible, the strongest +argument that I have been able to discover against the supposition that +instinct is chiefly due to habit. I have said “the strongest argument;” +I should have said, the only argument that struck me as offering on the +face of it serious difficulties. + +Turning, then, to Mr. Darwin’s chapter on instinct (“Natural Selection,” +ed. 1876, p. 205), we find substantially much the same views as those +taken at a later date by M. Ribot, and referred to in the preceding +chapter. Mr. Darwin writes:— + +“An action, which we ourselves require experience to enable us to +perform, when performed by an animal, more especially a very young one, +without experience, and when performed by many animals in the same way +without their knowing for what purpose it is performed, is usually said +to be instinctive.” + +The above should strictly be, “without their being conscious of their own +knowledge concerning the purpose for which they act as they do;” and +though some may say that the two phrases come to the same thing, I think +there is an important difference, as what I propose distinguishes +ignorance from over-familiarity, both which states are alike +unself-conscious, though with widely different results. + +“But I could show,” continues Mr. Darwin, “that none of these characters +are universal. A little dose of judgement or reason, as Pierre Huber +expresses it, often comes into play even with animals low in the scale of +nature. + +“Frederick Cuvier and several of the older metaphysicians have compared +instinct with habit.” + +I would go further and would say, that instinct, in the great majority of +cases, is habit pure and simple, contracted originally by some one or +more individuals; practised, probably, in a consciously intelligent +manner during many successive lives, until the habit has acquired the +highest perfection which the circumstances admitted; and, finally, so +deeply impressed upon the memory as to survive that effacement of minor +impressions which generally takes place in every fresh life-wave or +generation. + +I would say, that unless the identity of offspring with their parents be +so far admitted that the children be allowed to remember the deeper +impressions engraved on the minds of those who begot them, it is little +less than trilling to talk, as so many writers do, about inherited habit, +or the experience of the race, or, indeed, accumulated variations of +instincts. + +When an instinct is not habit, as resulting from memory pure and simple, +it is habit modified by some treatment, generally in the youth or +embryonic stages of the individual, which disturbs his memory, and drives +him on to some unusual course, inasmuch as he cannot recognise and +remember his usual one by reason of the change now made in it. Habits +and instincts, again, may be modified by any important change in the +condition of the parents, which will then both affect the parent’s sense +of his own identity, and also create more or less fault, or dislocation +of memory, in the offspring immediately behind the memory of his last +life. Change of food may at times be sufficient to create a specific +modification—that is to say, to affect all the individuals whose food is +so changed, in one and the same way—whether as regards structure or +habit. Thus we see that certain changes in food (and domicile), from +those with which its ancestors have been familiar, will disturb the +memory of a queen bee’s egg, and set it at such disadvantage as to make +it make itself into a neuter bee; but yet we find that the larva thus +partly aborted may have its memories restored to it, if not already too +much disturbed, and may thus return to its condition as a queen bee, if +it only again be restored to the food and domicile, which its past +memories can alone remember. + +So we see that opium, tobacco, alcohol, hasheesh, and tea produce certain +effects upon our own structure and instincts. But though capable of +modification, and of specific modification, which may in time become +inherited, and hence resolve itself into a true instinct or settled +question, yet I maintain that the main bulk of the instinct (whether as +affecting structure or habits of life) will be derived from memory pure +and simple; the individual growing up in the shape he does, and liking to +do this or that when he is grown up, simply from recollection of what he +did last time, and of what on the whole suited him. + +For it must be remembered that a drug which should destroy some one part +at an early embryonic stage, and thus prevent it from development, would +prevent the creature from recognising the surroundings which affected +that part when he was last alive and unmutilated, as being the same as +his present surroundings. He would be puzzled, for he would be viewing +the position from a different standpoint. If any important item in a +number of associated ideas disappears, the plot fails; and a great +internal change is an exceedingly important item. Life and things to a +creature so treated at an early embryonic stage would not be life and +things as he last remembered them; hence he would not be able to do the +same now as he did then; that is to say, he would vary both in structure +and instinct; but if the creature were tolerably uniform to start with, +and were treated in a tolerably uniform way, we might expect the effect +produced to be much the same in all ordinary cases. + +We see, also, that any important change in treatment and surroundings, if +not sufficient to kill, would and does tend to produce not only +variability but sterility, as part of the same story and for the same +reason—namely, default of memory; this default will be of every degree of +intensity, from total failure, to a slight disturbance of memory as +affecting some one particular organ only; that is to say, from total +sterility, to a slight variation in an unimportant part. So that even +_the slightest conceivable variations should be referred to changed +conditions_, _external or internal_, _and to their disturbing effects +upon the memory_; and sterility, without any apparent disease of the +reproductive system, may be referred not so much to special delicacy or +susceptibility of the organs of reproduction as to inability on the part +of the creature to know where it is, and to recognise itself as the same +creature which it has been accustomed to reproduce. + +Mr. Darwin thinks that the comparison of habit with instinct gives “an +accurate notion of the frame of mind under which an instinctive action is +performed, but not,” he thinks, “of its origin.” + +“How unconsciously,” Mr. Darwin continues, “many habitual actions are +performed, indeed not rarely in direct opposition to our conscious will! +Yet they may be modified by the will or by reason. Habits easily become +associated with other habits, with certain periods of time and states of +body. When once acquired, they often remain constant throughout life. +Several other points of resemblance between instincts and habits could be +pointed out. As in repeating a well-known song, so in instincts, one +action follows another by a sort of rhythm. If a person be interrupted +in a song or in repeating anything by rote, he is generally forced to go +back to recover the habitual train of thought; so P. Huber found it was +with a caterpillar, which makes a very complicated hammock. For if he +took a caterpillar which had completed its hammock up to, say, the sixth +stage of construction, and put it into a hammock completed up only to the +third stage, the caterpillar simply re-performed the fourth, fifth, and +sixth stages of construction. If, however, a caterpillar were taken out +of a hammock made up, for instance, to the third stage, and were put into +one finished up to the sixth stage, so that much of its work was already +done for it, far from deriving any benefit from this, it was much +embarrassed, and in order to complete its hammock, seemed forced to start +from the third stage, where it had left off, and thus tried to complete +the already finished work.” + +I see I must have unconsciously taken my first chapter from this passage, +but it is immaterial. I owe Mr. Darwin much more than this. I owe it to +him that I believe in evolution at all. I owe him for almost all the +facts which have led me to differ from him, and which I feel absolutely +safe in taking for granted, if he has advanced them. Nevertheless, I +believe that the conclusion arrived at in the passage which I will next +quote is a mistaken one, and that not a little only, but fundamentally. +I shall therefore venture to dispute it. + +The passage runs:— + +“If we suppose any habitual action to become inherited—and it can be +shown that this does sometimes happen—then the resemblance between what +originally was a habit and an instinct becomes so close as not to be +distinguished. . . . _But it would be a serious error to suppose that the +greater number of instincts have been acquired by habit in one +generation_, _and then transmitted by inheritance to succeeding +generations_. _It can be clearly shown that the most wonderful instincts +with which we are acquainted—namely_, _those of the hive-bee and of many +ants_, _could not possibly have been acquired by habit_.” (“Origin of +Species,” p. 206, ed. 1876.) The italics in this passage are mine. + +No difficulty is opposed to my view (as I call it, for the sake of +brevity) by such an instinct as that of ants to milk aphids. Such +instincts may be supposed to have been acquired in much the same way as +the instinct of a farmer to keep a cow. Accidental discovery of the fact +that the excretion was good, with “a little dose of judgement or reason” +from time to time appearing in an exceptionally clever ant, and by him +communicated to his fellows, till the habit was so confirmed as to be +capable of transmission in full unself-consciousness (if indeed the +instinct be unself-conscious in this case), would, I think, explain this +as readily as the slow and gradual accumulations of instincts which had +never passed through the intelligent and self-conscious stage, but had +always prompted action without any idea of a why or a wherefore on the +part of the creature itself. + +For it must be remembered, as I am afraid I have already perhaps too +often said, that even when we have got a slight variation of instinct, +due to some cause which we know nothing about, but which I will not even +for a moment call “spontaneous”—a word that should be cut out of every +dictionary, or in some way branded as perhaps the most misleading in the +language—we cannot see how it comes to be repeated in successive +generations, so as to be capable of being acted upon by “natural +selection” and accumulated, unless it be also capable of being remembered +by the offspring of the varying creature. It may be answered that we +cannot know anything about this, but that “like father like son” is an +ultimate fact in nature. I can only answer that I never observe any +“like father like son” without the son’s both having had every +opportunity of remembering, and showing every symptom of having +remembered, in which case I decline to go further than memory (whatever +memory may be) as the cause of the phenomenon. + +But besides inheritance, teaching must be admitted as a means of at any +rate modifying an instinct. We observe this in our own case; and we know +that animals have great powers of communicating their ideas to one +another, though their manner of doing this is as incomprehensible by us +as a plant’s knowledge of chemistry, or the manner in which an amœba +makes its test, or a spider its web, without having gone through a long +course of mathematics. I think most readers will allow that our early +training and the theological systems of the last eighteen hundred years +are likely to have made us involuntarily under-estimate the powers of +animals low in the scale of life, both as regards intelligence and the +power of communicating their ideas to one another; but even now we admit +that ants have great powers in this respect. + +A habit, however, which is taught to the young or each successive +generation, by older members of the community who have themselves +received it by instruction, should surely rank as an inherited habit, and +be considered as due to memory, though personal teaching be necessary to +complete the inheritance. + +An objection suggests itself that if such a habit as the flight of birds, +which seems to require a little personal supervision and instruction +before it is acquired perfectly, were really due to memory, the need of +instruction would after a time cease, inasmuch as the creature would +remember its past method of procedure, and would thus come to need no +more teaching. The answer lies in the fact, that if a creature gets to +depend upon teaching and personal help for any matter, its memory will +make it look for such help on each repetition of the action; so we see +that no man’s memory will exert itself much until he is thrown upon +memory as his only resource. We may read a page of a book a hundred +times, but we do not remember it by heart unless we have either +cultivated our powers of learning to repeat, or have taken pains to learn +this particular page. + +And whether we read from a book, or whether we repeat by heart, the +repetition is still due to memory; only in the one case the memory is +exerted to recall something which one saw only half a second ago, and in +the other, to recall something not seen for a much longer period. So I +imagine an instinct or habit may be called an inherited habit, and +assigned to memory, even though the memory dates, not from the +performance of the action by the learner when he was actually part of the +personality of the teacher, but rather from a performance witnessed by, +or explained by the teacher to, the pupil at a period subsequent to +birth. In either case the habit is inherited in the sense of being +acquired in one generation, and transmitted with such modifications as +genius and experience may have suggested. + +Mr. Darwin would probably admit this without hesitation; when, therefore, +he says that certain instincts could not possibly have been acquired by +habit, he must mean that they could not, under the circumstances, have +been remembered by the pupil in the person of the teacher, and that it +would be a serious error to suppose that the greater number of instincts +can be thus remembered. To which I assent readily so far as that it is +difficult (though not impossible) to see how some of the most wonderful +instincts of neuter ants and bees can be due to the fact that the neuter +ant or bee was ever in part, or in some respects, another neuter ant or +bee in a previous generation. At the same time I maintain that this does +not militate against the supposition that both instinct and structure are +in the main due to memory. For the power of receiving any communication, +and acting on it, is due to memory; and the neuter ant or bee may have +received its lesson from another neuter ant or bee, who had it from +another and modified it; and so back and back, till the foundation of the +habit is reached, and is found to present little more than the faintest +family likeness to its more complex descendant. Surely Mr. Darwin cannot +mean that it can be shewn that the wonderful instincts of neuter ants and +bees cannot have been acquired either, as above, by instruction, or by +some not immediately obvious form of inherited transmission, but that +they must be due to the fact that the ant or bee is, as it were, such and +such a machine, of which if you touch such and such a spring, you will +get a corresponding action. If he does, he will find, so far as I can +see, no escape from a position very similar to the one which I put into +the mouth of the first of the two professors, who dealt with the question +of machinery in my earlier work, “Erewhon,” and which I have since found +that my great namesake made fun of in the following lines:— + + . . . “They now begun + To spur their living engines on. + For as whipped tops and bandy’d balls, + The learned hold are animals: + So horses they affirm to be + Mere engines made by geometry, + And were invented first from engines + As Indian Britons were from Penguins.” + + —_Hudibras_, Canto ii. line 53, &c. + +I can see, then, no difficulty in the development of the ordinary +so-called instincts, whether of ants or bees, or the cuckoo, or any other +animal, on the supposition that they were, for the most part, +intelligently acquired with more or less labour, as the case may be, in +much the same way as we see any art or science now in process of +acquisition among ourselves, but were ultimately remembered by offspring, +or communicated to it. When the limits of the race’s capacity had been +attained (and most races seem to have their limits, unsatisfactory though +the expression may very fairly be considered), or when the creature had +got into a condition, so to speak, of equilibrium with its surroundings, +there would be no new development of instincts, and the old ones would +cease to be improved, inasmuch as there would be no more reasoning or +difference of opinion concerning them. The race, therefore, or species +would remain in _statu quo_ till either domesticated, and so brought into +contact with new ideas and placed in changed conditions, or put under +such pressure, in a wild state, as should force it to further invention, +or extinguish it if incapable of rising to the occasion. That instinct +and structure may be acquired by practice in one or more generations, and +remembered in succeeding ones, is admitted by Mr. Darwin, for he allows +(“Origin of Species,” p. 206) that habitual action does sometimes become +inherited, and, though he does not seem to conceive of such action as due +to memory, yet it is inconceivable how it is inherited, if not as the +result of memory. + +It must be admitted, however, that when we come to consider the +structures as well as the instincts of some of the neuter insects, our +difficulties seem greatly increased. The neuter hive-bees have a cavity +in their thighs in which to keep the wax, which it is their business to +collect; but the drones and queen, which alone bear offspring, collect no +wax, and therefore neither want, nor have, any such cavity. The neuter +bees are also, if I understand rightly, furnished with a proboscis or +trunk for extracting honey from flowers, whereas the fertile bees, who +gather no honey, have no such proboscis. Imagine, if the reader will, +that the neuter bees differ still more widely from the fertile ones; how, +then, can they in any sense be said to derive organs from their parents, +which not one of their parents for millions of generations has ever had? +How, again, can it be supposed that they transmit these organs to the +future neuter members of the community when they are perfectly sterile? + +One can understand that the young neuter bee might be taught to make a +hexagonal cell (though I have not found that any one has seen the lesson +being given) inasmuch as it does not make the cell till after birth, and +till after it has seen other neuter bees who might tell it much in, _quâ_ +us, a very little time; but we can hardly understand its growing a +proboscis before it could possibly want it, or preparing a cavity in its +thigh, to have it ready to put wax into, when none of its predecessors +had ever done so, by supposing oral communication, during the larvahood. +Nevertheless, it must not be forgotten that bees seem to know secrets +about reproduction, which utterly baffle ourselves; for example, the +queen bee appears to know how to deposit male or female, eggs at will; +and this is a matter of almost inconceivable sociological importance, +denoting a corresponding amount of sociological and physiological +knowledge generally. It should not, then, surprise us if the race should +possess other secrets, whose working we are unable to follow, or even +detect at all. + +Sydney Smith, indeed, writes:— + +“The warmest admirers of honey, and the greatest friends to bees, will +never, I presume, contend that the young swarm, who begin making honey +three or four months after they are born, and immediately construct these +mathematical cells, should have gained their geometrical knowledge as we +gain ours, and in three months’ time outstrip Mr. Maclaurin in +mathematics as much as they did in making honey. It would take a senior +wrangler at Cambridge ten hours a day for three years together to know +enough mathematics for the calculation of these problems, with which not +only every queen bee, but every undergraduate grub, is acquainted the +moment it is born.” This last statement may be a little too strong, but +it will at once occur to the reader, that as we know the bees _do_ +surpass Mr. Maclaurin in the power of making honey, they may also surpass +him in capacity for those branches of mathematics with which it has been +their business to be conversant during many millions of years, and also +in knowledge of physiology and psychology in so far as the knowledge +bears upon the interests of their own community. + +We know that the larva which develops into a neuter bee, and that again +which in time becomes a queen bee, are the same kind of larva to start +with; and that if you give one of these larvæ the food and treatment +which all its foremothers have been accustomed to, it will turn out with +all the structure and instincts of its foremothers—and that it only fails +to do this because it has been fed, and otherwise treated, in such a +manner as not one of its foremothers was ever yet fed or treated. So +far, this is exactly what we should expect, on the view that structure +and instinct are alike mainly due to memory, or to medicined memory. +Give the larva a fair chance of knowing where it is, and it shows that it +remembers by doing exactly what it did before. Give it a different kind +of food and house, and it cannot be expected to be anything else than +puzzled. It remembers a great deal. It comes out a bee, and nothing but +a bee; but it is an aborted bee; it is, in fact, mutilated before birth +instead of after—with instinct, as well as growth, correlated to its +abortion, as we see happens frequently in the case of animals a good deal +higher than bees that have been mutilated at a stage much later than that +at which the abortion of neuter bees commences. + +The larvæ being similar to start with, and being similarly +mutilated—i.e., by change of food and dwelling, will naturally exhibit +much similarity of instinct and structure on arriving at maturity. When +driven from their usual course, they must take _some_ new course or die. +There is nothing strange in the fact that similar beings puzzled +similarly should take a similar line of action. I grant, however, that +it is hard to see how change of food and treatment can puzzle an insect +into such “complex growth” as that it should make a cavity in its thigh, +grow an invaluable proboscis, and betray a practical knowledge of +difficult mathematical problems. + +But it must be remembered that the memory of having been queen bees and +drones—which is all that according to my supposition the larvæ can +remember, (on a first view of the case), in their own proper +persons—would nevertheless carry with it a potential recollection of all +the social arrangements of the hive. They would thus potentially +remember that the mass of the bees were always neuter bees; they would +remember potentially the habits of these bees, so far as drones and +queens know anything about them; and this may be supposed to be a very +thorough acquaintance; in like manner, and with the same limitation, they +would know from the very moment that they left the queen’s body that +neuter bees had a proboscis to gather honey with, and cavities in their +thighs to put wax into, and that cells were to be made with certain +angles—for surely it is not crediting the queen with more knowledge than +she is likely to possess, if we suppose her to have a fair acquaintance +with the phenomena of wax and cells generally, even though she does not +make any; they would know (while still larvæ—and earlier) the kind of +cells into which neuter bees were commonly put, and the kind of treatment +they commonly received—they might therefore, as eggs—immediately on +finding their recollection driven from its usual course, so that they +must either find some other course, or die—know that they were being +treated as neuter bees are treated, and that they were expected to +develop into neuter bees accordingly; they might know all this, and a +great deal more into the bargain, inasmuch as even before being actually +deposited as eggs they would know and remember potentially, but +unconsciously, all that their parents knew and remembered intensely. Is +it, then, astonishing that they should adapt themselves so readily to the +position which they know it is for the social welfare of the community, +and hence of themselves, that they should occupy, and that they should +know that they will want a cavity in their thighs and a proboscis, and +hence make such implements out of their protoplasm as readily as they +make their wings? + +I admit that, under normal treatment, none of the above-mentioned +potential memories would be kindled into such a state of activity that +action would follow upon them, until the creature had attained a more or +less similar condition to that in which its parent was when these +memories were active within its mind: but the essence of the matter is, +that these larvæ have been treated _abnormally_, so that if they do not +die, there is nothing for it but that they must vary. One cannot argue +from the normal to the abnormal. It would not, then, be strange if the +potential memories should (owing to the margin for premature or tardy +development which association admits) serve to give the puzzled larvæ a +hint as to the course which they had better take, or that, at any rate, +it should greatly supplement the instruction of the “nurse” bees +themselves by rendering the larvæ so, as it were, inflammable on this +point, that a spark should set them in a blaze. Abortion is generally +premature. Thus the scars referred to in the last chapter as having +appeared on the children of men who had been correspondingly wounded, +should not, under normal circumstances, have appeared in the offspring +till the children had got fairly near the same condition generally as +that in which their fathers were when they were wounded, and even then, +normally, there should have been an instrument to wound them, much as +their fathers had been wounded. Association, however, does not always +stick to the letter of its bond. + +The line, again, might certainly be taken that the difference in +structure and instincts between neuter and fertile bees is due to the +specific effects of certain food and treatment; yet, though one would be +sorry to set limits to the convertibility of food and genius, it seems +hard to believe that there can be any untutored food which should teach a +bee to make a hexagonal cell as soon as it was born, or which, before it +was born, should teach it to prepare such structures as it would require +in after life. If, then, food be considered as a direct agent in causing +the structures and instinct, and not an indirect agent, merely indicating +to the larva itself that it is to make itself after the fashion of neuter +bees, then we should bear in mind that, at any rate, it has been leavened +and prepared in the stomachs of those neuter bees into which the larva is +now expected to develop itself, and may thus have in it more true +germinative matter—gemmules, in fact—than is commonly supposed. Food, +when sufficiently assimilated (the whole question turning upon what _is_ +“sufficiently”), becomes stored with all the experience and memories of +the assimilating creature; corn becomes hen, and knows nothing but hen, +when hen has eaten it. We know also that the neuter working-bees inject +matter into the cell after the larva has been produced; nor would it seem +harsh to suppose that though devoid of a reproductive system like that of +their parents, they may yet be practically not so neuter as is commonly +believed. One cannot say what gemmules of thigh and proboscis may not +have got into the neutral bees’ stomachs, if they assimilate their food +sufficiently, and thus into the larva. + +Mr. Darwin will be the first to admit that though a creature have no +reproductive system, in any ordinary sense of the word, yet every unit or +cell of its body may throw off gemmules which may be free to move over +every part of the whole organism, and which “natural selection” might in +time cause to stray into food which had been sufficiently prepared in the +stomachs of the neuter bees. + +I cannot say, then, precisely in what way, but I can see no reason for +doubting that in some of the ways suggested above, or in some combination +of them, the phenomena of the instincts of neuter ants and bees can be +brought into the same category as the instincts and structure of fertile +animals. At any rate, I see the great fact that when treated as they +have been accustomed to be treated, these neuters act as though they +remembered, and accordingly become queen bees; and that they only depart +from their ancestral course on being treated in such fashion as their +ancestors can never have remembered; also, that when they have been +thrown off their accustomed line of thought and action, they only take +that of their nurses, who have been about them from the moment of their +being deposited as eggs by the queen bee, who have fed them from their +own bodies, and between whom and them there may have been all manner of +physical and mental communication, of which we know no more than we do of +the power which enables a bee to find its way home after infinite +shifting and turning among flowers, which no human powers could +systematise so as to avoid confusion. + +Or take it thus: We know that mutilation at an early age produces an +effect upon the structure and instincts of cattle, sheep, and horses; and +it might be presumed that if feasible at an earlier age, it would produce +a still more marked effect. We observe that the effect produced is +uniform, or nearly so. Suppose mutilation to produce a little more +effect than it does, as we might easily do, if cattle, sheep, and horses +had been for ages accustomed to a mutilated class living among them, +which class had been always a caste apart, and had fed the young neuters +from their own bodies, from an early embryonic stage onwards; would any +one in this case dream of advancing the structure and instincts of this +mutilated class against the doctrine that instinct is inherited habit? +Or, if inclined to do this, would he not at once refrain, on remembering +that the process of mutilation might be arrested, and the embryo be +developed into an entire animal by simply treating it in the way to which +all its ancestors had been accustomed? Surely he would not allow the +difficulty (which I must admit in some measure to remain) to outweigh the +evidence derivable from these very neuter insects themselves, as well as +from such a vast number of other sources—all pointing in the direction of +instinct as inherited habit. {239} + +Lastly, it must be remembered that the instinct to make cells and honey +is one which has no very great hold upon its possessors. Bees _can_ make +cells and honey, nor do they seem to have any very violent objection to +doing so; but it is quite clear that there is nothing in their structure +and instincts which urges them on to do these things for the mere love of +doing them, as a hen is urged to sit upon a chalk stone, concerning which +she probably is at heart utterly sceptical, rather than not sit at all. +There is no honey and cell-making instinct so strong as the instinct to +eat, if they are hungry, or to grow wings, and make themselves into bees +at all. Like ourselves, so long as they can get plenty to eat and drink, +they will do no work. Under these circumstances, not one drop of honey +nor one particle of wax will they collect, except, I presume, to make +cells for the rearing of their young. + +Sydney Smith writes:— + +“The most curious instance of a change of instinct is recorded by Darwin. +The bees carried over to Barbadoes and the Western Isles ceased to lay up +any honey after the first year, as they found it not useful to them. +They found the weather so fine, and materials for making honey so +plentiful, that they quitted their grave, prudent, and mercantile +character, became exceedingly profligate and debauched, ate up their +capital, resolved to work no more, and amused themselves by flying about +the sugar-houses and stinging the blacks” (Lecture XVII. on Moral +Philosophy). The ease, then, with which the honey-gathering and +cell-making habits are relinquished, would seem to point strongly in the +direction of their acquisition at a comparatively late period of +development. + +I have dealt with bees only, and not with ants, which would perhaps seem +to present greater difficulty, inasmuch as in some families of these +there are two, or even three, castes of neuters with well-marked and wide +differences of structure and instinct; but I think the reader will agree +with me that the ants are sufficiently covered by the bees, and that +enough, therefore, has been said already. Mr. Darwin supposes that these +modifications of structure and instinct have been effected by the +accumulation of numerous slight, profitable, spontaneous variations on +the part of the fertile parents, which has caused them (so, at least, I +understand him) to lay this or that particular kind of egg, which should +develop into a kind of bee or ant, with this or that particular instinct, +which instinct is merely a co-ordination with structure, and in no way +attributable to use or habit in preceding generations. + +Even so, one cannot see that the habit of laying this particular kind of +egg might not be due to use and memory in previous generations on the +part of the fertile parents, “for the numerous slight spontaneous +variations,” on which “natural selection” is to work, must have had some +cause than which none more reasonable than sense of need and experience +presents itself; and there seems hardly any limit to what long-continued +faith and desire, aided by intelligence, may be able to effect. But if +sense of need and experience are denied, I see no escape from the view +that machines are new species of life. + +Mr. Darwin concludes: “I am surprised that no one has hitherto advanced +this demonstrative case of neuter insects against the well-known doctrine +of inherited habit as advanced by Lamarck” (“Natural Selection,” p. 233, +ed. 1876). + +After reading this, one feels as though there was no more to be said. +The well-known doctrine of inherited habit, as advanced by Lamarck, has +indeed been long since so thoroughly exploded, that it is not worth while +to go into an explanation of what it was, or to refute it in detail. +Here, however, is an argument against it, which is so much better than +anything advanced yet, that one is surprised it has never been made use +of; so we will just advance it, as it were, to slay the slain, and pass +on. Such, at least, is the effect which the paragraph above quoted +produced upon myself, and would, I think, produce on the great majority +of readers. When driven by the exigencies of my own position to examine +the value of the demonstration more closely, I conclude, either that I +have utterly failed to grasp Mr. Darwin’s meaning, or that I have no less +completely mistaken the value and bearing of the facts I have myself +advanced in these few last pages. Failing this, my surprise is, not that +“no one has hitherto advanced” the instincts of neuter insects as a +demonstrative case against the doctrine of inherited habit, but rather +that Mr. Darwin should have thought the case demonstrative; or again, +when I remember that the neuter working bee is only an aborted queen, and +may be turned back again into a queen, by giving it such treatment as it +can alone be expected to remember—then I am surprised that the structure +and instincts of neuter bees has never (if never) been brought forward in +support of the doctrine of inherited habit as advanced by Lamarck, and +against any theory which would rob such instincts of their foundation in +intelligence, and of their connection with experience and memory. + +As for the instinct to mutilate, that is as easily accounted for as any +other inherited habit, whether of man to mutilate cattle, or of ants to +make slaves, or of birds to make their nests. I can see no way of +accounting for the existence of any one of these instincts, except on the +supposition that they have arisen gradually, through perceptions of power +and need on the part of the animal which exhibits them—these two +perceptions advancing hand in hand from generation to generation, and +being accumulated in time and in the common course of nature. + +I have already sufficiently guarded against being supposed to maintain +that very long before an instinct or structure was developed, the +creature descried it in the far future, and made towards it. We do not +observe this to be the manner of human progress. Our mechanical +inventions, which, as I ventured to say in “Erewhon,” through the mouth +of the second professor, are really nothing but extra-corporaneous +limbs—a wooden leg being nothing but a bad kind of flesh leg, and a flesh +leg being only a much better kind of wooden leg than any creature could +be expected to manufacture introspectively and consciously—our mechanical +inventions have almost invariably grown up from small beginnings, and +without any very distant foresight on the part of the inventors. When +Watt perfected the steam engine, he did not, it seems, foresee the +locomotive, much less would any one expect a savage to invent a steam +engine. A child breathes automatically, because it has learnt to breathe +little by little, and has now breathed for an incalculable length of +time; but it cannot open oysters at all, nor even conceive the idea of +opening oysters for two or three years after it is born, for the simple +reason that this lesson is one which it is only beginning to learn. All +I maintain is, that, give a child as many generations of practice in +opening oysters as it has had in breathing or sucking, and it would on +being born, turn to the oyster-knife no less naturally than to the +breast. We observe that among certain families of men there has been a +tendency to vary in the direction of the use and development of +machinery; and that in a certain still smaller number of families, there +seems to be an almost infinitely great capacity for varying and inventing +still further, whether socially or mechanically; while other families, +and perhaps the greater number, reach a certain point and stop; but we +also observe that not even the most inventive races ever see very far +ahead. I suppose the progress of plants and animals to be exactly +analogous to this. + +Mr. Darwin has always maintained that the effects of use and disuse are +highly important in the development of structure, and if, as he has said, +habits are sometimes inherited—then they should sometimes be important +also in the development of instinct, or habit. But what does the +development of an instinct or structure, or, indeed, any effect upon the +organism produced by “use and disuse,” imply? It implies an effect +produced by a desire to do something for which the organism was not +originally well adapted or sufficient, but for which it has come to be +sufficient in consequence of the desire. The wish has been father to the +power; but this again opens up the whole theory of Lamarck, that the +development of organs has been due to the wants or desires of the animal +in which the organ appears. So far as I can see, I am insisting on +little more than this. + +Once grant that a blacksmith’s arm grows thicker through hammering iron, +and you have an organ modified in accordance with a need or wish. Let +the desire and the practice be remembered, and go on for long enough, and +the slight alterations of the organ will be accumulated, until they are +checked either by the creature’s having got all that he cares about +making serious further effort to obtain, or until his wants prove +inconvenient to other creatures that are stronger than he, and he is +hence brought to a standstill. Use and disuse, then, with me, and, as I +gather also, with Lamarck, are the keys to the position, coupled, of +course, with continued personality and memory. No sudden and striking +changes would be effected, except that occasionally a blunder might prove +a happy accident, as happens not unfrequently with painters, musicians, +chemists, and inventors at the present day; or sometimes a creature, with +exceptional powers of memory or reflection, would make his appearance in +this race or in that. We all profit by our accidents as well as by our +more cunning contrivances, so that analogy would point in the direction +of thinking that many of the most happy thoughts in the animal and +vegetable kingdom were originated much as certain discoveries that have +been made by accident among ourselves. These would be originally blind +variations, though even so, probably less blind than we think, if we +could know the whole truth. When originated, they would be eagerly taken +advantage of and improved upon by the animal in whom they appeared; but +it cannot be supposed that they would be very far in advance of the last +step gained, more than are those “flukes” which sometimes enable us to go +so far beyond our own ordinary powers. For if they were, the animal +would despair of repeating them. No creature hopes, or even wishes, for +very much more than he has been accustomed to all his life, he and his +family, and the others whom he can understand, around him. It has been +well said that “enough” is always “a little more than one has.” We do +not try for things which we believe to be beyond our reach, hence one +would expect that the fortunes, as it were, of animals should have been +built up gradually. Our own riches grow with our desires and the pains +we take in pursuit of them, and our desires vary and increase with our +means of gratifying them; but unless with men of exceptional business +aptitude, wealth grows gradually by the adding field to field and farm to +farm; so with the limbs and instincts of animals; these are but the +things they have made or bought with their money, or with money that has +been left them by their forefathers, which, though it is neither silver +nor gold, but faith and protoplasm only, is good money and capital +notwithstanding. + +I have already admitted that instinct may be modified by food or drugs, +which may affect a structure or habit as powerfully as we see certain +poisons affect the structure of plants by producing, as Mr. Darwin tells +us, very complex galls upon their leaves. I do not, therefore, for a +moment insist on habit as the sole cause of instinct. Every habit must +have had its originating cause, and the causes which have started one +habit will from time to time start or modify others; nor can I explain +why some individuals of a race should be cleverer than others, any more +than I can explain why they should exist at all; nevertheless, I observe +it to be a fact that differences in intelligence and power of growth are +universal in the individuals of all those races which we can best watch. +I also most readily admit that the common course of nature would both +cause many variations to arise independently of any desire on the part of +the animal (much as we have lately seen that the moons of Mars were on +the point of being discovered three hundred years ago, merely through +Galileo sending to Kepler a Latin anagram which Kepler could not +understand, and arranged into the line—“_Salve umbistineum geminatum +Martia prolem_,” and interpreted to mean that Mars had two moons, whereas +Galileo had meant to say “_Altissimum planetam tergeminum observavi_,” +meaning that he had seen Saturn’s ring), and would also preserve and +accumulate such variations when they had arisen; but I can no more +believe that the wonderful adaptation of structures to needs, which we +see around us in such an infinite number of plants and animals, can have +arisen without a perception of those needs on the part of the creature in +whom the structure appears, than I can believe that the form of the +dray-horse or greyhound—so well adapted both to the needs of the animal +in his daily service to man, and to the desires of man, that the creature +should do him this daily service—can have arisen without any desire on +man’s part to produce this particular structure, or without the inherited +habit of performing the corresponding actions for man, on the part of the +greyhound and dray-horse. + +And I believe that this will be felt as reasonable by the great majority +of my readers. I believe that nine fairly intelligent and observant men +out of ten, if they were asked which they thought most likely to have +been the main cause of the development of the various phases either of +structure or instinct which we see around us, namely—sense of need, or +even whim, and hence occasional discovery, helped by an occasional piece +of good luck, communicated, it may be, and generally adopted, long +practised, remembered by offspring, modified by changed surroundings, and +accumulated in the course of time—or, the accumulation of small +divergent, indefinite, and perfectly unintelligent variations, preserved +through the survival of their possessor in the struggle for existence, +and hence in time leading to wide differences from the original +type—would answer in favour of the former alternative; and if for no +other cause yet for this—that in the human race, which we are best able +to watch, and between which and the lower animals no difference in kind +will, I think, be supposed, but only in degree, we observe that progress +must have an internal current setting in a definite direction, but +whither we know not for very long beforehand; and that without such +internal current there is stagnation. Our own progress—or variation—is +due not to small, fortuitous inventions or modifications which have +enabled their fortunate possessors to survive in times of difficulty, +not, in fact, to strokes of luck (though these, of course, have had some +effect—but not more, probably, than strokes of ill luck have +counteracted) but to strokes of cunning—to a sense of need, and to study +of the past and present which have given shrewd people a key with which +to unlock the chambers of the future. + +Further, Mr. Darwin himself says (“Plants and Animals under +Domestication,” ii. p. 237, ed. 1875):— + +“But I think we must take a broader view and conclude that organic beings +when subjected during several generations to any change whatever in their +conditions tend to vary: _the kind of variation which ensues depending in +most cases in a far higher degree on the nature or constitution of the +being_, _than on the nature of the changed conditions_.” And this we +observe in man. The history of a man prior to his birth is more +important as far as his success or failure goes than his surroundings +after birth, important though these may indeed be. The able man rises in +spite of a thousand hindrances, the fool fails in spite of every +advantage. “Natural selection,” however, does not make either the able +man or the fool. It only deals with him after other causes have made +him, and would seem in the end to amount to little more than to a +statement of the fact that when variations have arisen they will +accumulate. One cannot look, as has already been said, for the origin of +species in that part of the course of nature which settles the +preservation or extinction of variations which have already arisen from +some unknown cause, but one must look for it in the causes that have led +to variation at all. These causes must get, as it were, behind the back +of “natural selection,” which is rather a shield and hindrance to our +perception of our own ignorance than an explanation of what these causes +are. + +The remarks made above will apply equally to plants such as the misletoe +and red clover. For the sake of brevity I will deal only with the +misletoe, which seems to be the more striking case. Mr. Darwin writes:— + +“Naturalists continually refer to external conditions, such as climate, +food, &c., as the only possible cause of variation. In one limited +sense, as we shall hereafter see, this may be true; but it is +preposterous to attribute to mere external conditions, the structure, for +instance, of the woodpecker, with its feet, tail, beak, and tongue, so +admirably adapted to catch insects under the bark of trees. In the case +of the misletoe, which draws its nourishment from certain trees, which +has seeds that must be transported by certain birds, and which has +flowers with separate sexes absolutely requiring the agency of certain +insects to bring pollen from one flower to another, it is equally +preposterous to account for the structure of this parasite with its +relations to several distinct organic beings, by the effect of external +conditions, or of habit, or of the volition of the plant itself” +(“Natural Selection,” p. 3, ed. 1876). + +I cannot see this. To me it seems still more preposterous to account for +it by the action of “natural selection” operating upon indefinite +variations. It would be preposterous to suppose that a bird very +different from a woodpecker should have had a conception of a woodpecker, +and so by volition gradually grown towards it. So in like manner with +the misletoe. Neither plant nor bird knew how far they were going, or +saw more than a very little ahead as to the means of remedying this or +that with which they were dissatisfied, or of getting this or that which +they desired; but given perceptions at all, and thus a sense of needs and +of the gratification of those needs, and thus hope and fear, and a sense +of content and discontent—given also the lowest power of gratifying those +needs—given also that some individuals have these powers in a higher +degree than others—given also continued personality and memory over a +vast extent of time—and the whole phenomena of species and genera resolve +themselves into an illustration of the old proverb, that what is one +man’s meat is another man’s poison. Life in its lowest form under the +above conditions—and we cannot conceive of life at all without them—would +be bound to vary, and to result after not so very many millions of years +in the infinite forms and instincts which we see around us. + + + + +CHAPTER XIII. +LAMARCK AND MR. DARWIN. + + +IT will have been seen that in the preceding pages the theory of +evolution, as originally propounded by Lamarck, has been more than once +supported, as against the later theory concerning it put forward by Mr. +Darwin, and now generally accepted. + +It is not possible for me, within the limits at my command, to do +anything like justice to the arguments that may be brought forward in +favour of either of these two theories. Mr. Darwin’s books are at the +command of every one; and so much has been discovered since Lamarck’s +day, that if he were living now, he would probably state his case very +differently; I shall therefore content myself with a few brief remarks, +which will hardly, however, aspire to the dignity of argument. + +According to Mr. Darwin, differentiations of structure and instinct have +mainly come about through the accumulation of small, fortuitous +variations without intelligence or desire upon the part of the creature +varying; modification, however, through desire and sense of need, is not +denied entirely, inasmuch as considerable effect is ascribed by Mr. +Darwin to use and disuse, which involves, as has been already said, the +modification of a structure in accordance with the wishes of its +possessor. + +According to Lamarck, genera and species have been evolved, in the main, +by exactly the same process as that by which human inventions and +civilisations are now progressing; and this involves that intelligence, +ingenuity, heroism, and all the elements of romance, should have had the +main share in the development of every herb and living creature around +us. + +I take the following brief outline of the most important part of +Lamarck’s theory from vol. xxxvi. of the Naturalist’s Library (Edinburgh, +1843):— + +“The more simple bodies,” says the editor, giving Lamarck’s opinion +without endorsing it, “are easily formed, and this being the case, it is +easy to conceive how in the lapse of time animals of a more complex +structure should be produced, _for it must be admitted as a fundamental +law_, _that the production of a new organ in an animal body results from +any new want or desire it may experience_. The first effort of a being +just beginning to develop itself must be to procure subsistence, and +hence in time there comes to be produced a stomach or alimentary cavity.” +(Thus we saw that the amœba is in the habit of “extemporising” a stomach +when it wants one.) “Other wants occasioned by circumstances will lead +to other efforts, which in their turn will generate new organs.” + +Lamarck’s wonderful conception was hampered by an unnecessary adjunct, +namely, a belief in an inherent tendency towards progressive development +in every low organism. He was thus driven to account for the presence of +many very low and very ancient organisms at the present day, and fell +back upon the theory, which is not yet supported by evidence, that such +low forms are still continually coming into existence from inorganic +matter. But there seems no necessity to suppose that all low forms +should possess an inherent tendency towards progression. It would be +enough that there should occasionally arise somewhat more gifted +specimens of one or more original forms. These would vary, and the ball +would be thus set rolling, while the less gifted would remain _in statu +quo_, provided they were sufficiently gifted to escape extinction. + +Nor do I gather that Lamarck insisted on continued personality and memory +so as to account for heredity at all, and so as to see life as a single, +or as at any rate, only a few, vast compound animals, but without the +connecting organism between each component item in the whole creature, +which is found in animals that are strictly called compound. Until +continued personality and memory are connected with the idea of heredity, +heredity of any kind is little more than a term for something which one +does not understand. But there seems little _à priori_ difficulty as +regards Lamarck’s main idea, now that Mr. Darwin has familiarised us with +evolution, and made us feel what a vast array of facts can be brought +forward in support of it. + +Mr. Darwin tells us, in the preface to his last edition of the “Origin of +Species,” that Lamarck was partly led to his conclusions by the analogy +of domestic productions. It is rather hard to say what these words +imply; they may mean anything from a baby to an apple dumpling, but if +they imply that Lamarck drew inspirations from the gradual development of +the mechanical inventions of man, and from the progress of man’s ideas, I +would say that of all sources this would seem to be the safest and most +fertile from which to draw. + +Plants and animals under domestication are indeed a suggestive field for +study, but machines are the manner in which man is varying at this +moment. We know how our own minds work, and how our mechanical +organisations—for, in all sober seriousness, this is what it comes +to—have progressed hand in hand with our desires; sometimes the power a +little ahead, and sometimes the desire; sometimes both combining to form +an organ with almost infinite capacity for variation, and sometimes +comparatively early reaching the limit of utmost development in respect +of any new conception, and accordingly coming to a full stop; sometimes +making leaps and bounds, and sometimes advancing sluggishly. Here we are +behind the scenes, and can see how the whole thing works. We have man, +the very animal which we can best understand, caught in the very act of +variation, through his own needs, and not through the needs of others; +the whole process is a natural one; the varying of a creature as much in +a wild state as the ants and butterflies are wild. There is less +occasion here for the continual “might be” and “may be,” which we are +compelled to put up with when dealing with plants and animals, of the +workings of whose minds we can only obscurely judge. Also, there is more +prospect of pecuniary profit attaching to the careful study of machinery +than can be generally hoped for from the study of the lower animals; and +though I admit that this consideration should not be carried too far, a +great deal of very unnecessary suffering will be spared to the lower +animals; for much that passes for natural history is little better than +prying into other people’s business, from no other motive than curiosity. +I would, therefore, strongly advise the reader to use man, and the +present races of man, and the growing inventions and conceptions of man, +as his guide, if he would seek to form an independent judgement on the +development of organic life. For all growth is only somebody making +something. + +Lamarck’s theories fell into disrepute, partly because they were too +startling to be capable of ready fusion with existing ideas; they were, +in fact, too wide a cross for fertility; partly because they fell upon +evil times, during the reaction that followed the French Revolution; +partly because, unless I am mistaken, he did not sufficiently link on the +experience of the race to that of the individual, nor perceive the +importance of the principle that consciousness, memory, volition, +intelligence, &c., vanish, or become latent, on becoming intense. He +also appears to have mixed up matter with his system, which was either +plainly wrong, or so incapable of proof as to enable people to laugh at +him, and pooh-pooh him; but I believe it will come to be perceived, that +he has received somewhat scant justice at the hands of his successors, +and that his “crude theories,” as they have been somewhat cheaply called, +are far from having had their last say. + +Returning to Mr. Darwin, we find, as we have already seen, that it is +hard to say exactly how much Mr. Darwin differs from Lamarck, and how +much he agrees with him. Mr. Darwin has always maintained that use and +disuse are highly important, and this implies that the effect produced on +the parent should be remembered by the offspring, in the same way as the +memory of a wound is transmitted by one set of cells to succeeding ones, +who long repeat the scar, though it may fade finally away. Also, after +dealing with the manner in which one eye of a young flat-fish travels +round the head till both eyes are on the same side of the fish, he gives +(“Natural Selection,” p. 188, ed. 1875) an instance of a structure “which +apparently owes its origin exclusively to use or habit.” He refers to +the tail of some American monkeys “which has been converted into a +wonderfully perfect prehensile organ, and serves as a fifth hand. A +reviewer,” he continues, . . . “remarks on this structure—‘It is +impossible to believe that in any number of ages the first slight +incipient tendency to grasp, could preserve the lives of the individuals +possessing it, or favour their chance of having and of rearing +offspring.’ But there is no necessity for any such belief. Habit, and +this almost implies that some benefit, great or small, is thus derived, +would in all probability suffice for the work.” If, then, habit can do +this—and it is no small thing to develop a wonderfully perfect prehensile +organ which can serve as a fifth hand—how much more may not habit do, +even though unaided, as Mr. Darwin supposes to have been the case in this +instance, by “natural selection”? After attributing many of the +structural and instinctive differences of plants and animals to the +effects of use—as we may plainly do with Mr. Darwin’s own consent—after +attributing a good deal more to unknown causes, and a good deal to +changed conditions, which are bound, if at all important, to result +either in sterility or variation—how much of the work of originating +species is left for natural selection?—which, as Mr. Darwin admits +(“Natural Selection,” p. 63, ed. 1876), does not _induce variability_, +but “implies only the preservation of _such variations as arise_, and are +beneficial to the being under its conditions of life?” An important part +assuredly, and one which we can never sufficiently thank Mr. Darwin for +having put so forcibly before us, but an indirect part only, like the +part played by time and space, and not, I think, the one which Mr. Darwin +would assign to it. + +Mr. Darwin himself has admitted that in the earlier editions of his +“Origin of Species” he “underrated, as it now seems probable, the +frequency and importance of modifications due to spontaneous +variability.” And this involves the having over-rated the action of +“natural selection” as an agent in the evolution of species. But one +gathers that he still believes the accumulation of small and fortuitous +variations through the agency of “natural selection” to be the main cause +of the present divergencies of structure and instinct. I do not, +however, think that Mr. Darwin is clear about his own meaning. I think +the prominence given to “natural selection” in connection with the +“origin of species” has led him, in spite of himself, and in spite of his +being on his guard (as is clearly shown by the paragraph on page 63 +“Natural Selection,” above referred to), to regard “natural selection” as +in some way accounting for variation, just as the use of the dangerous +word “spontaneous,”—though he is so often on his guard against it, and so +frequently prefaces it with the words “so-called,”—would seem to have led +him into very serious confusion of thought in the passage quoted at the +beginning of this paragraph. + +For after saying that he had underrated “the frequency and importance of +modifications due to spontaneous variability,” he continues, “but it is +impossible to attribute to this cause the innumerable structures which +are so well adapted to the habits of life of each species.” That is to +say, it is impossible to attribute these innumerable structures to +spontaneous variability. + +What _is_ spontaneous variability? + +Clearly, from his preceding paragraph, Mr. Darwin means only “so-called +spontaneous variations,” such as “the appearance of a moss-rose on a +common rose, or of a nectarine on a peach-tree,” which he gives as good +examples of so-called spontaneous variation. + +And these variations are, after all, due to causes, but to unknown +causes; spontaneous variation being, in fact, but another name for +variation due to causes which we know nothing about, but in no possible +sense a _cause of variation_. So that when we come to put clearly before +our minds exactly what the sentence we are considering amounts to, it +comes to this: that it is impossible to attribute the innumerable +structures which are so well adapted to the habits of life of each +species to _unknown causes_. + +“I can no more believe in _this_,” continues Mr. Darwin, “than that the +well-adapted form of a race-horse or greyhound, which, before the +principle of selection by man was well understood, excited so much +surprise in the minds of the older naturalists, can _thus_ be explained” +(“Natural Selection,” p. 171, ed. 1876). + +Or, in other words, “I can no more believe that the well-adapted +structures of species are due to unknown causes, than I can believe that +the well-adapted form of a race-horse can be explained by being +attributed to unknown causes.” + +I have puzzled over this paragraph for several hours with the sincerest +desire to get at the precise idea which underlies it, but the more I have +studied it the more convinced I am that it does not contain, or at any +rate convey, any clear or definite idea at all. If I thought it was a +mere slip, I should not call attention to it; this book will probably +have slips enough of its own without introducing those of a great man +unnecessarily; but I submit that it is necessary to call attention to it +here, inasmuch as it is impossible to believe that after years of +reflection upon his subject, Mr. Darwin should have written as above, +especially in such a place, if his mind was really clear about his own +position. Immediately after the admission of a certain amount of +miscalculation, there comes a more or less exculpatory sentence which +sounds so right that ninety-nine people out of a hundred would walk +through it, unless led by some exigency of their own position to examine +it closely but which yet upon examination proves to be as nearly +meaningless as a sentence can be. + +The weak point in Mr. Darwin’s theory would seem to be a deficiency, so +to speak, of motive power to originate and direct the variations which +time is to accumulate. It deals admirably with the accumulation of +variations in creatures already varying, but it does not provide a +sufficient number of sufficiently important variations to be accumulated. +Given the motive power which Lamarck suggested, and Mr. Darwin’s +mechanism would appear (with the help of memory, as bearing upon +reproduction, of continued personality, and hence of inherited habit, and +of the vanishing tendency of consciousness) to work with perfect ease. +Mr. Darwin has made us all feel that in some way or other variations _are +accumulated_, and that evolution is the true solution of the present +widely different structures around us, whereas, before he wrote, hardly +any one believed this. However we may differ from him in detail, the +present general acceptance of evolution must remain as his work, and a +more valuable work can hardly be imagined. Nevertheless, I cannot think +that “natural selection,” working upon small, fortuitous, indefinite, +unintelligent variations, would produce the results we see around us. +One wants something that will give a more definite aim to variations, and +hence, at times, cause bolder leaps in advance. One cannot but doubt +whether so many plants and animals would be being so continually saved +“by the skin of their teeth,” as must be so saved if the variations from +which genera ultimately arise are as small in their commencement and at +each successive stage as Mr. Darwin seems to believe. God—to use the +language of the Bible—is not extreme to mark what is done amiss, whether +with plant or beast or man; on the other hand, when towers of Siloam +fall, they fall on the just as well as the unjust. + +One feels, on considering Mr. Darwin’s position, that if it be admitted +that there is in the lowest creature a power to vary, no matter how +small, one has got in this power as near the “origin of species” as one +can ever hope to get. For no one professes to account for the origin of +life; but if a creature with a power to vary reproduces itself at all, it +must reproduce another creature _which shall also have the power to +vary_; so that, given time and space enough, there is no knowing where +such a creature could or would stop. + +If the primordial cell had been only capable of reproducing itself once, +there would have followed a single line of descendants, the chain of +which might at any moment have been broken by casualty. Doubtless the +millionth repetition would have differed very materially from the +original—as widely, perhaps, as we differ from the primordial cell; but +it would only have differed by addition, and could no more in any +generation resume its latest development without having passed through +the initial stage of being what its first forefather was, and doing what +its first forefather did, and without going through all or a sufficient +number of the steps whereby it had reached its latest differentiation, +than water can rise above its own level. + +The very idea, then, of reproduction involves, unless I am mistaken, +that, no matter how much the creature reproducing itself may gain in +power and versatility, it must still always begin _with itself again_ in +each generation. The primordial cell being capable of reproducing itself +not only once, but many times over, each of the creatures which it +produces must be similarly gifted; hence the geometrical ratio of +increase and the existing divergence of type. In each generation it will +pass rapidly and unconsciously through all the earlier stages of which +there has been infinite experience, and for which the conditions are +reproduced with sufficient similarity to cause no failure of memory or +hesitation; but in each generation, when it comes to the part in which +the course is not so clear, it will become conscious; still, however, +where the course is plain, as in breathing, digesting, &c., retaining +unconsciousness. Thus organs which present all the appearance of being +designed—as, for example, the tip for its beak prepared by the embryo +chicken—would be prepared in the end, as it were, by rote, and without +sense of design, though none the less owing their origin to design. + +The question is not concerning evolution, but as to the main cause which +has led to evolution in such and such shapes. To me it seems that the +“Origin of Variation,” whatever it is, is the only true “Origin of +Species,” and that this must, as Lamarck insisted, be looked for in the +needs and experiences of the creatures varying. Unless we can explain +the origin of variations, we are met by the unexplained _at every step_ +in the progress of a creature from its original homogeneous condition to +its differentiation, we will say, as an elephant; so that to say that an +elephant has become an elephant through the accumulation of a vast number +of small, fortuitous, but unexplained, variations in some lower +creatures, is really to say that it has become an elephant owing to a +series of causes about which we know nothing whatever, or, in other +words, that one does not know how it came to be an elephant. But to say +that an elephant has become an elephant owing to a series of variations, +nine-tenths of which were caused by the wishes of the creature or +creatures from which the elephant is descended—this is to offer a reason, +and definitely put the insoluble one step further back. The question +will then turn upon the sufficiency of the reason—that is to say, whether +the hypothesis is borne out by facts. + +The effects of competition would, of course, have an extremely important +effect upon any creature, in the same way as any other condition of +nature under which it lived, must affect its sense of need and its +opinions generally. The results of competition would be, as it were, the +decisions of an arbiter settling the question whether such and such +variation was really to the animal’s advantage or not—a matter on which +the animal will, on the whole, have formed a pretty fair judgement for +itself. _Undoubtedly the past decisions of such an arbiter would affect +the conduct of the creature_, which would have doubtless had its +shortcomings and blunders, and would amend them. The creature would +shape its course according to its experience of the common course of +events, but it would be continually trying and often successfully, to +evade the law by all manner of sharp practice. New precedents would thus +arise, so that the law would shift with time and circumstances; but the +law would not otherwise direct the channels into which life would flow, +than as laws, whether natural or artificial, have affected the +development of the widely differing trades and professions among mankind. +These have had their origin rather in the needs and experiences of +mankind than in any laws. + +To put much the same as the above in different words. Assume that small +favourable variations are preserved more commonly, in proportion to their +numbers, than is perhaps the case, and assume that considerable +variations occur more rarely than they probably do occur, how account for +any variation at all? “Natural selection” cannot _create_ the smallest +variation unless it acts through perception of its mode of operation, +recognised inarticulately, but none the less clearly, by the creature +varying. “Natural selection” operates on what it finds, and not on what +it has made. Animals that have been wise and lucky live longer and breed +more than others less wise and lucky. Assuredly. The wise and lucky +animals transmit their wisdom and luck. Assuredly. They add to their +powers, and diverge into widely different directions. Assuredly. What +is the cause of this? Surely the fact that they were capable of feeling +needs, and that they differed in their needs and manner of gratifying +them, and that they continued to live in successive generations, rather +than the fact that when lucky and wise they thrived and bred more +descendants. This last is an accessory hardly less important for the +_development_ of species than the fact of the continuation of life at +all; but it is an accessory of much the same kind as this, for if animals +continue to live at all, they must live _in some way_, and will find that +there are good ways and bad ways of living. An animal which discovers +the good way will gradually develop further powers, and so species will +get further and further apart; but the origin of this is to be looked +for, not in the power which decides whether this or that way was good, +but in the cause which determines the creature, consciously or +unconsciously, to try this or that way. + +But Mr. Darwin might say that this is not a fair way of stating the +issue. He might say, “You beg the question; you assume that there is an +inherent tendency in animals towards progressive development, whereas I +say that there is no good evidence of any such tendency. I maintain that +the differences that have from time to time arisen have come about mainly +from causes so far beyond our ken, that we can only call them +spontaneous; and if so, natural selection which you must allow to have at +any rate played an important part in the _accumulation_ of variations, +must also be allowed to be the nearest thing to the cause of Specific +differences, which we are able to arrive at.” + +Thus he writes (“Natural Selection,” p. 176, ed. 1876): “Although we have +no good evidence of the existence in organic beings of a tendency towards +progressive development, yet this necessarily follows, as I have +attempted to show in the fourth chapter, through the continued action of +natural selection.” Mr. Darwin does not say that organic beings have no +tendency to vary at all, but only that there is no good evidence that +they have a tendency to progressive development, which, I take it, means, +to see an ideal a long way off, and very different to their present +selves, which ideal they think will suit them, and towards which they +accordingly make. I would admit this as contrary to all experience. I +doubt whether plants and animals have any _innate tendency to vary_ at +all, being led to question this by gathering from “Plants and Animals +under Domestication” that this is Mr. Darwin’s own opinion. I am +inclined rather to think that they have only an innate _power to vary_ +slightly, in accordance with changed conditions, and an innate capability +of being affected both in structure and instinct, by causes similar to +those which we observe to affect ourselves. But however this may be, +they do vary somewhat, and unless they did, they would not in time have +come to be so widely different from each other as they now are. The +question is as to the origin and character of these variations. + +We say they mainly originate in a creature through a sense of its needs, +and vary through the varying surroundings which will cause those needs to +vary, and through the opening up of new desires in many creatures, as the +consequence of the gratification of old ones; they depend greatly on +differences of individual capacity and temperament; they are +communicated, and in the course of time transmitted, as what we call +hereditary habits or structures, though these are only, in truth, intense +and epitomised memories of how certain creatures liked to deal with +protoplasm. The question whether this or that is really good or ill, is +settled, as the proof of the pudding by the eating thereof, _i.e._, by +the rigorous competitive examinations through which most living organisms +must pass. Mr. Darwin says that there is no good evidence in support of +any great principle, or tendency on the part of the creature itself, +which would steer variation, as it were, and keep its head straight, but +that the most marvellous adaptations of structures to needs are simply +the result of small and blind variations, accumulated by the operation of +“natural selection,” which is thus the main cause of the origin of +species. + +Enough has perhaps already been said to make the reader feel that the +question wants reopening; I shall, therefore, here only remark that we +may assume no fundamental difference as regards intelligence, memory, and +sense of needs to exist between man and the lowest animals, and that in +man we do distinctly see a tendency towards progressive development, +operating through his power of profiting by and transmitting his +experience, but operating in directions which man cannot foresee for any +long distance. We also see this in many of the higher animals under +domestication, as with horses which have learnt to canter and dogs which +point; more especially we observe it along the line of latest +development, where equilibrium of settled convictions has not yet been +fully attained. One neither finds nor expects much _a priori_ knowledge, +whether in man or beast; but one does find some little in the beginnings +of, and throughout the development of, every habit, at the commencement +of which, and on every successive improvement in which, deductive and +inductive methods are, as it were, fused. Thus the effect, where we can +best watch its causes, seems mainly produced by a desire for a definite +object—in some cases a serious and sensible desire, in others an idle +one, in others, again, a mistaken one; and sometimes by a blunder which, +in the hands of an otherwise able creature, has turned up trumps. In +wild animals and plants the divergences have been accumulated, if they +answered to the prolonged desires of the creature itself, and if these +desires were to its true ultimate good; with plants or animals under +domestication they have been accumulated if they answered a little to the +original wishes of the creature, and much, to the wishes of man. As long +as man continued to like them, they would be advantageous to the +creature; when he tired of them, they would be disadvantageous to it, and +would accumulate no longer. Surely the results produced in the +adaptation of structure to need among many plants and insects are better +accounted for on this, which I suppose to be Lamarck’s view, namely, by +supposing that what goes on amongst ourselves has gone on amongst all +creatures, than by supposing that these adaptations are the results of +perfectly blind and unintelligent variations. + +Let me give two examples of such adaptations, taken from Mr. St. George +Mivart’s “Genesis of Species,” to which work I would wish particularly to +call the reader’s attention. He should also read Mr. Darwin’s answers to +Mr. Mivart (p. 176, “Natural Selection,” ed. 1876, and onwards). + +Mr. Mivart writes:— + +“Some insects which imitate leaves extend the imitation even to the very +injuries on those leaves made by the attacks of insects or fungi. Thus +speaking of the walking-stick insects, Mr. Wallace says, ‘One of these +creatures obtained by myself in Borneo (_ceroxylus laceratus_) was +covered over with foliaceous excrescences of a clear olive green colour, +so as exactly to resemble a stick grown over by a creeping moss or +jungermannia. The Dyak who brought it me assured me it was grown over +with moss, though alive, and it was only after a most minute examination +that I could convince myself it was not so.’ Again, as to the leaf +butterfly, he says, ‘We come to a still more extraordinary part of the +imitation, for we find representations of leaves in every stage of decay, +variously blotched, and mildewed, and pierced with holes, and in many +cases irregularly covered with powdery black dots, gathered into patches +and spots so closely resembling the various kinds of minute fungi that +grow on dead leaves, that it is impossible to avoid thinking at first +sight that the butterflies themselves have been attacked by real fungi.’” + +I can no more believe that these artificial fungi in which the moth +arrays itself are due to the accumulation of minute, perfectly blind, and +unintelligent variations, than I can believe that the artificial flowers +which a woman wears in her hat can have got there without design; or that +a detective puts on plain clothes without the slightest intention of +making his victim think that he is not a policeman. + +Again Mr. Mivart writes:— + +“In the work just referred to (‘The Fertilisation of Orchids’), Mr. +Darwin gives a series of the most wonderful and minute contrivances, by +which the visits of insects are utilised for the fertilisation of +orchids—structures so wonderful that nothing could well be more so, +except the attribution of their origin to minute, fortuitous, and +indefinite variations. + +“The instances are too numerous and too long to quote, but in his ‘Origin +of Species’ he describes two which must not be passed over. In one +(_coryanthes_) the orchid has its lower lip enlarged into a bucket, above +which stand two water-secreting horns. These latter replenish the +bucket, from which, when half-filled, the water overflows by a spout on +one side. Bees visiting the flower fall into the bucket and crawl out at +the spout. By the peculiar arrangement of the parts of the flower, the +first bee which does so, carries away the pollen mass glued to his back, +and then when he has his next involuntary bath in another flower, as he +crawls out, the pollen attached to him comes in contact with the stigma +of that second flower and fertilises it. In the other example +(_catasetum_), when a bee gnaws a certain part of the flower, he +inevitably touches a long delicate projection which Mr. Darwin calls the +‘antenna.’ ‘This antenna transmits a vibration to a membrane which is +instantly ruptured; this sets free a spring by which the pollen mass is +shot forth like an arrow in the right direction, and adheres by its +viscid extremity to the back of the bee’” (“Genesis of Species,” p. 63). + +No one can tell a story so charmingly as Mr. Darwin, but I can no more +believe that all this has come about without design on the part of the +orchid, and a gradual perception of the advantages it is able to take +over the bee, and a righteous determination to enjoy them, than I can +believe that a mousetrap or a steam-engine is the result of the +accumulation of blind minute fortuitous variations in a creature called +man, which creature has never wanted either mousetraps or steam-engines, +but has had a sort of promiscuous tendency to make them, and was +benefited by making them, so that those of the race who had a tendency to +make them survived and left issue, which issue would thus naturally tend +to make more mousetraps and more steam-engines. + +Pursuing this idea still further, can we for a moment believe that these +additions to our limbs—for this is what they are—have mainly come about +through the occasional birth of individuals, who, without design on their +own parts, nevertheless made them better or worse, and who, accordingly, +either survived and transmitted their improvement, or perished, they and +their incapacity together? + +When I can believe in this, then—and not till then—can I believe in an +origin of species which does not resolve itself mainly into sense of +need, faith, intelligence, and memory. Then, and not till then, can I +believe that such organs as the eye and ear can have arisen in any other +way than as the result of that kind of mental ingenuity, and of moral as +well as physical capacity, without which, till then, I should have +considered such an invention as the steam-engine to be impossible. + + + + +CHAPTER XIV. +MR. MIVART AND MR. DARWIN. + + +“A DISTINGUISHED zoologist, Mr. St. George Mivart,” writes Mr. Darwin, +“has recently collected all the objections which have ever been advanced +by myself and others against the theory of natural selection, as +propounded by Mr. Wallace and myself, and has illustrated them with +admirable art and force” (“Natural Selection,” p. 176, ed. 1876). I have +already referred the reader to Mr. Mivart’s work, but quote the above +passage as showing that Mr. Mivart will not, probably, be found to have +left much unsaid that would appear to make against Mr. Darwin’s theory. +It is incumbent upon me both to see how far Mr. Mivart’s objections are +weighty as against Mr. Darwin, and also whether or not they tell with +equal force against the view which I am myself advocating. I will +therefore touch briefly upon the most important of them, with the purpose +of showing that they are serious as against the doctrine that small +fortuitous variations are the origin of species, but that they have no +force against evolution as guided by intelligence and memory. + +But before doing this, I would demur to the words used by Mr. Darwin, and +just quoted above, namely, “the theory of natural selection.” I imagine +that I see in them the fallacy which I believe to run through almost all +Mr. Darwin’s work, namely, that “natural selection” is a theory (if, +indeed, it can be a theory at all), in some way accounting for the origin +of variation, and so of species—“natural selection,” as we have already +seen, being unable to “induce variability,” and being only able to +accumulate what—on the occasion of each successive variation, and so +during the whole process—must have been originated by something else. + +Again, Mr. Darwin writes—“In considering the origin of species it is +quite conceivable that a naturalist, reflecting on the mutual affinities +of organic beings, or their embryological relations, their geographical +distribution, geological succession, and other such facts, might come to +the conclusion that species had not been independently created, but had +descended, like varieties from other species. Nevertheless, such a +conclusion, even if well founded, would be unsatisfactory, until it could +be shown how the innumerable species inhabiting this world had been +modified, so as to acquire that perfection of structure and co-adaptation +which justly excites our admiration” (“Origin of Species,” p. 2, ed. +1876). + +After reading the above we feel that nothing more satisfactory could be +desired. We are sure that we are in the hands of one who can indeed tell +us “how the innumerable species inhabiting this world have been +modified,” and we are no less sure that though others may have written +upon the subject before, there has been, as yet, no satisfactory +explanation put forward of the grand principle upon which modification +has proceeded. Then follows a delightful volume, with facts upon facts +concerning animals, all showing that species is due to successive small +modifications accumulated in the course of nature. But one cannot +suppose that Lamarck ever doubted this; for he can never have meant to +say, that a low form of life made itself into an elephant at one or two +great bounds; and if he did not mean this, he must have meant that it +made itself into an elephant through the accumulation of small successive +modifications; these, he must have seen, were capable of accumulation in +the scheme of nature, though he may not have dwelt on the manner in which +this is accomplished, inasmuch as it is obviously a matter of secondary +importance in comparison with the origin of the variations themselves. +We believe, however, throughout Mr. Darwin’s book, that we are being told +what we expected to be told; and so convinced are we, by the facts +adduced, that in some way or other evolution must be true, and so +grateful are we for being allowed to think this, that we put down the +volume without perceiving that, whereas Lamarck _did_ adduce a great and +general cause of variation, the insufficiency of which, in spite of +errors of detail, has yet to be shown, Mr. Darwin’s main cause of +variation resolves itself into a confession of ignorance. + +This, however, should detract but little from our admiration for Mr. +Darwin’s achievement. Any one can make people see a thing if he puts it +in the right way, but Mr. Darwin made us see evolution, in spite of his +having put it, in what seems to not a few, an exceedingly mistaken way. +Yet his triumph is complete, for no matter how much any one now moves the +foundation, he cannot shake the superstructure, which has become so +currently accepted as to be above the need of any support from reason, +and to be as difficult to destroy as it was originally difficult of +construction. Less than twenty years ago, we never met with, or heard +of, any one who accepted evolution; we did not even know that such a +doctrine had been ever broached; unless it was that some one now and +again said that there was a very dreadful book going about like a rampant +lion, called “Vestiges of Creation,” whereon we said that we would on no +account read it, lest it should shake our faith; then we would shake our +heads and talk of the preposterous folly and wickedness of such shallow +speculations. Had not the book of Genesis been written for our learning? +Yet, now, who seriously disputes the main principles of evolution? I +cannot believe that there is a bishop on the bench at this moment who +does not accept them; even the “holy priests” themselves bless evolution +as their predecessors blessed Cleopatra—when they ought not. It is not +he who first conceives an idea, nor he who sets it on its legs and makes +it go on all fours, but he who makes other people accept the main +conclusion, whether on right grounds or on wrong ones, who has done the +greatest work as regards the promulgation of an opinion. And this is +what Mr. Darwin has done for evolution. He has made us think that we +know the origin of species, and so of genera, in spite of his utmost +efforts to assure us that we know nothing of the causes from which the +vast majority of modifications have arisen—that is to say, he has made us +think we know the whole road, though he has almost ostentatiously +blindfolded us at every step of the journey. But to the end of time, if +the question be asked, “Who taught people to believe in evolution?” there +can only be one answer—that it was Mr. Darwin. + + * * * * * + +Mr. Mivart urges with much force the difficulty of _starting_ any +modification on which “natural selection” is to work, and of getting a +creature to vary in any definite direction. Thus, after quoting from Mr. +Wallace some of the wonderful cases of “mimicry” which are to be found +among insects, he writes:— + +“Now, let us suppose that the ancestors of these various animals were all +destitute of the very special protection they at present possess, as on +the Darwinian hypothesis we must do. Let it be also conceded that small +deviations from the antecedent colouring or form would tend to make some +of their ancestors escape destruction, by causing them more or less +frequently to be passed over or mistaken by their persecutors. Yet the +deviation must, as the event has shown, in each case, be in some definite +direction, whether it be towards some other animal or plant, or towards +some dead or inorganic matter. But as, according to Mr. Darwin’s theory, +there is a constant tendency to indefinite variation, and as the minute +incipient variations will be _in all directions_, they must tend to +neutralise each other, and at first to form such unstable modifications, +that it is difficult, if not impossible, to see how such indefinite +modifications of insignificant beginnings can ever build up a +sufficiently appreciable resemblance to a leaf, bamboo, or other object +for “natural selection,” to seize upon and perpetuate. This difficulty +is augmented when we consider—a point to be dwelt upon hereafter—how +necessary it is that many individuals should be similarly modified +simultaneously. This has been insisted on in an able article in the +‘North British Review’ for June 1867, p. 286, and the consideration of +the article has occasioned Mr. Darwin” (“Origin of Species,” 5th ed., p. +104) “to make an important modification in his views” (“Genesis of +Species,” p. 38). + +To this Mr. Darwin rejoins:— + +“But in all the foregoing cases the insects in their original state, no +doubt, presented some rude and accidental resemblance to an object +commonly found in the stations frequented by them. Nor is this +improbable, considering the almost infinite number of surrounding +objects, and the diversity of form and colour of the host of insects that +exist” (“Natural Selection,” p. 182, ed. 1876). + +Mr. Mivart has just said: “It is difficult to see how such indefinite +modifications of insignificant beginnings _can ever build up a +sufficiently appreciable resemblance to a leaf_, _bamboo_, _or other +object_, _for_ ‘_natural selection_’ _to work upon_.” + +The answer is, that “natural selection” did not begin to work _until_, +_from unknown causes_, _an appreciable resemblance had nevertheless been +presented_. I think the reader will agree with me that the development +of the lowest life into a creature which bears even “a rude resemblance” +to the objects commonly found in the station in which it is moving in its +present differentiation, requires more explanation than is given by the +word “accidental.” + +Mr. Darwin continues: “As some rude resemblance is necessary for the +first start,” &c.; and a little lower he writes: “Assuming that an insect +originally happened to resemble in some degree a dead twig or a decayed +leaf, and that it varied slightly in many ways, then all the variations +which rendered the insect at all more like any such object, and thus +favoured its escape, would be preserved, while other variations would be +neglected, and ultimately lost, or if they rendered the insect at all +less like the imitated object, they would be eliminated.” + +But here, again, we are required to begin with Natural Selection when the +work is already in great part done, owing to causes about which we are +left completely in the dark; we may, I think, fairly demur to the insects +_originally_ happening to resemble in some degree a dead twig or a +decayed leaf. And when we bear in mind that the variations, being +supposed by Mr. Darwin to be indefinite, or devoid of aim, will appear in +every direction, we cannot forget what Mr. Mivart insists upon, namely, +that the chances of many favourable variations being counteracted by +other unfavourable ones in the same creature are not inconsiderable. +Nor, again, is it likely that the favourable variation would make its +mark upon the race, and escape being absorbed in the course of a few +generations, unless—as Mr. Mivart elsewhere points out, in a passage to +which I shall call the reader’s attention presently—a larger number of +similarly varying creatures made their appearance at the same time than +there seems sufficient reason to anticipate, if the variations can be +called fortuitous. + +“There would,” continues Mr. Darwin, “indeed be force in Mr. Mivart’s +objection if we were to attempt to account for the above resemblances, +independently of ‘natural selection,’ through mere fluctuating +variability; but as the case stands, there is none.” + +This comes to saying that, if there was no power in nature which operates +so that of all the many fluctuating variations, those only are preserved +which tend to the resemblance which is beneficial to the creature, then +indeed there would be difficulty in understanding how the resemblance +could have come about; but that as there is a beneficial resemblance to +start with, and as there is a power in nature which would preserve and +accumulate further beneficial resemblance, should it arise from this +cause or that, the difficulty is removed. But Mr. Mivart does not, I +take it, deny the existence of such a power in nature, as Mr. Darwin +supposes, though, if I understand him rightly, he does not see that its +operation _upon small fortuitous variations_ is at all the simple and +obvious process, which on a superficial view of the case it would appear +to be. He thinks—and I believe the reader will agree with him—that this +process is too slow and too risky. What he wants to know is, how the +insect came even rudely to resemble the object, and how, if its +variations are indefinite, we are ever to get into such a condition as to +be able to report progress, owing to the constant liability of the +creature which has varied favourably, to play the part of Penelope and +undo its work, by varying in some one of the infinite number of other +directions which are open to it—all of which, except this one, tend to +destroy the resemblance, and yet may be in some other respect even more +advantageous to the creature, and so tend to its preservation. Moreover, +here, too, I think (though I cannot be sure), we have a recurrence of the +original fallacy in the words—“If we were to account for the above +resemblances, independently of ‘natural selection,’ through mere +fluctuating variability.” Surely Mr. Darwin does, after all, “account +for the resemblances through mere fluctuating variability,” for “natural +selection” does not account for one single variation in the whole list of +them from first to last, other than indirectly, as shewn in the preceding +chapter. + +It is impossible for me to continue this subject further; but I would beg +the reader to refer to other paragraphs in the neighbourhood of the one +just quoted, in which he may—though I do not think he will—see reason to +think that I should have given Mr. Darwin’s answer more fully. I do not +quote Mr. Darwin’s next paragraph, inasmuch as I see no great difficulty +about “the last touches of perfection in mimicry,” provided Mr. Darwin’s +theory will account for any mimicry at all. If it could do this, it +might as well do more; but a strong impression is left on my mind, that +without the help of something over and above the power to vary, which +should give a definite aim to variations, all the “natural selection” in +the world would not have prevented stagnation and self-stultification, +owing to the indefinite tendency of the variations, which thus could not +have developed either a preyer or a preyee, but would have gone round and +round and round the primordial cell till they were weary of it. + +As against Mr. Darwin, therefore, I think that the objection just given +from Mr. Mivart is fatal. I believe, also, that the reader will feel the +force of it much more strongly if he will turn to Mr. Mivart’s own pages. +Against the view which I am myself supporting, the objection breaks down +entirely, for grant “a little dose of judgement and reason” on the part +of the creature itself—grant also continued personality and memory—and a +definite tendency is at once given to the variations. The process is +thus started, and is kept straight, and helped forward through every +stage by “the little dose of reason,” &c., which enabled it to take its +first step. We are, in fact, no longer without a helm, but can steer +each creature that is so discontented with its condition, as to make a +serious effort to better itself, into _some_—and into a very +distant—harbour. + + * * * * * + +It has been objected against Mr. Darwin’s theory that if all species and +genera have come to differ through the accumulation of minute but—as a +general rule—fortuitous variations, there has not been time enough, so +far as we are able to gather, for the evolution of all existing forms by +so slow a process. On this subject I would again refer the reader to Mr. +Mivart’s book, from which I take the following:— + +“Sir William Thompson has lately advanced arguments from three distinct +lines of inquiry agreeing in one approximate result. The three lines of +inquiry are—(1) the action of the tides upon the earth’s rotation; (2) +the probable length of time during which the sun has illuminated this +planet; and (3) the temperature of the interior of the earth. The result +arrived at by these investigations is a conclusion that the existing +state of things on the earth, life on the earth, all geological history +showing continuity of life, must be limited within some such period of +past time as one hundred million years. The first question which +suggests itself, supposing Sir W. Thompson’s views to be correct, is: Has +this period been anything like enough for the evolution of all organic +forms by ‘natural selection’? The second is: Has the period been +anything like enough for the deposition of the strata which must have +been deposited if all organic forms have been evolved by minute steps, +according to the Darwinian theory?” (“Genesis of Species,” p. 154). + +Mr. Mivart then quotes from Mr. Murphy—whose work I have not seen—the +following passage:— + +“Darwin justly mentions the greyhound as being equal to any natural +species in the perfect co-ordination of its parts, ‘all adapted for +extreme fleetness and for running down weak prey.’ Yet it is an +artificial species (and not physiologically a species at all) formed by a +long-continued selection under domestication; and there is no reason to +suppose that any of the variations which have been selected to form it +have been other than gradual and almost imperceptible. Suppose that it +has taken five hundred years to form the greyhound out of his wolf-like +ancestor. This is a mere guess, but it gives the order of magnitude. +Now, if so, how long would it take to obtain an elephant from a protozoon +or even from a tadpole-like fish? Ought it not to take much more than a +million times as long?” (“Genesis of Species,” p. 155). + +I should be very sorry to pronounce any opinion upon the foregoing data; +but a general impression is left upon my mind, that if the differences +between an elephant and a tadpole-like fish have arisen from the +accumulation of small variations that have had no direction given them by +intelligence and sense of needs, then no time conceivable by man would +suffice for their development. But grant “a little dose of reason and +judgement,” even to animals low down in the scale of nature, and grant +this, not only during their later life, but during their embryological +existence, and see with what infinitely greater precision of aim and with +what increased speed the variations would arise. Evolution entirely +unaided by inherent intelligence must be a very slow, if not quite +inconceivable, process. Evolution helped by intelligence would still be +slow, but not so desperately slow. One can conceive that there has been +sufficient time for the second, but one cannot conceive it for the first. + + * * * * * + +I find from Mr. Mivart that objection has been taken to Mr. Darwin’s +views, on account of the great odds that exist against the appearance of +any given variation at one and the same time, in a sufficient number of +individuals, to prevent its being obliterated almost as soon as produced +by the admixture of unvaried blood which would so greatly preponderate +around it; and indeed the necessity for a nearly simultaneous and similar +variation, or readiness so to vary on the part of many individuals, seems +almost a postulate for evolution at all. On this subject Mr. Mivart +writes:— + +“The ‘North British Review’ (speaking of the supposition that species is +changed by the survival of a few individuals in a century through a +similar and favourable variation) says— + +“‘It is very difficult to see how this can be accomplished, even when the +variation is eminently favourable indeed; and still more, when the +advantage gained is very slight, as must generally be the case. The +advantage, whatever it may be, is utterly outbalanced by numerical +inferiority. A million creatures are born; ten thousand survive to +produce offspring. One of the million has twice as good a chance as any +other of surviving, but the chances are fifty to one against the gifted +individuals being one of the hundred survivors. No doubt the chances are +twice as great against any other individual, but this does not prevent +their being enormously in favour of _some_ average individual. However +slight the advantage may be, if it is shared by half the individuals +produced, it will probably be present in at least fifty-one of the +survivors, and in a larger proportion of their offspring; but the chances +are against the preservation of any one “sport” (_i.e._, sudden marked +variation) in a numerous tribe. The vague use of an +imperfectly-understood doctrine of chance, has led Darwinian supporters, +first, to confuse the two cases above distinguished, and secondly, to +imagine that a very slight balance in favour of some individual sport +must lead to its perpetuation. All that can be said is that in the above +example the favoured sport would be preserved once in fifty times. Let +us consider what will be its influence on the main stock when preserved. +It will breed and have a progeny of say 100; now this progeny will, on +the whole, be intermediate between the average individual and the sport. +The odds in favour of one of this generation of the new breed will be, +say one and a half to one, as compared with the average individual; the +odds in their favour will, therefore, be less than that of their parents; +but owing to their greater number the chances are that about one and a +half of them would survive. Unless these breed together—a most +improbable event—their progeny would again approach the average +individual; there would be 150 of them, and their superiority would be, +say in the ratio of one and a quarter to one; the probability would now +be that nearly two of them would survive, and have 200 children with an +eighth superiority. Rather more than two of these would survive; but the +superiority would again dwindle; until after a few generations it would +no longer be observed, and would count for no more in the struggle for +life than any of the hundred trifling advantages which occur in the +ordinary organs. + +“‘An illustration will bring this conception home. Suppose a white man +to have been wrecked on an island inhabited by negroes, and to have +established himself in friendly relations with a powerful tribe, whose +customs he has learnt. Suppose him to possess the physical strength, +energy, and ability of a dominant white race, and let the food of the +island suit his constitution; grant him every advantage which we can +conceive a white to possess over the native; concede that in the struggle +for existence, his chance of a long life will be much superior to that of +the native chiefs; yet from all these admissions there does not follow +the conclusion, that after a limited or unlimited number of generations, +the inhabitants of the island will be white. Our shipwrecked hero would +probably become king; he would kill a great many blacks in the struggle +for existence; he would have a great many wives and children . . . In the +first generation there will be some dozens of intelligent young +mulattoes, much superior in average intelligence to the negroes. We +might expect the throne for some generations to be occupied by a more or +less yellow king; but can any one believe that the whole island will +gradually acquire a white, or even a yellow population? . . . Darwin +says, that in the struggle for life a grain may turn the balance in +favour of a given structure, which will then be preserved. But one of +the weights in the scale of nature is due to the number of a given tribe. +Let there be 7000 A’s and 7000 B’s representing two varieties of a given +animal, and let all the B’s, in virtue of a slight difference of +structure, have the better chance by one-thousandth part. We must allow +that there is a slight probability that the descendants of B will +supplant the descendants of A; but let there be 7001 A’s against 7000 B’s +at first, and the chances are once more equal, while if there be 7002 A’s +to start, the odds would be laid on the A’s. Thus they stand a greater +chance of being killed; but, then, they can better afford to be killed. +The grain will only turn the scales when these are very nicely balanced, +and an advantage in numbers counts for weight, even as an advantage in +structure. As the numbers of the favoured variety diminish, so must its +relative advantages increase, if the chance of its existence is to +surpass the chance of its extinction, until hardly any conceivable +advantage would enable the descendants of a single pair to exterminate +the descendants of many thousands, if they and their descendants are +supposed to breed freely with the inferior variety, and so gradually lose +their ascendancy,’” (“North British Review,” June 1867, p. 286 “Genesis +of Species,” p. 64, and onwards). + +Against this it should be remembered that there is always an antecedent +probability that several specimens of a given variation would appear at +one time and place. This would probably be the case even on Mr. Darwin’s +hypothesis, that the variations are fortuitous; if they are mainly guided +by sense of need and intelligence, it would almost certainly be so, for +all would have much the same idea as to their well-being, and the same +cause which would lead one to vary in this direction would lead not a few +others to do so at the same time, or to follow suit. Thus we see that +many human ideas and inventions have been conceived independently but +simultaneously. The chances, moreover, of specimens that have varied +successfully, intermarrying, are, I think, greater than the reviewer +above quoted from would admit. I believe that on the hypothesis that the +variations are fortuitous, and certainly on the supposition that they are +intelligent, they might be looked for in members of the same family, who +would hence have a better chance of finding each other out. Serious as +is the difficulty advanced by the reviewer as against Mr. Darwin’s +theory, it may be in great measure parried without departing from Mr. +Darwin’s own position, but the “little dose of judgement and reason” +removes it, absolutely and entirely. As for the reviewer’s shipwrecked +hero, surely the reviewer must know that Mr. Darwin would no more expect +an island of black men to be turned white, or even perceptibly whitened +after a few generations, than the reviewer himself would do so. But if +we turn from what “might” or what “would” happen to what “does” happen, +we find that a few white families have nearly driven the Indian from the +United States, the Australian natives from Australia, and the Maories +from New Zealand. True, these few families have been helped by +immigration; but it will be admitted that this has only accelerated a +result which would otherwise, none the less surely, have been effected. + +There is all the difference between a sudden sport, or even a variety +introduced from a foreign source, and the gradual, intelligent, and, in +the main, steady, growth of a race towards ends always a little, but not +much, in advance of what it can at present compass, until it has reached +equilibrium with its surroundings. So far as Mr. Darwin’s variations are +of the nature of “sport,” _i.e._, rare, and owing to nothing that we can +in the least assign to any known cause, the reviewer’s objections carry +much weight. Against the view here advocated, they are powerless. + + * * * * * + +I cannot here go into the difficulties of the geologic record, but they +too will, I believe, be felt to be almost infinitely simplified by +supposing the development of structure and instinct to be guided by +intelligence and memory, which, even under unstable conditions, would be +able to meet in some measure the demands made upon them. + + * * * * * + +When Mr. Mivart deals with evolution and ethics, I am afraid that I +differ from him even more widely than I have done from Mr. Darwin. He +writes (“Genesis of Species,” p. 234): “That ‘natural selection’ could +not have produced from the sensations of pleasure and pain experienced by +brutes a higher degree of morality than was useful; therefore it could +have produced any amount of ‘beneficial habits,’ but not abhorrence of +certain acts as impure and sinful.” + +Possibly “natural selection” may not be able to do much in the way of +accumulating variations that do not arise; but that, according to the +views supported in this volume, all that is highest and most beautiful in +the soul, as well as in the body, could be, and has been, developed from +beings lower than man, I do not greatly doubt. Mr. Mivart and myself +should probably differ as to what is and what is not beautiful. Thus he +writes of “the noble virtue of a Marcus Aurelius” (p. 235), than whom, +for my own part, I know few respectable figures in history to whom I am +less attracted. I cannot but think that Mr. Mivart has taken his +estimate of this emperor at second-hand, and without reference to the +writings which happily enable us to form a fair estimate of his real +character. + +Take the opening paragraphs of the “Thoughts” of Marcus Aurelius, as +translated by Mr. Long:— + +“From the reputation and remembrance of my father [I learned] modesty and +a manly character; from my mother, piety and beneficence, abstinence not +only from evil deeds, but even from evil thoughts. . . . From my +great-grandfather, not to have frequented public schools, and to have had +good teachers at home, and to know that on such things a man should spend +liberally . . . From Diognetus . . . [I learned] to have become intimate +with philosophy, . . . and to have written dialogues in my youth, and to +have desired a plank bed and skin, and whatever else of the kind belongs +to the Greek discipline. . . . From Rusticus I received the impression +that my character required improvement and discipline;” and so on to the +end of the chapter, near which, however, it is right to say that there +appears a redeeming touch, in so far as that he thanks the gods that he +could not write poetry, and that he had never occupied himself about the +appearance of things in the heavens. + +Or, again, opening Mr. Long’s translation at random I find (p. 37):— + +“As physicians have always their instruments and knives ready for cases +which suddenly require their skill, so do thou have principles ready for +the understanding of things divine and human, and for doing everything, +even the smallest, with a recollection of the bond that unites the divine +and human to one another. For neither wilt thou do anything well which +pertains to man without at the same time having a reference to things +divine; nor the contrary.” + +Unhappy one! No wonder the Roman empire went to pieces soon after him. +If I remember rightly, he established and subsidised professorships in +all parts of his dominions. Whereon the same befell the arts and +literature of Rome as befell Italian painting after the Academic system +had taken root at Bologna under the Caracci. Mr. Martin Tupper, again, +is an amiable and well-meaning man, but we should hardly like to see him +in Lord Beaconsfield’s place. The Athenians poisoned Socrates; and +Aristophanes—than whom few more profoundly religious men have ever been +born—did not, so far as we can gather, think the worse of his countrymen +on that account. It is not improbable that if they had poisoned Plato +too, Aristophanes would have been well enough pleased; but I think he +would have preferred either of these two men to Marcus Aurelius. + +I know nothing about the loving but manly devotion of a St. Lewis, but I +strongly suspect that Mr. Mivart has taken him, too, upon hearsay. + +On the other hand, among dogs we find examples of every heroic quality, +and of all that is most perfectly charming to us in man. + +As for the possible development of the more brutal human natures from the +more brutal instincts of the lower animals, those who read a horrible +story told in a note, pp. 233, 234 of Mr. Mivart’s “Genesis of Species,” +will feel no difficulty on that score. I must admit, however, that the +telling of that story seems to me to be a mistake in a philosophical +work, which should not, I think, unless under compulsion, deal either +with the horrors of the French Revolution—or of the Spanish or Italian +Inquisition. + +For the rest of Mr. Mivart’s objections, I must refer the reader to his +own work. I have been unable to find a single one, which I do not +believe to be easily met by the Lamarckian view, with the additions (if +indeed they are additions, for I must own to no very profound knowledge +of what Lamarck did or did not say), which I have in this volume proposed +to make to it. At the same time I admit, that as against the Darwinian +view, many of them seem quite unanswerable. + + + + +CHAPTER XV. +CONCLUDING REMARKS. + + +HERE, then, I leave my case, though well aware that I have crossed the +threshold only of my subject. My work is of a tentative character, put +before the public as a sketch or design for a, possibly, further +endeavour, in which I hope to derive assistance from the criticisms which +this present volume may elicit. Such as it is, however, for the present +I must leave it. + +We have seen that we cannot do anything thoroughly till we can do it +unconsciously, and that we cannot do anything unconsciously till we can +do it thoroughly; this at first seems illogical; but logic and +consistency are luxuries for the gods, and the lower animals, only. Thus +a boy cannot really know how to swim till he can swim, but he cannot swim +till he knows how to swim. Conscious effort is but the process of +rubbing off the rough corners from these two contradictory statements, +till they eventually fit into one another so closely that it is +impossible to disjoin them. + +Whenever, therefore, we see any creature able to go through any +complicated and difficult process with little or no effort—whether it be +a bird building her nest, or a hen’s egg making itself into a chicken, or +an ovum turning itself into a baby—we may conclude that the creature has +done the same thing on a very great number of past occasions. + +We found the phenomena exhibited by heredity to be so like those of +memory, and to be so utterly inexplicable on any other supposition, that +it was easier to suppose them due to memory in spite of the fact that we +cannot remember having recollected, than to believe that because we +cannot so remember, therefore the phenomena cannot be due to memory. + +We were thus led to consider “personal identity,” in order to see whether +there was sufficient reason for denying that the experience, which we +must have clearly gained somewhere, was gained by us when we were in the +persons of our forefathers; we found, not without surprise, that unless +we admitted that it might be so gained, in so far as that we once +_actually were_ our remotest ancestor, we must change our ideas +concerning personality altogether. + +We therefore assumed that the phenomena of heredity, whether as regards +instinct or structure were mainly due to memory of past experiences, +accumulated and fused till they had become automatic, or quasi automatic, +much in the same way as after a long life— + + . . . “Old experience do attain + To something like prophetic strain.” + +After dealing with certain phenomena of memory, but more especially with +its abeyance and revival, we inquired what the principal corresponding +phenomena of life and species should be, on the hypothesis that they were +mainly due to memory. + +I think I may say that we found the hypothesis fit in with actual facts +in a sufficiently satisfactory manner. We found not a few matters, as, +for example, the sterility of hybrids, the phenomena of old age, and +puberty as generally near the end of development, explain themselves with +more completeness than I have yet heard of their being explained on any +other hypothesis. + +We considered the most important difficulty in the way of instinct as +hereditary habit, namely, the structure and instincts of neuter insects; +these are very unlike those of their parents, and cannot apparently be +transmitted to offspring by individuals of the previous generation, in +whom such structure and instincts appeared, inasmuch as these creatures +are sterile. I do not say that the difficulty is wholly removed, +inasmuch as some obscurity must be admitted to remain as to the manner in +which the structure of the larva is aborted; this obscurity is likely to +remain till we know more of the early history of civilisation among bees +than I can find that we know at present; but I believe the difficulty was +reduced to such proportions as to make it little likely to be felt in +comparison with that of attributing instinct to any other cause than +inherited habit, or inherited habit modified by changed conditions. + +We then inquired what was the great principle underlying variation, and +answered, with Lamarck, that it must be “sense of need;” and though not +without being haunted by suspicion of a vicious circle, and also well +aware that we were not much nearer the origin of life than when we +started, we still concluded that here was the truest origin of species, +and hence of genera; and that the accumulation of variations, which in +time amounted to specific and generic differences, was due to +intelligence and memory on the part of the creature varying, rather than +to the operation of what Mr. Darwin has called “natural selection.” At +the same time we admitted that the course of nature is very much as Mr. +Darwin has represented it, in this respect, in so far as that there is a +struggle for existence, and that the weaker must go to the wall. But we +denied that this part of the course of nature would lead to much, if any, +accumulation of variation, unless the variation was directed mainly by +intelligent sense of need, with continued personality and memory. + +We conclude, therefore, that the small, structureless, impregnate ovum +from which we have each one of us sprung, has a potential recollection of +all that has happened to each one of its ancestors prior to the period at +which any such ancestor has issued from the bodies of its +progenitors—provided, that is to say, a sufficiently deep, or +sufficiently often-repeated, impression has been made to admit of its +being remembered at all. + +Each step of normal development will lead the impregnate ovum up to, and +remind it of, its next ordinary course of action, in the same way as we, +when we recite a well-known passage, are led up to each successive +sentence by the sentence which has immediately preceded it. + +And for this reason, namely, that as it takes two people “to tell” a +thing—a speaker and a comprehending listener, without which last, though +much may have been said, there has been nothing told—so also it takes two +people, as it were, to “remember” a thing—the creature remembering, and +the surroundings of the creature at the time it last remembered. Hence, +though the ovum immediately after impregnation is instinct with all the +memories of both parents, not one of these memories can normally become +active till both the ovum itself, and its surroundings, are sufficiently +like what they respectively were, when the occurrence now to be +remembered last took place. The memory will then immediately return, and +the creature will do as it did on the last occasion that it was in like +case as now. This ensures that similarity of order shall be preserved in +all the stages of development, in successive generations. + +Life, then, is faith founded upon experience, which experience is in its +turn founded upon faith—or more simply, it is memory. Plants and animals +only differ from one another because they remember different things; +plants and animals only grow up in the shapes they assume because this +shape is their memory, their idea concerning their own past history. + +Hence the term “Natural History,” as applied to the different plants and +animals around us. For surely the study of natural history means only +the study of plants and animals themselves, which, at the moment of using +the words “Natural History,” we assume to be the most important part of +nature. + +A living creature well supported by a mass of healthy ancestral memory is +a young and growing creature, free from ache or pain, and thoroughly +acquainted with its business so far, but with much yet to be reminded of. +A creature which finds itself and its surroundings not so unlike those of +its parents about the time of their begetting it, as to be compelled to +recognise that it never yet was in any such position, is a creature in +the heyday of life. A creature which begins to be aware of itself is one +which is beginning to recognise that the situation is a new one. + +It is the young and fair, then, who are the truly old and the truly +experienced; it is they who alone have a trustworthy memory to guide +them; they alone know things as they are, and it is from them that, as we +grow older, we must study if we would still cling to truth. The whole +charm of youth lies in its advantage over age in respect of experience, +and where this has for some reason failed, or been misapplied, the charm +is broken. When we say that we are getting old, we should say rather +that we are getting new or young, and are suffering from inexperience, +which drives us into doing things which we do not understand, and lands +us, eventually, in the utter impotence of death. The kingdom of heaven +is the kingdom of little children. + +A living creature bereft of all memory dies. If bereft of a great part +of memory, it swoons or sleeps; and when its memory returns, we say it +has returned to life. + +Life and death, then, should be memory and forgetfulness, for we are dead +to all that we have forgotten. + +Life is that property of matter whereby it can remember. Matter which +can remember is living; matter which cannot remember is dead. + +_Life_, _then_, _is memory_. The life of a creature is the memory of a +creature. We are all the same stuff to start with, but we remember +different things, and if we did not remember different things we should +be absolutely like each other. As for the stuff itself of which we are +made, we know nothing save only that it is “such as dreams are made of.” + + * * * * * + +I am aware that there are many expressions throughout this book, which +are not scientifically accurate. Thus I imply that we tend towards the +centre of the earth, when, I believe, I should say we tend towards to the +centre of gravity of the earth. I speak of “the primordial cell,” when I +mean only the earliest form of life, and I thus not only assume a single +origin of life when there is no necessity for doing so, and perhaps no +evidence to this effect, but I do so in spite of the fact that the amœba, +which seems to be “the simplest form of life,” does not appear to be a +cell at all. I have used the word “beget,” of what, I am told, is +asexual generation, whereas the word should be confined to sexual +generation only. Many more such errors have been pointed out to me, and +I doubt not that a larger number remain of which I know nothing now, but +of which I may perhaps be told presently. + +I did not, however, think that in a work of this description the +additional words which would have been required for scientific accuracy +were worth the paper and ink and loss of breadth which their introduction +would entail. Besides, I know nothing about science, and it is as well +that there should be no mistake on this head; I neither know, nor want to +know, more detail than is necessary to enable me to give a fairly broad +and comprehensive view of my subject. When for the purpose of giving +this, a matter importunately insisted on being made out, I endeavoured to +make it out as well as I could; otherwise—that is to say, if it did not +insist on being looked into, in spite of a good deal of snubbing, I held +that, as it was blurred and indistinct in nature, I had better so render +it in my work. + +Nevertheless, if one has gone for some time through a wood full of burrs, +some of them are bound to stick. I am afraid that I have left more such +burrs in one part and another of my book, than the kind of reader whom I +alone wish to please will perhaps put up with. Fortunately, this kind of +reader is the best-natured critic in the world, and is long suffering of +a good deal that the more consciously scientific will not tolerate; I +wish, however, that I had not used such expressions as “centres of +thought and action” quite so often. + +As for the kind of inaccuracy already alluded to, my reader will not, I +take it, as a general rule, know, or wish to know, much more about +science than I do, sometimes perhaps even less; so that he and I shall +commonly be wrong in the same places, and our two wrongs will make a +sufficiently satisfactory right for practical purposes. + +Of course, if I were a specialist writing a treatise or primer on such +and such a point of detail, I admit that scientific accuracy would be _de +rigueur_; but I have been trying to paint a picture rather than to make a +diagram, and I claim the painter’s license “_quidlibet audendi_.” I have +done my utmost to give the spirit of my subject, but if the letter +interfered with the spirit, I have sacrificed it without remorse. + +May not what is commonly called a scientific subject have artistic value +which it is a pity to neglect? But if a subject is to be treated +artistically—that is to say, with a desire to consider not only the +facts, but the way in which the reader will feel concerning those facts, +and the way in which he will wish to see them rendered, thus making his +mind a factor of the intention, over and above the subject itself—then +the writer must not be denied a painter’s license. If one is painting a +hillside at a sufficient distance, and cannot see whether it is covered +with chestnut-trees or walnuts, one is not bound to go across the valley +to see. If one is painting a city, it is not necessary that one should +know the names of the streets. If a house or tree stands inconveniently +for one’s purpose, it must go without more ado; if two important +features, neither of which can be left out, want a little bringing +together or separating before the spirit of the place can be well given, +they must be brought together, or separated. Which is a more truthful +view, of Shrewsbury, for example, from a spot where St. Alkmund’s spire +is in parallax with St. Mary’s—a view which should give only the one +spire which can be seen, or one which should give them both, although the +one is hidden? There would be, I take it, more representation in the +misrepresentation than in the representation—“the half would be greater +than the whole,” unless, that is to say, one expressly told the spectator +that St. Alkmund’s spire was hidden behind St. Mary’s—a sort of +explanation which seldom adds to the poetical value of any work of art. +Do what one may, and no matter how scientific one may be, one cannot +attain absolute truth. The question is rather, how do people like to +have their error? than, will they go without any error at all? All truth +and no error cannot be given by the scientist more than by the artist; +each has to sacrifice truth in one way or another; and even if perfect +truth could be given, it is doubtful whether it would not resolve itself +into unconsciousness pure and simple, consciousness being, as it were, +the clash of small conflicting perceptions, without which there is +neither intelligence nor recollection possible. It is not, then, what a +man has said, nor what he has put down with actual paint upon his +canvass, which speaks to us with living language—_it is what he has +thought to us_ (as is so well put in the letter quoted on page 83), by +which our opinion should be guided;—what has he made us feel that he had +it in him, and wished to do? If he has said or painted enough to make us +feel that he meant and felt as we should wish him to have done, he has +done the utmost that man can hope to do. + +I feel sure that no additional amount of technical accuracy would make me +more likely to succeed, in this respect, if I have otherwise failed; and +as this is the only success about which I greatly care, I have left my +scientific inaccuracies uncorrected, even when aware of them. At the +same time, I should say that I have taken all possible pains as regards +anything which I thought could materially affect the argument one way or +another. + +It may be said that I have fallen between two stools, and that the +subject is one which, in my hands, has shown neither artistic nor +scientific value. This would be serious. To fall between two stools, +and to be hanged for a lamb, are the two crimes which— + + “Nor gods, nor men, nor any schools allow.” + +Of the latter, I go in but little danger; about the former, I shall know +better when the public have enlightened me. + +The practical value of the views here advanced (if they be admitted as +true at all) would appear to be not inconsiderable, alike as regards +politics or the well-being of the community, and medicine which deals +with that of the individual. In the first case we see the rationale of +compromise, and the equal folly of making experiments upon too large a +scale, and of not making them at all. We see that new ideas cannot be +fused with old, save gradually and by patiently leading up to them in +such a way as to admit of a sense of continued identity between the old +and the new. This should teach us moderation. For even though nature +wishes to travel in a certain direction, she insists on being allowed to +take her own time; she will not be hurried, and will cull a creature out +even more surely for forestalling her wishes too readily, than for +lagging a little behind them. So the greatest musicians, painters, and +poets owe their greatness rather to their fusion and assimilation of all +the good that has been done up to, and especially near about, their own +time, than to any very startling steps they have taken in advance. Such +men will be sure to take some, and important, steps forward; for unless +they have this power, they will not be able to assimilate well what has +been done already, and if they have it, their study of older work will +almost indefinitely assist it; but, on the whole, they owe their +greatness to their completer fusion and assimilation of older ideas; for +nature is distinctly a fairly liberal conservative rather than a +conservative liberal. All which is well said in the old couplet— + + “Be not the first by whom the new is tried, + Nor yet the last to throw the old aside.” + +_Mutatis mutandis_, the above would seem to hold as truly about medicine +as about politics. We cannot reason with our cells, for they know so +much more than we do that they cannot understand us;—but though we cannot +reason with them, we can find out what they have been most accustomed to, +and what, therefore, they are most likely to expect; we can see that they +get this, as far as it is in our power to give it them, and may then +generally leave the rest to them, only bearing in mind that they will +rebel equally against too sudden a change of treatment, and no change at +all. + +Friends have complained to me that they can never tell whether I am in +jest or earnest. I think, however, it should be sufficiently apparent +that I am in very serious earnest, perhaps too much so, from the first +page of my book to the last. I am not aware of a single argument put +forward which is not a _bonâ fide_ argument, although, perhaps, sometimes +admitting of a humorous side. If a grain of corn looks like a piece of +chaff, I confess I prefer it occasionally to something which looks like a +grain, but which turns out to be a piece of chaff only. There is no lack +of matter of this description going about in some very decorous volumes; +I have, therefore, endeavoured, for a third time, to furnish the public +with a book whose fault should lie rather in the direction of seeming +less serious than it is, than of being less so than it seems. + +At the same time, I admit that when I began to write upon my subject I +did not seriously believe in it. I saw, as it were, a pebble upon the +ground, with a sheen that pleased me; taking it up, I turned it over and +over for my amusement, and found it always grow brighter and brighter the +more I examined it. At length I became fascinated, and gave loose rein +to self-illusion. The aspect of the world seemed changed; the trifle +which I had picked up idly had proved to be a talisman of inestimable +value, and had opened a door through which I caught glimpses of a strange +and interesting transformation. Then came one who told me that the stone +was not mine, but that it had been dropped by Lamarck, to whom it +belonged rightfully, but who had lost it; whereon I said I cared not who +was the owner, if only I might use it and enjoy it. Now, therefore, +having polished it with what art and care one who is no jeweller could +bestow upon it, I return it, as best I may, to its possessor. + +What am I to think or say? That I tried to deceive others till I have +fallen a victim to my own falsehood? Surely this is the most reasonable +conclusion to arrive at. Or that I have really found Lamarck’s talisman, +which had been for some time lost sight of? + +Will the reader bid me wake with him to a world of chance and blindness? +Or can I persuade him to dream with me of a more living faith than either +he or I had as yet conceived as possible? As I have said, reason points +remorselessly to an awakening, but faith and hope still beckon to the +dream. + + + + +APPENDIX +AUTHOR’S ADDENDA + + +I +_See Page_ 13 + + +BUT I may say in passing that though articulate speech and the power to +maintain the upright position come much about the same time, yet the +power of making gestures of more or less significance is prior to that of +walking uprightly, and therefore to that of speech. Not only is +gesticulation the earlier faculty in the individual, but it was so also +in the history of our race. Our semi-simious ancestors could gesticulate +long before they could talk articulately. It is significant of this that +gesture is still found easier than speech even by adults, as may be +observed on our river steamers, where the captain moves his hand but does +not speak, a boy interpreting his gesture into language. To develop this +here would complicate the argument; let us be content to note it and pass +on. + + + +II +_See Page_ 18 + + +Nevertheless, the smallness of the effort touches upon the deepest +mystery of organic life—the power to originate, to err, to sport, the +power which differentiates the living organism from the machine, however +complicated. The action and working of this power is found to be like +the action of any other mental and, therefore, physical power (for all +physical action of living beings is but the expression of a mental +action), but I can throw no light upon its origin any more than upon the +origin of life. This, too, must be noted and passed over. + + + +III +_See Page_ 25 + + +How different from the above uncertain sound is the full clear note of +one who truly believes:— + +“The Church of England is commonly called a Lutheran church, but whoever +compares it with the Lutheran churches on the Continent will have reason +to congratulate himself on its superiority. It is in fact a church _sui +generis_, yielding in point of dignity, purity and decency of its +doctrines, establishment and ceremonies, to no congregation of christians +in the world; modelled to a certain and considerable extent, but not +entirely, by our great and wise pious reformers on the doctrines of +Luther, so far as they are in conformity with the sure and solid +foundation on which it rests, and we trust for ever will rest—the +authority of the Holy Scriptures, Jesus Christ himself being the chief +corner stone.” (“Sketch of Modern and Ancient Geography,” by Dr. Samuel +Butler, of Shrewsbury. Ed. 1813.) + +This is the language of faith, compelled by the exigencies of the +occasion to be for a short time conscious of its own existence, but +surely very little likely to become so to the extent of feeling the need +of any assistance from reason. It is the language of one whose +convictions are securely founded upon the current opinion of those among +whom he has been born and bred; and of all merely post-natal faiths a +faith so founded is the strongest. It is pleasing to see that the only +alterations in the edition of 1838 consist in spelling Christians with a +capital C and the omission of the epithet “wise” as applied to the +reformers, an omission more probably suggested by a desire for euphony +than by any nascent doubts concerning the applicability of the epithet +itself. + + + +IV. +_See Page_ 239 + + +OR take, again, the constitution of the Church of England. The bishops +are the spiritual queens, the clergy are the neuter workers. They differ +widely in structure (for dress must be considered as a part of +structure), in the delicacy of the food they eat and the kind of house +they inhabit, and also in many of their instincts, from the bishops, who +are their spiritual parents. Not only this, but there are two distinct +kinds of neuter workers—priests and deacons; and of the former there are +deans, archdeacons, prebends, canons, rural deans, vicars, rectors, +curates, yet all spiritually sterile. In spite of this sterility, +however, is there anyone who will maintain that the widely differing +structures and instincts of these castes are not due to inherited +spiritual habit? Still less will he be inclined to do so when he +reflects that by such slight modification of treatment as consecration +and endowment any one of them can be rendered spiritually fertile. + + + + +FOOTNOTES + + +{vii} Although the original edition of “Life and Habit” is dated 1878, +the book was actually published in December, 1877. + +{13} See Appendix (_note for page_ 13). + +{18} See Appendix (_note for page_ 18). + +{25} See Appendix (_note for page_ 25). + +{239} See Appendix (_note for page_ 239). + + + + +***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LIFE AND HABIT*** + + +******* This file should be named 6138-0.txt or 6138-0.zip ******* + + +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: +http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/1/3/6138 + + + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at + www.gutenberg.org/license. + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" +or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809 +North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email +contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the +Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. +To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. diff --git a/6138-0.zip b/6138-0.zip Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..81b97f5 --- /dev/null +++ b/6138-0.zip diff --git a/6138-h.zip b/6138-h.zip Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..5ebc4ca --- /dev/null +++ b/6138-h.zip diff --git a/6138-h/6138-h.htm b/6138-h/6138-h.htm new file mode 100644 index 0000000..a19c99d --- /dev/null +++ b/6138-h/6138-h.htm @@ -0,0 +1,9238 @@ +<!DOCTYPE html + PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" + "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd"> +<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en"> +<head> +<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=US-ASCII" /> +<title>Life and Habit, by Samuel Butler</title> + <style type="text/css"> +/*<![CDATA[ XML blockout */ +<!-- + P { margin-top: .75em; + margin-bottom: .75em; + } + P.gutsumm { margin-left: 5%;} + P.poetry {margin-left: 3%; } + .GutSmall { font-size: 0.7em; } + H1, H2 { + text-align: center; + margin-top: 2em; + margin-bottom: 2em; + } + H3, H4, H5 { + text-align: center; + margin-top: 1em; + margin-bottom: 1em; + } + BODY{margin-left: 10%; + margin-right: 10%; + } + table { border-collapse: collapse; } +table {margin-left:auto; margin-right:auto;} + td { vertical-align: top; border: 1px solid black;} + td p { margin: 0.2em; } + .blkquot {margin-left: 4em; margin-right: 4em;} /* block indent */ + + .smcap {font-variant: small-caps;} + + .pagenum {position: absolute; + left: 92%; + font-size: small; + text-align: right; + font-weight: normal; + color: gray; + } + img { border: none; } + img.dc { float: left; width: 50px; height: 50px; } + p.gutindent { margin-left: 2em; } + div.gapspace { height: 0.8em; } + div.gapline { height: 0.8em; width: 100%; border-top: 1px solid;} + div.gapmediumline { height: 0.3em; width: 40%; margin-left:30%; + border-top: 1px solid; } + div.gapmediumdoubleline { height: 0.3em; width: 40%; margin-left:30%; + border-top: 1px solid; border-bottom: 1px solid;} + div.gapshortdoubleline { height: 0.3em; width: 20%; + margin-left: 40%; border-top: 1px solid; + border-bottom: 1px solid; } + div.gapdoubleline { height: 0.3em; width: 50%; + margin-left: 25%; border-top: 1px solid; + border-bottom: 1px solid;} + div.gapshortline { height: 0.3em; width: 20%; margin-left:40%; + border-top: 1px solid; } + .citation {vertical-align: super; + font-size: .8em; + text-decoration: none;} + img.floatleft { float: left; + margin-right: 1em; + margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; } + img.floatright { float: right; + margin-left: 1em; margin-top: 0.5em; + margin-bottom: 0.5em; } + img.clearcenter {display: block; + margin-left: auto; + margin-right: auto; margin-top: 0.5em; + margin-bottom: 0.5em} + --> + /* XML end ]]>*/ + </style> +</head> +<body> +<pre> + +The Project Gutenberg eBook, Life and Habit, by Samuel Butler, Edited by +R. A. Streatfeild + + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + + + + + +Title: Life and Habit + + +Author: Samuel Butler + +Editor: R. A. Streatfeild + +Release Date: August 2, 2014 [eBook #6138] +[This file was first posted on November 18, 2002] + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ISO-646-US (US-ASCII) + + +***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LIFE AND HABIT*** +</pre> +<p>Transcribed from the 1910 Jonathan Cape edition by David +Price, email ccx074@pglaf.lorg</p> +<h1>Life and Habit</h1> +<p style="text-align: center"><i>By</i><br /> +Samuel Butler</p> +<p style="text-align: center"> +<a href="images/tpb.jpg"> +<img alt= +"Decorative graphic" +title= +"Decorative graphic" +src="images/tps.jpg" /> +</a></p> + +<div class="gapspace"> </div> +<p style="text-align: center">Jonathan Cape<br /> +Eleven Gower Street, London</p> + +<div class="gapspace"> </div> +<p style="text-align: center"><a name="pageiv"></a><span +class="pagenum">p. iv</span><span class="GutSmall">FIRST +PUBLISHED</span> 1878</p> +<p style="text-align: center"><span class="GutSmall">SECOND +EDITION</span> 1878</p> +<p style="text-align: center"><span class="GutSmall">NEW EDITION +WITH ADDENDA AND</span><br /> +<span class="GutSmall">PREFACE BY R. A. STREATFEILD</span> +1910</p> +<p style="text-align: center"><span +class="GutSmall">REPRINTED</span> 1924</p> + +<div class="gapspace"> </div> +<p style="text-align: center"><span class="GutSmall">PRINTED IN +GREAT BRITAIN BY BUTLER AND TANNER LTD., FROME AND +LONDON</span></p> + +<div class="gapspace"> </div> +<p style="text-align: center"><a name="pagev"></a><span +class="pagenum">p. v</span><span class="GutSmall">THIS BOOK IS +INSCRIBED</span><br /> +<span class="GutSmall">TO</span><br /> +CHARLES PAINE PAULI, Esq.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">BARRISTER-AT-LAW</span><br /> +<span class="GutSmall">IN ACKNOWLEDGEMENT OF HIS +INVALUABLE</span><br /> +<span class="GutSmall">CRITICISM OF THE PROOF-SHEETS OF THIS +AND</span><br /> +<span class="GutSmall">OF MY PREVIOUS BOOKS</span><br /> +<span class="GutSmall">AND IN RECOGNITION OF AN OLD AND</span><br +/> +<span class="GutSmall">WELL-TRIED-FRIENDSHIP</span></p> +<h2><a name="pagevii"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +vii</span>PREFACE.</h2> +<p><span class="smcap">Since</span> Samuel Butler published +“Life and Habit” thirty-three <a +name="citationvii"></a><a href="#footnotevii" +class="citation">[vii]</a> years have elapsed—years +fruitful in change and discovery, during which many of the mighty +have been put down from their seat and many of the humble have +been exalted. I do not know that Butler can truthfully be +called humble, indeed, I think he had very few misgivings as to +his ultimate triumph, but he has certainly been exalted with a +rapidity that he himself can scarcely have foreseen. During +his lifetime he was a literary pariah, the victim of an organized +conspiracy of silence. He is now, I think it may be said +without exaggeration, universally accepted as one of the most +remarkable English writers of the latter part of the nineteenth +century. I will not weary my readers by quoting the +numerous tributes paid by distinguished contemporary writers to +Butler’s originality and force of mind, but I cannot +refrain from illustrating the changed attitude of the scientific +world to Butler and his theories by a reference to “Darwin +and Modern Science,” the collection of essays published in +1909 by the University of Cambridge, in commemoration of the +Darwin centenary. In that work Professor Bateson, while +referring repeatedly to Butler’s biological works, speaks +of him as “the most brilliant and by far the most +interesting of Darwin’s opponents, whose works are at +length emerging from oblivion.” <a +name="pageviii"></a><span class="pagenum">p. viii</span>With the +growth of Butler’s reputation “Life and Habit” +has had much to do. It was the first and is undoubtedly the +most important of his writings on evolution. From its +loins, as it were, sprang his three later books, “Evolution +Old and New,” “Unconscious Memory,” and +“Luck or Cunning”, which carried its arguments +further afield. It will perhaps interest Butler’s +readers if I here quote a passage from his note-books, lately +published in the “New Quarterly Review” (Vol. III. +No. 9), in which he summarizes his work in biology:</p> +<p>“To me it seems that my contributions to the theory of +evolution have been mainly these:</p> +<p>“1. The identification of heredity and memory, and +the corollaries relating to sports, the reversion to remote +ancestors, the phenomena of old age, the causes of the sterility +of hybrids, and the principles underlying longevity—all of +which follow as a matter of course. This was ‘Life +and Habit’ [1877].</p> +<p>“2. The re-introduction of teleology into organic +life, which to me seems hardly, if at all, less important than +the ‘Life and Habit’ theory. This was +‘Evolution Old and New’ [1879].</p> +<p>“3. An attempt to suggest an explanation of the +physics of memory. This was Unconscious Memory’ +[1880]. I was alarmed by the suggestion and fathered it +upon Professor Hering, who never, that I can see, meant to say +anything of the kind, but I forced my view upon him, as it were, +by taking hold of a sentence or two in his lecture, ‘On +Memory as a Universal Function of Organised Matter,’ and +thus connected memory with vibrations.</p> +<p>“What I want to do now (1885) is to connect vibrations +not only with memory but with the physical constitution of that +body in which the memory resides, <a name="pageix"></a><span +class="pagenum">p. ix</span>thus adopting Newland’s law +(sometimes called Mendelejeff’s law) that there is only one +substance, and that the characteristics of the vibrations going +on within it at any given time will determine whether it will +appear to us as, we will say, hydrogen, or sodium, or chicken +doing this, or chicken doing the other.” [This is +touched upon in the concluding chapter of “Luck or +Cunning?” 1887].</p> +<p>The present edition of “Life and Habit” is +practically a re-issue of that of 1878. I find that about +the year 1890, although the original edition was far from being +exhausted, Butler began to make corrections of the text of +“Life and Habit,” presumably with the intention of +publishing a revised edition. The copy of the book so +corrected is now in my possession. In the first five +chapters there are numerous emendations, very few of which, +however, affect the meaning to any appreciable extent, being +mainly concerned with the excision of redundancies and the +simplification of style. I imagine that by the time he had +reached the end of the fifth chapter Butler realised that the +corrections he had made were not of sufficient importance to +warrant a new edition, and determined to let the book stand as it +was. I believe, therefore, that I am carrying out his +wishes in reprinting the present edition from the original +plates. I have found, however, among his papers three +entirely new passages, which he probably wrote during the period +of correction and no doubt intended to incorporate into the +revised edition. Mr. Henry Festing Jones has also given me +a copy of a passage which Butler wrote and gummed into Mr. +Jones’s copy of “Life and Habit.” These +four passages I have printed as an appendix at the end of the +present volume.</p> +<p><a name="pagex"></a><span class="pagenum">p. x</span>One more +point deserves notice. Butler often refers in “Life +and Habit” to Darwin’s “Variations of Animals +and Plants under Domestication.” When he does so it +is always under the name “Plants and Animals.” +More often still he refers to Darwin’s “Origin of +Species by means Natural Selection,” terming it at one time +“Origin of Species” and at another “Natural +Selection,” sometimes, as on p. 278, using both names +within a few lines of each other. Butler was as a rule +scrupulously careful about quotations, and I can offer no +explanation of this curious confusion of titles.</p> +<p style="text-align: right">R. A. STREATFEILD.</p> +<p><i>November</i>, 1910.</p> +<h2>AUTHOR’S PREFACE.</h2> +<p><span class="smcap">The</span> Italics in the passages quoted +in this book are generally mine, but I found it almost impossible +to call the reader’s attention to this upon every +occasion. I have done so once or twice, as thinking it +necessary in these cases that there should be no mistake; on the +whole, however, I thought it better to content myself with +calling attention in a preface to the fact that the author quoted +is not, as a general rule, responsible for the Italics.</p> +<p style="text-align: right">S. BUTLER.</p> +<p><i>November</i> 13, 1877.</p> +<h2>CONTENTS.</h2> +<table> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"> </p> +</td> +<td><p> </p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">PAGE</span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"> </p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">PREFACE BY R. A. +STREATFEILD</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#pagevii">vii</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"> </p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">AUTHOR’S ORIGINAL +PREFACE</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#pagex">x</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">CHAPTER</span></p> +</td> +<td><p> </p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"> </p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">I.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">ON CERTAIN ACQUIRED +HABITS</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page1">1</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">II.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">CONSCIOUS AND UNCONSCIOUS +KNOWERS—THE LAW AND GRACE</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page20">20</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">III.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">APPLICATION OF FOREGOING CHAPTERS +TO CERTAIN HABITS ACQUIRED AFTER BIRTH WHICH ARE COMMONLY +CONSIDERED INSTINCTIVE</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page43">43</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">IV.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING +PRINCIPLES TO ACTIONS AND HABITS ACQUIRED BEFORE BIRTH</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page59">59</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">V.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">PERSONAL IDENTITY</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page78">78</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">VI.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">PERSONAL +IDENTITY—(</span><span +class="GutSmall"><i>continued</i></span><span +class="GutSmall">)</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page91">91</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">VII.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">OUR SUBORDINATE +PERSONALITIES</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page104">104</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">VIII.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING +CHAPTERS—THE ASSIMILATION OF OUTSIDE MATTER</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page125">125</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">IX.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">ON THE ABEYANCE OF +MEMORY</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page150">150</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">X.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">WHAT WE SHOULD EXPECT TO FIND IF +DIFFERENTIATIONS OF STRUCTURE AND INSTINCT ARE MAINLY DUE TO +MEMORY</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page166">166</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">XI.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">INSTINCT AS INHERITED +MEMORY</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page198">198</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">XII.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">INSTINCTS OF NEUTER +INSECTS</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page220">220</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">XIII.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">LAMARCK AND MR. DARWIN</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page252">252</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">XIV.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">MR. MIVART AND MR. +DARWIN</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page273">273</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span +class="GutSmall">XV.</span></p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">CONCLUDING REMARKS</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page294">294</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +<tr> +<td><p style="text-align: right"> </p> +</td> +<td><p><span class="GutSmall">APPENDIX AUTHOR’S +ADDENDA</span></p> +</td> +<td><p style="text-align: right"><span class="indexpageno"><a +href="#page308">308</a></span></p> +</td> +</tr> +</table> +<h2><a name="page1"></a><span class="pagenum">p. 1</span>CHAPTER +I.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">ON CERTAIN ACQUIRED HABITS.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">It</span> will be our business in the +following chapters to consider whether the unconsciousness, or +quasi-unconsciousness, with which we perform certain acquired +actions, would seem to throw any light upon Embryology and +inherited instincts, and otherwise to follow the train of thought +which the class of actions above-mentioned would suggest; more +especially in so far as they appear to bear upon the origin of +species and the continuation of life by successive generations, +whether in the animal or vegetable kingdoms.</p> +<p>In the outset, however, I would wish most distinctly to +disclaim for these pages the smallest pretension to scientific +value, originality, or even to accuracy of more than a very rough +and ready kind—for unless a matter be true enough to stand +a good deal of misrepresentation, its truth is not of a very +robust order, and the blame will rather lie with its own delicacy +if it be crushed, than with the carelessness of the +crusher. I have no wish to instruct, and not much to be +instructed; my aim is simply to entertain and interest the +numerous class of people who, like myself, know nothing of +science, but who enjoy speculating and reflecting (not too +deeply) upon the phenomena around them. I have therefore +allowed myself a loose rein, to run on with whatever came +uppermost, without regard to whether it was new or old; feeling +sure that if true, it must be very old or it never could have +occurred to one so little versed in science as myself; and +knowing that it is sometimes pleasanter to meet the old under +slightly changed conditions, than to go through the formalities +and uncertainties of making new acquaintance. At the same +time, I should say that whatever I have knowingly taken from any +one else, I have always acknowledged.</p> +<p>It is plain, therefore, that my book cannot be intended for +the perusal of scientific people; it is intended for the general +public only, with whom I believe myself to be in harmony, as +knowing neither much more nor much less than they do.</p> +<p>Taking then, the art of playing the piano as an example of the +kind of action we are in search of, we observe that a practised +player will perform very difficult pieces apparently without +effort, often, indeed, while thinking and talking of something +quite other than his music; yet he will play accurately and, +possibly, with much expression. If he has been playing a +fugue, say in four parts, he will have kept each part well +distinct, in such a manner as to prove that his mind was not +prevented, by its other occupations, from consciously or +unconsciously following four distinct trains of musical thought +at the same time, nor from making his fingers act in exactly the +required manner as regards each note of each part.</p> +<p>It commonly happens that in the course of four or five minutes +a player may have struck four or five thousand notes. If we +take into consideration the rests, dotted notes, accidentals, +variations of time, &c., we shall find his attention must +have been exercised on many more occasions than when he was +actually striking notes: so that it may not be too much to say +that the attention of a first-rate player may have been +exercised—to an infinitesimally small extent—but +still truly exercised—on as many as ten thousand occasions +within the space of five minutes, for no note can be struck nor +point attended to without a certain amount of attention, no +matter how rapidly or unconsciously given.</p> +<p>Moreover, each act of attention has been followed by an act of +volition, and each act of volition by a muscular action, which is +composed of many minor actions; some so small that we can no more +follow them than the player himself can perceive them; +nevertheless, it may have been perfectly plain that the player +was not attending to what he was doing, but was listening to +conversation on some other subject, not to say joining in it +himself. If he has been playing the violin, he may have +done all the above, and may also have been walking about. +Herr Joachim would unquestionably be able to do all that has here +been described.</p> +<p>So complete would the player’s unconsciousness of the +attention he is giving, and the brain power he is exerting appear +to be, that we shall find it difficult to awaken his attention to +any particular part of his performance without putting him +out. Indeed we cannot do so. We shall observe that he +finds it hardly less difficult to compass a voluntary +consciousness of what he has once learnt so thoroughly that it +has passed, so to speak, into the domain of unconsciousness, than +he found it to learn the note or passage in the first +instance. The effort after a second consciousness of detail +baffles him—compels him to turn to his music or play +slowly. In fact it seems as though he knew the piece too +well to be able to know that he knows it, and is only conscious +of knowing those passages which he does not know so +thoroughly.</p> +<p>At the end of his performance, his memory would appear to be +no less annihilated than was his consciousness of attention and +volition. For of the thousands of acts requiring the +exercise of both the one and the other, which he has done during +the five minutes, we will say, of his performance, he will +remember hardly one when it is over. If he calls to mind +anything beyond the main fact that he has played such and such a +piece, it will probably be some passage which he has found more +difficult than the others, and with the like of which he has not +been so long familiar. All the rest he will forget as +completely as the breath which he has drawn while playing.</p> +<p>He finds it difficult to remember even the difficulties he +experienced in learning to play. A few may have so +impressed him that they remain with him, but the greater part +will have escaped him as completely as the remembrance of what he +ate, or how he put on his clothes, this day ten years ago; +nevertheless, it is plain he remembers more than he remembers +remembering, for he avoids mistakes which he made at one time, +and his performance proves that all the notes are in his memory, +though if called upon to play such and such a bar at random from +the middle of the piece, and neither more nor less, he will +probably say that he cannot remember it unless he begins from the +beginning of the phrase which leads to it. Very commonly he +will be obliged to begin from the beginning of the movement +itself, and be unable to start at any other point unless he have +the music before him; and if disturbed, as we have seen above, he +will have to start <i>de novo</i> from an accustomed +starting-point.</p> +<p>Yet nothing can be more obvious than that there must have been +a time when what is now so easy as to be done without conscious +effort of the brain was only done by means of brain work which +was very keenly perceived, even to fatigue and positive +distress. Even now, if the player is playing something the +like of which he has not met before, we observe he pauses and +becomes immediately conscious of attention.</p> +<p>We draw the inference, therefore, as regards pianoforte or +violin playing, that the more the familiarity or knowledge of the +art, the less is there consciousness of such knowledge; even so +far as that there should seem to be almost as much difficulty in +awakening consciousness which has become, so to speak, +latent,—a consciousness of that which is known too well to +admit of recognised self-analysis while the knowledge is being +exercised—as in creating a consciousness of that which is +not yet well enough known to be properly designated as known at +all. On the other hand, we observe that the less the +familiarly or knowledge, the greater the consciousness of +whatever knowledge there is.</p> +<p>Considering other like instances of the habitual exercise of +intelligence and volition, which, from long familiarity with the +method of procedure, escape the notice of the person exercising +them, we naturally think of writing. The formation of each +letter requires attention and volition, yet in a few minutes a +practised writer will form several hundred letters, and be able +to think and talk of something else all the time he is doing +so. It will not probably remember the formation of a single +character in any page that he has written; nor will he be able to +give more than the substance of his writing if asked to do +so. He knows how to form each letter so well, and he knows +so well each word that he is about to write, that he has ceased +to be conscious of his knowledge or to notice his acts of +volition, each one of which is, nevertheless, followed by a +corresponding muscular action. Yet the uniformity of our +handwriting, and the manner in which we almost invariably adhere +to one method of forming the same character, would seem to +suggest that during the momentary formation of each letter our +memories must revert (with an intensity too rapid for our +perception) to many if not to all the occasions on which we have +ever written the same letter previously—the memory of these +occasions dwelling in our minds as what has been called a +residuum—an unconsciously struck balance or average of them +all—a fused mass of individual reminiscences of which no +trace can be found in our consciousness, and of which the only +effect would seem to lie in the gradual changes of handwriting +which are perceptible in most people till they have reached +middle-age, and sometimes even later. So far are we from +consciously remembering any one of the occasions on which we have +written such and such a letter, that we are not even conscious of +exercising our memory at all, any more than we are in health +conscious of the action of our heart. But, if we are +writing in some unfamiliar way, as when printing our letters +instead of writing them in our usual running hand, our memory is +so far awakened that we become conscious of every character we +form; sometimes it is even perceptible as memory to ourselves, as +when we try to remember how to print some letter, for example a +g, and cannot call to mind on which side of the upper half of the +letter we ought to put the link which connects it with the lower, +and are successful in remembering; but if we become very +conscious of remembering, it shows that we are on the brink of +only trying to remember,—that is to say, of not remembering +at all.</p> +<p>As a general rule, we remember for a time the substance of +what we have written, for the subject is generally new to us; but +if we are writing what we have often written before, we lose +consciousness of this too, as fully as we do of the characters +necessary to convey the substance to another person, and we shall +find ourselves writing on as it were mechanically while thinking +and talking of something else. So a paid copyist, to whom +the subject of what he is writing is of no importance, does not +even notice it. He deals only with familiar words and +familiar characters without caring to go behind them, and +thereupon writes on in a quasi-unconscious manner; but if he +comes to a word or to characters with which he is but little +acquainted, he becomes immediately awakened to the consciousness +of either remembering or trying to remember. His +consciousness of his own knowledge or memory would seem to belong +to a period, so to speak, of twilight between the thick darkness +of ignorance and the brilliancy of perfect knowledge; as colour +which vanishes with extremes of light or of shade. Perfect +ignorance and perfect knowledge are alike unselfconscious.</p> +<p>The above holds good even more noticeably in respect of +reading. How many thousands of individual letters do our +eyes run over every morning in the “Times” newspaper, +how few of them do we notice, or remember having noticed? +Yet there was a time when we had such difficulty in reading even +the simplest words, that we had to take great pains to impress +them upon our memory so as to know them when we came to then +again. Now, not even a single word of all we have seen will +remain with us, unless it is a new one, or an old one used in an +unfamiliar sense, in which case we notice, and may very likely +remember it. Our memory retains the substance only, the +substance only being unfamiliar. Nevertheless, although we +do not perceive more than the general result of our perception, +there can be no doubt of our having perceived every letter in +every word that we have read at all, for if we come upon a word +misspelt our attention is at once aroused; unless, indeed, we +have actually corrected the misspelling, as well as noticed it, +unconsciously, through exceeding familiarity with the way in +which it ought to be spelt. Not only do we perceive the +letters we have seen without noticing that we have perceived +them, but we find it almost impossible to notice that we notice +them when we have once learnt to read fluently. To try to +do so puts us out, and prevents our being able to read. We +may even go so far as to say that if a man can attend to the +individual characters, it is a sign that he cannot yet read +fluently. If we know how to read well, we are as +unconscious of the means and processes whereby we attain the +desired result as we are about the growth of our hair or the +circulation of our blood. So that here again it would seem +that we only know what we know still to some extent imperfectly, +and that what we know thoroughly escapes our conscious perception +though none the less actually perceived. Our perception in +fact passes into a latent stage, as also our memory and +volition.</p> +<p>Walking is another example of the rapid exercise of volition +with but little perception of each individual act of +exercise. We notice any obstacle in our path, but it is +plain we do not notice that we perceive much that we have +nevertheless been perceiving; for if a man goes down a lane by +night he will stumble over many things which he would have +avoided by day, although he would not have noticed them. +Yet time was when walking was to each one of us a new and arduous +task—as arduous as we should now find it to wheel a +wheelbarrow on a tight-rope; whereas, at present, though we can +think of our steps to a certain extent without checking our power +to walk, we certainly cannot consider our muscular action in +detail without having to come to a dead stop.</p> +<p>Talking—especially in one’s mother +tongue—may serve as a last example. We find it +impossible to follow the muscular action of the mouth and tongue +in framing every letter or syllable we utter. We have +probably spoken for years and years before we became aware that +the letter h is a labial sound, and until we have to utter a word +which is difficult from its unfamiliarity we speak +“trippingly on the tongue” with no attention except +to the substance of what we wish to say. Yet talking was +not always the easy matter to us which it is at present—as +we perceive more readily when we are learning a new language +which it may take us months to master. Nevertheless, when +we have once mastered it we speak it without further +consciousness of knowledge or memory, as regards the more common +words, and without even noticing our consciousness. Here, +as in the other instances already given, as long as we did not +know perfectly, we were conscious of our acts of perception, +volition, and reflection, but when our knowledge has become +perfect we no longer notice our consciousness, nor our volition; +nor can we awaken a second artificial consciousness without some +effort, and disturbance of the process of which we are +endeavouring to become conscious. We are no longer, so to +speak, under the law, but under grace.</p> +<p>An ascending scale may be perceived in the above +instances.</p> +<p>In playing, we have an action acquired long after birth, +difficult of acquisition, and never thoroughly familiarised to +the power of absolutely unconscious performance, except in the +case of those who have either an exceptional genius for music, or +who have devoted the greater part of their time to +practising. Except in the case of these persons it is +generally found easy to become more or less conscious of any +passage without disturbing the performance, and our action +remains so completely within our control that we can stop playing +at any moment we please.</p> +<p>In writing, we have an action generally acquired earlier, done +for the most part with great unconsciousness of detail, fairly +well within our control to stop at any moment; though not so +completely as would be imagined by those who have not made the +experiment of trying to stop in the middle of a given character +when writing at fit speed. Also, we can notice our +formation of any individual character without our writing being +materially hindered.</p> +<p>Reading is usually acquired earlier still. We read with +more unconsciousness of attention than we write. We find it +more difficult to become conscious of any character without +discomfiture, and we cannot arrest ourselves in the middle of a +word, for example, and hardly before the end of a sentence; +nevertheless it is on the whole well within our control.</p> +<p>Walking is so early an acquisition that we cannot remember +having acquired it. In running fast over average ground we +find it very difficult to become conscious of each individual +step, and should possibly find it more difficult still, if the +inequalities and roughness of uncultured land had not perhaps +caused the development of a power to create a second +consciousness of our steps without hindrance to our running or +walking. Pursuit and flight, whether in the chase or in +war, must for many generations have played a much more prominent +part in the lives of our ancestors than they do in our own. +If the ground over which they had to travel had been generally as +free from obstruction as our modern cultivated lands, it is +possible that we might not find it as easy to notice our several +steps as we do at present. Even as it is, if while we are +running we would consider the action of our muscles, we come to a +dead stop, and should probably fall if we tried to observe too +suddenly; for we must stop to do this, and running, when we have +once committed ourselves to it beyond a certain point, is not +controllable to a step or two without loss of equilibrium.</p> +<p>We learn to talk, much about the same time that we learn to +walk, but talking requires less muscular effort than walking, and +makes generally less demand upon our powers. A man may talk +a long while before he has done the equivalent of a five-mile +walk; it is natural, therefore, that we should have had more +practice in talking than in walking, and hence that we should +find it harder to pay attention to our words than to our +steps. Certainly it is very hard to become conscious of +every syllable or indeed of every word we say; the attempt to do +so will often bring us to a check at once; nevertheless we can +generally stop talking if we wish to do so, unless the crying of +infants be considered as a kind of <i>quasi</i>-speech: this +comes earlier, and is often quite uncontrollable, or more truly +perhaps is done with such complete control over the muscles by +the will, and with such absolute certainty of his own purpose on +the part of the wilier, that there is no longer any more doubt, +uncertainty, or suspense, and hence no power of perceiving any of +the processes whereby the result is attained—as a wheel +which may look fast fixed because it is so fast revolving. <a +name="citation13"></a><a href="#footnote13" +class="citation">[13]</a></p> +<p>We may observe therefore in this ascending scale, imperfect as +it is, that the older the habit the longer the practice, the +longer the practice, the more knowledge—or, the less +uncertainty; the less uncertainty the less power of conscious +self-analysis and control.</p> +<p>It will occur to the reader that in all the instances given +above, different individuals attain the unconscious stage of +perfect knowledge with very different degrees of facility. +Some have to attain it with a great sum; others are free +born. Some learn to play, to read, write, and talk, with +hardly an effort—some show such an instinctive aptitude for +arithmetic that, like Zerah Colburn, at eight years old, they +achieve results without instruction, which in the case of most +people would require a long education. The account of Zerah +Colburn, as quoted from Mr. Baily in Dr. Carpenter’s +“Mental Physiology,” may perhaps be given here.</p> +<p>“He raised any number consisting of <i>one</i> figure +progressively to the tenth power, giving the results (by actual +multiplication and not by memory) <i>faster than they could be +set down in figures</i> by the person appointed to record +them. He raised the number 8 progressively to the +<i>sixteenth</i> power, and in naming the last result, which +consisted of 15 figures, he was right in every one. Some +numbers consisting of <i>two</i> figures he raised as high as the +eighth power, though he found a difficulty in proceeding when the +products became very large.</p> +<p>“On being asked the <i>square root</i> of 106,929, he +answered 327 before the original number could be written +down. He was then required to find the cube root of +268,336,125, and with equal facility and promptness he replied +645.</p> +<p>“He was asked how many minutes there are in 48 years, +and before the question could be taken down he replied +25,228,800, and immediately afterwards he gave the correct number +of seconds.</p> +<p>“On being requested to give the factors which would +produce the number 247,483, he immediately named 941 and 263, +which are the only two numbers from the multiplication of which +it would result. On 171,395 being proposed, he named 5 +× 34,279, 7 × 24,485, 59 × 2905, 83 × +2065, 35 × 4897, 295 × 581, and 413 × 415.</p> +<p>“He was then asked to give the factors of 36,083, but he +immediately replied that it had none, which was really the case, +this being a prime number. Other numbers being proposed to +him indiscriminately, he always succeeded in giving the correct +factors except in the case of prime numbers, which he generally +discovered almost as soon as they were proposed to him. The +number 4,294,967,297, which is 2<sup>32</sup> + 1, having been +given him, he discovered, as Euler had previously done, that it +was not the prime number which Fermat had supposed it to be, but +that it is the product of the factors 6,700,417 × +641. The solution of this problem was only given after the +lapse of some weeks, but the method he took to obtain it clearly +showed that he had not derived his information from any +extraneous source.</p> +<p>“When he was asked to multiply together numbers both +consisting of more than these figures, he seemed to decompose one +or both of them into its factors, and to work with them +separately. Thus, on being asked to give the square of +4395, he multiplied 293 by itself, and then twice multiplied the +product by 15. And on being asked to tell the square of +999,999 he obtained the correct result, 999,998,000,001, by twice +multiplying the square of 37,037 by 27. He then of his own +accord multiplied that product by 49, and said that the result +(viz., 48,999,902,000,049) was equal to the square of +6,999,993. He afterwards multiplied this product by 49, and +observed that the result (viz., 2,400,995,198,002,401) was equal +to the square of 48,999,951. He was again asked to multiply +the product by 25, and in naming the result (viz., +60,024,879,950,060,025) he said it was equal to the square of +244,999,755.</p> +<p>“On being interrogated as to the manner in which he +obtained these results, the boy constantly said he did not know +<i>how</i> the answers came into his mind. In the act of +multiplying two numbers together, and in the raising of powers, +it was evident (alike from the facts just stated and from the +motion of his lips) that <i>some</i> operation was going forward +in his mind; yet that operation could not (from the readiness +with which his answers were furnished) have been at all allied to +the usual modes of procedure, of which, indeed, he was entirely +ignorant, not being able to perform on paper a simple sum in +multiplication or division. But in the extraction of roots, +and in the discovery of the factors of large numbers, it did not +appear that any operation <i>could</i> take place, since he gave +answers <i>immediately</i>, or in a very few seconds, which, +according to the ordinary methods, would have required very +difficult and laborious calculations, and prime numbers cannot be +recognised as such by any known rule.”</p> +<p>I should hope that many of the above figures are wrong. +I have verified them carefully with Dr. Carpenter’s +quotation, but further than this I cannot and will not go. +Also I am happy to find that in the end the boy overcame the +mathematics, and turned out a useful but by no means particularly +calculating member of society.</p> +<p>The case, however, is typical of others in which persons have +been found able to do without apparent effort what in the great +majority of cases requires a long apprenticeship. It is +needless to multiply instances; the point that concerns us is, +that knowledge under such circumstances being very intense, and +the ease with which the result is produced extreme, it eludes the +conscious apprehension of the performer himself, who only becomes +conscious when a difficulty arises which taxes even his abnormal +power. Such a case, therefore, confirms rather than +militates against our opinion that consciousness of knowledge +vanishes on the knowledge becoming perfect—the only +difference between those possessed of any such remarkable special +power and the general run of people being, that the first are +born with such an unusual aptitude for their particular specialty +that they are able to dispense with all or nearly all the +preliminary exercise of their faculty, while the latter must +exercise it for a considerable time before they can get it to +work smoothly and easily; but in either case when once the +knowledge is intense it is unconscious.</p> +<p>Nor again would such an instance as that of Zerah Colburn +warrant us in believing that this white heat, as it were, of +unconscious knowledge can be attained by any one without his ever +having been originally cold. Young Colburn, for example, +could not extract roots when he was an embryo of three +weeks’ standing. It is true we can seldom follow the +process, but we know there must have been a time in every case +when even the desire for information or action had not been +kindled; the forgetfulness of effort on the part of those with +exceptional genius for a special subject is due to the smallness +of the effort necessary, so that it makes no impression upon the +individual himself, rather than to the absence of any effort at +all. <a name="citation18"></a><a href="#footnote18" +class="citation">[18]</a></p> +<p>It would, therefore, appear as though perfect knowledge and +perfect ignorance were extremes which meet and become +indistinguishable from one another; so also perfect volition and +perfect absence of volition, perfect memory and utter +forgetfulness; for we are unconscious of knowing, willing, or +remembering, either from not yet having known or willed, or from +knowing and willing so well and so intensely as to be no longer +conscious of either. Conscious knowledge and volition are +of attention; attention is of suspense; suspense is of doubt; +doubt is of uncertainty; uncertainty is of ignorance; so that the +mere fact of conscious knowing or willing implies the presence of +more or less novelty and doubt.</p> +<p>It would also appear as a general principle on a superficial +view of the foregoing instances (and the reader may readily +supply himself with others which are perhaps more to the +purpose), that unconscious knowledge and unconscious volition are +never acquired otherwise than as the result of experience, +familiarity, or habit; so that whenever we observe a person able +to do any complicated action unconsciously, we may assume both +that he must have done it very often before he could acquire so +great proficiency, and also that there must have been a time when +he did not know how to do it at all.</p> +<p>We may assume that there was a time when he was yet so nearly +on the point of neither knowing nor willing perfectly, that he +was quite alive to whatever knowledge or volition he could exert; +going further back, we shall find him still more keenly alive to +a less perfect knowledge; earlier still, we find him well aware +that he does not know nor will correctly, but trying hard to do +both the one and the other; and so on, back and back, till both +difficulty and consciousness become little more than a sound of +going in the brain, a flitting to and fro of something barely +recognisable as the desire to will or know at all—much less +as the desire to know or will definitely this or that. +Finally, they retreat beyond our ken into the repose—the +inorganic kingdom—of as yet unawakened interest.</p> +<p>In either case,—the repose of perfect ignorance or of +perfect knowledge—disturbance is troublesome. When +first starting on an Atlantic steamer, our rest is hindered by +the screw; after a short time, it is hindered if the screw +stops. A uniform impression is practically no +impression. One cannot either learn or unlearn without +pains or pain.</p> +<h2><a name="page20"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +20</span>CHAPTER II.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">CONSCIOUS AND UNCONSCIOUS +KNOWERS—THE LAW AND GRACE.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">In</span> this chapter we shall show that +the law, which we have observed to hold as to the vanishing +tendency of knowledge upon becoming perfect, holds good not only +concerning acquired actions or habits of body, but concerning +opinions, modes of thought, and mental habits generally, which +are no more recognised as soon as firmly fixed, than are the +steps with which we go about our daily avocations. I am +aware that I may appear in the latter part of the chapter to have +wandered somewhat beyond the limits of my subject, but, on the +whole, decide upon leaving what I have written, inasmuch as it +serves to show how far-reaching is the principle on which I am +insisting. Having said so much, I shall during the +remainder of the book keep more closely to the point.</p> +<p>Certain it is that we know best what we are least conscious of +knowing, or at any rate least able to prove, as, for example, our +own existence, or that there is a country England. If any +one asks us for proof on matters of this sort, we have none +ready, and are justly annoyed at being called to consider what we +regard as settled questions. Again, there is hardly +anything which so much affects our actions as the centre of the +earth (unless, perhaps, it be that still hotter and more +unprofitable spot the centre of the universe), for we are +incessantly trying to get as near it as circumstances will allow, +or to avoid getting nearer than is for the time being +convenient. Walking, running, standing, sitting, lying, +waking, or sleeping, from birth till death it is a paramount +object with us; even after death—if it be not fanciful to +say so—it is one of the few things of which what is left of +us can still feel the influence; yet what can engross less of our +attention than this dark and distant spot so many thousands of +miles away?</p> +<p>The air we breathe, so long as it is neither too hot nor cold, +nor rough, nor full of smoke—that is to say, so long as it +is in that state within which we are best acquainted—seldom +enters into our thoughts; yet there is hardly anything with which +we are more incessantly occupied night and day.</p> +<p>Indeed, it is not too much to say that we have no really +profound knowledge upon any subject—no knowledge on the +strength of which we are ready to act at all moments +unhesitatingly without either preparation or +after-thought—till we have left off feeling conscious of +the possession of such knowledge, and of the grounds on which it +rests. A lesson thoroughly learned must be like the air +which feels so light, though pressing so heavily against us, +because every pore of our skin is saturated, so to speak, with it +on all sides equally. This perfection of knowledge +sometimes extends to positive disbelief in the thing known, so +that the most thorough knower shall believe himself altogether +ignorant. No thief, for example, is such an utter +thief—so <i>good</i> a thief—as the +kleptomaniac. Until he has become a kleptomaniac, and can +steal a horse as it were by a reflex action, he is still but half +a thief, with many unthievish notions still clinging to +him. Yet the kleptomaniac is probably unaware that he can +steal at all, much less that he can steal so well. He would +be shocked if he were to know the truth. So again, no man +is a great hypocrite until he has left off knowing that he is a +hypocrite. The great hypocrites of the world are almost +invariably under the impression that they are among the very few +really honest people to be found and, as we must all have +observed, it is rare to find any one strongly under this +impression without ourselves having good reason to differ from +him.</p> +<p>Our own existence is another case in point. When we have +once become articulately conscious of existing, it is an easy +matter to begin doubting whether we exist at all. As long +as man was too unreflecting a creature to articulate in words his +consciousness of his own existence, he knew very well that he +existed, but he did not know that he knew it. With +introspection, and the perception recognised, for better or +worse, that he was a fact, came also the perception that he had +no solid ground for believing that he was a fact at all. +That nice, sensible, unintrospective people who were too busy +trying to exist pleasantly to trouble their heads as to whether +they existed or no—that this best part of mankind should +have gratefully caught at such a straw as “<i>cogito ergo +sum</i>,” is intelligible enough. They felt the +futility of the whole question, and were thankful to one who +seemed to clench the matter with a cant catchword, especially +with a catchword in a foreign language; but how one, who was so +far gone as to recognise that he could not prove his own +existence, should be able to comfort himself with such a begging +of the question, would seem unintelligible except upon the ground +of sheer exhaustion.</p> +<p>At the risk of appearing to wander too far from the matter in +hand, a few further examples may perhaps be given of that irony +of nature, by which it comes about that we so often most know and +are, what we least think ourselves to know and be—and on +the other hand hold most strongly what we are least capable of +demonstrating.</p> +<p>Take the existence of a Personal God,—one of the most +profoundly-received and widely-spread ideas that have ever +prevailed among mankind. Has there ever been a +<i>demonstration</i> of the existence of such a God as has +satisfied any considerable section of thinkers for long +together? Hardly has what has been conceived to be a +demonstration made its appearance and received a certain +acceptance as though it were actual proof, when it has been +impugned with sufficient success to show that, however true the +fact itself, the demonstration is naught. I do not say that +this is an argument against the personality of God; the drift, +indeed, of the present reasoning would be towards an opposite +conclusion, inasmuch as it insists upon the fact that what is +most true and best known is often least susceptible of +demonstration owing to the very perfectness with which it is +known; nevertheless, the fact remains that many men in many ages +and countries—the subtlest thinkers over the whole world +for some fifteen hundred years—have hunted for a +demonstration of God’s personal existence; yet though so +many have sought,—so many, and so able, and for so long a +time—none have found. There is no demonstration which +can be pointed to with any unanimity as settling the matter +beyond power of reasonable cavil. On the contrary, it may +be observed that from the attempt to prove the existence of a +personal God to the denial of that existence altogether, the path +is easy. As in the case of our own existence, it will be +found that they alone are perfect believers in a personal Deity +and in the Christian religion who have not yet begun to feel that +either stands in need of demonstration. We observe that +most people, whether Christians, or Jews, or Mohammedans, are +unable to give their reasons for the faith that is in them with +any readiness or completeness; and this is sure proof that they +really hold it so utterly as to have no further sense that it +either can be demonstrated or ought to be so, but feel towards it +as towards the air which they breathe but do not notice. On +the other hand, a living prelate was reported in the +“Times” to have said in one of his latest charges: +“My belief is that a widely extended good practice must be +founded upon Christian doctrine.” The fact of the +Archbishop’s recognising this as among the number of his +beliefs is conclusive evidence with those who have devoted +attention to the laws of thought, that his mind is not yet clear +as to whether or no there is any connection at all between +Christian doctrine and widely extended good practice. <a +name="citation25"></a><a href="#footnote25" +class="citation">[25]</a></p> +<p>Again, it has been often and very truly said that it is not +the conscious and self-styled sceptic, as Shelley for example, +who is the true unbeliever. Such a man as Shelley will, as +indeed his life abundantly proves, have more in common than not +with the true unselfconscious believer. Gallio again, whose +indifference to religious animosities has won him the cheapest +immortality which, so far as I can remember, was ever yet won, +was probably if the truth were known, a person of the sincerest +piety. It is the unconscious unbeliever who is the true +infidel, however greatly he would be surprised to know the +truth. Mr. Spurgeon was reported as having recently asked +the Almighty to “change our rulers <i>as soon as +possible</i>.” There lurks a more profound distrust +of God’s power in these words than in almost any open +denial of His existence.</p> +<p>So it rather shocks us to find Mr. Darwin writing +(“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” vol. ii., +p. 275): “No doubt, in every case there must have been some +exciting cause.” And again, six or seven pages later: +“No doubt, each slight variation must have its efficient +cause.” The repetition within so short a space of +this expression of confidence in the impossibility of causeless +effects would suggest that Mr. Darwin’s mind at the time of +writing was, unconsciously to himself, in a state of more or less +uneasiness as to whether effects could not occasionally come +about of themselves, and without cause of any sort,—that he +may have been standing, in fact, for a short time upon the brink +of a denial of the indestructibility of force and matter.</p> +<p>In like manner, the most perfect humour and irony is generally +quite unconscious. Examples of both are frequently given by +men whom the world considers as deficient in humour; it is more +probably true that these persons are unconscious of their own +delightful power through the very mastery and perfection with +which they hold it. There is a play, for instance, of +genuine fun in some of the more serious scientific and +theological journals which for some time past we have looked for +in vain in “—.”</p> +<p>The following extract, from a journal which I will not +advertise, may serve as an example:</p> +<p>“Lycurgus, when they had abandoned to his revenge him +who had put out his eyes, took him home, and the punishment he +inflicted upon him was sedulous instructions to +virtue.” Yet this truly comic paper does not probably +know that it is comic, any more than the kleptomaniac knows that +he steals, or than John Milton knew he was a humorist when he +wrote a hymn upon the circumcision, and spent his honeymoon in +composing a treatise on divorce. No more again did Goethe +know how exquisitely humorous he was when he wrote, in his +Wilhelm Meister, that a beautiful tear glistened in +Theresa’s right eye, and then went on to explain that it +glistened in her right eye and not in her left, because she had +had a wart on her left which had been removed—and +successfully. Goethe probably wrote this without a chuckle; +he believed what a good many people who have never read Wilhelm +Meister believe still, namely, that it was a work full of pathos, +of fine and tender feeling; yet a less consummate humorist must +have felt that there was scarcely a paragraph in it from first to +last the chief merit of which did not lie in its absurdity.</p> +<p>Another example may be taken from Bacon of the manner in which +sayings which drop from men unconsciously, give the key of their +inner thoughts to another person, though they themselves know not +that they have such thoughts at all; much less that these +thoughts are their only true convictions. In his Essay on +Friendship the great philosopher writes: “Reading good +books on morality is a little flat and dead.” +Innocent, not to say pathetic, as this passage may sound it is +pregnant with painful inferences concerning Bacon’s moral +character. For if he knew that he found reading good books +of morality a little flat and dead, it follows he must have tried +to read them; nor is he saved by the fact that he found them a +little flat and dead; for though this does indeed show that he +had begun to be so familiar with a few first principles as to +find it more or less exhausting to have his attention directed to +them further—yet his words prove that they were not so +incorporate with him that he should feel the loathing for further +discourse upon the matter which honest people commonly feel +now. It will be remembered that he took bribes when he came +to be Lord Chancellor.</p> +<p>It is on the same principle that we find it so distasteful to +hear one praise another for earnestness. For such praise +raises a suspicion in our minds (<i>pace</i> the late Dr. Arnold +and his following) that the praiser’s attention must have +been arrested by sincerity, as by something more or less +unfamiliar to himself. So universally is this recognised +that the world has for some time been discarded entirely by all +reputable people. Truly, if there is one who cannot find +himself in the same room with the life and letters of an earnest +person without being made instantly unwell, the same is a just +man and perfect in all his ways.</p> +<p>But enough has perhaps been said. As the fish in the +sea, or the bird in the air, so unreasoningly and inarticulately +safe must a man feel before he can be said to know. It is +only those who are ignorant and uncultivated who can know +anything at all in a proper sense of the words. Cultivation +will breed in any man a certainty of the uncertainty even of his +most assured convictions. It is perhaps fortunate for our +comfort that we can none of us be cultivated upon very many +subjects, so that considerable scope for assurance will still +remain to us; but however this may be, we certainly observe it as +a fact that the greatest men are they who are most uncertain in +spite of certainty, and at the same time most certain in spite of +uncertainty, and who are thus best able to feel that there is +nothing in such complete harmony with itself as a flat +contradiction in terms. For nature hates that any principle +should breed, so to speak, hermaphroditically, but will give to +each an help meet for it which shall cross it and be the undoing +of it; as in the case of descent with modification, of which the +essence would appear to be that every offspring should resemble +its parents, and yet, at the same time, that no offspring should +resemble its parents. But for the slightly irritating +stimulant of this perpetual crossing, we should pass our lives +unconsciously as though in slumber.</p> +<p>Until we have got to understand that though black is not +white, yet it may be whiter than white itself (and any painter +will readily paint that which shall show obviously as black, yet +it shall be whiter than that which shall show no less obviously +as white), we may be good logicians, but we are still poor +reasoners. Knowledge is in an inchoate state as long as it +is capable of logical treatment; it must be transmuted into that +sense or instinct which rises altogether above the sphere in +which words can have being at all, otherwise it is not yet +vital. For sense is to knowledge what conscience is to +reasoning about right and wrong; the reasoning must be so rapid +as to defy conscious reference to first principles, and even at +times to be apparently subversive of them altogether, or the +action will halt. It must, in fact, become automatic before +we are safe with it. While we are fumbling for the grounds +of our conviction, our conviction is prone to fall, as Peter for +lack of faith sinking into the waves of Galilee; so that the very +power to prove at all is an <i>à priori</i> argument +against the truth—or at any rate the practical importance +to the vast majority of mankind—of all that is supported by +demonstration. For the power to prove implies a sense of +the need of proof, and things which the majority of mankind find +practically important are in ninety-nine cases out of a hundred +above proof. The need of proof becomes as obsolete in the +case of assumed knowledge, as the practice of fortifying towns in +the middle of an old and long settled country. Who builds +defences for that which is impregnable or little likely to be +assailed? The answer is ready, that unless the defences had +been built in former times it would be impossible to do without +them now; but this does not touch the argument, which is not that +demonstration is unwise, but that as long as a demonstration is +still felt necessary, and therefore kept ready to hand, the +subject of such demonstration is not yet securely known. +<i>Qui s’excuse</i>, <i>s’accuse</i>; and unless a +matter can hold its own without the brag and self-assertion of +continual demonstration, it is still more or less of a parvenu, +which we shall not lose much by neglecting till it has less +occasion to blow its own trumpet. The only alternative is +that it is an error in process of detection, for if evidence +concerning any opinion has long been denied superfluous, and ever +after this comes to be again felt necessary, we know that the +opinion is doomed.</p> +<p>If there is any truth in the above, it should follow that our +conception of the words “science” and +“scientific” should undergo some modification. +Not that we should speak slightingly of science, but that we +should recognise more than we do, that there are two distinct +classes of scientific people corresponding not inaptly with the +two main parties unto which the political world is divided. +The one class is deeply versed in those sciences which have +already become the common property of mankind; enjoying, +enforcing, perpetuating, and engraving still more deeply unto the +mind of man acquisitions already approved by common experience, +but somewhat careless about extension of empire, or at any rate +disinclined, for the most part, to active effort on their own +part for the sake of such extension—neither progressive, in +fact, nor aggressive—but quiet, peaceable people, who wish +to live and let live, as their fathers before them; while the +other class is chiefly intent upon pushing forward the boundaries +of science, and is comparatively indifferent to what is known +already save in so far as necessary for purposes of +extension. These last are called pioneers of science, and +to them alone is the title “scientific” commonly +accorded; but pioneers, unimportant to an army as they are, are +still not the army itself; which can get on better without the +pioneers than the pioneers without the army. Surely the +class which knows thoroughly well what it knows, and which +adjudicates upon the value of the discoveries made by the +pioneers—surely this class has as good a right or better to +be called scientific than the pioneers themselves.</p> +<p>These two classes above described blend into one another with +every shade of gradation. Some are admirably proficient in +the well-known sciences—that is to say, they have good +health, good looks, good temper, common sense, and energy, and +they hold all these good things in such perfection as to lie +altogether without introspection—to be not under the law, +but so utterly and entirely under grace that every one who sees +them likes them. But such may, and perhaps more commonly +will, have very little inclination to extend the boundaries of +human knowledge; their aim is in another direction +altogether. Of the pioneers, on the other hand, some are +agreeable people, well versed in the older sciences, though still +more eminent as pioneers, while others, whose services in this +last capacity have been of inestimable value, are noticeably +ignorant of the sciences which have already become current with +the larger part of mankind—in other words, they are ugly, +rude, and disagreeable people, very progressive, it may be, but +very aggressive to boot.</p> +<p>The main difference between these two classes lies in the fact +that the knowledge of the one, so far as it is new, is known +consciously, while that of the other is unconscious, consisting +of sense and instinct rather than of recognised knowledge. +So long as a man has these, and of the same kind as the more +powerful body of his fellow-countrymen, he is a true man of +science, though he can hardly read or write. As my great +namesake said so well, “He knows what’s what, and +that’s as high as metaphysic wit can fly.” As +usual, these true and thorough knowers do not know that they are +scientific, and can seldom give a reason for the faith that is in +them. They believe themselves to be ignorant, uncultured +men, nor can even the professors whom they sometimes outwit in +their own professorial domain perceive that they have been +outwitted by men of superior scientific attainments to their +own. The following passage from Dr. Carpenter’s +“Mesmerism, Spiritualism,” &c., may serve as an +illustration:—</p> +<p>“It is well known that persons who are conversant with +the geological structure of a district are often able to indicate +with considerable certainty in what spot and at what depth water +will be found; and men <i>of less scientific knowledge</i>, +<i>but of considerable practical experience</i>”—(so +that in Dr. Carpenter’s mind there seems to be some sort of +contrast or difference in kind between the knowledge which is +derived from observation of facts and scientific +knowledge)—“frequently arrive at a true conclusion +upon this point without being able to assign reasons for their +opinions.</p> +<p>“Exactly the same may be said in regard to the mineral +structure of a mining district; the course of a metallic vein +being often correctly indicated by the shrewd guess of an +<i>observant</i> workman, when <i>the scientific reasoning</i> of +the mining engineer altogether fails.”</p> +<p>Precisely. Here we have exactly the kind of thing we are +in search of: the man who has observed and observed till the +facts are so thoroughly in his head that through familiarity he +has lost sight both of them and of the processes whereby he +deduced his conclusions from them—is apparently not +considered scientific, though he knows how to solve the problem +before him; the mining engineer, on the other hand, who reasons +scientifically—that is to say, with a knowledge of his own +knowledge—is found not to know, and to fail in discovering +the mineral.</p> +<p>“It is an experience we are continually encountering in +other walks of life,” continues Dr. Carpenter, “that +particular persons are guided—some apparently by an +original and others by <i>an acquired intuition</i>—to +conclusions for which they can give no adequate reason, but which +subsequent events prove to have been correct.” And +this, I take it, implies what I have been above insisting on, +namely, that on becoming intense, knowledge seems also to become +unaware of the grounds on which it rests, or that it has or +requires grounds at all, or indeed even exists. The only +issue between myself and Dr. Carpenter would appear to be, that +Dr. Carpenter, himself an acknowledged leader in the scientific +world, restricts the term “scientific” to the people +who know that they know, but are beaten by those who are not so +conscious of their own knowledge; while I say that the term +“scientific” should be applied (only that they would +not like it) to the nice sensible people who know what’s +what rather than to the discovering class.</p> +<p>And this is easily understood when we remember that the +pioneer cannot hope to acquire any of the new sciences in a +single lifetime so perfectly as to become unaware of his own +knowledge. As a general rule, we observe him to be still in +a state of active consciousness concerning whatever particular +science he is extending, and as long as he is in this state he +cannot know utterly. It is, as I have already so often +insisted on, those who do not know that they know so much who +have the firmest grip of their knowledge: the best class, for +example, of our English youth, who live much in the open air, +and, as Lord Beaconsfield finely said, never read. These +are the people who know best those things which are best worth +knowing—that is to say, they are the most truly +scientific. Unfortunately, the apparatus necessary for this +kind of science is so costly as to be within the reach of few, +involving, as it does, an experience in the use of it for some +preceding generations. Even those who are born with the +means within their reach must take no less pains, and exercise no +less self-control, before they can attain the perfect unconscious +use of them, than would go to the making of a James Watt or a +Stephenson; it is vain, therefore, to hope that this best kind of +science can ever be put within the reach of the many; +nevertheless it may be safely said that all the other and more +generally recognised kinds of science are valueless except in so +far as they tend to minister to this the highest kind. They +have no <i>raison d’être</i> except so far as they +tend to do away with the necessity for work, and to diffuse good +health, and that good sense which is above +self-consciousness. They are to be encouraged because they +have rendered the most fortunate kind of modern European +possible, and because they tend to make possible a still more +fortunate kind than any now existing. But the man who +devotes himself to science cannot—with the rarest, if any, +exceptions—belong to this most fortunate class +himself. He occupies a lower place, both scientifically and +morally, for it is not possible but that his drudgery should +somewhat soil him both in mind and health of body, or, if this be +denied, surely it must let him and hinder him in running the race +for unconsciousness. We do not feel that it increases the +glory of a king or great nobleman that he should excel in what is +commonly called science. Certainly he should not go further +than Prince Rupert’s drops. Nor should he excel in +music, art, literature, or theology—all which things are +more or less parts of science. He should be above them all, +save in so far as he can without effort reap renown from the +labours of others. It is a <i>lâche</i> in him that +he should write music or books, or paint pictures at all; but if +he must do so, his work should be at best contemptible. +Much as we must condemn Marcus Aurelius, we condemn James I. ever +more severely.</p> +<p>It is a pity there should exist so general a confusion of +thought upon this subject, for it may be asserted without fear of +contradiction that there is hardly any form of immorality now +rife which produces more disastrous effects upon those who give +themselves up to it, and upon society in general, than the +so-called science of those who know that they know too well to be +able to know truly. With very clever people—the +people who know that they know—it is much as with the +members of the early Corinthian Church, to whom St. Paul wrote, +that if they looked their numbers over, they would not find many +wise, nor powerful, nor well-born people among them. +Dog-fanciers tell us that performing dogs never carry their +tails; such dogs have eaten of the tree of knowledge, and are +convinced of sin accordingly—they know that they know +things, in respect of which, therefore, they are no longer under +grace, but under the law, and they have yet so much grace left as +to be ashamed. So with the human clever dog; he may speak +with the tongues of men and angels, but so long as he knows that +he knows, his tail will droop. More especially does this +hold in the case of those who are born to wealth and of old +family. We must all feel that a rich young nobleman with a +taste for science and principles is rarely a pleasant +object. We do not even like the rich young man in the Bible +who wanted to inherit eternal life, unless, indeed, he merely +wanted to know whether there was not some way by which he could +avoid dying, and even so he is hardly worth considering. +Principles are like logic, which never yet made a good reasoner +of a bad one, but might still be occasionally useful if they did +not invariably contradict each other whenever there is any +temptation to appeal to them. They are like fire, good +servants but bad masters. As many people or more have been +wrecked on principle as from want of principle. They are, +as their name implies, of an elementary character, suitable for +beginners only, and he who has so little mastered them as to have +occasion to refer to them consciously, is out of place in the +society of well-educated people. The truly scientific +invariably hate him, and, for the most part, the more profoundly +in proportion to the unconsciousness with which they do so.</p> +<p>If the reader hesitates, let him go down into the streets and +look in the shop-windows at the photographs of eminent men, +whether literary, artistic, or scientific, and note the work +which the consciousness of knowledge has wrought on nine out of +every ten of them; then let him go to the masterpieces of Greek +and Italian art, the truest preachers of the truest gospel of +grace; let him look at the Venus of Milo, the Discobolus, the St. +George of Donatello. If it had pleased these people to wish +to study, there was no lack of brains to do it with; but imagine +“what a deal of scorn” would “look +beautiful” upon the Venus of Milo’s face if it were +suggested to her that she should learn to read. Which, +think you, knows most, the Theseus, or any modern professor taken +at random? True, the advancement of learning must have had +a great share in the advancement of beauty, inasmuch as beauty is +but knowledge perfected and incarnate—but with the pioneers +it is <i>sic vos non vobis</i>; the grace is not for them, but +for those who come after. Science is like offences. +It must needs come, but woe unto that man through whom it comes; +for there cannot be much beauty where there is consciousness of +knowledge, and while knowledge is still new it must in the nature +of things involve much consciousness.</p> +<p>It is not knowledge, then, that is incompatible with beauty; +there cannot be too much knowledge, but it must have passed +through many people who it is to be feared must be more or less +disagreeable, before beauty or grace will have anything to say to +it; it must be so incarnate in a man’s whole being that he +shall not be aware of it, or it will fit him constrainedly as one +under the law, and not as one under grace.</p> +<p>And grace is best, for where grace is, love is not +distant. Grace! the old Pagan ideal whose charm even +unlovely Paul could not understand, but, as the legend tells us, +his soul fainted within him, his heart misgave him, and, standing +alone on the seashore at dusk, he “troubled deaf heaven +with his bootless cries,” his thin voice pleading for grace +after the flesh.</p> +<p>The waves came in one after another, the sea-gulls cried +together after their kind, the wind rustled among the dried canes +upon the sandbanks, and there came a voice from heaven saying, +“Let My grace be sufficient for thee.” Whereon, +failing of the thing itself, he stole the word and strove to +crush its meaning to the measure of his own limitations. +But the true grace, with her groves and high places, and troups +of young men and maidens crowned with flowers, and singing of +love and youth and wine—the true grace he drove out into +the wilderness—high up, it may be, into Piora, and into +such-like places. Happy they who harboured her in her ill +report.</p> +<p>It is common to hear men wonder what new faith will be adopted +by mankind if disbelief in the Christian religion should become +general. They seem to expect that some new theological or +quasi-theological system will arise, which, <i>mutatis +mutandis</i>, shall be Christianity over again. It is a +frequent reproach against those who maintain that the +supernatural element of Christianity is without foundation, that +they bring forward no such system of their own. They pull +down but cannot build. We sometimes hear even those who +have come to the same conclusions as the destroyers say, that +having nothing new to set up, they will not attack the old. +But how can people set up a new superstition, knowing it to be a +superstition? Without faith in their own platform, a faith +as intense as that manifested by the early Christians, how can +they preach? A new superstition will come, but it is in the +very essence of things that its apostles should have no suspicion +of its real nature; that they should no more recognise the common +element between the new and the old than the early Christians +recognised it between their faith and Paganism. If they +did, they would be paralysed. Others say that the new +fabric may be seen rising on every side, and that the coming +religion is science. Certainly its apostles preach it +without misgiving, but it is not on that account less possible +that it may prove only to be the coming superstition—like +Christianity, true to its true votaries, and, like Christianity, +false to those who follow it introspectively.</p> +<p>It may well be we shall find we have escaped from one set of +taskmasters to fall into the hands of others far more +ruthless. The tyranny of the Church is light in comparison +with that which future generations may have to undergo at the +hands of the doctrinaires. The Church did uphold a grace of +some sort as the <i>summum bonum</i>, in comparison with which +all so-called earthly knowledge—knowledge, that is to say, +which had not passed through so many people as to have become +living and incarnate—was unimportant. Do what we may, +we are still drawn to the unspoken teaching of her less +introspective ages with a force which no falsehood could +command. Her buildings, her music, her architecture, touch +us as none other on the whole can do; when she speaks there are +many of us who think that she denies the deeper truths of her own +profounder mind, and unfortunately her tendency is now towards +more rather than less introspection. The more she gives way +to this—the more she becomes conscious of knowing—the +less she will know. But still her ideal is in grace.</p> +<p>The so-called man of science, on the other hand, seems now +generally inclined to make light of all knowledge, save of the +pioneer character. His ideal is in self-conscious +knowledge. Let us have no more Lo, here, with the +professor; he very rarely knows what he says he knows; no sooner +has he misled the world for a sufficient time with a great +flourish of trumpets than he is toppled over by one more +plausible than himself. He is but medicine-man, augur, +priest, in its latest development; useful it may be, but +requiring to be well watched by those who value freedom. +Wait till he has become more powerful, and note the vagaries +which his conceit of knowledge will indulge in. The Church +did not persecute while she was still weak. Of course every +system has had, and will have, its heroes, but, as we all very +well know, the heroism of the hero is but remotely due to system; +it is due not to arguments, nor reasoning, nor to any consciously +recognised perceptions, but to those deeper sciences which lie +far beyond the reach of self-analysis, and for the sturdy of +which there is but one schooling—to have had good +forefathers for many generations.</p> +<p>Above all things, let no unwary reader do me the injustice of +believing in <i>me</i>. In that I write at all I am among +the dammed. If he must believe in anything, let him believe +in the music of Handel, the painting of Giovanni Bellini, and in +the thirteenth chapter of St. Paul’s First Epistle to the +Corinthians.</p> +<p>But to return. Whenever we find people knowing that they +know this or that, we have the same story over and over +again. They do not yet know it perfectly.</p> +<p>We come, therefore, to the conclusion that our knowledge and +reasoning thereupon, only become perfect, assured, unhesitating, +when they have become automatic, and are thus exercised without +further conscious effort of the mind, much in the same way as we +cannot walk nor read nor write perfectly till we can do so +automatically.</p> +<h2><a name="page43"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +43</span>CHAPTER III.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">APPLICATION OF FOREGOING CHAPTERS TO +CERTAIN HABITS ACQUIRED AFTER BIRTH WHICH ARE COMMONLY CONSIDERED +INSTINCTIVE.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">What</span> is true of knowing is also +true of willing. The more intensely we will, the less is +our will deliberate and capable of being recognised as will at +all. So that it is common to hear men declare under certain +circumstances that they had no will, but were forced into their +own action under stress of passion or temptation. But in +the more ordinary actions of life, we observe, as in walking or +breathing, that we do not will anything utterly and without +remnant of hesitation, till we have lost sight of the fact that +we are exercising our will.</p> +<p>The question, therefore, is forced upon us, how far this +principle extends, and whether there may not be unheeded examples +of its operation which, if we consider them, will land us in +rather unexpected conclusions. If it be granted that +consciousness of knowledge and of volition vanishes when the +knowledge and the volition have become intense and perfect, may +it not be possible that many actions which we do without knowing +how we do them, and without any conscious exercise of the +will—actions which we certainly could not do if we tried to +do them, nor refrain from doing if for any reason we wished to do +so—are done so easily and so unconsciously owing to excess +of knowledge or experience rather than deficiency, we having done +them too often, knowing how to do them too well, and having too +little hesitation as to the method of procedure, to be capable of +following our own action without the utter derangement of such +action altogether; or, in other cases, because we have so long +settled the question, that we have stowed away the whole +apparatus with which we work in corners of our system which we +cannot now conveniently reach?</p> +<p>It may be interesting to see whether we can find any class or +classes of actions which would seem to link actions which for +some time after birth we could not do at all, and in which our +proficiency has reached the stage of unconscious performance +obviously through repeated effort and failure, and through this +only, with actions which we could do as soon as we were born, and +concerning which it would at first sight appear absurd to say +that they can have been acquired by any process in the least +analogous to that which we commonly call experience, inasmuch as +the creature itself which does them has only just begun to exist, +and cannot, therefore, in the very nature of things, have had +experience.</p> +<p>Can we see that actions, for the acquisition of which +experience is such an obvious necessity, that whenever we see the +acquisition we assume the experience, gradate away imperceptibly +into actions which would seem, according to all reasonable +analogy, to presuppose experience, of which, however, the time +and place seem obscure, if not impossible?</p> +<p>Eating and drinking would appear to be such actions. The +new-born child cannot eat, and cannot drink, but he can swallow +as soon as he is born; and swallowing would appear (as we may +remark in passing) to have been an earlier faculty of animal life +than that of eating with teeth. The ease and +unconsciousness with which we eat and drink is clearly +attributable to practice; but a very little practice seems to go +a long way—a suspiciously small amount of practice—as +though somewhere or at some other time there must have been more +practice than we can account for. We can very readily stop +eating or drinking, and can follow our own action without +difficulty in either process; but, as regards swallowing, which +is the earlier habit, we have less power of self-analysis and +control: when we have once committed ourselves beyond a certain +point to swallowing, we must finish doing so,—that is to +say, our control over the operation ceases. Also, a still +smaller experience seems necessary for the acquisition of the +power to swallow than appeared necessary in the case of eating; +and if we get into a difficulty we choke, and are more at a loss +how to become introspective than we are about eating and +drinking.</p> +<p>Why should a baby be able to swallow—which one would +have said was the more complicated process of the two—with +so much less practice than it takes him to learn to eat? +How comes it that he exhibits in the case of the more difficult +operation all the phenomena which ordinarily accompany a more +complete mastery and longer practice? Analogy would +certainly seem to point in the direction of thinking that the +necessary experience cannot have been wanting, and that, too, not +in such a quibbling sort as when people talk about inherited +habit or the experience of the race, which, without explanation, +is to plain-speaking persons very much the same, in regard to the +individual, as no experience at all, but <i>bonâ fide</i> +in the child’s own person.</p> +<p>Breathing, again, is an action acquired after birth, generally +with some little hesitation and difficulty, but still acquired in +a time seldom longer, as I am informed, than ten minutes or a +quarter of an hour. For an ant which has to be acquired at +all, there would seem here, as in the case of eating, to be a +disproportion between, on the one hand, the intricacy of the +process performed, and on the other, the shortness of the time +taken to acquire the practice, and the ease and unconsciousness +with which its exercise is continued from the moment of +acquisition.</p> +<p>We observe that in later life much less difficult and +intricate operations than breathing acquire much longer practice +before they can be mastered to the extent of unconscious +performance. We observe also that the phenomena attendant +on the learning by an infant to breathe are extremely like those +attendant upon the repetition of some performance by one who has +done it very often before, but who requires just a little +prompting to set him off, on getting which, the whole familiar +routine presents itself before him, and he repeats his task by +rote. Surely then we are justified in suspecting that there +must have been more <i>bonâ fide</i> personal recollection +and experience, with more effort and failure on the part of the +infant itself than meet the eye.</p> +<p>It should be noticed, also, that our control over breathing is +very limited. We can hold our breath a little, or breathe a +little faster for a short time, but we cannot do this for long, +and after having gone without air for a certain time we must +breath.</p> +<p>Seeing and hearing require some practice before their free use +is mastered, but not very much. They are so far within our +control that we can see more by looking harder, and hear more by +listening attentively—but they are beyond our control in so +far as that we must see and hear the greater part of what +presents itself to us as near, and at the same time unfamiliar, +unless we turn away or shut our eyes, or stop our ears by a +mechanical process; and when we do this it is a sign that we have +already involuntarily seen or heard more than we wished. +The familiar, whether sight or sound, very commonly escapes +us.</p> +<p>Take again the processes of digestion, the action of the +heart, and the oxygenisation of the blood—processes of +extreme intricacy, done almost entirely unconsciously, and quite +beyond the control of our volition.</p> +<p>Is it possible that our unconsciousness concerning our own +performance of all these processes arises from +over-experience?</p> +<p>Is there anything in digestion, or the oxygenisation of the +blood, different in kind to the rapid unconscious action of a man +playing a difficult piece of music on the piano? There may +be in degree, but as a man who sits down to play what he well +knows, plays on, when once started, almost, as we say, +mechanically, so, having eaten his dinner, he digests it as a +matter of course, unless it has been in some way unfamiliar to +him, or he to it, owing to some derangement or occurrence with +which he is unfamiliar, and under which therefore he is at a loss +now to comport himself, as a player would be at a loss how to +play with gloves on, or with gout in his fingers, or if set to +play music upside down.</p> +<p>Can we show that all the acquired actions of childhood and +after-life, which we now do unconsciously, or without conscious +exercise of the will, are familiar acts—acts which we have +already done a very great number of times?</p> +<p>Can we also show that there are no acquired actions which we +can perform in this automatic manner, which were not at one time +difficult, requiring attention, and liable to repeated failure, +our volition failing to command obedience from the members which +should carry its purposes into execution?</p> +<p>If so, analogy will point in the direction of thinking that +other acts which we do even more unconsciously may only escape +our power of self-examination and control because they are even +more familiar—because we have done them oftener; and we may +imagine that if there were a microscope which could show us the +minutest atoms of consciousness and volition, we should find that +even the apparently most automatic actions were yet done in due +course, upon a balance of considerations, and under the +deliberate exercise of the will.</p> +<p>We should also incline to think that even such an action as +the oxygenisation of its blood by an infant of ten minutes’ +old, can only be done so well and so unconsciously, after +repeated failures on the part of the infant itself.</p> +<p>True, as has been already implied, we do not immediately see +when the baby could have made the necessary mistakes and acquired +that infinite practice without which it could never go through +such complex processes satisfactorily; we have therefore invented +the words “hereditary instinct,” and consider them as +accounting for the phenomenon; but a very little reflection will +show that though these words may be a very good way of stating +the difficulty, they do little or nothing towards removing +it.</p> +<p>Why should hereditary instinct enable a creature to dispense +with the experience which we see to be necessary in all other +cases before difficult operations can be performed +successfully?</p> +<p>What is this talk that is made about the experience <i>of the +race</i>, as though the experience of one man could profit +another who knows nothing about him? If a man eats his +dinner, it nourishes <i>him</i> and not his neighbour; if he +learns a different art, it is <i>he</i> that can do it and not +his neighbour. Yet, practically, we see that the vicarious +experience, which seems so contrary to our common observation, +does nevertheless appear to hold good in the case of creatures +and their descendants. Is there, then, any way of bringing +these apparently conflicting phenomena under the operation of one +law? Is there any way of showing that this experience of +the race, of which so much is said without the least attempt to +show in what way it may or does become the experience of the +individual, is in sober seriousness the experience of one single +being only, repeating in a great many different ways certain +performances with which he has become exceedingly familiar?</p> +<p>It would seem that we must either suppose the conditions of +experience to differ during the earlier stages of life from those +which we observe them to become during the heyday of any +existence—and this would appear very gratuitous, tolerable +only as a suggestion because the beginnings of life are so +obscure, that in such twilight we may do pretty much whatever we +please without danger of confutation—or that we must +suppose the continuity of life and sameness between living +beings, whether plants or animals, and their descendants, to be +far closer than we have hitherto believed; so that the experience +of one person is not enjoyed by his successor, so much as that +the successor is <i>bonâ fide</i> but a part of the life of +his progenitor, imbued with all his memories, profiting by all +his experiences—which are, in fact, his own—and only +unconscious of the extent of his own memories and experiences +owing to their vastness and already infinite repetitions.</p> +<p>Certainly it presents itself to us at once as a singular +coincidence—</p> +<p>I. That we are <i>most conscious of</i>, <i>and have +most control over</i>, such habits as speech, the upright +position, the arts and sciences, which are acquisitions peculiar +to the human race, always acquired after birth, and not common to +ourselves and any ancestor who had not become entirely human.</p> +<p>II. That we are <i>less conscious of</i>, <i>and have +less control over</i>, eating and drinking, swallowing, +breathing, seeing and hearing, which were acquisitions of our +prehuman ancestry, and for which we had provided ourselves with +all the necessary apparatus before we saw light, but which are +still, geologically speaking, recent, or comparatively +recent.</p> +<p>III. That we are <i>most unconscious of</i>, <i>and have +least control over</i>, our digestion and circulation, which +belonged even to our invertebrate ancestry, and which are habits, +geologically speaking, of extreme antiquity.</p> +<p>There is something too like method in this for it to be taken +as the result of mere chance—chance again being but another +illustration of Nature’s love of a contradiction in terms; +for everything is chance, and nothing is chance. And you +may take it that all is chance or nothing chance, according as +you please, but you must not have half chance and half not +chance.</p> +<p>Does it not seem as though the older and more confirmed the +habit, the more unquestioning the act of volition, till, in the +case of the oldest habits, the practice of succeeding existences +has so formulated the procedure, that, on being once committed to +such and such a line beyond a certain point, the subsequent +course is so clear as to be open to no further doubt, to admit of +no alternative, till the very power of questioning is gone, and +even the consciousness of volition? And this too upon +matters which, in earlier stages of a man’s existence, +admitted of passionate argument and anxious deliberation whether +to resolve them thus or thus, with heroic hazard and experiment, +which on the losing side proved to be vice, and on the winning +virtue. For there was passionate argument once what shape a +man’s teeth should be, nor can the colour of his hair be +considered as ever yet settled, or likely to be settled for a +very long time.</p> +<p>It is one against legion when a creature tries to differ from +his own past selves. He must yield or die if he wants to +differ widely, so as to lack natural instincts, such as hunger or +thirst, or not to gratify them. It is more righteous in a +man that he should “eat strange food,” and that his +cheek should “so much as lank not,” than that he +should starve if the strange food be at his command. His +past selves are living in him at this moment with the accumulated +life of centuries. “Do this, this, this, which we too +have done, and found our profit in it,” cry the souls of +his forefathers within him. Faint are the far ones, coming +and going as the sound of bells wafted on to a high mountain; +loud and clear are the near ones, urgent as an alarm of +fire. “Withhold,” cry some. “Go on +boldly,” cry others. “Me, me, me, revert +hitherward, my descendant,” shouts one as it were from some +high vantage-ground over the heads of the clamorous +multitude. “Nay, but me, me, me,” echoes +another; and our former selves fight within us and wrangle for +our possession. Have we not here what is commonly called an +<i>internal tumult</i>, when dead pleasures and pains tug within +us hither and thither? Then may the battle be decided by +what people are pleased to call our own experience. Our own +indeed! What is our own save by mere courtesy of +speech? A matter of fashion. Sanction sanctifieth and +fashion fashioneth. And so with death—the most +inexorable of all conventions.</p> +<p>However this may be, we may assume it as an axiom with regard +to actions acquired after birth, that we never do them +automatically save as the result of long practice, and after +having thus acquired perfect mastery over the action in +question.</p> +<p>But given the practice or experience, and the intricacy of the +process to be performed appears to matter very little. +There is hardly anything conceivable as being done by man, which +a certain amount of familiarity will not enable him to do, as it +were mechanically and without conscious effort. “The +most complex and difficult movements,” writes Mr Darwin, +“can in time be performed without the least effort or +consciousness.” All the main business of life is done +thus unconsciously or semi-unconsciously. For what is the +main business of life? We work that we may eat and digest, +rather than eat and digest that we may work; this, at any rate, +is the normal state of things: the more important business then +is that which is carried on unconsciously. So again the +action of the brain, which goes on prior to our realising the +idea in which it results, is not perceived by the +individual. So also all the deeper springs of action and +conviction. The residuum with which we fret and worry +ourselves is a mere matter of detail, as the higgling and +haggling of the market, which is not over the bulk of the price, +but over the last halfpenny.</p> +<p>Shall we say, then, that a baby of a day old sucks (which +involves the whole principle of the pump, and hence a profound +practical knowledge of the laws of pneumatics and hydrostatics), +digests, oxygenises its blood (millions of years before Sir +Humphry Davy discovered oxygen), sees and hears—all most +difficult and complicated operations, involving a knowledge of +the facts concerning optics and acoustics, compared with which +the discoveries of Newton sink into utter insignificance? +Shall we say that a baby can do all these things at once, doing +them so well and so regularly, without being even able to direct +its attention to them, and without mistake, and at the same time +not know how to do them, and never have done them before?</p> +<p>Such an assertion would be a contradiction to the whole +experience of mankind. Surely the <i>onus probandi</i> must +rest with him who makes it.</p> +<p>A man may make a lucky hit now and again by what is called a +fluke, but even this must be only a little in advance of his +other performances of the same kind. He may multiply seven +by eight by a fluke after a little study of the multiplication +table, but he will not be able to extract the cube root of 4913 +by a fluke, without long training in arithmetic, any more than an +agricultural labourer would be able to operate successfully for +cataract. If, then, a grown man cannot perform so simple an +operation as that we will say, for cataract, unless he have been +long trained in other similar operations, and until he has done +what comes to the same thing many times over, with what show of +reason can we maintain that one who is so far less capable than a +grown man, can perform such vastly more difficult operations, +without knowing how to do them, and without ever having done them +before? There is no sign of “fluke” about the +circulation of a baby’s blood. There may perhaps be +some little hesitation about its earliest breathing, but this, as +a general rule, soon passes over, both breathing and circulation, +within an hour after birth, being as regular and easy as at any +time during life. Is it reasonable, then, to say that the +baby does these things without knowing how to do them, and +without ever having done them before, and continues to do them by +a series of lifelong flukes?</p> +<p>It would be well if those who feel inclined to hazard such an +assertion would find some other instances of intricate processes +gone through by people who know nothing about them, and never had +any practice therein. What <i>is</i> to know how to do a +thing? Surely to do it. What is proof that we know +how to do a thing? Surely the fact that we can do it. +A man shows that he knows how to throw the boomerang by throwing +the boomerang. No amount of talking or writing can get over +this; <i>ipso facto</i>, that a baby breathes and makes its blood +circulate, it knows how to do so and the fact that it does not +know its own knowledge is only proof of the perfection of that +knowledge, and of the vast number of past occasions on which it +must have been exercised already. As we have said already, +it is less obvious when the baby could have gained its +experience, so as to be able so readily to remember exactly what +to do; but it is more easy to suppose that the necessary +occasions cannot have been wanting, than that the power which we +observe should have been obtained without practice and +memory.</p> +<p>If we saw any self-consciousness on the baby’s part +about its breathing or circulation, we might suspect that it had +had less experience, or profited less by its experience, than its +neighbours—exactly in the same manner as we suspect a +deficiency of any quality which we see a man inclined to +parade. We all become introspective when we find that we do +not know our business, and whenever we are introspective we may +generally suspect that we are on the verge of +unproficiency. Unfortunately, in the case of sickly +children, we observe that they sometimes do become conscious of +their breathing and circulation, just as in later life we become +conscious that we have a liver or a digestion. In that case +there is always something wrong. The baby that becomes +aware of its breathing does not know how to breathe, and will +suffer for his ignorance and incapacity, exactly in the same way +as he will suffer in later life for ignorance and incapacity in +any other respect in which his peers are commonly knowing and +capable. In the case of inability to breath, the punishment +is corporal, breathing being a matter of fashion, so old and long +settled that nature can admit of no departure from the +established custom, and the procedure in case of failure is as +much formulated as the fashion itself in the case of the +circulation, the whole performance has become one so utterly of +rote, that the mere discovery that we could do it at all was +considered one of the highest flights of human genius.</p> +<p>It has been said a day will come when the Polar ice shall have +accumulated, till it forms vast continents many thousands of feet +above the level of the sea, all of solid ice. The weight of +this mass will, it is believed, cause the world to topple over on +its axis, so that the earth will be upset as an ant-heap +overturned by a ploughshare. In that day time icebergs will +come crunching against our proudest cities, razing them from off +the face of the earth as though they were made of rotten +blotting-paper. There is no respect now of Handel nor of +Shakespeare; the works of Rembrandt and Bellini fossilise at the +bottom of the sea. Grace, beauty, and wit, all that is +precious in music, literature, and art—all gone. In +the morning there was Europe. In the evening there are no +more populous cities nor busy hum of men, but a sea of jagged +ice, a lurid sunset, and the doom of many ages. Then shall +a scared remnant escape in places, and settle upon the changed +continent when the waters have subsided—a simple people, +busy hunting shellfish on the drying ocean beds, and with little +time for introspection yet they can read and write and sum, for +by that time these accomplishments will have become universal, +and will be acquired as easily as we now learn to talk; but they +do so as a matter of course, and without +self-consciousness. Also they make the simpler kinds of +machinery too easily to be able to follow their own +operations—the manner of their own apprenticeship being to +them as a buried city. May we not imagine that, after the +lapse of another ten thousand years or so, some one of them may +again become cursed with lust of introspection, and a second +Harvey may astonish the world by discovering that it can read and +write, and that steam-engines do not grow, but are made? It +may be safely prophesied that he will die a martyr, and be +honoured in the fourth generation.</p> +<h2><a name="page59"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +59</span>CHAPTER IV.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING PRINCIPLES TO +ACTIONS AND HABITS ACQUIRED BEFORE BIRTH.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">But</span> if we once admit the principle +that consciousness and volition have a tendency to vanish as soon +as practice has rendered any habit exceedingly familiar, so that +the mere presence of an elaborate but unconscious performance +shall carry with it a presumption of infinite practice, we shall +find it impossible to draw the line at those actions which we see +acquired after birth, no matter at how early a period. The +whole history and development of the embryo in all its stages +forces itself on our consideration. Birth has been made too +much of. It is a salient feature in the history of the +individual, but not more salient than a hundred others, and far +less so than the commencement of his existence as a single cell +uniting in itself elements derived from both parents, or perhaps +than any point in his whole existence as an embryo. For +many years after we are born we are still very incomplete. +We cease to oxygenise our blood vicariously as soon as we are +born, but we still derive our sustenance from our mothers. +Birth is but the beginning of doubt, the first hankering after +scepticism, the dreaming of a dawn of trouble, the end of +certainty and of settled convictions. Not but what before +birth there have been unsettled convictions (more’s the +pity) with not a few, and after birth we have still so made up +our minds upon many points as to have no further need of +reflection concerning them; nevertheless, in the main, birth is +the end of that time when we really knew our business, and the +beginning of the days wherein we know not what we would do, or +do. It is therefore the beginning of consciousness, and +infancy is as the dosing of one who turns in his bed on waking, +and takes another short sleep before he rises. When we were +yet unborn, our thoughts kept the roadway decently enough; then +were we blessed; we thought as every man thinks, and held the +same opinions as our fathers and mothers had done upon nearly +every subject. Life was not an art—and a very +difficult art—much too difficult to be acquired in a +lifetime; it was a science of which we were consummate +masters.</p> +<p>In this sense, then, birth may indeed be looked upon as the +most salient feature in a man’s life; but this is not at +all the sense in which it is commonly so regarded. It is +commonly considered as the point at which we begin to live. +More truly it is the point at which we leave off knowing how to +live.</p> +<p>A chicken, for example, is never so full of consciousness, +activity, reasoning faculty, and volition, as when it is an +embryo in the eggshell, making bones, and flesh, and feathers, +and eyes, and claws, with nothing but a little warmth and white +of egg to make them from. This is indeed to make bricks +with but a small modicum of straw. There is no man in the +whole world who knows consciously and articulately as much as a +half-hatched hen’s egg knows unconsciously. Surely +the egg in its own way must know quite as much as the chicken +does. We say of the chicken that it knows how to run about +as soon as it is hatched. So it does; but had it no +knowledge before it was hatched? What made it lay the +foundations of those limbs which should enable it to run +about? What made it grow a horny tip to its bill before it +was hatched, so that it might peck all round the larger end of +the eggshell and make a hole for itself to get out at? +Having once got outside the eggshell, the chicken throws away +this horny tip; but is it reasonable to suppose that it would +have grown it at all unless it had known that it would want +something with which to break the eggshell? And again, is +it in the least agreeable to our experience that such elaborate +machinery should be made without endeavour, failure, +perseverance, intelligent contrivance, experience, and +practice?</p> +<p>In the presence of such considerations, it seems impossible to +refrain from thinking that there must be a closer continuity of +identity, life, and memory, between successive generations than +we generally imagine. To shear the thread of life, and +hence of memory, between one generation and its successor, is so +to speak, a brutal measure, an act of intellectual butchery, and +like all such strong high-handed measures, a sign of weakness in +him who is capable of it till all other remedies have been +exhausted. It is mere horse science, akin to the theories +of the convulsionists in the geological kingdom, and of the +believers in the supernatural origin of the species of plants and +animals. Yet it is to be feared that we have not a few +among us who would feel shocked rather at the attempt towards a +milder treatment of the facts before them, than at a continuance +of the present crass tyranny with which we try to crush them +inside our preconceived opinions. It is quite common to +hear men of education maintain that not even when it was on the +point of being hatched, had the chicken sense enough to know that +it wanted to get outside the eggshell. It did indeed peck +all round the end of the shell, which, if it wanted to get out, +would certainly be the easiest way of effecting its purpose; but +it did not, they say, peck because it was aware of this, but +“promiscuously.” Curious, such a uniformity of +promiscuous action among so many eggs for so many +generations. If we see a man knock a hole in a wall on +finding that he cannot get out of a place by any other means, and +if we see him knock this hole in a very workmanlike way, with an +implement with which he has been at great pains to make for a +long the past, but which he throws away as soon as he has no +longer use for it, thus showing that he had made it expressly for +the purpose of escape, do we say that this person made the +implement and broke the wall of his prison promiscuously? +No jury would acquit a burglar on these grounds. Then why, +without much more evidence to the contrary than we have, or can +hope to have, should we not suppose that with chickens, as with +men, signs of contrivance are indeed signs of contrivance, +however quick, subtle, and untraceable, the contrivance may +be? Again, I have heard people argue that though the +chicken, when nearly hatched, had such a glimmering of sense that +it pecked the shell because it wanted to get out, yet that it is +not conceivable that, so long before it was hatched, it should +have had the sense to grow the horny tip to its bill for use when +wanted. This, at any rate, they say, it must have grown, as +the persons previously referred to would maintain, +promiscuously.</p> +<p>Now no one indeed supposes that the chicken does what it does, +with the same self-consciousness with which a tailor makes a suit +of clothes. Not any one who has thought upon the subject is +likely to do it so great an injustice. The probability is +that it knows what it is about to an extent greater than any +tailor ever did or will, for, to say the least of it, many +thousands of years to come. It works with such absolute +certainty and so vast an experience, that it is utterly incapable +of following the operations of its own mind—as accountants +have been known to add up long columns of pounds, shillings, and +pence, running the three fingers of one hand, a finger for each +column, up the page, and putting the result down correctly at the +bottom, apparently without an effort. In the case of the +accountant, we say that the processes which his mind goes through +are so rapid and subtle as to elude his own power of observation +as well as ours. We do not deny that his mind goes though +processes of some kind; we very readily admit that it must do so, +and say that these processes are so rapid and subtle, owing, as a +general rule, to long experience in addition. Why then +should we find it so difficult to conceive that this principle, +which we observe to play so large a part in mental physiology, +wherever we can observe mental physiology at all, may have a +share also in the performance of intricate operations otherwise +inexplicable, though the creature performing them is not man, or +man only in embryo?</p> +<p>Again, after the chicken is hatched, it grows more feathers +and bones and blood, but we still say that it knows nothing about +all this. What then do we say it <i>does</i> know? +One is almost ashamed to confess that we only credit it with +knowing what it appears to know by processes which we find it +exceedingly easy to follow, or perhaps rather, which we find it +absolutely impossible to avoid following, as recognising too +great a family likeness between them, and those which are most +easily followed in our own minds, to be able to sit down in +comfort under a denial of the resemblance. Thus, for +example, if we see a chicken running away from a fox, we do admit +that the chicken knows the fox would kill it if it caught it.</p> +<p>On the other hand, if we allow that the half-hatched chicken +grew the horny tip to be ready for use, with an intensity of +unconscious contrivance which can be only attributed to +experience, we are driven to admit that from the first moment the +men began to sit upon it—and earlier too than +this—the egg was always full of consciousness and volition, +and that during its embryological condition the unhatched chicken +is doing exactly what it continues doing from the moment it is +hatched till it dies; that is to say, attempting to better +itself, doing (as Aristotle says all creatures do all things upon +all occasions) what it considers most for its advantage under the +existing circumstances. What it may think most advantageous +will depend, while it is in the eggshell, upon exactly the same +causes as will influence its opinions in later life—to wit, +upon its habits, its past circumstances and ways of thinking; for +there is nothing, as Shakespeare tells us, good or ill, but +thinking makes it so.</p> +<p>The egg thinks feathers much more to its advantage than hair +or fur, and much more easily made. If it could speak, it +would probably tell us that we could make them ourselves very +easily after a few lessons, if we took the trouble to try, but +that hair was another matter, which it really could not see how +any protoplasm could be got to make. Indeed, during the +more intense and active part of our existence, in the earliest +stages, that is to say, of our embryological life, we could +probably have turned our protoplasm into feathers instead of hair +if we had cared about doing so. If the chicken can make +feathers, there seems no sufficient reason for thinking that we +cannot do so, beyond the fact that we prefer hair, and have +preferred it for so many ages that we have lost the art along +with the desire of making feathers, if indeed any of our +ancestors ever possessed it. The stuff with which we make +hair is practically the same as that with which chickens make +feathers. It is nothing but protoplasm, and protoplasm is +like certain prophecies, out of which anything can be made by the +creature which wants to make it. Everything depends upon +whether a creature knows its own mind sufficiently well, and has +enough faith in its own powers of achievement. When these +two requisites are wanting, the strongest giant cannot lift a +two-ounce weight; when they are given, a bullock can take an +eyelash out of its eye with its hind-foot, or a minute jelly +speck can build itself a house out of various materials which it +will select according to its purpose with the nicest care, though +it have neither brain to think with, nor eyes to see with, nor +hands nor feet to work with, nor is it anything but a minute +speck of jelly—faith and protoplasm only.</p> +<p>That this is indeed so, the following passage from Dr. +Carpenter’s “Mental Physiology” may serve to +show:—</p> +<p>“The simplest type of an animal consists of a minute +mass of ‘protoplasm,’ or living jelly, which is not +yet <i>differentiated</i> into ‘organs;’ every part +having the same endowments, and taking an equal share in every +action which the creature performs. One of these +‘jelly specks,’ the amœba, moves itself about +by changing the form of its body, extemporising a foot (or +pseudopodium), first in one direction, and then in another; and +then, when it has met with a nutritive particle, extemporises a +stomach for its reception, by wrapping its soft body around +it. Another, instead of going about in search of food, +remains in one place, but projects its protoplasmic substance +into long pseudopodia, which entrap and draw in very minute +particles, or absorb nutrient material from the liquid through +which they extend themselves, and are continually becoming fused +(as it were) into the central body, which is itself continually +giving off new pseudopodia. Now we can scarcely conceive +that a creature of such simplicity should possess any distinct +<i>consciousness</i> of its needs” (why not?), “or +that its actions should be directed by any <i>intention</i> of +its own; and yet the writer has lately found results of the most +singular elaborateness to be wrought out by the instrumentality +of these minute jelly specks, which build up tests or casings of +the most regular geometrical symmetry of form, and of the most +artificial construction.”</p> +<p>On this Dr. Carpenter remarks:—“Suppose a human +mason to be put down by the side of a pile of stones of various +shapes and sizes, and to be told to build a dome of these, smooth +on both surfaces, without using more than the least possible +quantity of a very tenacious, but very costly, cement, in holding +the stones together. If he accomplished this well, he would +receive credit for great intelligence and skill. Yet this +is exactly what these little ‘jelly specks’ do on a +most minute scale; the ‘tests’ they construct, when +highly magnified, bearing comparison with the most skilful +masonry of man. From <i>the same sandy bottom</i> one +species picks up the <i>coarser</i> quartz grains, cements them +together with <i>phosphate of iron</i> secreted from its own +substance” (should not this rather be, “which it has +contrived in some way or other to manufacture”?) and thus +constructs a flask-shaped ‘test,’ having a short neck +and a large single orifice. Another picks up the +<i>finest</i> grains, and puts them together, with the same +cement, into perfectly spherical ‘tests’ of the most +extraordinary finish, perforated with numerous small pores +disposed at pretty regular intervals. Another selects the +<i>minutest</i> sand grains and the terminal portions of sponge +spicules, and works them up together—apparently with no +cement at all, by the mere laying of the spicules—into +perfect white spheres, like homœopathic globules, each +having a single-fissured orifice. And another, which makes +a straight, many-chambered ‘test,’ that resembles in +form the chambered shell of an orthoceratite—the conical +mouth of each chamber projecting into the cavity of the +next—while forming the walls of its chambers of ordinary +sand grains rather loosely held together, shapes the conical +mouth of the successive chambers by firmly cementing together +grains of ferruginous quartz, which it must have picked out from +the general mass.”</p> +<p>“To give these actions,” continues Dr. Carpenter, +“the vague designation of ‘instinctive’ does +not in the least help us to account for them, since what we want +is to discover the <i>mechanism</i> by which they are worked out; +and it is most difficult to conceive how so artificial a +selection can be made by a creature so simple” (Mental +Physiology, 4th ed. pp. 41–43)</p> +<p>This is what protoplasm can do when it has the talisman of +faith—of faith which worketh all wonders, either in the +heavens above, or in the earth beneath, or in the waters under +the earth. Truly if a man have faith, even as a grain of +mustard seed, though he may not be able to remove mountains, he +will at any rate be able to do what is no less +difficult—make a mustard plant.</p> +<p>Yet this is but a barren kind of comfort, for we have not, and +in the nature of things cannot have, sufficient faith in the +unfamiliar, inasmuch as the very essence of faith involves the +notion of familiarity, which can grow but slowly, from experience +to confidence, and can make no sudden leap at any time. +Such faith cannot be founded upon reason,—that is to say, +upon a recognised perception on the part of the person holding it +that he is holding it, and of the reasons for his doing +so—or it will shift as other reasons come to disturb +it. A house built upon reason is a house built upon the +sand. It must be built upon the current cant and practice +of one’s peers, for this is the rock which, though not +immovable, is still most hard to move.</p> +<p>But however this may be, we observe broadly that the intensity +of the will to make this or that, and of the confidence that one +can make it, depends upon the length of time during which the +maker’s forefathers have wanted the same thing before it; +the older the custom the more inveterate the habit, and, with the +exception, perhaps, that the reproductive system is generally the +crowning act of development—an exception which I will +hereafter explain—the earlier its manifestation, until, for +some reason or another, we relinquish it and take to another, +which we must, as a general rule, again adhere to for a vast +number of generations, before it will permanently supplant the +older habit. In our own case, the habit of breathing like a +fish through gills may serve as an example. We have now +left off this habit, yet we did it formerly for so many +generations that we still do it a little; it still crosses our +embryological existence like a faint memory or dream, for not +easily is an inveterate habit broken. On the other +hand—again speaking broadly—the more recent the habit +the later the fashion of its organ, as with the teeth, speech, +and the higher intellectual powers, which are too new for +development before we are actually born.</p> +<p>But to return for a short time to Dr. Carpenter. Dr. +Carpenter evidently feels, what must indeed be felt by every +candid mind, that there is no sufficient reason for supposing +that these little specks of jelly, without brain or eyes, or +stomach, or hands, or feet, but the very lowest known form of +animal life, are not imbued with a consciousness of their needs, +and the reasoning faculties which shall enable them to gratify +those needs in a manner, all things considered, equalling the +highest flights of the ingenuity of the highest +animal—man. This is no exaggeration. It is +true, that in an earlier part of the passage, Dr. Carpenter has +said that we can scarcely conceive so simple a creature to +“possess any distinct <i>consciousness</i> of its needs, or +that its actions should be directed by any intention of its +own;” but, on the other hand, a little lower down he says, +that if a workman did what comes to the same thing as what the +amœba does, he “would receive credit for great +intelligence and skill.” Now if an amœba can do +that, for which a workman would receive credit as for a highly +skilful and intelligent performance, the amœba should +receive no less credit than the workman; he should also be no +less credited with skill and intelligence, which words +unquestionably involve a distinct consciousness of needs and an +action directed by an intention of its own. So that Dr. +Carpenter seems rather to blow hot and cold with one +breath. Nevertheless there can be no doubt to which side +the minds of the great majority of mankind will incline upon the +evidence before them; they will say that the creature is highly +reasonable and intelligent, though they would readily admit that +long practice and familiarity may have exhausted its powers of +attention to all the stages of its own performance, just as a +practised workman in building a wall certainly does not +consciously follow all the processes which he goes through.</p> +<p>As an example, however, of the extreme dislike which +philosophers of a certain school have for making the admissions +which seem somewhat grudgingly conceded by Dr. Carpenter, we may +take the paragraph which immediately follows the ones which we +have just quoted. Dr. Carpenter there writes:—</p> +<p>“The writer has often amused himself and others, when by +the seaside, with getting a <i>terebella</i> (a marine worm that +cases its body in a sandy tube) out of its house, and then, +putting it into a saucer of water with a supply of sand and +comminuted shell, watching its appropriation of these materials +in constructing a new tube. The extended tentacles soon +spread themselves over the bottom of the saucer and lay hold of +whatever comes in their way, ‘all being fish that comes to +their net,’ and in half an hour or thereabouts the new +house is finished, though on a very rude and artificial +type. Now here the organisation is far higher; the +instrumentality obviously serves the needs of the animal and +suffices for them; and we characterise the action, on account of +its uniformity and apparent <i>un</i>intelligence, as +instinctive.”</p> +<p>No comment will, one would think, be necessary to make the +reader feel that the difference between the terebella and the +amœba is one of degree rather than kind, and that if the +action of the second is as conscious and reasonable as that, we +will say, of a bird making her nest, the action of the first +should be so also. It is only a question of being a little +less skilful, or more so, but skill and intelligence would seem +present in both cases. Moreover, it is more clever of the +terebella to have made itself the limbs with which it can work, +than of the amœba to be able to work without the limbs; and +perhaps it is more sensible also to want a less elaborate +dwelling, provided it is sufficient for practical purposes. +But whether the terebella be less intelligent than the +amœba or not, it does quite enough to establish its claim +to intelligence of a higher order; and one does not see ground +for the satisfaction which Dr. Carpenter appears to find at +having, as it were, taken the taste of the amœba’s +performance out of our mouth, by setting us about the less +elaborate performance of the terebella, which he thinks we can +call unintelligent and instinctive.</p> +<p>I may be mistaken in the impression I have derived from the +paragraphs I have quoted. I commonly say they give me the +impression that I have tried to convey to the reader, +<i>i.e.</i>, that the writer’s assent to anything like +intelligence, or consciousness of needs, an animal low down in +the scale of life, is grudging, and that he is more comfortable +when he has got hold of onto to which he can point and say that +mere, at any rate, is an unintelligent and merely instinctive +creature. I have only called attention to the passage as an +example of the intellectual bias of a large number of exceedingly +able and thoughtful persons, among whom, so far as I am able to +form an opinion at all, few have greater claims to our respectful +attention than Dr. Carpenter himself.</p> +<p>For the embryo of a chicken, then, we damn exactly the same +kind of reasoning power and contrivance which we damn for the +amœba, or for our own intelligent performances in later +life. We do not claim for it much, if any, perception of +its own forethought, for we know very well that it is among the +most prominent features of intellectual activity that, after a +number of repetitions, it ceases to be perceived, and that it +does not, in ordinary cases, cease to be perceived till after a +very great number of repetitions. The fact that the embryo +chicken makes itself always as nearly as may be in the same way, +would lead us to suppose that it would be unconscious of much of +its own action, <i>provided it were always the same chicken which +made itself over and over again</i>. So far we can see, it +always <i>is</i> unconscious of the greater part of its own +wonderful performance. Surely then we have a presumption +that <i>it is the same chicken which makes itself over and over +again</i>; for such unconsciousness is not won, so far as our +experience goes, by any other means than by frequent repetition +of the same act on the part of one and the same individual. +How this can be we shall perceive in subsequent chapters. +In the meantime, we may say that all knowledge and volition would +seem to be merely parts of the knowledge and volition of the +primordial cell (whatever this may be), which slumbers but never +dies—which has grown, and multiplied, and differentiated +itself into the compound life of the womb, and which never +becomes conscious of knowing what it has once learnt effectually, +till it is for some reason on the point of, or in danger of, +forgetting it.</p> +<p>The action, therefore, of an embryo making its way up in the +world from a simple cell to a baby, developing for itself eyes, +ears, hands, and feet while yet unborn, proves to be exactly of +one and the same kind as that of a man of fifty who goes into the +City and tells his broker to buy him so many Great Northern A +shares—that is to say, an effort of the will exercised in +due course on a balance of considerations as to the immediate +expediency, and guided by past experience; while children who do +not reach birth are but prenatal spendthrifts, +ne’er-do-weels, inconsiderate innovators, the unfortunate +in business, either through their own fault or that of others, or +through inevitable mischances, beings who are culled out before +birth instead of after; so that even the lowest idiot, the most +contemptible in health or beauty, may yet reflect with pride that +they were <i>born</i>. Certainly we observe that those who +have had good fortune (mother and sole cause of virtue, and sole +virtue in itself), and have profited by their experience, and +known their business best before birth, so that they made +themselves both to be and to look well, do commonly on an average +prove to know it best in after-life: they grow their clothes best +who have grown their limbs best. It is rare that those who +have not remembered how to finish their own bodies fairly well +should finish anything well in later life. But how small is +the addition to their unconscious attainments which even the +Titans of human intellect have consciously accomplished, in +comparison with the problems solved by the meanest baby living, +nay, even by one whose birth is untimely! In other words, +how vast is that back knowledge over which we have gone fast +asleep, through the prosiness of perpetual repetition; and how +little in comparison, is that whose novelty keeps it still within +the scope of our conscious perception! What is the +discovery of the laws of gravitation as compared with the +knowledge which sleeps in every hen’s egg upon a kitchen +shelf?</p> +<p>It is all a matter of habit and fashion. Thus we see +kings and councillors of the earth admired for facing death +before what they are pleased to call dishonour. If, on +being required to go without anything they have been accustomed +to, or to change their habits, or do what is unusual in the case +of other kings under like circumstances, then, if they but fold +their cloak decently around them, and die upon the spot of shame +at having had it even required of them to do thus or thus, then +are they kings indeed, of old race, that know their business from +generation to generation. Or if, we will say, a prince, on +having his dinner brought to him ill-cooked, were to feel the +indignity so keenly as that he should turn his face to the wall, +and breathe out his wounded soul in one sigh, do we not admire +him as a “<i>real</i> prince,” who knows the business +of princes so well that he can conceive of nothing foreign to it +in connection with himself, the bare effort to realise a state of +things other than what princes have been accustomed to being +immediately fatal to him? Yet is there no less than this in +the demise of every half-hatched hen’s egg, shaken rudely +by a schoolboy, or neglected by a truant mother; for surely the +prince would not die if he knew how to do otherwise, and the +hen’s egg only dies of being required to do something to +which it is not accustomed.</p> +<p>But the further consideration of this and other like +reflections would too long detain us. Suffice it that we +have established the position that all living creatures which +show any signs of intelligence, must certainly each one have +already gone through the embryonic stages an infinite number of +times, or they could no more have achieved the intricate process +of self-development unconsciously, than they could play the piano +unconsciously without any previous knowledge of the +instrument. It remains, therefore, to show the when and +where of their having done so, and this leads us naturally to the +subject of the following chapter—Personal Identity.</p> +<h2><a name="page78"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +78</span>CHAPTER V.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">PERSONAL IDENTITY.</span></h2> +<p>“<span class="smcap">Strange</span> difficulties have +been raised by some,” says Bishop Butler, “concerning +personal identity, or the sameness of living agents as implied in +the notion of our existing now and hereafter, or indeed in any +two consecutive moments.” But in truth it is not easy +to see the strangeness of the difficulty, if the words either +“personal” or “identity” are used in any +strictness.</p> +<p>Personality is one of those ideas with which we are so +familiar that we have lost sight of the foundations upon which it +rests. We regard our personality as a simple definite +whole; as a plain, palpable, individual thing, which can be seen +going about the streets or sitting indoors at home, which lasts +us our lifetime, and about the confines of which no doubt can +exist in the minds of reasonable people. But in truth this +“we,” which looks so simple and definite, is a +nebulous and indefinable aggregation of many component parts +which war not a little among themselves, our perception of our +existence at all being perhaps due to this very clash of warfare, +as our sense of sound and light is due to the jarring of +vibrations. Moreover, as the component parts of our +identity change from moment to moment, our personality becomes a +thing dependent upon the present, which has no logical existence, +but lives only upon the sufferance of times past and future, +slipping out of our hands into the domain of one or other of +these two claimants the moment we try to apprehend it. And +not only is our personality as fleeting as the present moment, +but the parts which compose it blend some of them so +imperceptibly into, and are so inextricably linked on to, outside +things which clearly form no part of our personality, that when +we try to bring ourselves to book, and determine wherein we +consist, or to draw a line as to where we begin or end, we find +ourselves completely baffled. There is nothing but fusion +and confusion.</p> +<p>Putting theology on one side, and dealing only with the common +daily experience of mankind, our body is certainly part of our +personality. With the destruction of our bodies, our +personality, as far as we can follow it, comes to a full stop; +and with every modification of them it is correspondingly +modified. But what are the limits of our bodies? They +are composed of parts, some of them so unessential as to be +hardly included in personality at all, and to be separable from +ourselves without perceptible effect, as the hair, nails, and +daily waste of tissue. Again, other parts are very +important, as our hands, feet, arms, legs, &c., but still are +no essential parts of our “self” or +“soul,” which continues to exist in spite of their +amputation. Other parts, as the brain, heart, and blood, +are so essential that they cannot be dispensed with, yet it is +impossible to say that personality consists in any one of +them.</p> +<p>Each one of these component members of our personality is +continually dying and being born again, supported in this process +by the food we eat, the water we drink, and the air we breathe; +which three things link us on, and fetter us down, to the organic +and inorganic world about us. For our meat and drink, +though no part of our personality before we eat and drink, +cannot, after we have done so, be separated entirely from us +without the destruction of our personality altogether, so far as +we can follow it; and who shall say at what precise moment our +food has or has not become part of ourselves? A famished +man eats food; after a short time his whole personality is so +palpably affected that we know the food to have entered into him +and taken, as it were, possession of him; but who can say at what +precise moment it did so? Thus we find that we are rooted +into outside things and melt away into them, nor can any man say +he consists absolutely in this or that, nor define himself so +certainly as to include neither more nor less than himself; many +undoubted parts of his personality being more separable from it, +and changing it less when so separated, both to his own senses +and those of other people, than other parts which are strictly +speaking no parts at all.</p> +<p>A man’s clothes, for example, as they lie on a chair at +night are no part of him, but when he wears them they would +appear to be so, as being a kind of food which warms him and +hatches him, and the loss of which may kill him of cold. If +this be denied, and a man’s clothes be considered as no +part of his self, nevertheless they, with his money, and it may +perhaps be added his religious opinions, stamp a man’s +individuality as strongly as any natural feature could stamp +it. Change in style of dress, gain or loss of money, make a +man feel and appear more changed than having his chin shaved or +his nails cut. In fact, as soon as we leave common parlance +on one side, and try for a scientific definition of personality, +we find that there is none possible, any more than there can be a +demonstration of the fact that we exist at all—a +demonstration for which, as for that of a personal God, many have +hunted but none have found. The only solid foundation is, +as in the case of the earth’s crust, pretty near the +surface of things; the deeper we try to go, the damper and darker +and altogether more uncongenial we find it. There is no +knowing into what quagmire of superstition we may not find +ourselves drawn, if we once cut ourselves adrift from those +superficial aspects of things, in which alone our nature permits +us to be comforted.</p> +<p>Common parlance, however, settles the difficulty readily +enough (as indeed it settles most others if they show signs of +awkwardness) by the simple process of ignoring it: we decline, +and very properly, to go into the question of where personality +begins and ends, but assume it to be known by every one, and +throw the onus of not knowing it upon the over-curious, who had +better think as their neighbours do, right or wrong, or there is +no knowing into what villainy they may not presently fall.</p> +<p>Assuming, then, that every one knows what is meant by the word +“person” (and such superstitious bases as this are +the foundations upon which all action, whether of man, beast, or +plant, is constructed and rendered possible; for even the corn in +the fields grows upon a superstitious basis as to its own +existence, and only turns the earth and moisture into wheat +through the conceit of its own ability to do so, without which +faith it were powerless; and the lichen only grows upon the +granite rock by first saying to itself, “I think I can do +it;” so that it would not be able to grow unless it thought +it could grow, and would not think it could grow unless it found +itself able to grow, and thus spends its life arguing in a most +vicious circle, basing its action upon a hypothesis, which +hypothesis is in turn based upon its action)—assuming that +we know what is meant by the word “person,” we say +that we are one and the same from the moment of our birth to the +moment of our death, so that whatever is done by or happens to +any one between birth and death, is said to happen to or be done +by one individual. This in practice is found to be +sufficient for the law courts and the purposes of daily life, +which, being full of hurry and the pressure of business, can only +tolerate compromise, or conventional rendering of intricate +phenomena. When facts of extreme complexity have to be +daily and hourly dealt with by people whose time is money, they +must be simplified, and treated much as a painter treats them, +drawing them in squarely, seizing the more important features, +and neglecting all that does not assert itself as too essential +to be passed over—hence the slang and cant words of every +profession, and indeed all language; for language at best is but +a kind of “patter,” the only way, it is true, in many +cases, of expressing our ideas to one another, but still a very +bad way, and not for one moment comparable to the unspoken speech +which we may sometimes have recourse to. The metaphors and +<i>façons de parler</i> to which even in the plainest +speech we are perpetually recurring (as, for example, in this +last two lines, “plain,” “perpetually,” +and “recurring,” are all words based on metaphor, and +hence more or less liable to mislead) often deceive us, as though +there were nothing more than what we see and say, and as though +words, instead of being, as they are, the creatures of our +convenience, had some claim to be the actual ideas themselves +concerning which we are conversing.</p> +<p>This is so well expressed in a letter I have recently received +from a friend, now in New Zealand, and certainly not intended by +him for publication, that I shall venture to quote the passage, +but should say that I do so without his knowledge or permission +which I should not be able to receive before this book must be +completed.</p> +<p>“Words, words, words,” he writes, “are the +stumbling-blocks in the way of truth. Until you think of +things as they are, and not of the words that misrepresent them, +you cannot think rightly. Words produce the appearance of +hard and fast lines where there are none. Words divide; +thus we call this a man, that an ape, that a monkey, while they +are all only differentiations of the same thing. To think +of a thing they must be got rid of: they are the clothes that +thoughts wear—only the clothes. I say this over and +over again, for there is nothing of more importance. Other +men’s words will stop you at the beginning of an +investigation. A man may play with words all his life, +arranging them and rearranging them like dominoes. If I +could <i>think</i> to you without words you would understand me +better.”</p> +<p>If such remarks as the above hold good at all, they do so with +the words “personal identity.” The least +reflection will show that personal identity in any sort of +strictness is an impossibility. The expression is one of +the many ways in which we are obliged to scamp our thoughts +through pressure of other business which pays us better. +For surely all reasonable people will feel that an infant an hour +before birth, when in the eye of the law he has no existence, and +could not be called a peer for another sixty minutes, though his +father were a peer, and already dead,—surely such an embryo +is more personally identical with the baby into which he develops +within an hour’s time than the born baby is so with itself +(if the expression may be pardoned), one, twenty, or it may be +eighty years after birth. There is more sameness of matter; +there are fewer differences of any kind perceptible by a third +person; there is more sense of continuity on the part of the +person himself; and far more of all that goes to make up our +sense of sameness of personality between an embryo an hour before +birth and the child on being born, than there is between the +child just born and the man of twenty. Yet there is no +hesitation about admitting sameness of personality between these +two last.</p> +<p>On the other hand, if that hazy contradiction in terms, +“personal identity,” be once allowed to retreat +behind the threshold of the womb, it has eluded us once for +all. What is true of one hour before birth is true of two, +and so on till we get back to the impregnate ovum, which may +fairly claim to have been personally identical with the man of +eighty into which it ultimately developed, in spite of the fact +that there is no particle of same matter nor sense of continuity +between them, nor recognised community of instinct, nor indeed of +anything which goes to the making up of that which we call +identity.</p> +<p>There is far more of all these things common to the impregnate +ovum and the ovum immediately before impregnation, or again +between the impregnate ovum, and both the ovum before +impregnation and the spermatozoon which impregnated it. +Nor, if we admit personal identity between the ovum and the +octogenarian, is there any sufficient reason why we should not +admit it between the impregnate ovum and the two factors of which +it is composed, which two factors are but offshoots from two +distinct personalities, of which they are as much part as the +apple is of the apple-tree; so that an impregnate ovum cannot +without a violation of first principles be debarred from claiming +personal identity with both its parents, and hence, by an easy +chain of reasoning, <i>with each of the impregnate ova from which +its parents were developed</i>.</p> +<p>So that each ovum when impregnate should be considered not as +descended from its ancestors, but as being a continuation of the +personality of every ovum in the chain of its ancestry, which +every ovum <i>it actually is</i> quite as truly as the +octogenarian <i>is</i> the same identity with the ovum from which +he has been developed.</p> +<p>This process cannot stop short of the primordial cell, which +again will probably turn out to be but a brief +resting-place. We therefore prove each one of us to <i>be +actually</i> the primordial cell which never died nor dies, but +has differentiated itself into the life of the world, all living +beings whatever, being one with it, and members one of +another.</p> +<p>To look at the matter for a moment in another light, it will +be admitted that if the primordial cell had been killed before +leaving issue, all its possible descendants would have been +killed at one and the same time. It is hard to see how this +single fact does not establish at the point, as it were, of a +logical bayonet, an identity, between any creature and all others +that are descended from it.</p> +<p>In Bishop Butler’s first dissertation on personality, we +find expressed very much the same opinions as would follow from +the above considerations, though they are mentioned by the Bishop +only to be condemned, namely, “that personality is not a +permanent but a transient thing; that it lives and dies, begins +and ends continually; that no man can any more remain one and the +same person two moments together, than two successive moments can +be one and the same moment;” in which case, he continues, +our present self would not be “in reality the same with the +self of yesterday, but another like self or person coming up in +its room and mistaken for it, to which another self will succeed +to-morrow.” This view the Bishop proceeds to reduce +to absurdity by saying, “It must be a fallacy upon +ourselves to charge our present selves with anything we did, or +to imagine our present selves interested in anything which befell +us yesterday; or that our present self will be interested in what +will befall us to-morrow. This, I say, must follow, for if +the self or person of to-day and that of to-morrow are not the +same, but only like persons, the person of to-day is really no +more interested in what will befall the person of to-morrow than +in what will befall any other person. It may be thought, +perhaps, that this is not a just representation of the opinion we +are speaking of, because those who maintain it allow that a +person is the same as far back as his remembrance reaches. +And indeed they do use the words <i>identity</i> and <i>same +person</i>. Nor will language permit these words to be laid +aside, since, if they were, there must be I know not what +ridiculous periphrasis substituted in the room of them. But +they cannot consistently with themselves mean that the person is +really the same. For it is self-evident that the +personality cannot be really the same, if, as they expressly +assert, that in which it consists is not the same. And as +consistently with themselves they cannot, so I think it appears +they do not mean that the person is really the same, but only +that he is so in a fictitious sense; in such a sense only as they +assert—for this they do assert—that any number of +persons whatever may be the same person. The bare unfolding +of this notion, and laying it thus naked and open, seems the best +confutation of it.”</p> +<p>This fencing, for it does not deserve the name of serious +disputation, is rendered possible by the laxness with which the +words “identical” and “identity” are +commonly used. Bishop Butler would not seriously deny that +personality undergoes great changes between infancy and old age, +and hence that it must undergo some change from moment to +moment. So universally is this recognised, that it is +common to hear it said of such and such a man that he is not at +all the person he was, or of such and such another that he is +twice the man he used to be—expressions than which none +nearer the truth can well be found. On the other hand, +those whom Bishop Butler is intending to confute would be the +first to admit that, though there are many changes between +infancy and old age, yet they come about in any one individual +under such circumstances as we are all agreed in considering as +the factors of personal identity rather than as hindrances +thereto—that is to say, there has been no death on the part +of the individual between any two phases of his existence, and +any one phase has had a permanent though perhaps imperceptible +effect upon all succeeding ones. So that no one ever +seriously argued in the manner supposed by Bishop Butler, unless +with modifications and saving clauses, to which it does not suit +his purpose to call attention.</p> +<p>Identical strictly means “one and the same;” and +if it were tied down to its strictest usage, it would indeed +follow very logically, as we have said already, that no such +thing as personal identity is possible, but that the case +actually is as Bishop Butler has supposed his opponents without +qualification to maintain it. In common use, however, the +word “identical” is taken to mean anything so like +another that no vital or essential differences can be perceived +between them; as in the case of two specimens of the same kind of +plant, when we say they are identical in spite of considerable +individual differences. So with two impressions of a print +from the same plate; so with the plate itself, which is somewhat +modified with every impression taken from it. In like +manner “identity” is not held to its strict +meaning—absolute sameness—but is predicated rightly +of a past and present which are now very widely asunder, provided +they have been continuously connected by links so small as not to +give too sudden a sense of change at any one point; as, for +instance, in the case of the Thames at Oxford and Windsor or +again at Greenwich, we say the same river flows by all three +places, by which we mean that much of the water at Greenwich has +come down from Oxford and Windsor in a continuous stream. +How sudden a change at any one point, or how great a difference +between the two extremes is sufficient to bar identity, is one of +the most uncertain things imaginable, and seems to be decided on +different grounds in different cases, sometimes very +intelligibly, and again at others arbitrarily and +capriciously.</p> +<p>Personal identity is barred at one end, in the common opinion, +by birth, and at the other by death. Before birth, a child +cannot complain either by himself or another, in such way as to +set the law in motion; after death he is in like manner powerless +to make himself felt by society, except in so far as he can do so +by acts done before the breath has left his body. At any +point between birth and death he is liable, either by himself or +another, to affect his fellow-creatures; hence, no two other +epochs can be found of equal convenience for social purposes, and +therefore they have been seized by society as settling the whole +question of when personal identity begins and ends—society +being rightly concerned with its own practical convenience, +rather than with the abstract truth concerning its individual +members. No one who is capable of reflection will deny that +the limitation of personality is certainly arbitrary to a degree +as regards birth, nor yet that it is very possibly arbitrary as +regards death; and as for intermediate points, no doubt it would +be more strictly accurate to say, “you are the now phase of +the person I met last night,” or “you are the being +which has been evolved from the being I met last night,” +than “you are the person I met last night.” But +life is too short for the pen-phrases which would crowd upon us +from every quarter, if we did not set our face against all that +is under the surface of things, unless, that is to say, the going +beneath the surface is, for some special chance of profit, +excusable or capable of extenuation.</p> +<h2><a name="page91"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +91</span>CHAPTER VI.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">PERSONAL +IDENTITY</span>—(<i>continued</i>).</h2> +<p><span class="smcap">How</span> arbitrary current notions +concerning identity really are, may perhaps be perceived by +reflecting upon some of the many different phases of +reproduction.</p> +<p>Direct reproduction in which a creation reproduces another, +the <i>facsimile</i>, or nearly so, of itself may perhaps occur +among the lowest forms of animal life; but it is certainly not +the rule among beings of a higher order.</p> +<p>A hen lays an egg, which egg becomes a chicken, which chicken, +in the course of time, becomes a hen.</p> +<p>A moth lays an egg, which egg becomes a caterpillar, which +caterpillar, after going through several stages, becomes a +chrysalis, which chrysalis becomes a moth.</p> +<p>A medusa begets a ciliated larva, the larva begets a polyp, +the polyp begets a strobila, and the strobila begets a medusa +again; the cycle of reproduction being completed in the fourth +generation.</p> +<p>A frog lays an egg, which egg becomes a tadpole; the tadpole, +after more or fewer intermediate stages, becomes a frog.</p> +<p>The mammals lay eggs, which they hatch inside their own +bodies, instead of outside them; but the difference is one of +degree and not of kind. In all these cases how difficult is +it to say where identity begins or ends, or again where death +begins or ends, or where reproduction begins or ends.</p> +<p>How small and unimportant is the difference between the +changes which a caterpillar undergoes before becoming a moth, and +those of a strobila before becoming a medusa. Yet in the +one case we say the caterpillar does not die, but is changed +(though, if the various changes in its existence be produced +metagenetically, as is the case with many insects, it would +appear to make a clean sweep of every organ of its existence, and +start <i>de novo</i>, growing a head where its feet were, and so +on—at least twice between its lives as caterpillar and +butterfly); in this case, however, we say the caterpillar does +not die, but is changed; being, nevertheless, one personality +with the moth, into which it is developed. But in the case +of the strobila we say that it is not changed, but dies, and is +no part of the personality of the medusa.</p> +<p>We say the egg becomes the caterpillar, not by the death of +the egg and birth of the caterpillar, but by the ordinary process +of nutrition and waste—waste and repair—waste and +repair continually. In like manner we say the caterpillar +becomes the chrysalis, and the chrysalis the moth, not through +the death of either one or the other, but by the development of +the same creature, and the ordinary processes of waste and +repair. But the medusa after three or four cycles becomes +the medusa again, not, we say, by these same processes of +nutrition and waste, but by a series of generations, each one +involving an actual birth and an actual death. Why this +difference? Surely only because the changes in the +offspring of the medusa are marked by the leaving a little more +husk behind them, and that husk less shrivelled, than is left on +the occasion of each change between the caterpillar and the +butterfly. A little more residuum, which residuum, it may +be, can move about; and though shrivelling from hour to hour, may +yet leave a little more offspring before it is reduced to powder; +or again, perhaps, because in the one case, though the actors are +changed, they are changed behind the scenes, and come on in parts +and dresses, more nearly resembling those of the original actors, +than in the other.</p> +<p>When the caterpillar emerges from the egg, almost all that was +inside the egg has become caterpillar; the shell is nearly empty, +and cannot move; therefore we do not count it, and call the +caterpillar a continuation of the egg’s existence, and +personally identical with the egg. So with the chrysalis +and the moth; but after the moth has laid her eggs she can still +move her wings about, and she looks nearly as large as she did +before she laid them; besides, she may yet lay a few more, +therefore we do not consider the moth’s life as continued +in the life of her eggs, but rather in their husk, which we still +call the moth, and which we say dies in a day or two, and there +is an end of it. Moreover, if we hold the moth’s life +to be continued in that of her eggs, we shall be forced to admit +her to be personally identical with each single egg, and, hence, +each egg to be identical with every other egg, as far as the +past, and community of memories, are concerned; and it is not +easy at first to break the spell which words have cast around us, +and to feel that one person may become many persons, and that +many different persons may be practically one and the same +person, as far as their past experience is concerned; and again, +that two or more persons may unite and become one person, with +the memories and experiences of both, though this has been +actually the case with every one of us.</p> +<p>Our present way of looking at these matters is perfectly right +and reasonable, so long as we bear in mind that it is a +<i>façon de parler</i>, a sort of hieroglyphic which shall +stand for the course of nature, but nothing more. Repair +(as is now universally admitted by physiologists) is only a phase +of reproduction, or rather reproduction and repair are only +phases of the same power; and again, death and the ordinary daily +waste of tissue, are phases of the same thing. As for +identity it is determined in any true sense of the word, not by +death alone, but by a combination of death and failure of issue, +whether of mind or body.</p> +<p>To repeat. Wherever there is a separate centre of +thought and action, we see that it is connected with its +successive stages of being, by a series of infinitely small +changes from moment to moment, with, perhaps, at times more +startling and rapid changes, but, nevertheless, with no such +sudden, complete, and unrepaired break up of the preceding +condition, as we shall agree in calling death. The +branching out from it at different times of new centres of +thought and action, has commonly as little appreciable effect +upon the parent-stock as the fall of an apple full of ripe seeds +has upon an apple-tree; and though the life of the parent, from +the date of the branching off of such personalities, is more +truly continued in these than in the residuum of its own life, we +should find ourselves involved in a good deal of trouble if we +were commonly to take this view of the matter. The residuum +has generally the upper hand. He has more money, and can +eat up his new life more easily than his new life, him. A +moral residuum will therefore prefer to see the remainder of his +life in his own person, than in that of his descendants, and will +act accordingly. Hence we, in common with most other living +beings, ignore the offspring as forming part of the personality +of the parent, except in so far as that we make the father liable +for its support and for its extravagances (than which no greater +proof need be wished that the law is at heart a philosopher, and +perceives the completeness of the personal identity between +father and son) for twenty-one years from birth. In other +respects we are accustomed, probably rather from considerations +of practical convenience than as the result of pure reason, to +ignore the identity between parent and offspring as completely as +we ignore personality before birth. With these exceptions, +however, the common opinion concerning personal identity is +reasonable enough, and is found to consist neither in +consciousness of such identity, nor yet in the power of +recollecting its various phases (for it is plain that identity +survives the distinction or suspension of both these), but in the +fact that the various stages appear to the majority of people to +have been in some way or other linked together.</p> +<p>For a very little reflection will show that identity, as +commonly predicated of living agents, does not consist in +identity of matter, of which there is no same particle in the +infant, we will say, and the octogenarian into whom he has +developed. Nor, again, does it depend upon sameness of form +or fashion; for personality is felt to survive frequent and +radical modification of structure, as in the case of caterpillars +and other insects. Mr. Darwin, quoting from Professor Owen, +tells us (Plants and Animals under Domestication, vol. ii. p. +362, ed. 1875), that in the case of what is called metagenetic +development, “the new parts are not moulded upon the inner +surfaces of the old ones. The plastic force has changed its +mode of operation. <i>The outer case</i>, <i>and all that +gave form and character to the precedent individual</i>, +<i>perish</i>, <i>and are cast off</i>; <i>they are not +changed</i> into the corresponding parts of the same +individual. These are due to a new and distinct +developmental process.” Assuredly, there is more +birth and death in the world than is dreamt of by the greater +part of us; but it is so masked, and on the whole, so little to +our purpose, that we fail to see it. Yet radical and +sweeping as the changes of organism above described must be, we +do not feel them to be more a bar to personal identity than the +considerable changes which take place in the structure of our own +bodies between youth and old age.</p> +<p>Perhaps the most striking illustration of this is to be found +in the case of some Echinoderms, concerning which Mr. Darwin +tells us, that “the animal in the second stage of +development is formed almost like a bud within the animal of the +first stage, the latter being then cast off like an old vestment, +yet sometimes maintaining for a short period an independent +vitality” (“Plants and Animals under +Domestication,” vol. ii. p. 362, ed. 1875).</p> +<p>Nor yet does personality depend upon any consciousness or +sense of such personality on the part of the creature +itself—it is not likely that the moth remembers having been +a caterpillar, more than we ourselves remember having been +children of a day old. It depends simply upon the fact that +the various phases of existence have been linked together, by +links which we agree in considering sufficient to cause identity, +and that they have flowed the one out of the other in what we see +as a continuous, though it may be at times, a troubled +stream. This is the very essence of personality, but it +involves the probable unity of all animal and vegetable life, as +being, in reality, nothing but one single creature, of which the +component members are but, as it were, blood corpuscles or +individual cells; life being a sort of leaven, which, if once +introduced into the world, will leaven it altogether; or of fire, +which will consume all it can burn; or of air or water, which +will turn most things into themselves. Indeed, no +difficulty would probably be felt about admitting the continued +existence of personal identity between parents and their +offspring through all time (there being no <i>sudden</i> break at +any time between the existence of any maternal parent and that of +its offspring), were it not that after a certain time the changes +in outward appearance between descendants and ancestors become +very great, the two seeming to stand so far apart, that it seems +absurd in any way to say that they are one and the same being; +much in the same way as after a time—though exactly when no +one can say—the Thames becomes the sea. Moreover, the +separation of the identity is practically of far greater +importance to it than its continuance. We want to be +ourselves; we do not want any one else to claim part and parcel +of our identity. This community of identities is not found +to answer in everyday life. When then our love of +independence is backed up by the fact that continuity of life +between parents and offspring is a matter which depends on things +which are a good deal hidden, and that thus birth gives us an +opportunity of pretending that there has been a sudden leap into +a separate life; when also we have regard to the utter ignorance +of embryology, which prevailed till quite recently, it is not +surprising that our ordinary language should be found to have +regard to what is important and obvious, rather than to what is +not quite obvious, and is quite unimportant.</p> +<p>Personality is the creature of time and space, changing, as +time changes, imperceptibly; we are therefore driven to deal with +it as with all continuous and blending things; as with time, for +example, itself, which we divide into days, and seasons, and +times, and years, into divisions that are often arbitrary, but +coincide, on the whole, as nearly as we can make them do so, with +the more marked changes which we can observe. We lay hold, +in fact, of anything we can catch; the most important feature in +any existence as regards ourselves being that which we can best +lay hold of rather than that which is most essential to the +existence itself. We can lay hold of the continued +personality of the egg and the moth into which the egg develops, +but it is less easy to catch sight of the continued personality +between the moth and the eggs which she lays; yet the one +continuation of personality is just as true and free from quibble +as the other. A moth becomes each egg that she lays, and +that she does so, she will in good time show by doing, now that +she has got a fresh start, as near as may be what she did when +first she was an egg, and then a moth, before; and this I take +it, so far as I can gather from looking at life and things +generally, she would not be able to do if she had not travelled +the same road often enough already, to be able to know it in her +sleep and blindfold, that is to say, to remember it without any +conscious act of memory.</p> +<p>So also a grain of wheat is linked with an ear, containing, we +will say, a dozen grains, by a series of changes so subtle that +we cannot say at what moment the original grain became the blade, +nor when each ear of the head became possessed of an individual +centre of action. To say that each grain of the head is +personally identical with the original grain would perhaps be an +abuse of terms; but it can be no abuse to say that each grain is +a continuation of the personality of the original grain, and if +so, of every grain in the chain of its own ancestry; and that, as +being such a continuation, it must be stored with the memories +and experiences of its past existences, to be recollected under +the circumstances most favourable to recollection, <i>i.e.</i>, +when under similar conditions to those when the impression was +last made and last remembered. Truly, then, in each case +the new egg and the new grain <i>is</i> the egg, and the grain +from which its parent sprang, as completely as the full-grown ox +is the calf from which it has grown.</p> +<p>Again, in the case of some weeping trees, whose boughs spring +up into fresh trees when they have reached the ground, who shall +say at what time they cease to be members of the parent +tree? In the case of cuttings from plants it is easy to +elude the difficulty by making a parade of the sharp and sudden +act of separation from the parent stock, but this is only a piece +of mental sleight of hand; the cutting remains as much part of +its parent plant as though it had never been severed from it; it +goes on profiting by the experience which it had before it was +cut off, as much as though it had never been cut off at +all. This will be more readily seen in the case of worms +which have been cut in half. Let a worm be cut in half, and +the two halves will become fresh worms; which of them is the +original worm? Surely both. Perhaps no simpler case +than this could readily be found of the manner in which +personality eludes us, the moment we try to investigate its real +nature. There are few ideas which on first consideration +appear so simple, and none which becomes more utterly incapable +of limitation or definition as soon as it is examined +closely.</p> +<p>Finally, Mr. Darwin (“Plants and Animals under +Domestication,” vol. ii. p. 38, ed. 1875), +writes—</p> +<p>“Even with plants multiplied by bulbs, layers, &c., +which may <i>in one sense</i> be said to form part of the same +individual,” &c., &c.; and again, p. 58, “The +same rule holds good with plants when propagated by bulbs, +offsets, &c., which <i>in one sense</i> still form parts of +the same individual,” &c. In each of these +passages it is plain that the difficulty of separating the +personality of the offspring from that of the parent plant is +present to his mind. Yet, p. 351 of the same volume as +above, he tells us that asexual generation “is effected in +many ways—by the formation of buds of various kinds, and by +fissiparous generation, that is, by spontaneous or artificial +division.” The multiplication of plants by bulbs and +layers clearly comes under this head, nor will any essential +difference be felt between one kind of asexual generation and +another; if, then, the offspring formed by bulbs and layers is in +one sense part of the original plant, so also, it would appear, +is all offspring developed by asexual generation in its manifold +phrases.</p> +<p>If we now turn to p. 357, we find the conclusion arrived at, +as it would appear, on the most satisfactory evidence, that +“sexual and asexual reproduction are not seen to differ +essentially; and . . . that asexual reproduction, the power of +regrowth, and development are all parts of one and the same great +law.” Does it not then follow, quite reasonably and +necessarily, that all offspring, however generated, is <i>in one +sense</i> part of the individuality of its parent or +parents. The question, therefore, turns upon “in what +sense” this may be said to be the case? To which I +would venture to reply, “In the same sense as the parent +plant (which is but the representative of the outside matter +which it has assimilated during growth, and of its own powers of +development) is the same individual that it was when it was +itself an offset, or a cow the same individual that it was when +it was a calf—but no otherwise.”</p> +<p>Not much difficulty will be felt about supposing the offset of +a plant, to be imbued with the memory of the past history of the +plant of which it is an offset. It is part of the plant +itself; and will know whatever the plant knows. Why, then, +should there be more difficulty in supposing the offspring of the +highest mammals, to remember in a profound but unselfconscious +way, the anterior history of the creatures of which they too have +been part and parcel?</p> +<p>Personal identity, then, is much like species itself. It +is now, thanks to Mr. Darwin, generally held that species blend +or have blended into one another; so that any possibility of +arrangement and apparent subdivision into definite groups, is due +to the suppression by death both of individuals and whole genera, +which, had they been now existing, would have linked all living +beings by a series of gradations so subtle that little +classification could have been attempted. How it is that +the one great personality of life as a whole, should have split +itself up into so many centres of thought and action, each one of +which is wholly, or at any rate nearly, unconscious of its +connection with the other members, instead of having grown up +into a huge polyp, or as it were coral reef or compound animal +over the whole world, which should be conscious but of its own +one single existence; how it is that the daily waste of this +creature should be carried on by the conscious death of its +individual members, instead of by the unconscious waste of tissue +which goes on in the bodies of each individual (if indeed the +tissue which we waste daily in our own bodies is so unconscious +of its birth and death as we suppose); how, again, that the daily +repair of this huge creature life should have become +decentralised, and be carried on by conscious reproduction on the +part of its component items, instead of by the unconscious +nutrition of the whole from a single centre, as the nutrition of +our own bodies would appear (though perhaps falsely) to be +carried on; these are matters upon which I dare not speculate +here, but on which some reflections may follow in subsequent +chapters.</p> +<h2><a name="page104"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +104</span>CHAPTER VII.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">OUR SUBORDINATE PERSONALITIES.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">We</span> have seen that we can apprehend +neither the beginning nor the end of our personality, which comes +up out of infinity as an island out of the sea, so gently, that +none can say when it is first visible on our mental horizon, and +fades away in the case of those who leave offspring, so +imperceptibly that none can say when it is out of sight. +But, like the island, whether we can see it or no, it is always +there. Not only are we infinite as regards time, but we are +so also as regards extension, being so linked on to the external +world that we cannot say where we either begin or end. If +those who so frequently declare that man is a finite creature +would point out his boundaries, it might lead to a better +understanding.</p> +<p>Nevertheless, we are in the habit of considering that our +personality, or soul, no matter where it begins or ends, and no +matter what it comprises, is nevertheless a single thing, +uncompounded of other souls. Yet there is nothing more +certain than that this is not at all the case, but that every +individual person is a compound creature, being made up of an +infinite number of distinct centres of sensation and will, each +one of which is personal, and has a soul and individual +existence, a reproductive system, intelligence, and memory of its +own, with probably its hopes and fears, its times of scarcity and +repletion, and a strong conviction that it is itself the centre +of the universe.</p> +<p>True, no one is aware of more than one individuality in his +own person at one time. We are, indeed, often greatly +influenced by other people, so much so, that we act on many +occasions in accordance with their will rather than our own, +making our actions answer to their sensations, and register the +conclusions of their cerebral action and not our own; for the +time being, we become so completely part of them, that we are +ready to do things most distasteful and dangerous to us, if they +think it for their advantage that we should do so. Thus we +sometimes see people become mere processes of their wives or +nearest relations. Yet there is a something which blinds +us, so that we cannot see how completely we are possessed by the +souls which influence us upon these occasions. We still +think we are ourselves, and ourselves only, and are as certain as +we can be of any fact, that we are single sentient beings, +uncompounded of other sentient beings, and that our action is +determined by the sole operation of a single will.</p> +<p>But in reality, over and above this possession of our souls by +others of our own species, the will of the lower animals often +enters into our bodies and possesses them, making us do as they +will, and not as we will; as, for example, when people try to +drive pigs, or are run away with by a restive horse, or are +attacked by a savage animal which masters them. It is +absurd to say that a person is a single “ego” when he +is in the clutches of a lion. Even when we are alone, and +uninfluenced by other people except in so far as we remember +their wishes, we yet generally conform to the usages which the +current feeling of our peers has taught us to respect; their will +having so mastered our original nature, that, do what we may, we +can never again separate ourselves and dwell in the isolation of +our own single personality. And even though we succeeded in +this, and made a clean sweep of every mental influence which had +ever been brought to bear upon us, and though at the same time we +were alone in some desert where there was neither beast nor bird +to attract our attention or in any way influence our action, yet +we could not escape the parasites which abound within us; whose +action, as every medical man well knows, is often such as to +drive men to the commission of grave crimes, or to throw them +into convulsions, make lunatics of them, kill them—when but +for the existence and course of conduct pursued by these +parasites they would have done no wrong to any man.</p> +<p>These parasites—are they part of us or no? Some +are plainly not so in any strict sense of the word, yet their +action may, in cases which it is unnecessary to detail, affect us +so powerfully that we are irresistibly impelled to act in such or +such a manner; and yet we are as wholly unconscious of any +impulse outside of our own “ego” as though they were +part of ourselves; others again are essential to our very +existence, as the corpuscles of the blood, which the best +authorities concur in supposing to be composed of an infinite +number of living souls, on whose welfare the healthy condition of +our blood, and hence of our whole bodies, depends. We +breathe that they may breathe, not that we may do so; we only +care about oxygen in so far as the infinitely small beings which +course up and down in our veins care about it: the whole +arrangement and mechanism of our lungs may be our doing, but is +for their convenience, and they only serve us because it suits +their purpose to do so, as long as we serve them. Who shall +draw the line between the parasites which are part of us, and the +parasites which are not part of us? Or again, between the +influence of those parasites which are within us, but are yet not +<i>us</i>, and the external influence of other sentient beings +and our fellow-men? There is no line possible. +Everything melts away into everything else; there are no hard +edges; it is only from a little distance that we see the effect +as of individual features and existences. When we go close +up, there is nothing but a blur and confused mass of apparently +meaningless touches, as in a picture by Turner.</p> +<p>The following passage from Mr. Darwin’s provisional +theory of Pangenesis, will sufficiently show that the above is no +strange and paradoxical view put forward wantonly, but that it +follows as a matter of course from the conclusions arrived at by +those who are acknowledged leaders in the scientific world. +Mr. Darwin writes thus:—</p> +<p>“<i>The functional independence of the elements or units +of the body</i>.—Physiologists agree that the whole +organism consists of a multitude of elemental parts, which are to +a great extent independent of one another. Each organ, says +Claude Bernard, has its proper life, its autonomy; it can develop +and reproduce itself independently of the adjoining +tissues. A great German authority, Virchow, asserts still +more emphatically that each system consists of ‘an enormous +mass of minute centres of action. . . . Every element has +its own special action, and even though it derive its stimulus to +activity from other parts, yet alone effects the actual +performance of duties. . . . Every single epithelial and +muscular fibre-cell leads a sort of parasitical existence in +relation to the rest of the body. . . . Every single bone +corpuscle really possesses conditions of nutrition peculiar to +itself.’ Each element, as Sir J. Paget remarks, lives +its appointed time, and then dies, and is replaced after being +cast off and absorbed. I presume that no physiologist +doubts that, for instance, each bone corpuscle of the finger +differs from the corresponding corpuscle of the corresponding +joint of the toe,” &c., &c. (“Plants +and Animals under Domestication,” vol. ii. pp. 364, 365, +ed. 1875).</p> +<p>In a work on heredity by M. Ribot, I find him saying, +“Some recent authors attribute a memory” (and if so, +surely every attribute of complete individuality) “to every +organic element of the body;” among them Dr. Maudsley, who +is quoted by M. Ribot, as saying, “The permanent effects of +a particular virus, such as that of the variola, in the +constitution, shows that the organic element remembers for the +remainder of its life certain modifications it has +received. The manner in which a cicatrix in a child’s +finger grows with the growth of the body, proves, as has been +shown by Paget, that the organic element of the part does not +forget the impression it has received. What has been said +about the different nervous centres of the body demonstrates the +existence of a memory in the nerve cells diffused through the +heart and intestines; in those of the spinal cord, in the cells +of the motor ganglia, and in the cells of the cortical substance +of the cerebal hemispheres.”</p> +<p>Now, if words have any meaning at all, it must follow from the +passages quoted above, that each cell in the human body is a +person with an intelligent soul, of a low class, perhaps, but +still differing from our own more complex soul in degree, and not +in kind; and, like ourselves, being born, living, and +dying. So that each single creature, whether man or beast, +proves to be as a ray of white light, which, though single, is +compounded of the red, blue, and yellow rays. It would +appear, then, as though “we,” “our +souls,” or “selves,” or +“personalities,” or by whatever name we may prefer to +be called, are but the <i>consensus</i> and full flowing stream +of countless sensations and impulses on the part of our tributary +souls or “selves,” who probably know no more that we +exist, and that they exist as part of us, than a microscopic +water-flea knows the results of spectrum analysis, or than an +agricultural labourer knows the working of the British +constitution: and of whom we know no more, until some misconduct +on our part, or some confusion of ideas on theirs, has driven +them into insurrection, than we do of the habits and feelings of +some class widely separated from our own.</p> +<p>These component souls are of many and very different natures, +living in territories which are to them vast continents, and +rivers, and seas, but which are yet only the bodies of our other +component souls; coral reefs and sponge-beds within us; the +animal itself being a kind of mean proportional between its house +and its soul, and none being able to say where house ends and +animal begins, more than they can say where animal ends and soul +begins. For our bones within us are but inside walls and +buttresses, that is to say, houses constructed of lime and stone, +as it were, by coral insects; and our houses without us are but +outside bones, a kind of exterior skeleton or shell, so that we +perish of cold if permanently and suddenly deprived of the +coverings which warm us and cherish us, as the wing of a hen +cherishes her chickens. If we consider the shells of many +living creatures, we shall find it hard to say whether they are +rather houses, or part of the animal itself, being, as they are, +inseparable from the animal, without the destruction of its +personality.</p> +<p>Is it possible, then, to avoid imagining that if we have +within us so many tributary souls, so utterly different from the +soul which they unite to form, that they neither can perceive us, +nor we them, though it is in us that they live and move and have +their being, and though we are what we are, solely as the result +of their co-operation—is it possible to avoid imagining +that we may be ourselves atoms, undesignedly combining to form +some vaster being, though we are utterly incapable of perceiving +that any such being exists, or of realising the scheme or scope +of our own combination? And this, too, not a spiritual +being, which, without matter, or what we think matter of some +sort, is as complete nonsense to us as though men bade us love +and lean upon an intelligent vacuum, but a being with what is +virtually flesh and blood and bones; with organs, senses, +dimensions, in some way analogous to our own, into some other +part of which being, at the time of our great change we must +infallibly re-enter, starting clean anew, with bygones bygones, +and no more ache for ever from either age or antecedents. +Truly, sufficient for the life is the evil thereof. Any +speculations of ours concerning the nature of such a being, must +be as futile and little valuable as those of a blood corpuscle +might be expected to be concerning the nature of man; but if I +were myself a blood corpuscle, I should be amused at making the +discovery that I was not only enjoying life in my own sphere, but +was <i>bonâ fide</i> part of an animal which would not die +with myself, and in which I might thus think of myself as +continuing to live to all eternity, or to what, as far as my +power of thought would carry me, must seem practically +eternal. But, after all, the amusement would be of a rather +dreary nature.</p> +<p>On the other hand, if I were the being of whom such an +introspective blood corpuscle was a component item, I should +conceive he served me better by attending to my blood and making +himself a successful corpuscle, than by speculating about my +nature. He would serve me best by serving himself best, +without being over curious. I should expect that my blood +might suffer if his brain were to become too active. If, +therefore, I could discover the vein in which he was, I should +let him out to begin life anew in some other and, +<i>quâ</i> me, more profitable capacity.</p> +<p>With the units of our bodies it is as with the stars of +heaven: there is neither speech nor language, but their voices +are heard among them. Our will is the <i>fiat</i> of their +collective wisdom, as sanctioned in their parliament, the brain; +it is they who make us do whatever we do—it is they who +should be rewarded if they have done well, or hanged if they have +committed murder. When the balance of power is well +preserved among them, when they respect each other’s rights +and work harmoniously together, then we thrive and are well; if +we are ill, it is because they are quarrelling with themselves, +or are gone on strike for this or that addition to their +environment, and our doctor must pacify or chastise them as best +he may. They are we and we are they; and when we die it is +but a redistribution of the balance of power among them or a +change of dynasty, the result, it may be, of heroic struggle, +with more epics and love romances than we could read from now to +the Millennium, if they were so written down that we could +comprehend them.</p> +<p>It is plain, then, that the more we examine the question of +personality the more it baffles us, the only safeguard against +utter confusion and idleness of thought being to fall back upon +the superficial and common sense view, and refuse to tolerate +discussions which seem to hold out little prospect of commercial +value, and which would compel us, if logically followed, to be at +the inconvenience of altering our opinions upon matters which we +have come to consider as settled.</p> +<p>And we observe that this is what is practically done by some +of our ablest philosophers, who seem unwilling, if one may say so +without presumption, to accept the conclusions to which their own +experiments and observations would seem to point.</p> +<p>Dr. Carpenter, for example, quotes the well-known experiments +upon headless frogs. If we cut off a frog’s head and +pinch any part of its skin, the animal at once begins to move +away with the same regularity as though the brain had not been +removed. Flourens took guinea-pigs, deprived them of the +cerebral lobes, and then irritated their skin; the animals +immediately walked, leaped, and trotted about, but when the +irritation was discontinued they ceased to move. Headless +birds, under excitation, can still perform with their wings the +rhythmic movements of flying. But here are some facts more +curious still, and more difficult of explanation. If we +take a frog or a strong and healthy triton, and subject it to +various experiments; if we touch, pinch, or burn it with acetic +acid, and if then, after decapitating the animal, we subject it +to the same experiments, it will be seen that the reactions are +exactly the same; it will strive to be free of the pain, and to +shake off the acetic acid that is burning it; it will bring its +foot up to the part of its body that is irritated, and this +movement of the member will follow the irritation wherever it may +be produced.</p> +<p>The above is mainly taken from M. Ribot’s work on +heredity rather than Dr. Carpenter’s, because M. Ribot +tells us that the head of the frog was actually cut off, a fact +which does not appear so plainly in Dr. Carpenter’s +allusion to the same experiments. But Dr. Carpenter tells +us that <i>after the brain of a frog has been +removed</i>—which would seem to be much the same thing as +though its head were cut off—“if acetic acid be +applied over the upper and under part of the thigh, the foot of +the same side will wipe it away; <i>but if that foot be cut +off</i>, <i>after some ineffectual efforts and a short period of +inaction</i>,” during which it is hard not to surmise that +the headless body is considering what it had better do under the +circumstances, “<i>the same movement will be made by the +foot of the opposite side</i>,” which, to ordinary people, +would convey the impression that the headless body was capable of +feeling the impressions it had received, and of reasoning upon +them by a psychological act; and this of course involves the +possession of a soul of some sort.</p> +<p>Here is a frog whose right thigh you burn with acetic +acid. Very naturally it tries to get at the place with its +right foot to remove the acid. You then cut off the +frog’s head, and put more acetic acid on the some place: +the headless frog, or rather the body of the late frog, does just +what the frog did before its head was cut off—it tries to +get at the place with its right foot. You now cut off its +right foot: the headless body deliberates, and after a while +tries to do with its left foot what it can no longer do with its +right. Plain matter-of-fact people will draw their own +inference. They will not be seduced from the superficial +view of the matter. They will say that the headless body +can still, to some extent, feel, think, and act, and if so, that +it must have a living soul.</p> +<p>Dr. Carpenter writes as follows:—“Now the +performance of these, as well as of many other movements, that +show a most remarkable adaptation to a purpose, might be supposed +to indicate that sensations are called up by the +<i>impressions</i>, and that the animal can not only <i>feel</i>, +but can voluntarily direct its movements so as to get rid of the +irritation which annoys it. But such an inference would be +inconsistent with other facts. In the first place, the +motions performed under such circumstances are never spontaneous, +but are always excited by a stimulus of some kind.”</p> +<p>Here we pause to ask ourselves whether any action of any +creature under any circumstances is ever excited without +“stimulus of some kind,” and unless we can answer +this question in the affirmative, it is not easy to see how Dr. +Carpenter’s objection is valid.</p> +<p>“Thus,” he continues, “a decapitated +frog” (here then we have it that the frog’s head was +actually cut off) “after the first violent convulsive +moments occasioned by the operation have passed away, remains at +rest until it is touched; and then the leg, or its whole body may +be thrown into sudden action, which suddenly subsides +again.” (How does this quiescence when it no longer +feels anything show that the “leg or whole body” had +not perceived something which made it feel when it was not +quiescent?)—“Again we find that such movements may be +performed not only when the brain has been removed, the spinal +cord remaining entire, but also when the spinal cord has been +itself cut across, so as to be divided into two or more portions, +each of them completely isolated from each other, and from other +parts of the nervous centres. Thus, if the head of a frog +be cut off, and its spinal cord be divided in the middle of the +back, so that its fore legs remain connected with the upper part, +and its hind legs with the lower, each pair of members may be +excited to movements by stimulants applied to itself; but the two +pairs will not exhibit any consentaneous motions, as they will do +when the spinal cord is undivided.”</p> +<p>This may be put perhaps more plainly thus. If you take a +frog and cut it into three pieces—say, the head for one +piece, the fore legs and shoulder for another, and the hind legs +for a third—and then irritate any one of these pieces, you +will find it move much as it would have moved under like +irritation if the animal had remained undivided, but you will no +longer find any concert between the movements of the three +pieces; that is to say, if you irritate the head, the other two +pieces will remain quiet, and if you irritate the hind legs, you +will excite no action in the fore legs or head.</p> +<p>Dr. Carpenter continues: “Or if the spinal cord be cut +across without the removal of the brain, the lower limbs may be +<i>excited</i> to movement by an appropriate stimulant, though +the animal has clearly no power over them, whilst the upper part +remains under its control as completely as before.”</p> +<p>Why are the head and shoulders “the animal” more +than the hind legs under these circumstances? Neither half +can exist long without the other; the two parts, therefore, being +equally important to each other, we have surely as good a right +to claim the title of “the animal” for the hind legs, +and to maintain that they have no power over the head and +shoulders, as any one else has to claim the animalship for these +last. What we say is, that the animal has ceased to exist +as a frog on being cut in half, and that the two halves are no +longer, either of them, the frog, but are simply pieces of still +living organism, each of which has a soul of its own, being +capable of sensation, and of intelligent psychological action as +the consequence of sensations, though the one part has probably a +much higher and more intelligent soul than the other, and neither +part has a soul for a moment comparable in power and durability +to that of the original frog.</p> +<p>“Now it is scarcely conceivable,” continues Dr +Carpenter, “that in this last case sensations should be +felt and volition exercised through the instrumentality of that +portion of the spinal cord which remains connected with the +nerves of the posterior extremities, but which is cut off from +the brain. For if it were so, there must be two distinct +centres of sensation and will in the same animal, the attributes +of the brain not being affected; and by dividing the spinal cord +into two or more segments we might thus create in the body of one +animal two or more such independent centres in addition to that +which holds its proper place in the head.”</p> +<p>In the face of the facts before us, it does not seen +far-fetched to suppose that there <i>are</i> two, or indeed an +infinite number of centres of sensation and will in an animal, +the attributes of whose brain are not affected but that these +centres, while the brain is intact, habitually act in connection +with and in subordination to that central authority; as in the +ordinary state of the fish trade, fish is caught, we will say, at +Yarmouth, sent up to London, and then sent down to Yarmouth again +to be eaten, instead of being eaten at Yarmouth when +caught. But from the phenomena exhibited by three pieces of +an animal, it is impossible to argue that the causes of the +phenomena were present in the quondam animal itself; the memory +of an infinite series of generations having so habituated the +local centres of sensation and will, to act in concert with the +central government, that as long as they can get at that +government, they are absolutely incapable of acting +independently. When thrown on their own resources, they are +so demoralised by ages of dependence on the brain, that they die +after a few efforts at self-assertion, from sheer unfamiliarity +with the position, and inability to recognise themselves when +disjointed rudely from their habitual associations.</p> +<p>In conclusion, Dr. Carpenter says, “To say that two or +more distinct centres of sensation and will are present in such a +case, would really be the same as saying that we have the power +of constituting two or more distinct egos in one body, <i>which +is manifestly absurd</i>.” One sees the absurdity of +maintaining that we can make one frog into two frogs by cutting a +frog into two pieces, but there is no absurdity in believing that +the two pieces have minor centres of sensation and intelligence +within themselves, which, when the animal is entire, act in much +concert with the brain, and with each other, that it is not easy +to detect their originally autonomous character, but which, when +deprived of their power of acting in concert, are thrown back +upon earlier habit, now too long forgotten to be capable of +permanent resumption.</p> +<p>Illustrations are apt to mislead, nevertheless they may +perhaps be sometimes tolerated. Suppose, for example, that +London to the extent, say, of a circle with a six-mile radius +from Charing Cross, were utterly annihilated in the space of five +minutes during the Session of Parliament. Suppose, also, +that two entirely impassable barriers, say of five miles in +width, half a mile high, and red hot, were thrown across England; +one from Gloucester to Harwich, and another from Liverpool to +Hull, and at the same time the sea were to become a mass of +molten lava, so no water communication should be possible; the +political, mercantile, social, and intellectual life of the +country would be convulsed in a manner which it is hardly +possible to realise. Hundreds of thousands would die +through the dislocation of existing arrangements. +Nevertheless, each of the three parts into which England was +divided would show signs of provincial life for which it would +find certain imperfect organisms ready to hand. Bristol, +Birmingham, Liverpool, and Manchester, accustomed though they are +to act in subordination to London, would probably take up the +reins of government in their several sections; they would make +their town councils into local governments, appoint judges from +the ablest of their magistrates, organise relief committees, and +endeavour as well as they could to remove any acetic acid that +might be now poured on Wiltshire, Warwickshire, or +Northumberland, but no concert between the three divisions of the +country would be any longer possible. Should we be +justified, under these circumstances, in calling any of the three +parts of England, England? Or, again, when we observed the +provincial action to be as nearly like that of the original +undivided nation as circumstances would allow, should we be +justified in saying that the action, such as it was, was not +political? And, lastly, should we for a moment think that +an admission that the provincial action was of a <i>bonâ +fide</i> political character would involve the supposition that +England, undivided, had more than one “ego” as +England, no matter how many subordinate “egos” might +go to the making of it, each one of which proved, on emergency, +to be capable of a feeble autonomy?</p> +<p>M. Ribot would seem to take a juster view of the phenomenon +when he says (p. 222 of the English translation)—</p> +<p>“We can hardly say that here the movements are +co-ordinated like those of a machine; the acts of the animal are +adapted to a special end; we find in them the characters of +intelligence and will, a knowledge and choice of means, since +they are as variable as the cause which provokes them.</p> +<p>“If these, then, and similar acts, were such that both +the impressions which produced them and the acts themselves were +perceived by the animal, would they not be called +psychological? Is there not in them all that constitutes an +intelligent act—adaptation of means to ends; not a general +and vague adaptation, but a determinate adaptation to a +determinate end? In the reflex action we find all that +constitutes in some sort the very groundwork of an intelligent +act—that is to say, the same series of stages, in the same +order, with the same relations between them. We have thus, +in the reflex act, all that constitutes the psychological act +except consciousness. The reflex act, which is +physiological, differs in nothing from the psychological act, +save only in this—that it is without +consciousness.”</p> +<p>The only remark which suggests itself upon this, is that we +have no right to say that the part of the animal which moves does +not also perceive its own act of motion, as much as it has +perceived the impression which has caused it to move. It is +plain “the animal” cannot do so, for the animal +cannot be said to be any longer in existence. Half a frog +is not a frog; nevertheless, if the hind legs are capable, as M. +Ribot appears to admit, of “perceiving the +impression” which produces their action, and if in that +action there is (and there would certainly appear to be so) +“all that constitutes an intelligent act, . . . a +determinate adaptation to a determinate end,” one fails to +see on what ground they should be supposed to be incapable of +perceiving their own action, in which case the action of the hind +legs becomes distinctly psychological.</p> +<p>Secondly, M. Ribot appears to forget that it is the tendency +of all psychological action to become unconscious on being +frequently repeated, and that no line can be drawn between +psychological acts and those reflex acts which he calls +physiological. All we can say is, that there are acts which +we do without knowing that we do them; but the analogy of many +habits which we have been able to watch in their passage from +laborious consciousness to perfect unconsciousness, would suggest +that all action is really psychological, only that the +soul’s action becomes invisible to ourselves after it has +been repeated sufficiently often—that there is, in fact, a +law as simple as in the case of optics or gravitation, whereby +conscious perception of any action shall vary inversely as the +square, say, of its being repeated.</p> +<p>It is easy to understand the advantage to the individual of +this power of doing things rightly without thinking about them; +for were there no such power, the attention would be incapable of +following the multitude of matters which would be continually +arresting it; those animals which had developed a power of +working automatically, and without a recurrence to first +principles when they had once mastered any particular process, +would, in the common course of events, stand a better chance of +continuing their species, and thus of transmitting their new +power to their descendants.</p> +<p>M. Ribot declines to pursue the subject further, and has only +cursorily alluded to it. He writes, however, that, on the +“obscure problem” of the difference between reflex +and psychological actions, some say, “when there can be no +consciousness, because the brain is wanting, there is, in spite +of appearances, only mechanism,” whilst others maintain, +that “when there is selection, reflection, psychical +action, there must also be consciousness in spite of +appearances.” A little later (p. 223), he says, +“It is quite possible that if a headless animal could live +a sufficient length of time” (that is to say, if <i>the +hind legs of an animal</i> could live a sufficient length of time +without the brain), “there would be found in it” +(<i>them</i>) “a consciousness like that of the lower +species, which would consist merely in the faculty of +apprehending the external world.” (Why merely? +It is more than apprehending the outside world to be able to try +to do a thing with one’s left foot, when one finds that one +cannot do it with one’s right.) “It would not +be correct to say that the amphioxus, the only one among fishes +and vertebrata which has a spinal cord without a brain, has no +consciousness because it has no brain; and if it be admitted that +the little ganglia of the invertebrata can form a consciousness, +the same may hold good for the spinal cord.”</p> +<p>We conclude, therefore, that it is within the common scope and +meaning of the words “personal identity,” not only +that one creature can become many as the moth becomes manifold in +her eggs, but that each individual may be manifold in the sense +of being compounded of a vast number of subordinate +individualities which have their separate lives within him, with +their hopes, and fears, and intrigues, being born and dying +within us, many generations, of them during our single +lifetime.</p> +<p>“An organic being,” writes Mr. Darwin, “is a +microcosm, a little universe, formed of a host of +self-propagating organisms, inconceivably minute, and numerous as +the stars in heaven.”</p> +<p>As these myriads of smaller organisms are parts and processes +of us, so are we but parts and processes of life at large.</p> +<h2><a name="page125"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +125</span>CHAPTER VIII.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING +CHAPTERS—THE ASSIMILATION OF OUTSIDE MATTER.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">Let</span> us now return to the position +which we left at the end of the fourth chapter. We had then +concluded that the self-development of each new life in +succeeding generations—the various stages through which it +passes (as it would appear, at first sight, without rhyme or +reason)—the manner in which it prepares structures of the +most surpassing intricacy and delicacy, for which it has no use +at the time when it prepares them—and the many elaborate +instincts which it exhibits immediately on, and indeed before, +birth—all point in the direction of habit and memory, as +the only causes which could produce them.</p> +<p>Why should the embryo of any animal go through so many +stages—embryological allusions to forefathers of a widely +different type? And why, again, should the germs of the +same kind of creature always go through the same stages? If +the germ of any animal now living is, in its simplest state, but +part of the personal identity of one of the original germs of all +life whatsoever, and hence, if any now living organism must be +considered without quibble as being itself millions of years old, +and as imbued with an intense though unconscious memory of all +that it has done sufficiently often to have made a permanent +impression; if this be so, we can answer the above questions +perfectly well. The creature goes through so many +intermediate stages between its earliest state as life at all, +and its latest development, for the simplest of all reasons, +namely, because this is the road by which it has always hitherto +travelled to its present differentiation; this is the road it +knows, and into every turn and up or down of which, it has been +guided by the force of circumstances and the balance of +considerations. These, acting in such a manner for such and +such a time, caused it to travel in such and such fashion, which +fashion having been once sufficiently established, becomes a +matter of trick or routine to which the creature is still a +slave, and in which it confirms itself by repetition in each +succeeding generation.</p> +<p>Thus I suppose, as almost every one else, so far as I can +gather, supposes, that we are descended from ancestors of widely +different characters to our own. If we could see some of +our forefathers a million years back, we should find them unlike +anything we could call man; if we were to go back fifty million +years, we should find them, it may be, fishes pure and simple, +breathing through gills, and unable to exist for many minutes in +air.</p> +<p>It is admitted on all hands that there is more or less analogy +between the embryological development of the individual, and the +various phases or conditions of life through which his +forefathers have passed. I suppose, then, that the fish of +fifty million years back and the man of to-day are one single +living being, in the same sense, or very nearly so, as the +octogenarian is one single living being with the infant from +which he has grown; and that the fish has lived himself into +manhood, not as we live out our little life, living, and living, +and living till we die, but living by pulsations, so to speak; +living so far, and after a certain time going into a new body, +and throwing off the old; making his body much as we make +anything that we want, and have often made already, that is to +say, as nearly as may be in the same way as he made it last time; +also that he is as unable as we ourselves are, to make what he +wants without going through the usual processes with which he is +familiar, even though there may be other better ways of doing the +same thing, which might not be far to seek, if the creature +thought them better, and had not got so accustomed to such and +such a method, that he would only be baffled and put out by any +attempt to teach him otherwise.</p> +<p>And this oneness of personality between ourselves and our +supposed fishlike ancestors of many millions of years ago, must +hold also between each individual one of us and the single pair +of fishes from which we are each (on the present momentary +hypothesis) descended; and it must also hold between such pair of +fishes and all their descendants besides man, it may be some of +them birds, and others fishes; all these descendants, whether +human or otherwise, being but the way in which the creature +(which was a pair of fishes when we first took it in hand though +it was a hundred thousand other things as well, and had been all +manner of other things before any part of it became fishlike) +continues to exist—its manner, in fact, of growing. +As the manner in which the human body grows is by the continued +birth and death, in our single lifetime, of many generations of +cells which we know nothing about, but say that we have had only +one hand or foot all our lives, when we have really had many, one +after another; so this huge compound creature, <span +class="GutSmall">LIFE</span>, probably thinks itself but one +single animal whose component cells, as it may imagine, grow, and +it may be waste and repair, but do not die.</p> +<p>It may be that the cells of which we are built up, and which +we have already seen must be considered as separate persons, each +one of them with a life and memory of its own—it may be +that these cells reckon time in a manner inconceivable by us, so +that no word can convey any idea of it whatever. What may +to them appear a long and painful process may to us be so +instantaneous as to escape us altogether, we wanting some +microscope to show us the details of time. If, in like +manner, we were to allow our imagination to conceive the +existence of a being as much in need of a microscope for our time +and affairs as we for those of our own component cells, the years +would be to such a being but as the winkings or the twinklings of +an eye. Would he think, then, that all the ants and flies +of one wink were different from those of the next? or would he +not rather believe that they were always the same flies, and, +again, always the same men and women, if he could see them at +all, and if the whole human race did not appear to him as a sort +of spreading and lichen-like growth over the earth, not +differentiated at all into individuals? With the help of a +microscope and the intelligent exercise of his reason, he would +in time conceive the truth. He would put Covent Garden +Market on the field of his microscope, and would perhaps write a +great deal of nonsense about the unerring “instinct” +which taught each costermonger to recognise his own basket or his +own donkey-cart; and this, <i>mutatis mutandis</i>, is what we +are getting to do as regards our own bodies. What I wish +is, to make the same sort of step in an upward direction which +has already been taken in a downward one, and to show reason for +thinking that we are only component atoms of a single compound +creature, LIFE, which has probably a distinct conception of its +own personality though none whatever of ours, more than we of our +own units. I wish also to show reason for thinking that +this creature, LIFE, has only come to be what it is, by the same +sort of process as that by which any human art or manufacture is +developed, <i>i.e.</i>, through constantly doing the same thing +over and over again, beginning from something which is barely +recognisable as faith, or as the desire to know, or do, or live +at all, and as to the origin of which we are in utter +darkness,—and growing till it is first conscious of effort, +then conscious of power, then powerful with but little +consciousness, and finally, so powerful and so charged with +memory as to be absolutely without all self-consciousness +whatever, except as regards its latest phases in each of its many +differentiations, or when placed in such new circumstances as +compel it to choose between death and a reconsideration of its +position.</p> +<p>No conjecture can be hazarded as to how the smallest particle +of matter became so imbued with faith that it must be considered +as the beginning of <span class="GutSmall">LIFE</span>, or as to +what such faith is, except that it is the very essence of all +things, and that it has no foundation.</p> +<p>In this way, then, I conceive we can fairly transfer the +experience of the race to the individual, without any other +meaning to our words than what they would naturally suggest; that +is to say, that there is in every impregnate ovum a <i>bonâ +fide</i> memory, which carries it back not only to the time when +it was last an impregnate ovum, but to that earlier date when it +was the very beginning of life at all, which same creature it +still is, whether as man or ovum, and hence imbued, so far as +time and circumstance allow, with all its memories. Surely +this is no strained hypothesis; for the mere fact that the germ, +from the earliest moment that we are able to detect it, appears +to be so perfectly familiar with its business, acts with so +little hesitation and so little introspection or reference to +principles, this alone should incline us to suspect that it must +be armed with that which, so far as we observe in daily life, can +alone ensure such a result—to wit, long practice, and the +memory of many similar performances.</p> +<p>The difficulty is, that we are conscious of no such memory in +our own persons, and beyond the one great proof of memory given +by the actual repetition of the performance—and of some of +the latest deviations from the ordinary performance (and this +proof ought in itself, one would have thought, to outweigh any +save the directest evidence to the contrary) we can detect no +symptom of any such mental operation as recollection on the part +of the embryo. On the other hand, we have seen that we know +most intensely those things that we are least conscious of +knowing; we will most intensely what we are least conscious of +willing; we feel continually without knowing that we feel, and +our attention is hourly arrested without our attention being +arrested by the arresting of our attention. Memory is no +less capable of unconscious exercise, and on becoming intense +through frequent repetition, vanishes no less completely as a +conscious action of the mind than knowledge and volition. +We must all be aware of instances in which it is plain we must +have remembered, without being in the smallest degree conscious +of remembering. Is it then absurd to suppose that our past +existences have been repeated on such a vast number of occasions +that the germ, linked on to all preceding germs, and, by once +having become part of their identity, imbued with all their +memories, remembers too intensely to be conscious of remembering, +and works on with the same kind of unconsciousness with which we +play, or walk, or read, until something unfamiliar happens to us? +and is it not singularly in accordance with this view that +consciousness should begin with that part of the creature’s +performance with which it is least familiar, as having repeated +it least often—that is to say, in our own case, with the +commencement of our human life—at birth, or +thereabouts?</p> +<p>It is certainly noteworthy that the embryo is never at a loss, +unless something happens to it which has not usually happened to +its forefathers, and which in the nature of things it cannot +remember.</p> +<p>When events are happening to it which have ordinarily happened +to its forefathers, and which it would therefore remember, if it +was possessed of the kind of memory which we are here attributing +to it, <i>it acts precisely as it would act if it were possessed +of such memory</i>.</p> +<p>When, on the other hand, events are happening to it which, if +it has the kind of memory we are attributing to it, would baffle +that memory, or which have rarely or never been included in the +category of its recollections, <i>it acts precisely as a creature +acts when its recollection is disturbed</i>, <i>or when it is +required to do something which it has never done before</i>.</p> +<p>We cannot remember having been in the embryonic stage, but we +do not on that account deny that we ever were in such a stage at +all. On a little reflection it will appear no more +reasonable to maintain that, when we were in the embryonic stage, +we did not remember our past existences, than to say that we +never were embryos at all. We cannot remember what we did +or did not recollect in that state; we cannot now remember having +grown the eyes which we undoubtedly did grow, much less can we +remember whether or not we then remembered having grown them +before; but it is probable that our memory was then, in respect +of our previous existences as embryos, as much more intense than +it is now in respect of our childhood, as our power of acquiring +a new language was greater when we were one or two years old, +than when we were twenty. And why should this power of +acquiring languages be greater at two years than at twenty, but +that for many generations we have learnt to speak at about this +age, and hence look to learn to do so again on reaching it, just +as we looked to making eyes, when the time came at which we were +accustomed to make them.</p> +<p>If we once had the memory of having been infants (which we had +from day to day during infancy), and have lost it, we may well +have had other and more intense memories which we have lost no +less completely. Indeed, there is nothing more +extraordinary in the supposition that the impregnate ovum has an +intense sense of its continuity with, and therefore of its +identity with, the two impregnate ova from which it has sprung, +than in the fact that we have no sense of our continuity with +ourselves as infants. If then, there is no <i>à +priori</i> objection to this view, and if the impregnate ovum +acts in such a manner as to carry the strongest conviction that +it must have already on many occasions done what it is doing now, +and that it has a vivid though unconscious recollection of what +all, and more especially its nearer, ancestral ova did under +similar circumstances, there would seem to be little doubt what +conclusion we ought to come to.</p> +<p>A hen’s egg, for example, as soon as the hen begins to +sit, sets to work immediately to do as nearly as may be what the +two eggs from which its father and mother were hatched did when +hens began to sit upon them. The inference would seem +almost irresistible,—that the second egg remembers the +course pursued by the eggs from which it has sprung, and of whose +present identity it is unquestionably a part-phase; it also seems +irresistibly forced upon us to believe that the intensity of this +memory is the secret of its easy action.</p> +<p>It has, I believe, been often remarked, that a hen is only an +egg’s way of making another egg. Every creature must +be allowed to “run” its own development in its own +way; the egg’s way may seem a very roundabout manner of +doing things; but it <i>is</i> its way, and it is one of which +man, upon the whole, has no great reason to complain. Why +the fowl should be considered more alive than the egg, and why it +should be said that the hen lays the egg, and not that the egg +lays the hen, these are questions which lie beyond the power of +philosophic explanation, but are perhaps most answerable by +considering the conceit of man, and his habit, persisted in +during many ages, of ignoring all that does not remind him of +himself, or hurt him, or profit him; also by considering the use +of language, which, if it is to serve at all, can only do so by +ignoring a vast number of facts which gradually drop out of mind +from being out of sight. But, perhaps, after all, the real +reason is, that the egg does not cackle when it has laid the hen, +and that it works towards the hen with gradual and noiseless +steps, which we can watch if we be so minded; whereas, we can +less easily watch the steps which lead from the hen to the egg, +but hear a noise, and see an egg where there was no egg. +Therefore, we say, the development of the fowl from the egg bears +no sort of resemblance to that of the egg from the fowl, whereas, +in truth, a hen, or any other living creature, is only the +primordial cell’s way of going back upon itself.</p> +<p>But to return. We see an egg, A, which evidently knows +its own meaning perfectly well, and we know that a twelvemonth +ago there were two other such eggs, B and C, which have now +disappeared, but from which we know A to have been so +continuously developed as to be part of the present form of their +identity. A’s meaning is seen to be precisely the +same as B and C’s meaning; A’s personal appearance +is, to all intents and purposes, B and C’s personal +appearance; it would seem, then, unreasonable to deny that A is +only B and C come back, with such modification as they may have +incurred since their disappearance; and that, in spite of any +such modification, they remember in A perfectly well what they +did as B and C.</p> +<p>We have considered the question of personal identity so as to +see whether, without abuse of terms, we can claim it as existing +between any two generations of living agents (and if between two, +then between any number up to infinity), and we found that we +were not only at liberty to claim this, but that we are compelled +irresistibly to do so, unless, that is to say, we would think +very differently concerning personal identity than we do at +present. We found it impossible to hold the ordinary common +sense opinions concerning personal identity, without admitting +that we are personally identical with all our forefathers, who +have successfully assimilated outside matter to themselves, and +by assimilation imbued it with all their own memories; we being +nothing else than this outside matter so assimilated and imbued +with such memories. This, at least, will, I believe, +balance the account correctly.</p> +<p>A few remarks upon the assimilation of outside matter by +living organisms may perhaps be hazarded here.</p> +<p>As long as any living organism can maintain itself in a +position to which it has been accustomed, more or less nearly, +both in its own life and in those of its forefathers, nothing can +harm it. As long as the organism is familiar with the +position, and remembers its antecedents, nothing can assimilate +it. It must be first dislodged from the position with which +it is familiar, as being able to remember it, before mischief can +happen to it. Nothing can assimilate living organism.</p> +<p>On the other hand, the moment living organism loses sight of +its own position and antecedents, it is liable to immediate +assimilation, and to be thus familiarised with the position and +antecedents of some other creature. If any living organism +be kept for but a very short time in a position wholly different +from what it has been accustomed to in its own life, and in the +lives of its forefathers, it commonly loses its memories +completely, once and for ever; but it must immediately acquire +new ones, for nothing can know nothing; everything must remember +either its own antecedents, or some one else’s. And +as nothing can know nothing, so nothing can believe in +nothing.</p> +<p>A grain of corn, for example, has never been accustomed to +find itself in a hen’s stomach—neither it nor its +forefathers. For a grain so placed leaves no offspring, and +hence cannot transmit its experience. The first minute or +so after being eaten, it may think it has just been sown, and +begin to prepare for sprouting, but in a few seconds, it +discovers the environment to be unfamiliar; it therefore gets +frightened, loses its head, is carried into the gizzard, and +comminuted among the gizzard stones. The hen succeeded in +putting it into a position with which it was unfamiliar; from +this it was an easy stage to assimilating it entirely. Once +assimilated, the grain ceases to remember any more as a grain, +but becomes initiated into all that happens to, and has happened +to, fowls for countless ages. Then it will attack all other +grains whenever it sees them; there is no such persecutor of +grain, as another grain when it has once fairly identified itself +with a hen.</p> +<p>We may remark in passing, that if anything be once +familiarised with anything, it is content. The only things +we really care for in life are familiar things; let us have the +means of doing what we have been accustomed to do, of dressing as +we have been accustomed to dress, of eating as we have been +accustomed to eat, and let us have no less liberty than we are +accustomed to have, and last, but not least, let us not be +disturbed in thinking as we have been accustomed to think, and +the vast majority of mankind will be very fairly +contented—all plants and animals will certainly be +so. This would seem to suggest a possible doctrine of a +future state; concerning which we may reflect that though, after +we die, we cease to be familiar with ourselves, we shall +nevertheless become immediately familiar with many other +histories compared with which our present life must then seem +intolerably uninteresting.</p> +<p>This is the reason why a very heavy and sudden shock to the +nervous system does not pain, but kills outright at once; while +one with which the system can, at any rate, try to familiarise +itself is exceedingly painful. We cannot bear +unfamiliarity. The part that is treated in a manner with +which it is not familiar cries immediately to the brain—its +central government—for help, and makes itself generally as +troublesome as it can, till it is in some way comforted. +Indeed, the law against cruelty to animals is but an example of +the hatred we feel on seeing even dumb creatures put into +positions with which they are not familiar. We hate this so +much for ourselves, that we will not tolerate it for other +creatures if we can possibly avoid it. So again, it is +said, that when Andromeda and Perseus had travelled but a little +way from the rock where Andromeda had so long been chained, she +began upbraiding him with the loss of her dragon, who, on the +whole, she said, had been very good to her. The only things +we really hate are unfamiliar things, and though nature would not +be nature if she did not cross our love of the familiar with a +love also of the unfamiliar, yet there can be no doubt which of +the two principles is master.</p> +<p>Let us return, however, to the grain of corn. If the +grain had had presence of mind to avoid being carried into the +gizzard stones, as many seeds do which are carried for hundreds +of miles in birds’ stomachs, and if it had persuaded itself +that the novelty of the position was not greater than it could +very well manage to put up with—if, in fact, it had not +known when it was beaten—it might have stuck in the +hen’s stomach and begun to grow; in this case it would have +assimilated a good part of the hen before many days were over; +for hens are not familiar with grains that grow in their +stomachs, and unless the one in question was as strongminded for +a hen, as the grain that could avoid being assimilated would be +for a grain, the hen would soon cease to take an interest in her +antecedents. It is to be doubted, however, whether a grain +has ever been grown which has had strength of mind enough to +avoid being set off its balance on finding itself inside a +hen’s gizzard. For living organism is the creature of +habit and routine, and the inside of a gizzard is not in the +grain’s programme.</p> +<p>Suppose, then, that the grain, instead of being carried into +the gizzard, had stuck in the hen’s throat and choked +her. It would now find itself in a position very like what +it had often been in before. That is to say, it would be in +a damp, dark, quiet place, not too far from light, and with +decaying matter around it. It would therefore know +perfectly well what to do, and would begin to grow until +disturbed, and again put into a position with which it might, +very possibly, be unfamiliar.</p> +<p>The great question between vast masses of living organism is +simply this: “Am I to put you into a position with which +your forefathers have been unfamiliar, or are you to put me into +one about which my own have been in like manner +ignorant?” Man is only the dominant animal on the +earth, because he can, as a general rule, settle this question in +his own favour.</p> +<p>The only manner in which an organism, which has once forgotten +its antecedents, can ever recover its memory, is by being +assimilated by a creature of its own kind; one, moreover, which +knows its business, or is not in such a false position as to be +compelled to be aware of being so. It was, doubtless, owing +to the recognition of this fact, that some Eastern nations, as we +are told by Herodotus, were in the habit of eating their deceased +parents—for matter which has once been assimilated by any +identity or personality, becomes for all practical purposes part +of the assimilating personality.</p> +<p>The bearing of the above will become obvious when we return, +as we will now do, to the question of personal identity. +The only difficulty would seem to lie in our unfamiliarity with +the real meanings which we attach to words in daily use. +Hence, while recognising continuity without sudden break as the +underlying principle of identity, we forget that this involves +personal identity between all the beings who are in one chain of +descent, the numbers of such beings, whether in succession, or +contemporaneous, going for nothing at all. Thus we take two +eggs, one male and one female, and hatch them; after some months +the pair of fowls so hatched, having succeeded in putting a vast +quantity of grain and worms into false positions, become +full-grown, breed, and produce a dozen new eggs.</p> +<p>Two live fowls and a dozen eggs are the present phase of the +personality of the two original eggs. They are also part of +the present phase of the personality of all the worms and grain +which the fowls have assimilated from their leaving the eggshell; +but the personalities of these last do not count; they have lost +their grain and worm memories, and are instinct with the +memorises of the whole ancestry of the creature which has +assimilated them.</p> +<p>We cannot, perhaps, strictly say that the two fowls and the +dozen new eggs actually <i>are</i> the two original eggs; these +two eggs are no longer in existence, and we see the two birds +themselves which were hatched from them. A bird cannot be +called an egg without an abuse of terms. Nevertheless, it +is doubtful how far we should not say this, for it is only with a +mental reserve—and with no greater mental +reserve—that we predicate absolute identity concerning any +living being for two consecutive moments; and it is certainly as +free from quibble to say to two fowls and a dozen eggs, +“you are the two eggs I had on my kitchen shelf twelve +months ago,” as to say to a man, “you are the child +whom I remember thirty years ago in your mother’s +arms.” In either case we mean, “you have been +continually putting other organisms into a false position, and +then assimilating them, ever since I last saw you, while nothing +has yet occurred to put <i>you</i> into such a false position as +to have made you lose the memory of your antecedents.”</p> +<p>It would seem perfectly fair, therefore, to say to any egg of +the twelve, or to the two fowls and the whole twelve eggs +together, “you were a couple of eggs twelve months ago; +twelve months before that you were four eggs;” and so on, +<i>ad infinitum</i>, the number neither of the ancestors nor of +the descendants counting for anything, and continuity being the +sole thing looked to. From daily observation we are +familiar with the fact that identity does both unite with other +identities, so that a single new identity is the result, and does +also split itself up into several identities, so that the one +becomes many. This is plain from the manner in which the +male and female sexual elements unite to form a single ovum, +which we observe to be instinct with the memories of both the +individuals from which it has been derived; and there is the +additional consideration, that each of the elements whose fusion +goes to make up the impregnate ovum, is held by some to be itself +composed of a fused mass of germs, which stand very much in the +same relation to the spermatozoon and ovum, as the living +cellular units of which we are composed do to +ourselves—that is to say, are living independent organisms, +which probably have no conception of the existence of the +spermatozoon nor of the ovum, more than the spermatozoon or ovum +have of theirs.</p> +<p>This, at least, is what I gather from Mr. Darwin’s +provisional theory of Pangenesis; and, again, from one of the +concluding sentences in his “Effects of Cross and Self +Fertilisation,” where, asking the question why two sexes +have been developed, he replies that the answer seems to lie +“in the great good which is derived from the fusion of two +somewhat differentiated individuals. With the +exception,” he continues, “or the lowest organisms +this is possible only by means of the sexual +elements—<i>these consisting of cells separated from the +body</i>” (<i>i.e.</i>, separated from the bodies of each +parent) “<i>containing the germs of every part</i>” +(<i>i.e.</i>, consisting of the seeds or germs from which each +individual cell of the coming organism will be +developed—these seeds or germs having been shed by each +individual cell of the parent forms), “<i>and capable of +being fused completely together</i>” (<i>i.e.</i>, so at +least I gather, capable of being fused completely, in the same +way as the cells of our own bodies are fused, and thus, of +forming a single living personality in the case of both the male +and female element; which elements are themselves capable of a +second fusion so as to form the impregnate ovum). This +single impregnate ovum, then, is a single identity that has taken +the place of and come up in the room of two distinct +personalities, each of whose characteristics it, to a certain +extent, partakes, and which consist, each one of them, of the +fused germs of a vast mass of other personalities.</p> +<p>As regards the dispersion of one identity into many, this also +is a matter of daily observation in the case of all female +creatures that are with egg or young; the identity of the young +with the female parent is in many respects so complete, as to +need no enforcing, in spite of the entrance into the offspring of +all the elements derived from the male parent, and of the gradual +separation of the two identities, which becomes more and more +complete, till in time it is hard to conceive that they can ever +have been united.</p> +<p>Numbers, therefore, go for nothing; and, as far as identity or +continued personality goes, it is as fair to say to the two +fowls, above referred to, “you were four fowls twelve +months ago,” as it is to say to a dozen eggs, “you +were two eggs twelve months ago.” But here a +difficulty meets us; for if we say, “you were two eggs +twelve months ago,” it follows that we mean, “you are +now those two eggs;” just as when we say to a person, +“you were such and such a boy twenty years ago,” we +mean, “you are now that boy, or all that represents +him;” it would seem, then, that in like manner we should +say to the two fowls, “you <i>are</i> the four fowls who +between them laid the two eggs from which you +sprung.” But it may be that all these four fowls are +still to be seen running about; we should be therefore saying, +“you two fowls are really not yourselves only, but you are +also the other four fowls into the bargain;” and this might +be philosophically true, and might, perhaps, be considered so, +but for the convenience of the law courts.</p> +<p>The difficulty would seem to arise from the fact that the eggs +must disappear before fowls can be hatched from them, whereas, +the hens so hatched may outlive the development of other hens, +from the eggs which they in due course have laid. The +original eggs being out of sight are out of mind, and it is +without an effort that we acquiesce in the assertion,—that +the dozen new eggs actually are the two original ones. But +the original four fowls being still in sight, cannot be ignored, +we only, therefore, see the new ones as growths from the original +ones.</p> +<p>The strict rendering of the facts should be, “you are +part of the present phase of the identity of such and such a past +identity,” <i>i.e.</i>, either of the two eggs or the four +fowls, as the case may be; this will put the eggs and the fowls, +as it were, into the same box, and will meet both the +philosophical and legal requirement of the case, only it is a +little long.</p> +<p>So far then, as regards actual identity of personality; which, +we find, will allow us to say, that eggs are part of the present +phase of a certain past identity, whether of other eggs, or of +fowls, or chickens, and in like, manner that chickens are part of +the present phase of certain other chickens, or eggs, or fowls; +in fact, that anything is part of the present phase of any past +identity in the line of its ancestry. But as regards the +actual memory of such identity (unconscious memory, but still +clearly memory), we observe that the egg, as long as it is an +egg, appears to have a very distinct recollection of having been +an egg before, and the fowl of having been a fowl before, but +that neither egg nor fowl appear to have any recollection of any +other stage of their past existences, than the one corresponding +to that in which they are themselves at the moment existing.</p> +<p>So we, at six or seven years old, have no recollection of ever +having been infants, much less of having been embryos; but the +manner in which we shed our teeth and make new ones, and the way +in which we grow generally, making ourselves for the most part +exceedingly like what we made ourselves, in the person of some +one of our nearer ancestors, and not unfrequently repeating the +very blunders which we made upon that occasion when we come to a +corresponding age, proves most incontestably that we remember our +past existences, though too utterly to be capable of +introspection in the matter. So, when we grow wisdom teeth, +at the age it may be of one or two and twenty, it is plain we +remember our past existences at that age, however completely we +may have forgotten the earlier stages of our present +existence. It may be said that it is the jaw which +remembers, and not we, but it seems hard to deny the jaw a right +of citizenship in our personality; and in the case of a growing +boy, every part of him seems to remember equally well, and if +every part of him combined does not make <i>him</i>, there would +seem but little use in continuing the argument further.</p> +<p>In like manner, a caterpillar appears not to remember having +been an egg, either in its present or any past existence. +It has no concern with eggs as soon as it is hatched, but it +clearly remembers not only having been a caterpillar before, but +also having turned itself into a chrysalis before; for when the +time comes for it to do this, it is at no loss, as it would +certainly be if the position was unfamiliar, but it immediately +begins doing what it did when last it was in a like case, +repeating the process as nearly as the environment will allow, +taking every step in the same order as last time, and doing its +work with that ease and perfection which we observe to belong to +the force of habit, and to be utterly incompatible with any other +supposition than that of long long practice.</p> +<p>Once having become a chrysalis, its memory of its +caterpillarhood appears to leave it for good and all, not to +return until it again assumes the shape of a caterpillar by +process of descent. Its memory now overleaps all past +modifications, and reverts to the time when it was last what it +is now, and though it is probable that both caterpillar and +chrysalis, on any given day of their existence in either of these +forms, have some sort of dim power of recollecting what happened +to them yesterday, or the day before; yet it is plain their main +memory goes back to the corresponding day of their last existence +in their present form, the chrysalis remembering what happened to +it on such a day far more practically, though less consciously, +than what happened to it yesterday; and naturally, for yesterday +is but once, and its past existences have been legion. +Hence, it prepares its wings in due time, doing each day what it +did on the corresponding day of its last chrysalishood and at +length becoming a moth; whereon its circumstances are so changed +that it loses all sense of its identity as a chrysalis (as +completely as we, for precisely the same reason, lose all sense +of our identity with ourselves as infants), and remembers nothing +but its past existences as a moth.</p> +<p>We observe this to hold throughout the animal and vegetable +kingdoms. In any one phase of the existence of the lower +animals, we observe that they remember the corresponding stage, +and a little on either side of it, of all their past existences +for a very great length of time. In their present existence +they remember a little behind the present moment (remembering +more and more the higher they advance in the scale of life), and +being able to foresee about as much as they could foresee in +their past existences, sometimes more and sometimes less. +As with memory, so with prescience. The higher they advance +in the scale of life the more prescient they are. It must, +of course, be remembered, and will later on be more fully dwelt +upon, that no offspring can remember anything which happens to +its parents after it and its parents have parted company; and +this is why there is, perhaps, more irregularity as regards our +wisdom-teeth than about anything else that we grow; inasmuch as +it must not uncommonly have happened in a long series of +generations, that the offspring has been born before the parents +have grown their wisdom-teeth, and thus there will be faults in +the memory.</p> +<p>Is there, then, anything in memory, as we observe it in +ourselves and others, under circumstances in which we shall agree +in calling it memory pure and simple without ambiguity of +terms—is there anything in memory which bars us from +supposing it capable of overleaping a long time of abeyance, and +thus of enabling each impregnate ovum, or each grain, to remember +what it did when last in a like condition, and to go on +remembering the corresponding period of its prior developments +throughout the whole period of its present growth, though such +memory has entirely failed as regards the interim between any two +corresponding periods, and is not consciously recognised by the +individual as being exercised at all?</p> +<h2><a name="page150"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +150</span>CHAPTER IX.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">ON THE ABEYANCE OF MEMORY.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">Let</span> us assume, for the moment, that +the action of each impregnate germ is due to memory, which, as it +were, pulsates anew in each succeeding generation, so that +immediately on impregnation, the germ’s memory reverts to +the last occasion on which it was in a like condition, and +recognising the position, is at no loss what to do. It is +plain that in all cases where there are two parents, that is to +say, in the greater number of cases, whether in the vegetable or +animal kingdoms, there must be two such last occasions, each of +which will have an equal claim upon the attention of the new +germ. Its memory would therefore revert to both, and though +it would probably adhere more closely to the course which it took +either as its father or its mother, and thus come out eventually +male or female, yet it would be not a little influenced by the +less potent memory.</p> +<p>And not only this, but each of the germs to which the memory +of the new germ reverts, is itself imbued with the memories of +its own parent germs, and these again with the memories of +preceding generations, and so on <i>ad infinitum</i>; so that, +<i>ex hypothesi</i>, the germ must become instinct with all these +memories, epitomised as after long time, and unperceived though +they may well be, not to say obliterated in part or entirely so +far as many features are concerned, by more recent +impressions. In this case, we must conceive of the +impregnate germ as of a creature which has to repeat a +performance already repeated before on countless different +occasions, but with no more variation on the more recent ones +than is inevitable in the repetition of any performance by an +intelligent being.</p> +<p>Now if we take the most parallel case to this which we can +find, and consider what we should ourselves do under such +circumstances, that is to say, if we consider what course is +actually taken by beings who are influenced by what we all call +memory, when they repeat an already often-repeated performance, +and if we find a very strong analogy between the course so taken +by ourselves, and that which from whatever cause we observe to be +taken by a living germ, we shall surely be much inclined to think +that there must be a similarity in the causes of action in each +case; and hence, to conclude, that the action of the germ is due +to memory.</p> +<p>It will, therefore, be necessary to consider the general +tendency of our minds in regard to impressions made upon us, and +the memory of such impressions.</p> +<p>Deep impressions upon the memory are made in two ways, +differing rather in degree than kind, but with two somewhat +widely different results. They are made:—</p> +<p>I. By unfamiliar objects, or combinations, which come at +comparatively long intervals, and produce their effect, as it +were, by one hard blow. The effect of these will vary with +the unfamiliarity of the impressions themselves, and the manner +in which they seem likely to lead to a further development of the +unfamiliar, <i>i.e.</i>, with the question, whether they seem +likely to compel us to change our habits, either for better or +worse.</p> +<p>Thus, if an object or incident be very unfamiliar, as, we will +say, a whale or an iceberg to one travelling to America for the +first time, it will make a deep impression, though but little +affecting our interests; but if we struck against the iceberg and +were shipwrecked, or nearly so, it would produce a much deeper +impression, we should think much more about icebergs, and +remember much more about them, than if we had merely seen +one. So, also, if we were able to catch the whale and sell +its oil, we should have a deep impression made upon us. In +either case we see that the amount of unfamiliarity, either +present or prospective, is the main determinant of the depth of +the impression.</p> +<p>As with consciousness and volition, so with sudden +unfamiliarity. It impresses us more and more deeply the +more unfamiliar it is, until it reaches such a point of +impressiveness as to make no further impression at all; on which +we then and there die. For death only kills through +unfamiliarity—that is to say, because the new position, +whatever it is, is so wide a cross as compared with the old one, +that we cannot fuse the two so as to understand the combination; +hence we lose all recognition of, and faith in, ourselves and our +surroundings.</p> +<p>But however much we imagine we remember concerning the details +of any remarkable impression which has been made us by a single +blow, we do not remember as much or nearly as much as we think we +do. The subordinate details soon drop out of mind. +Those who think they remember even such a momentous matter as the +battle of Waterloo recall now probably but half-a-dozen episodes, +a gleam here, and a gleam there, so that what they call +remembering the battle of Waterloo, is, in fact, little more than +a kind of dreaming—so soon vanishes the memory of any +unrepeated occurrence.</p> +<p>As for smaller impressions, there is very little of what +happens to us in each week that will be in our memories a week +hence; a man of eighty remembers few of the unrepeated incidents +of his life beyond those of the last fortnight, a little here, +and a little there, forming a matter of perhaps six weeks or two +months in all, if everything that he can call to mind were acted +over again with no greater fulness than he can remember it. +As for incidents that have been often repeated, his mind strikes +a balance of its past reminiscences, remembering the two or three +last performances, and a general method of procedure, but nothing +more.</p> +<p>If, then, the recollection of all that is not very novel, or +very often repeated, so soon fades from our own minds, during +what we consider as our single lifetime, what wonder that the +details of our daily experience should find no place in that +brief epitome of them which is all we can give in so small a +volume as offspring?</p> +<p>If we cannot ourselves remember the hundred-thousandth part of +what happened to us during our own childhood, how can we expect +our offspring to remember more than what, through frequent +repetition, they can now remember as a residuum, or general +impression. On the other hand, whatever we remember in +consequence of but a single impression, we remember +consciously. We can at will recall details, and are +perfectly well aware, when we do so, that we are +recollecting. A man who has never seen death looks for the +first time upon the dead face of some near relative or +friend. He gazes for a few short minutes, but the +impression thus made does not soon pass out of his mind. He +remembers the room, the hour of the day or night, and if by day, +what sort of a day. He remembers in what part of the room, +and how disposed the body of the deceased was lying. Twenty +years afterwards he can, at will, recall all these matters to his +mind, and picture to himself the scene as he originally witnessed +it.</p> +<p>The reason is plain; the impression was very unfamiliar, and +affected the beholder, both as regards the loss of one who was +dear to him, and as reminding him with more than common force +that he will one day die himself. Moreover the impression +was a simple one, not involving much subordinate detail; we have +in this case, therefore, an example of the most lasting kind of +impression that can be made by a single unrepeated event. +But if we examine ourselves closely, we shall find that after a +lapse of years we do not remember as much as we think we do, even +in such a case as this; and that beyond the incidents above +mentioned, and the expression upon the face of the dead person, +we remember little of what we can so consciously and vividly +recall.</p> +<p>II. Deep impressions are also made by the repetition, +more or less often, of a feeble impression which, if unrepeated, +would have soon passed out of our minds. We observe, +therefore, that we remember best what we have done least +often—any unfamiliar deviation, that is to say, from our +ordinary method of procedure—and what we have done most +often, with which, therefore, we are most familiar; our memory +being mainly affected by the force of novelty and the force of +routine—the most unfamiliar, and the most familiar, +incidents or objects.</p> +<p>But we remember impressions which have been made upon us by +force of routine, in a very different way to that in which we +remember a single deep impression. As regards this second +class, which comprises far the most numerous and important of the +impressions with which our memory is stored, it is often only by +the fact of our performance itself that we are able to recognise +or show to others that we remember at all. We often do not +remember how, or when, or where we acquired our knowledge. +All we remember is, that we did learn, and that at one time and +another we have done this or that very often.</p> +<p>As regards this second class of impressions we may +observe:—</p> +<p>1. That as a general rule we remember only the +individual features of the last few repetitions of the +act—if, indeed, we remember this much. The influence +of preceding ones is to be found only in the general average of +the procedure, which is modified by them, but unconsciously to +ourselves. Take, for example, some celebrated singer, or +pianoforte player, who has sung the same air, or performed the +same sonata several hundreds or, it may be, thousands of times: +of the details of individual performances, he can probably call +to mind none but those of the last few days, yet there can be no +question that his present performance is affected by, and +modified by, all his previous ones; the care he has bestowed on +these being the secret of his present proficiency.</p> +<p>In each performance (the performer being supposed in the same +state of mental and bodily health), the tendency will be to +repeat the immediately preceding performances more nearly than +remoter ones. It is the common tendency of living beings to +go on doing what they have been doing most recently. The +last habit is the strongest. Hence, if he took great pains +last time, he will play better now, and will take a like degree +of pains, and play better still next time, and so go on improving +while life and vigour last. If, on the other hand, he took +less pains last time, he will play worse now, and be inclined to +take little pains next time, and so gradually deteriorate. +This, at least, is the common everyday experience of mankind.</p> +<p>So with painters, actors, and professional men of every +description; after a little while the memory of many past +performances strikes a sort of fused balance in the mind, which +results in a general method of procedure with but little +conscious memory of even the latest performances, and with none +whatever of by far the greater number of the remoter ones.</p> +<p>Still, it is noteworthy, that the memory of some even of these +will occasionally assert itself, so far as we can see, +arbitrarily, the reason why this or that occasion should still +haunt us, when others like them are forgotten, depending on some +cause too subtle for our powers of observation.</p> +<p>Even with such a simple matter as our daily dressing and +undressing, we may remember some few details of our +yesterday’s toilet, but we retain nothing but a general and +fused recollection of the many thousand earlier occasions on +which we have dressed, or gone to bed. Men invariably put +the same leg first into their trousers—this is the survival +of memory in a residuum; but they cannot, till they actually put +on a pair of trousers, remember which leg they <i>do</i> put in +first; this is the rapid fading away of any small individual +impression.</p> +<p>The seasons may serve as another illustration; we have a +general recollection of the kind of weather which is seasonable +for any month in a year; what flowers are due about what time, +and whether the spring is on the whole backward or early; but we +cannot remember the weather on any particular day a year ago, +unless some unusual incident has impressed it upon our +memory. We can remember, as a general rule, what kind of +season it was, upon the whole, a year ago, or perhaps, even two +years; but more than this, we rarely remember, except in such +cases as the winter of 1854–1855, or the summer of 1868; +the rest is all merged.</p> +<p>We observe, then, that as regards small and often repeated +impressions, our tendency is to remember best, and in most +detail, what we have been doing most recently, and what in +general has occurred most recently, but that the earlier +impressions though forgotten individually, are nevertheless, not +wholly lost.</p> +<p>2. When we have done anything very often, and have got +into the habit of doing it, we generally take the various steps +in the same order; in many cases this seems to be a <i>sine +quâ non</i> for our repetition of the action at all. +Thus, there is probably no living man who could repeat the words +of “God save the Queen” backwards, without much +hesitation and many mistakes; so the musician and the singer must +perform their pieces in the order of the notes as written, or at +any rate as they ordinarily perform them; they cannot transpose +bars or read them backwards, without being put out, nor would the +audience recognise the impressions they have been accustomed to, +unless these impressions are made in the accustomed order.</p> +<p>3. If, when we have once got well into the habit of +doing anything in a certain way, some one shows us some other way +of doing it, or some way which would in part modify our +procedure, or if in our endeavours to improve, we have hit upon +some new idea which seems likely to help us, and thus we vary our +course, on the next occasion we remember this idea by reason of +its novelty, but if we try to repeat it, we often find the +residuum of our old memories pulling us so strongly into our old +groove, that we have the greatest difficulty in repeating our +performance in the new manner; there is a clashing of memories, a +conflict, which if the idea is very new, and involves, so to +speak, too sudden a cross—too wide a departure from our +ordinary course—will sometimes render the performance +monstrous, or baffle us altogether, the new memory failing to +fuse harmoniously with the old. If the idea is not too +widely different from our older ones, we can cross them with it, +but with more or less difficulty, as a general rule in proportion +to the amount of variation. The whole process of +understanding a thing consists in this, and, so far as I can see +at present, in this only.</p> +<p>Sometimes we repeat the new performance for a few times, in a +way which shows that the fusion of memories is still in force; +and then insensibly revert to the old, in which case the memory +of the new soon fades away, leaving a residuum too feeble to +contend against that of our many earlier memories of the same +kind. If, however, the new way is obviously to our +advantage, we make an effort to retain it, and gradually getting +into the habit of using it, come to remember it by force of +routine, as we originally remembered it by force of +novelty. Even as regards our own discoveries, we do not +always succeed in remembering our most improved and most striking +performances, so as to be able to repeat them at will +immediately: in any such performance we may have gone some way +beyond our ordinary powers, owing to some unconscious action of +the mind. The supreme effort has exhausted us, and we must +rest on our oars a little, before we make further progress; or we +may even fall back a little, before we make another leap in +advance.</p> +<p>In this respect, almost every conceivable degree of variation +is observable, according to differences of character and +circumstances. Sometimes the new impression has to be made +upon us many times from without, before the earlier strain of +action is eliminated; in this case, there will long remain a +tendency to revert to the earlier habit. Sometimes, after +the impression has been once made, we repeat our old way two or +three times, and then revert to the new, which gradually ousts +the old; sometimes, on the other hand, a single impression, +though involving considerable departure from our routine, makes +its mark so deeply that we adopt the new at once, though not +without difficulty, and repeat it in our next performance, and +henceforward in all others; but those who vary their performance +thus readily will show a tendency to vary subsequent performances +according as they receive fresh ideas from others, or reason them +out independently. They are men of genius.</p> +<p>This holds good concerning all actions which we do habitually, +whether they involve laborious acquirement or not. Thus, if +we have varied our usual dinner in some way that leaves a +favourable impression upon our minds, so that our dinner may, in +the language of the horticulturist, be said to have +“sported,” our tendency will be to revert to this +particular dinner either next day, or as soon as circumstances +will allow, but it is possible that several hundred dinners may +elapse before we can do so successfully, or before our memory +reverts to this particular dinner.</p> +<p>4. As regards our habitual actions, however +unconsciously we remember them, we, nevertheless, remember them +with far greater intensity than many individual impressions or +actions, it may be of much greater moment, that have happened to +us more recently. Thus, many a man who has familiarised +himself, for example, with the odes of Horace, so as to have had +them at his fingers’ ends as the result of many +repetitions, will be able years hence to repeat a given ode, +though unable to remember any circumstance in connection with his +having learnt it, and no less unable to remember when he repeated +it last. A host of individual circumstances, many of them +not unimportant, will have dropped out of his mind, along with a +mass of literature read but once or twice, and not impressed upon +the memory by several repetitions; but he returns to the +well-known ode with so little effort, that he would not know that +he was remembering unless his reason told him so. The ode +seems more like something born with him.</p> +<p>We observe, also, that people who have become imbecile, or +whose memory is much impaired, yet frequently retain their power +of recalling impression which have been long ago repeatedly made +upon them.</p> +<p>In such cases, people are sometimes seen to forget what +happened last week, yesterday, or an hour ago, without even the +smallest power of recovering their recollection; but the oft +repeated earlier impression remains, though there may be no +memory whatever of how it came to be impressed so deeply. +The phenomena of memory, therefore, are exactly like those of +consciousness and volition, in so far as that the consciousness +of recollection vanishes, when the power of recollection has +become intense. When we are aware that we are recollecting, +and are trying, perhaps hard, to recollect, it is a sign that we +do not recollect utterly. When we remember utterly and +intensely, there is no conscious effort of recollection; our +recollection can only be recognised by ourselves and others, +through our performance itself, which testifies to the existence +of a memory, that we could not otherwise follow or detect.</p> +<p>5. When circumstances have led us to change our habits +of life—as when the university has succeeded school, or +professional life the university—we get into many fresh +ways, and leave many old ones. But on revisiting the old +scene, unless the lapse of time has been inordinately great, we +experience a desire to revert to old habits. We say that +old associations crowd upon us. Let a Trinity man, after +thirty years absence from Cambridge, pace for five minutes in the +cloister of Neville’s Court, and listen to the echo of his +footfall, as it licks up against the end of the cloister, or let +an old Johnian stand wherever he likes in the third Court of St. +John’s, in either case he will find the thirty years drop +out of his life, as if they were half-an-hour; his life will have +rolled back upon itself, to the date when he was an +undergraduate, and his instinct will be to do almost +mechanically, whatever it would have come most natural to him to +do, when he was last there at the same season of the year, and +the same hour of the day; and it is plain this is due to +similarity of environment, for if the place he revisits be much +changed, there will be little or no association.</p> +<p>So those who are accustomed at intervals to cross the +Atlantic, get into certain habits on board ship, different to +their usual ones. It may be that at home they never play +whist; on board ship they do nothing else all the evening. +At home they never touch spirits; on the voyage they regularly +take a glass of something before they go to bed. They do +not smoke at home; here they are smoking all day. Once the +voyage is at an end, they return without an effort to their usual +habits, and do not feel any wish for cards, spirits, or +tobacco. They do not remember yesterday, when they did want +all these things; at least, not with such force as to be +influenced by it in their desires and actions; their true +memory—the memory which makes them want, and do, reverts to +the last occasion on which they were in circumstances like their +present; they therefore want now what they wanted then, and +nothing more; but when the time comes for them to go on shipboard +again, no sooner do they smell the smell of the ship, than their +real memory reverts to the times when they were last at sea, and +striking a balance of their recollections, they smoke, play +cards, and drink whisky and water.</p> +<p>We observe it then as a matter of the commonest daily +occurrence within our own experience, that memory does fade +completely away, and recur with the recurrence of surroundings +like those which made any particular impression in the first +instance. We observe that there is hardly any limit to the +completeness and the length of time during which our memory may +remain in abeyance. A smell may remind an old man of eighty +of some incident of his childhood, forgotten for nearly as many +years as he has lived. In other words, we observe that when +an impression has been repeatedly made in a certain sequence on +any living organism—that impression not having been +prejudicial to the creature itself—the organism will have a +tendency, on reassuming the shape and conditions in which it was +when the impression was last made, to remember the impression, +and therefore to do again now what it did then; all intermediate +memories dropping clean out of mind, so far as they have any +effect upon action.</p> +<p>6. Finally, we should note the suddenness and apparent +caprice with which memory will assert itself at odd times; we +have been saying or doing this or that, when suddenly a memory of +something which happened to us, perhaps in infancy, comes into +our head; nor can we in the least connect this recollection with +the subject of which we have just been thinking, though doubtless +there has been a connection, too rapid and subtle for our +apprehension.</p> +<p>The foregoing phenomena of memory, so far as we can judge, +would appear to be present themselves throughout the animal and +vegetable kingdoms. This will be readily admitted as +regards animals; as regards plants it may be inferred from the +fact that they generally go on doing what they have been doing +most lately, though accustomed to make certain changes at certain +points in their existence. When the time comes for these +changes, they appear to know it, and either bud forth into leaf +or shed their leaves, as the case may be. If we keep a bulb +in a paper bag it seems to remember having been a bulb before, +until the time comes for it to put forth roots and grow. +Then, if we supply it with earth and moisture, it seems to know +where it is, and to go on doing now whatever it did when it was +last planted; but if we keep it in the bag too long, it knows +that it ought, according to its last experience, to be treated +differently, and shows plain symptoms of uneasiness; it is +distracted by the bag, which makes it remember its bulbhood, and +also by the want of earth and water, without which associations +its memory of its previous growth cannot be duly kindled. +Its roots, therefore, which are most accustomed to earth and +water, do not grow; but its leaves, which do not require contact +with these things to jog their memory, make a more decided effort +at development—a fact which would seem to go strongly in +favour of the functional independence of the parts of all but the +very simplest living organisms, if, indeed, more evidence were +wanted in support of this.</p> +<h2><a name="page166"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +166</span>CHAPTER X.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">WHAT WE SHOULD EXPECT TO FIND IF +DIFFERENTIATIONS OF STRUCTURE AND INSTINCT ARE MAINLY DUE TO +MEMORY.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">To</span> repeat briefly;—we +remember best our last few performances of any given kind, and +our present performance is most likely to resemble one or other +of these; we only remember our earlier performances by way of +residuum; nevertheless, at times, some older feature is liable to +reappear.</p> +<p>We take our steps in the same order on each successive +occasion, and are for the most part incapable of changing that +order.</p> +<p>The introduction of slightly new elements into our manner is +attended with benefit; the new can be fused with the old, and the +monotony of our action is relieved. But if the new element +is too foreign, we cannot fuse the old and new—nature +seeming equally to hate too wide a deviation from our ordinary +practice, and no deviation at all. Or, in plain +English—if any one gives us a new idea which is not too far +ahead of us, such an idea is often of great service to us, and +may give new life to our work—in fact, we soon go back, +unless we more or less frequently come into contact with new +ideas, and are capable of understanding and making use of them; +if; on the other hand, they are too new, and too little led up +to, so that we find them too strange and hard to be able to +understand them and adopt them, then they put us out, with every +degree of completeness—from simply causing us to fail in +this or that particular part, to rendering us incapable of even +trying to do our work at all, from pure despair of +succeeding.</p> +<p>It requires many repetitions to fix an impression firmly; but +when it is fixed, we cease to have much recollection of the +manner in which it came to be so, or of any single and particular +recurrence.</p> +<p>Our memory is mainly called into action by force of +association and similarity in the surroundings. We want to +go on doing what we did when we were last as we are now, and we +forget what we did in the meantime.</p> +<p>These rules, however, are liable to many exceptions; as for +example, that a single and apparently not very extraordinary +occurrence may sometimes produce a lasting impression, and be +liable to return with sudden force at some distant time, and then +to go on returning to us at intervals. Some incidents, in +fact, we know not how nor why, dwell with us much longer than +others which were apparently quite as noteworthy or perhaps more +so.</p> +<p>Now I submit that if the above observations are just, and if, +also, the offspring, after having become a new and separate +personality, yet retains so much of the old identity of which it +was once indisputably part, that it remembers what it did when it +was part of that identity as soon as it finds itself in +circumstances which are calculated to refresh its memory owing to +their similarity to certain antecedent ones, then we should +expect to find:—</p> +<p>I. That offspring should, as a general rule, resemble +its own most immediate progenitors; that is to say, that it +should remember best what it has been doing most recently. +The memory being a fusion of its recollections of what it did, +both when it was its father and also when it was its mother, the +offspring should have a very common tendency to resemble both +parents, the one in some respects, and the other in others; but +it might also hardly less commonly show a more marked +recollection of the one history than of the other, thus more +distinctly resembling one parent than the other. And this +is what we observe to be the case. Not only so far as that +the offspring is almost invariably either male or female, and +generally resembles rather the one parent than the other, but +also that in spite of such preponderance of one set of +recollections, the sexual characters and instincts of the +<i>opposite</i> sex appear, whether in male or female, though +undeveloped and incapable of development except by abnormal +treatment, such as has occasionally caused milk to be developed +in the mammary glands of males; or by mutilation, or failure of +sexual instinct through age, upon which, male characteristics +frequently appear in the females of any species.</p> +<p>Brothers and sisters, each giving their own version of the +same story, though in different words, should resemble each other +more closely than more distant relations. This too we +see.</p> +<p>But it should frequently happen that offspring should resemble +its penultimate rather than its latest phase, and should thus be +more like a grand-parent than a parent; for we observe that we +very often repeat a performance in a manner resembling that of +some earlier, but still recent, repetition; rather than on the +precise lines of our very last performance. First-cousins +may in this case resemble each other more closely than brothers +and sisters.</p> +<p>More especially, we should not expect very successful men to +be fathers of particularly gifted children; for the best men are, +as it were, the happy thoughts and successes of the +race—nature’s “flukes,” so to speak, in +her onward progress. No creature can repeat at will, and +immediately, its highest flight. It needs repose. The +generations are the essays of any given race towards the highest +ideal which it is as yet able to see ahead of itself, and this, +in the nature of things, cannot be very far; so that we should +expect to see success followed by more or less failure, and +failure by success—a very successful creature being a +<i>great</i> “fluke.” And this is what we +find.</p> +<p>In its earlier stages the embryo should be simply conscious of +a general method of procedure on the part of its forefathers, and +should, by reason of long practice, compress tedious and +complicated histories into a very narrow compass, remembering no +single performance in particular. For we observe this in +nature, both as regards the sleight-of-hand which practice gives +to those who are thoroughly familiar with their business, and +also as regards the fusion of remoter memories into a general +residuum.</p> +<p>II. We should expect to find that the offspring, whether +in its embryonic condition, or in any stage of development till +it has reached maturity, should adopt nearly the same order in +going through all its various stages. There should be such +slight variations as are inseparable from the repetition of any +performance by a living being (as contrasted with a machine), but +no more. And this is what actually happens. A man may +cut his wisdom-teeth a little later than he gets his beard and +whiskers, or a little earlier; but on the whole, he adheres to +his usual order, and is completely set off his balance, and upset +in his performance, if that order be interfered with +suddenly. It is, however, likely that gradual modifications +of order have been made and then adhered to.</p> +<p>After any animal has reached the period at which it ordinarily +begins to continue its race, we should expect that it should show +little further power of development, or, at any rate, that few +great changes of structure or fresh features should appear; for +we cannot suppose offspring to remember anything that happens to +the parent subsequently to the parent’s ceasing to contain +the offspring within itself; from the average age, therefore, of +reproduction, offspring would cease to have any further +experience on which to fall back, and would thus continue to make +the best use of what it already knew, till memory failing either +in one part or another, the organism would begin to decay.</p> +<p>To this cause must be referred the phenomena of old age, which +interesting subject I am unable to pursue within the limits of +this volume.</p> +<p>Those creatures who are longest in reaching maturity might be +expected also to be the longest lived; I am not certain, however, +how far what is called alternate generation militates against +this view, but I do not think it does so seriously.</p> +<p>Lateness of marriage, provided the constitution of the +individuals marrying is in no respect impaired, should also tend +to longevity.</p> +<p>I believe that all the above will be found sufficiently well +supported by facts. If so, when we feel that we are getting +old we should try and give our cells such treatment as they will +find it most easy to understand, through their experience of +their own individual life, which, however, can only guide them +inferentially, and to a very small extent; and throughout life we +should remember the important bearing which memory has upon +health, and both occasionally cross the memories of our component +cells with slightly new experiences, and be careful not to put +them either suddenly or for long together into conditions which +they will not be able to understand. Nothing is so likely +to make our cells forget themselves, as neglect of one or other +of these considerations. They will either fail to recognise +themselves completely, in which case we shall die; or they will +go on strike, more or less seriously as the case may be, or +perhaps, rather, they will try and remember their usual course, +and fail; they will therefore try some other, and will probably +make a mess of it, as people generally do when they try to do +things which they do not understand, unless indeed they have very +exceptional capacity.</p> +<p>It also follows that when we are ill, our cells being in such +or such a state of mind, and inclined to hold a corresponding +opinion with more or less unreasoning violence, should not be +puzzled more than they are puzzled already, by being contradicted +too suddenly; for they will not be in a frame of mind which can +understand the position of an open opponent: they should +therefore either be let alone, if possible, without notice other +than dignified silence, till their spleen is over, and till they +have remembered themselves; or they should be reasoned with as by +one who agrees with them, and who is anxious to see things as far +as possible from their own point of view. And this is how +experience teaches that we must deal with monomaniacs, whom we +simply infuriate by contradiction, but whose delusion we can +sometimes persuade to hang itself if we but give it sufficient +rope. All which has its bearing upon politics, too, at much +sacrifice, it may be, of political principles, but a politician +who cannot see principles where principle-mongers fail to see +them, is a dangerous person.</p> +<p>I may say, in passing, that the reason why a small wound +heals, and leaves no scar, while a larger one leaves a mark which +is more or less permanent, may be looked for in the fact that +when the wound is only small, the damaged cells are snubbed, so +to speak, by the vast majority of the unhurt cells in their own +neighbourhood. When the wound is more serious they can +stick to it, and bear each other out that they were hurt.</p> +<p>III. We should expect to find a predominance of sexual +over asexual generation, in the arrangements of nature for +continuing her various species, inasmuch as two heads are better +than one, and a <i>locus pœnitentiæ</i> is thus given +to the embryo—an opportunity of correcting the experience +of one parent by that of the other. And this is what the +more intelligent embryos may be supposed to do; for there would +seem little reason to doubt that there are clever embryos and +stupid embryos, with better or worse memories, as the case may +be, of how they dealt with their protoplasm before, and better or +worse able to see how they can do better now; and that embryos +differ as widely in intellectual and moral capacity, and in a +general sense of the fitness of things, and of what will look +well into the bargain, as those larger embryos—to wit, +children—do. Indeed it would seem probable that all +our mental powers must go through a quasi-embryological +condition, much as the power of keeping, and wisely spending, +money must do so, and that all the qualities of human thought and +character are to be found in the embryo.</p> +<p>Those who have observed at what an early age differences of +intellect and temper show themselves in the young, for example, +of cats and dogs, will find it difficult to doubt that from the +very moment of impregnation, and onward, there has been a +corresponding difference in the embryo—and that of six +unborn puppies, one, we will say, has been throughout the whole +process of development more sensible and better looking—a +nicer embryo, in fact—than the others.</p> +<p>IV. We should expect to find that all species, whether +of plants or animals, are occasionally benefited by a cross; but +we should also expect that a cross should have a tendency to +introduce a disturbing element, if it be too wide, inasmuch as +the offspring would be pulled hither and thither by two +conflicting memories or advices, much as though a number of +people speaking at once were without previous warning to advise +an unhappy performer to vary his ordinary performance—one +set of people telling him he has always hitherto done thus, and +the other saying no less loudly that he did it thus;—and he +were suddenly to become convinced that they each spoke the +truth. In such a case he will either completely break down, +if the advice be too conflicting, or if it be less conflicting, +he may yet be so exhausted by the one supreme effort of fusing +these experiences that he will never be able to perform again; or +if the conflict of experience be not great enough to produce such +a permanent effect as this, it will yet, if it be at all serious, +probably damage his performances on their next several occasions, +through his inability to fuse the experiences into a harmonious +whole, or, in other words, to understand the ideas which are +prescribed to him; for to fuse is only to understand.</p> +<p>And this is absolutely what we find in fact. Mr. Darwin +writes concerning hybrids and first crosses:—“The +male element may reach the female element, but be incapable of +causing an embryo to be developed, as seems to have been the case +with some of Thuret’s experiments on Fuci. No +explanation can be given of these facts any more than why certain +trees cannot be grafted on others.”</p> +<p>I submit that what I have written above supplies a very fair +<i>primâ facie</i> explanation.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin continues:—</p> +<p>“Lastly, an embryo may be developed, and then perish at +an early period. This latter alternative has not been +sufficiently attended to; but I believe, from observations +communicated to me by Mr. Hewitt, who has had great experience in +hybridising pheasants and fowls, that the early death of the +embryo is a very frequent cause of sterility in first +crosses. Mr. Salter has recently given the results of an +examination of about five hundred eggs produced from various +crosses between three species of Gallus and their hybrids; the +majority of these eggs had been fertilised; and in the majority +of the fertilised eggs, the embryos had either been partially +developed, and had then perished, or had become nearly mature, +but the young chickens had been unable to break through the +shell. Of the chickens which were born more than +four-fifths died within the first few days, or at latest weeks, +‘without any obvious cause, apparently from mere inability +to live,’ so that from the five hundred eggs only twelve +chickens were reared” (“Origin of Species,” +249, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>No wonder the poor creatures died, distracted as they were by +the internal tumult of conflicting memories. But they must +have suffered greatly; and the Society for the Prevention of +Cruelty to Animals may perhaps think it worth while to keep an +eye even on the embryos of hybrids and first crosses. Five +hundred creatures puzzled to death is not a pleasant subject for +contemplation. Ten or a dozen should, I think, be +sufficient for the future.</p> +<p>As regards plants, we read:—</p> +<p>“Hybridised embryos probably often perish in like manner +. . . of which fact Max Wichura has given some striking cases +with hybrid willows . . . It may be here worth noticing, that in +some cases of parthenogenesis, the embryos within the eggs of +silk moths, which have not been fertilised, pass through their +early stages of development, and then perish like the embryos +produced by a cross between distinct species” +(<i>Ibid</i>).</p> +<p>This last fact would at first sight seem to make against me, +but we must consider that the presence of a double memory, +provided it be not too conflicting, would be a part of the +experience of the silk moth’s egg, which might be then as +fatally puzzled by the monotony of a single memory as it would be +by two memories which were not sufficiently like each +other. So that failure here must be referred to the utter +absence of that little internal stimulant of slightly conflicting +memory which the creature has always hitherto experienced, and +without which it fails to recognise itself. In either case, +then, whether with hybrids or in cases of parthenogenesis, the +early death of the embryo is due to inability to recollect, owing +to a fault in the chain of associated ideas. All the facts +here given are an excellent illustration of the principle, +elsewhere insisted upon by Mr. Darwin, that <i>any</i> great and +sudden change of surroundings has a tendency to induce sterility; +on which head he writes (“Plants and Animals under +Domestication,” vol. ii. p. 143, ed. 1875):—</p> +<p>“It would appear that any change in the habits of life, +whatever their habits may be, if great enough, tends to affect in +an inexplicable manner the powers of reproduction.”</p> +<p>And again on the next page:—</p> +<p>“Finally, we must conclude, limited though the +conclusion is, that changed conditions of life have an especial +power of acting injuriously on the reproductive system. The +whole case is quite peculiar, for these organs, though not +diseased, are thus rendered incapable of performing their proper +functions, or perform them imperfectly.”</p> +<p>One is inclined to doubt whether the blame may not rest with +the inability on the part of the creature reproduced to recognise +the new surroundings, and hence with its failing to know +itself. And this seems to be in some measure +supported—but not in such a manner as I can hold to be +quite satisfactory—by the continuation of the passage in +the “Origin of Species,” from which I have just been +quoting—for Mr. Darwin goes on to say:—</p> +<p>“Hybrids, however, are differently circumstanced before +and after birth. When born, and living in a country where +their parents live, they are generally placed under suitable +conditions of life. But a hybrid partakes of only half of +the nature and condition of its mother; it may therefore before +birth, as long as it is nourished within its mother’s womb, +or within the egg or seed produced by its mother, be exposed to +conditions in some degree unsuitable, and consequently be liable +to perish at an early period . . . ” After which, +however, the conclusion arrived at is, that, “after all, +the cause more probably lies in some imperfection in the original +act of impregnation, causing the embryo to be imperfectly +developed rather than in the conditions to which it is +subsequently exposed.” A conclusion which I am not +prepared to accept.</p> +<p>Returning to my second alternative, that is to say, to the +case of hybrids which are born well developed and healthy, but +nevertheless perfectly sterile, it is less obvious why, having +succeeded in understanding the conflicting memories of their +parents, they should fail to produce offspring; but I do not +think the reader will feel surprised that this should be the +case. The following anecdote, true or false, may not be out +of place here:—</p> +<p>“Plutarch tells us of a magpie, belonging to a barber at +Rome, which could imitate to a nicety almost every word it +heard. Some trumpets happened one day to be sounded before +the shop, and for a day or two afterwards the magpie was quite +mute, and seemed pensive and melancholy. All who knew it +were greatly surprised at its silence; and it was supposed that +the sound of the trumpets had so stunned it as to deprive it at +once of both voice and hearing. It soon appeared, however, +that this was far from being the case; for, says Plutarch, the +bird had been all the time occupied in profound meditation, +studying how to imitate the sound of the trumpets; and when at +last master of it, the magpie, to the astonishment of all its +friends, suddenly broke its long silence by a perfect imitation +of the flourish of trumpets it had heard, observing with the +greatest exactness all the repetitions, stops, and changes. +<i>The acquisition of this lesson had</i>, <i>however</i>, +<i>exhausted the whole of the magpie’s stock of +intellect</i>, <i>for it made it forget everything it had learned +before</i>” (“Percy Anecdotes,” Instinct, p. +166).</p> +<p>Or, perhaps, more seriously, the memory of every impregnate +ovum from which every ancestor of a mule, for example, has +sprung, has reverted to a very long period of time during which +its forefathers have been creatures like that which it is itself +now going to become: thus, the impregnate ovum from which the +mule’s father was developed remembered nothing but horse +memories; but it felt its faith in these supported by the +recollection of a <i>vast number</i> of previous generations, in +which it was, to all intents and purposes, what it now is. +In like manner, the impregnate ovum from which the mule’s +mother was developed would be backed by the assurance that it had +done what it is going to do now a hundred thousand times +already. All would thus be plain sailing. A horse and +a donkey would result. These two are brought together; an +impregnate ovum is produced which finds an unusual conflict of +memory between the two lines of its ancestors, nevertheless, +being accustomed to <i>some</i> conflict, it manages to get over +the difficulty, <i>as on either side it finds itself backed by a +very long series of sufficiently steady memory</i>. A mule +results—a creature so distinctly different from either +horse or donkey, that reproduction is baffled, owing to the +creature’s having nothing but its own knowledge of itself +to fall back upon, behind which there comes an immediate +dislocation, or fault of memory, which is sufficient to bar +identity, and hence reproduction, by rendering too severe an +appeal to reason necessary—for no creature can reproduce +itself on the shallow foundation which reason can alone +give. Ordinarily, therefore, the hybrid, or the +spermatozoon or ovum, which it may throw off (as the case may +be), finds one single experience too small to give it the +necessary faith, on the strength of which even to try to +reproduce itself. In other cases the hybrid itself has +failed to be developed; in others the hybrid, or first cross, is +almost fertile; in others it is fertile, but produces depraved +issue. The result will vary with the capacities of the +creatures crossed, and the amount of conflict between their +several experiences.</p> +<p>The above view would remove all difficulties out of the way of +evolution, in so far as the sterility of hybrids is +concerned. For it would thus appear that this sterility has +nothing to do with any supposed immutable or fixed limits of +species, but results simply from the same principle which +prevents old friends, no matter how intimate in youth, from +returning to their old intimacy after a lapse of years, during +which they have been subjected to widely different influences, +inasmuch as they will each have contracted new habits, and have +got into new ways, which they do not like now to alter.</p> +<p>We should expect that our domesticated plants and animals +should vary most, inasmuch as these have been subjected to +changed conditions which would disturb the memory, and, breaking +the chain of recollection, through failure of some one or other +of the associated ideas, would thus directly and most markedly +affect the reproductive system. Every reader of Mr. Darwin +will know that this is what actually happens, and also that when +once a plant or animal begins to vary, it will probably vary a +good deal further; which, again, is what we should +expect—the disturbance of the memory introducing a fresh +factor of disturbance, which has to be dealt with by the +offspring as it best may. Mr. Darwin writes: “All our +domesticated productions, with the rarest exceptions, vary far +more than natural species” (“Plants and +Animals,” &c., vol. ii. p. 241, ed. 1875).</p> +<p>On my third supposition, <i>i.e.</i>, when the difference +between parents has not been great enough to baffle reproduction +on the part of the first cross, but when the histories of the +father and mother have been, nevertheless, widely +different—as in the case of Europeans and Indians—we +should expect to have a race of offspring who should seem to be +quite clear only about those points, on which their progenitors +on both sides were in accord before the manifold divergencies in +their experiences commenced; that is to say, the offspring should +show a tendency to revert to an early savage condition.</p> +<p>That this indeed occurs may be seen from Mr. Darwin’s +“Plants and Animals under Domestication” (vol. ii. p. +21, ed. 1875), where we find that travellers in all parts of the +world have frequently remarked “<i>on the degraded state +and savage condition of crossed races of man</i>.” A +few lines lower down Mr. Darwin tells us that he was himself +“struck with the fact that, in South America, men of +complicated descent between Negroes, Indians, and Spaniards +seldom had, whatever the cause might be, a good +expression.” “Livingstone” (continues Mr. +Darwin) “remarks, ‘It is unaccountable why +half-castes are so much more cruel than the Portuguese, but such +is undoubtedly the case.’ An inhabitant remarked to +Livingstone, ‘God made white men, and God made black men, +but the devil made half-castes.’” A little +further on Mr. Darwin says that we may “perhaps infer that +the degraded state of so many half-castes <i>is in part due to +reversion to a primitive and savage condition</i>, <i>induced by +the act of crossing</i>, even if mainly due to the unfavourable +moral conditions under which they are generally +reared.” Why the crossing should produce this +particular tendency would seem to be intelligible enough, if the +fashion and instincts of offspring are, in any case, nothing but +the memories of its past existences; but it would hardly seem to +be so upon any of the theories now generally accepted; as, +indeed, is very readily admitted by Mr. Darwin himself, who even, +as regards purely-bred animals and plants, remarks that “we +are quite unable to assign any proximate cause” for their +tendency to at times reassume long lost characters.</p> +<p>If the reader will follow for himself the remaining phenomena +of reversion, he will, I believe, find them all explicable on the +theory that they are due to memory of past experiences fused, and +modified—at times specifically and definitely—by +changed conditions. There is, however, one apparently very +important phenomenon which I do not at this moment see how to +connect with memory, namely, the tendency on the part of +offspring to revert to an earlier impregnation. Mr. +Darwin’s “Provisional Theory of Pangenesis” +seemed to afford a satisfactory explanation of this; but the +connection with memory was not immediately apparent. I +think it likely, however, that this difficulty will vanish on +further consideration, so I will not do more than call attention +to it here.</p> +<p>The instincts of certain neuter insects hardly bear upon +reversion, but will be dealt with at some length in Chapter +XII.</p> +<p>V. We should expect to find, as was insisted on in the +preceding section in reference to the sterility of hybrids, that +it required many, or at any rate several, generations of changed +habits before a sufficiently deep impression could be made upon +the living being (who must be regarded always as one person in +his whole line of ascent or descent) for it to be unconsciously +remembered by him, when making himself anew in any succeeding +generation, and thus to make him modify his method of procedure +during his next embryological development. Nevertheless, we +should expect to find that sometimes a very deep single +impression made upon a living organism, should be remembered by +it, even when it is next in an embryonic condition.</p> +<p>That this is so, we find from Mr. Darwin, who writes +(“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” vol. ii. +p. 57, ed. 1875)—“There is ample evidence that the +effect of mutilations and of accidents, especially, or perhaps +exclusively, when followed by disease” (which would +certainly intensify the impression made), “are occasionally +inherited. There can be no doubt that the evil effects of +the long continued exposure of the parent to injurious conditions +are sometimes transmitted to the offspring.” As +regards impressions of a less striking character, it is so +universally admitted that they are not observed to be repeated in +what is called the offspring, until they have been confirmed in +what is called the parent, for several generations, but that +after several generations, more or fewer as the case may be, they +often are transmitted—that it seems unnecessary to say more +upon the matter. Perhaps, however, the following passage +from Mr. Darwin may be admitted as conclusive:—</p> +<p>“That they” (acquired actions) “are +inherited, we see with horses in certain transmitted paces, such +as cantering and ambling, which are not natural to them—in +the pointing of young pointers, and the setting of young +setters—in the peculiar manner of flight of certain breeds +of the pigeon, &c. We have analogous cases with mankind +in the inheritance of tricks or unusual gestures.” . . . +(“Expression of the Emotions,” p. 29).</p> +<p>In another place Mr. Darwin writes:—</p> +<p>“How again can we explain <i>the inherited effects</i> +of the use or disuse of particular organs? The domesticated +duck flies less and walks more than the wild duck, and its limb +bones have become diminished and increased in a corresponding +manner in comparison with those of the wild duck. A horse +is trained to certain paces, and the colt inherits similar +consensual movements. The domesticated rabbit becomes tame +from close confinement; the dog intelligent from associating with +man; the retriever is taught to fetch and carry; and these mental +endowments and bodily powers are all inherited” +(“Plants and Animals,” &c., vol. ii. p. 367, ed. +1875).</p> +<p>“Nothing,” he continues, “in the whole +circuit of physiology is more wonderful. How can the use or +disuse of a particular limb, or of the brain, affect a small +aggregate of reproductive cells, seated in a distant part of the +body in such a manner that the being developed from these cells +inherits the character of one or both parents? Even an +imperfect answer to this question would be satisfactory” +(“Plants and Animals,” &c. vol. ii. p. 367, ed. +1875).</p> +<p>With such an imperfect answer will I attempt to satisfy the +reader, as to say that there appears to be that kind of +continuity of existence and sameness of personality, between +parents and offspring, which would lead us to expect that the +impressions made upon the parent should be epitomised in the +offspring, when they have been or have become important enough, +through repetition in the history of several so-called existences +to have earned a place in that smaller edition, which is issued +from generation to generation; or, in other words, when they have +been made so deeply, either at one blow or through many, that the +offspring can remember them. In practice we observe this to +be the case—so that the answer lies in the assertion that +offspring and parent, being in one sense but the same individual, +there is no great wonder that, in one sense, the first should +remember what had happened to the latter; and that too, much in +the same way as the individual remembers the events in the +earlier history of what he calls his own lifetime, but condensed, +and pruned of detail, and remembered as by one who has had a host +of other matters to attend to in the interim.</p> +<p>It is thus easy to understand why such a rite as circumcision, +though practised during many ages, should have produced little, +if any, modification tending to make circumcision +unnecessary. On the view here supported such modification +would be more surprising than not, for unless the impression made +upon the parent was of a grave character—and probably +unless also aggravated by subsequent confusion of memories in the +cells surrounding the part originally impressed—the parent +himself would not be sufficiently impressed to prevent him from +reproducing himself, as he had already done upon an infinite +number of past occasions. The child, therefore, in the womb +would do what the father in the womb had done before him, nor +should any trace of memory concerning circumcision be expected +till the eighth day after birth, when, but for the fact that the +impression in this case is forgotten almost as soon as made, some +slight presentiment of coming discomfort might, after a large +number of generations, perhaps be looked for as a general +rule. It would not, however, be surprising, that the effect +of circumcision should be occasionally inherited, and it would +appear as though this was sometimes actually the case.</p> +<p>The question should turn upon whether the disuse of an organ +has arisen:—</p> +<p>1. From an internal desire on the part of the creature +disusing it, to be quit of an organ which it finds +troublesome.</p> +<p>2. From changed conditions and habits which render the +organ no longer necessary, or which lead the creature to lay +greater stress on certain other organs or modifications.</p> +<p>3. From the wish of others outside itself; the effect +produced in this case being perhaps neither very good nor very +bad for the individual, and resulting in no grave impression upon +the organism as a whole.</p> +<p>4. From a single deep impression on a parent, affecting +both himself as a whole, and gravely confusing the memories of +the cells to be reproduced, or his memories in respect of those +cells—according as one adopts Pangenesis and supposes a +memory to “run” each gemmule, or as one supposes one +memory to “run” the whole impregnate ovum—a +compromise between these two views being nevertheless perhaps +possible, inasmuch as the combined memories of all the cells may +possibly <i>be</i> the memory which “runs” the +impregnate ovum, just as we <i>are</i> ourselves the combination +of all our cells, each one of which is both autonomous, and also +takes its share in the central government. But within the +limits of this volume it is absolutely impossible for me to go +into this question.</p> +<p>In the first case—under which some instances which +belong more strictly to the fourth would sometimes, but rarely, +come—the organ should soon go, and sooner or later leave no +rudiment, though still perhaps to be found crossing the life of +the embryo, and then disappearing.</p> +<p>In the second it should go more slowly, and leave, it may be, +a rudimentary structure.</p> +<p>In the third it should show little or no sign of natural +decrease for a very long time.</p> +<p>In the fourth there may be absolute and total sterility, or +sterility in regard to the particular organ, or a scar which +shall show that the memory of the wound and of each step in the +process of healing has been remembered; or there may be simply +such disturbance in the reproduced organ as shall show a confused +recollection of injury. There may be infinite gradations +between the first and last of these possibilities.</p> +<p>I think that the facts, as given by Mr. Darwin (“Plants +and Animals,” &c., vol. i. pp. 466–472, ed. +1875), will bear out the above to the satisfaction of the +reader. I can, however, only quote the following +passage:—</p> +<p>“ . . . Brown Séquard has bred during thirty +years many thousand guinea-pigs, . . . nor has he ever seen a +guinea-pig born without toes which was not the offspring of +parents <i>which had gnawed off their own toes</i>, owing to the +sciatic nerve having been divided. Of this fact thirteen +instances were carefully recorded, and a greater number were +seen; yet Brown Séquard speaks of such cases as among the +rarer forms of inheritance. It is a still more interesting +fact—‘that the sciatic nerve in the congenitally +toeless animal has inherited the power of passing through <i>all +the different morbid states</i> which have occurred in one of its +parents <i>from the time of division</i> till after its reunion +with the peripheric end. It is not therefore the power of +simply performing an action which is inherited, but the power of +performing a whole series of actions in a certain +order.’”</p> +<p>I feel inclined to say it is not merely the original wound +that is remembered, but the whole process of cure which is now +accordingly repeated. Brown Séquard concludes, as +Mr. Darwin tells us, “that what is transmitted is the +morbid state of the nervous system,” due to the operation +performed on the parents.</p> +<p>A little lower down Mr. Darwin writes that Professor Rolleston +has given him two cases—“namely, of two men, one of +whom had his knee, and the other his cheek, severely cut, and +both had children born with exactly the same spot marked or +scarred.”</p> +<p>VI. When, however, an impression has once reached +transmission point—whether it be of the nature of a sudden +striking thought, which makes its mark deeply then and there, or +whether it be the result of smaller impressions repeated until +the nail, so to speak, has been driven home—we should +expect that it should be remembered by the offspring as something +which he has done all his life, and which he has therefore no +longer any occasion to learn; he will act, therefore, as people +say, <i>instinctively</i>. No matter how complex and +difficult the process, if the parents have done it sufficiently +often (that is to say, for a sufficient number of generations), +the offspring will remember the fact when association wakens the +memory; it will need no instruction, and—unless when it has +been taught to look for it during many generations—will +expect none. This may be seen in the case of the +humming-bird sphinx moth, which, as Mr. Darwin writes, +“shortly after its emergence from the cocoon, as shown by +the bloom on its unruffled scales, may be seen poised stationary +in the air with its long hair-like proboscis uncurled, and +inserted into the minute orifices of flowers; <i>and no one I +believe has ever seen</i> this moth learning to perform its +difficult task, which requires such unerring aim” +(“Expression of the Emotions,” p. 30).</p> +<p>And, indeed, when we consider that after a time the most +complex and difficult actions come to be performed by man without +the least effort or consciousness—that offspring cannot be +considered as anything but a continuation of the parent life, +whose past habits and experiences it epitomises when they have +been sufficiently often repeated to produce a lasting +impression—that consciousness of memory vanishes on the +memory’s becoming intense, as completely as the +consciousness of complex and difficult movements vanishes as soon +as they have been sufficiently practised—and finally, that +the real presence of memory is testified rather by performance of +the repeated action on recurrence of like surroundings, than by +consciousness of recollecting on the part of the +individual—so that not only should there be no reasonable +bar to our attributing the whole range of the more complex +instinctive actions, from first to last, to memory pure and +simple, no matter how marvellous they may be, but rather that +there is so much to compel us to do so, that we find it difficult +to conceive how any other view can have been ever +taken—when, I say, we consider all these facts, we should +rather feel surprise that the hawk and sparrow still teach their +offspring to fly, than that the humming-bird sphinx moth should +need no teacher.</p> +<p>The phenomena, then, which we observe are exactly those which +we should expect to find.</p> +<p>VII. We should also expect that the memory of animals, +as regards their earlier existences, was solely stimulated by +association. For we find, from Prof. Bain, that +“actions, sensations, and states of feeling occurring +together, or in close succession, tend to grow together or cohere +in such a way that when any one of them is afterwards presented +to the mind, the others are apt to be brought up in idea” +(“The Senses and the Intellect,” 2d ed. 1864, p. +332). And Prof. Huxley says (“Elementary Lessons in +Physiology,” 5th ed. 1872, p. 306), “It may be laid +down as a rule that if any two mental states be called up +together, or in succession, with due frequency and vividness, the +subsequent production of the one of them will suffice to call up +the other, <i>and that whether we desire it or +not</i>.” I would go one step further, and would say +not only whether we desire it or not, but <i>whether we are aware +that the idea has ever before been called up in our minds or +not</i>. I should say that I have quoted both the above +passages from Mr. Darwin’s “Expression of the +Emotions” (p. 30, ed. 1872).</p> +<p>We should, therefore, expect that when the offspring found +itself in the presence of objects which had called up such and +such ideas for a sufficient number of generations, that is to +say, “with due frequency and vividness”—it +being of the same age as its parents were, and generally in like +case as when the ideas were called up in the minds of the +parents—the same ideas should also be called up in the +minds of the offspring “<i>whether they desire it or +not</i>;” and, I would say also, “whether they +recognise the ideas as having ever before been present to them or +not.”</p> +<p>I think we might also expect that no other force, save that of +association, should have power to kindle, so to speak, into the +flame of action the atomic spark of memory, which we can alone +suppose to be transmitted from one generation to another.</p> +<p>That both plants and animals do as we should expect of them in +this respect is plain, not only from the performance of the most +intricate and difficult actions—difficult both physically +and intellectually—at an age, and under circumstances which +preclude all possibility of what we call instruction, but from +the fact that deviations from the parental instinct, or rather +the recurrence of a memory, unless in connection with the +accustomed train of associations, is of comparatively rare +occurrence; the result, commonly, of some one of the many +memories about which we know no more than we do of the memory +which enables a cat to find her way home after a hundred-mile +journey by train, and shut up in a hamper, or, perhaps even more +commonly, of abnormal treatment.</p> +<p>VIII. If, then, memory depends on association, we should +expect two corresponding phenomena in the case of plants and +animals—namely, that they should show a tendency to resume +feral habits on being turned wild after several generations of +domestication, and also that peculiarities should tend to show +themselves at a corresponding age in the offspring and in the +parents. As regards the tendency to resume feral habits, +Mr. Darwin, though apparently of opinion that the tendency to do +this has been much exaggerated, yet does not doubt that such a +tendency exists, as shown by well authenticated instances. +He writes: “It has been repeatedly asserted in the most +positive manner by various authors that feral animals and plants +invariably return to their primitive specific type.”</p> +<p>This shows, at any rate, that there is a considerable opinion +to this effect among observers generally.</p> +<p>He continues: “It is curious on what little evidence +this belief rests. Many of our domesticated animals could +not subsist in a wild state,”—so that there is no +knowing whether they would or would not revert. “In +several cases we do not know the aboriginal parent species, and +cannot tell whether or not there has been any close degree of +reversion.” So that here, too, there is at any rate +no evidence <i>against</i> the tendency; the conclusion, however, +is that, notwithstanding the deficiency of positive evidence to +warrant the general belief as to the force of the tendency, yet +“the simple fact of animals and plants becoming feral does +cause some tendency to revert to the primitive state,” and +he tells us that “when variously-coloured tame rabbits are +turned out in Europe, they generally re-acquire the colouring of +the wild animal;” “there can be no doubt,” he +says, “that this really does occur,” though he seems +inclined to account for it by the fact that oddly-coloured and +conspicuous animals would suffer much from beasts of prey and +from being easily shot. “The best known case of +reversion:” he continues, “and that on which the +widely-spread belief in its universality apparently rests, is +that of pigs. These animals have run wild in the West +Indies, South America, and the Falkland Islands, and have +everywhere re-acquired the dark colour, the thick bristles, and +great tusks of the wild boar; and the young have re-acquired +longitudinal stripes.” And on page 22 of +“Plants and Animals under Domestication” (vol. ii. +ed. 1875) we find that “the re-appearance of coloured, +longitudinal stripes on young feral pigs cannot be attributed to +the direct action of external conditions. In this case, and +in many others, we can only say that any change in the habits of +life apparently favours a tendency, inherent or latent, in the +species to return to the primitive state.” On which +one cannot but remark that though any change may favour such +tendency, yet the return to original habits and surroundings +appears to do so in a way so marked as not to be readily +referable to any other cause than that of association and +memory—the creature, in fact, having got into its old +groove, remembers it, and takes to all its old ways.</p> +<p>As regards the tendency to inherit changes (whether embryonic, +or during post-natal development as ordinarily observed in any +species), or peculiarities of habit or form which do not partake +of the nature of disease, it must be sufficient to refer the +reader to Mr. Darwin’s remarks upon this subject +(“Plants and Animals Under Domestication,” vol. ii. +pp. 51–57, ed. 1875). The existence of the tendency +is not likely to be denied. The instances given by Mr. +Darwin are strictly to the point as regards all ordinary +developmental and metamorphic changes, and even as regards +transmitted acquired actions, and tricks acquired before the time +when the offspring has issued from the body of the parent, or on +an average of many generations does so; but it cannot for a +moment be supposed that the offspring knows by inheritance +anything about what happens to the parent subsequently to the +offspring’s being born. Hence the appearance of +diseases in the offspring, at comparatively late periods in life, +but at the same age as, or earlier, than in the parents, must be +regarded as due to the fact that in each case the machine having +been made after the same pattern (which <i>is</i> due to memory), +is liable to have the same weak points, and to break down after a +similar amount of wear and tear; but after less wear and tear in +the case of the offspring than in that of the parent, because a +diseased organism is commonly a deteriorating organism, and if +repeated at all closely, and without repentance and amendment of +life, will be repeated for the worse. If we do not improve, +we grow worse. This, at least, is what we observe +daily.</p> +<p>Nor again can we believe, as some have fancifully imagined, +that the remembrance of any occurrence of which the effect has +been entirely, or almost entirely mental, should be remembered by +offspring with any definiteness. The intellect of the +offspring might be affected, for better or worse, by the general +nature of the intellectual employment of the parent; or a great +shock to a parent might destroy or weaken the intellect of the +offspring; but unless a deep impression were made upon the cells +of the body, and deepened by subsequent disease, we could not +expect it to be remembered with any definiteness, or +precision. We may talk as we will about mental pain, and +mental scars, but after all, the impressions they leave are +incomparably less durable than those made by an organic +lesion. It is probable, therefore, that the feeling which +so many have described, as though they remembered this or that in +some past existence, is purely imaginary, and due rather to +unconscious recognition of the fact that we certainly have lived +before, than to any actual occurrence corresponding to the +supposed recollection.</p> +<p>And lastly, we should look to find in the action of memory, as +between one generation and another, a reflection of the many +anomalies and exceptions to ordinary rules which we observe in +memory, so far as we can watch its action in what we call our own +single lives, and the single lives of others. We should +expect that reversion should be frequently capricious—that +is to say, give us more trouble to account for than we are either +able or willing to take. And assuredly we find it so in +fact. Mr. Darwin—from whom it is impossible to quote +too much or too fully, inasmuch as no one else can furnish such a +store of facts, so well arranged, and so above all suspicion of +either carelessness or want of candour—so that, however we +may differ from him, it is he himself who shows us how to do so, +and whose pupils we all are—Mr. Darwin writes: “In +every living being we may rest assured that a host of long-lost +characters lie ready to be evolved under proper conditions” +(does not one almost long to substitute the word +“memories” for the word +“characters?”) “How can we make +intelligible, and connect with other facts, this wonderful and +common capacity of reversion—this power of calling back to +life long-lost characters?” (“Plants and +Animals,” &c., vol. ii. p. 369, ed. 1875). Surely +the answer may be hazarded, that we shall be able to do so when +we can make intelligible the power of calling back to life +long-lost memories. But I grant that this answer holds out +no immediate prospect of a clear understanding.</p> +<p>One word more. Abundant facts are to be found which +point inevitably, as will appear more plainly in the following +chapter, in the direction of thinking that offspring inherits the +memories of its parents; but I know of no single fact which +suggests that parents are in the smallest degree affected (other +than sympathetically) by the memories of their offspring <i>after +that offspring has been born</i>. Whether the unborn +offspring affects the memory of the mother in some particulars, +and whether we have here the explanation of occasional reversion +to a previous impregnation, is a matter on which I should hardly +like to express an opinion now. Nor, again, can I find a +single fact which seems to indicate any memory of the parental +life on the part of offspring later than the average date of the +offspring’s quitting the body of the parent.</p> +<h2><a name="page198"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +198</span>CHAPTER XI.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">INSTINCT AS INHERITED MEMORY.</span></h2> +<p>I <span class="smcap">have</span> already alluded to M. +Ribot’s work on “Heredity,” from which I will +now take the following passages.</p> +<p>M. Ribot writes:—</p> +<p>“Instinct is innate, <i>i.e.</i>, <i>anterior to all +individual experience</i>.” This I deny on grounds +already abundantly apparent; but let it pass. +“Whereas intelligence is developed slowly by accumulated +experience, instinct is perfect from the first” +(“Heredity,” p. 14).</p> +<p>Obviously the memory of a habit or experience will not +commonly be transmitted to offspring in that perfection which is +called “instinct,” till the habit or experience has +been repeated in several generations with more or less +uniformity; for otherwise the impression made will not be strong +enough to endure through the busy and difficult task of +reproduction. This of course involves that the habit shall +have attained, as it were equilibrium with the creature’s +sense of its own needs, so that it shall have long seemed the +best course possible, leaving upon the whole and under ordinary +circumstances little further to be desired, and hence that it +should have been little varied during many generations. We +should expect that it would be transmitted in a more or less +partial, varying, imperfect, and intelligent condition before +equilibrium had been attained; it would, however, continually +tend towards equilibrium, for reasons which will appear more +fully later on.</p> +<p>When this stage has been reached, as regards any habit, the +creature will cease trying to improve; on which the repetition of +the habit will become stable, and hence become capable of more +unerring transmission—but at the same time improvement will +cease; the habit will become fixed, and be perhaps transmitted at +an earlier and earlier age, till it has reached that date of +manifestation which shall be found most agreeable to the other +habits of the creature. It will also be manifested, as a +matter of course, without further consciousness or reflection, +for people cannot be always opening up settled questions; if they +thought a matter over yesterday they cannot think it all over +again to-day, but will adopt for better or worse the conclusion +then reached; and this, too, even in spite sometimes of +considerable misgiving, that if they were to think still further +they could find a still better course. It is not, +therefore, to be expected that “instinct” should show +signs of that hesitating and tentative action which results from +knowledge that is still so imperfect as to be actively +self-conscious; nor yet that it should grow or vary, unless under +such changed conditions as shall baffle memory, and present the +alternative of either invention—that is to say, +variation—or death. But every instinct must have +poised through the laboriously intelligent stages through which +human civilisations <i>and mechanical inventions</i> are now +passing; and he who would study the origin of an instinct with +its development, partial transmission, further growth, further +transmission, approach to more unreflecting stability, and +finally, its perfection as an unerring and unerringly transmitted +instinct, must look to laws, customs, <i>and machinery</i> as his +best instructors. Customs and machines are instincts <i>and +organs</i> now in process of development; they will assuredly one +day reach the unconscious state of equilibrium which we observe +in the structures and instincts of bees and ants, and an approach +to which may be found among some savage nations. We may +reflect, however, not without pleasure, that this +condition—the true millennium—is still distant. +Nevertheless the ants and bees seem happy; perhaps more happy +than when so many social questions were in as hot discussion +among them, as other, and not dissimilar ones, will one day be +amongst ourselves.</p> +<p>And this, as will be apparent, opens up the whole question of +the stability of species, which we cannot follow further here, +than to say, that according to the balance of testimony, many +plants and animals do appear to have reached a phase of being +from which they are hard to move—that is to say, they will +die sooner than be at the pains of altering their +habits—true martyrs to their convictions. Such races +refuse to see changes in their surroundings as long as they can, +but when compelled to recognise them, they throw up the game +because they cannot and will not, or will not and cannot, +invent. And this is perfectly intelligible, for a race is +nothing but a long-lived individual, and like any individual, or +tribe of men whom we have yet observed, will have its special +capacities and its special limitations, though, as in the case of +the individual, so also with the race, it is exceedingly hard to +say what those limitations are, and why, having been able to go +so far, it should go no further. Every man and every race +is capable of education up to a certain point, but not to the +extent of being made from a sow’s ear into a silk +purse. The proximate cause of the limitation seems to lie +in the absence of the wish to go further; the presence or absence +of the wish will depend upon the nature and surroundings of the +individual, which is simply a way of saying that one can get no +further, but that as the song (with a slight alteration) +says:—</p> +<p class="poetry">“Some breeds do, and some breeds +don’t,<br /> +Some breeds will, but this breed won’t,<br /> +I tried very often to see if it would,<br /> +But it said it really couldn’t, and I don’t think it +could.”</p> +<p>It may perhaps be maintained, that with time and patience, one +might train a rather stupid plough-boy to understand the +differential calculus. This might be done with the help of +an inward desire on the part of the boy to learn, but never +otherwise. If the boy wants to learn or to improve +generally, he will do so in spite of every hindrance, till in +time he becomes a very different being from what he was +originally. If he does not want to learn, he will not do so +for any wish of another person. If he feels that he has the +power he will wish; or if he wishes, he will begin to think he +has the power, and try to fulfil his wishes; one cannot say which +comes first, for the power and the desire go always hand in hand, +or nearly so, and the whole business is nothing but a most +vicious circle from first to last. But it is plain that +there is more to be said on behalf of such circles than we have +been in the habit of thinking. Do what we will, we must +each one of us argue in a circle of our own, from which, so long +as we live at all, we can by no possibility escape. I am +not sure whether the frank acceptation and recognition of this +fact is not the best corrective for dogmatism that we are likely +to find.</p> +<p>We can understand that a pigeon might in the course of ages +grow to be a peacock if there was a persistent desire on the part +of the pigeon through all these ages to do so. We know very +well that this has not probably occurred in nature, inasmuch as +no pigeon is at all likely to wish to be very different from what +it is now. The idea of being anything very different from +what it now is, would be too wide a cross with the pigeon’s +other ideas for it to entertain it seriously. If the pigeon +had never seen a peacock, it would not be able to conceive the +idea, so as to be able to make towards it; if, on the other hand, +it had seen one, it would not probably either want to become one, +or think that it would be any use wanting seriously, even though +it were to feel a passing fancy to be so gorgeously arrayed; it +would therefore lack that faith without which no action, and with +which, every action, is possible.</p> +<p>That creatures have conceived the idea of making themselves +like other creatures or objects which it was to their advantage +or pleasure to resemble, will be believed by any one who turns to +Mr. Mivart’s “Genesis of Species,” where he +will find (chapter ii.) an account of some very showy South +American butterflies, which give out such a strong odour that +nothing will eat them, and which are hence mimicked both in +appearance and flight by a very different kind of butterfly; and, +again, we see that certain birds, without any particular desire +of gain, no sooner hear any sound than they begin to mimick it, +merely for the pleasure of mimicking; so we all enjoy to mimick, +or to hear good mimicry, so also monkeys imitate the actions +which they observe, from pure force of sympathy. To mimick, +or to wish to mimick, is doubtless often one of the first steps +towards varying in any given direction. Not less, in all +probability, than a full twenty per cent. of all the courage and +good nature now existing in the world, derives its origin, at no +very distant date, from a desire to appear courageous and +good-natured. And this suggests a work whose title should +be “On the Fine Arts as bearing on the Reproductive +System,” of which the title must suffice here.</p> +<p>Against faith, then, and desire, all the “natural +selection” in the world will not stop an amœba from +becoming an elephant, if a reasonable time be granted; without +the faith and the desire, neither “natural selection” +nor artificial breeding will be able to do much in the way of +modifying any structure. When we have once thoroughly +grasped the conception that we are all one creature, and that +each one of us is many millions of years old, so that all the +pigeons in the one line of an infinite number of generations are +still one pigeon only—then we can understand that a bird, +as different from a peacock as a pigeon is now, could yet have +wandered on and on, first this way and then that, doing what it +liked, and thought that it could do, till it found itself at +length a peacock; but we cannot believe either that a bird like a +pigeon should be able to apprehend any ideal so different from +itself as a peacock, and make towards it, or that man, having +wished to breed a bird anything like a peacock from a bird +anything like a pigeon, would be able to succeed in accumulating +accidental peacock-like variations till he had made the bird he +was in search of, no matter in what number of generations; much +less can we believe that the accumulation of small fortuitous +variations by “natural selection” could succeed +better. We can no more believe the above, than we can +believe that a wish outside a plough-boy could turn him into a +senior wrangler. The boy would prove to be too many for his +teacher, and so would the pigeon for its breeder.</p> +<p>I do not forget that artificial breeding has modified the +original type of the horse and the dog, till it has at length +produced the dray-horse and the greyhound; but in each case man +has had to get use and disuse—that is to say, the desires +of the animal itself—to help him.</p> +<p>We are led, then, to the conclusion that all races have what +for practical purposes may be considered as their limits, though +there is no saying what those limits are, nor indeed why, in +theory, there should be any limits at all, but only that there +are limits in practice. Races which vary considerably must +be considered as clever, but it may be speculative, people who +commonly have a genius in some special direction, as perhaps for +mimicry, perhaps for beauty, perhaps for music, perhaps for the +higher mathematics, but seldom in more than one or two +directions; while “inflexible organisations,” like +that of the goose, may be considered as belonging to people with +one idea, and the greater tendency of plants and animals to vary +under domestication may be reasonably compared with the effects +of culture and education: that is to say, may be referred to +increased range and variety of experience or perceptions, which +will either cause sterility, if they be too unfamiliar, so as to +be incapable of fusion with preceding ideas, and hence to bring +memory to a sudden fault, or will open the door for all manner of +further variation—the new ideas having suggested new trains +of thought, which a clever example of a clever race will be only +too eager to pursue.</p> +<p>Let us now return to M. Ribot. He writes (p. +14):—“The duckling hatched by the hen makes straight +for water.” In what conceivable way can we account +for this, except on the supposition that the duckling knows +perfectly well what it can, and what it cannot do with water, +owing to its recollection of what it did when it was still one +individuality with its parents, and hence, when it was a duckling +before?</p> +<p>“The squirrel, before it knows anything of winter, lays +up a store of nuts. A bird when hatched in a cage will, +when given its freedom, build for itself a nest like that of its +parents, out of the same materials, and of the same +shape.”</p> +<p>If this is not due to memory, even an imperfect explanation of +what else it can be due to, “would be +satisfactory.”</p> +<p>“Intelligence gropes about, tries this way and that, +misses its object, commits mistakes, and corrects +them.”</p> +<p>Yes. Because intelligence is of consciousness, and +consciousness is of attention, and attention is of uncertainty, +and uncertainty is of ignorance or want of consciousness. +Intelligence is not yet thoroughly up to its business.</p> +<p>“Instinct advances with a mechanical +certainty.”</p> +<p>Why mechanical? Should not “with apparent +certainty” suffice?</p> +<p>“Hence comes its unconscious character.”</p> +<p>But for the word “mechanical” this is true, and is +what we have been all along insisting on.</p> +<p>“It knows nothing either of ends, or of the means of +attaining them; it implies no comparison, judgment, or +choice.”</p> +<p>This is assumption. What is certain is that instinct +does not betray signs of self-consciousness as to its own +knowledge. It has dismissed reference to first principles, +and is no longer under the law, but under the grace of a settled +conviction.</p> +<p>“All seems directed by thought.”</p> +<p>Yes; because all <i>has been</i> in earlier existences +directed by thought.</p> +<p>“Without ever arriving at thought.”</p> +<p>Because it has <i>got past thought</i>, and though +“directed by thought” originally, is now travelling +in exactly the opposite direction. It is not likely to +reach thought again, till people get to know worse and worse how +to do things, the oftener they practise them.</p> +<p>“And if this phenomenon appear strange, it must be +observed that analogous states occur in ourselves. <i>All +that we do from habit—walking</i>, <i>writing</i>, <i>or +practising a mechanical act</i>, <i>for instance—all these +and many other very complex acts are performed without +consciousness</i>.</p> +<p>“Instinct appears stationary. It does not, like +intelligence, seem to grow and decay, to gain and to lose. +It does not improve.”</p> +<p>Naturally. For improvement can only as a general rule be +looked for along the line of latest development, that is to say, +in matters concerning which the creature is being still +consciously exercised. Older questions are settled, and the +solution must be accepted as final, for the question of living at +all would be reduced to an absurdity, if everything decided upon +one day was to be undecided again the next; as with painting or +music, so with life and politics, let every man be fully +persuaded in his own mind, for decision with wrong will be +commonly a better policy than indecision—I had almost added +with right; and a firm purpose with risk will be better than an +infirm one with temporary exemption from disaster. Every +race has made its great blunders, to which it has nevertheless +adhered, inasmuch as the corresponding modification of other +structures and instincts was found preferable to the revolution +which would be caused by a radical change of structure, with +consequent havoc among a legion of vested interests. +Rudimentary organs are, as has been often said, the survivals of +these interests—the signs of their peaceful and gradual +extinction as living faiths; they are also instances of the +difficulty of breaking through any cant or trick which we have +long practised, and which is not sufficiently troublesome to make +it a serious object with us to cure ourselves of the habit.</p> +<p>“If it does not remain perfectly invariable, at least it +only varies within very narrow limits; and though this question +has been warmly debated in our day, and is yet unsettled, we may +yet say that in instinct immutability is the law, variation the +exception.”</p> +<p>This is quite as it should be. Genius will occasionally +rise a little above convention, but with an old convention +immutability will be the rule.</p> +<p>“Such,” continues M. Ribot, “are the +admitted characters of instinct.”</p> +<p>Yes; but are they not also the admitted characters of actions +that are due to memory?</p> +<p>At the bottom of p. 15, M. Ribot quotes the following from Mr. +Darwin:—</p> +<p>“We have reason to believe that aboriginal habits are +long retained under domestication. Thus with the common +ass, we see signs of its original desert-life in its strong +dislike to cross the smallest stream of water, and in its +pleasure in rolling in the dust. The same strong dislike to +cross a stream is common to the camel which has been domesticated +from a very early period. Young pigs, though so tame, +sometimes squat when frightened, and then try to conceal +themselves, even in an open and bare place. Young turkeys, +and occasionally even young fowls, when the hen gives the +danger-cry, run away and try to hide themselves, like young +partridges or pheasants, in order that their mother may take +flight, of which she has lost the power. The musk duck in +its native country often perches and roosts on trees, and our +domesticated musk ducks, though sluggish birds, are fond of +perching on the tops of barns, walls, &c. . . . We know +that the dog, however well and regularly fed, often buries like +the fox any superfluous food; we see him turning round and round +on a carpet as if to trample down grass to form a bed. . . . In +the delight with which lambs and kids crowd together and frisk +upon the smallest hillock we see a vestige of their former alpine +habits.”</p> +<p>What does this delightful passage go to show, if not that the +young in all these cases must still have a latent memory of their +past existences, which is called into an active condition as soon +as the associated ideas present themselves?</p> +<p>Returning to M. Ribot’s own observations, we find he +tells us that it usually requires three or four generations to +fix the results of training, and to prevent a return to the +instincts of the wild state. I think, however, it would not +be presumptuous to suppose that if an animal after only three or +four generations of training be restored to its original +conditions of life, it will forget its intermediate training and +return to its old ways, almost as readily as a London street Arab +would forget the beneficial effects of a weeks training in a +reformatory school, if he were then turned loose again on the +streets. So if we hatch wild ducks’ eggs under a tame +duck, the ducklings “will have scarce left the egg-shell +when they obey the instincts of their race and take their +flight.” So the colts from wild horses, and mongrel +young between wild and domesticated horses, betray traces of +their earlier memories.</p> +<p>On this M. Ribot says: “Originally man had considerable +trouble in taming the animals which are now domesticated; and his +work would have been in vain had not heredity” (memory) +“come to his aid. It may be said that after man has +modified a wild animal to his will, there goes on in its progeny +a silent conflict between two heredities” (memories), +“the one tending to fix the acquired modifications and the +other to preserve the primitive instincts. The latter often +get the mastery, and only after several generations is training +sure of victory. But we may see that in either case +heredity” (memory) “always asserts its +rights.”</p> +<p>How marvellously is the above passage elucidated and made to +fit in with the results of our recognised experience, by the +simple substitution of the word “memory” for +“heredity.”</p> +<p>“Among the higher animals”—to continue +quoting—“which are possessed not only of instinct, +but also of intelligence, nothing is more common than to see +mental dispositions, which have evidently been acquired, so fixed +by heredity, that they are confounded with instinct, so +spontaneous and automatic do they become. Young pointers +have been known to point the first time they were taken out, +sometimes even better than dogs that had been for a long time in +training. The habit of saving life is hereditary in breeds +that have been brought up to it, as is also the shepherd +dog’s habit of moving around the flock and guarding +it.”</p> +<p>As soon as we have grasped the notion, that instinct is only +the epitome of past experience, revised, corrected, made perfect, +and learnt by rote, we no longer find any desire to separate +“instinct” from “mental dispositions, which +have evidently been acquired and fixed by heredity,” for +the simple reason that they are one and the same thing.</p> +<p>A few more examples are all that my limits will +allow—they abound on every side, and the difficulty lies +only in selecting—M. Ribot being to hand, I will venture to +lay him under still further contributions.</p> +<p>On page 19 we find:—“Knight has shown +experimentally the truth of the proverb, ‘a good hound is +bred so,’ he took every care that when the pups were first +taken into the field, they should receive no guidance from older +dogs; yet the very first day, one of the pups stood trembling +with anxiety, having his eyes fixed and all his muscles strained +<i>at the partridges which their parents had been trained to +point</i>. A spaniel belonging to a breed which had been +trained to woodcock-shooting, knew perfectly well from the first +how to act like an old dog, avoiding places where the ground was +frozen, and where it was, therefore, useless to seek the game, as +there was no scent. Finally, a young polecat terrier was +thrown into a state of great excitement the first time he ever +saw one of these animals, while a spaniel remained perfectly +calm.</p> +<p>“In South America, according to Roulin, dogs belonging +to a breed that has long been trained to the dangerous chase of +the peccary, when taken for the first time into the woods, know +the tactics to adopt quite as well as the old dogs, and that +without any instruction. Dogs of other races, and +unacquainted with the tactics, are killed at once, no matter how +strong they may be. The American greyhound, instead of +leaping at the stag, attacks him by the belly, and throws him +over, as his ancestors had been trained to do in hunting the +Indians.</p> +<p>“Thus, then, heredity transmits modification no less +than natural instincts.”</p> +<p>Should not this rather be—“thus, then, we see that +not only older and remoter habits, but habits which have been +practised for a comparatively small number of generations, may be +so deeply impressed on the individual that they may dwell in his +memory, surviving the so-called change of personality which he +undergoes in each successive generation”?</p> +<p>“There is, however, an important difference to be noted: +the heredity of instincts admits of no exceptions, while in that +of modifications there are many.”</p> +<p>It may be well doubted how far the heredity of instincts +admits of no exceptions; on the contrary, it would seem probable +that in many races geniuses have from time to time arisen who +remembered not only their past experiences, as far as action and +habit went, but have been able to rise in some degree above habit +where they felt that improvement was possible, and who carried +such improvement into further practice, by slightly modifying +their structure in the desired direction on the next occasion +that they had a chance of dealing with protoplasm at all. +It is by these rare instances of intellectual genius (and I would +add of moral genius, if many of the instincts and structures of +plants and animals did not show that they had got into a region +as far above morals—other than enlightened +self-interest—as they are above articulate consciousness of +their own aims in many other respects)—it is by these +instances of either rare good luck or rare genius that many +species have been, in all probability, originated or +modified. Nevertheless inappreciable modification of +instinct is, and ought to be, the rule.</p> +<p>As to M. Ribot’s assertion, that to the heredity of +modifications there are many exceptions, I readily agree with it, +and can only say that it is exactly what I should expect; the +lesson long since learnt by rote, and repeated in an infinite +number of generations, would be repeated unintelligently, and +with little or no difference, save from a rare accidental slip, +the effect of which would be the culling out of the bungler who +was guilty of it, or from the still rarer appearance of an +individual of real genius; while the newer lesson would be +repeated both with more hesitation and uncertainty, and with more +intelligence; and this is well conveyed in M. Ribot’s next +sentence, for he says—“It is only when variations +have been firmly rooted; when having become organic, they +constitute a second nature, which supplants the first; when, like +instinct, they have assumed a mechanical character, that they can +be transmitted.”</p> +<p>How nearly M. Ribot comes to the opinion which I myself +venture to propound will appear from the following further +quotation. After dealing with somnambulism, and saying, +that if somnambulism were permanent and innate, it would be +impossible to distinguish it from instinct, he +continues:—</p> +<p>“Hence it is less difficult than is generally supposed, +to conceive how intelligence may become instinct; we might even +say that, leaving out of consideration the character of +innateness, to which we will return, we have seen the +metamorphosis take place. <i>There can then be no ground +for making instinct a faculty apart</i>, <i>sui generis</i>, a +phenomenon so mysterious, so strange, that usually no other +explanation of it is offered but that of attributing it to the +direct act of the Deity. This whole mistake is the result +of a defective psychology which makes no account of the +unconscious activity of the soul.”</p> +<p>We are tempted to add—“and which also makes no +account of the <i>bonâ fide</i> character of the continued +personality of successive generations.”</p> +<p>“But we are so accustomed,” he continues, +“to contrast the characters of instinct with those of +intelligence—to say that instinct is innate, invariable, +automatic, while intelligence is something acquired, variable, +spontaneous—that it looks at first paradoxical to assert +that instinct and intelligence are identical.</p> +<p>“It is said that instinct is innate. But if, on +the one hand, we bear in mind that many instincts are acquired, +and that, according to a theory hereafter to be explained” +(which theory, I frankly confess, I never was able to get hold +of), “<i>all instincts are only hereditary +habits</i>” (italics mine); “if, on the other hand, +we observe that intelligence is in some sense held to be innate +by all modern schools of philosophy, which agree to reject the +theory of the <i>tabula rasa</i>” (if there is no <i>tabula +rasa</i>, there is continued psychological personality, or words +have lost their meaning), “and to accept either latent +ideas, or <i>à priori</i> forms of thought” (surely +only a periphrasis for continued personality and memory) +“or pre-ordination of the nervous system and of the +organism; <i>it will be seen that this character of innateness +does not constitute an absolute distinction between instinct and +intelligence</i>.</p> +<p>“It is true that intelligence is variable, but so also +is instinct, as we have seen. In winter, the Rhine beaver +plasters his wall to windward; once he was a builder, now a +burrower; once he lived in society, now he is solitary. +Intelligence itself can scarcely be more variable . . . instinct +may be modified, lost, reawakened.</p> +<p>“Although intelligence is, as a rule, conscious, it may +also become unconscious and automatic, without losing its +identity. Neither is instinct always so blind, so +mechanical, as is supposed, for at times it is at fault. +The wasp that has faultily trimmed a leaf of its paper begins +again. The bee only gives the hexagonal form to its cell +after many attempts and alterations. It is difficult to +believe that the loftier instincts” (and surely, then, the +more recent instincts) “of the higher animals are not +accompanied <i>by at least a confused consciousness</i>. +There is, therefore, no absolute distinction between instinct and +intelligence; there is not a single characteristic which, +seriously considered, remains the exclusive property of +either. The contrast established between instinctive acts +and intellectual acts is, nevertheless, perfectly true, but only +when we compare the extremes. <i>As instinct rises it +approaches intelligence—as intelligence descends it +approaches instinct</i>.”</p> +<p>M. Ribot and myself (if I may venture to say so) are +continually on the verge of coming to an understanding, when, at +the very moment that we seem most likely to do so, we fly, as it +were, to opposite poles. Surely the passage last quoted +should be, “As instinct falls,” <i>i.e.</i>, becomes +less and less certain of its ground, “it approaches +intelligence; as intelligence rises,” <i>i.e.</i>, becomes +more and more convinced of the truth and expediency of its +convictions—“it approaches instinct.”</p> +<p>Enough has been said to show that the opinions which I am +advancing are not new, but I have looked in vain for the +conclusions which, it appears to me, M. Ribot should draw from +his facts; throughout his interesting book I find the facts which +it would seem should have guided him to the conclusions, and +sometimes almost the conclusions themselves, but he never seems +quite to have reached them, nor has he arranged his facts so that +others are likely to deduce them, unless they had already arrived +at them by another road. I cannot, however, sufficiently +express my obligations to M. Ribot.</p> +<p>I cannot refrain from bringing forward a few more instances of +what I think must be considered by every reader as hereditary +memory. Sydney Smith writes:—</p> +<p>“Sir James Hall hatched some chickens in an oven. +Within a few minutes after the shell was broken, a spider was +turned loose before this very youthful brood; the destroyer of +flies had hardly proceeded more than a few inches, before he was +descried by one of these oven-born chickens, and, at one peck of +his bill, immediately devoured. This certainly was not +imitation. A female goat very near delivery died; Galen cut +out the young kid, and placed before it a bundle of hay, a bunch +of fruit, and a pan of milk; the young kid smelt to them all very +attentively, and then began to lap the milk. This was not +imitation. And what is commonly and rightly called +instinct, cannot be explained away, under the notion of its being +imitation” (Lecture xvii. on Moral Philosophy).</p> +<p>It cannot, indeed, be explained away under the notion of its +being imitation, but I think it may well be so under that of its +being memory.</p> +<p>Again, a little further on in the same lecture, as that above +quoted from, we find:—</p> +<p>“Ants and beavers lay up magazines. Where do they +get their knowledge that it will not be so easy to collect food +in rainy weather, as it is in summer? Men and women know +these things, because their grandpapas and grandmammas have told +them so. Ants hatched from the egg artificially, or birds +hatched in this manner, have all this knowledge by intuition, +without the smallest communication with any of their +relations. Now observe what the solitary wasp does; she +digs several holes in the sand, in each of which she deposits an +egg, though she certainly knows not (?) that an animal is +deposited in that egg, and still less that this animal must be +nourished with other animals. She collects a few green +flies, rolls them up neatly in several parcels (like Bologna +sausages), and stuffs one parcel into each hole where an egg is +deposited. When the wasp worm is hatched, it finds a store +of provision ready made; and what is most curious, the quantity +allotted to each is exactly sufficient to support it, till it +attains the period of wasphood, and can provide for itself. +This instinct of the parent wasp is the more remarkable as it +does not feed upon flesh itself. Here the little creature +has never seen its parent; for by the time it is born, the parent +is always eaten by sparrows; and yet, without the slightest +education, or previous experience, it does everything that the +parent did before it. Now the objectors to the doctrine of +instinct may say what they please, but young tailors have no +intuitive method of making pantaloons; a new-born mercer cannot +measure diaper; nature teaches a cook’s daughter nothing +about sippets. All these things require with us seven +years’ apprenticeship; but insects are like +Molière’s persons of quality—they know +everything (as Molière says), without having learnt +anything. ‘Les gens de qualité savent tout, +sans avoir rien appris.’”</p> +<p>How completely all difficulty vanishes from the facts so +pleasantly told in this passage when we bear in mind the true +nature of personal identity, the ordinary working of memory, and +the vanishing tendency of consciousness concerning what we know +exceedingly well.</p> +<p>My last instance I take from M. Ribot, who +writes:—“Gratiolet, in his <i>Anatomie +Comparèe du Système Nerveux</i>, states that an old +piece of wolf’s skin, with the hair all worn away, when set +before a little dog, threw the animal into convulsions of fear by +the slight scent attaching to it. The dog had never seen a +wolf, and we can only explain this alarm by the hereditary +transmission of certain sentiments, coupled with a certain +perception of the sense of smell” (“Heredity,” +p. 43).</p> +<p>I should prefer to say “we can only explain the alarm by +supposing that the smell of the wolf’s +skin”—the sense of smell being, as we all know, more +powerful to recall the ideas that have been associated with it +than any other sense—“brought up the ideas with which +it had been associated in the dog’s mind during many +previous existences”—he on smelling the wolf’s +skin remembering all about wolves perfectly well.</p> +<h2><a name="page220"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +220</span>CHAPTER XII.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">INSTINCTS OF NEUTER INSECTS.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">In</span> this chapter I will consider, as +briefly as possible, the strongest argument that I have been able +to discover against the supposition that instinct is chiefly due +to habit. I have said “the strongest argument;” +I should have said, the only argument that struck me as offering +on the face of it serious difficulties.</p> +<p>Turning, then, to Mr. Darwin’s chapter on instinct +(“Natural Selection,” ed. 1876, p. 205), we find +substantially much the same views as those taken at a later date +by M. Ribot, and referred to in the preceding chapter. Mr. +Darwin writes:—</p> +<p>“An action, which we ourselves require experience to +enable us to perform, when performed by an animal, more +especially a very young one, without experience, and when +performed by many animals in the same way without their knowing +for what purpose it is performed, is usually said to be +instinctive.”</p> +<p>The above should strictly be, “without their being +conscious of their own knowledge concerning the purpose for which +they act as they do;” and though some may say that the two +phrases come to the same thing, I think there is an important +difference, as what I propose distinguishes ignorance from +over-familiarity, both which states are alike unself-conscious, +though with widely different results.</p> +<p>“But I could show,” continues Mr. Darwin, +“that none of these characters are universal. A +little dose of judgement or reason, as Pierre Huber expresses it, +often comes into play even with animals low in the scale of +nature.</p> +<p>“Frederick Cuvier and several of the older +metaphysicians have compared instinct with habit.”</p> +<p>I would go further and would say, that instinct, in the great +majority of cases, is habit pure and simple, contracted +originally by some one or more individuals; practised, probably, +in a consciously intelligent manner during many successive lives, +until the habit has acquired the highest perfection which the +circumstances admitted; and, finally, so deeply impressed upon +the memory as to survive that effacement of minor impressions +which generally takes place in every fresh life-wave or +generation.</p> +<p>I would say, that unless the identity of offspring with their +parents be so far admitted that the children be allowed to +remember the deeper impressions engraved on the minds of those +who begot them, it is little less than trilling to talk, as so +many writers do, about inherited habit, or the experience of the +race, or, indeed, accumulated variations of instincts.</p> +<p>When an instinct is not habit, as resulting from memory pure +and simple, it is habit modified by some treatment, generally in +the youth or embryonic stages of the individual, which disturbs +his memory, and drives him on to some unusual course, inasmuch as +he cannot recognise and remember his usual one by reason of the +change now made in it. Habits and instincts, again, may be +modified by any important change in the condition of the parents, +which will then both affect the parent’s sense of his own +identity, and also create more or less fault, or dislocation of +memory, in the offspring immediately behind the memory of his +last life. Change of food may at times be sufficient to +create a specific modification—that is to say, to affect +all the individuals whose food is so changed, in one and the same +way—whether as regards structure or habit. Thus we +see that certain changes in food (and domicile), from those with +which its ancestors have been familiar, will disturb the memory +of a queen bee’s egg, and set it at such disadvantage as to +make it make itself into a neuter bee; but yet we find that the +larva thus partly aborted may have its memories restored to it, +if not already too much disturbed, and may thus return to its +condition as a queen bee, if it only again be restored to the +food and domicile, which its past memories can alone +remember.</p> +<p>So we see that opium, tobacco, alcohol, hasheesh, and tea +produce certain effects upon our own structure and +instincts. But though capable of modification, and of +specific modification, which may in time become inherited, and +hence resolve itself into a true instinct or settled question, +yet I maintain that the main bulk of the instinct (whether as +affecting structure or habits of life) will be derived from +memory pure and simple; the individual growing up in the shape he +does, and liking to do this or that when he is grown up, simply +from recollection of what he did last time, and of what on the +whole suited him.</p> +<p>For it must be remembered that a drug which should destroy +some one part at an early embryonic stage, and thus prevent it +from development, would prevent the creature from recognising the +surroundings which affected that part when he was last alive and +unmutilated, as being the same as his present surroundings. +He would be puzzled, for he would be viewing the position from a +different standpoint. If any important item in a number of +associated ideas disappears, the plot fails; and a great internal +change is an exceedingly important item. Life and things to +a creature so treated at an early embryonic stage would not be +life and things as he last remembered them; hence he would not be +able to do the same now as he did then; that is to say, he would +vary both in structure and instinct; but if the creature were +tolerably uniform to start with, and were treated in a tolerably +uniform way, we might expect the effect produced to be much the +same in all ordinary cases.</p> +<p>We see, also, that any important change in treatment and +surroundings, if not sufficient to kill, would and does tend to +produce not only variability but sterility, as part of the same +story and for the same reason—namely, default of memory; +this default will be of every degree of intensity, from total +failure, to a slight disturbance of memory as affecting some one +particular organ only; that is to say, from total sterility, to a +slight variation in an unimportant part. So that even +<i>the slightest conceivable variations should be referred to +changed conditions</i>, <i>external or internal</i>, <i>and to +their disturbing effects upon the memory</i>; and sterility, +without any apparent disease of the reproductive system, may be +referred not so much to special delicacy or susceptibility of the +organs of reproduction as to inability on the part of the +creature to know where it is, and to recognise itself as the same +creature which it has been accustomed to reproduce.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin thinks that the comparison of habit with instinct +gives “an accurate notion of the frame of mind under which +an instinctive action is performed, but not,” he thinks, +“of its origin.”</p> +<p>“How unconsciously,” Mr. Darwin continues, +“many habitual actions are performed, indeed not rarely in +direct opposition to our conscious will! Yet they may be +modified by the will or by reason. Habits easily become +associated with other habits, with certain periods of time and +states of body. When once acquired, they often remain +constant throughout life. Several other points of +resemblance between instincts and habits could be pointed +out. As in repeating a well-known song, so in instincts, +one action follows another by a sort of rhythm. If a person +be interrupted in a song or in repeating anything by rote, he is +generally forced to go back to recover the habitual train of +thought; so P. Huber found it was with a caterpillar, which makes +a very complicated hammock. For if he took a caterpillar +which had completed its hammock up to, say, the sixth stage of +construction, and put it into a hammock completed up only to the +third stage, the caterpillar simply re-performed the fourth, +fifth, and sixth stages of construction. If, however, a +caterpillar were taken out of a hammock made up, for instance, to +the third stage, and were put into one finished up to the sixth +stage, so that much of its work was already done for it, far from +deriving any benefit from this, it was much embarrassed, and in +order to complete its hammock, seemed forced to start from the +third stage, where it had left off, and thus tried to complete +the already finished work.”</p> +<p>I see I must have unconsciously taken my first chapter from +this passage, but it is immaterial. I owe Mr. Darwin much +more than this. I owe it to him that I believe in evolution +at all. I owe him for almost all the facts which have led +me to differ from him, and which I feel absolutely safe in taking +for granted, if he has advanced them. Nevertheless, I +believe that the conclusion arrived at in the passage which I +will next quote is a mistaken one, and that not a little only, +but fundamentally. I shall therefore venture to dispute +it.</p> +<p>The passage runs:—</p> +<p>“If we suppose any habitual action to become +inherited—and it can be shown that this does sometimes +happen—then the resemblance between what originally was a +habit and an instinct becomes so close as not to be +distinguished. . . . <i>But it would be a serious error to +suppose that the greater number of instincts have been acquired +by habit in one generation</i>, <i>and then transmitted by +inheritance to succeeding generations</i>. <i>It can be +clearly shown that the most wonderful instincts with which we are +acquainted—namely</i>, <i>those of the hive-bee and of many +ants</i>, <i>could not possibly have been acquired by +habit</i>.” (“Origin of Species,” p. 206, +ed. 1876.) The italics in this passage are mine.</p> +<p>No difficulty is opposed to my view (as I call it, for the +sake of brevity) by such an instinct as that of ants to milk +aphids. Such instincts may be supposed to have been +acquired in much the same way as the instinct of a farmer to keep +a cow. Accidental discovery of the fact that the excretion +was good, with “a little dose of judgement or reason” +from time to time appearing in an exceptionally clever ant, and +by him communicated to his fellows, till the habit was so +confirmed as to be capable of transmission in full +unself-consciousness (if indeed the instinct be unself-conscious +in this case), would, I think, explain this as readily as the +slow and gradual accumulations of instincts which had never +passed through the intelligent and self-conscious stage, but had +always prompted action without any idea of a why or a wherefore +on the part of the creature itself.</p> +<p>For it must be remembered, as I am afraid I have already +perhaps too often said, that even when we have got a slight +variation of instinct, due to some cause which we know nothing +about, but which I will not even for a moment call +“spontaneous”—a word that should be cut out of +every dictionary, or in some way branded as perhaps the most +misleading in the language—we cannot see how it comes to be +repeated in successive generations, so as to be capable of being +acted upon by “natural selection” and accumulated, +unless it be also capable of being remembered by the offspring of +the varying creature. It may be answered that we cannot +know anything about this, but that “like father like +son” is an ultimate fact in nature. I can only answer +that I never observe any “like father like son” +without the son’s both having had every opportunity of +remembering, and showing every symptom of having remembered, in +which case I decline to go further than memory (whatever memory +may be) as the cause of the phenomenon.</p> +<p>But besides inheritance, teaching must be admitted as a means +of at any rate modifying an instinct. We observe this in +our own case; and we know that animals have great powers of +communicating their ideas to one another, though their manner of +doing this is as incomprehensible by us as a plant’s +knowledge of chemistry, or the manner in which an amœba +makes its test, or a spider its web, without having gone through +a long course of mathematics. I think most readers will +allow that our early training and the theological systems of the +last eighteen hundred years are likely to have made us +involuntarily under-estimate the powers of animals low in the +scale of life, both as regards intelligence and the power of +communicating their ideas to one another; but even now we admit +that ants have great powers in this respect.</p> +<p>A habit, however, which is taught to the young or each +successive generation, by older members of the community who have +themselves received it by instruction, should surely rank as an +inherited habit, and be considered as due to memory, though +personal teaching be necessary to complete the inheritance.</p> +<p>An objection suggests itself that if such a habit as the +flight of birds, which seems to require a little personal +supervision and instruction before it is acquired perfectly, were +really due to memory, the need of instruction would after a time +cease, inasmuch as the creature would remember its past method of +procedure, and would thus come to need no more teaching. +The answer lies in the fact, that if a creature gets to depend +upon teaching and personal help for any matter, its memory will +make it look for such help on each repetition of the action; so +we see that no man’s memory will exert itself much until he +is thrown upon memory as his only resource. We may read a +page of a book a hundred times, but we do not remember it by +heart unless we have either cultivated our powers of learning to +repeat, or have taken pains to learn this particular page.</p> +<p>And whether we read from a book, or whether we repeat by +heart, the repetition is still due to memory; only in the one +case the memory is exerted to recall something which one saw only +half a second ago, and in the other, to recall something not seen +for a much longer period. So I imagine an instinct or habit +may be called an inherited habit, and assigned to memory, even +though the memory dates, not from the performance of the action +by the learner when he was actually part of the personality of +the teacher, but rather from a performance witnessed by, or +explained by the teacher to, the pupil at a period subsequent to +birth. In either case the habit is inherited in the sense +of being acquired in one generation, and transmitted with such +modifications as genius and experience may have suggested.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin would probably admit this without hesitation; when, +therefore, he says that certain instincts could not possibly have +been acquired by habit, he must mean that they could not, under +the circumstances, have been remembered by the pupil in the +person of the teacher, and that it would be a serious error to +suppose that the greater number of instincts can be thus +remembered. To which I assent readily so far as that it is +difficult (though not impossible) to see how some of the most +wonderful instincts of neuter ants and bees can be due to the +fact that the neuter ant or bee was ever in part, or in some +respects, another neuter ant or bee in a previous +generation. At the same time I maintain that this does not +militate against the supposition that both instinct and structure +are in the main due to memory. For the power of receiving +any communication, and acting on it, is due to memory; and the +neuter ant or bee may have received its lesson from another +neuter ant or bee, who had it from another and modified it; and +so back and back, till the foundation of the habit is reached, +and is found to present little more than the faintest family +likeness to its more complex descendant. Surely Mr. Darwin +cannot mean that it can be shewn that the wonderful instincts of +neuter ants and bees cannot have been acquired either, as above, +by instruction, or by some not immediately obvious form of +inherited transmission, but that they must be due to the fact +that the ant or bee is, as it were, such and such a machine, of +which if you touch such and such a spring, you will get a +corresponding action. If he does, he will find, so far as I +can see, no escape from a position very similar to the one which +I put into the mouth of the first of the two professors, who +dealt with the question of machinery in my earlier work, +“Erewhon,” and which I have since found that my great +namesake made fun of in the following lines:—</p> +<p class="poetry">. . . “They now begun<br /> +To spur their living engines on.<br /> +For as whipped tops and bandy’d balls,<br /> +The learned hold are animals:<br /> +So horses they affirm to be<br /> +Mere engines made by geometry,<br /> +And were invented first from engines<br /> +As Indian Britons were from Penguins.”</p> +<p style="text-align: right" +class="poetry">—<i>Hudibras</i>, Canto ii. line 53, +&c.</p> +<p>I can see, then, no difficulty in the development of the +ordinary so-called instincts, whether of ants or bees, or the +cuckoo, or any other animal, on the supposition that they were, +for the most part, intelligently acquired with more or less +labour, as the case may be, in much the same way as we see any +art or science now in process of acquisition among ourselves, but +were ultimately remembered by offspring, or communicated to +it. When the limits of the race’s capacity had been +attained (and most races seem to have their limits, +unsatisfactory though the expression may very fairly be +considered), or when the creature had got into a condition, so to +speak, of equilibrium with its surroundings, there would be no +new development of instincts, and the old ones would cease to be +improved, inasmuch as there would be no more reasoning or +difference of opinion concerning them. The race, therefore, +or species would remain in <i>statu quo</i> till either +domesticated, and so brought into contact with new ideas and +placed in changed conditions, or put under such pressure, in a +wild state, as should force it to further invention, or +extinguish it if incapable of rising to the occasion. That +instinct and structure may be acquired by practice in one or more +generations, and remembered in succeeding ones, is admitted by +Mr. Darwin, for he allows (“Origin of Species,” p. +206) that habitual action does sometimes become inherited, and, +though he does not seem to conceive of such action as due to +memory, yet it is inconceivable how it is inherited, if not as +the result of memory.</p> +<p>It must be admitted, however, that when we come to consider +the structures as well as the instincts of some of the neuter +insects, our difficulties seem greatly increased. The +neuter hive-bees have a cavity in their thighs in which to keep +the wax, which it is their business to collect; but the drones +and queen, which alone bear offspring, collect no wax, and +therefore neither want, nor have, any such cavity. The +neuter bees are also, if I understand rightly, furnished with a +proboscis or trunk for extracting honey from flowers, whereas the +fertile bees, who gather no honey, have no such proboscis. +Imagine, if the reader will, that the neuter bees differ still +more widely from the fertile ones; how, then, can they in any +sense be said to derive organs from their parents, which not one +of their parents for millions of generations has ever had? +How, again, can it be supposed that they transmit these organs to +the future neuter members of the community when they are +perfectly sterile?</p> +<p>One can understand that the young neuter bee might be taught +to make a hexagonal cell (though I have not found that any one +has seen the lesson being given) inasmuch as it does not make the +cell till after birth, and till after it has seen other neuter +bees who might tell it much in, <i>quâ</i> us, a very +little time; but we can hardly understand its growing a proboscis +before it could possibly want it, or preparing a cavity in its +thigh, to have it ready to put wax into, when none of its +predecessors had ever done so, by supposing oral communication, +during the larvahood. Nevertheless, it must not be +forgotten that bees seem to know secrets about reproduction, +which utterly baffle ourselves; for example, the queen bee +appears to know how to deposit male or female, eggs at will; and +this is a matter of almost inconceivable sociological importance, +denoting a corresponding amount of sociological and physiological +knowledge generally. It should not, then, surprise us if +the race should possess other secrets, whose working we are +unable to follow, or even detect at all.</p> +<p>Sydney Smith, indeed, writes:—</p> +<p>“The warmest admirers of honey, and the greatest friends +to bees, will never, I presume, contend that the young swarm, who +begin making honey three or four months after they are born, and +immediately construct these mathematical cells, should have +gained their geometrical knowledge as we gain ours, and in three +months’ time outstrip Mr. Maclaurin in mathematics as much +as they did in making honey. It would take a senior +wrangler at Cambridge ten hours a day for three years together to +know enough mathematics for the calculation of these problems, +with which not only every queen bee, but every undergraduate +grub, is acquainted the moment it is born.” This last +statement may be a little too strong, but it will at once occur +to the reader, that as we know the bees <i>do</i> surpass Mr. +Maclaurin in the power of making honey, they may also surpass him +in capacity for those branches of mathematics with which it has +been their business to be conversant during many millions of +years, and also in knowledge of physiology and psychology in so +far as the knowledge bears upon the interests of their own +community.</p> +<p>We know that the larva which develops into a neuter bee, and +that again which in time becomes a queen bee, are the same kind +of larva to start with; and that if you give one of these +larvæ the food and treatment which all its foremothers have +been accustomed to, it will turn out with all the structure and +instincts of its foremothers—and that it only fails to do +this because it has been fed, and otherwise treated, in such a +manner as not one of its foremothers was ever yet fed or +treated. So far, this is exactly what we should expect, on +the view that structure and instinct are alike mainly due to +memory, or to medicined memory. Give the larva a fair +chance of knowing where it is, and it shows that it remembers by +doing exactly what it did before. Give it a different kind +of food and house, and it cannot be expected to be anything else +than puzzled. It remembers a great deal. It comes out +a bee, and nothing but a bee; but it is an aborted bee; it is, in +fact, mutilated before birth instead of after—with +instinct, as well as growth, correlated to its abortion, as we +see happens frequently in the case of animals a good deal higher +than bees that have been mutilated at a stage much later than +that at which the abortion of neuter bees commences.</p> +<p>The larvæ being similar to start with, and being +similarly mutilated—i.e., by change of food and dwelling, +will naturally exhibit much similarity of instinct and structure +on arriving at maturity. When driven from their usual +course, they must take <i>some</i> new course or die. There +is nothing strange in the fact that similar beings puzzled +similarly should take a similar line of action. I grant, +however, that it is hard to see how change of food and treatment +can puzzle an insect into such “complex growth” as +that it should make a cavity in its thigh, grow an invaluable +proboscis, and betray a practical knowledge of difficult +mathematical problems.</p> +<p>But it must be remembered that the memory of having been queen +bees and drones—which is all that according to my +supposition the larvæ can remember, (on a first view of the +case), in their own proper persons—would nevertheless carry +with it a potential recollection of all the social arrangements +of the hive. They would thus potentially remember that the +mass of the bees were always neuter bees; they would remember +potentially the habits of these bees, so far as drones and queens +know anything about them; and this may be supposed to be a very +thorough acquaintance; in like manner, and with the same +limitation, they would know from the very moment that they left +the queen’s body that neuter bees had a proboscis to gather +honey with, and cavities in their thighs to put wax into, and +that cells were to be made with certain angles—for surely +it is not crediting the queen with more knowledge than she is +likely to possess, if we suppose her to have a fair acquaintance +with the phenomena of wax and cells generally, even though she +does not make any; they would know (while still +larvæ—and earlier) the kind of cells into which +neuter bees were commonly put, and the kind of treatment they +commonly received—they might therefore, as +eggs—immediately on finding their recollection driven from +its usual course, so that they must either find some other +course, or die—know that they were being treated as neuter +bees are treated, and that they were expected to develop into +neuter bees accordingly; they might know all this, and a great +deal more into the bargain, inasmuch as even before being +actually deposited as eggs they would know and remember +potentially, but unconsciously, all that their parents knew and +remembered intensely. Is it, then, astonishing that they +should adapt themselves so readily to the position which they +know it is for the social welfare of the community, and hence of +themselves, that they should occupy, and that they should know +that they will want a cavity in their thighs and a proboscis, and +hence make such implements out of their protoplasm as readily as +they make their wings?</p> +<p>I admit that, under normal treatment, none of the +above-mentioned potential memories would be kindled into such a +state of activity that action would follow upon them, until the +creature had attained a more or less similar condition to that in +which its parent was when these memories were active within its +mind: but the essence of the matter is, that these larvæ +have been treated <i>abnormally</i>, so that if they do not die, +there is nothing for it but that they must vary. One cannot +argue from the normal to the abnormal. It would not, then, +be strange if the potential memories should (owing to the margin +for premature or tardy development which association admits) +serve to give the puzzled larvæ a hint as to the course +which they had better take, or that, at any rate, it should +greatly supplement the instruction of the “nurse” +bees themselves by rendering the larvæ so, as it were, +inflammable on this point, that a spark should set them in a +blaze. Abortion is generally premature. Thus the +scars referred to in the last chapter as having appeared on the +children of men who had been correspondingly wounded, should not, +under normal circumstances, have appeared in the offspring till +the children had got fairly near the same condition generally as +that in which their fathers were when they were wounded, and even +then, normally, there should have been an instrument to wound +them, much as their fathers had been wounded. Association, +however, does not always stick to the letter of its bond.</p> +<p>The line, again, might certainly be taken that the difference +in structure and instincts between neuter and fertile bees is due +to the specific effects of certain food and treatment; yet, +though one would be sorry to set limits to the convertibility of +food and genius, it seems hard to believe that there can be any +untutored food which should teach a bee to make a hexagonal cell +as soon as it was born, or which, before it was born, should +teach it to prepare such structures as it would require in after +life. If, then, food be considered as a direct agent in +causing the structures and instinct, and not an indirect agent, +merely indicating to the larva itself that it is to make itself +after the fashion of neuter bees, then we should bear in mind +that, at any rate, it has been leavened and prepared in the +stomachs of those neuter bees into which the larva is now +expected to develop itself, and may thus have in it more true +germinative matter—gemmules, in fact—than is commonly +supposed. Food, when sufficiently assimilated (the whole +question turning upon what <i>is</i> “sufficiently”), +becomes stored with all the experience and memories of the +assimilating creature; corn becomes hen, and knows nothing but +hen, when hen has eaten it. We know also that the neuter +working-bees inject matter into the cell after the larva has been +produced; nor would it seem harsh to suppose that though devoid +of a reproductive system like that of their parents, they may yet +be practically not so neuter as is commonly believed. One +cannot say what gemmules of thigh and proboscis may not have got +into the neutral bees’ stomachs, if they assimilate their +food sufficiently, and thus into the larva.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin will be the first to admit that though a creature +have no reproductive system, in any ordinary sense of the word, +yet every unit or cell of its body may throw off gemmules which +may be free to move over every part of the whole organism, and +which “natural selection” might in time cause to +stray into food which had been sufficiently prepared in the +stomachs of the neuter bees.</p> +<p>I cannot say, then, precisely in what way, but I can see no +reason for doubting that in some of the ways suggested above, or +in some combination of them, the phenomena of the instincts of +neuter ants and bees can be brought into the same category as the +instincts and structure of fertile animals. At any rate, I +see the great fact that when treated as they have been accustomed +to be treated, these neuters act as though they remembered, and +accordingly become queen bees; and that they only depart from +their ancestral course on being treated in such fashion as their +ancestors can never have remembered; also, that when they have +been thrown off their accustomed line of thought and action, they +only take that of their nurses, who have been about them from the +moment of their being deposited as eggs by the queen bee, who +have fed them from their own bodies, and between whom and them +there may have been all manner of physical and mental +communication, of which we know no more than we do of the power +which enables a bee to find its way home after infinite shifting +and turning among flowers, which no human powers could +systematise so as to avoid confusion.</p> +<p>Or take it thus: We know that mutilation at an early age +produces an effect upon the structure and instincts of cattle, +sheep, and horses; and it might be presumed that if feasible at +an earlier age, it would produce a still more marked +effect. We observe that the effect produced is uniform, or +nearly so. Suppose mutilation to produce a little more +effect than it does, as we might easily do, if cattle, sheep, and +horses had been for ages accustomed to a mutilated class living +among them, which class had been always a caste apart, and had +fed the young neuters from their own bodies, from an early +embryonic stage onwards; would any one in this case dream of +advancing the structure and instincts of this mutilated class +against the doctrine that instinct is inherited habit? Or, +if inclined to do this, would he not at once refrain, on +remembering that the process of mutilation might be arrested, and +the embryo be developed into an entire animal by simply treating +it in the way to which all its ancestors had been +accustomed? Surely he would not allow the difficulty (which +I must admit in some measure to remain) to outweigh the evidence +derivable from these very neuter insects themselves, as well as +from such a vast number of other sources—all pointing in +the direction of instinct as inherited habit. <a +name="citation239"></a><a href="#footnote239" +class="citation">[239]</a></p> +<p>Lastly, it must be remembered that the instinct to make cells +and honey is one which has no very great hold upon its +possessors. Bees <i>can</i> make cells and honey, nor do +they seem to have any very violent objection to doing so; but it +is quite clear that there is nothing in their structure and +instincts which urges them on to do these things for the mere +love of doing them, as a hen is urged to sit upon a chalk stone, +concerning which she probably is at heart utterly sceptical, +rather than not sit at all. There is no honey and +cell-making instinct so strong as the instinct to eat, if they +are hungry, or to grow wings, and make themselves into bees at +all. Like ourselves, so long as they can get plenty to eat +and drink, they will do no work. Under these circumstances, +not one drop of honey nor one particle of wax will they collect, +except, I presume, to make cells for the rearing of their +young.</p> +<p>Sydney Smith writes:—</p> +<p>“The most curious instance of a change of instinct is +recorded by Darwin. The bees carried over to Barbadoes and +the Western Isles ceased to lay up any honey after the first +year, as they found it not useful to them. They found the +weather so fine, and materials for making honey so plentiful, +that they quitted their grave, prudent, and mercantile character, +became exceedingly profligate and debauched, ate up their +capital, resolved to work no more, and amused themselves by +flying about the sugar-houses and stinging the blacks” +(Lecture XVII. on Moral Philosophy). The ease, then, with +which the honey-gathering and cell-making habits are +relinquished, would seem to point strongly in the direction of +their acquisition at a comparatively late period of +development.</p> +<p>I have dealt with bees only, and not with ants, which would +perhaps seem to present greater difficulty, inasmuch as in some +families of these there are two, or even three, castes of neuters +with well-marked and wide differences of structure and instinct; +but I think the reader will agree with me that the ants are +sufficiently covered by the bees, and that enough, therefore, has +been said already. Mr. Darwin supposes that these +modifications of structure and instinct have been effected by the +accumulation of numerous slight, profitable, spontaneous +variations on the part of the fertile parents, which has caused +them (so, at least, I understand him) to lay this or that +particular kind of egg, which should develop into a kind of bee +or ant, with this or that particular instinct, which instinct is +merely a co-ordination with structure, and in no way attributable +to use or habit in preceding generations.</p> +<p>Even so, one cannot see that the habit of laying this +particular kind of egg might not be due to use and memory in +previous generations on the part of the fertile parents, +“for the numerous slight spontaneous variations,” on +which “natural selection” is to work, must have had +some cause than which none more reasonable than sense of need and +experience presents itself; and there seems hardly any limit to +what long-continued faith and desire, aided by intelligence, may +be able to effect. But if sense of need and experience are +denied, I see no escape from the view that machines are new +species of life.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin concludes: “I am surprised that no one has +hitherto advanced this demonstrative case of neuter insects +against the well-known doctrine of inherited habit as advanced by +Lamarck” (“Natural Selection,” p. 233, ed. +1876).</p> +<p>After reading this, one feels as though there was no more to +be said. The well-known doctrine of inherited habit, as +advanced by Lamarck, has indeed been long since so thoroughly +exploded, that it is not worth while to go into an explanation of +what it was, or to refute it in detail. Here, however, is +an argument against it, which is so much better than anything +advanced yet, that one is surprised it has never been made use +of; so we will just advance it, as it were, to slay the slain, +and pass on. Such, at least, is the effect which the +paragraph above quoted produced upon myself, and would, I think, +produce on the great majority of readers. When driven by +the exigencies of my own position to examine the value of the +demonstration more closely, I conclude, either that I have +utterly failed to grasp Mr. Darwin’s meaning, or that I +have no less completely mistaken the value and bearing of the +facts I have myself advanced in these few last pages. +Failing this, my surprise is, not that “no one has hitherto +advanced” the instincts of neuter insects as a +demonstrative case against the doctrine of inherited habit, but +rather that Mr. Darwin should have thought the case +demonstrative; or again, when I remember that the neuter working +bee is only an aborted queen, and may be turned back again into a +queen, by giving it such treatment as it can alone be expected to +remember—then I am surprised that the structure and +instincts of neuter bees has never (if never) been brought +forward in support of the doctrine of inherited habit as advanced +by Lamarck, and against any theory which would rob such instincts +of their foundation in intelligence, and of their connection with +experience and memory.</p> +<p>As for the instinct to mutilate, that is as easily accounted +for as any other inherited habit, whether of man to mutilate +cattle, or of ants to make slaves, or of birds to make their +nests. I can see no way of accounting for the existence of +any one of these instincts, except on the supposition that they +have arisen gradually, through perceptions of power and need on +the part of the animal which exhibits them—these two +perceptions advancing hand in hand from generation to generation, +and being accumulated in time and in the common course of +nature.</p> +<p>I have already sufficiently guarded against being supposed to +maintain that very long before an instinct or structure was +developed, the creature descried it in the far future, and made +towards it. We do not observe this to be the manner of +human progress. Our mechanical inventions, which, as I +ventured to say in “Erewhon,” through the mouth of +the second professor, are really nothing but extra-corporaneous +limbs—a wooden leg being nothing but a bad kind of flesh +leg, and a flesh leg being only a much better kind of wooden leg +than any creature could be expected to manufacture +introspectively and consciously—our mechanical inventions +have almost invariably grown up from small beginnings, and +without any very distant foresight on the part of the +inventors. When Watt perfected the steam engine, he did +not, it seems, foresee the locomotive, much less would any one +expect a savage to invent a steam engine. A child breathes +automatically, because it has learnt to breathe little by little, +and has now breathed for an incalculable length of time; but it +cannot open oysters at all, nor even conceive the idea of opening +oysters for two or three years after it is born, for the simple +reason that this lesson is one which it is only beginning to +learn. All I maintain is, that, give a child as many +generations of practice in opening oysters as it has had in +breathing or sucking, and it would on being born, turn to the +oyster-knife no less naturally than to the breast. We +observe that among certain families of men there has been a +tendency to vary in the direction of the use and development of +machinery; and that in a certain still smaller number of +families, there seems to be an almost infinitely great capacity +for varying and inventing still further, whether socially or +mechanically; while other families, and perhaps the greater +number, reach a certain point and stop; but we also observe that +not even the most inventive races ever see very far ahead. +I suppose the progress of plants and animals to be exactly +analogous to this.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin has always maintained that the effects of use and +disuse are highly important in the development of structure, and +if, as he has said, habits are sometimes inherited—then +they should sometimes be important also in the development of +instinct, or habit. But what does the development of an +instinct or structure, or, indeed, any effect upon the organism +produced by “use and disuse,” imply? It implies +an effect produced by a desire to do something for which the +organism was not originally well adapted or sufficient, but for +which it has come to be sufficient in consequence of the +desire. The wish has been father to the power; but this +again opens up the whole theory of Lamarck, that the development +of organs has been due to the wants or desires of the animal in +which the organ appears. So far as I can see, I am +insisting on little more than this.</p> +<p>Once grant that a blacksmith’s arm grows thicker through +hammering iron, and you have an organ modified in accordance with +a need or wish. Let the desire and the practice be +remembered, and go on for long enough, and the slight alterations +of the organ will be accumulated, until they are checked either +by the creature’s having got all that he cares about making +serious further effort to obtain, or until his wants prove +inconvenient to other creatures that are stronger than he, and he +is hence brought to a standstill. Use and disuse, then, +with me, and, as I gather also, with Lamarck, are the keys to the +position, coupled, of course, with continued personality and +memory. No sudden and striking changes would be effected, +except that occasionally a blunder might prove a happy accident, +as happens not unfrequently with painters, musicians, chemists, +and inventors at the present day; or sometimes a creature, with +exceptional powers of memory or reflection, would make his +appearance in this race or in that. We all profit by our +accidents as well as by our more cunning contrivances, so that +analogy would point in the direction of thinking that many of the +most happy thoughts in the animal and vegetable kingdom were +originated much as certain discoveries that have been made by +accident among ourselves. These would be originally blind +variations, though even so, probably less blind than we think, if +we could know the whole truth. When originated, they would +be eagerly taken advantage of and improved upon by the animal in +whom they appeared; but it cannot be supposed that they would be +very far in advance of the last step gained, more than are those +“flukes” which sometimes enable us to go so far +beyond our own ordinary powers. For if they were, the +animal would despair of repeating them. No creature hopes, +or even wishes, for very much more than he has been accustomed to +all his life, he and his family, and the others whom he can +understand, around him. It has been well said that +“enough” is always “a little more than one +has.” We do not try for things which we believe to be +beyond our reach, hence one would expect that the fortunes, as it +were, of animals should have been built up gradually. Our +own riches grow with our desires and the pains we take in pursuit +of them, and our desires vary and increase with our means of +gratifying them; but unless with men of exceptional business +aptitude, wealth grows gradually by the adding field to field and +farm to farm; so with the limbs and instincts of animals; these +are but the things they have made or bought with their money, or +with money that has been left them by their forefathers, which, +though it is neither silver nor gold, but faith and protoplasm +only, is good money and capital notwithstanding.</p> +<p>I have already admitted that instinct may be modified by food +or drugs, which may affect a structure or habit as powerfully as +we see certain poisons affect the structure of plants by +producing, as Mr. Darwin tells us, very complex galls upon their +leaves. I do not, therefore, for a moment insist on habit +as the sole cause of instinct. Every habit must have had +its originating cause, and the causes which have started one +habit will from time to time start or modify others; nor can I +explain why some individuals of a race should be cleverer than +others, any more than I can explain why they should exist at all; +nevertheless, I observe it to be a fact that differences in +intelligence and power of growth are universal in the individuals +of all those races which we can best watch. I also most +readily admit that the common course of nature would both cause +many variations to arise independently of any desire on the part +of the animal (much as we have lately seen that the moons of Mars +were on the point of being discovered three hundred years ago, +merely through Galileo sending to Kepler a Latin anagram which +Kepler could not understand, and arranged into the +line—“<i>Salve umbistineum geminatum Martia +prolem</i>,” and interpreted to mean that Mars had two +moons, whereas Galileo had meant to say “<i>Altissimum +planetam tergeminum observavi</i>,” meaning that he had +seen Saturn’s ring), and would also preserve and accumulate +such variations when they had arisen; but I can no more believe +that the wonderful adaptation of structures to needs, which we +see around us in such an infinite number of plants and animals, +can have arisen without a perception of those needs on the part +of the creature in whom the structure appears, than I can believe +that the form of the dray-horse or greyhound—so well +adapted both to the needs of the animal in his daily service to +man, and to the desires of man, that the creature should do him +this daily service—can have arisen without any desire on +man’s part to produce this particular structure, or without +the inherited habit of performing the corresponding actions for +man, on the part of the greyhound and dray-horse.</p> +<p>And I believe that this will be felt as reasonable by the +great majority of my readers. I believe that nine fairly +intelligent and observant men out of ten, if they were asked +which they thought most likely to have been the main cause of the +development of the various phases either of structure or instinct +which we see around us, namely—sense of need, or even whim, +and hence occasional discovery, helped by an occasional piece of +good luck, communicated, it may be, and generally adopted, long +practised, remembered by offspring, modified by changed +surroundings, and accumulated in the course of time—or, the +accumulation of small divergent, indefinite, and perfectly +unintelligent variations, preserved through the survival of their +possessor in the struggle for existence, and hence in time +leading to wide differences from the original type—would +answer in favour of the former alternative; and if for no other +cause yet for this—that in the human race, which we are +best able to watch, and between which and the lower animals no +difference in kind will, I think, be supposed, but only in +degree, we observe that progress must have an internal current +setting in a definite direction, but whither we know not for very +long beforehand; and that without such internal current there is +stagnation. Our own progress—or variation—is +due not to small, fortuitous inventions or modifications which +have enabled their fortunate possessors to survive in times of +difficulty, not, in fact, to strokes of luck (though these, of +course, have had some effect—but not more, probably, than +strokes of ill luck have counteracted) but to strokes of +cunning—to a sense of need, and to study of the past and +present which have given shrewd people a key with which to unlock +the chambers of the future.</p> +<p>Further, Mr. Darwin himself says (“Plants and Animals +under Domestication,” ii. p. 237, ed. 1875):—</p> +<p>“But I think we must take a broader view and conclude +that organic beings when subjected during several generations to +any change whatever in their conditions tend to vary: <i>the kind +of variation which ensues depending in most cases in a far higher +degree on the nature or constitution of the being</i>, <i>than on +the nature of the changed conditions</i>.” And this +we observe in man. The history of a man prior to his birth +is more important as far as his success or failure goes than his +surroundings after birth, important though these may indeed +be. The able man rises in spite of a thousand hindrances, +the fool fails in spite of every advantage. “Natural +selection,” however, does not make either the able man or +the fool. It only deals with him after other causes have +made him, and would seem in the end to amount to little more than +to a statement of the fact that when variations have arisen they +will accumulate. One cannot look, as has already been said, +for the origin of species in that part of the course of nature +which settles the preservation or extinction of variations which +have already arisen from some unknown cause, but one must look +for it in the causes that have led to variation at all. +These causes must get, as it were, behind the back of +“natural selection,” which is rather a shield and +hindrance to our perception of our own ignorance than an +explanation of what these causes are.</p> +<p>The remarks made above will apply equally to plants such as +the misletoe and red clover. For the sake of brevity I will +deal only with the misletoe, which seems to be the more striking +case. Mr. Darwin writes:—</p> +<p>“Naturalists continually refer to external conditions, +such as climate, food, &c., as the only possible cause of +variation. In one limited sense, as we shall hereafter see, +this may be true; but it is preposterous to attribute to mere +external conditions, the structure, for instance, of the +woodpecker, with its feet, tail, beak, and tongue, so admirably +adapted to catch insects under the bark of trees. In the +case of the misletoe, which draws its nourishment from certain +trees, which has seeds that must be transported by certain birds, +and which has flowers with separate sexes absolutely requiring +the agency of certain insects to bring pollen from one flower to +another, it is equally preposterous to account for the structure +of this parasite with its relations to several distinct organic +beings, by the effect of external conditions, or of habit, or of +the volition of the plant itself” (“Natural +Selection,” p. 3, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>I cannot see this. To me it seems still more +preposterous to account for it by the action of “natural +selection” operating upon indefinite variations. It +would be preposterous to suppose that a bird very different from +a woodpecker should have had a conception of a woodpecker, and so +by volition gradually grown towards it. So in like manner +with the misletoe. Neither plant nor bird knew how far they +were going, or saw more than a very little ahead as to the means +of remedying this or that with which they were dissatisfied, or +of getting this or that which they desired; but given perceptions +at all, and thus a sense of needs and of the gratification of +those needs, and thus hope and fear, and a sense of content and +discontent—given also the lowest power of gratifying those +needs—given also that some individuals have these powers in +a higher degree than others—given also continued +personality and memory over a vast extent of time—and the +whole phenomena of species and genera resolve themselves into an +illustration of the old proverb, that what is one man’s +meat is another man’s poison. Life in its lowest form +under the above conditions—and we cannot conceive of life +at all without them—would be bound to vary, and to result +after not so very many millions of years in the infinite forms +and instincts which we see around us.</p> +<h2><a name="page252"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +252</span>CHAPTER XIII.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">LAMARCK AND MR. DARWIN.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">It</span> will have been seen that in the +preceding pages the theory of evolution, as originally propounded +by Lamarck, has been more than once supported, as against the +later theory concerning it put forward by Mr. Darwin, and now +generally accepted.</p> +<p>It is not possible for me, within the limits at my command, to +do anything like justice to the arguments that may be brought +forward in favour of either of these two theories. Mr. +Darwin’s books are at the command of every one; and so much +has been discovered since Lamarck’s day, that if he were +living now, he would probably state his case very differently; I +shall therefore content myself with a few brief remarks, which +will hardly, however, aspire to the dignity of argument.</p> +<p>According to Mr. Darwin, differentiations of structure and +instinct have mainly come about through the accumulation of +small, fortuitous variations without intelligence or desire upon +the part of the creature varying; modification, however, through +desire and sense of need, is not denied entirely, inasmuch as +considerable effect is ascribed by Mr. Darwin to use and disuse, +which involves, as has been already said, the modification of a +structure in accordance with the wishes of its possessor.</p> +<p>According to Lamarck, genera and species have been evolved, in +the main, by exactly the same process as that by which human +inventions and civilisations are now progressing; and this +involves that intelligence, ingenuity, heroism, and all the +elements of romance, should have had the main share in the +development of every herb and living creature around us.</p> +<p>I take the following brief outline of the most important part +of Lamarck’s theory from vol. xxxvi. of the +Naturalist’s Library (Edinburgh, 1843):—</p> +<p>“The more simple bodies,” says the editor, giving +Lamarck’s opinion without endorsing it, “are easily +formed, and this being the case, it is easy to conceive how in +the lapse of time animals of a more complex structure should be +produced, <i>for it must be admitted as a fundamental law</i>, +<i>that the production of a new organ in an animal body results +from any new want or desire it may experience</i>. The +first effort of a being just beginning to develop itself must be +to procure subsistence, and hence in time there comes to be +produced a stomach or alimentary cavity.” (Thus we +saw that the amœba is in the habit of +“extemporising” a stomach when it wants one.) +“Other wants occasioned by circumstances will lead to other +efforts, which in their turn will generate new organs.”</p> +<p>Lamarck’s wonderful conception was hampered by an +unnecessary adjunct, namely, a belief in an inherent tendency +towards progressive development in every low organism. He +was thus driven to account for the presence of many very low and +very ancient organisms at the present day, and fell back upon the +theory, which is not yet supported by evidence, that such low +forms are still continually coming into existence from inorganic +matter. But there seems no necessity to suppose that all +low forms should possess an inherent tendency towards +progression. It would be enough that there should +occasionally arise somewhat more gifted specimens of one or more +original forms. These would vary, and the ball would be +thus set rolling, while the less gifted would remain <i>in statu +quo</i>, provided they were sufficiently gifted to escape +extinction.</p> +<p>Nor do I gather that Lamarck insisted on continued personality +and memory so as to account for heredity at all, and so as to see +life as a single, or as at any rate, only a few, vast compound +animals, but without the connecting organism between each +component item in the whole creature, which is found in animals +that are strictly called compound. Until continued +personality and memory are connected with the idea of heredity, +heredity of any kind is little more than a term for something +which one does not understand. But there seems little +<i>à priori</i> difficulty as regards Lamarck’s main +idea, now that Mr. Darwin has familiarised us with evolution, and +made us feel what a vast array of facts can be brought forward in +support of it.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin tells us, in the preface to his last edition of the +“Origin of Species,” that Lamarck was partly led to +his conclusions by the analogy of domestic productions. It +is rather hard to say what these words imply; they may mean +anything from a baby to an apple dumpling, but if they imply that +Lamarck drew inspirations from the gradual development of the +mechanical inventions of man, and from the progress of +man’s ideas, I would say that of all sources this would +seem to be the safest and most fertile from which to draw.</p> +<p>Plants and animals under domestication are indeed a suggestive +field for study, but machines are the manner in which man is +varying at this moment. We know how our own minds work, and +how our mechanical organisations—for, in all sober +seriousness, this is what it comes to—have progressed hand +in hand with our desires; sometimes the power a little ahead, and +sometimes the desire; sometimes both combining to form an organ +with almost infinite capacity for variation, and sometimes +comparatively early reaching the limit of utmost development in +respect of any new conception, and accordingly coming to a full +stop; sometimes making leaps and bounds, and sometimes advancing +sluggishly. Here we are behind the scenes, and can see how +the whole thing works. We have man, the very animal which +we can best understand, caught in the very act of variation, +through his own needs, and not through the needs of others; the +whole process is a natural one; the varying of a creature as much +in a wild state as the ants and butterflies are wild. There +is less occasion here for the continual “might be” +and “may be,” which we are compelled to put up with +when dealing with plants and animals, of the workings of whose +minds we can only obscurely judge. Also, there is more +prospect of pecuniary profit attaching to the careful study of +machinery than can be generally hoped for from the study of the +lower animals; and though I admit that this consideration should +not be carried too far, a great deal of very unnecessary +suffering will be spared to the lower animals; for much that +passes for natural history is little better than prying into +other people’s business, from no other motive than +curiosity. I would, therefore, strongly advise the reader +to use man, and the present races of man, and the growing +inventions and conceptions of man, as his guide, if he would seek +to form an independent judgement on the development of organic +life. For all growth is only somebody making something.</p> +<p>Lamarck’s theories fell into disrepute, partly because +they were too startling to be capable of ready fusion with +existing ideas; they were, in fact, too wide a cross for +fertility; partly because they fell upon evil times, during the +reaction that followed the French Revolution; partly because, +unless I am mistaken, he did not sufficiently link on the +experience of the race to that of the individual, nor perceive +the importance of the principle that consciousness, memory, +volition, intelligence, &c., vanish, or become latent, on +becoming intense. He also appears to have mixed up matter +with his system, which was either plainly wrong, or so incapable +of proof as to enable people to laugh at him, and pooh-pooh him; +but I believe it will come to be perceived, that he has received +somewhat scant justice at the hands of his successors, and that +his “crude theories,” as they have been somewhat +cheaply called, are far from having had their last say.</p> +<p>Returning to Mr. Darwin, we find, as we have already seen, +that it is hard to say exactly how much Mr. Darwin differs from +Lamarck, and how much he agrees with him. Mr. Darwin has +always maintained that use and disuse are highly important, and +this implies that the effect produced on the parent should be +remembered by the offspring, in the same way as the memory of a +wound is transmitted by one set of cells to succeeding ones, who +long repeat the scar, though it may fade finally away. +Also, after dealing with the manner in which one eye of a young +flat-fish travels round the head till both eyes are on the same +side of the fish, he gives (“Natural Selection,” p. +188, ed. 1875) an instance of a structure “which apparently +owes its origin exclusively to use or habit.” He +refers to the tail of some American monkeys “which has been +converted into a wonderfully perfect prehensile organ, and serves +as a fifth hand. A reviewer,” he continues, . . +. “remarks on this structure—‘It is +impossible to believe that in any number of ages the first slight +incipient tendency to grasp, could preserve the lives of the +individuals possessing it, or favour their chance of having and +of rearing offspring.’ But there is no necessity for +any such belief. Habit, and this almost implies that some +benefit, great or small, is thus derived, would in all +probability suffice for the work.” If, then, habit +can do this—and it is no small thing to develop a +wonderfully perfect prehensile organ which can serve as a fifth +hand—how much more may not habit do, even though unaided, +as Mr. Darwin supposes to have been the case in this instance, by +“natural selection”? After attributing many of +the structural and instinctive differences of plants and animals +to the effects of use—as we may plainly do with Mr. +Darwin’s own consent—after attributing a good deal +more to unknown causes, and a good deal to changed conditions, +which are bound, if at all important, to result either in +sterility or variation—how much of the work of originating +species is left for natural selection?—which, as Mr. Darwin +admits (“Natural Selection,” p. 63, ed. 1876), does +not <i>induce variability</i>, but “implies only the +preservation of <i>such variations as arise</i>, and are +beneficial to the being under its conditions of +life?” An important part assuredly, and one which we +can never sufficiently thank Mr. Darwin for having put so +forcibly before us, but an indirect part only, like the part +played by time and space, and not, I think, the one which Mr. +Darwin would assign to it.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin himself has admitted that in the earlier editions +of his “Origin of Species” he “underrated, as +it now seems probable, the frequency and importance of +modifications due to spontaneous variability.” And +this involves the having over-rated the action of “natural +selection” as an agent in the evolution of species. +But one gathers that he still believes the accumulation of small +and fortuitous variations through the agency of “natural +selection” to be the main cause of the present divergencies +of structure and instinct. I do not, however, think that +Mr. Darwin is clear about his own meaning. I think the +prominence given to “natural selection” in connection +with the “origin of species” has led him, in spite of +himself, and in spite of his being on his guard (as is clearly +shown by the paragraph on page 63 “Natural +Selection,” above referred to), to regard “natural +selection” as in some way accounting for variation, just as +the use of the dangerous word +“spontaneous,”—though he is so often on his +guard against it, and so frequently prefaces it with the words +“so-called,”—would seem to have led him into +very serious confusion of thought in the passage quoted at the +beginning of this paragraph.</p> +<p>For after saying that he had underrated “the frequency +and importance of modifications due to spontaneous +variability,” he continues, “but it is impossible to +attribute to this cause the innumerable structures which are so +well adapted to the habits of life of each species.” +That is to say, it is impossible to attribute these innumerable +structures to spontaneous variability.</p> +<p>What <i>is</i> spontaneous variability?</p> +<p>Clearly, from his preceding paragraph, Mr. Darwin means only +“so-called spontaneous variations,” such as +“the appearance of a moss-rose on a common rose, or of a +nectarine on a peach-tree,” which he gives as good examples +of so-called spontaneous variation.</p> +<p>And these variations are, after all, due to causes, but to +unknown causes; spontaneous variation being, in fact, but another +name for variation due to causes which we know nothing about, but +in no possible sense a <i>cause of variation</i>. So that +when we come to put clearly before our minds exactly what the +sentence we are considering amounts to, it comes to this: that it +is impossible to attribute the innumerable structures which are +so well adapted to the habits of life of each species to +<i>unknown causes</i>.</p> +<p>“I can no more believe in <i>this</i>,” continues +Mr. Darwin, “than that the well-adapted form of a +race-horse or greyhound, which, before the principle of selection +by man was well understood, excited so much surprise in the minds +of the older naturalists, can <i>thus</i> be explained” +(“Natural Selection,” p. 171, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>Or, in other words, “I can no more believe that the +well-adapted structures of species are due to unknown causes, +than I can believe that the well-adapted form of a race-horse can +be explained by being attributed to unknown causes.”</p> +<p>I have puzzled over this paragraph for several hours with the +sincerest desire to get at the precise idea which underlies it, +but the more I have studied it the more convinced I am that it +does not contain, or at any rate convey, any clear or definite +idea at all. If I thought it was a mere slip, I should not +call attention to it; this book will probably have slips enough +of its own without introducing those of a great man +unnecessarily; but I submit that it is necessary to call +attention to it here, inasmuch as it is impossible to believe +that after years of reflection upon his subject, Mr. Darwin +should have written as above, especially in such a place, if his +mind was really clear about his own position. Immediately +after the admission of a certain amount of miscalculation, there +comes a more or less exculpatory sentence which sounds so right +that ninety-nine people out of a hundred would walk through it, +unless led by some exigency of their own position to examine it +closely but which yet upon examination proves to be as nearly +meaningless as a sentence can be.</p> +<p>The weak point in Mr. Darwin’s theory would seem to be a +deficiency, so to speak, of motive power to originate and direct +the variations which time is to accumulate. It deals +admirably with the accumulation of variations in creatures +already varying, but it does not provide a sufficient number of +sufficiently important variations to be accumulated. Given +the motive power which Lamarck suggested, and Mr. Darwin’s +mechanism would appear (with the help of memory, as bearing upon +reproduction, of continued personality, and hence of inherited +habit, and of the vanishing tendency of consciousness) to work +with perfect ease. Mr. Darwin has made us all feel that in +some way or other variations <i>are accumulated</i>, and that +evolution is the true solution of the present widely different +structures around us, whereas, before he wrote, hardly any one +believed this. However we may differ from him in detail, +the present general acceptance of evolution must remain as his +work, and a more valuable work can hardly be imagined. +Nevertheless, I cannot think that “natural +selection,” working upon small, fortuitous, indefinite, +unintelligent variations, would produce the results we see around +us. One wants something that will give a more definite aim +to variations, and hence, at times, cause bolder leaps in +advance. One cannot but doubt whether so many plants and +animals would be being so continually saved “by the skin of +their teeth,” as must be so saved if the variations from +which genera ultimately arise are as small in their commencement +and at each successive stage as Mr. Darwin seems to +believe. God—to use the language of the +Bible—is not extreme to mark what is done amiss, whether +with plant or beast or man; on the other hand, when towers of +Siloam fall, they fall on the just as well as the unjust.</p> +<p>One feels, on considering Mr. Darwin’s position, that if +it be admitted that there is in the lowest creature a power to +vary, no matter how small, one has got in this power as near the +“origin of species” as one can ever hope to +get. For no one professes to account for the origin of +life; but if a creature with a power to vary reproduces itself at +all, it must reproduce another creature <i>which shall also have +the power to vary</i>; so that, given time and space enough, +there is no knowing where such a creature could or would +stop.</p> +<p>If the primordial cell had been only capable of reproducing +itself once, there would have followed a single line of +descendants, the chain of which might at any moment have been +broken by casualty. Doubtless the millionth repetition +would have differed very materially from the original—as +widely, perhaps, as we differ from the primordial cell; but it +would only have differed by addition, and could no more in any +generation resume its latest development without having passed +through the initial stage of being what its first forefather was, +and doing what its first forefather did, and without going +through all or a sufficient number of the steps whereby it had +reached its latest differentiation, than water can rise above its +own level.</p> +<p>The very idea, then, of reproduction involves, unless I am +mistaken, that, no matter how much the creature reproducing +itself may gain in power and versatility, it must still always +begin <i>with itself again</i> in each generation. The +primordial cell being capable of reproducing itself not only +once, but many times over, each of the creatures which it +produces must be similarly gifted; hence the geometrical ratio of +increase and the existing divergence of type. In each +generation it will pass rapidly and unconsciously through all the +earlier stages of which there has been infinite experience, and +for which the conditions are reproduced with sufficient +similarity to cause no failure of memory or hesitation; but in +each generation, when it comes to the part in which the course is +not so clear, it will become conscious; still, however, where the +course is plain, as in breathing, digesting, &c., retaining +unconsciousness. Thus organs which present all the +appearance of being designed—as, for example, the tip for +its beak prepared by the embryo chicken—would be prepared +in the end, as it were, by rote, and without sense of design, +though none the less owing their origin to design.</p> +<p>The question is not concerning evolution, but as to the main +cause which has led to evolution in such and such shapes. +To me it seems that the “Origin of Variation,” +whatever it is, is the only true “Origin of Species,” +and that this must, as Lamarck insisted, be looked for in the +needs and experiences of the creatures varying. Unless we +can explain the origin of variations, we are met by the +unexplained <i>at every step</i> in the progress of a creature +from its original homogeneous condition to its differentiation, +we will say, as an elephant; so that to say that an elephant has +become an elephant through the accumulation of a vast number of +small, fortuitous, but unexplained, variations in some lower +creatures, is really to say that it has become an elephant owing +to a series of causes about which we know nothing whatever, or, +in other words, that one does not know how it came to be an +elephant. But to say that an elephant has become an +elephant owing to a series of variations, nine-tenths of which +were caused by the wishes of the creature or creatures from which +the elephant is descended—this is to offer a reason, and +definitely put the insoluble one step further back. The +question will then turn upon the sufficiency of the +reason—that is to say, whether the hypothesis is borne out +by facts.</p> +<p>The effects of competition would, of course, have an extremely +important effect upon any creature, in the same way as any other +condition of nature under which it lived, must affect its sense +of need and its opinions generally. The results of +competition would be, as it were, the decisions of an arbiter +settling the question whether such and such variation was really +to the animal’s advantage or not—a matter on which +the animal will, on the whole, have formed a pretty fair +judgement for itself. <i>Undoubtedly the past decisions of +such an arbiter would affect the conduct of the creature</i>, +which would have doubtless had its shortcomings and blunders, and +would amend them. The creature would shape its course +according to its experience of the common course of events, but +it would be continually trying and often successfully, to evade +the law by all manner of sharp practice. New precedents +would thus arise, so that the law would shift with time and +circumstances; but the law would not otherwise direct the +channels into which life would flow, than as laws, whether +natural or artificial, have affected the development of the +widely differing trades and professions among mankind. +These have had their origin rather in the needs and experiences +of mankind than in any laws.</p> +<p>To put much the same as the above in different words. +Assume that small favourable variations are preserved more +commonly, in proportion to their numbers, than is perhaps the +case, and assume that considerable variations occur more rarely +than they probably do occur, how account for any variation at +all? “Natural selection” cannot <i>create</i> +the smallest variation unless it acts through perception of its +mode of operation, recognised inarticulately, but none the less +clearly, by the creature varying. “Natural +selection” operates on what it finds, and not on what it +has made. Animals that have been wise and lucky live longer +and breed more than others less wise and lucky. +Assuredly. The wise and lucky animals transmit their wisdom +and luck. Assuredly. They add to their powers, and +diverge into widely different directions. Assuredly. +What is the cause of this? Surely the fact that they were +capable of feeling needs, and that they differed in their needs +and manner of gratifying them, and that they continued to live in +successive generations, rather than the fact that when lucky and +wise they thrived and bred more descendants. This last is +an accessory hardly less important for the <i>development</i> of +species than the fact of the continuation of life at all; but it +is an accessory of much the same kind as this, for if animals +continue to live at all, they must live <i>in some way</i>, and +will find that there are good ways and bad ways of living. +An animal which discovers the good way will gradually develop +further powers, and so species will get further and further +apart; but the origin of this is to be looked for, not in the +power which decides whether this or that way was good, but in the +cause which determines the creature, consciously or +unconsciously, to try this or that way.</p> +<p>But Mr. Darwin might say that this is not a fair way of +stating the issue. He might say, “You beg the +question; you assume that there is an inherent tendency in +animals towards progressive development, whereas I say that there +is no good evidence of any such tendency. I maintain that +the differences that have from time to time arisen have come +about mainly from causes so far beyond our ken, that we can only +call them spontaneous; and if so, natural selection which you +must allow to have at any rate played an important part in the +<i>accumulation</i> of variations, must also be allowed to be the +nearest thing to the cause of Specific differences, which we are +able to arrive at.”</p> +<p>Thus he writes (“Natural Selection,” p. 176, ed. +1876): “Although we have no good evidence of the existence +in organic beings of a tendency towards progressive development, +yet this necessarily follows, as I have attempted to show in the +fourth chapter, through the continued action of natural +selection.” Mr. Darwin does not say that organic +beings have no tendency to vary at all, but only that there is no +good evidence that they have a tendency to progressive +development, which, I take it, means, to see an ideal a long way +off, and very different to their present selves, which ideal they +think will suit them, and towards which they accordingly +make. I would admit this as contrary to all +experience. I doubt whether plants and animals have any +<i>innate tendency to vary</i> at all, being led to question this +by gathering from “Plants and Animals under +Domestication” that this is Mr. Darwin’s own +opinion. I am inclined rather to think that they have only +an innate <i>power to vary</i> slightly, in accordance with +changed conditions, and an innate capability of being affected +both in structure and instinct, by causes similar to those which +we observe to affect ourselves. But however this may be, +they do vary somewhat, and unless they did, they would not in +time have come to be so widely different from each other as they +now are. The question is as to the origin and character of +these variations.</p> +<p>We say they mainly originate in a creature through a sense of +its needs, and vary through the varying surroundings which will +cause those needs to vary, and through the opening up of new +desires in many creatures, as the consequence of the +gratification of old ones; they depend greatly on differences of +individual capacity and temperament; they are communicated, and +in the course of time transmitted, as what we call hereditary +habits or structures, though these are only, in truth, intense +and epitomised memories of how certain creatures liked to deal +with protoplasm. The question whether this or that is +really good or ill, is settled, as the proof of the pudding by +the eating thereof, <i>i.e.</i>, by the rigorous competitive +examinations through which most living organisms must pass. +Mr. Darwin says that there is no good evidence in support of any +great principle, or tendency on the part of the creature itself, +which would steer variation, as it were, and keep its head +straight, but that the most marvellous adaptations of structures +to needs are simply the result of small and blind variations, +accumulated by the operation of “natural selection,” +which is thus the main cause of the origin of species.</p> +<p>Enough has perhaps already been said to make the reader feel +that the question wants reopening; I shall, therefore, here only +remark that we may assume no fundamental difference as regards +intelligence, memory, and sense of needs to exist between man and +the lowest animals, and that in man we do distinctly see a +tendency towards progressive development, operating through his +power of profiting by and transmitting his experience, but +operating in directions which man cannot foresee for any long +distance. We also see this in many of the higher animals +under domestication, as with horses which have learnt to canter +and dogs which point; more especially we observe it along the +line of latest development, where equilibrium of settled +convictions has not yet been fully attained. One neither +finds nor expects much <i>a priori</i> knowledge, whether in man +or beast; but one does find some little in the beginnings of, and +throughout the development of, every habit, at the commencement +of which, and on every successive improvement in which, deductive +and inductive methods are, as it were, fused. Thus the +effect, where we can best watch its causes, seems mainly produced +by a desire for a definite object—in some cases a serious +and sensible desire, in others an idle one, in others, again, a +mistaken one; and sometimes by a blunder which, in the hands of +an otherwise able creature, has turned up trumps. In wild +animals and plants the divergences have been accumulated, if they +answered to the prolonged desires of the creature itself, and if +these desires were to its true ultimate good; with plants or +animals under domestication they have been accumulated if they +answered a little to the original wishes of the creature, and +much, to the wishes of man. As long as man continued to +like them, they would be advantageous to the creature; when he +tired of them, they would be disadvantageous to it, and would +accumulate no longer. Surely the results produced in the +adaptation of structure to need among many plants and insects are +better accounted for on this, which I suppose to be +Lamarck’s view, namely, by supposing that what goes on +amongst ourselves has gone on amongst all creatures, than by +supposing that these adaptations are the results of perfectly +blind and unintelligent variations.</p> +<p>Let me give two examples of such adaptations, taken from Mr. +St. George Mivart’s “Genesis of Species,” to +which work I would wish particularly to call the reader’s +attention. He should also read Mr. Darwin’s answers +to Mr. Mivart (p. 176, “Natural Selection,” ed. 1876, +and onwards).</p> +<p>Mr. Mivart writes:—</p> +<p>“Some insects which imitate leaves extend the imitation +even to the very injuries on those leaves made by the attacks of +insects or fungi. Thus speaking of the walking-stick +insects, Mr. Wallace says, ‘One of these creatures obtained +by myself in Borneo (<i>ceroxylus laceratus</i>) was covered over +with foliaceous excrescences of a clear olive green colour, so as +exactly to resemble a stick grown over by a creeping moss or +jungermannia. The Dyak who brought it me assured me it was +grown over with moss, though alive, and it was only after a most +minute examination that I could convince myself it was not +so.’ Again, as to the leaf butterfly, he says, +‘We come to a still more extraordinary part of the +imitation, for we find representations of leaves in every stage +of decay, variously blotched, and mildewed, and pierced with +holes, and in many cases irregularly covered with powdery black +dots, gathered into patches and spots so closely resembling the +various kinds of minute fungi that grow on dead leaves, that it +is impossible to avoid thinking at first sight that the +butterflies themselves have been attacked by real +fungi.’”</p> +<p>I can no more believe that these artificial fungi in which the +moth arrays itself are due to the accumulation of minute, +perfectly blind, and unintelligent variations, than I can believe +that the artificial flowers which a woman wears in her hat can +have got there without design; or that a detective puts on plain +clothes without the slightest intention of making his victim +think that he is not a policeman.</p> +<p>Again Mr. Mivart writes:—</p> +<p>“In the work just referred to (‘The Fertilisation +of Orchids’), Mr. Darwin gives a series of the most +wonderful and minute contrivances, by which the visits of insects +are utilised for the fertilisation of orchids—structures so +wonderful that nothing could well be more so, except the +attribution of their origin to minute, fortuitous, and indefinite +variations.</p> +<p>“The instances are too numerous and too long to quote, +but in his ‘Origin of Species’ he describes two which +must not be passed over. In one (<i>coryanthes</i>) the +orchid has its lower lip enlarged into a bucket, above which +stand two water-secreting horns. These latter replenish the +bucket, from which, when half-filled, the water overflows by a +spout on one side. Bees visiting the flower fall into the +bucket and crawl out at the spout. By the peculiar +arrangement of the parts of the flower, the first bee which does +so, carries away the pollen mass glued to his back, and then when +he has his next involuntary bath in another flower, as he crawls +out, the pollen attached to him comes in contact with the stigma +of that second flower and fertilises it. In the other +example (<i>catasetum</i>), when a bee gnaws a certain part of +the flower, he inevitably touches a long delicate projection +which Mr. Darwin calls the ‘antenna.’ +‘This antenna transmits a vibration to a membrane which is +instantly ruptured; this sets free a spring by which the pollen +mass is shot forth like an arrow in the right direction, and +adheres by its viscid extremity to the back of the +bee’” (“Genesis of Species,” p. 63).</p> +<p>No one can tell a story so charmingly as Mr. Darwin, but I can +no more believe that all this has come about without design on +the part of the orchid, and a gradual perception of the +advantages it is able to take over the bee, and a righteous +determination to enjoy them, than I can believe that a mousetrap +or a steam-engine is the result of the accumulation of blind +minute fortuitous variations in a creature called man, which +creature has never wanted either mousetraps or steam-engines, but +has had a sort of promiscuous tendency to make them, and was +benefited by making them, so that those of the race who had a +tendency to make them survived and left issue, which issue would +thus naturally tend to make more mousetraps and more +steam-engines.</p> +<p>Pursuing this idea still further, can we for a moment believe +that these additions to our limbs—for this is what they +are—have mainly come about through the occasional birth of +individuals, who, without design on their own parts, nevertheless +made them better or worse, and who, accordingly, either survived +and transmitted their improvement, or perished, they and their +incapacity together?</p> +<p>When I can believe in this, then—and not till +then—can I believe in an origin of species which does not +resolve itself mainly into sense of need, faith, intelligence, +and memory. Then, and not till then, can I believe that +such organs as the eye and ear can have arisen in any other way +than as the result of that kind of mental ingenuity, and of moral +as well as physical capacity, without which, till then, I should +have considered such an invention as the steam-engine to be +impossible.</p> +<h2><a name="page273"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +273</span>CHAPTER XIV.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">MR. MIVART AND MR. DARWIN.</span></h2> +<p>“A <span class="smcap">distinguished</span> zoologist, +Mr. St. George Mivart,” writes Mr. Darwin, “has +recently collected all the objections which have ever been +advanced by myself and others against the theory of natural +selection, as propounded by Mr. Wallace and myself, and has +illustrated them with admirable art and force” +(“Natural Selection,” p. 176, ed. 1876). I have +already referred the reader to Mr. Mivart’s work, but quote +the above passage as showing that Mr. Mivart will not, probably, +be found to have left much unsaid that would appear to make +against Mr. Darwin’s theory. It is incumbent upon me +both to see how far Mr. Mivart’s objections are weighty as +against Mr. Darwin, and also whether or not they tell with equal +force against the view which I am myself advocating. I will +therefore touch briefly upon the most important of them, with the +purpose of showing that they are serious as against the doctrine +that small fortuitous variations are the origin of species, but +that they have no force against evolution as guided by +intelligence and memory.</p> +<p>But before doing this, I would demur to the words used by Mr. +Darwin, and just quoted above, namely, “the theory of +natural selection.” I imagine that I see in them the +fallacy which I believe to run through almost all Mr. +Darwin’s work, namely, that “natural selection” +is a theory (if, indeed, it can be a theory at all), in some way +accounting for the origin of variation, and so of +species—“natural selection,” as we have already +seen, being unable to “induce variability,” and being +only able to accumulate what—on the occasion of each +successive variation, and so during the whole process—must +have been originated by something else.</p> +<p>Again, Mr. Darwin writes—“In considering the +origin of species it is quite conceivable that a naturalist, +reflecting on the mutual affinities of organic beings, or their +embryological relations, their geographical distribution, +geological succession, and other such facts, might come to the +conclusion that species had not been independently created, but +had descended, like varieties from other species. +Nevertheless, such a conclusion, even if well founded, would be +unsatisfactory, until it could be shown how the innumerable +species inhabiting this world had been modified, so as to acquire +that perfection of structure and co-adaptation which justly +excites our admiration” (“Origin of Species,” +p. 2, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>After reading the above we feel that nothing more satisfactory +could be desired. We are sure that we are in the hands of +one who can indeed tell us “how the innumerable species +inhabiting this world have been modified,” and we are no +less sure that though others may have written upon the subject +before, there has been, as yet, no satisfactory explanation put +forward of the grand principle upon which modification has +proceeded. Then follows a delightful volume, with facts +upon facts concerning animals, all showing that species is due to +successive small modifications accumulated in the course of +nature. But one cannot suppose that Lamarck ever doubted +this; for he can never have meant to say, that a low form of life +made itself into an elephant at one or two great bounds; and if +he did not mean this, he must have meant that it made itself into +an elephant through the accumulation of small successive +modifications; these, he must have seen, were capable of +accumulation in the scheme of nature, though he may not have +dwelt on the manner in which this is accomplished, inasmuch as it +is obviously a matter of secondary importance in comparison with +the origin of the variations themselves. We believe, +however, throughout Mr. Darwin’s book, that we are being +told what we expected to be told; and so convinced are we, by the +facts adduced, that in some way or other evolution must be true, +and so grateful are we for being allowed to think this, that we +put down the volume without perceiving that, whereas Lamarck +<i>did</i> adduce a great and general cause of variation, the +insufficiency of which, in spite of errors of detail, has yet to +be shown, Mr. Darwin’s main cause of variation resolves +itself into a confession of ignorance.</p> +<p>This, however, should detract but little from our admiration +for Mr. Darwin’s achievement. Any one can make people +see a thing if he puts it in the right way, but Mr. Darwin made +us see evolution, in spite of his having put it, in what seems to +not a few, an exceedingly mistaken way. Yet his triumph is +complete, for no matter how much any one now moves the +foundation, he cannot shake the superstructure, which has become +so currently accepted as to be above the need of any support from +reason, and to be as difficult to destroy as it was originally +difficult of construction. Less than twenty years ago, we +never met with, or heard of, any one who accepted evolution; we +did not even know that such a doctrine had been ever broached; +unless it was that some one now and again said that there was a +very dreadful book going about like a rampant lion, called +“Vestiges of Creation,” whereon we said that we would +on no account read it, lest it should shake our faith; then we +would shake our heads and talk of the preposterous folly and +wickedness of such shallow speculations. Had not the book +of Genesis been written for our learning? Yet, now, who +seriously disputes the main principles of evolution? I +cannot believe that there is a bishop on the bench at this moment +who does not accept them; even the “holy priests” +themselves bless evolution as their predecessors blessed +Cleopatra—when they ought not. It is not he who first +conceives an idea, nor he who sets it on its legs and makes it go +on all fours, but he who makes other people accept the main +conclusion, whether on right grounds or on wrong ones, who has +done the greatest work as regards the promulgation of an +opinion. And this is what Mr. Darwin has done for +evolution. He has made us think that we know the origin of +species, and so of genera, in spite of his utmost efforts to +assure us that we know nothing of the causes from which the vast +majority of modifications have arisen—that is to say, he +has made us think we know the whole road, though he has almost +ostentatiously blindfolded us at every step of the journey. +But to the end of time, if the question be asked, “Who +taught people to believe in evolution?” there can only be +one answer—that it was Mr. Darwin.</p> + +<div class="gapshortline"> </div> +<p>Mr. Mivart urges with much force the difficulty of +<i>starting</i> any modification on which “natural +selection” is to work, and of getting a creature to vary in +any definite direction. Thus, after quoting from Mr. +Wallace some of the wonderful cases of “mimicry” +which are to be found among insects, he writes:—</p> +<p>“Now, let us suppose that the ancestors of these various +animals were all destitute of the very special protection they at +present possess, as on the Darwinian hypothesis we must do. +Let it be also conceded that small deviations from the antecedent +colouring or form would tend to make some of their ancestors +escape destruction, by causing them more or less frequently to be +passed over or mistaken by their persecutors. Yet the +deviation must, as the event has shown, in each case, be in some +definite direction, whether it be towards some other animal or +plant, or towards some dead or inorganic matter. But as, +according to Mr. Darwin’s theory, there is a constant +tendency to indefinite variation, and as the minute incipient +variations will be <i>in all directions</i>, they must tend to +neutralise each other, and at first to form such unstable +modifications, that it is difficult, if not impossible, to see +how such indefinite modifications of insignificant beginnings can +ever build up a sufficiently appreciable resemblance to a leaf, +bamboo, or other object for “natural selection,” to +seize upon and perpetuate. This difficulty is augmented +when we consider—a point to be dwelt upon +hereafter—how necessary it is that many individuals should +be similarly modified simultaneously. This has been +insisted on in an able article in the ‘North British +Review’ for June 1867, p. 286, and the consideration of the +article has occasioned Mr. Darwin” (“Origin of +Species,” 5th ed., p. 104) “to make an important +modification in his views” (“Genesis of +Species,” p. 38).</p> +<p>To this Mr. Darwin rejoins:—</p> +<p>“But in all the foregoing cases the insects in their +original state, no doubt, presented some rude and accidental +resemblance to an object commonly found in the stations +frequented by them. Nor is this improbable, considering the +almost infinite number of surrounding objects, and the diversity +of form and colour of the host of insects that exist” +(“Natural Selection,” p. 182, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>Mr. Mivart has just said: “It is difficult to see how +such indefinite modifications of insignificant beginnings <i>can +ever build up a sufficiently appreciable resemblance to a +leaf</i>, <i>bamboo</i>, <i>or other object</i>, <i>for</i> +‘<i>natural selection</i>’ <i>to work +upon</i>.”</p> +<p>The answer is, that “natural selection” did not +begin to work <i>until</i>, <i>from unknown causes</i>, <i>an +appreciable resemblance had nevertheless been +presented</i>. I think the reader will agree with me that +the development of the lowest life into a creature which bears +even “a rude resemblance” to the objects commonly +found in the station in which it is moving in its present +differentiation, requires more explanation than is given by the +word “accidental.”</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin continues: “As some rude resemblance is +necessary for the first start,” &c.; and a little lower +he writes: “Assuming that an insect originally happened to +resemble in some degree a dead twig or a decayed leaf, and that +it varied slightly in many ways, then all the variations which +rendered the insect at all more like any such object, and thus +favoured its escape, would be preserved, while other variations +would be neglected, and ultimately lost, or if they rendered the +insect at all less like the imitated object, they would be +eliminated.”</p> +<p>But here, again, we are required to begin with Natural +Selection when the work is already in great part done, owing to +causes about which we are left completely in the dark; we may, I +think, fairly demur to the insects <i>originally</i> happening to +resemble in some degree a dead twig or a decayed leaf. And +when we bear in mind that the variations, being supposed by Mr. +Darwin to be indefinite, or devoid of aim, will appear in every +direction, we cannot forget what Mr. Mivart insists upon, namely, +that the chances of many favourable variations being counteracted +by other unfavourable ones in the same creature are not +inconsiderable. Nor, again, is it likely that the +favourable variation would make its mark upon the race, and +escape being absorbed in the course of a few generations, +unless—as Mr. Mivart elsewhere points out, in a passage to +which I shall call the reader’s attention presently—a +larger number of similarly varying creatures made their +appearance at the same time than there seems sufficient reason to +anticipate, if the variations can be called fortuitous.</p> +<p>“There would,” continues Mr. Darwin, “indeed +be force in Mr. Mivart’s objection if we were to attempt to +account for the above resemblances, independently of +‘natural selection,’ through mere fluctuating +variability; but as the case stands, there is none.”</p> +<p>This comes to saying that, if there was no power in nature +which operates so that of all the many fluctuating variations, +those only are preserved which tend to the resemblance which is +beneficial to the creature, then indeed there would be difficulty +in understanding how the resemblance could have come about; but +that as there is a beneficial resemblance to start with, and as +there is a power in nature which would preserve and accumulate +further beneficial resemblance, should it arise from this cause +or that, the difficulty is removed. But Mr. Mivart does +not, I take it, deny the existence of such a power in nature, as +Mr. Darwin supposes, though, if I understand him rightly, he does +not see that its operation <i>upon small fortuitous +variations</i> is at all the simple and obvious process, which on +a superficial view of the case it would appear to be. He +thinks—and I believe the reader will agree with +him—that this process is too slow and too risky. What +he wants to know is, how the insect came even rudely to resemble +the object, and how, if its variations are indefinite, we are +ever to get into such a condition as to be able to report +progress, owing to the constant liability of the creature which +has varied favourably, to play the part of Penelope and undo its +work, by varying in some one of the infinite number of other +directions which are open to it—all of which, except this +one, tend to destroy the resemblance, and yet may be in some +other respect even more advantageous to the creature, and so tend +to its preservation. Moreover, here, too, I think (though I +cannot be sure), we have a recurrence of the original fallacy in +the words—“If we were to account for the above +resemblances, independently of ‘natural selection,’ +through mere fluctuating variability.” Surely Mr. +Darwin does, after all, “account for the resemblances +through mere fluctuating variability,” for “natural +selection” does not account for one single variation in the +whole list of them from first to last, other than indirectly, as +shewn in the preceding chapter.</p> +<p>It is impossible for me to continue this subject further; but +I would beg the reader to refer to other paragraphs in the +neighbourhood of the one just quoted, in which he +may—though I do not think he will—see reason to think +that I should have given Mr. Darwin’s answer more +fully. I do not quote Mr. Darwin’s next paragraph, +inasmuch as I see no great difficulty about “the last +touches of perfection in mimicry,” provided Mr. +Darwin’s theory will account for any mimicry at all. +If it could do this, it might as well do more; but a strong +impression is left on my mind, that without the help of something +over and above the power to vary, which should give a definite +aim to variations, all the “natural selection” in the +world would not have prevented stagnation and +self-stultification, owing to the indefinite tendency of the +variations, which thus could not have developed either a preyer +or a preyee, but would have gone round and round and round the +primordial cell till they were weary of it.</p> +<p>As against Mr. Darwin, therefore, I think that the objection +just given from Mr. Mivart is fatal. I believe, also, that +the reader will feel the force of it much more strongly if he +will turn to Mr. Mivart’s own pages. Against the view +which I am myself supporting, the objection breaks down entirely, +for grant “a little dose of judgement and reason” on +the part of the creature itself—grant also continued +personality and memory—and a definite tendency is at once +given to the variations. The process is thus started, and +is kept straight, and helped forward through every stage by +“the little dose of reason,” &c., which enabled +it to take its first step. We are, in fact, no longer +without a helm, but can steer each creature that is so +discontented with its condition, as to make a serious effort to +better itself, into <i>some</i>—and into a very +distant—harbour.</p> + +<div class="gapshortline"> </div> +<p>It has been objected against Mr. Darwin’s theory that if +all species and genera have come to differ through the +accumulation of minute but—as a general +rule—fortuitous variations, there has not been time enough, +so far as we are able to gather, for the evolution of all +existing forms by so slow a process. On this subject I +would again refer the reader to Mr. Mivart’s book, from +which I take the following:—</p> +<p>“Sir William Thompson has lately advanced arguments from +three distinct lines of inquiry agreeing in one approximate +result. The three lines of inquiry are—(1) the action +of the tides upon the earth’s rotation; (2) the probable +length of time during which the sun has illuminated this planet; +and (3) the temperature of the interior of the earth. The +result arrived at by these investigations is a conclusion that +the existing state of things on the earth, life on the earth, all +geological history showing continuity of life, must be limited +within some such period of past time as one hundred million +years. The first question which suggests itself, supposing +Sir W. Thompson’s views to be correct, is: Has this period +been anything like enough for the evolution of all organic forms +by ‘natural selection’? The second is: Has the +period been anything like enough for the deposition of the strata +which must have been deposited if all organic forms have been +evolved by minute steps, according to the Darwinian +theory?” (“Genesis of Species,” p. +154).</p> +<p>Mr. Mivart then quotes from Mr. Murphy—whose work I have +not seen—the following passage:—</p> +<p>“Darwin justly mentions the greyhound as being equal to +any natural species in the perfect co-ordination of its parts, +‘all adapted for extreme fleetness and for running down +weak prey.’ Yet it is an artificial species (and not +physiologically a species at all) formed by a long-continued +selection under domestication; and there is no reason to suppose +that any of the variations which have been selected to form it +have been other than gradual and almost imperceptible. +Suppose that it has taken five hundred years to form the +greyhound out of his wolf-like ancestor. This is a mere +guess, but it gives the order of magnitude. Now, if so, how +long would it take to obtain an elephant from a protozoon or even +from a tadpole-like fish? Ought it not to take much more +than a million times as long?” (“Genesis of +Species,” p. 155).</p> +<p>I should be very sorry to pronounce any opinion upon the +foregoing data; but a general impression is left upon my mind, +that if the differences between an elephant and a tadpole-like +fish have arisen from the accumulation of small variations that +have had no direction given them by intelligence and sense of +needs, then no time conceivable by man would suffice for their +development. But grant “a little dose of reason and +judgement,” even to animals low down in the scale of +nature, and grant this, not only during their later life, but +during their embryological existence, and see with what +infinitely greater precision of aim and with what increased speed +the variations would arise. Evolution entirely unaided by +inherent intelligence must be a very slow, if not quite +inconceivable, process. Evolution helped by intelligence +would still be slow, but not so desperately slow. One can +conceive that there has been sufficient time for the second, but +one cannot conceive it for the first.</p> + +<div class="gapshortline"> </div> +<p>I find from Mr. Mivart that objection has been taken to Mr. +Darwin’s views, on account of the great odds that exist +against the appearance of any given variation at one and the same +time, in a sufficient number of individuals, to prevent its being +obliterated almost as soon as produced by the admixture of +unvaried blood which would so greatly preponderate around it; and +indeed the necessity for a nearly simultaneous and similar +variation, or readiness so to vary on the part of many +individuals, seems almost a postulate for evolution at all. +On this subject Mr. Mivart writes:—</p> +<p>“The ‘North British Review’ (speaking of the +supposition that species is changed by the survival of a few +individuals in a century through a similar and favourable +variation) says—</p> +<p>“‘It is very difficult to see how this can be +accomplished, even when the variation is eminently favourable +indeed; and still more, when the advantage gained is very slight, +as must generally be the case. The advantage, whatever it +may be, is utterly outbalanced by numerical inferiority. A +million creatures are born; ten thousand survive to produce +offspring. One of the million has twice as good a chance as +any other of surviving, but the chances are fifty to one against +the gifted individuals being one of the hundred survivors. +No doubt the chances are twice as great against any other +individual, but this does not prevent their being enormously in +favour of <i>some</i> average individual. However slight +the advantage may be, if it is shared by half the individuals +produced, it will probably be present in at least fifty-one of +the survivors, and in a larger proportion of their offspring; but +the chances are against the preservation of any one +“sport” (<i>i.e.</i>, sudden marked variation) in a +numerous tribe. The vague use of an imperfectly-understood +doctrine of chance, has led Darwinian supporters, first, to +confuse the two cases above distinguished, and secondly, to +imagine that a very slight balance in favour of some individual +sport must lead to its perpetuation. All that can be said +is that in the above example the favoured sport would be +preserved once in fifty times. Let us consider what will be +its influence on the main stock when preserved. It will +breed and have a progeny of say 100; now this progeny will, on +the whole, be intermediate between the average individual and the +sport. The odds in favour of one of this generation of the +new breed will be, say one and a half to one, as compared with +the average individual; the odds in their favour will, therefore, +be less than that of their parents; but owing to their greater +number the chances are that about one and a half of them would +survive. Unless these breed together—a most +improbable event—their progeny would again approach the +average individual; there would be 150 of them, and their +superiority would be, say in the ratio of one and a quarter to +one; the probability would now be that nearly two of them would +survive, and have 200 children with an eighth superiority. +Rather more than two of these would survive; but the superiority +would again dwindle; until after a few generations it would no +longer be observed, and would count for no more in the struggle +for life than any of the hundred trifling advantages which occur +in the ordinary organs.</p> +<p>“‘An illustration will bring this conception +home. Suppose a white man to have been wrecked on an island +inhabited by negroes, and to have established himself in friendly +relations with a powerful tribe, whose customs he has +learnt. Suppose him to possess the physical strength, +energy, and ability of a dominant white race, and let the food of +the island suit his constitution; grant him every advantage which +we can conceive a white to possess over the native; concede that +in the struggle for existence, his chance of a long life will be +much superior to that of the native chiefs; yet from all these +admissions there does not follow the conclusion, that after a +limited or unlimited number of generations, the inhabitants of +the island will be white. Our shipwrecked hero would +probably become king; he would kill a great many blacks in the +struggle for existence; he would have a great many wives and +children . . . In the first generation there will be some dozens +of intelligent young mulattoes, much superior in average +intelligence to the negroes. We might expect the throne for +some generations to be occupied by a more or less yellow king; +but can any one believe that the whole island will gradually +acquire a white, or even a yellow population? . . . Darwin says, +that in the struggle for life a grain may turn the balance in +favour of a given structure, which will then be preserved. +But one of the weights in the scale of nature is due to the +number of a given tribe. Let there be 7000 A’s and +7000 B’s representing two varieties of a given animal, and +let all the B’s, in virtue of a slight difference of +structure, have the better chance by one-thousandth part. +We must allow that there is a slight probability that the +descendants of B will supplant the descendants of A; but let +there be 7001 A’s against 7000 B’s at first, and the +chances are once more equal, while if there be 7002 A’s to +start, the odds would be laid on the A’s. Thus they +stand a greater chance of being killed; but, then, they can +better afford to be killed. The grain will only turn the +scales when these are very nicely balanced, and an advantage in +numbers counts for weight, even as an advantage in +structure. As the numbers of the favoured variety diminish, +so must its relative advantages increase, if the chance of its +existence is to surpass the chance of its extinction, until +hardly any conceivable advantage would enable the descendants of +a single pair to exterminate the descendants of many thousands, +if they and their descendants are supposed to breed freely with +the inferior variety, and so gradually lose their +ascendancy,’” (“North British Review,” +June 1867, p. 286 “Genesis of Species,” p. 64, and +onwards).</p> +<p>Against this it should be remembered that there is always an +antecedent probability that several specimens of a given +variation would appear at one time and place. This would +probably be the case even on Mr. Darwin’s hypothesis, that +the variations are fortuitous; if they are mainly guided by sense +of need and intelligence, it would almost certainly be so, for +all would have much the same idea as to their well-being, and the +same cause which would lead one to vary in this direction would +lead not a few others to do so at the same time, or to follow +suit. Thus we see that many human ideas and inventions have +been conceived independently but simultaneously. The +chances, moreover, of specimens that have varied successfully, +intermarrying, are, I think, greater than the reviewer above +quoted from would admit. I believe that on the hypothesis +that the variations are fortuitous, and certainly on the +supposition that they are intelligent, they might be looked for +in members of the same family, who would hence have a better +chance of finding each other out. Serious as is the +difficulty advanced by the reviewer as against Mr. Darwin’s +theory, it may be in great measure parried without departing from +Mr. Darwin’s own position, but the “little dose of +judgement and reason” removes it, absolutely and +entirely. As for the reviewer’s shipwrecked hero, +surely the reviewer must know that Mr. Darwin would no more +expect an island of black men to be turned white, or even +perceptibly whitened after a few generations, than the reviewer +himself would do so. But if we turn from what +“might” or what “would” happen to what +“does” happen, we find that a few white families have +nearly driven the Indian from the United States, the Australian +natives from Australia, and the Maories from New Zealand. +True, these few families have been helped by immigration; but it +will be admitted that this has only accelerated a result which +would otherwise, none the less surely, have been effected.</p> +<p>There is all the difference between a sudden sport, or even a +variety introduced from a foreign source, and the gradual, +intelligent, and, in the main, steady, growth of a race towards +ends always a little, but not much, in advance of what it can at +present compass, until it has reached equilibrium with its +surroundings. So far as Mr. Darwin’s variations are +of the nature of “sport,” <i>i.e.</i>, rare, and +owing to nothing that we can in the least assign to any known +cause, the reviewer’s objections carry much weight. +Against the view here advocated, they are powerless.</p> + +<div class="gapshortline"> </div> +<p>I cannot here go into the difficulties of the geologic record, +but they too will, I believe, be felt to be almost infinitely +simplified by supposing the development of structure and instinct +to be guided by intelligence and memory, which, even under +unstable conditions, would be able to meet in some measure the +demands made upon them.</p> + +<div class="gapshortline"> </div> +<p>When Mr. Mivart deals with evolution and ethics, I am afraid +that I differ from him even more widely than I have done from Mr. +Darwin. He writes (“Genesis of Species,” p. +234): “That ‘natural selection’ could not have +produced from the sensations of pleasure and pain experienced by +brutes a higher degree of morality than was useful; therefore it +could have produced any amount of ‘beneficial +habits,’ but not abhorrence of certain acts as impure and +sinful.”</p> +<p>Possibly “natural selection” may not be able to do +much in the way of accumulating variations that do not arise; but +that, according to the views supported in this volume, all that +is highest and most beautiful in the soul, as well as in the +body, could be, and has been, developed from beings lower than +man, I do not greatly doubt. Mr. Mivart and myself should +probably differ as to what is and what is not beautiful. +Thus he writes of “the noble virtue of a Marcus +Aurelius” (p. 235), than whom, for my own part, I know few +respectable figures in history to whom I am less attracted. +I cannot but think that Mr. Mivart has taken his estimate of this +emperor at second-hand, and without reference to the writings +which happily enable us to form a fair estimate of his real +character.</p> +<p>Take the opening paragraphs of the “Thoughts” of +Marcus Aurelius, as translated by Mr. Long:—</p> +<p>“From the reputation and remembrance of my father [I +learned] modesty and a manly character; from my mother, piety and +beneficence, abstinence not only from evil deeds, but even from +evil thoughts. . . . From my great-grandfather, not to have +frequented public schools, and to have had good teachers at home, +and to know that on such things a man should spend liberally . . +. From Diognetus . . . [I learned] to have become intimate with +philosophy, . . . and to have written dialogues in my youth, and +to have desired a plank bed and skin, and whatever else of the +kind belongs to the Greek discipline. . . . From Rusticus I +received the impression that my character required improvement +and discipline;” and so on to the end of the chapter, near +which, however, it is right to say that there appears a redeeming +touch, in so far as that he thanks the gods that he could not +write poetry, and that he had never occupied himself about the +appearance of things in the heavens.</p> +<p>Or, again, opening Mr. Long’s translation at random I +find (p. 37):—</p> +<p>“As physicians have always their instruments and knives +ready for cases which suddenly require their skill, so do thou +have principles ready for the understanding of things divine and +human, and for doing everything, even the smallest, with a +recollection of the bond that unites the divine and human to one +another. For neither wilt thou do anything well which +pertains to man without at the same time having a reference to +things divine; nor the contrary.”</p> +<p>Unhappy one! No wonder the Roman empire went to pieces +soon after him. If I remember rightly, he established and +subsidised professorships in all parts of his dominions. +Whereon the same befell the arts and literature of Rome as befell +Italian painting after the Academic system had taken root at +Bologna under the Caracci. Mr. Martin Tupper, again, is an +amiable and well-meaning man, but we should hardly like to see +him in Lord Beaconsfield’s place. The Athenians +poisoned Socrates; and Aristophanes—than whom few more +profoundly religious men have ever been born—did not, so +far as we can gather, think the worse of his countrymen on that +account. It is not improbable that if they had poisoned +Plato too, Aristophanes would have been well enough pleased; but +I think he would have preferred either of these two men to Marcus +Aurelius.</p> +<p>I know nothing about the loving but manly devotion of a St. +Lewis, but I strongly suspect that Mr. Mivart has taken him, too, +upon hearsay.</p> +<p>On the other hand, among dogs we find examples of every heroic +quality, and of all that is most perfectly charming to us in +man.</p> +<p>As for the possible development of the more brutal human +natures from the more brutal instincts of the lower animals, +those who read a horrible story told in a note, pp. 233, 234 of +Mr. Mivart’s “Genesis of Species,” will feel no +difficulty on that score. I must admit, however, that the +telling of that story seems to me to be a mistake in a +philosophical work, which should not, I think, unless under +compulsion, deal either with the horrors of the French +Revolution—or of the Spanish or Italian Inquisition.</p> +<p>For the rest of Mr. Mivart’s objections, I must refer +the reader to his own work. I have been unable to find a +single one, which I do not believe to be easily met by the +Lamarckian view, with the additions (if indeed they are +additions, for I must own to no very profound knowledge of what +Lamarck did or did not say), which I have in this volume proposed +to make to it. At the same time I admit, that as against +the Darwinian view, many of them seem quite unanswerable.</p> +<h2><a name="page294"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +294</span>CHAPTER XV.<br /> +<span class="GutSmall">CONCLUDING REMARKS.</span></h2> +<p><span class="smcap">Here</span>, then, I leave my case, though +well aware that I have crossed the threshold only of my +subject. My work is of a tentative character, put before +the public as a sketch or design for a, possibly, further +endeavour, in which I hope to derive assistance from the +criticisms which this present volume may elicit. Such as it +is, however, for the present I must leave it.</p> +<p>We have seen that we cannot do anything thoroughly till we can +do it unconsciously, and that we cannot do anything unconsciously +till we can do it thoroughly; this at first seems illogical; but +logic and consistency are luxuries for the gods, and the lower +animals, only. Thus a boy cannot really know how to swim +till he can swim, but he cannot swim till he knows how to +swim. Conscious effort is but the process of rubbing off +the rough corners from these two contradictory statements, till +they eventually fit into one another so closely that it is +impossible to disjoin them.</p> +<p>Whenever, therefore, we see any creature able to go through +any complicated and difficult process with little or no +effort—whether it be a bird building her nest, or a +hen’s egg making itself into a chicken, or an ovum turning +itself into a baby—we may conclude that the creature has +done the same thing on a very great number of past occasions.</p> +<p>We found the phenomena exhibited by heredity to be so like +those of memory, and to be so utterly inexplicable on any other +supposition, that it was easier to suppose them due to memory in +spite of the fact that we cannot remember having recollected, +than to believe that because we cannot so remember, therefore the +phenomena cannot be due to memory.</p> +<p>We were thus led to consider “personal identity,” +in order to see whether there was sufficient reason for denying +that the experience, which we must have clearly gained somewhere, +was gained by us when we were in the persons of our forefathers; +we found, not without surprise, that unless we admitted that it +might be so gained, in so far as that we once <i>actually +were</i> our remotest ancestor, we must change our ideas +concerning personality altogether.</p> +<p>We therefore assumed that the phenomena of heredity, whether +as regards instinct or structure were mainly due to memory of +past experiences, accumulated and fused till they had become +automatic, or quasi automatic, much in the same way as after a +long life—</p> +<p class="poetry">. . . “Old experience do attain<br /> +To something like prophetic strain.”</p> +<p>After dealing with certain phenomena of memory, but more +especially with its abeyance and revival, we inquired what the +principal corresponding phenomena of life and species should be, +on the hypothesis that they were mainly due to memory.</p> +<p>I think I may say that we found the hypothesis fit in with +actual facts in a sufficiently satisfactory manner. We +found not a few matters, as, for example, the sterility of +hybrids, the phenomena of old age, and puberty as generally near +the end of development, explain themselves with more completeness +than I have yet heard of their being explained on any other +hypothesis.</p> +<p>We considered the most important difficulty in the way of +instinct as hereditary habit, namely, the structure and instincts +of neuter insects; these are very unlike those of their parents, +and cannot apparently be transmitted to offspring by individuals +of the previous generation, in whom such structure and instincts +appeared, inasmuch as these creatures are sterile. I do not +say that the difficulty is wholly removed, inasmuch as some +obscurity must be admitted to remain as to the manner in which +the structure of the larva is aborted; this obscurity is likely +to remain till we know more of the early history of civilisation +among bees than I can find that we know at present; but I believe +the difficulty was reduced to such proportions as to make it +little likely to be felt in comparison with that of attributing +instinct to any other cause than inherited habit, or inherited +habit modified by changed conditions.</p> +<p>We then inquired what was the great principle underlying +variation, and answered, with Lamarck, that it must be +“sense of need;” and though not without being haunted +by suspicion of a vicious circle, and also well aware that we +were not much nearer the origin of life than when we started, we +still concluded that here was the truest origin of species, and +hence of genera; and that the accumulation of variations, which +in time amounted to specific and generic differences, was due to +intelligence and memory on the part of the creature varying, +rather than to the operation of what Mr. Darwin has called +“natural selection.” At the same time we +admitted that the course of nature is very much as Mr. Darwin has +represented it, in this respect, in so far as that there is a +struggle for existence, and that the weaker must go to the +wall. But we denied that this part of the course of nature +would lead to much, if any, accumulation of variation, unless the +variation was directed mainly by intelligent sense of need, with +continued personality and memory.</p> +<p>We conclude, therefore, that the small, structureless, +impregnate ovum from which we have each one of us sprung, has a +potential recollection of all that has happened to each one of +its ancestors prior to the period at which any such ancestor has +issued from the bodies of its progenitors—provided, that is +to say, a sufficiently deep, or sufficiently often-repeated, +impression has been made to admit of its being remembered at +all.</p> +<p>Each step of normal development will lead the impregnate ovum +up to, and remind it of, its next ordinary course of action, in +the same way as we, when we recite a well-known passage, are led +up to each successive sentence by the sentence which has +immediately preceded it.</p> +<p>And for this reason, namely, that as it takes two people +“to tell” a thing—a speaker and a comprehending +listener, without which last, though much may have been said, +there has been nothing told—so also it takes two people, as +it were, to “remember” a thing—the creature +remembering, and the surroundings of the creature at the time it +last remembered. Hence, though the ovum immediately after +impregnation is instinct with all the memories of both parents, +not one of these memories can normally become active till both +the ovum itself, and its surroundings, are sufficiently like what +they respectively were, when the occurrence now to be remembered +last took place. The memory will then immediately return, +and the creature will do as it did on the last occasion that it +was in like case as now. This ensures that similarity of +order shall be preserved in all the stages of development, in +successive generations.</p> +<p>Life, then, is faith founded upon experience, which experience +is in its turn founded upon faith—or more simply, it is +memory. Plants and animals only differ from one another +because they remember different things; plants and animals only +grow up in the shapes they assume because this shape is their +memory, their idea concerning their own past history.</p> +<p>Hence the term “Natural History,” as applied to +the different plants and animals around us. For surely the +study of natural history means only the study of plants and +animals themselves, which, at the moment of using the words +“Natural History,” we assume to be the most important +part of nature.</p> +<p>A living creature well supported by a mass of healthy +ancestral memory is a young and growing creature, free from ache +or pain, and thoroughly acquainted with its business so far, but +with much yet to be reminded of. A creature which finds +itself and its surroundings not so unlike those of its parents +about the time of their begetting it, as to be compelled to +recognise that it never yet was in any such position, is a +creature in the heyday of life. A creature which begins to +be aware of itself is one which is beginning to recognise that +the situation is a new one.</p> +<p>It is the young and fair, then, who are the truly old and the +truly experienced; it is they who alone have a trustworthy memory +to guide them; they alone know things as they are, and it is from +them that, as we grow older, we must study if we would still +cling to truth. The whole charm of youth lies in its +advantage over age in respect of experience, and where this has +for some reason failed, or been misapplied, the charm is +broken. When we say that we are getting old, we should say +rather that we are getting new or young, and are suffering from +inexperience, which drives us into doing things which we do not +understand, and lands us, eventually, in the utter impotence of +death. The kingdom of heaven is the kingdom of little +children.</p> +<p>A living creature bereft of all memory dies. If bereft +of a great part of memory, it swoons or sleeps; and when its +memory returns, we say it has returned to life.</p> +<p>Life and death, then, should be memory and forgetfulness, for +we are dead to all that we have forgotten.</p> +<p>Life is that property of matter whereby it can remember. +Matter which can remember is living; matter which cannot remember +is dead.</p> +<p><i>Life</i>, <i>then</i>, <i>is memory</i>. The life of +a creature is the memory of a creature. We are all the same +stuff to start with, but we remember different things, and if we +did not remember different things we should be absolutely like +each other. As for the stuff itself of which we are made, +we know nothing save only that it is “such as dreams are +made of.”</p> + +<div class="gapshortline"> </div> +<p>I am aware that there are many expressions throughout this +book, which are not scientifically accurate. Thus I imply +that we tend towards the centre of the earth, when, I believe, I +should say we tend towards to the centre of gravity of the +earth. I speak of “the primordial cell,” when I +mean only the earliest form of life, and I thus not only assume a +single origin of life when there is no necessity for doing so, +and perhaps no evidence to this effect, but I do so in spite of +the fact that the amœba, which seems to be “the +simplest form of life,” does not appear to be a cell at +all. I have used the word “beget,” of what, I +am told, is asexual generation, whereas the word should be +confined to sexual generation only. Many more such errors +have been pointed out to me, and I doubt not that a larger number +remain of which I know nothing now, but of which I may perhaps be +told presently.</p> +<p>I did not, however, think that in a work of this description +the additional words which would have been required for +scientific accuracy were worth the paper and ink and loss of +breadth which their introduction would entail. Besides, I +know nothing about science, and it is as well that there should +be no mistake on this head; I neither know, nor want to know, +more detail than is necessary to enable me to give a fairly broad +and comprehensive view of my subject. When for the purpose +of giving this, a matter importunately insisted on being made +out, I endeavoured to make it out as well as I could; +otherwise—that is to say, if it did not insist on being +looked into, in spite of a good deal of snubbing, I held that, as +it was blurred and indistinct in nature, I had better so render +it in my work.</p> +<p>Nevertheless, if one has gone for some time through a wood +full of burrs, some of them are bound to stick. I am afraid +that I have left more such burrs in one part and another of my +book, than the kind of reader whom I alone wish to please will +perhaps put up with. Fortunately, this kind of reader is +the best-natured critic in the world, and is long suffering of a +good deal that the more consciously scientific will not tolerate; +I wish, however, that I had not used such expressions as +“centres of thought and action” quite so often.</p> +<p>As for the kind of inaccuracy already alluded to, my reader +will not, I take it, as a general rule, know, or wish to know, +much more about science than I do, sometimes perhaps even less; +so that he and I shall commonly be wrong in the same places, and +our two wrongs will make a sufficiently satisfactory right for +practical purposes.</p> +<p>Of course, if I were a specialist writing a treatise or primer +on such and such a point of detail, I admit that scientific +accuracy would be <i>de rigueur</i>; but I have been trying to +paint a picture rather than to make a diagram, and I claim the +painter’s license “<i>quidlibet +audendi</i>.” I have done my utmost to give the +spirit of my subject, but if the letter interfered with the +spirit, I have sacrificed it without remorse.</p> +<p>May not what is commonly called a scientific subject have +artistic value which it is a pity to neglect? But if a +subject is to be treated artistically—that is to say, with +a desire to consider not only the facts, but the way in which the +reader will feel concerning those facts, and the way in which he +will wish to see them rendered, thus making his mind a factor of +the intention, over and above the subject itself—then the +writer must not be denied a painter’s license. If one +is painting a hillside at a sufficient distance, and cannot see +whether it is covered with chestnut-trees or walnuts, one is not +bound to go across the valley to see. If one is painting a +city, it is not necessary that one should know the names of the +streets. If a house or tree stands inconveniently for +one’s purpose, it must go without more ado; if two +important features, neither of which can be left out, want a +little bringing together or separating before the spirit of the +place can be well given, they must be brought together, or +separated. Which is a more truthful view, of Shrewsbury, +for example, from a spot where St. Alkmund’s spire is in +parallax with St. Mary’s—a view which should give +only the one spire which can be seen, or one which should give +them both, although the one is hidden? There would be, I +take it, more representation in the misrepresentation than in the +representation—“the half would be greater than the +whole,” unless, that is to say, one expressly told the +spectator that St. Alkmund’s spire was hidden behind St. +Mary’s—a sort of explanation which seldom adds to the +poetical value of any work of art. Do what one may, and no +matter how scientific one may be, one cannot attain absolute +truth. The question is rather, how do people like to have +their error? than, will they go without any error at all? +All truth and no error cannot be given by the scientist more than +by the artist; each has to sacrifice truth in one way or another; +and even if perfect truth could be given, it is doubtful whether +it would not resolve itself into unconsciousness pure and simple, +consciousness being, as it were, the clash of small conflicting +perceptions, without which there is neither intelligence nor +recollection possible. It is not, then, what a man has +said, nor what he has put down with actual paint upon his +canvass, which speaks to us with living language—<i>it is +what he has thought to us</i> (as is so well put in the letter +quoted on page 83), by which our opinion should be +guided;—what has he made us feel that he had it in him, and +wished to do? If he has said or painted enough to make us +feel that he meant and felt as we should wish him to have done, +he has done the utmost that man can hope to do.</p> +<p>I feel sure that no additional amount of technical accuracy +would make me more likely to succeed, in this respect, if I have +otherwise failed; and as this is the only success about which I +greatly care, I have left my scientific inaccuracies uncorrected, +even when aware of them. At the same time, I should say +that I have taken all possible pains as regards anything which I +thought could materially affect the argument one way or +another.</p> +<p>It may be said that I have fallen between two stools, and that +the subject is one which, in my hands, has shown neither artistic +nor scientific value. This would be serious. To fall +between two stools, and to be hanged for a lamb, are the two +crimes which—</p> +<blockquote><p>“Nor gods, nor men, nor any schools +allow.”</p> +</blockquote> +<p>Of the latter, I go in but little danger; about the former, I +shall know better when the public have enlightened me.</p> +<p>The practical value of the views here advanced (if they be +admitted as true at all) would appear to be not inconsiderable, +alike as regards politics or the well-being of the community, and +medicine which deals with that of the individual. In the +first case we see the rationale of compromise, and the equal +folly of making experiments upon too large a scale, and of not +making them at all. We see that new ideas cannot be fused +with old, save gradually and by patiently leading up to them in +such a way as to admit of a sense of continued identity between +the old and the new. This should teach us moderation. +For even though nature wishes to travel in a certain direction, +she insists on being allowed to take her own time; she will not +be hurried, and will cull a creature out even more surely for +forestalling her wishes too readily, than for lagging a little +behind them. So the greatest musicians, painters, and poets +owe their greatness rather to their fusion and assimilation of +all the good that has been done up to, and especially near about, +their own time, than to any very startling steps they have taken +in advance. Such men will be sure to take some, and +important, steps forward; for unless they have this power, they +will not be able to assimilate well what has been done already, +and if they have it, their study of older work will almost +indefinitely assist it; but, on the whole, they owe their +greatness to their completer fusion and assimilation of older +ideas; for nature is distinctly a fairly liberal conservative +rather than a conservative liberal. All which is well said +in the old couplet—</p> +<p class="poetry">“Be not the first by whom the new is +tried,<br /> +Nor yet the last to throw the old aside.”</p> +<p><i>Mutatis mutandis</i>, the above would seem to hold as truly +about medicine as about politics. We cannot reason with our +cells, for they know so much more than we do that they cannot +understand us;—but though we cannot reason with them, we +can find out what they have been most accustomed to, and what, +therefore, they are most likely to expect; we can see that they +get this, as far as it is in our power to give it them, and may +then generally leave the rest to them, only bearing in mind that +they will rebel equally against too sudden a change of treatment, +and no change at all.</p> +<p>Friends have complained to me that they can never tell whether +I am in jest or earnest. I think, however, it should be +sufficiently apparent that I am in very serious earnest, perhaps +too much so, from the first page of my book to the last. I +am not aware of a single argument put forward which is not a +<i>bonâ fide</i> argument, although, perhaps, sometimes +admitting of a humorous side. If a grain of corn looks like +a piece of chaff, I confess I prefer it occasionally to something +which looks like a grain, but which turns out to be a piece of +chaff only. There is no lack of matter of this description +going about in some very decorous volumes; I have, therefore, +endeavoured, for a third time, to furnish the public with a book +whose fault should lie rather in the direction of seeming less +serious than it is, than of being less so than it seems.</p> +<p>At the same time, I admit that when I began to write upon my +subject I did not seriously believe in it. I saw, as it +were, a pebble upon the ground, with a sheen that pleased me; +taking it up, I turned it over and over for my amusement, and +found it always grow brighter and brighter the more I examined +it. At length I became fascinated, and gave loose rein to +self-illusion. The aspect of the world seemed changed; the +trifle which I had picked up idly had proved to be a talisman of +inestimable value, and had opened a door through which I caught +glimpses of a strange and interesting transformation. Then +came one who told me that the stone was not mine, but that it had +been dropped by Lamarck, to whom it belonged rightfully, but who +had lost it; whereon I said I cared not who was the owner, if +only I might use it and enjoy it. Now, therefore, having +polished it with what art and care one who is no jeweller could +bestow upon it, I return it, as best I may, to its possessor.</p> +<p>What am I to think or say? That I tried to deceive +others till I have fallen a victim to my own falsehood? +Surely this is the most reasonable conclusion to arrive at. +Or that I have really found Lamarck’s talisman, which had +been for some time lost sight of?</p> +<p>Will the reader bid me wake with him to a world of chance and +blindness? Or can I persuade him to dream with me of a more +living faith than either he or I had as yet conceived as +possible? As I have said, reason points remorselessly to an +awakening, but faith and hope still beckon to the dream.</p> +<h2><a name="page308"></a><span class="pagenum">p. +308</span>APPENDIX<br /> +AUTHOR’S ADDENDA</h2> +<h3>I<br /> +<i>See Page</i> 13</h3> +<p><span class="smcap">But</span> I may say in passing that +though articulate speech and the power to maintain the upright +position come much about the same time, yet the power of making +gestures of more or less significance is prior to that of walking +uprightly, and therefore to that of speech. Not only is +gesticulation the earlier faculty in the individual, but it was +so also in the history of our race. Our semi-simious +ancestors could gesticulate long before they could talk +articulately. It is significant of this that gesture is +still found easier than speech even by adults, as may be observed +on our river steamers, where the captain moves his hand but does +not speak, a boy interpreting his gesture into language. To +develop this here would complicate the argument; let us be +content to note it and pass on.</p> +<h3>II<br /> +<i>See Page</i> 18</h3> +<p>Nevertheless, the smallness of the effort touches upon the +deepest mystery of organic life—the power to originate, to +err, to sport, the power which differentiates the living organism +from the machine, however complicated. The action and +working of this power is found to be like the action of any other +mental and, therefore, physical power (for all physical action of +living beings is but the expression of a mental action), but I +can throw no light upon its origin any more than upon the origin +of life. This, too, must be noted and passed over.</p> +<h3>III<br /> +<i>See Page</i> 25</h3> +<p>How different from the above uncertain sound is the full clear +note of one who truly believes:—</p> +<p>“The Church of England is commonly called a Lutheran +church, but whoever compares it with the Lutheran churches on the +Continent will have reason to congratulate himself on its +superiority. It is in fact a church <i>sui generis</i>, +yielding in point of dignity, purity and decency of its +doctrines, establishment and ceremonies, to no congregation of +christians in the world; modelled to a certain and considerable +extent, but not entirely, by our great and wise pious reformers +on the doctrines of Luther, so far as they are in conformity with +the sure and solid foundation on which it rests, and we trust for +ever will rest—the authority of the Holy Scriptures, Jesus +Christ himself being the chief corner stone.” +(“Sketch of Modern and Ancient Geography,” by Dr. +Samuel Butler, of Shrewsbury. Ed. 1813.)</p> +<p>This is the language of faith, compelled by the exigencies of +the occasion to be for a short time conscious of its own +existence, but surely very little likely to become so to the +extent of feeling the need of any assistance from reason. +It is the language of one whose convictions are securely founded +upon the current opinion of those among whom he has been born and +bred; and of all merely post-natal faiths a faith so founded is +the strongest. It is pleasing to see that the only +alterations in the edition of 1838 consist in spelling Christians +with a capital C and the omission of the epithet +“wise” as applied to the reformers, an omission more +probably suggested by a desire for euphony than by any nascent +doubts concerning the applicability of the epithet itself.</p> +<h3>IV.<br /> +<i>See Page</i> 239</h3> +<p><span class="smcap">Or</span> take, again, the constitution of +the Church of England. The bishops are the spiritual +queens, the clergy are the neuter workers. They differ +widely in structure (for dress must be considered as a part of +structure), in the delicacy of the food they eat and the kind of +house they inhabit, and also in many of their instincts, from the +bishops, who are their spiritual parents. Not only this, +but there are two distinct kinds of neuter workers—priests +and deacons; and of the former there are deans, archdeacons, +prebends, canons, rural deans, vicars, rectors, curates, yet all +spiritually sterile. In spite of this sterility, however, +is there anyone who will maintain that the widely differing +structures and instincts of these castes are not due to inherited +spiritual habit? Still less will he be inclined to do so +when he reflects that by such slight modification of treatment as +consecration and endowment any one of them can be rendered +spiritually fertile.</p> +<h2>FOOTNOTES</h2> +<p><a name="footnotevii"></a><a href="#citationvii" +class="footnote">[vii]</a> Although the original edition of +“Life and Habit” is dated 1878, the book was actually +published in December, 1877.</p> +<p><a name="footnote13"></a><a href="#citation13" +class="footnote">[13]</a> See Appendix (<i>note for +page</i> 13).</p> +<p><a name="footnote18"></a><a href="#citation18" +class="footnote">[18]</a> See Appendix (<i>note for +page</i> 18).</p> +<p><a name="footnote25"></a><a href="#citation25" +class="footnote">[25]</a> See Appendix (<i>note for +page</i> 25).</p> +<p><a name="footnote239"></a><a href="#citation239" +class="footnote">[239]</a> See Appendix (<i>note for +page</i> 239).</p> +<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LIFE AND HABIT***</p> +<pre> + + +***** This file should be named 6138-h.htm or 6138-h.zip****** + + +This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: +http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/1/3/6138 + + + +Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions +will be renamed. + +Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no +one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation +(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without +permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, +set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to +copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to +protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project +Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you +charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you +do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the +rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose +such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and +research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do +practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is +subject to the trademark license, especially commercial +redistribution. + + + +*** START: FULL LICENSE *** + +THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE +PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK + +To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free +distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work +(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project +Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project +Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at + www.gutenberg.org/license. + + +Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic works + +1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to +and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property +(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all +the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy +all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession. +If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the +terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or +entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8. + +1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be +used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who +agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few +things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works +even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See +paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement +and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. See paragraph 1.E below. + +1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation" +or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the +collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an +individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are +located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from +copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative +works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg +are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project +Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by +freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of +this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with +the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by +keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project +Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others. + +1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern +what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in +a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check +the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement +before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or +creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project +Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning +the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United +States. + +1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: + +1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate +access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently +whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the +phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project +Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, +copied or distributed: + +This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with +almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or +re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included +with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org + +1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived +from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is +posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied +and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees +or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work +with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the +work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 +through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the +Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or +1.E.9. + +1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted +with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution +must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional +terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked +to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the +permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work. + +1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this +work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. + +1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this +electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without +prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with +active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project +Gutenberg-tm License. + +1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, +compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any +word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or +distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than +"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version +posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org), +you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a +copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon +request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other +form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm +License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. + +1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, +performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works +unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. + +1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing +access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided +that + +- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from + the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method + you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is + owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he + has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the + Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments + must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you + prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax + returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and + sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the + address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to + the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies + you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he + does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm + License. You must require such a user to return or + destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium + and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of + Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any + money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the + electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days + of receipt of the work. + +- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free + distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. + +1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm +electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set +forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from +both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael +Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the +Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. + +1.F. + +1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable +effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread +public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm +collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain +"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual +property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a +computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by +your equipment. + +1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right +of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project +Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project +Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all +liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal +fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT +LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE +PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE +TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE +LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR +INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH +DAMAGE. + +1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a +defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can +receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a +written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you +received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with +your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with +the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a +refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity +providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to +receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy +is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further +opportunities to fix the problem. + +1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth +in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO +WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. + +1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied +warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. +If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the +law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be +interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by +the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any +provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions. + +1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the +trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone +providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance +with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production, +promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, +harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees, +that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do +or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm +work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any +Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause. + + +Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm + +Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of +electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers +including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists +because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from +people in all walks of life. + +Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the +assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's +goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will +remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project +Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure +and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations. +To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4 +and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org + + +Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive +Foundation + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit +501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the +state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal +Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification +number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent +permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. + +The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. +Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered +throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at 809 +North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email +contact links and up to date contact information can be found at the +Foundation's web site and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact + +For additional contact information: + Dr. Gregory B. Newby + Chief Executive and Director + gbnewby@pglaf.org + +Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg +Literary Archive Foundation + +Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide +spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of +increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be +freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest +array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations +($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt +status with the IRS. + +The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating +charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United +States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a +considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up +with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations +where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To +SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any +particular state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate + +While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we +have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition +against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who +approach us with offers to donate. + +International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make +any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from +outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. + +Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation +methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other +ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. +To donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate + + +Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic +works. + +Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm +concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared +with anyone. For forty years, he produced and distributed Project +Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support. + +Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + +Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility: + + www.gutenberg.org + +This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, +including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary +Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to +subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. +</pre></body> +</html> diff --git a/6138-h/images/tpb.jpg b/6138-h/images/tpb.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..6551133 --- /dev/null +++ b/6138-h/images/tpb.jpg diff --git a/6138-h/images/tps.jpg b/6138-h/images/tps.jpg Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..3a7449a --- /dev/null +++ b/6138-h/images/tps.jpg diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..6312041 --- /dev/null +++ b/LICENSE.txt @@ -0,0 +1,11 @@ +This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements, +metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be +in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES. + +Procedures for determining public domain status are described in +the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org. + +No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in +jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize +this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright +status under the laws that apply to them. diff --git a/README.md b/README.md new file mode 100644 index 0000000..7c3c5aa --- /dev/null +++ b/README.md @@ -0,0 +1,2 @@ +Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for +eBook #6138 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/6138) diff --git a/old/lfhb10.txt b/old/lfhb10.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..70aebba --- /dev/null +++ b/old/lfhb10.txt @@ -0,0 +1,8646 @@ +The Project Gutenberg EBook of Life and Habit, by Samuel Butler +(#13 in our series by Samuel Butler) + +Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the +copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing +this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook. + +This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project +Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the +header without written permission. + +Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the +eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is +important information about your specific rights and restrictions in +how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a +donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved. + + +**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts** + +**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971** + +*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!***** + + +Title: Life and Habit + +Author: Samuel Butler + +Release Date: July, 2004 [EBook #6138] +[Yes, we are more than one year ahead of schedule] +[This file was first posted on November 18, 2002] + +Edition: 10 + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ASCII + +*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, LIFE AND HABIT *** + + + + +Transcribed from the 1910 Jonathan Cape edition by David Price, email +ccx074@coventry.ac.uk + + + + +LIFE AND HABIT + + + + +PREFACE + + + +Since Samuel Butler published "Life and Habit" thirty-three {1} years +have elapsed--years fruitful in change and discovery, during which +many of the mighty have been put down from their seat and many of the +humble have been exalted. I do not know that Butler can truthfully +be called humble, indeed, I think he had very few misgivings as to +his ultimate triumph, but he has certainly been exalted with a +rapidity that he himself can scarcely have foreseen. During his +lifetime he was a literary pariah, the victim of an organized +conspiracy of silence. He is now, I think it may be said without +exaggeration, universally accepted as one of the most remarkable +English writers of the latter part of the nineteenth century. I will +not weary my readers by quoting the numerous tributes paid by +distinguished contemporary writers to Butler's originality and force +of mind, but I cannot refrain from illustrating the changed attitude +of the scientific world to Butler and his theories by a reference to +"Darwin and Modern Science," the collection of essays published in +1909 by the University of Cambridge, in commemoration of the Darwin +centenary. In that work Professor Bateson, while referring +repeatedly to Butler's biological works, speaks of him as "the most +brilliant and by far the most interesting of Darwin's opponents, +whose works are at length emerging from oblivion." With the growth +of Butler's reputation "Life and Habit" has had much to do. It was +the first and is undoubtedly the most important of his writings on +evolution. From its loins, as it were, sprang his three later books, +"Evolution Old and New," "Unconscious Memory," and "Luck or Cunning", +which carried its arguments further afield. It will perhaps interest +Butler's readers if I here quote a passage from his note-books, +lately published in the "New Quarterly Review" (Vol. III. No. 9), in +which he summarizes his work in biology: + +"To me it seems that my contributions to the theory of evolution have +been mainly these + +"1. The identification of heredity and memory, and the corollaries +relating to sports, the reversion to remote ancestors, the phenomena +of old age, the causes of the sterility of hybrids, and the +principles underlying longevity--all of which follow as a matter of +course. This was 'Life and Habit' [1877]. + +"2. The re-introduction of teleology into organic life, which to me +seems hardly, if at all, less important than the 'Life and Habit' +theory. This was 'Evolution Old and New' [1879]. + +"3. An attempt to suggest an explanation of the physics of memory. +This was Unconscious Memory' [1880]. I was alarmed by the suggestion +and fathered it upon Professor Hering, who never, that I can see, +meant to say anything of the kind, but I forced my view upon him, as +it were, by taking hold of a sentence or two in his lecture, 'On +Memory as a Universal Function of Organised Matter,' and thus +connected memory with vibrations. + +"What I want to do now (1885) is to connect vibrations not only with +memory but with the physical constitution of that body in which the +memory resides, thus adopting Newland's law (sometimes called +Mendelejeff's law) that there is only one substance, and that the +characteristics of the vibrations going on within it at any given +time will determine whether it will appear to us as, we will say, +hydrogen, or sodium, or chicken doing this, or chicken doing the +other." [This is touched upon in the concluding chapter of "Luck or +Cunning?" 1887]. + +The present edition of "Life and Habit" is practically a re-issue of +that of 1878. I find that about the year 1890, although the original +edition was far from being exhausted, Butler began to make +corrections of the text of "Life and Habit," presumably with the +intention of publishing a revised edition. The copy of the book so +corrected is now in my possession. In the first five chapters there +are numerous emendations, very few of which, however, affect the +meaning to any appreciable extent, being mainly concerned with the +excision of redundancies and the simplification of style. I imagine +that by the time he had reached the end of the fifth chapter Butler +realised that the corrections he had made were not of sufficient +importance to warrant a new edition, and determined to let the book +stand as it was. I believe, therefore, that I am carrying out his +wishes in reprinting the present edition from the original plates. I +have found, however, among his papers three entirely new passages, +which he probably wrote during the period of correction and no doubt +intended to incorporate into the revised edition. Mr. Henry Festing +Jones has also given me a copy of a passage which Butler wrote and +gummed into Mr. Jones's copy of "Life and Habit." These four +passages I have printed as an appendix at the end of the present +volume. + +One more point deserves notice. Butler often refers in "Life and +Habit" to Darwin's "Variations of Animals and Plants under +Domestication." When he does so it is always under the name "Plants +and Animals." More often still he refers to Darwin's "Origin of +Species by means Natural Selection," terming it at one time "Origin +of Species" and at another "Natural Selection," sometimes, as on p. +278, using both names within a few lines of each other. Butler was +as a rule scrupulously careful about quotations, and I can offer no +explanation of this curious confusion of titles. + +R. A. STREATFEILD. +November, 1910. + + + +AUTHOR'S PREFACE + + + +The Italics in the passages quoted in this book are generally mine, +but I found it almost impossible to call the reader's attention to +this upon every occasion. I have done so once or twice, as thinking +it necessary in these cases that there should be no mistake; on the +whole, however, I thought it better to content myself with calling +attention in a preface to the fact that the author quoted is not, as +a general rule, responsible for the Italics. + +S. BUTLER. +November 13, 1877. + + + +CHAPTER I--ON CERTAIN ACQUIRED HABITS + + + +It will be our business in the following chapters to consider whether +the unconsciousness, or quasi-unconsciousness, with which we perform +certain acquired actions, would seem to throw any light upon +Embryology and inherited instincts, and otherwise to follow the train +of thought which the class of actions above-mentioned would suggest; +more especially in so far as they appear to bear upon the origin of +species and the continuation of life by successive generations, +whether in the animal or vegetable kingdoms. + +In the outset, however, I would wish most distinctly to disclaim for +these pages the smallest pretension to scientific value, originality, +or even to accuracy of more than a very rough and ready kind--for +unless a matter be true enough to stand a good deal of +misrepresentation, its truth is not of a very robust order, and the +blame will rather lie with its own delicacy if it be crushed, than +with the carelessness of the crusher. I have no wish to instruct, +and not much to be instructed; my aim is simply to entertain and +interest the numerous class of people who, like myself, know nothing +of science, but who enjoy speculating and reflecting (not too deeply) +upon the phenomena around them. I have therefore allowed myself a +loose rein, to run on with whatever came uppermost, without regard to +whether it was new or old; feeling sure that if true, it must be very +old or it never could have occurred to one so little versed in +science as myself; and knowing that it is sometimes pleasanter to +meet the old under slightly changed conditions, than to go through +the formalities and uncertainties of making new acquaintance. At the +same time, I should say that whatever I have knowingly taken from any +one else, I have always acknowledged. + +It is plain, therefore, that my book cannot be intended for the +perusal of scientific people; it is intended for the general public +only, with whom I believe myself to be in harmony, as knowing neither +much more nor much less than they do. + +Taking then, the art of playing the piano as an example of the kind +of action we are in search of, we observe that a practised player +will perform very difficult pieces apparently without effort, often, +indeed, while thinking and talking of something quite other than his +music; yet he will play accurately and, possibly, with much +expression. If he has been playing a fugue, say in four parts, he +will have kept each part well distinct, in such a manner as to prove +that his mind was not prevented, by its other occupations, from +consciously or unconsciously following four distinct trains of +musical thought at the same time, nor from making his fingers act in +exactly the required manner as regards each note of each part. + +It commonly happens that in the course of four or five minutes a +player may have struck four or five thousand notes. If we take into +consideration the rests, dotted notes, accidentals, variations of +time, &c., we shall find his attention must have been exercised on +many more occasions than when he was actually striking notes: so +that it may not be too much to say that the attention of a first-rate +player may have been exercised--to an infinitesimally small extent-- +but still truly exercised--on as many as ten thousand occasions +within the space of five minutes, for no note can be struck nor point +attended to without a certain amount of attention, no matter how +rapidly or unconsciously given. + +Moreover, each act of attention has been followed by an act of +volition, and each act of volition by a muscular action, which is +composed of many minor actions; some so small that we can no more +follow them than the player himself can perceive them; nevertheless, +it may have been perfectly plain that the player was not attending to +what he was doing, but was listening to conversation on some other +subject, not to say joining in it himself. If he has been playing +the violin, he may have done all the above, and may also have been +walking about. Herr Joachim would unquestionably be able to do all +that has here been described. + +So complete would the player's unconsciousness of the attention he is +giving, and the brain power he is exerting appear to be, that we +shall find it difficult to awaken his attention to any particular +part of his performance without putting him out. Indeed we cannot do +so. We shall observe that he finds it hardly less difficult to +compass a voluntary consciousness of what he has once learnt so +thoroughly that it has passed, so to speak, into the domain of +unconsciousness, than he found it to learn the note or passage in the +first instance. The effort after a second consciousness of detail +baffles him--compels him to turn to his music or play slowly. In +fact it seems as though he knew the piece too well to be able to know +that he knows it, and is only conscious of knowing those passages +which he does not know so thoroughly. + +At the end of his performance, his memory would appear to be no less +annihilated than was his consciousness of attention and volition. +For of the thousands of acts requiring the exercise of both the one +and the other, which he has done during the five minutes, we will +say, of his performance, he will remember hardly one when it is over. +If he calls to mind anything beyond the main fact that he has played +such and such a piece, it will probably be some passage which he has +found more difficult than the others, and with the like of which he +has not been so long familiar. All the rest he will forget as +completely as the breath which he has drawn while playing. + +He finds it difficult to remember even the difficulties he +experienced in learning to play. A few may have so impressed him +that they remain with him, but the greater part will have escaped him +as completely as the remembrance of what he ate, or how he put on his +clothes, this day ten years ago; nevertheless, it is plain he +remembers more than he remembers remembering, for he avoids mistakes +which he made at one time, and his performance proves that all the +notes are in his memory, though if called upon to play such and such +a bar at random from the middle of the piece, and neither more nor +less, he will probably say that he cannot remember it unless he +begins from the beginning of the phrase which leads to it. Very +commonly he will be obliged to begin from the beginning of the +movement itself, and be unable to start at any other point unless he +have the music before him; and if disturbed, as we have seen above, +he will have to start de novo from an accustomed starting-point. + +Yet nothing can be more obvious than that there must have been a time +when what is now so easy as to be done without conscious effort of +the brain was only done by means of brain work which was very keenly +perceived, even to fatigue and positive distress. Even now, if the +player is playing something the like of which he has not met before, +we observe he pauses and becomes immediately conscious of attention. + +We draw the inference, therefore, as regards pianoforte or violin +playing, that the more the familiarity or knowledge of the art, the +less is there consciousness of such knowledge; even so far as that +there should seem to be almost as much difficulty in awakening +consciousness which has become, so to speak, latent,--a consciousness +of that which is known too well to admit of recognised self-analysis +while the knowledge is being exercised--as in creating a +consciousness of that which is not yet well enough known to be +properly designated as known at all. On the other hand, we observe +that the less the familiarly or knowledge, the greater the +consciousness of whatever knowledge there is. + +Considering other like instances of the habitual exercise of +intelligence and volition, which, from long familiarity with the +method of procedure, escape the notice of the person exercising them, +we naturally think of writing. The formation of each letter requires +attention and volition, yet in a few minutes a practised writer will +form several hundred letters, and be able to think and talk of +something else all the time he is doing so. It will not probably +remember the formation of a single character in any page that he has +written; nor will he be able to give more than the substance of his +writing if asked to do so. He knows how to form each letter so well, +and he knows so well each word that he is about to write, that he has +ceased to be conscious of his knowledge or to notice his acts of +volition, each one of which is, nevertheless, followed by a +corresponding muscular action. Yet the uniformity of our +handwriting, and the manner in which we almost invariably adhere to +one method of forming the same character, would seem to suggest that +during the momentary formation of each letter our memories must +revert (with an intensity too rapid for our perception) to many if +not to all the occasions on which we have ever written the same +letter previously--the memory of these occasions dwelling in our +minds as what has been called a residuum--an unconsciously struck +balance or average of them all--a fused mass of individual +reminiscences of which no trace can be found in our consciousness, +and of which the only effect would seem to lie in the gradual changes +of handwriting which are perceptible in most people till they have +reached middle-age, and sometimes even later. So far are we from +consciously remembering any one of the occasions on which we have +written such and such a letter, that we are not even conscious of +exercising our memory at all, any more than we are in health +conscious of the action of our heart. But, if we are writing in some +unfamiliar way, as when printing our letters instead of writing them +in our usual running hand, our memory is so far awakened that we +become conscious of every character we form; sometimes it is even +perceptible as memory to ourselves, as when we try to remember how to +print some letter, for example a g, and cannot call to mind on which +side of the upper half of the letter we ought to put the link which +connects it with the lower, and are successful in remembering; but if +we become very conscious of remembering, it shows that we are on the +brink of only trying to remember,--that is to say, of not remembering +at all. + +As a general rule, we remember for a time the substance of what we +have written, for the subject is generally new to us; but if we are +writing what we have often written before, we lose consciousness of +this too, as fully as we do of the characters necessary to convey the +substance to another person, and we shall find ourselves writing on +as it were mechanically while thinking and talking of something else. +So a paid copyist, to whom the subject of what he is writing is of no +importance, does not even notice it. He deals only with familiar +words and familiar characters without caring to go behind them, and +thereupon writes on in a quasi-unconscious manner; but if he comes to +a word or to characters with which he is but little acquainted, he +becomes immediately awakened to the consciousness of either +remembering or trying to remember. His consciousness of his own +knowledge or memory would seem to belong to a period, so to speak, of +twilight between the thick darkness of ignorance and the brilliancy +of perfect knowledge; as colour which vanishes with extremes of light +or of shade. Perfect ignorance and perfect knowledge are alike +unselfconscious. + +The above holds good even more noticeably in respect of reading. How +many thousands of individual letters do our eyes run over every +morning in the "Times" newspaper, how few of them do we notice, or +remember having noticed? Yet there was a time when we had such +difficulty in reading even the simplest words, that we had to take +great pains to impress them upon our memory so as to know them when +we came to then again. Now, not even a single word of all we have +seen will remain with us, unless it is a new one, or an old one used +in an unfamiliar sense, in which case we notice, and may very likely +remember it. Our memory retains the substance only, the substance +only being unfamiliar. Nevertheless, although we do not perceive +more than the general result of our perception, there can be no doubt +of our having perceived every letter in every word that we have read +at all, for if we come upon a word misspelt our attention is at once +aroused; unless, indeed, we have actually corrected the misspelling, +as well as noticed it, unconsciously, through exceeding familiarity +with the way in which it ought to be spelt. Not only do we perceive +the letters we have seen without noticing that we have perceived +them, but we find it almost impossible to notice that we notice them +when we have once learnt to read fluently. To try to do so puts us +out, and prevents our being able to read. We may even go so far as +to say that if a man can attend to the individual characters, it is a +sign that he cannot yet read fluently. If we know how to read well, +we are as unconscious of the means and processes whereby we attain +the desired result as we are about the growth of our hair or the +circulation of our blood. So that here again it would seem that we +only know what we know still to some extent imperfectly, and that +what we know thoroughly escapes our conscious perception though none +the less actually perceived. Our perception in fact passes into a +latent stage, as also our memory and volition. + +Walking is another example of the rapid exercise of volition with but +little perception of each individual act of exercise. We notice any +obstacle in our path, but it is plain we do not notice that we +perceive much that we have nevertheless been perceiving; for if a man +goes down a lane by night he will stumble over many things which he +would have avoided by day, although he would not have noticed them. +Yet time was when walking was to each one of us a new and arduous +task--as arduous as we should now find it to wheel a wheelbarrow on a +tight-rope; whereas, at present, though we can think of our steps to +a certain extent without checking our power to walk, we certainly +cannot consider our muscular action in detail without having to come +to a dead stop. + +Talking--especially in one's mother tongue--may serve as a last +example. We find it impossible to follow the muscular action of the +mouth and tongue in framing every letter or syllable we utter. We +have probably spoken for years and years before we became aware that +the letter h is a labial sound, and until we have to utter a word +which is difficult from its unfamiliarity we speak "trippingly on the +tongue" with no attention except to the substance of what we wish to +say. Yet talking was not always the easy matter to us which it is at +present--as we perceive more readily when we are learning a new +language which it may take us months to master. Nevertheless, when +we have once mastered it we speak it without further consciousness of +knowledge or memory, as regards the more common words, and without +even noticing our consciousness. Here, as in the other instances +already given, as long as we did not know perfectly, we were +conscious of our acts of perception, volition, and reflection, but +when our knowledge has become perfect we no longer notice our +consciousness, nor our volition; nor can we awaken a second +artificial consciousness without some effort, and disturbance of the +process of which we are endeavouring to become conscious. We are no +longer, so to speak, under the law, but under grace. + +An ascending scale may be perceived in the above instances. + +In playing, we have an action acquired long after birth, difficult of +acquisition, and never thoroughly familiarised to the power of +absolutely unconscious performance, except in the case of those who +have either an exceptional genius for music, or who have devoted the +greater part of their time to practising. Except in the case of +these persons it is generally found easy to become more or less +conscious of any passage without disturbing the performance, and our +action remains so completely within our control that we can stop +playing at any moment we please. + +In writing, we have an action generally acquired earlier, done for +the most part with great unconsciousness of detail, fairly well +within our control to stop at any moment; though not so completely as +would be imagined by those who have not made the experiment of trying +to stop in the middle of a given character when writing at fit speed. +Also, we can notice our formation of any individual character without +our writing being materially hindered. + +Reading is usually acquired earlier still. We read with more +unconsciousness of attention than we write. We find it more +difficult to become conscious of any character without discomfiture, +and we cannot arrest ourselves in the middle of a word, for example, +and hardly before the end of a sentence; nevertheless it is on the +whole well within our control. + +Walking is so early an acquisition that we cannot remember having +acquired it. In running fast over average ground we find it very +difficult to become conscious of each individual step, and should +possibly find it more difficult still, if the inequalities and +roughness of uncultured land had not perhaps caused the development +of a power to create a second consciousness of our steps without +hindrance to our running or walking. Pursuit and flight, whether in +the chase or in war, must for many generations have played a much +more prominent part in the lives of our ancestors than they do in our +own. If the ground over which they had to travel had been generally +as free from obstruction as our modern cultivated lands, it is +possible that we might not find it as easy to notice our several +steps as we do at present. Even as it is, if while we are running we +would consider the action of our muscles, we come to a dead stop, and +should probably fall if we tried to observe too suddenly; for we must +stop to do this, and running, when we have once committed ourselves +to it beyond a certain point, is not controllable to a step or two +without loss of equilibrium. + +We learn to talk, much about the same time that we learn to walk, but +talking requires less muscular effort than walking, and makes +generally less demand upon our powers. A man may talk a long while +before he has done the equivalent of a five-mile walk; it is natural, +therefore, that we should have had more practice in talking than in +walking, and hence that we should find it harder to pay attention to +our words than to our steps. Certainly it is very hard to become +conscious of every syllable or indeed of every word we say; the +attempt to do so will often bring us to a check at once; nevertheless +we can generally stop talking if we wish to do so, unless the crying +of infants be considered as a kind of quasi-speech: this comes +earlier, and is often quite uncontrollable, or more truly perhaps is +done with such complete control over the muscles by the will, and +with such absolute certainty of his own purpose on the part of the +wilier, that there is no longer any more doubt, uncertainty, or +suspense, and hence no power of perceiving any of the processes +whereby the result is attained--as a wheel which may look fast fixed +because it is so fast revolving. {2} + +We may observe therefore in this ascending scale, imperfect as it is, +that the older the habit the longer the practice, the longer the +practice, the more knowledge--or, the less uncertainty; the less +uncertainty the less power of conscious self-analysis and control. + +It will occur to the reader that in all the instances given above, +different individuals attain the unconscious stage of perfect +knowledge with very different degrees of facility. Some have to +attain it with a great sum; others are free born. Some learn to +play, to read, write, and talk, with hardly an effort--some show such +an instinctive aptitude for arithmetic that, like Zerah Colburn, at +eight years old, they achieve results without instruction, which in +the case of most people would require a long education. The account +of Zerah Colburn, as quoted from Mr. Baily in Dr. Carpenter's "Mental +Physiology," may perhaps be given here. + +"He raised any number consisting of ONE figure progressively to the +tenth power, giving the results (by actual multiplication and not by +memory) FASTER THAN THEY COULD BE SET DOWN IN FIGURES by the person +appointed to record them. He raised the number 8 progressively to +the SIXTEENTH power, and in naming the last result, which consisted +of 15 figures, he was right in every one. Some numbers consisting of +TWO figures he raised as high as the eighth power, though he found a +difficulty in proceeding when the products became very large. + +"On being asked the SQUARE ROOT of 106,929, he answered 327 before +the original number could be written down. He was then required to +find the cube root of 268,336,125, and with equal facility and +promptness he replied 645. + +"He was asked how many minutes there are in 48 years, and before the +question could be taken down he replied 25,228,800, and immediately +afterwards he gave the correct number of seconds. + +"On being requested to give the factors which would produce the +number 247,483, he immediately named 941 and 263, which are the only +two numbers from the multiplication of which it would result. On +171,395 being proposed, he named 5 x 34,279, 7 x 24,485, 59 x 2905, +83 x 2065, 35 x 4897, 295 x 581, and 413 x 415. + +"He was then asked to give the factors of 36,083, but he immediately +replied that it had none, which was really the case, this being a +prime number. Other numbers being proposed to him indiscriminately, +he always succeeded in giving the correct factors except in the case +of prime numbers, which he generally discovered almost as soon as +they were proposed to him. The number 4,294,967,297, which is 2^32 + +1, having been given him, he discovered, as Euler had previously +done, that it was not the prime number which Fermat had supposed it +to be, but that it is the product of the factors 6,700,417 x 641. +The solution of this problem was only given after the lapse of some +weeks, but the method he took to obtain it clearly showed that he had +not derived his information from any extraneous source. + +"When he was asked to multiply together numbers both consisting of +more than these figures, he seemed to decompose one or both of them +into its factors, and to work with them separately. Thus, on being +asked to give the square of 4395, he multiplied 293 by itself, and +then twice multiplied the product by 15. And on being asked to tell +the square of 999,999 he obtained the correct result, +999,998,000,001, by twice multiplying the square of 37,037 by 27. He +then of his own accord multiplied that product by 49, and said that +the result (viz., 48,999,902,000,049) was equal to the square of +6,999,993. He afterwards multiplied this product by 49, and observed +that the result (viz., 2,400,995,198,002,401) was equal to the square +of 48,999,951. He was again asked to multiply the product by 25, and +in naming the result (viz., 60,024,879,950,060,025) he said it was +equal to the square of 244,999,755. + +"On being interrogated as to the manner in which he obtained these +results, the boy constantly said he did not know HOW the answers came +into his mind. In the act of multiplying two numbers together, and +in the raising of powers, it was evident (alike from the facts just +stated and from the motion of his lips) that SOME operation was going +forward in his mind; yet that operation could not (from the readiness +with which his answers were furnished) have been at all allied to the +usual modes of procedure, of which, indeed, he was entirely ignorant, +not being able to perform on paper a simple sum in multiplication or +division. But in the extraction of roots, and in the discovery of +the factors of large numbers, it did not appear that any operation +COULD take place, since he gave answers IMMEDIATELY, or in a very few +seconds, which, according to the ordinary methods, would have +required very difficult and laborious calculations, and prime numbers +cannot be recognised as such by any known rule." + +I should hope that many of the above figures are wrong. I have +verified them carefully with Dr. Carpenter's quotation, but further +than this I cannot and will not go. Also I am happy to find that in +the end the boy overcame the mathematics, and turned out a useful but +by no means particularly calculating member of society. + +The case, however, is typical of others in which persons have been +found able to do without apparent effort what in the great majority +of cases requires a long apprenticeship. It is needless to multiply +instances; the point that concerns us is, that knowledge under such +circumstances being very intense, and the ease with which the result +is produced extreme, it eludes the conscious apprehension of the +performer himself, who only becomes conscious when a difficulty +arises which taxes even his abnormal power. Such a case, therefore, +confirms rather than militates against our opinion that consciousness +of knowledge vanishes on the knowledge becoming perfect--the only +difference between those possessed of any such remarkable special +power and the general run of people being, that the first are born +with such an unusual aptitude for their particular specialty that +they are able to dispense with all or nearly all the preliminary +exercise of their faculty, while the latter must exercise it for a +considerable time before they can get it to work smoothly and easily; +but in either case when once the knowledge is intense it is +unconscious. + +Nor again would such an instance as that of Zerah Colburn warrant us +in believing that this white heat, as it were, of unconscious +knowledge can be attained by any one without his ever having been +originally cold. Young Colburn, for example, could not extract roots +when he was an embryo of three weeks' standing. It is true we can +seldom follow the process, but we know there must have been a time in +every case when even the desire for information or action had not +been kindled; the forgetfulness of effort on the part of those with +exceptional genius for a special subject is due to the smallness of +the effort necessary, so that it makes no impression upon the +individual himself, rather than to the absence of any effort at all. +{3} + +It would, therefore, appear as though perfect knowledge and perfect +ignorance were extremes which meet and become indistinguishable from +one another; so also perfect volition and perfect absence of +volition, perfect memory and utter forgetfulness; for we are +unconscious of knowing, willing, or remembering, either from not yet +having known or willed, or from knowing and willing so well and so +intensely as to be no longer conscious of either. Conscious +knowledge and volition are of attention; attention is of suspense; +suspense is of doubt; doubt is of uncertainty; uncertainty is of +ignorance; so that the mere fact of conscious knowing or willing +implies the presence of more or less novelty and doubt. + +It would also appear as a general principle on a superficial view of +the foregoing instances (and the reader may readily supply himself +with others which are perhaps more to the purpose), that unconscious +knowledge and unconscious volition are never acquired otherwise than +as the result of experience, familiarity, or habit; so that whenever +we observe a person able to do any complicated action unconsciously, +we may assume both that he must have done it very often before he +could acquire so great proficiency, and also that there must have +been a time when he did not know how to do it at all. + +We may assume that there was a time when he was yet so nearly on the +point of neither knowing nor willing perfectly, that he was quite +alive to whatever knowledge or volition he could exert; going further +back, we shall find him still more keenly alive to a less perfect +knowledge; earlier still, we find him well aware that he does not +know nor will correctly, but trying hard to do both the one and the +other; and so on, back and back, till both difficulty and +consciousness become little more than a sound of going in the brain, +a flitting to and fro of something barely recognisable as the desire +to will or know at all--much less as the desire to know or will +definitely this or that. Finally, they retreat beyond our ken into +the repose--the inorganic kingdom--of as yet unawakened interest. + +In either case,--the repose of perfect ignorance or of perfect +knowledge--disturbance is troublesome. When first starting on an +Atlantic steamer, our rest is hindered by the screw; after a short +time, it is hindered if the screw stops. A uniform impression is +practically no impression. One cannot either learn or unlearn +without pains or pain. + + + +CHAPTER II--CONSCIOUS AND UNCONSCIOUS KNOWERS--THE LAW AND GRACE + + + + +In this chapter we shall show that the law, which we have observed to +hold as to the vanishing tendency of knowledge upon becoming perfect, +holds good not only concerning acquired actions or habits of body, +but concerning opinions, modes of thought, and mental habits +generally, which are no more recognised as soon as firmly fixed, than +are the steps with which we go about our daily avocations. I am +aware that I may appear in the latter part of the chapter to have +wandered somewhat beyond the limits of my subject, but, on the whole, +decide upon leaving what I have written, inasmuch as it serves to +show how far-reaching is the principle on which I am insisting. +Having said so much, I shall during the remainder of the book keep +more closely to the point. + +Certain it is that we know best what we are least conscious of +knowing, or at any rate least able to prove, as, for example, our own +existence, or that there is a country England. If any one asks us +for proof on matters of this sort, we have none ready, and are justly +annoyed at being called to consider what we regard as settled +questions. Again, there is hardly anything which so much affects our +actions as the centre of the earth (unless, perhaps, it be that still +hotter and more unprofitable spot the centre of the universe), for we +are incessantly trying to get as near it as circumstances will allow, +or to avoid getting nearer than is for the time being convenient. +Walking, running, standing, sitting, lying, waking, or sleeping, from +birth till death it is a paramount object with us; even after death-- +if it be not fanciful to say so--it is one of the few things of which +what is left of us can still feel the influence; yet what can engross +less of our attention than this dark and distant spot so many +thousands of miles away? + +The air we breathe, so long as it is neither too hot nor cold, nor +rough, nor full of smoke--that is to say, so long as it is in that +state within which we are best acquainted--seldom enters into our +thoughts; yet there is hardly anything with which we are more +incessantly occupied night and day. + +Indeed, it is not too much to say that we have no really profound +knowledge upon any subject--no knowledge on the strength of which we +are ready to act at all moments unhesitatingly without either +preparation or after-thought--till we have left off feeling conscious +of the possession of such knowledge, and of the grounds on which it +rests. A lesson thoroughly learned must be like the air which feels +so light, though pressing so heavily against us, because every pore +of our skin is saturated, so to speak, with it on all sides equally. +This perfection of knowledge sometimes extends to positive disbelief +in the thing known, so that the most thorough knower shall believe +himself altogether ignorant. No thief, for example, is such an utter +thief--so GOOD a thief--as the kleptomaniac. Until he has become a +kleptomaniac, and can steal a horse as it were by a reflex action, he +is still but half a thief, with many unthievish notions still +clinging to him. Yet the kleptomaniac is probably unaware that he +can steal at all, much less that he can steal so well. He would be +shocked if he were to know the truth. So again, no man is a great +hypocrite until he has left off knowing that he is a hypocrite. The +great hypocrites of the world are almost invariably under the +impression that they are among the very few really honest people to +be found and, as we must all have observed, it is rare to find any +one strongly under this impression without ourselves having good +reason to differ from him. + +Our own existence is another case in point. When we have once become +articulately conscious of existing, it is an easy matter to begin +doubting whether we exist at all. As long as man was too +unreflecting a creature to articulate in words his consciousness of +his own existence, he knew very well that he existed, but he did not +know that he knew it. With introspection, and the perception +recognised, for better or worse, that he was a fact, came also the +perception that he had no solid ground for believing that he was a +fact at all. That nice, sensible, unintrospective people who were +too busy trying to exist pleasantly to trouble their heads as to +whether they existed or no--that this best part of mankind should +have gratefully caught at such a straw as "cogito ergo sum," is +intelligible enough. They felt the futility of the whole question, +and were thankful to one who seemed to clench the matter with a cant +catchword, especially with a catchword in a foreign language; but how +one, who was so far gone as to recognise that he could not prove his +own existence, should be able to comfort himself with such a begging +of the question, would seem unintelligible except upon the ground of +sheer exhaustion. + +At the risk of appearing to wander too far from the matter in hand, a +few further examples may perhaps be given of that irony of nature, by +which it comes about that we so often most know and are, what we +least think ourselves to know and be--and on the other hand hold most +strongly what we are least capable of demonstrating. + +Take the existence of a Personal God,--one of the most profoundly- +received and widely-spread ideas that have ever prevailed among +mankind. Has there ever been a DEMONSTRATION of the existence of +such a God as has satisfied any considerable section of thinkers for +long together? Hardly has what has been conceived to be a +demonstration made its appearance and received a certain acceptance +as though it were actual proof, when it has been impugned with +sufficient success to show that, however true the fact itself, the +demonstration is naught. I do not say that this is an argument +against the personality of God; the drift, indeed, of the present +reasoning would be towards an opposite conclusion, inasmuch as it +insists upon the fact that what is most true and best known is often +least susceptible of demonstration owing to the very perfectness with +which it is known; nevertheless, the fact remains that many men in +many ages and countries--the subtlest thinkers over the whole world +for some fifteen hundred years--have hunted for a demonstration of +God's personal existence; yet though so many have sought,--so many, +and so able, and for so long a time--none have found. There is no +demonstration which can be pointed to with any unanimity as settling +the matter beyond power of reasonable cavil. On the contrary, it may +be observed that from the attempt to prove the existence of a +personal God to the denial of that existence altogether, the path is +easy. As in the case of our own existence, it will be found that +they alone are perfect believers in a personal Deity and in the +Christian religion who have not yet begun to feel that either stands +in need of demonstration. We observe that most people, whether +Christians, or Jews, or Mohammedans, are unable to give their reasons +for the faith that is in them with any readiness or completeness; and +this is sure proof that they really hold it so utterly as to have no +further sense that it either can be demonstrated or ought to be so, +but feel towards it as towards the air which they breathe but do not +notice. On the other hand, a living prelate was reported in the +"Times" to have said in one of his latest charges: "My belief is +that a widely extended good practice must be founded upon Christian +doctrine." The fact of the Archbishop's recognising this as among +the number of his beliefs is conclusive evidence with those who have +devoted attention to the laws of thought, that his mind is not yet +clear as to whether or no there is any connection at all between +Christian doctrine and widely extended good practice. {4} + +Again, it has been often and very truly said that it is not the +conscious and self-styled sceptic, as Shelley for example, who is the +true unbeliever. Such a man as Shelley will, as indeed his life +abundantly proves, have more in common than not with the true +unselfconscious believer. Gallio again, whose indifference to +religious animosities has won him the cheapest immortality which, so +far as I can remember, was ever yet won, was probably if the truth +were known, a person of the sincerest piety. It is the unconscious +unbeliever who is the true infidel, however greatly he would be +surprised to know the truth. Mr. Spurgeon was reported as having +recently asked the Almighty to "change our rulers AS SOON AS +POSSIBLE." There lurks a more profound distrust of God's power in +these words than in almost any open denial of His existence. + +So it rather shocks us to find Mr. Darwin writing ("Plants and +Animals under Domestication," vol. ii., p. 275): "No doubt, in every +case there must have been some exciting cause." And again, six or +seven pages later: "No doubt, each slight variation must have its +efficient cause." The repetition within so short a space of this +expression of confidence in the impossibility of causeless effects +would suggest that Mr. Darwin's mind at the time of writing was, +unconsciously to himself, in a state of more or less uneasiness as to +whether effects could not occasionally come about of themselves, and +without cause of any sort,--that he may have been standing, in fact, +for a short time upon the brink of a denial of the indestructibility +of force and matter. + +In like manner, the most perfect humour and irony is generally quite +unconscious. Examples of both are frequently given by men whom the +world considers as deficient in humour; it is more probably true that +these persons are unconscious of their own delightful power through +the very mastery and perfection with which they hold it. There is a +play, for instance, of genuine fun in some of the more serious +scientific and theological journals which for some time past we have +looked for in vain in " --- ." + +The following extract, from a journal which I will not advertise, may +serve as an example: + +"Lycurgus, when they had abandoned to his revenge him who had put out +his eyes, took him home, and the punishment he inflicted upon him was +sedulous instructions to virtue." Yet this truly comic paper does +not probably know that it is comic, any more than the kleptomaniac +knows that he steals, or than John Milton knew he was a humorist when +he wrote a hymn upon the circumcision, and spent his honeymoon in +composing a treatise on divorce. No more again did Goethe know how +exquisitely humorous he was when he wrote, in his Wilhelm Meister, +that a beautiful tear glistened in Theresa's right eye, and then went +on to explain that it glistened in her right eye and not in her left, +because she had had a wart on her left which had been removed--and +successfully. Goethe probably wrote this without a chuckle; he +believed what a good many people who have never read Wilhelm Meister +believe still, namely, that it was a work full of pathos, of fine and +tender feeling; yet a less consummate humorist must have felt that +there was scarcely a paragraph in it from first to last the chief +merit of which did not lie in its absurdity. + +Another example may be taken from Bacon of the manner in which +sayings which drop from men unconsciously, give the key of their +inner thoughts to another person, though they themselves know not +that they have such thoughts at all; much less that these thoughts +are their only true convictions. In his Essay on Friendship the +great philosopher writes: "Reading good books on morality is a +little flat and dead." Innocent, not to say pathetic, as this +passage may sound it is pregnant with painful inferences concerning +Bacon's moral character. For if he knew that he found reading good +books of morality a little flat and dead, it follows he must have +tried to read them; nor is he saved by the fact that he found them a +little flat and dead; for though this does indeed show that he had +begun to be so familiar with a few first principles as to find it +more or less exhausting to have his attention directed to them +further--yet his words prove that they were not so incorporate with +him that he should feel the loathing for further discourse upon the +matter which honest people commonly feel now. It will be remembered +that he took bribes when he came to be Lord Chancellor. + +It is on the same principle that we find it so distasteful to hear +one praise another for earnestness. For such praise raises a +suspicion in our minds (pace the late Dr. Arnold and his following) +that the praiser's attention must have been arrested by sincerity, as +by something more or less unfamiliar to himself. So universally is +this recognised that the world has for some time been discarded +entirely by all reputable people. Truly, if there is one who cannot +find himself in the same room with the life and letters of an earnest +person without being made instantly unwell, the same is a just man +and perfect in all his ways. + +But enough has perhaps been said. As the fish in the sea, or the +bird in the air, so unreasoningly and inarticulately safe must a man +feel before he can be said to know. It is only those who are +ignorant and uncultivated who can know anything at all in a proper +sense of the words. Cultivation will breed in any man a certainty of +the uncertainty even of his most assured convictions. It is perhaps +fortunate for our comfort that we can none of us be cultivated upon +very many subjects, so that considerable scope for assurance will +still remain to us; but however this may be, we certainly observe it +as a fact that the greatest men are they who are most uncertain in +spite of certainty, and at the same time most certain in spite of +uncertainty, and who are thus best able to feel that there is nothing +in such complete harmony with itself as a flat contradiction in +terms. For nature hates that any principle should breed, so to +speak, hermaphroditically, but will give to each an help meet for it +which shall cross it and be the undoing of it; as in the case of +descent with modification, of which the essence would appear to be +that every offspring should resemble its parents, and yet, at the +same time, that no offspring should resemble its parents. But for +the slightly irritating stimulant of this perpetual crossing, we +should pass our lives unconsciously as though in slumber. + +Until we have got to understand that though black is not white, yet +it may be whiter than white itself (and any painter will readily +paint that which shall show obviously as black, yet it shall be +whiter than that which shall show no less obviously as white), we may +be good logicians, but we are still poor reasoners. Knowledge is in +an inchoate state as long as it is capable of logical treatment; it +must be transmuted into that sense or instinct which rises altogether +above the sphere in which words can have being at all, otherwise it +is not yet vital. For sense is to knowledge what conscience is to +reasoning about right and wrong; the reasoning must be so rapid as to +defy conscious reference to first principles, and even at times to be +apparently subversive of them altogether, or the action will halt. +It must, in fact, become automatic before we are safe with it. While +we are fumbling for the grounds of our conviction, our conviction is +prone to fall, as Peter for lack of faith sinking into the waves of +Galilee; so that the very power to prove at all is an a priori +argument against the truth--or at any rate the practical importance +to the vast majority of mankind--of all that is supported by +demonstration. For the power to prove implies a sense of the need of +proof, and things which the majority of mankind find practically +important are in ninety-nine cases out of a hundred above proof. The +need of proof becomes as obsolete in the case of assumed knowledge, +as the practice of fortifying towns in the middle of an old and long +settled country. Who builds defences for that which is impregnable +or little likely to be assailed? The answer is ready, that unless +the defences had been built in former times it would be impossible to +do without them now; but this does not touch the argument, which is +not that demonstration is unwise, but that as long as a demonstration +is still felt necessary, and therefore kept ready to hand, the +subject of such demonstration is not yet securely known. Qui +s'excuse, s'accuse; and unless a matter can hold its own without the +brag and self-assertion of continual demonstration, it is still more +or less of a parvenu, which we shall not lose much by neglecting till +it has less occasion to blow its own trumpet. The only alternative +is that it is an error in process of detection, for if evidence +concerning any opinion has long been denied superfluous, and ever +after this comes to be again felt necessary, we know that the opinion +is doomed. + +If there is any truth in the above, it should follow that our +conception of the words "science" and "scientific" should undergo +some modification. Not that we should speak slightingly of science, +but that we should recognise more than we do, that there are two +distinct classes of scientific people corresponding not inaptly with +the two main parties unto which the political world is divided. The +one class is deeply versed in those sciences which have already +become the common property of mankind; enjoying, enforcing, +perpetuating, and engraving still more deeply unto the mind of man +acquisitions already approved by common experience, but somewhat +careless about extension of empire, or at any rate disinclined, for +the most part, to active effort on their own part for the sake of +such extension--neither progressive, in fact, nor aggressive--but +quiet, peaceable people, who wish to live and let live, as their +fathers before them; while the other class is chiefly intent upon +pushing forward the boundaries of science, and is comparatively +indifferent to what is known already save in so far as necessary for +purposes of extension. These last are called pioneers of science, +and to them alone is the title "scientific" commonly accorded; but +pioneers, unimportant to an army as they are, are still not the army +itself; which can get on better without the pioneers than the +pioneers without the army. Surely the class which knows thoroughly +well what it knows, and which adjudicates upon the value of the +discoveries made by the pioneers--surely this class has as good a +right or better to be called scientific than the pioneers themselves. + +These two classes above described blend into one another with every +shade of gradation. Some are admirably proficient in the well-known +sciences--that is to say, they have good health, good looks, good +temper, common sense, and energy, and they hold all these good things +in such perfection as to lie altogether without introspection--to be +not under the law, but so utterly and entirely under grace that every +one who sees them likes them. But such may, and perhaps more +commonly will, have very little inclination to extend the boundaries +of human knowledge; their aim is in another direction altogether. Of +the pioneers, on the other hand, some are agreeable people, well +versed in the older sciences, though still more eminent as pioneers, +while others, whose services in this last capacity have been of +inestimable value, are noticeably ignorant of the sciences which have +already become current with the larger part of mankind--in other +words, they are ugly, rude, and disagreeable people, very +progressive, it may be, but very aggressive to boot. + +The main difference between these two classes lies in the fact that +the knowledge of the one, so far as it is new, is known consciously, +while that of the other is unconscious, consisting of sense and +instinct rather than of recognised knowledge. So long as a man has +these, and of the same kind as the more powerful body of his fellow- +countrymen, he is a true man of science, though he can hardly read or +write. As my great namesake said so well, "He knows what's what, and +that's as high as metaphysic wit can fly." As usual, these true and +thorough knowers do not know that they are scientific, and can seldom +give a reason for the faith that is in them. They believe themselves +to be ignorant, uncultured men, nor can even the professors whom they +sometimes outwit in their own professorial domain perceive that they +have been outwitted by men of superior scientific attainments to +their own. The following passage from Dr. Carpenter's "Mesmerism, +Spiritualism," &c., may serve as an illustration:- + +"It is well known that persons who are conversant with the geological +structure of a district are often able to indicate with considerable +certainty in what spot and at what depth water will be found; and men +OF LESS SCIENTIFIC KNOWLEDGE, BUT OF CONSIDERABLE PRACTICAL +EXPERIENCE"--(so that in Dr. Carpenter's mind there seems to be some +sort of contrast or difference in kind between the knowledge which is +derived from observation of facts and scientific knowledge)-- +"frequently arrive at a true conclusion upon this point without being +able to assign reasons for their opinions. + +"Exactly the same may be said in regard to the mineral structure of a +mining district; the course of a metallic vein being often correctly +indicated by the shrewd guess of an OBSERVANT workman, when THE +SCIENTIFIC REASONING of the mining engineer altogether fails." + +Precisely. Here we have exactly the kind of thing we are in search +of: the man who has observed and observed till the facts are so +thoroughly in his head that through familiarity he has lost sight +both of them and of the processes whereby he deduced his conclusions +from them--is apparently not considered scientific, though he knows +how to solve the problem before him; the mining engineer, on the +other hand, who reasons scientifically--that is to say, with a +knowledge of his own knowledge--is found not to know, and to fail in +discovering the mineral. + +"It is an experience we are continually encountering in other walks +of life," continues Dr. Carpenter, "that particular persons are +guided--some apparently by an original and others by AN ACQUIRED +INTUITION--to conclusions for which they can give no adequate reason, +but which subsequent events prove to have been correct." And this, I +take it, implies what I have been above insisting on, namely, that on +becoming intense, knowledge seems also to become unaware of the +grounds on which it rests, or that it has or requires grounds at all, +or indeed even exists. The only issue between myself and Dr. +Carpenter would appear to be, that Dr. Carpenter, himself an +acknowledged leader in the scientific world, restricts the term +"scientific" to the people who know that they know, but are beaten by +those who are not so conscious of their own knowledge; while I say +that the term "scientific" should be applied (only that they would +not like it) to the nice sensible people who know what's what rather +than to the discovering class. + +And this is easily understood when we remember that the pioneer +cannot hope to acquire any of the new sciences in a single lifetime +so perfectly as to become unaware of his own knowledge. As a general +rule, we observe him to be still in a state of active consciousness +concerning whatever particular science he is extending, and as long +as he is in this state he cannot know utterly. It is, as I have +already so often insisted on, those who do not know that they know so +much who have the firmest grip of their knowledge: the best class, +for example, of our English youth, who live much in the open air, +and, as Lord Beaconsfield finely said, never read. These are the +people who know best those things which are best worth knowing--that +is to say, they are the most truly scientific. Unfortunately, the +apparatus necessary for this kind of science is so costly as to be +within the reach of few, involving, as it does, an experience in the +use of it for some preceding generations. Even those who are born +with the means within their reach must take no less pains, and +exercise no less self-control, before they can attain the perfect +unconscious use of them, than would go to the making of a James Watt +or a Stephenson; it is vain, therefore, to hope that this best kind +of science can ever be put within the reach of the many; nevertheless +it may be safely said that all the other and more generally +recognised kinds of science are valueless except in so far as they +tend to minister to this the highest kind. They have no raison +d'etre except so far as they tend to do away with the necessity for +work, and to diffuse good health, and that good sense which is above +self-consciousness. They are to be encouraged because they have +rendered the most fortunate kind of modern European possible, and +because they tend to make possible a still more fortunate kind than +any now existing. But the man who devotes himself to science cannot- +-with the rarest, if any, exceptions--belong to this most fortunate +class himself. He occupies a lower place, both scientifically and +morally, for it is not possible but that his drudgery should somewhat +soil him both in mind and health of body, or, if this be denied, +surely it must let him and hinder him in running the race for +unconsciousness. We do not feel that it increases the glory of a +king or great nobleman that he should excel in what is commonly +called science. Certainly he should not go further than Prince +Rupert's drops. Nor should he excel in music, art, literature, or +theology--all which things are more or less parts of science. He +should be above them all, save in so far as he can without effort +reap renown from the labours of others. It is a lache in him that he +should write music or books, or paint pictures at all; but if he must +do so, his work should be at best contemptible. Much as we must +condemn Marcus Aurelius, we condemn James I. ever more severely. + +It is a pity there should exist so general a confusion of thought +upon this subject, for it may be asserted without fear of +contradiction that there is hardly any form of immorality now rife +which produces more disastrous effects upon those who give themselves +up to it, and upon society in general, than the so-called science of +those who know that they know too well to be able to know truly. +With very clever people--the people who know that they know--it is +much as with the members of the early Corinthian Church, to whom St. +Paul wrote, that if they looked their numbers over, they would not +find many wise, nor powerful, nor well-born people among them. Dog- +fanciers tell us that performing dogs never carry their tails; such +dogs have eaten of the tree of knowledge, and are convinced of sin +accordingly--they know that they know things, in respect of which, +therefore, they are no longer under grace, but under the law, and +they have yet so much grace left as to be ashamed. So with the human +clever dog; he may speak with the tongues of men and angels, but so +long as he knows that he knows, his tail will droop. More especially +does this hold in the case of those who are born to wealth and of old +family. We must all feel that a rich young nobleman with a taste for +science and principles is rarely a pleasant object. We do not even +like the rich young man in the Bible who wanted to inherit eternal +life, unless, indeed, he merely wanted to know whether there was not +some way by which he could avoid dying, and even so he is hardly +worth considering. Principles are like logic, which never yet made a +good reasoner of a bad one, but might still be occasionally useful if +they did not invariably contradict each other whenever there is any +temptation to appeal to them. They are like fire, good servants but +bad masters. As many people or more have been wrecked on principle +as from want of principle. They are, as their name implies, of an +elementary character, suitable for beginners only, and he who has so +little mastered them as to have occasion to refer to them +consciously, is out of place in the society of well-educated people. +The truly scientific invariably hate him, and, for the most part, the +more profoundly in proportion to the unconsciousness with which they +do so. + +If the reader hesitates, let him go down into the streets and look in +the shop-windows at the photographs of eminent men, whether literary, +artistic, or scientific, and note the work which the consciousness of +knowledge has wrought on nine out of every ten of them; then let him +go to the masterpieces of Greek and Italian art, the truest preachers +of the truest gospel of grace; let him look at the Venus of Milo, the +Discobolus, the St. George of Donatello. If it had pleased these +people to wish to study, there was no lack of brains to do it with; +but imagine "what a deal of scorn" would "look beautiful" upon the +Venus of Milo's face if it were suggested to her that she should +learn to read. Which, think you, knows most, the Theseus, or any +modern professor taken at random? True, the advancement of learning +must have had a great share in the advancement of beauty, inasmuch as +beauty is but knowledge perfected and incarnate--but with the +pioneers it is sic vos non vobis; the grace is not for them, but for +those who come after. Science is like offences. It must needs come, +but woe unto that man through whom it comes; for there cannot be much +beauty where there is consciousness of knowledge, and while knowledge +is still new it must in the nature of things involve much +consciousness. + +It is not knowledge, then, that is incompatible with beauty; there +cannot be too much knowledge, but it must have passed through many +people who it is to be feared must be more or less disagreeable, +before beauty or grace will have anything to say to it; it must be so +incarnate in a man's whole being that he shall not be aware of it, or +it will fit him constrainedly as one under the law, and not as one +under grace. + +And grace is best, for where grace is, love is not distant. Grace! +the old Pagan ideal whose charm even unlovely Paul could not +understand, but, as the legend tells us, his soul fainted within him, +his heart misgave him, and, standing alone on the seashore at dusk, +he "troubled deaf heaven with his bootless cries," his thin voice +pleading for grace after the flesh. + +The waves came in one after another, the sea-gulls cried together +after their kind, the wind rustled among the dried canes upon the +sandbanks, and there came a voice from heaven saying, "Let My grace +be sufficient for thee." Whereon, failing of the thing itself, he +stole the word and strove to crush its meaning to the measure of his +own limitations. But the true grace, with her groves and high +places, and troups of young men and maidens crowned with flowers, and +singing of love and youth and wine--the true grace he drove out into +the wilderness--high up, it may be, into Piora, and into such-like +places. Happy they who harboured her in her ill report. + +It is common to hear men wonder what new faith will be adopted by +mankind if disbelief in the Christian religion should become general. +They seem to expect that some new theological or quasi-theological +system will arise, which, mutatis mutandis, shall be Christianity +over again. It is a frequent reproach against those who maintain +that the supernatural element of Christianity is without foundation, +that they bring forward no such system of their own. They pull down +but cannot build. We sometimes hear even those who have come to the +same conclusions as the destroyers say, that having nothing new to +set up, they will not attack the old. But how can people set up a +new superstition, knowing it to be a superstition? Without faith in +their own platform, a faith as intense as that manifested by the +early Christians, how can they preach? A new superstition will come, +but it is in the very essence of things that its apostles should have +no suspicion of its real nature; that they should no more recognise +the common element between the new and the old than the early +Christians recognised it between their faith and Paganism. If they +did, they would be paralysed. Others say that the new fabric may be +seen rising on every side, and that the coming religion is science. +Certainly its apostles preach it without misgiving, but it is not on +that account less possible that it may prove only to be the coming +superstition--like Christianity, true to its true votaries, and, like +Christianity, false to those who follow it introspectively. + +It may well be we shall find we have escaped from one set of +taskmasters to fall into the hands of others far more ruthless. The +tyranny of the Church is light in comparison with that which future +generations may have to undergo at the hands of the doctrinaires. +The Church did uphold a grace of some sort as the summum bonum, in +comparison with which all so-called earthly knowledge--knowledge, +that is to say, which had not passed through so many people as to +have become living and incarnate--was unimportant. Do what we may, +we are still drawn to the unspoken teaching of her less introspective +ages with a force which no falsehood could command. Her buildings, +her music, her architecture, touch us as none other on the whole can +do; when she speaks there are many of us who think that she denies +the deeper truths of her own profounder mind, and unfortunately her +tendency is now towards more rather than less introspection. The +more she gives way to this--the more she becomes conscious of +knowing--the less she will know. But still her ideal is in grace. + +The so-called man of science, on the other hand, seems now generally +inclined to make light of all knowledge, save of the pioneer +character. His ideal is in self-conscious knowledge. Let us have no +more Lo, here, with the professor; he very rarely knows what he says +he knows; no sooner has he misled the world for a sufficient time +with a great flourish of trumpets than he is toppled over by one more +plausible than himself. He is but medicine-man, augur, priest, in +its latest development; useful it may be, but requiring to be well +watched by those who value freedom. Wait till he has become more +powerful, and note the vagaries which his conceit of knowledge will +indulge in. The Church did not persecute while she was still weak. +Of course every system has had, and will have, its heroes, but, as we +all very well know, the heroism of the hero is but remotely due to +system; it is due not to arguments, nor reasoning, nor to any +consciously recognised perceptions, but to those deeper sciences +which lie far beyond the reach of self-analysis, and for the sturdy +of which there is but one schooling--to have had good forefathers for +many generations. + +Above all things, let no unwary reader do me the injustice of +believing in ME. In that I write at all I am among the dammed. If +he must believe in anything, let him believe in the music of Handel, +the painting of Giovanni Bellini, and in the thirteenth chapter of +St. Paul's First Epistle to the Corinthians. + +But to return. Whenever we find people knowing that they know this +or that, we have the same story over and over again. They do not yet +know it perfectly. + +We come, therefore, to the conclusion that our knowledge and +reasoning thereupon, only become perfect, assured, unhesitating, when +they have become automatic, and are thus exercised without further +conscious effort of the mind, much in the same way as we cannot walk +nor read nor write perfectly till we can do so automatically. + + + +CHAPTER III--APPLICATION OF FOREGOING CHAPTERS TO CERTAIN HABITS +ACQUIRED AFTER BIRTH WHICH ARE COMMONLY CONSIDERED INSTINCTIVE. + + + +What is true of knowing is also true of willing. The more intensely +we will, the less is our will deliberate and capable of being +recognised as will at all. So that it is common to hear men declare +under certain circumstances that they had no will, but were forced +into their own action under stress of passion or temptation. But in +the more ordinary actions of life, we observe, as in walking or +breathing, that we do not will anything utterly and without remnant +of hesitation, till we have lost sight of the fact that we are +exercising our will. + +The question, therefore, is forced upon us, how far this principle +extends, and whether there may not be unheeded examples of its +operation which, if we consider them, will land us in rather +unexpected conclusions. If it be granted that consciousness of +knowledge and of volition vanishes when the knowledge and the +volition have become intense and perfect, may it not be possible that +many actions which we do without knowing how we do them, and without +any conscious exercise of the will--actions which we certainly could +not do if we tried to do them, nor refrain from doing if for any +reason we wished to do so--are done so easily and so unconsciously +owing to excess of knowledge or experience rather than deficiency, we +having done them too often, knowing how to do them too well, and +having too little hesitation as to the method of procedure, to be +capable of following our own action without the utter derangement of +such action altogether; or, in other cases, because we have so long +settled the question, that we have stowed away the whole apparatus +with which we work in corners of our system which we cannot now +conveniently reach? + +It may be interesting to see whether we can find any class or classes +of actions which would seem to link actions which for some time after +birth we could not do at all, and in which our proficiency has +reached the stage of unconscious performance obviously through +repeated effort and failure, and through this only, with actions +which we could do as soon as we were born, and concerning which it +would at first sight appear absurd to say that they can have been +acquired by any process in the least analogous to that which we +commonly call experience, inasmuch as the creature itself which does +them has only just begun to exist, and cannot, therefore, in the very +nature of things, have had experience. + +Can we see that actions, for the acquisition of which experience is +such an obvious necessity, that whenever we see the acquisition we +assume the experience, gradate away imperceptibly into actions which +would seem, according to all reasonable analogy, to presuppose +experience, of which, however, the time and place seem obscure, if +not impossible? + +Eating and drinking would appear to be such actions. The new-born +child cannot eat, and cannot drink, but he can swallow as soon as he +is born; and swallowing would appear (as we may remark in passing) to +have been an earlier faculty of animal life than that of eating with +teeth. The ease and unconsciousness with which we eat and drink is +clearly attributable to practice; but a very little practice seems to +go a long way--a suspiciously small amount of practice--as though +somewhere or at some other time there must have been more practice +than we can account for. We can very readily stop eating or +drinking, and can follow our own action without difficulty in either +process; but, as regards swallowing, which is the earlier habit, we +have less power of self-analysis and control: when we have once +committed ourselves beyond a certain point to swallowing, we must +finish doing so,--that is to say, our control over the operation +ceases. Also, a still smaller experience seems necessary for the +acquisition of the power to swallow than appeared necessary in the +case of eating; and if we get into a difficulty we choke, and are +more at a loss how to become introspective than we are about eating +and drinking. + +Why should a baby be able to swallow--which one would have said was +the more complicated process of the two--with so much less practice +than it takes him to learn to eat? How comes it that he exhibits in +the case of the more difficult operation all the phenomena which +ordinarily accompany a more complete mastery and longer practice? +Analogy would certainly seem to point in the direction of thinking +that the necessary experience cannot have been wanting, and that, +too, not in such a quibbling sort as when people talk about inherited +habit or the experience of the race, which, without explanation, is +to plain-speaking persons very much the same, in regard to the +individual, as no experience at all, but bona fide in the child's own +person. + +Breathing, again, is an action acquired after birth, generally with +some little hesitation and difficulty, but still acquired in a time +seldom longer, as I am informed, than ten minutes or a quarter of an +hour. For an ant which has to be acquired at all, there would seem +here, as in the case of eating, to be a disproportion between, on the +one hand, the intricacy of the process performed, and on the other, +the shortness of the time taken to acquire the practice, and the ease +and unconsciousness with which its exercise is continued from the +moment of acquisition. + +We observe that in later life much less difficult and intricate +operations than breathing acquire much longer practice before they +can be mastered to the extent of unconscious performance. We observe +also that the phenomena attendant on the learning by an infant to +breathe are extremely like those attendant upon the repetition of +some performance by one who has done it very often before, but who +requires just a little prompting to set him off, on getting which, +the whole familiar routine presents itself before him, and he repeats +his task by rote. Surely then we are justified in suspecting that +there must have been more bona fide personal recollection and +experience, with more effort and failure on the part of the infant +itself than meet the eye. + +It should be noticed, also, that our control over breathing is very +limited. We can hold our breath a little, or breathe a little faster +for a short time, but we cannot do this for long, and after having +gone without air for a certain time we must breath. + +Seeing and hearing require some practice before their free use is +mastered, but not very much. They are so far within our control that +we can see more by looking harder, and hear more by listening +attentively--but they are beyond our control in so far as that we +must see and hear the greater part of what presents itself to us as +near, and at the same time unfamiliar, unless we turn away or shut +our eyes, or stop our ears by a mechanical process; and when we do +this it is a sign that we have already involuntarily seen or heard +more than we wished. The familiar, whether sight or sound, very +commonly escapes us. + +Take again the processes of digestion, the action of the heart, and +the oxygenisation of the blood--processes of extreme intricacy, done +almost entirely unconsciously, and quite beyond the control of our +volition. + +Is it possible that our unconsciousness concerning our own +performance of all these processes arises from over-experience? + +Is there anything in digestion, or the oxygenisation of the blood, +different in kind to the rapid unconscious action of a man playing a +difficult piece of music on the piano? There may be in degree, but +as a man who sits down to play what he well knows, plays on, when +once started, almost, as we say, mechanically, so, having eaten his +dinner, he digests it as a matter of course, unless it has been in +some way unfamiliar to him, or he to it, owing to some derangement or +occurrence with which he is unfamiliar, and under which therefore he +is at a loss now to comport himself, as a player would be at a loss +how to play with gloves on, or with gout in his fingers, or if set to +play music upside down. + +Can we show that all the acquired actions of childhood and after- +life, which we now do unconsciously, or without conscious exercise of +the will, are familiar acts--acts which we have already done a very +great number of times? + +Can we also show that there are no acquired actions which we can +perform in this automatic manner, which were not at one time +difficult, requiring attention, and liable to repeated failure, our +volition failing to command obedience from the members which should +carry its purposes into execution? + +If so, analogy will point in the direction of thinking that other +acts which we do even more unconsciously may only escape our power of +self-examination and control because they are even more familiar-- +because we have done them oftener; and we may imagine that if there +were a microscope which could show us the minutest atoms of +consciousness and volition, we should find that even the apparently +most automatic actions were yet done in due course, upon a balance of +considerations, and under the deliberate exercise of the will. + +We should also incline to think that even such an action as the +oxygenisation of its blood by an infant of ten minutes' old, can only +be done so well and so unconsciously, after repeated failures on the +part of the infant itself. + +True, as has been already implied, we do not immediately see when the +baby could have made the necessary mistakes and acquired that +infinite practice without which it could never go through such +complex processes satisfactorily; we have therefore invented the +words "hereditary instinct," and consider them as accounting for the +phenomenon; but a very little reflection will show that though these +words may be a very good way of stating the difficulty, they do +little or nothing towards removing it. + +Why should hereditary instinct enable a creature to dispense with the +experience which we see to be necessary in all other cases before +difficult operations can be performed successfully? + +What is this talk that is made about the experience OF THE RACE, as +though the experience of one man could profit another who knows +nothing about him? If a man eats his dinner, it nourishes HIM and +not his neighbour; if he learns a different art, it is HE that can do +it and not his neighbour. Yet, practically, we see that the +vicarious experience, which seems so contrary to our common +observation, does nevertheless appear to hold good in the case of +creatures and their descendants. Is there, then, any way of bringing +these apparently conflicting phenomena under the operation of one +law? Is there any way of showing that this experience of the race, +of which so much is said without the least attempt to show in what +way it may or does become the experience of the individual, is in +sober seriousness the experience of one single being only, repeating +in a great many different ways certain performances with which he has +become exceedingly familiar? + +It would seem that we must either suppose the conditions of +experience to differ during the earlier stages of life from those +which we observe them to become during the heyday of any existence-- +and this would appear very gratuitous, tolerable only as a suggestion +because the beginnings of life are so obscure, that in such twilight +we may do pretty much whatever we please without danger of +confutation--or that we must suppose the continuity of life and +sameness between living beings, whether plants or animals, and their +descendants, to be far closer than we have hitherto believed; so that +the experience of one person is not enjoyed by his successor, so much +as that the successor is bona fide but a part of the life of his +progenitor, imbued with all his memories, profiting by all his +experiences--which are, in fact, his own--and only unconscious of the +extent of his own memories and experiences owing to their vastness +and already infinite repetitions. + +Certainly it presents itself to us at once as a singular coincidence +- + +I. That we are MOST CONSCIOUS OF, AND HAVE MOST CONTROL OVER, such +habits as speech, the upright position, the arts and sciences, which +are acquisitions peculiar to the human race, always acquired after +birth, and not common to ourselves and any ancestor who had not +become entirely human. + +II. That we are LESS CONSCIOUS OF, AND HAVE LESS CONTROL OVER, +eating and drinking, swallowing, breathing, seeing and hearing, which +were acquisitions of our prehuman ancestry, and for which we had +provided ourselves with all the necessary apparatus before we saw +light, but which are still, geologically speaking, recent, or +comparatively recent. + +III. That we are MOST UNCONSCIOUS OF, AND HAVE LEAST CONTROL OVER, +our digestion and circulation, which belonged even to our +invertebrate ancestry, and which are habits, geologically speaking, +of extreme antiquity. + +There is something too like method in this for it to be taken as the +result of mere chance--chance again being but another illustration of +Nature's love of a contradiction in terms; for everything is chance, +and nothing is chance. And you may take it that all is chance or +nothing chance, according as you please, but you must not have half +chance and half not chance. + +Does it not seem as though the older and more confirmed the habit, +the more unquestioning the act of volition, till, in the case of the +oldest habits, the practice of succeeding existences has so +formulated the procedure, that, on being once committed to such and +such a line beyond a certain point, the subsequent course is so clear +as to be open to no further doubt, to admit of no alternative, till +the very power of questioning is gone, and even the consciousness of +volition? And this too upon matters which, in earlier stages of a +man's existence, admitted of passionate argument and anxious +deliberation whether to resolve them thus or thus, with heroic hazard +and experiment, which on the losing side proved to be vice, and on +the winning virtue. For there was passionate argument once what +shape a man's teeth should be, nor can the colour of his hair be +considered as ever yet settled, or likely to be settled for a very +long time. + +It is one against legion when a creature tries to differ from his own +past selves. He must yield or die if he wants to differ widely, so +as to lack natural instincts, such as hunger or thirst, or not to +gratify them. It is more righteous in a man that he should "eat +strange food," and that his cheek should "so much as lank not," than +that he should starve if the strange food be at his command. His +past selves are living in him at this moment with the accumulated +life of centuries. "Do this, this, this, which we too have done, and +found our profit in it," cry the souls of his forefathers within him. +Faint are the far ones, coming and going as the sound of bells wafted +on to a high mountain; loud and clear are the near ones, urgent as an +alarm of fire. "Withhold," cry some. "Go on boldly," cry others. +"Me, me, me, revert hitherward, my descendant," shouts one as it were +from some high vantage-ground over the heads of the clamorous +multitude. "Nay, but me, me, me," echoes another; and our former +selves fight within us and wrangle for our possession. Have we not +here what is commonly called an INTERNAL TUMULT, when dead pleasures +and pains tug within us hither and thither? Then may the battle be +decided by what people are pleased to call our own experience. Our +own indeed! What is our own save by mere courtesy of speech? A +matter of fashion. Sanction sanctifieth and fashion fashioneth. And +so with death--the most inexorable of all conventions. + +However this may be, we may assume it as an axiom with regard to +actions acquired after birth, that we never do them automatically +save as the result of long practice, and after having thus acquired +perfect mastery over the action in question. + +But given the practice or experience, and the intricacy of the +process to be performed appears to matter very little. There is +hardly anything conceivable as being done by man, which a certain +amount of familiarity will not enable him to do, as it were +mechanically and without conscious effort. "The most complex and +difficult movements," writes Mr Darwin, "can in time be performed +without the least effort or consciousness." All the main business of +life is done thus unconsciously or semi-unconsciously. For what is +the main business of life? We work that we may eat and digest, +rather than eat and digest that we may work; this, at any rate, is +the normal state of things: the more important business then is that +which is carried on unconsciously. So again the action of the brain, +which goes on prior to our realising the idea in which it results, is +not perceived by the individual. So also all the deeper springs of +action and conviction. The residuum with which we fret and worry +ourselves is a mere matter of detail, as the higgling and haggling of +the market, which is not over the bulk of the price, but over the +last halfpenny. + +Shall we say, then, that a baby of a day old sucks (which involves +the whole principle of the pump, and hence a profound practical +knowledge of the laws of pneumatics and hydrostatics), digests, +oxygenises its blood (millions of years before Sir Humphry Davy +discovered oxygen), sees and hears--all most difficult and +complicated operations, involving a knowledge of the facts concerning +optics and acoustics, compared with which the discoveries of Newton +sink into utter insignificance? Shall we say that a baby can do all +these things at once, doing them so well and so regularly, without +being even able to direct its attention to them, and without mistake, +and at the same time not know how to do them, and never have done +them before? + +Such an assertion would be a contradiction to the whole experience of +mankind. Surely the onus probandi must rest with him who makes it. + +A man may make a lucky hit now and again by what is called a fluke, +but even this must be only a little in advance of his other +performances of the same kind. He may multiply seven by eight by a +fluke after a little study of the multiplication table, but he will +not be able to extract the cube root of 4913 by a fluke, without long +training in arithmetic, any more than an agricultural labourer would +be able to operate successfully for cataract. If, then, a grown man +cannot perform so simple an operation as that we will say, for +cataract, unless he have been long trained in other similar +operations, and until he has done what comes to the same thing many +times over, with what show of reason can we maintain that one who is +so far less capable than a grown man, can perform such vastly more +difficult operations, without knowing how to do them, and without +ever having done them before? There is no sign of "fluke" about the +circulation of a baby's blood. There may perhaps be some little +hesitation about its earliest breathing, but this, as a general rule, +soon passes over, both breathing and circulation, within an hour +after birth, being as regular and easy as at any time during life. +Is it reasonable, then, to say that the baby does these things +without knowing how to do them, and without ever having done them +before, and continues to do them by a series of lifelong flukes? + +It would be well if those who feel inclined to hazard such an +assertion would find some other instances of intricate processes gone +through by people who know nothing about them, and never had any +practice therein. What IS to know how to do a thing? Surely to do +it. What is proof that we know how to do a thing? Surely the fact +that we can do it. A man shows that he knows how to throw the +boomerang by throwing the boomerang. No amount of talking or writing +can get over this; ipso facto, that a baby breathes and makes its +blood circulate, it knows how to do so and the fact that it does not +know its own knowledge is only proof of the perfection of that +knowledge, and of the vast number of past occasions on which it must +have been exercised already. As we have said already, it is less +obvious when the baby could have gained its experience, so as to be +able so readily to remember exactly what to do; but it is more easy +to suppose that the necessary occasions cannot have been wanting, +than that the power which we observe should have been obtained +without practice and memory. + +If we saw any self-consciousness on the baby's part about its +breathing or circulation, we might suspect that it had had less +experience, or profited less by its experience, than its neighbours-- +exactly in the same manner as we suspect a deficiency of any quality +which we see a man inclined to parade. We all become introspective +when we find that we do not know our business, and whenever we are +introspective we may generally suspect that we are on the verge of +unproficiency. Unfortunately, in the case of sickly children, we +observe that they sometimes do become conscious of their breathing +and circulation, just as in later life we become conscious that we +have a liver or a digestion. In that case there is always something +wrong. The baby that becomes aware of its breathing does not know +how to breathe, and will suffer for his ignorance and incapacity, +exactly in the same way as he will suffer in later life for ignorance +and incapacity in any other respect in which his peers are commonly +knowing and capable. In the case of inability to breath, the +punishment is corporal, breathing being a matter of fashion, so old +and long settled that nature can admit of no departure from the +established custom, and the procedure in case of failure is as much +formulated as the fashion itself in the case of the circulation, the +whole performance has become one so utterly of rote, that the mere +discovery that we could do it at all was considered one of the +highest flights of human genius. + +It has been said a day will come when the Polar ice shall have +accumulated, till it forms vast continents many thousands of feet +above the level of the sea, all of solid ice. The weight of this +mass will, it is believed, cause the world to topple over on its +axis, so that the earth will be upset as an ant-heap overturned by a +ploughshare. In that day time icebergs will come crunching against +our proudest cities, razing them from off the face of the earth as +though they were made of rotten blotting-paper. There is no respect +now of Handel nor of Shakespeare; the works of Rembrandt and Bellini +fossilise at the bottom of the sea. Grace, beauty, and wit, all that +is precious in music, literature, and art--all gone. In the morning +there was Europe. In the evening there are no more populous cities +nor busy hum of men, but a sea of jagged ice, a lurid sunset, and the +doom of many ages. Then shall a scared remnant escape in places, and +settle upon the changed continent when the waters have subsided--a +simple people, busy hunting shellfish on the drying ocean beds, and +with little time for introspection yet they can read and write and +sum, for by that time these accomplishments will have become +universal, and will be acquired as easily as we now learn to talk; +but they do so as a matter of course, and without self-consciousness. +Also they make the simpler kinds of machinery too easily to be able +to follow their own operations--the manner of their own +apprenticeship being to them as a buried city. May we not imagine +that, after the lapse of another ten thousand years or so, some one +of them may again become cursed with lust of introspection, and a +second Harvey may astonish the world by discovering that it can read +and write, and that steam-engines do not grow, but are made? It may +be safely prophesied that he will die a martyr, and be honoured in +the fourth generation. + + + +CHAPTER IV--APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING PRINCIPLES TO ACTIONS AND +HABITS ACQUIRED BEFORE BIRTH + + + +But if we once admit the principle that consciousness and volition +have a tendency to vanish as soon as practice has rendered any habit +exceedingly familiar, so that the mere presence of an elaborate but +unconscious performance shall carry with it a presumption of infinite +practice, we shall find it impossible to draw the line at those +actions which we see acquired after birth, no matter at how early a +period. The whole history and development of the embryo in all its +stages forces itself on our consideration. Birth has been made too +much of. It is a salient feature in the history of the individual, +but not more salient than a hundred others, and far less so than the +commencement of his existence as a single cell uniting in itself +elements derived from both parents, or perhaps than any point in his +whole existence as an embryo. For many years after we are born we +are still very incomplete. We cease to oxygenise our blood +vicariously as soon as we are born, but we still derive our +sustenance from our mothers. Birth is but the beginning of doubt, +the first hankering after scepticism, the dreaming of a dawn of +trouble, the end of certainty and of settled convictions. Not but +what before birth there have been unsettled convictions (more's the +pity) with not a few, and after birth we have still so made up our +minds upon many points as to have no further need of reflection +concerning them; nevertheless, in the main, birth is the end of that +time when we really knew our business, and the beginning of the days +wherein we know not what we would do, or do. It is therefore the +beginning of consciousness, and infancy is as the dosing of one who +turns in his bed on waking, and takes another short sleep before he +rises. When we were yet unborn, our thoughts kept the roadway +decently enough; then were we blessed; we thought as every man +thinks, and held the same opinions as our fathers and mothers had +done upon nearly every subject. Life was not an art--and a very +difficult art--much too difficult to be acquired in a lifetime; it +was a science of which we were consummate masters. + +In this sense, then, birth may indeed be looked upon as the most +salient feature in a man's life; but this is not at all the sense in +which it is commonly so regarded. It is commonly considered as the +point at which we begin to live. More truly it is the point at which +we leave off knowing how to live. + +A chicken, for example, is never so full of consciousness, activity, +reasoning faculty, and volition, as when it is an embryo in the +eggshell, making bones, and flesh, and feathers, and eyes, and claws, +with nothing but a little warmth and white of egg to make them from. +This is indeed to make bricks with but a small modicum of straw. +There is no man in the whole world who knows consciously and +articulately as much as a half-hatched hen's egg knows unconsciously. +Surely the egg in its own way must know quite as much as the chicken +does. We say of the chicken that it knows how to run about as soon +as it is hatched. So it does; but had it no knowledge before it was +hatched? What made it lay the foundations of those limbs which +should enable it to run about? What made it grow a horny tip to its +bill before it was hatched, so that it might peck all round the +larger end of the eggshell and make a hole for itself to get out at? +Having once got outside the eggshell, the chicken throws away this +horny tip; but is it reasonable to suppose that it would have grown +it at all unless it had known that it would want something with which +to break the eggshell? And again, is it in the least agreeable to +our experience that such elaborate machinery should be made without +endeavour, failure, perseverance, intelligent contrivance, +experience, and practice? + +In the presence of such considerations, it seems impossible to +refrain from thinking that there must be a closer continuity of +identity, life, and memory, between successive generations than we +generally imagine. To shear the thread of life, and hence of memory, +between one generation and its successor, is so to speak, a brutal +measure, an act of intellectual butchery, and like all such strong +high-handed measures, a sign of weakness in him who is capable of it +till all other remedies have been exhausted. It is mere horse +science, akin to the theories of the convulsionists in the geological +kingdom, and of the believers in the supernatural origin of the +species of plants and animals. Yet it is to be feared that we have +not a few among us who would feel shocked rather at the attempt +towards a milder treatment of the facts before them, than at a +continuance of the present crass tyranny with which we try to crush +them inside our preconceived opinions. It is quite common to hear +men of education maintain that not even when it was on the point of +being hatched, had the chicken sense enough to know that it wanted to +get outside the eggshell. It did indeed peck all round the end of +the shell, which, if it wanted to get out, would certainly be the +easiest way of effecting its purpose; but it did not, they say, peck +because it was aware of this, but "promiscuously." Curious, such a +uniformity of promiscuous action among so many eggs for so many +generations. If we see a man knock a hole in a wall on finding that +he cannot get out of a place by any other means, and if we see him +knock this hole in a very workmanlike way, with an implement with +which he has been at great pains to make for a long the past, but +which he throws away as soon as he has no longer use for it, thus +showing that he had made it expressly for the purpose of escape, do +we say that this person made the implement and broke the wall of his +prison promiscuously? No jury would acquit a burglar on these +grounds. Then why, without much more evidence to the contrary than +we have, or can hope to have, should we not suppose that with +chickens, as with men, signs of contrivance are indeed signs of +contrivance, however quick, subtle, and untraceable, the contrivance +may be? Again, I have heard people argue that though the chicken, +when nearly hatched, had such a glimmering of sense that it pecked +the shell because it wanted to get out, yet that it is not +conceivable that, so long before it was hatched, it should have had +the sense to grow the horny tip to its bill for use when wanted. +This, at any rate, they say, it must have grown, as the persons +previously referred to would maintain, promiscuously. + +Now no one indeed supposes that the chicken does what it does, with +the same self-consciousness with which a tailor makes a suit of +clothes. Not any one who has thought upon the subject is likely to +do it so great an injustice. The probability is that it knows what +it is about to an extent greater than any tailor ever did or will, +for, to say the least of it, many thousands of years to come. It +works with such absolute certainty and so vast an experience, that it +is utterly incapable of following the operations of its own mind--as +accountants have been known to add up long columns of pounds, +shillings, and pence, running the three fingers of one hand, a finger +for each column, up the page, and putting the result down correctly +at the bottom, apparently without an effort. In the case of the +accountant, we say that the processes which his mind goes through are +so rapid and subtle as to elude his own power of observation as well +as ours. We do not deny that his mind goes though processes of some +kind; we very readily admit that it must do so, and say that these +processes are so rapid and subtle, owing, as a general rule, to long +experience in addition. Why then should we find it so difficult to +conceive that this principle, which we observe to play so large a +part in mental physiology, wherever we can observe mental physiology +at all, may have a share also in the performance of intricate +operations otherwise inexplicable, though the creature performing +them is not man, or man only in embryo? + +Again, after the chicken is hatched, it grows more feathers and bones +and blood, but we still say that it knows nothing about all this. +What then do we say it DOES know? One is almost ashamed to confess +that we only credit it with knowing what it appears to know by +processes which we find it exceedingly easy to follow, or perhaps +rather, which we find it absolutely impossible to avoid following, as +recognising too great a family likeness between them, and those which +are most easily followed in our own minds, to be able to sit down in +comfort under a denial of the resemblance. Thus, for example, if we +see a chicken running away from a fox, we do admit that the chicken +knows the fox would kill it if it caught it. + +On the other hand, if we allow that the half-hatched chicken grew the +horny tip to be ready for use, with an intensity of unconscious +contrivance which can be only attributed to experience, we are driven +to admit that from the first moment the men began to sit upon it--and +earlier too than this--the egg was always full of consciousness and +volition, and that during its embryological condition the unhatched +chicken is doing exactly what it continues doing from the moment it +is hatched till it dies; that is to say, attempting to better itself, +doing (as Aristotle says all creatures do all things upon all +occasions) what it considers most for its advantage under the +existing circumstances. What it may think most advantageous will +depend, while it is in the eggshell, upon exactly the same causes as +will influence its opinions in later life--to wit, upon its habits, +its past circumstances and ways of thinking; for there is nothing, as +Shakespeare tells us, good or ill, but thinking makes it so. + +The egg thinks feathers much more to its advantage than hair or fur, +and much more easily made. If it could speak, it would probably tell +us that we could make them ourselves very easily after a few lessons, +if we took the trouble to try, but that hair was another matter, +which it really could not see how any protoplasm could be got to +make. Indeed, during the more intense and active part of our +existence, in the earliest stages, that is to say, of our +embryological life, we could probably have turned our protoplasm into +feathers instead of hair if we had cared about doing so. If the +chicken can make feathers, there seems no sufficient reason for +thinking that we cannot do so, beyond the fact that we prefer hair, +and have preferred it for so many ages that we have lost the art +along with the desire of making feathers, if indeed any of our +ancestors ever possessed it. The stuff with which we make hair is +practically the same as that with which chickens make feathers. It +is nothing but protoplasm, and protoplasm is like certain prophecies, +out of which anything can be made by the creature which wants to make +it. Everything depends upon whether a creature knows its own mind +sufficiently well, and has enough faith in its own powers of +achievement. When these two requisites are wanting, the strongest +giant cannot lift a two-ounce weight; when they are given, a bullock +can take an eyelash out of its eye with its hind-foot, or a minute +jelly speck can build itself a house out of various materials which +it will select according to its purpose with the nicest care, though +it have neither brain to think with, nor eyes to see with, nor hands +nor feet to work with, nor is it anything but a minute speck of +jelly--faith and protoplasm only. + +That this is indeed so, the following passage from Dr. Carpenter's +"Mental Physiology" may serve to show:- + +"The simplest type of an animal consists of a minute mass of +'protoplasm,' or living jelly, which is not yet DIFFERENTIATED into +'organs;' every part having the same endowments, and taking an equal +share in every action which the creature performs. One of these +'jelly specks,' the amoeba, moves itself about by changing the form +of its body, extemporising a foot (or pseudopodium), first in one +direction, and then in another; and then, when it has met with a +nutritive particle, extemporises a stomach for its reception, by +wrapping its soft body around it. Another, instead of going about in +search of food, remains in one place, but projects its protoplasmic +substance into long pseudopodia, which entrap and draw in very minute +particles, or absorb nutrient material from the liquid through which +they extend themselves, and are continually becoming fused (as it +were) into the central body, which is itself continually giving off +new pseudopodia. Now we can scarcely conceive that a creature of +such simplicity should possess any distinct CONSCIOUSNESS of its +needs" (why not?), "or that its actions should be directed by any +INTENTION of its own; and yet the writer has lately found results of +the most singular elaborateness to be wrought out by the +instrumentality of these minute jelly specks, which build up tests or +casings of the most regular geometrical symmetry of form, and of the +most artificial construction." + +On this Dr. Carpenter remarks:- "Suppose a human mason to be put down +by the side of a pile of stones of various shapes and sizes, and to +be told to build a dome of these, smooth on both surfaces, without +using more than the least possible quantity of a very tenacious, but +very costly, cement, in holding the stones together. If he +accomplished this well, he would receive credit for great +intelligence and skill. Yet this is exactly what these little 'jelly +specks' do on a most minute scale; the 'tests' they construct, when +highly magnified, bearing comparison with the most skilful masonry of +man. From THE SAME SANDY BOTTOM one species picks up the COARSER +quartz grains, cements them together with PHOSPHATE OF IRON secreted +from its own substance" (should not this rather be, "which it has +contrived in some way or other to manufacture"?) and thus constructs +a flask-shaped 'test,' having a short neck and a large single +orifice. Another picks up the FINEST grains, and puts them together, +with the same cement, into perfectly spherical 'tests' of the most +extraordinary finish, perforated with numerous small pores disposed +at pretty regular intervals. Another selects the MINUTEST sand +grains and the terminal portions of sponge spicules, and works them +up together--apparently with no cement at all, by the mere laying of +the spicules--into perfect white spheres, like homoeopathic globules, +each having a single-fissured orifice. And another, which makes a +straight, many-chambered 'test,' that resembles in form the chambered +shell of an orthoceratite--the conical mouth of each chamber +projecting into the cavity of the next--while forming the walls of +its chambers of ordinary sand grains rather loosely held together, +shapes the conical mouth of the successive chambers by firmly +cementing together grains of ferruginous quartz, which it must have +picked out from the general mass." + +"To give these actions," continues Dr. Carpenter, "the vague +designation of 'instinctive' does not in the least help us to account +for them, since what we want is to discover the MECHANISM by which +they are worked out; and it is most difficult to conceive how so +artificial a selection can be made by a creature so simple" (Mental +Physiology, 4th ed. pp. 41-43) + +This is what protoplasm can do when it has the talisman of faith--of +faith which worketh all wonders, either in the heavens above, or in +the earth beneath, or in the waters under the earth. Truly if a man +have faith, even as a grain of mustard seed, though he may not be +able to remove mountains, he will at any rate be able to do what is +no less difficult--make a mustard plant. + +Yet this is but a barren kind of comfort, for we have not, and in the +nature of things cannot have, sufficient faith in the unfamiliar, +inasmuch as the very essence of faith involves the notion of +familiarity, which can grow but slowly, from experience to +confidence, and can make no sudden leap at any time. Such faith +cannot be founded upon reason,--that is to say, upon a recognised +perception on the part of the person holding it that he is holding +it, and of the reasons for his doing so--or it will shift as other +reasons come to disturb it. A house built upon reason is a house +built upon the sand. It must be built upon the current cant and +practice of one's peers, for this is the rock which, though not +immovable, is still most hard to move. + +But however this may be, we observe broadly that the intensity of the +will to make this or that, and of the confidence that one can make +it, depends upon the length of time during which the maker's +forefathers have wanted the same thing before it; the older the +custom the more inveterate the habit, and, with the exception, +perhaps, that the reproductive system is generally the crowning act +of development--an exception which I will hereafter explain--the +earlier its manifestation, until, for some reason or another, we +relinquish it and take to another, which we must, as a general rule, +again adhere to for a vast number of generations, before it will +permanently supplant the older habit. In our own case, the habit of +breathing like a fish through gills may serve as an example. We have +now left off this habit, yet we did it formerly for so many +generations that we still do it a little; it still crosses our +embryological existence like a faint memory or dream, for not easily +is an inveterate habit broken. On the other hand--again speaking +broadly--the more recent the habit the later the fashion of its +organ, as with the teeth, speech, and the higher intellectual powers, +which are too new for development before we are actually born. + +But to return for a short time to Dr. Carpenter. Dr. Carpenter +evidently feels, what must indeed be felt by every candid mind, that +there is no sufficient reason for supposing that these little specks +of jelly, without brain or eyes, or stomach, or hands, or feet, but +the very lowest known form of animal life, are not imbued with a +consciousness of their needs, and the reasoning faculties which shall +enable them to gratify those needs in a manner, all things +considered, equalling the highest flights of the ingenuity of the +highest animal--man. This is no exaggeration. It is true, that in +an earlier part of the passage, Dr. Carpenter has said that we can +scarcely conceive so simple a creature to "possess any distinct +CONSCIOUSNESS of its needs, or that its actions should be directed by +any intention of its own;" but, on the other hand, a little lower +down he says, that if a workman did what comes to the same thing as +what the amoeba does, he "would receive credit for great intelligence +and skill." Now if an amoeba can do that, for which a workman would +receive credit as for a highly skilful and intelligent performance, +the amoeba should receive no less credit than the workman; he should +also be no less credited with skill and intelligence, which words +unquestionably involve a distinct consciousness of needs and an +action directed by an intention of its own. So that Dr. Carpenter +seems rather to blow hot and cold with one breath. Nevertheless +there can be no doubt to which side the minds of the great majority +of mankind will incline upon the evidence before them; they will say +that the creature is highly reasonable and intelligent, though they +would readily admit that long practice and familiarity may have +exhausted its powers of attention to all the stages of its own +performance, just as a practised workman in building a wall certainly +does not consciously follow all the processes which he goes through. + +As an example, however, of the extreme dislike which philosophers of +a certain school have for making the admissions which seem somewhat +grudgingly conceded by Dr. Carpenter, we may take the paragraph which +immediately follows the ones which we have just quoted. Dr. +Carpenter there writes:- + +"The writer has often amused himself and others, when by the seaside, +with getting a terebella (a marine worm that cases its body in a +sandy tube) out of its house, and then, putting it into a saucer of +water with a supply of sand and comminuted shell, watching its +appropriation of these materials in constructing a new tube. The +extended tentacles soon spread themselves over the bottom of the +saucer and lay hold of whatever comes in their way, 'all being fish +that comes to their net,' and in half an hour or thereabouts the new +house is finished, though on a very rude and artificial type. Now +here the organisation is far higher; the instrumentality obviously +serves the needs of the animal and suffices for them; and we +characterise the action, on account of its uniformity and apparent +UNintelligence, as instinctive." + +No comment will, one would think, be necessary to make the reader +feel that the difference between the terebella and the amoeba is one +of degree rather than kind, and that if the action of the second is +as conscious and reasonable as that, we will say, of a bird making +her nest, the action of the first should be so also. It is only a +question of being a little less skilful, or more so, but skill and +intelligence would seem present in both cases. Moreover, it is more +clever of the terebella to have made itself the limbs with which it +can work, than of the amoeba to be able to work without the limbs; +and perhaps it is more sensible also to want a less elaborate +dwelling, provided it is sufficient for practical purposes. But +whether the terebella be less intelligent than the amoeba or not, it +does quite enough to establish its claim to intelligence of a higher +order; and one does not see ground for the satisfaction which Dr. +Carpenter appears to find at having, as it were, taken the taste of +the amoeba's performance out of our mouth, by setting us about the +less elaborate performance of the terebella, which he thinks we can +call unintelligent and instinctive. + +I may be mistaken in the impression I have derived from the +paragraphs I have quoted. I commonly say they give me the impression +that I have tried to convey to the reader, i.e., that the writer's +assent to anything like intelligence, or consciousness of needs, an +animal low down in the scale of life, is grudging, and that he is +more comfortable when he has got hold of onto to which he can point +and say that mere, at any rate, is an unintelligent and merely +instinctive creature. I have only called attention to the passage as +an example of the intellectual bias of a large number of exceedingly +able and thoughtful persons, among whom, so far as I am able to form +an opinion at all, few have greater claims to our respectful +attention than Dr. Carpenter himself. + +For the embryo of a chicken, then, we damn exactly the same kind of +reasoning power and contrivance which we damn for the amoeba, or for +our own intelligent performances in later life. We do not claim for +it much, if any, perception of its own forethought, for we know very +well that it is among the most prominent features of intellectual +activity that, after a number of repetitions, it ceases to be +perceived, and that it does not, in ordinary cases, cease to be +perceived till after a very great number of repetitions. The fact +that the embryo chicken makes itself always as nearly as may be in +the same way, would lead us to suppose that it would be unconscious +of much of its own action, PROVIDED IT WERE ALWAYS THE SAME CHICKEN +WHICH MADE ITSELF OVER AND OVER AGAIN. So far we can see, it always +IS unconscious of the greater part of its own wonderful performance. +Surely then we have a presumption that IT IS THE SAME CHICKEN WHICH +MAKES ITSELF OVER AND OVER AGAIN; for such unconsciousness is not +won, so far as our experience goes, by any other means than by +frequent repetition of the same act on the part of one and the same +individual. How this can be we shall perceive in subsequent +chapters. In the meantime, we may say that all knowledge and +volition would seem to be merely parts of the knowledge and volition +of the primordial cell (whatever this may be), which slumbers but +never dies--which has grown, and multiplied, and differentiated +itself into the compound life of the womb, and which never becomes +conscious of knowing what it has once learnt effectually, till it is +for some reason on the point of, or in danger of, forgetting it. + +The action, therefore, of an embryo making its way up in the world +from a simple cell to a baby, developing for itself eyes, ears, +hands, and feet while yet unborn, proves to be exactly of one and the +same kind as that of a man of fifty who goes into the City and tells +his broker to buy him so many Great Northern A shares--that is to +say, an effort of the will exercised in due course on a balance of +considerations as to the immediate expediency, and guided by past +experience; while children who do not reach birth are but prenatal +spendthrifts, ne'er-do-weels, inconsiderate innovators, the +unfortunate in business, either through their own fault or that of +others, or through inevitable mischances, beings who are culled out +before birth instead of after; so that even the lowest idiot, the +most contemptible in health or beauty, may yet reflect with pride +that they were BORN. Certainly we observe that those who have had +good fortune (mother and sole cause of virtue, and sole virtue in +itself), and have profited by their experience, and known their +business best before birth, so that they made themselves both to be +and to look well, do commonly on an average prove to know it best in +after-life: they grow their clothes best who have grown their limbs +best. It is rare that those who have not remembered how to finish +their own bodies fairly well should finish anything well in later +life. But how small is the addition to their unconscious attainments +which even the Titans of human intellect have consciously +accomplished, in comparison with the problems solved by the meanest +baby living, nay, even by one whose birth is untimely! In other +words, how vast is that back knowledge over which we have gone fast +asleep, through the prosiness of perpetual repetition; and how little +in comparison, is that whose novelty keeps it still within the scope +of our conscious perception! What is the discovery of the laws of +gravitation as compared with the knowledge which sleeps in every +hen's egg upon a kitchen shelf? + +It is all a matter of habit and fashion. Thus we see kings and +councillors of the earth admired for facing death before what they +are pleased to call dishonour. If, on being required to go without +anything they have been accustomed to, or to change their habits, or +do what is unusual in the case of other kings under like +circumstances, then, if they but fold their cloak decently around +them, and die upon the spot of shame at having had it even required +of them to do thus or thus, then are they kings indeed, of old race, +that know their business from generation to generation. Or if, we +will say, a prince, on having his dinner brought to him ill-cooked, +were to feel the indignity so keenly as that he should turn his face +to the wall, and breathe out his wounded soul in one sigh, do we not +admire him as a "REAL prince," who knows the business of princes so +well that he can conceive of nothing foreign to it in connection with +himself, the bare effort to realise a state of things other than what +princes have been accustomed to being immediately fatal to him? Yet +is there no less than this in the demise of every half-hatched hen's +egg, shaken rudely by a schoolboy, or neglected by a truant mother; +for surely the prince would not die if he knew how to do otherwise, +and the hen's egg only dies of being required to do something to +which it is not accustomed. + +But the further consideration of this and other like reflections +would too long detain us. Suffice it that we have established the +position that all living creatures which show any signs of +intelligence, must certainly each one have already gone through the +embryonic stages an infinite number of times, or they could no more +have achieved the intricate process of self-development +unconsciously, than they could play the piano unconsciously without +any previous knowledge of the instrument. It remains, therefore, to +show the when and where of their having done so, and this leads us +naturally to the subject of the following chapter--Personal Identity. + + + +CHAPTER V--PERSONAL IDENTITY + + + +"Strange difficulties have been raised by some," says Bishop Butler, +"concerning personal identity, or the sameness of living agents as +implied in the notion of our existing now and hereafter, or indeed in +any two consecutive moments." But in truth it is not easy to see the +strangeness of the difficulty, if the words either "personal" or +"identity" are used in any strictness. + +Personality is one of those ideas with which we are so familiar that +we have lost sight of the foundations upon which it rests. We regard +our personality as a simple definite whole; as a plain, palpable, +individual thing, which can be seen going about the streets or +sitting indoors at home, which lasts us our lifetime, and about the +confines of which no doubt can exist in the minds of reasonable +people. But in truth this "we," which looks so simple and definite, +is a nebulous and indefinable aggregation of many component parts +which war not a little among themselves, our perception of our +existence at all being perhaps due to this very clash of warfare, as +our sense of sound and light is due to the jarring of vibrations. +Moreover, as the component parts of our identity change from moment +to moment, our personality becomes a thing dependent upon the +present, which has no logical existence, but lives only upon the +sufferance of times past and future, slipping out of our hands into +the domain of one or other of these two claimants the moment we try +to apprehend it. And not only is our personality as fleeting as the +present moment, but the parts which compose it blend some of them so +imperceptibly into, and are so inextricably linked on to, outside +things which clearly form no part of our personality, that when we +try to bring ourselves to book, and determine wherein we consist, or +to draw a line as to where we begin or end, we find ourselves +completely baffled. There is nothing but fusion and confusion. + +Putting theology on one side, and dealing only with the common daily +experience of mankind, our body is certainly part of our personality. +With the destruction of our bodies, our personality, as far as we can +follow it, comes to a full stop; and with every modification of them +it is correspondingly modified. But what are the limits of our +bodies? They are composed of parts, some of them so unessential as +to be hardly included in personality at all, and to be separable from +ourselves without perceptible effect, as the hair, nails, and daily +waste of tissue. Again, other parts are very important, as our +hands, feet, arms, legs, &c., but still are no essential parts of our +"self" or "soul," which continues to exist in spite of their +amputation. Other parts, as the brain, heart, and blood, are so +essential that they cannot be dispensed with, yet it is impossible to +say that personality consists in any one of them. + +Each one of these component members of our personality is continually +dying and being born again, supported in this process by the food we +eat, the water we drink, and the air we breathe; which three things +link us on, and fetter us down, to the organic and inorganic world +about us. For our meat and drink, though no part of our personality +before we eat and drink, cannot, after we have done so, be separated +entirely from us without the destruction of our personality +altogether, so far as we can follow it; and who shall say at what +precise moment our food has or has not become part of ourselves? A +famished man eats food; after a short time his whole personality is +so palpably affected that we know the food to have entered into him +and taken, as it were, possession of him; but who can say at what +precise moment it did so? Thus we find that we are rooted into +outside things and melt away into them, nor can any man say he +consists absolutely in this or that, nor define himself so certainly +as to include neither more nor less than himself; many undoubted +parts of his personality being more separable from it, and changing +it less when so separated, both to his own senses and those of other +people, than other parts which are strictly speaking no parts at all. + +A man's clothes, for example, as they lie on a chair at night are no +part of him, but when he wears them they would appear to be so, as +being a kind of food which warms him and hatches him, and the loss of +which may kill him of cold. If this be denied, and a man's clothes +be considered as no part of his self, nevertheless they, with his +money, and it may perhaps be added his religious opinions, stamp a +man's individuality as strongly as any natural feature could stamp +it. Change in style of dress, gain or loss of money, make a man feel +and appear more changed than having his chin shaved or his nails cut. +In fact, as soon as we leave common parlance on one side, and try for +a scientific definition of personality, we find that there is none +possible, any more than there can be a demonstration of the fact that +we exist at all--a demonstration for which, as for that of a personal +God, many have hunted but none have found. The only solid foundation +is, as in the case of the earth's crust, pretty near the surface of +things; the deeper we try to go, the damper and darker and altogether +more uncongenial we find it. There is no knowing into what quagmire +of superstition we may not find ourselves drawn, if we once cut +ourselves adrift from those superficial aspects of things, in which +alone our nature permits us to be comforted. + +Common parlance, however, settles the difficulty readily enough (as +indeed it settles most others if they show signs of awkwardness) by +the simple process of ignoring it: we decline, and very properly, to +go into the question of where personality begins and ends, but assume +it to be known by every one, and throw the onus of not knowing it +upon the over-curious, who had better think as their neighbours do, +right or wrong, or there is no knowing into what villainy they may +not presently fall. + +Assuming, then, that every one knows what is meant by the word +"person" (and such superstitious bases as this are the foundations +upon which all action, whether of man, beast, or plant, is +constructed and rendered possible; for even the corn in the fields +grows upon a superstitious basis as to its own existence, and only +turns the earth and moisture into wheat through the conceit of its +own ability to do so, without which faith it were powerless; and the +lichen only grows upon the granite rock by first saying to itself, "I +think I can do it;" so that it would not be able to grow unless it +thought it could grow, and would not think it could grow unless it +found itself able to grow, and thus spends its life arguing in a most +vicious circle, basing its action upon a hypothesis, which hypothesis +is in turn based upon its action)--assuming that we know what is +meant by the word "person," we say that we are one and the same from +the moment of our birth to the moment of our death, so that whatever +is done by or happens to any one between birth and death, is said to +happen to or be done by one individual. This in practice is found to +be sufficient for the law courts and the purposes of daily life, +which, being full of hurry and the pressure of business, can only +tolerate compromise, or conventional rendering of intricate +phenomena. When facts of extreme complexity have to be daily and +hourly dealt with by people whose time is money, they must be +simplified, and treated much as a painter treats them, drawing them +in squarely, seizing the more important features, and neglecting all +that does not assert itself as too essential to be passed over--hence +the slang and cant words of every profession, and indeed all +language; for language at best is but a kind of "patter," the only +way, it is true, in many cases, of expressing our ideas to one +another, but still a very bad way, and not for one moment comparable +to the unspoken speech which we may sometimes have recourse to. The +metaphors and facons de parler to which even in the plainest speech +we are perpetually recurring (as, for example, in this last two +lines, "plain," "perpetually," and "recurring," are all words based +on metaphor, and hence more or less liable to mislead) often deceive +us, as though there were nothing more than what we see and say, and +as though words, instead of being, as they are, the creatures of our +convenience, had some claim to be the actual ideas themselves +concerning which we are conversing. + +This is so well expressed in a letter I have recently received from a +friend, now in New Zealand, and certainly not intended by him for +publication, that I shall venture to quote the passage, but should +say that I do so without his knowledge or permission which I should +not be able to receive before this book must be completed. + +"Words, words, words," he writes, "are the stumbling-blocks in the +way of truth. Until you think of things as they are, and not of the +words that misrepresent them, you cannot think rightly. Words +produce the appearance of hard and fast lines where there are none. +Words divide; thus we call this a man, that an ape, that a monkey, +while they are all only differentiations of the same thing. To think +of a thing they must be got rid of: they are the clothes that +thoughts wear--only the clothes. I say this over and over again, for +there is nothing of more importance. Other men's words will stop you +at the beginning of an investigation. A man may play with words all +his life, arranging them and rearranging them like dominoes. If I +could THINK to you without words you would understand me better." + +If such remarks as the above hold good at all, they do so with the +words "personal identity." The least reflection will show that +personal identity in any sort of strictness is an impossibility. The +expression is one of the many ways in which we are obliged to scamp +our thoughts through pressure of other business which pays us better. +For surely all reasonable people will feel that an infant an hour +before birth, when in the eye of the law he has no existence, and +could not be called a peer for another sixty minutes, though his +father were a peer, and already dead,--surely such an embryo is more +personally identical with the baby into which he develops within an +hour's time than the born baby is so with itself (if the expression +may be pardoned), one, twenty, or it may be eighty years after birth. +There is more sameness of matter; there are fewer differences of any +kind perceptible by a third person; there is more sense of continuity +on the part of the person himself; and far more of all that goes to +make up our sense of sameness of personality between an embryo an +hour before birth and the child on being born, than there is between +the child just born and the man of twenty. Yet there is no +hesitation about admitting sameness of personality between these two +last. + +On the other hand, if that hazy contradiction in terms, "personal +identity," be once allowed to retreat behind the threshold of the +womb, it has eluded us once for all. What is true of one hour before +birth is true of two, and so on till we get back to the impregnate +ovum, which may fairly claim to have been personally identical with +the man of eighty into which it ultimately developed, in spite of the +fact that there is no particle of same matter nor sense of continuity +between them, nor recognised community of instinct, nor indeed of +anything which goes to the making up of that which we call identity. + +There is far more of all these things common to the impregnate ovum +and the ovum immediately before impregnation, or again between the +impregnate ovum, and both the ovum before impregnation and the +spermatozoon which impregnated it. Nor, if we admit personal +identity between the ovum and the octogenarian, is there any +sufficient reason why we should not admit it between the impregnate +ovum and the two factors of which it is composed, which two factors +are but offshoots from two distinct personalities, of which they are +as much part as the apple is of the apple-tree; so that an impregnate +ovum cannot without a violation of first principles be debarred from +claiming personal identity with both its parents, and hence, by an +easy chain of reasoning, WITH EACH OF THE IMPREGNATE OVA FROM WHICH +ITS PARENTS WERE DEVELOPED. + +So that each ovum when impregnate should be considered not as +descended from its ancestors, but as being a continuation of the +personality of every ovum in the chain of its ancestry, which every +ovum IT ACTUALLY IS quite as truly as the octogenarian IS the same +identity with the ovum from which he has been developed. + +This process cannot stop short of the primordial cell, which again +will probably turn out to be but a brief resting-place. We therefore +prove each one of us to BE ACTUALLY the primordial cell which never +died nor dies, but has differentiated itself into the life of the +world, all living beings whatever, being one with it, and members one +of another. + +To look at the matter for a moment in another light, it will be +admitted that if the primordial cell had been killed before leaving +issue, all its possible descendants would have been killed at one and +the same time. It is hard to see how this single fact does not +establish at the point, as it were, of a logical bayonet, an +identity, between any creature and all others that are descended from +it. + +In Bishop Butler's first dissertation on personality, we find +expressed very much the same opinions as would follow from the above +considerations, though they are mentioned by the Bishop only to be +condemned, namely, "that personality is not a permanent but a +transient thing; that it lives and dies, begins and ends continually; +that no man can any more remain one and the same person two moments +together, than two successive moments can be one and the same +moment;" in which case, he continues, our present self would not be +"in reality the same with the self of yesterday, but another like +self or person coming up in its room and mistaken for it, to which +another self will succeed to-morrow." This view the Bishop proceeds +to reduce to absurdity by saying, "It must be a fallacy upon +ourselves to charge our present selves with anything we did, or to +imagine our present selves interested in anything which befell us +yesterday; or that our present self will be interested in what will +befall us to-morrow. This, I say, must follow, for if the self or +person of to-day and that of to-morrow are not the same, but only +like persons, the person of to-day is really no more interested in +what will befall the person of to-morrow than in what will befall any +other person. It may be thought, perhaps, that this is not a just +representation of the opinion we are speaking of, because those who +maintain it allow that a person is the same as far back as his +remembrance reaches. And indeed they do use the words IDENTITY and +SAME PERSON. Nor will language permit these words to be laid aside, +since, if they were, there must be I know not what ridiculous +periphrasis substituted in the room of them. But they cannot +consistently with themselves mean that the person is really the same. +For it is self-evident that the personality cannot be really the +same, if, as they expressly assert, that in which it consists is not +the same. And as consistently with themselves they cannot, so I +think it appears they do not mean that the person is really the same, +but only that he is so in a fictitious sense; in such a sense only as +they assert--for this they do assert--that any number of persons +whatever may be the same person. The bare unfolding of this notion, +and laying it thus naked and open, seems the best confutation of it." + +This fencing, for it does not deserve the name of serious +disputation, is rendered possible by the laxness with which the words +"identical" and "identity" are commonly used. Bishop Butler would +not seriously deny that personality undergoes great changes between +infancy and old age, and hence that it must undergo some change from +moment to moment. So universally is this recognised, that it is +common to hear it said of such and such a man that he is not at all +the person he was, or of such and such another that he is twice the +man he used to be--expressions than which none nearer the truth can +well be found. On the other hand, those whom Bishop Butler is +intending to confute would be the first to admit that, though there +are many changes between infancy and old age, yet they come about in +any one individual under such circumstances as we are all agreed in +considering as the factors of personal identity rather than as +hindrances thereto--that is to say, there has been no death on the +part of the individual between any two phases of his existence, and +any one phase has had a permanent though perhaps imperceptible effect +upon all succeeding ones. So that no one ever seriously argued in +the manner supposed by Bishop Butler, unless with modifications and +saving clauses, to which it does not suit his purpose to call +attention. + +Identical strictly means "one and the same;" and if it were tied down +to its strictest usage, it would indeed follow very logically, as we +have said already, that no such thing as personal identity is +possible, but that the case actually is as Bishop Butler has supposed +his opponents without qualification to maintain it. In common use, +however, the word "identical" is taken to mean anything so like +another that no vital or essential differences can be perceived +between them; as in the case of two specimens of the same kind of +plant, when we say they are identical in spite of considerable +individual differences. So with two impressions of a print from the +same plate; so with the plate itself, which is somewhat modified with +every impression taken from it. In like manner "identity" is not +held to its strict meaning--absolute sameness--but is predicated +rightly of a past and present which are now very widely asunder, +provided they have been continuously connected by links so small as +not to give too sudden a sense of change at any one point; as, for +instance, in the case of the Thames at Oxford and Windsor or again at +Greenwich, we say the same river flows by all three places, by which +we mean that much of the water at Greenwich has come down from Oxford +and Windsor in a continuous stream. How sudden a change at any one +point, or how great a difference between the two extremes is +sufficient to bar identity, is one of the most uncertain things +imaginable, and seems to be decided on different grounds in different +cases, sometimes very intelligibly, and again at others arbitrarily +and capriciously. + +Personal identity is barred at one end, in the common opinion, by +birth, and at the other by death. Before birth, a child cannot +complain either by himself or another, in such way as to set the law +in motion; after death he is in like manner powerless to make himself +felt by society, except in so far as he can do so by acts done before +the breath has left his body. At any point between birth and death +he is liable, either by himself or another, to affect his fellow- +creatures; hence, no two other epochs can be found of equal +convenience for social purposes, and therefore they have been seized +by society as settling the whole question of when personal identity +begins and ends--society being rightly concerned with its own +practical convenience, rather than with the abstract truth concerning +its individual members. No one who is capable of reflection will +deny that the limitation of personality is certainly arbitrary to a +degree as regards birth, nor yet that it is very possibly arbitrary +as regards death; and as for intermediate points, no doubt it would +be more strictly accurate to say, "you are the now phase of the +person I met last night," or "you are the being which has been +evolved from the being I met last night," than "you are the person I +met last night." But life is too short for the pen-phrases which +would crowd upon us from every quarter, if we did not set our face +against all that is under the surface of things, unless, that is to +say, the going beneath the surface is, for some special chance of +profit, excusable or capable of extenuation. + + + +CHAPTER VI--PERSONAL IDENTITY--(Continued) + + + +How arbitrary current notions concerning identity really are, may +perhaps be perceived by reflecting upon some of the many different +phases of reproduction. + +Direct reproduction in which a creation reproduces another, the +facsimile, or nearly so, of itself may perhaps occur among the lowest +forms of animal life; but it is certainly not the rule among beings +of a higher order. + +A hen lays an egg, which egg becomes a chicken, which chicken, in the +course of time, becomes a hen. + +A moth lays an egg, which egg becomes a caterpillar, which +caterpillar, after going through several stages, becomes a chrysalis, +which chrysalis becomes a moth. + +A medusa begets a ciliated larva, the larva begets a polyp, the polyp +begets a strobila, and the strobila begets a medusa again; the cycle +of reproduction being completed in the fourth generation. + +A frog lays an egg, which egg becomes a tadpole; the tadpole, after +more or fewer intermediate stages, becomes a frog. + +The mammals lay eggs, which they hatch inside their own bodies, +instead of outside them; but the difference is one of degree and not +of kind. In all these cases how difficult is it to say where +identity begins or ends, or again where death begins or ends, or +where reproduction begins or ends. + +How small and unimportant is the difference between the changes which +a caterpillar undergoes before becoming a moth, and those of a +strobila before becoming a medusa. Yet in the one case we say the +caterpillar does not die, but is changed (though, if the various +changes in its existence be produced metagenetically, as is the case +with many insects, it would appear to make a clean sweep of every +organ of its existence, and start de novo, growing a head where its +feet were, and so on--at least twice between its lives as caterpillar +and butterfly); in this case, however, we say the caterpillar does +not die, but is changed; being, nevertheless, one personality with +the moth, into which it is developed. But in the case of the +strobila we say that it is not changed, but dies, and is no part of +the personality of the medusa. + +We say the egg becomes the caterpillar, not by the death of the egg +and birth of the caterpillar, but by the ordinary process of +nutrition and waste--waste and repair--waste and repair continually. +In like manner we say the caterpillar becomes the chrysalis, and the +chrysalis the moth, not through the death of either one or the other, +but by the development of the same creature, and the ordinary +processes of waste and repair. But the medusa after three or four +cycles becomes the medusa again, not, we say, by these same processes +of nutrition and waste, but by a series of generations, each one +involving an actual birth and an actual death. Why this difference? +Surely only because the changes in the offspring of the medusa are +marked by the leaving a little more husk behind them, and that husk +less shrivelled, than is left on the occasion of each change between +the caterpillar and the butterfly. A little more residuum, which +residuum, it may be, can move about; and though shrivelling from hour +to hour, may yet leave a little more offspring before it is reduced +to powder; or again, perhaps, because in the one case, though the +actors are changed, they are changed behind the scenes, and come on +in parts and dresses, more nearly resembling those of the original +actors, than in the other. + +When the caterpillar emerges from the egg, almost all that was inside +the egg has become caterpillar; the shell is nearly empty, and cannot +move; therefore we do not count it, and call the caterpillar a +continuation of the egg's existence, and personally identical with +the egg. So with the chrysalis and the moth; but after the moth has +laid her eggs she can still move her wings about, and she looks +nearly as large as she did before she laid them; besides, she may yet +lay a few more, therefore we do not consider the moth's life as +continued in the life of her eggs, but rather in their husk, which we +still call the moth, and which we say dies in a day or two, and there +is an end of it. Moreover, if we hold the moth's life to be +continued in that of her eggs, we shall be forced to admit her to be +personally identical with each single egg, and, hence, each egg to be +identical with every other egg, as far as the past, and community of +memories, are concerned; and it is not easy at first to break the +spell which words have cast around us, and to feel that one person +may become many persons, and that many different persons may be +practically one and the same person, as far as their past experience +is concerned; and again, that two or more persons may unite and +become one person, with the memories and experiences of both, though +this has been actually the case with every one of us. + +Our present way of looking at these matters is perfectly right and +reasonable, so long as we bear in mind that it is a facon de parler, +a sort of hieroglyphic which shall stand for the course of nature, +but nothing more. Repair (as is now universally admitted by +physiologists) is only a phase of reproduction, or rather +reproduction and repair are only phases of the same power; and again, +death and the ordinary daily waste of tissue, are phases of the same +thing. As for identity it is determined in any true sense of the +word, not by death alone, but by a combination of death and failure +of issue, whether of mind or body. + +To repeat. Wherever there is a separate centre of thought and +action, we see that it is connected with its successive stages of +being, by a series of infinitely small changes from moment to moment, +with, perhaps, at times more startling and rapid changes, but, +nevertheless, with no such sudden, complete, and unrepaired break up +of the preceding condition, as we shall agree in calling death. The +branching out from it at different times of new centres of thought +and action, has commonly as little appreciable effect upon the +parent-stock as the fall of an apple full of ripe seeds has upon an +apple-tree; and though the life of the parent, from the date of the +branching off of such personalities, is more truly continued in these +than in the residuum of its own life, we should find ourselves +involved in a good deal of trouble if we were commonly to take this +view of the matter. The residuum has generally the upper hand. He +has more money, and can eat up his new life more easily than his new +life, him. A moral residuum will therefore prefer to see the +remainder of his life in his own person, than in that of his +descendants, and will act accordingly. Hence we, in common with most +other living beings, ignore the offspring as forming part of the +personality of the parent, except in so far as that we make the +father liable for its support and for its extravagances (than which +no greater proof need be wished that the law is at heart a +philosopher, and perceives the completeness of the personal identity +between father and son) for twenty-one years from birth. In other +respects we are accustomed, probably rather from considerations of +practical convenience than as the result of pure reason, to ignore +the identity between parent and offspring as completely as we ignore +personality before birth. With these exceptions, however, the common +opinion concerning personal identity is reasonable enough, and is +found to consist neither in consciousness of such identity, nor yet +in the power of recollecting its various phases (for it is plain that +identity survives the distinction or suspension of both these), but +in the fact that the various stages appear to the majority of people +to have been in some way or other linked together. + +For a very little reflection will show that identity, as commonly +predicated of living agents, does not consist in identity of matter, +of which there is no same particle in the infant, we will say, and +the octogenarian into whom he has developed. Nor, again, does it +depend upon sameness of form or fashion; for personality is felt to +survive frequent and radical modification of structure, as in the +case of caterpillars and other insects. Mr. Darwin, quoting from +Professor Owen, tells us (Plants and Animals under Domestication, +vol. ii. p. 362, ed. 1875), that in the case of what is called +metagenetic development, "the new parts are not moulded upon the +inner surfaces of the old ones. The plastic force has changed its +mode of operation. THE OUTER CASE, AND ALL THAT GAVE FORM AND +CHARACTER TO THE PRECEDENT INDIVIDUAL, PERISH, AND ARE CAST OFF; THEY +ARE NOT CHANGED into the corresponding parts of the same individual. +These are due to a new and distinct developmental process." +Assuredly, there is more birth and death in the world than is dreamt +of by the greater part of us; but it is so masked, and on the whole, +so little to our purpose, that we fail to see it. Yet radical and +sweeping as the changes of organism above described must be, we do +not feel them to be more a bar to personal identity than the +considerable changes which take place in the structure of our own +bodies between youth and old age. + +Perhaps the most striking illustration of this is to be found in the +case of some Echinoderms, concerning which Mr. Darwin tells us, that +"the animal in the second stage of development is formed almost like +a bud within the animal of the first stage, the latter being then +cast off like an old vestment, yet sometimes maintaining for a short +period an independent vitality" ("Plants and Animals under +Domestication," vol. ii. p. 362, ed. 1875). + +Nor yet does personality depend upon any consciousness or sense of +such personality on the part of the creature itself--it is not likely +that the moth remembers having been a caterpillar, more than we +ourselves remember having been children of a day old. It depends +simply upon the fact that the various phases of existence have been +linked together, by links which we agree in considering sufficient to +cause identity, and that they have flowed the one out of the other in +what we see as a continuous, though it may be at times, a troubled +stream. This is the very essence of personality, but it involves the +probable unity of all animal and vegetable life, as being, in +reality, nothing but one single creature, of which the component +members are but, as it were, blood corpuscles or individual cells; +life being a sort of leaven, which, if once introduced into the +world, will leaven it altogether; or of fire, which will consume all +it can burn; or of air or water, which will turn most things into +themselves. Indeed, no difficulty would probably be felt about +admitting the continued existence of personal identity between +parents and their offspring through all time (there being no SUDDEN +break at any time between the existence of any maternal parent and +that of its offspring), were it not that after a certain time the +changes in outward appearance between descendants and ancestors +become very great, the two seeming to stand so far apart, that it +seems absurd in any way to say that they are one and the same being; +much in the same way as after a time--though exactly when no one can +say--the Thames becomes the sea. Moreover, the separation of the +identity is practically of far greater importance to it than its +continuance. We want to be ourselves; we do not want any one else to +claim part and parcel of our identity. This community of identities +is not found to answer in everyday life. When then our love of +independence is backed up by the fact that continuity of life between +parents and offspring is a matter which depends on things which are a +good deal hidden, and that thus birth gives us an opportunity of +pretending that there has been a sudden leap into a separate life; +when also we have regard to the utter ignorance of embryology, which +prevailed till quite recently, it is not surprising that our ordinary +language should be found to have regard to what is important and +obvious, rather than to what is not quite obvious, and is quite +unimportant. + +Personality is the creature of time and space, changing, as time +changes, imperceptibly; we are therefore driven to deal with it as +with all continuous and blending things; as with time, for example, +itself, which we divide into days, and seasons, and times, and years, +into divisions that are often arbitrary, but coincide, on the whole, +as nearly as we can make them do so, with the more marked changes +which we can observe. We lay hold, in fact, of anything we can +catch; the most important feature in any existence as regards +ourselves being that which we can best lay hold of rather than that +which is most essential to the existence itself. We can lay hold of +the continued personality of the egg and the moth into which the egg +develops, but it is less easy to catch sight of the continued +personality between the moth and the eggs which she lays; yet the one +continuation of personality is just as true and free from quibble as +the other. A moth becomes each egg that she lays, and that she does +so, she will in good time show by doing, now that she has got a fresh +start, as near as may be what she did when first she was an egg, and +then a moth, before; and this I take it, so far as I can gather from +looking at life and things generally, she would not be able to do if +she had not travelled the same road often enough already, to be able +to know it in her sleep and blindfold, that is to say, to remember it +without any conscious act of memory. + +So also a grain of wheat is linked with an ear, containing, we will +say, a dozen grains, by a series of changes so subtle that we cannot +say at what moment the original grain became the blade, nor when each +ear of the head became possessed of an individual centre of action. +To say that each grain of the head is personally identical with the +original grain would perhaps be an abuse of terms; but it can be no +abuse to say that each grain is a continuation of the personality of +the original grain, and if so, of every grain in the chain of its own +ancestry; and that, as being such a continuation, it must be stored +with the memories and experiences of its past existences, to be +recollected under the circumstances most favourable to recollection, +i.e., when under similar conditions to those when the impression was +last made and last remembered. Truly, then, in each case the new egg +and the new grain IS the egg, and the grain from which its parent +sprang, as completely as the full-grown ox is the calf from which it +has grown. + +Again, in the case of some weeping trees, whose boughs spring up into +fresh trees when they have reached the ground, who shall say at what +time they cease to be members of the parent tree? In the case of +cuttings from plants it is easy to elude the difficulty by making a +parade of the sharp and sudden act of separation from the parent +stock, but this is only a piece of mental sleight of hand; the +cutting remains as much part of its parent plant as though it had +never been severed from it; it goes on profiting by the experience +which it had before it was cut off, as much as though it had never +been cut off at all. This will be more readily seen in the case of +worms which have been cut in half. Let a worm be cut in half, and +the two halves will become fresh worms; which of them is the original +worm? Surely both. Perhaps no simpler case than this could readily +be found of the manner in which personality eludes us, the moment we +try to investigate its real nature. There are few ideas which on +first consideration appear so simple, and none which becomes more +utterly incapable of limitation or definition as soon as it is +examined closely. + +Finally, Mr. Darwin ("Plants and Animals under Domestication," vol. +ii. p. 38, ed. 1875), writes - + +"Even with plants multiplied by bulbs, layers, &c., which may IN ONE +SENSE be said to form part of the same individual," &c., &c.; and +again, p. 58, "The same rule holds good with plants when propagated +by bulbs, offsets, &c., which IN ONE SENSE still form parts of the +same individual," &c. In each of these passages it is plain that the +difficulty of separating the personality of the offspring from that +of the parent plant is present to his mind. Yet, p. 351 of the same +volume as above, he tells us that asexual generation "is effected in +many ways--by the formation of buds of various kinds, and by +fissiparous generation, that is, by spontaneous or artificial +division." The multiplication of plants by bulbs and layers clearly +comes under this head, nor will any essential difference be felt +between one kind of asexual generation and another; if, then, the +offspring formed by bulbs and layers is in one sense part of the +original plant, so also, it would appear, is all offspring developed +by asexual generation in its manifold phrases. + +If we now turn to p. 357, we find the conclusion arrived at, as it +would appear, on the most satisfactory evidence, that "sexual and +asexual reproduction are not seen to differ essentially; and . . . . +that asexual reproduction, the power of regrowth, and development are +all parts of one and the same great law." Does it not then follow, +quite reasonably and necessarily, that all offspring, however +generated, is IN ONE SENSE part of the individuality of its parent or +parents. The question, therefore, turns upon "in what sense" this +may be said to be the case? To which I would venture to reply, "In +the same sense as the parent plant (which is but the representative +of the outside matter which it has assimilated during growth, and of +its own powers of development) is the same individual that it was +when it was itself an offset, or a cow the same individual that it +was when it was a calf--but no otherwise." + +Not much difficulty will be felt about supposing the offset of a +plant, to be imbued with the memory of the past history of the plant +of which it is an offset. It is part of the plant itself; and will +know whatever the plant knows. Why, then, should there be more +difficulty in supposing the offspring of the highest mammals, to +remember in a profound but unselfconscious way, the anterior history +of the creatures of which they too have been part and parcel? + +Personal identity, then, is much like species itself. It is now, +thanks to Mr. Darwin, generally held that species blend or have +blended into one another; so that any possibility of arrangement and +apparent subdivision into definite groups, is due to the suppression +by death both of individuals and whole genera, which, had they been +now existing, would have linked all living beings by a series of +gradations so subtle that little classification could have been +attempted. How it is that the one great personality of life as a +whole, should have split itself up into so many centres of thought +and action, each one of which is wholly, or at any rate nearly, +unconscious of its connection with the other members, instead of +having grown up into a huge polyp, or as it were coral reef or +compound animal over the whole world, which should be conscious but +of its own one single existence; how it is that the daily waste of +this creature should be carried on by the conscious death of its +individual members, instead of by the unconscious waste of tissue +which goes on in the bodies of each individual (if indeed the tissue +which we waste daily in our own bodies is so unconscious of its birth +and death as we suppose); how, again, that the daily repair of this +huge creature life should have become decentralised, and be carried +on by conscious reproduction on the part of its component items, +instead of by the unconscious nutrition of the whole from a single +centre, as the nutrition of our own bodies would appear (though +perhaps falsely) to be carried on; these are matters upon which I +dare not speculate here, but on which some reflections may follow in +subsequent chapters. + + + +CHAPTER VII--OUR SUBORDINATE PERSONALITIES + + + +We have seen that we can apprehend neither the beginning nor the end +of our personality, which comes up out of infinity as an island out +of the sea, so gently, that none can say when it is first visible on +our mental horizon, and fades away in the case of those who leave +offspring, so imperceptibly that none can say when it is out of +sight. But, like the island, whether we can see it or no, it is +always there. Not only are we infinite as regards time, but we are +so also as regards extension, being so linked on to the external +world that we cannot say where we either begin or end. If those who +so frequently declare that man is a finite creature would point out +his boundaries, it might lead to a better understanding. + +Nevertheless, we are in the habit of considering that our +personality, or soul, no matter where it begins or ends, and no +matter what it comprises, is nevertheless a single thing, +uncompounded of other souls. Yet there is nothing more certain than +that this is not at all the case, but that every individual person is +a compound creature, being made up of an infinite number of distinct +centres of sensation and will, each one of which is personal, and has +a soul and individual existence, a reproductive system, intelligence, +and memory of its own, with probably its hopes and fears, its times +of scarcity and repletion, and a strong conviction that it is itself +the centre of the universe. + +True, no one is aware of more than one individuality in his own +person at one time. We are, indeed, often greatly influenced by +other people, so much so, that we act on many occasions in accordance +with their will rather than our own, making our actions answer to +their sensations, and register the conclusions of their cerebral +action and not our own; for the time being, we become so completely +part of them, that we are ready to do things most distasteful and +dangerous to us, if they think it for their advantage that we should +do so. Thus we sometimes see people become mere processes of their +wives or nearest relations. Yet there is a something which blinds +us, so that we cannot see how completely we are possessed by the +souls which influence us upon these occasions. We still think we are +ourselves, and ourselves only, and are as certain as we can be of any +fact, that we are single sentient beings, uncompounded of other +sentient beings, and that our action is determined by the sole +operation of a single will. + +But in reality, over and above this possession of our souls by others +of our own species, the will of the lower animals often enters into +our bodies and possesses them, making us do as they will, and not as +we will; as, for example, when people try to drive pigs, or are run +away with by a restive horse, or are attacked by a savage animal +which masters them. It is absurd to say that a person is a single +"ego" when he is in the clutches of a lion. Even when we are alone, +and uninfluenced by other people except in so far as we remember +their wishes, we yet generally conform to the usages which the +current feeling of our peers has taught us to respect; their will +having so mastered our original nature, that, do what we may, we can +never again separate ourselves and dwell in the isolation of our own +single personality. And even though we succeeded in this, and made a +clean sweep of every mental influence which had ever been brought to +bear upon us, and though at the same time we were alone in some +desert where there was neither beast nor bird to attract our +attention or in any way influence our action, yet we could not escape +the parasites which abound within us; whose action, as every medical +man well knows, is often such as to drive men to the commission of +grave crimes, or to throw them into convulsions, make lunatics of +them, kill them--when but for the existence and course of conduct +pursued by these parasites they would have done no wrong to any man. + +These parasites--are they part of us or no? Some are plainly not so +in any strict sense of the word, yet their action may, in cases which +it is unnecessary to detail, affect us so powerfully that we are +irresistibly impelled to act in such or such a manner; and yet we are +as wholly unconscious of any impulse outside of our own "ego" as +though they were part of ourselves; others again are essential to our +very existence, as the corpuscles of the blood, which the best +authorities concur in supposing to be composed of an infinite number +of living souls, on whose welfare the healthy condition of our blood, +and hence of our whole bodies, depends. We breathe that they may +breathe, not that we may do so; we only care about oxygen in so far +as the infinitely small beings which course up and down in our veins +care about it: the whole arrangement and mechanism of our lungs may +be our doing, but is for their convenience, and they only serve us +because it suits their purpose to do so, as long as we serve them. +Who shall draw the line between the parasites which are part of us, +and the parasites which are not part of us? Or again, between the +influence of those parasites which are within us, but are yet not US, +and the external influence of other sentient beings and our fellow- +men? There is no line possible. Everything melts away into +everything else; there are no hard edges; it is only from a little +distance that we see the effect as of individual features and +existences. When we go close up, there is nothing but a blur and +confused mass of apparently meaningless touches, as in a picture by +Turner. + +The following passage from Mr. Darwin's provisional theory of +Pangenesis, will sufficiently show that the above is no strange and +paradoxical view put forward wantonly, but that it follows as a +matter of course from the conclusions arrived at by those who are +acknowledged leaders in the scientific world. Mr. Darwin writes +thus:- + +"THE FUNCTIONAL INDEPENDENCE OF THE ELEMENTS OR UNITS OF THE BODY.-- +Physiologists agree that the whole organism consists of a multitude +of elemental parts, which are to a great extent independent of one +another. Each organ, says Claude Bernard, has its proper life, its +autonomy; it can develop and reproduce itself independently of the +adjoining tissues. A great German authority, Virchow, asserts still +more emphatically that each system consists of 'an enormous mass of +minute centres of action. . . . Every element has its own special +action, and even though it derive its stimulus to activity from other +parts, yet alone effects the actual performance of duties. . . . +Every single epithelial and muscular fibre-cell leads a sort of +parasitical existence in relation to the rest of the body. . . . +Every single bone corpuscle really possesses conditions of nutrition +peculiar to itself.' Each element, as Sir J. Paget remarks, lives +its appointed time, and then dies, and is replaced after being cast +off and absorbed. I presume that no physiologist doubts that, for +instance, each bone corpuscle of the finger differs from the +corresponding corpuscle of the corresponding joint of the toe," &c., +&c. ("Plants and Animals under Domestication," vol ii. pp. 364, 365, +ed. 1875). + +In a work on heredity by M. Ribot, I find him saying, "Some recent +authors attribute a memory" (and if so, surely every attribute of +complete individuality) "to every organic element of the body;" among +them Dr. Maudsley, who is quoted by M. Ribot, as saying, "The +permanent effects of a particular virus, such as that of the variola, +in the constitution, shows that the organic element remembers for the +remainder of its life certain modifications it has received. The +manner in which a cicatrix in a child's finger grows with the growth +of the body, proves, as has been shown by Paget, that the organic +element of the part does not forget the impression it has received. +What has been said about the different nervous centres of the body +demonstrates the existence of a memory in the nerve cells diffused +through the heart and intestines; in those of the spinal cord, in the +cells of the motor ganglia, and in the cells of the cortical +substance of the cerebal hemispheres." + +Now, if words have any meaning at all, it must follow from the +passages quoted above, that each cell in the human body is a person +with an intelligent soul, of a low class, perhaps, but still +differing from our own more complex soul in degree, and not in kind; +and, like ourselves, being born, living, and dying. So that each +single creature, whether man or beast, proves to be as a ray of white +light, which, though single, is compounded of the red, blue, and +yellow rays. It would appear, then, as though "we," "our souls," or +"selves," or "personalities," or by whatever name we may prefer to be +called, are but the CONSENSUS and full flowing stream of countless +sensations and impulses on the part of our tributary souls or +"selves," who probably know no more that we exist, and that they +exist as part of us, than a microscopic water-flea knows the results +of spectrum analysis, or than an agricultural labourer knows the +working of the British constitution: and of whom we know no more, +until some misconduct on our part, or some confusion of ideas on +theirs, has driven them into insurrection, than we do of the habits +and feelings of some class widely separated from our own. + +These component souls are of many and very different natures, living +in territories which are to them vast continents, and rivers, and +seas, but which are yet only the bodies of our other component souls; +coral reefs and sponge-beds within us; the animal itself being a kind +of mean proportional between its house and its soul, and none being +able to say where house ends and animal begins, more than they can +say where animal ends and soul begins. For our bones within us are +but inside walls and buttresses, that is to say, houses constructed +of lime and stone, as it were, by coral insects; and our houses +without us are but outside bones, a kind of exterior skeleton or +shell, so that we perish of cold if permanently and suddenly deprived +of the coverings which warm us and cherish us, as the wing of a hen +cherishes her chickens. If we consider the shells of many living +creatures, we shall find it hard to say whether they are rather +houses, or part of the animal itself, being, as they are, inseparable +from the animal, without the destruction of its personality. + +Is it possible, then, to avoid imagining that if we have within us so +many tributary souls, so utterly different from the soul which they +unite to form, that they neither can perceive us, nor we them, though +it is in us that they live and move and have their being, and though +we are what we are, solely as the result of their co-operation--is it +possible to avoid imagining that we may be ourselves atoms, +undesignedly combining to form some vaster being, though we are +utterly incapable of perceiving that any such being exists, or of +realising the scheme or scope of our own combination? And this, too, +not a spiritual being, which, without matter, or what we think matter +of some sort, is as complete nonsense to us as though men bade us +love and lean upon an intelligent vacuum, but a being with what is +virtually flesh and blood and bones; with organs, senses, dimensions, +in some way analogous to our own, into some other part of which +being, at the time of our great change we must infallibly re-enter, +starting clean anew, with bygones bygones, and no more ache for ever +from either age or antecedents. Truly, sufficient for the life is +the evil thereof. Any speculations of ours concerning the nature of +such a being, must be as futile and little valuable as those of a +blood corpuscle might be expected to be concerning the nature of man; +but if I were myself a blood corpuscle, I should be amused at making +the discovery that I was not only enjoying life in my own sphere, but +was bona fide part of an animal which would not die with myself, and +in which I might thus think of myself as continuing to live to all +eternity, or to what, as far as my power of thought would carry me, +must seem practically eternal. But, after all, the amusement would +be of a rather dreary nature. + +On the other hand, if I were the being of whom such an introspective +blood corpuscle was a component item, I should conceive he served me +better by attending to my blood and making himself a successful +corpuscle, than by speculating about my nature. He would serve me +best by serving himself best, without being over curious. I should +expect that my blood might suffer if his brain were to become too +active. If, therefore, I could discover the vein in which he was, I +should let him out to begin life anew in some other and, qua me, more +profitable capacity. + +With the units of our bodies it is as with the stars of heaven: +there is neither speech nor language, but their voices are heard +among them. Our will is the fiat of their collective wisdom, as +sanctioned in their parliament, the brain; it is they who make us do +whatever we do--it is they who should be rewarded if they have done +well, or hanged if they have committed murder. When the balance of +power is well preserved among them, when they respect each other's +rights and work harmoniously together, then we thrive and are well; +if we are ill, it is because they are quarrelling with themselves, or +are gone on strike for this or that addition to their environment, +and our doctor must pacify or chastise them as best he may. They are +we and we are they; and when we die it is but a redistribution of the +balance of power among them or a change of dynasty, the result, it +may be, of heroic struggle, with more epics and love romances than we +could read from now to the Millennium, if they were so written down +that we could comprehend them. + +It is plain, then, that the more we examine the question of +personality the more it baffles us, the only safeguard against utter +confusion and idleness of thought being to fall back upon the +superficial and common sense view, and refuse to tolerate discussions +which seem to hold out little prospect of commercial value, and which +would compel us, if logically followed, to be at the inconvenience of +altering our opinions upon matters which we have come to consider as +settled. + +And we observe that this is what is practically done by some of our +ablest philosophers, who seem unwilling, if one may say so without +presumption, to accept the conclusions to which their own experiments +and observations would seem to point. + +Dr. Carpenter, for example, quotes the well-known experiments upon +headless frogs. If we cut off a frog's head and pinch any part of +its skin, the animal at once begins to move away with the same +regularity as though the brain had not been removed. Flourens took +guinea-pigs, deprived them of the cerebral lobes, and then irritated +their skin; the animals immediately walked, leaped, and trotted +about, but when the irritation was discontinued they ceased to move. +Headless birds, under excitation, can still perform with their wings +the rhythmic movements of flying. But here are some facts more +curious still, and more difficult of explanation. If we take a frog +or a strong and healthy triton, and subject it to various +experiments; if we touch, pinch, or burn it with acetic acid, and if +then, after decapitating the animal, we subject it to the same +experiments, it will be seen that the reactions are exactly the same; +it will strive to be free of the pain, and to shake off the acetic +acid that is burning it; it will bring its foot up to the part of its +body that is irritated, and this movement of the member will follow +the irritation wherever it may be produced. + +The above is mainly taken from M. Ribot's work on heredity rather +than Dr. Carpenter's, because M. Ribot tells us that the head of the +frog was actually cut off, a fact which does not appear so plainly in +Dr. Carpenter's allusion to the same experiments. But Dr. Carpenter +tells us that AFTER THE BRAIN OF A FROG HAS BEEN REMOVED--which would +seem to be much the same thing as though its head were cut off--"if +acetic acid be applied over the upper and under part of the thigh, +the foot of the same side will wipe it away; BUT IF THAT FOOT BE CUT +OFF, AFTER SOME INEFFECTUAL EFFORTS AND A SHORT PERIOD OF INACTION," +during which it is hard not to surmise that the headless body is +considering what it had better do under the circumstances, "THE SAME +MOVEMENT WILL BE MADE BY THE FOOT OF THE OPPOSITE SIDE," which, to +ordinary people, would convey the impression that the headless body +was capable of feeling the impressions it had received, and of +reasoning upon them by a psychological act; and this of course +involves the possession of a soul of some sort. + +Here is a frog whose right thigh you burn with acetic acid. Very +naturally it tries to get at the place with its right foot to remove +the acid. You then cut off the frog's head, and put more acetic acid +on the some place: the headless frog, or rather the body of the late +frog, does just what the frog did before its head was cut off--it +tries to get at the place with its right foot. You now cut off its +right foot: the headless body deliberates, and after a while tries +to do with its left foot what it can no longer do with its right. +Plain matter-of-fact people will draw their own inference. They will +not be seduced from the superficial view of the matter. They will +say that the headless body can still, to some extent, feel, think, +and act, and if so, that it must have a living soul. + +Dr. Carpenter writes as follows:- "Now the performance of these, as +well as of many other movements, that show a most remarkable +adaptation to a purpose, might be supposed to indicate that +sensations are called up by the IMPRESSIONS, and that the animal can +not only FEEL, but can voluntarily direct its movements so as to get +rid of the irritation which annoys it. But such an inference would +be inconsistent with other facts. In the first place, the motions +performed under such circumstances are never spontaneous, but are +always excited by a stimulus of some kind." + +Here we pause to ask ourselves whether any action of any creature +under any circumstances is ever excited without "stimulus of some +kind," and unless we can answer this question in the affirmative, it +is not easy to see how Dr. Carpenter's objection is valid. + +"Thus," he continues, "a decapitated frog" (here then we have it that +the frog's head was actually cut off) "after the first violent +convulsive moments occasioned by the operation have passed away, +remains at rest until it is touched; and then the leg, or its whole +body may be thrown into sudden action, which suddenly subsides +again." (How does this quiescence when it no longer feels anything +show that the "leg or whole body" had not perceived something which +made it feel when it was not quiescent?)--"Again we find that such +movements may be performed not only when the brain has been removed, +the spinal cord remaining entire, but also when the spinal cord has +been itself cut across, so as to be divided into two or more +portions, each of them completely isolated from each other, and from +other parts of the nervous centres. Thus, if the head of a frog be +cut off, and its spinal cord be divided in the middle of the back, so +that its fore legs remain connected with the upper part, and its hind +legs with the lower, each pair of members may be excited to movements +by stimulants applied to itself; but the two pairs will not exhibit +any consentaneous motions, as they will do when the spinal cord is +undivided." + +This may be put perhaps more plainly thus. If you take a frog and +cut it into three pieces--say, the head for one piece, the fore legs +and shoulder for another, and the hind legs for a third--and then +irritate any one of these pieces, you will find it move much as it +would have moved under like irritation if the animal had remained +undivided, but you will no longer find any concert between the +movements of the three pieces; that is to say, if you irritate the +head, the other two pieces will remain quiet, and if you irritate the +hind legs, you will excite no action in the fore legs or head. + +Dr. Carpenter continues: "Or if the spinal cord be cut across +without the removal of the brain, the lower limbs may be EXCITED to +movement by an appropriate stimulant, though the animal has clearly +no power over them, whilst the upper part remains under its control +as completely as before." + +Why are the head and shoulders "the animal" more than the hind legs +under these circumstances? Neither half can exist long without the +other; the two parts, therefore, being equally important to each +other, we have surely as good a right to claim the title of "the +animal" for the hind legs, and to maintain that they have no power +over the head and shoulders, as any one else has to claim the +animalship for these last. What we say is, that the animal has +ceased to exist as a frog on being cut in half, and that the two +halves are no longer, either of them, the frog, but are simply pieces +of still living organism, each of which has a soul of its own, being +capable of sensation, and of intelligent psychological action as the +consequence of sensations, though the one part has probably a much +higher and more intelligent soul than the other, and neither part has +a soul for a moment comparable in power and durability to that of the +original frog. + +"Now it is scarcely conceivable," continues Dr Carpenter, "that in +this last case sensations should be felt and volition exercised +through the instrumentality of that portion of the spinal cord which +remains connected with the nerves of the posterior extremities, but +which is cut off from the brain. For if it were so, there must be +two distinct centres of sensation and will in the same animal, the +attributes of the brain not being affected; and by dividing the +spinal cord into two or more segments we might thus create in the +body of one animal two or more such independent centres in addition +to that which holds its proper place in the head." + +In the face of the facts before us, it does not seen far-fetched to +suppose that there ARE two, or indeed an infinite number of centres +of sensation and will in an animal, the attributes of whose brain are +not affected but that these centres, while the brain is intact, +habitually act in connection with and in subordination to that +central authority; as in the ordinary state of the fish trade, fish +is caught, we will say, at Yarmouth, sent up to London, and then sent +down to Yarmouth again to be eaten, instead of being eaten at +Yarmouth when caught. But from the phenomena exhibited by three +pieces of an animal, it is impossible to argue that the causes of the +phenomena were present in the quondam animal itself; the memory of an +infinite series of generations having so habituated the local centres +of sensation and will, to act in concert with the central government, +that as long as they can get at that government, they are absolutely +incapable of acting independently. When thrown on their own +resources, they are so demoralised by ages of dependence on the +brain, that they die after a few efforts at self-assertion, from +sheer unfamiliarity with the position, and inability to recognise +themselves when disjointed rudely from their habitual associations. + +In conclusion, Dr. Carpenter says, "To say that two or more distinct +centres of sensation and will are present in such a case, would +really be the same as saying that we have the power of constituting +two or more distinct egos in one body, WHICH IS MANIFESTLY ABSURD." +One sees the absurdity of maintaining that we can make one frog into +two frogs by cutting a frog into two pieces, but there is no +absurdity in believing that the two pieces have minor centres of +sensation and intelligence within themselves, which, when the animal +is entire, act in much concert with the brain, and with each other, +that it is not easy to detect their originally autonomous character, +but which, when deprived of their power of acting in concert, are +thrown back upon earlier habit, now too long forgotten to be capable +of permanent resumption. + +Illustrations are apt to mislead, nevertheless they may perhaps be +sometimes tolerated. Suppose, for example, that London to the +extent, say, of a circle with a six-mile radius from Charing Cross, +were utterly annihilated in the space of five minutes during the +Session of Parliament. Suppose, also, that two entirely impassable +barriers, say of five miles in width, half a mile high, and red hot, +were thrown across England; one from Gloucester to Harwich, and +another from Liverpool to Hull, and at the same time the sea were to +become a mass of molten lava, so no water communication should be +possible; the political, mercantile, social, and intellectual life of +the country would be convulsed in a manner which it is hardly +possible to realise. Hundreds of thousands would die through the +dislocation of existing arrangements. Nevertheless, each of the +three parts into which England was divided would show signs of +provincial life for which it would find certain imperfect organisms +ready to hand. Bristol, Birmingham, Liverpool, and Manchester, +accustomed though they are to act in subordination to London, would +probably take up the reins of government in their several sections; +they would make their town councils into local governments, appoint +judges from the ablest of their magistrates, organise relief +committees, and endeavour as well as they could to remove any acetic +acid that might be now poured on Wiltshire, Warwickshire, or +Northumberland, but no concert between the three divisions of the +country would be any longer possible. Should we be justified, under +these circumstances, in calling any of the three parts of England, +England? Or, again, when we observed the provincial action to be as +nearly like that of the original undivided nation as circumstances +would allow, should we be justified in saying that the action, such +as it was, was not political? And, lastly, should we for a moment +think that an admission that the provincial action was of a bona fide +political character would involve the supposition that England, +undivided, had more than one "ego" as England, no matter how many +subordinate "egos" might go to the making of it, each one of which +proved, on emergency, to be capable of a feeble autonomy? + +M. Ribot would seem to take a juster view of the phenomenon when he +says (p. 222 of the English translation) - + +"We can hardly say that here the movements are co-ordinated like +those of a machine; the acts of the animal are adapted to a special +end; we find in them the characters of intelligence and will, a +knowledge and choice of means, since they are as variable as the +cause which provokes them. + +"If these, then, and similar acts, were such that both the +impressions which produced them and the acts themselves were +perceived by the animal, would they not be called psychological? Is +there not in them all that constitutes an intelligent act--adaptation +of means to ends; not a general and vague adaptation, but a +determinate adaptation to a determinate end? In the reflex action we +find all that constitutes in some sort the very groundwork of an +intelligent act--that is to say, the same series of stages, in the +same order, with the same relations between them. We have thus, in +the reflex act, all that constitutes the psychological act except +consciousness. The reflex act, which is physiological, differs in +nothing from the psychological act, save only in this--that it is +without consciousness." + +The only remark which suggests itself upon this, is that we have no +right to say that the part of the animal which moves does not also +perceive its own act of motion, as much as it has perceived the +impression which has caused it to move. It is plain "the animal" +cannot do so, for the animal cannot be said to be any longer in +existence. Half a frog is not a frog; nevertheless, if the hind legs +are capable, as M. Ribot appears to admit, of "perceiving the +impression" which produces their action, and if in that action there +is (and there would certainly appear to be so) "all that constitutes +an intelligent act, . . . a determinate adaptation to a determinate +end," one fails to see on what ground they should be supposed to be +incapable of perceiving their own action, in which case the action of +the hind legs becomes distinctly psychological. + +Secondly, M. Ribot appears to forget that it is the tendency of all +psychological action to become unconscious on being frequently +repeated, and that no line can be drawn between psychological acts +and those reflex acts which he calls physiological. All we can say +is, that there are acts which we do without knowing that we do them; +but the analogy of many habits which we have been able to watch in +their passage from laborious consciousness to perfect +unconsciousness, would suggest that all action is really +psychological, only that the soul's action becomes invisible to +ourselves after it has been repeated sufficiently often--that there +is, in fact, a law as simple as in the case of optics or gravitation, +whereby conscious perception of any action shall vary inversely as +the square, say, of its being repeated. + +It is easy to understand the advantage to the individual of this +power of doing things rightly without thinking about them; for were +there no such power, the attention would be incapable of following +the multitude of matters which would be continually arresting it; +those animals which had developed a power of working automatically, +and without a recurrence to first principles when they had once +mastered any particular process, would, in the common course of +events, stand a better chance of continuing their species, and thus +of transmitting their new power to their descendants. + +M. Ribot declines to pursue the subject further, and has only +cursorily alluded to it. He writes, however, that, on the "obscure +problem" of the difference between reflex and psychological actions, +some say, "when there can be no consciousness, because the brain is +wanting, there is, in spite of appearances, only mechanism," whilst +others maintain, that "when there is selection, reflection, psychical +action, there must also be consciousness in spite of appearances." A +little later (p. 223), he says, "It is quite possible that if a +headless animal could live a sufficient length of time" (that is to +say, if THE HIND LEGS OF AN ANIMAL could live a sufficient length of +time without the brain), "there would be found in it" (THEM) "a +consciousness like that of the lower species, which would consist +merely in the faculty of apprehending the external world." (Why +merely? It is more than apprehending the outside world to be able to +try to do a thing with one's left foot, when one finds that one +cannot do it with one's right.) "It would not be correct to say that +the amphioxus, the only one among fishes and vertebrata which has a +spinal cord without a brain, has no consciousness because it has no +brain; and if it be admitted that the little ganglia of the +invertebrata can form a consciousness, the same may hold good for the +spinal cord." + +We conclude, therefore, that it is within the common scope and +meaning of the words "personal identity," not only that one creature +can become many as the moth becomes manifold in her eggs, but that +each individual may be manifold in the sense of being compounded of a +vast number of subordinate individualities which have their separate +lives within him, with their hopes, and fears, and intrigues, being +born and dying within us, many generations, of them during our single +lifetime. + +"An organic being," writes Mr. Darwin, "is a microcosm, a little +universe, formed of a host of self-propagating organisms, +inconceivably minute, and numerous as the stars in heaven." + +As these myriads of smaller organisms are parts and processes of us, +so are we but parts and processes of life at large. + + + +CHAPTER VIII--APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING CHAPTERS--THE ASSIMILATION +OF OUTSIDE MATTER + + + +Let us now return to the position which we left at the end of the +fourth chapter. We had then concluded that the self-development of +each new life in succeeding generations--the various stages through +which it passes (as it would appear, at first sight, without rhyme or +reason)--the manner in which it prepares structures of the most +surpassing intricacy and delicacy, for which it has no use at the +time when it prepares them--and the many elaborate instincts which it +exhibits immediately on, and indeed before, birth--all point in the +direction of habit and memory, as the only causes which could produce +them. + +Why should the embryo of any animal go through so many stages-- +embryological allusions to forefathers of a widely different type? +And why, again, should the germs of the same kind of creature always +go through the same stages? If the germ of any animal now living is, +in its simplest state, but part of the personal identity of one of +the original germs of all life whatsoever, and hence, if any now +living organism must be considered without quibble as being itself +millions of years old, and as imbued with an intense though +unconscious memory of all that it has done sufficiently often to have +made a permanent impression; if this be so, we can answer the above +questions perfectly well. The creature goes through so many +intermediate stages between its earliest state as life at all, and +its latest development, for the simplest of all reasons, namely, +because this is the road by which it has always hitherto travelled to +its present differentiation; this is the road it knows, and into +every turn and up or down of which, it has been guided by the force +of circumstances and the balance of considerations. These, acting in +such a manner for such and such a time, caused it to travel in such +and such fashion, which fashion having been once sufficiently +established, becomes a matter of trick or routine to which the +creature is still a slave, and in which it confirms itself by +repetition in each succeeding generation. + +Thus I suppose, as almost every one else, so far as I can gather, +supposes, that we are descended from ancestors of widely different +characters to our own. If we could see some of our forefathers a +million years back, we should find them unlike anything we could call +man; if we were to go back fifty million years, we should find them, +it may be, fishes pure and simple, breathing through gills, and +unable to exist for many minutes in air. + +It is admitted on all hands that there is more or less analogy +between the embryological development of the individual, and the +various phases or conditions of life through which his forefathers +have passed. I suppose, then, that the fish of fifty million years +back and the man of to-day are one single living being, in the same +sense, or very nearly so, as the octogenarian is one single living +being with the infant from which he has grown; and that the fish has +lived himself into manhood, not as we live out our little life, +living, and living, and living till we die, but living by pulsations, +so to speak; living so far, and after a certain time going into a new +body, and throwing off the old; making his body much as we make +anything that we want, and have often made already, that is to say, +as nearly as may be in the same way as he made it last time; also +that he is as unable as we ourselves are, to make what he wants +without going through the usual processes with which he is familiar, +even though there may be other better ways of doing the same thing, +which might not be far to seek, if the creature thought them better, +and had not got so accustomed to such and such a method, that he +would only be baffled and put out by any attempt to teach him +otherwise. + +And this oneness of personality between ourselves and our supposed +fishlike ancestors of many millions of years ago, must hold also +between each individual one of us and the single pair of fishes from +which we are each (on the present momentary hypothesis) descended; +and it must also hold between such pair of fishes and all their +descendants besides man, it may be some of them birds, and others +fishes; all these descendants, whether human or otherwise, being but +the way in which the creature (which was a pair of fishes when we +first took it in hand though it was a hundred thousand other things +as well, and had been all manner of other things before any part of +it became fishlike) continues to exist--its manner, in fact, of +growing. As the manner in which the human body grows is by the +continued birth and death, in our single lifetime, of many +generations of cells which we know nothing about, but say that we +have had only one hand or foot all our lives, when we have really had +many, one after another; so this huge compound creature, LIFE, +probably thinks itself but one single animal whose component cells, +as it may imagine, grow, and it may be waste and repair, but do not +die. + +It may be that the cells of which we are built up, and which we have +already seen must be considered as separate persons, each one of them +with a life and memory of its own--it may be that these cells reckon +time in a manner inconceivable by us, so that no word can convey any +idea of it whatever. What may to them appear a long and painful +process may to us be so instantaneous as to escape us altogether, we +wanting some microscope to show us the details of time. If, in like +manner, we were to allow our imagination to conceive the existence of +a being as much in need of a microscope for our time and affairs as +we for those of our own component cells, the years would be to such a +being but as the winkings or the twinklings of an eye. Would he +think, then, that all the ants and flies of one wink were different +from those of the next? or would he not rather believe that they were +always the same flies, and, again, always the same men and women, if +he could see them at all, and if the whole human race did not appear +to him as a sort of spreading and lichen-like growth over the earth, +not differentiated at all into individuals? With the help of a +microscope and the intelligent exercise of his reason, he would in +time conceive the truth. He would put Covent Garden Market on the +field of his microscope, and would perhaps write a great deal of +nonsense about the unerring "instinct" which taught each costermonger +to recognise his own basket or his own donkey-cart; and this, mutatis +mutandis, is what we are getting to do as regards our own bodies. +What I wish is, to make the same sort of step in an upward direction +which has already been taken in a downward one, and to show reason +for thinking that we are only component atoms of a single compound +creature, LIFE, which has probably a distinct conception of its own +personality though none whatever of ours, more than we of our own +units. I wish also to show reason for thinking that this creature, +LIFE, has only come to be what it is, by the same sort of process as +that by which any human art or manufacture is developed, i.e., +through constantly doing the same thing over and over again, +beginning from something which is barely recognisable as faith, or as +the desire to know, or do, or live at all, and as to the origin of +which we are in utter darkness,--and growing till it is first +conscious of effort, then conscious of power, then powerful with but +little consciousness, and finally, so powerful and so charged with +memory as to be absolutely without all self-consciousness whatever, +except as regards its latest phases in each of its many +differentiations, or when placed in such new circumstances as compel +it to choose between death and a reconsideration of its position. + +No conjecture can be hazarded as to how the smallest particle of +matter became so imbued with faith that it must be considered as the +beginning of LIFE, or as to what such faith is, except that it is the +very essence of all things, and that it has no foundation. + +In this way, then, I conceive we can fairly transfer the experience +of the race to the individual, without any other meaning to our words +than what they would naturally suggest; that is to say, that there is +in every impregnate ovum a bona fide memory, which carries it back +not only to the time when it was last an impregnate ovum, but to that +earlier date when it was the very beginning of life at all, which +same creature it still is, whether as man or ovum, and hence imbued, +so far as time and circumstance allow, with all its memories. Surely +this is no strained hypothesis; for the mere fact that the germ, from +the earliest moment that we are able to detect it, appears to be so +perfectly familiar with its business, acts with so little hesitation +and so little introspection or reference to principles, this alone +should incline us to suspect that it must be armed with that which, +so far as we observe in daily life, can alone ensure such a result-- +to wit, long practice, and the memory of many similar performances. + +The difficulty is, that we are conscious of no such memory in our own +persons, and beyond the one great proof of memory given by the actual +repetition of the performance--and of some of the latest deviations +from the ordinary performance (and this proof ought in itself, one +would have thought, to outweigh any save the directest evidence to +the contrary) we can detect no symptom of any such mental operation +as recollection on the part of the embryo. On the other hand, we +have seen that we know most intensely those things that we are least +conscious of knowing; we will most intensely what we are least +conscious of willing; we feel continually without knowing that we +feel, and our attention is hourly arrested without our attention +being arrested by the arresting of our attention. Memory is no less +capable of unconscious exercise, and on becoming intense through +frequent repetition, vanishes no less completely as a conscious +action of the mind than knowledge and volition. We must all be aware +of instances in which it is plain we must have remembered, without +being in the smallest degree conscious of remembering. Is it then +absurd to suppose that our past existences have been repeated on such +a vast number of occasions that the germ, linked on to all preceding +germs, and, by once having become part of their identity, imbued with +all their memories, remembers too intensely to be conscious of +remembering, and works on with the same kind of unconsciousness with +which we play, or walk, or read, until something unfamiliar happens +to us? and is it not singularly in accordance with this view that +consciousness should begin with that part of the creature's +performance with which it is least familiar, as having repeated it +least often--that is to say, in our own case, with the commencement +of our human life--at birth, or thereabouts? + +It is certainly noteworthy that the embryo is never at a loss, unless +something happens to it which has not usually happened to its +forefathers, and which in the nature of things it cannot remember. + +When events are happening to it which have ordinarily happened to its +forefathers, and which it would therefore remember, if it was +possessed of the kind of memory which we are here attributing to it, +IT ACTS PRECISELY AS IT WOULD ACT IF IT WERE POSSESSED OF SUCH +MEMORY. + +When, on the other hand, events are happening to it which, if it has +the kind of memory we are attributing to it, would baffle that +memory, or which have rarely or never been included in the category +of its recollections, IT ACTS PRECISELY AS A CREATURE ACTS WHEN ITS +RECOLLECTION IS DISTURBED, OR WHEN IT IS REQUIRED TO DO SOMETHING +WHICH IT HAS NEVER DONE BEFORE. + +We cannot remember having been in the embryonic stage, but we do not +on that account deny that we ever were in such a stage at all. On a +little reflection it will appear no more reasonable to maintain that, +when we were in the embryonic stage, we did not remember our past +existences, than to say that we never were embryos at all. We cannot +remember what we did or did not recollect in that state; we cannot +now remember having grown the eyes which we undoubtedly did grow, +much less can we remember whether or not we then remembered having +grown them before; but it is probable that our memory was then, in +respect of our previous existences as embryos, as much more intense +than it is now in respect of our childhood, as our power of acquiring +a new language was greater when we were one or two years old, than +when we were twenty. And why should this power of acquiring +languages be greater at two years than at twenty, but that for many +generations we have learnt to speak at about this age, and hence look +to learn to do so again on reaching it, just as we looked to making +eyes, when the time came at which we were accustomed to make them. + +If we once had the memory of having been infants (which we had from +day to day during infancy), and have lost it, we may well have had +other and more intense memories which we have lost no less +completely. Indeed, there is nothing more extraordinary in the +supposition that the impregnate ovum has an intense sense of its +continuity with, and therefore of its identity with, the two +impregnate ova from which it has sprung, than in the fact that we +have no sense of our continuity with ourselves as infants. If then, +there is no a priori objection to this view, and if the impregnate +ovum acts in such a manner as to carry the strongest conviction that +it must have already on many occasions done what it is doing now, and +that it has a vivid though unconscious recollection of what all, and +more especially its nearer, ancestral ova did under similar +circumstances, there would seem to be little doubt what conclusion we +ought to come to. + +A hen's egg, for example, as soon as the hen begins to sit, sets to +work immediately to do as nearly as may be what the two eggs from +which its father and mother were hatched did when hens began to sit +upon them. The inference would seem almost irresistible,--that the +second egg remembers the course pursued by the eggs from which it has +sprung, and of whose present identity it is unquestionably a part- +phase; it also seems irresistibly forced upon us to believe that the +intensity of this memory is the secret of its easy action. + +It has, I believe, been often remarked, that a hen is only an egg's +way of making another egg. Every creature must be allowed to "run" +its own development in its own way; the egg's way may seem a very +roundabout manner of doing things; but it IS its way, and it is one +of which man, upon the whole, has no great reason to complain. Why +the fowl should be considered more alive than the egg, and why it +should be said that the hen lays the egg, and not that the egg lays +the hen, these are questions which lie beyond the power of +philosophic explanation, but are perhaps most answerable by +considering the conceit of man, and his habit, persisted in during +many ages, of ignoring all that does not remind him of himself, or +hurt him, or profit him; also by considering the use of language, +which, if it is to serve at all, can only do so by ignoring a vast +number of facts which gradually drop out of mind from being out of +sight. But, perhaps, after all, the real reason is, that the egg +does not cackle when it has laid the hen, and that it works towards +the hen with gradual and noiseless steps, which we can watch if we be +so minded; whereas, we can less easily watch the steps which lead +from the hen to the egg, but hear a noise, and see an egg where there +was no egg. Therefore, we say, the development of the fowl from the +egg bears no sort of resemblance to that of the egg from the fowl, +whereas, in truth, a hen, or any other living creature, is only the +primordial cell's way of going back upon itself. + +But to return. We see an egg, A, which evidently knows its own +meaning perfectly well, and we know that a twelvemonth ago there were +two other such eggs, B and C, which have now disappeared, but from +which we know A to have been so continuously developed as to be part +of the present form of their identity. A's meaning is seen to be +precisely the same as B and C's meaning; A's personal appearance is, +to all intents and purposes, B and C's personal appearance; it would +seem, then, unreasonable to deny that A is only B and C come back, +with such modification as they may have incurred since their +disappearance; and that, in spite of any such modification, they +remember in A perfectly well what they did as B and C. + +We have considered the question of personal identity so as to see +whether, without abuse of terms, we can claim it as existing between +any two generations of living agents (and if between two, then +between any number up to infinity), and we found that we were not +only at liberty to claim this, but that we are compelled irresistibly +to do so, unless, that is to say, we would think very differently +concerning personal identity than we do at present. We found it +impossible to hold the ordinary common sense opinions concerning +personal identity, without admitting that we are personally identical +with all our forefathers, who have successfully assimilated outside +matter to themselves, and by assimilation imbued it with all their +own memories; we being nothing else than this outside matter so +assimilated and imbued with such memories. This, at least, will, I +believe, balance the account correctly. + +A few remarks upon the assimilation of outside matter by living +organisms may perhaps be hazarded here. + +As long as any living organism can maintain itself in a position to +which it has been accustomed, more or less nearly, both in its own +life and in those of its forefathers, nothing can harm it. As long +as the organism is familiar with the position, and remembers its +antecedents, nothing can assimilate it. It must be first dislodged +from the position with which it is familiar, as being able to +remember it, before mischief can happen to it. Nothing can +assimilate living organism. + +On the other hand, the moment living organism loses sight of its own +position and antecedents, it is liable to immediate assimilation, and +to be thus familiarised with the position and antecedents of some +other creature. If any living organism be kept for but a very short +time in a position wholly different from what it has been accustomed +to in its own life, and in the lives of its forefathers, it commonly +loses its memories completely, once and for ever; but it must +immediately acquire new ones, for nothing can know nothing; +everything must remember either its own antecedents, or some one +else's. And as nothing can know nothing, so nothing can believe in +nothing. + +A grain of corn, for example, has never been accustomed to find +itself in a hen's stomach--neither it nor its forefathers. For a +grain so placed leaves no offspring, and hence cannot transmit its +experience. The first minute or so after being eaten, it may think +it has just been sown, and begin to prepare for sprouting, but in a +few seconds, it discovers the environment to be unfamiliar; it +therefore gets frightened, loses its head, is carried into the +gizzard, and comminuted among the gizzard stones. The hen succeeded +in putting it into a position with which it was unfamiliar; from this +it was an easy stage to assimilating it entirely. Once assimilated, +the grain ceases to remember any more as a grain, but becomes +initiated into all that happens to, and has happened to, fowls for +countless ages. Then it will attack all other grains whenever it +sees them; there is no such persecutor of grain, as another grain +when it has once fairly identified itself with a hen. + +We may remark in passing, that if anything be once familiarised with +anything, it is content. The only things we really care for in life +are familiar things; let us have the means of doing what we have been +accustomed to do, of dressing as we have been accustomed to dress, of +eating as we have been accustomed to eat, and let us have no less +liberty than we are accustomed to have, and last, but not least, let +us not be disturbed in thinking as we have been accustomed to think, +and the vast majority of mankind will be very fairly contented--all +plants and animals will certainly be so. This would seem to suggest +a possible doctrine of a future state; concerning which we may +reflect that though, after we die, we cease to be familiar with +ourselves, we shall nevertheless become immediately familiar with +many other histories compared with which our present life must then +seem intolerably uninteresting. + +This is the reason why a very heavy and sudden shock to the nervous +system does not pain, but kills outright at once; while one with +which the system can, at any rate, try to familiarise itself is +exceedingly painful. We cannot bear unfamiliarity. The part that is +treated in a manner with which it is not familiar cries immediately +to the brain--its central government--for help, and makes itself +generally as troublesome as it can, till it is in some way comforted. +Indeed, the law against cruelty to animals is but an example of the +hatred we feel on seeing even dumb creatures put into positions with +which they are not familiar. We hate this so much for ourselves, +that we will not tolerate it for other creatures if we can possibly +avoid it. So again, it is said, that when Andromeda and Perseus had +travelled but a little way from the rock where Andromeda had so long +been chained, she began upbraiding him with the loss of her dragon, +who, on the whole, she said, had been very good to her. The only +things we really hate are unfamiliar things, and though nature would +not be nature if she did not cross our love of the familiar with a +love also of the unfamiliar, yet there can be no doubt which of the +two principles is master. + +Let us return, however, to the grain of corn. If the grain had had +presence of mind to avoid being carried into the gizzard stones, as +many seeds do which are carried for hundreds of miles in birds' +stomachs, and if it had persuaded itself that the novelty of the +position was not greater than it could very well manage to put up +with--if, in fact, it had not known when it was beaten--it might have +stuck in the hen's stomach and begun to grow; in this case it would +have assimilated a good part of the hen before many days were over; +for hens are not familiar with grains that grow in their stomachs, +and unless the one in question was as strongminded for a hen, as the +grain that could avoid being assimilated would be for a grain, the +hen would soon cease to take an interest in her antecedents. It is +to be doubted, however, whether a grain has ever been grown which has +had strength of mind enough to avoid being set off its balance on +finding itself inside a hen's gizzard. For living organism is the +creature of habit and routine, and the inside of a gizzard is not in +the grain's programme. + +Suppose, then, that the grain, instead of being carried into the +gizzard, had stuck in the hen's throat and choked her. It would now +find itself in a position very like what it had often been in before. +That is to say, it would be in a damp, dark, quiet place, not too far +from light, and with decaying matter around it. It would therefore +know perfectly well what to do, and would begin to grow until +disturbed, and again put into a position with which it might, very +possibly, be unfamiliar. + +The great question between vast masses of living organism is simply +this: "Am I to put you into a position with which your forefathers +have been unfamiliar, or are you to put me into one about which my +own have been in like manner ignorant?" Man is only the dominant +animal on the earth, because he can, as a general rule, settle this +question in his own favour. + +The only manner in which an organism, which has once forgotten its +antecedents, can ever recover its memory, is by being assimilated by +a creature of its own kind; one, moreover, which knows its business, +or is not in such a false position as to be compelled to be aware of +being so. It was, doubtless, owing to the recognition of this fact, +that some Eastern nations, as we are told by Herodotus, were in the +habit of eating their deceased parents--for matter which has once +been assimilated by any identity or personality, becomes for all +practical purposes part of the assimilating personality. + +The bearing of the above will become obvious when we return, as we +will now do, to the question of personal identity. The only +difficulty would seem to lie in our unfamiliarity with the real +meanings which we attach to words in daily use. Hence, while +recognising continuity without sudden break as the underlying +principle of identity, we forget that this involves personal identity +between all the beings who are in one chain of descent, the numbers +of such beings, whether in succession, or contemporaneous, going for +nothing at all. Thus we take two eggs, one male and one female, and +hatch them; after some months the pair of fowls so hatched, having +succeeded in putting a vast quantity of grain and worms into false +positions, become full-grown, breed, and produce a dozen new eggs. + +Two live fowls and a dozen eggs are the present phase of the +personality of the two original eggs. They are also part of the +present phase of the personality of all the worms and grain which the +fowls have assimilated from their leaving the eggshell; but the +personalities of these last do not count; they have lost their grain +and worm memories, and are instinct with the memorises of the whole +ancestry of the creature which has assimilated them. + +We cannot, perhaps, strictly say that the two fowls and the dozen new +eggs actually ARE the two original eggs; these two eggs are no longer +in existence, and we see the two birds themselves which were hatched +from them. A bird cannot be called an egg without an abuse of terms. +Nevertheless, it is doubtful how far we should not say this, for it +is only with a mental reserve--and with no greater mental reserve-- +that we predicate absolute identity concerning any living being for +two consecutive moments; and it is certainly as free from quibble to +say to two fowls and a dozen eggs, "you are the two eggs I had on my +kitchen shelf twelve months ago," as to say to a man, "you are the +child whom I remember thirty years ago in your mother's arms." In +either case we mean, "you have been continually putting other +organisms into a false position, and then assimilating them, ever +since I last saw you, while nothing has yet occurred to put YOU into +such a false position as to have made you lose the memory of your +antecedents." + +It would seem perfectly fair, therefore, to say to any egg of the +twelve, or to the two fowls and the whole twelve eggs together, "you +were a couple of eggs twelve months ago; twelve months before that +you were four eggs;" and so on, ad infinitum, the number neither of +the ancestors nor of the descendants counting for anything, and +continuity being the sole thing looked to. From daily observation we +are familiar with the fact that identity does both unite with other +identities, so that a single new identity is the result, and does +also split itself up into several identities, so that the one becomes +many. This is plain from the manner in which the male and female +sexual elements unite to form a single ovum, which we observe to be +instinct with the memories of both the individuals from which it has +been derived; and there is the additional consideration, that each of +the elements whose fusion goes to make up the impregnate ovum, is +held by some to be itself composed of a fused mass of germs, which +stand very much in the same relation to the spermatozoon and ovum, as +the living cellular units of which we are composed do to ourselves-- +that is to say, are living independent organisms, which probably have +no conception of the existence of the spermatozoon nor of the ovum, +more than the spermatozoon or ovum have of theirs. + +This, at least, is what I gather from Mr. Darwin's provisional theory +of Pangenesis; and, again, from one of the concluding sentences in +his "Effects of Cross and Self Fertilisation," where, asking the +question why two sexes have been developed, he replies that the +answer seems to lie "in the great good which is derived from the +fusion of two somewhat differentiated individuals. With the +exception," he continues, "or the lowest organisms this is possible +only by means of the sexual elements--THESE CONSISTING OF CELLS +SEPARATED FROM THE BODY" (i.e., separated from the bodies of each +parent) "CONTAINING THE GERMS OF EVERY PART" (i.e., consisting of the +seeds or germs from which each individual cell of the coming organism +will be developed--these seeds or germs having been shed by each +individual cell of the parent forms), "AND CAPABLE OF BEING FUSED +COMPLETELY TOGETHER" (i.e., so at least I gather, capable of being +fused completely, in the same way as the cells of our own bodies are +fused, and thus, of forming a single living personality in the case +of both the male and female element; which elements are themselves +capable of a second fusion so as to form the impregnate ovum). This +single impregnate ovum, then, is a single identity that has taken the +place of and come up in the room of two distinct personalities, each +of whose characteristics it, to a certain extent, partakes, and which +consist, each one of them, of the fused germs of a vast mass of other +personalities. + +As regards the dispersion of one identity into many, this also is a +matter of daily observation in the case of all female creatures that +are with egg or young; the identity of the young with the female +parent is in many respects so complete, as to need no enforcing, in +spite of the entrance into the offspring of all the elements derived +from the male parent, and of the gradual separation of the two +identities, which becomes more and more complete, till in time it is +hard to conceive that they can ever have been united. + +Numbers, therefore, go for nothing; and, as far as identity or +continued personality goes, it is as fair to say to the two fowls, +above referred to, "you were four fowls twelve months ago," as it is +to say to a dozen eggs, "you were two eggs twelve months ago." But +here a difficulty meets us; for if we say, "you were two eggs twelve +months ago," it follows that we mean, "you are now those two eggs;" +just as when we say to a person, "you were such and such a boy twenty +years ago," we mean, "you are now that boy, or all that represents +him;" it would seem, then, that in like manner we should say to the +two fowls, "you ARE the four fowls who between them laid the two eggs +from which you sprung." But it may be that all these four fowls are +still to be seen running about; we should be therefore saying, "you +two fowls are really not yourselves only, but you are also the other +four fowls into the bargain;" and this might be philosophically true, +and might, perhaps, be considered so, but for the convenience of the +law courts. + +The difficulty would seem to arise from the fact that the eggs must +disappear before fowls can be hatched from them, whereas, the hens so +hatched may outlive the development of other hens, from the eggs +which they in due course have laid. The original eggs being out of +sight are out of mind, and it is without an effort that we acquiesce +in the assertion,--that the dozen new eggs actually are the two +original ones. But the original four fowls being still in sight, +cannot be ignored, we only, therefore, see the new ones as growths +from the original ones. + +The strict rendering of the facts should be, "you are part of the +present phase of the identity of such and such a past identity," +i.e., either of the two eggs or the four fowls, as the case may be; +this will put the eggs and the fowls, as it were, into the same box, +and will meet both the philosophical and legal requirement of the +case, only it is a little long. + +So far then, as regards actual identity of personality; which, we +find, will allow us to say, that eggs are part of the present phase +of a certain past identity, whether of other eggs, or of fowls, or +chickens, and in like, manner that chickens are part of the present +phase of certain other chickens, or eggs, or fowls; in fact, that +anything is part of the present phase of any past identity in the +line of its ancestry. But as regards the actual memory of such +identity (unconscious memory, but still clearly memory), we observe +that the egg, as long as it is an egg, appears to have a very +distinct recollection of having been an egg before, and the fowl of +having been a fowl before, but that neither egg nor fowl appear to +have any recollection of any other stage of their past existences, +than the one corresponding to that in which they are themselves at +the moment existing. + +So we, at six or seven years old, have no recollection of ever having +been infants, much less of having been embryos; but the manner in +which we shed our teeth and make new ones, and the way in which we +grow generally, making ourselves for the most part exceedingly like +what we made ourselves, in the person of some one of our nearer +ancestors, and not unfrequently repeating the very blunders which we +made upon that occasion when we come to a corresponding age, proves +most incontestably that we remember our past existences, though too +utterly to be capable of introspection in the matter. So, when we +grow wisdom teeth, at the age it may be of one or two and twenty, it +is plain we remember our past existences at that age, however +completely we may have forgotten the earlier stages of our present +existence. It may be said that it is the jaw which remembers, and +not we, but it seems hard to deny the jaw a right of citizenship in +our personality; and in the case of a growing boy, every part of him +seems to remember equally well, and if every part of him combined +does not make HIM, there would seem but little use in continuing the +argument further. + +In like manner, a caterpillar appears not to remember having been an +egg, either in its present or any past existence. It has no concern +with eggs as soon as it is hatched, but it clearly remembers not only +having been a caterpillar before, but also having turned itself into +a chrysalis before; for when the time comes for it to do this, it is +at no loss, as it would certainly be if the position was unfamiliar, +but it immediately begins doing what it did when last it was in a +like case, repeating the process as nearly as the environment will +allow, taking every step in the same order as last time, and doing +its work with that ease and perfection which we observe to belong to +the force of habit, and to be utterly incompatible with any other +supposition than that of long long practice. + +Once having become a chrysalis, its memory of its caterpillarhood +appears to leave it for good and all, not to return until it again +assumes the shape of a caterpillar by process of descent. Its memory +now overleaps all past modifications, and reverts to the time when it +was last what it is now, and though it is probable that both +caterpillar and chrysalis, on any given day of their existence in +either of these forms, have some sort of dim power of recollecting +what happened to them yesterday, or the day before; yet it is plain +their main memory goes back to the corresponding day of their last +existence in their present form, the chrysalis remembering what +happened to it on such a day far more practically, though less +consciously, than what happened to it yesterday; and naturally, for +yesterday is but once, and its past existences have been legion. +Hence, it prepares its wings in due time, doing each day what it did +on the corresponding day of its last chrysalishood and at length +becoming a moth; whereon its circumstances are so changed that it +loses all sense of its identity as a chrysalis (as completely as we, +for precisely the same reason, lose all sense of our identity with +ourselves as infants), and remembers nothing but its past existences +as a moth. + +We observe this to hold throughout the animal and vegetable kingdoms. +In any one phase of the existence of the lower animals, we observe +that they remember the corresponding stage, and a little on either +side of it, of all their past existences for a very great length of +time. In their present existence they remember a little behind the +present moment (remembering more and more the higher they advance in +the scale of life), and being able to foresee about as much as they +could foresee in their past existences, sometimes more and sometimes +less. As with memory, so with prescience. The higher they advance +in the scale of life the more prescient they are. It must, of +course, be remembered, and will later on be more fully dwelt upon, +that no offspring can remember anything which happens to its parents +after it and its parents have parted company; and this is why there +is, perhaps, more irregularity as regards our wisdom-teeth than about +anything else that we grow; inasmuch as it must not uncommonly have +happened in a long series of generations, that the offspring has been +born before the parents have grown their wisdom-teeth, and thus there +will be faults in the memory. + +Is there, then, anything in memory, as we observe it in ourselves and +others, under circumstances in which we shall agree in calling it +memory pure and simple without ambiguity of terms--is there anything +in memory which bars us from supposing it capable of overleaping a +long time of abeyance, and thus of enabling each impregnate ovum, or +each grain, to remember what it did when last in a like condition, +and to go on remembering the corresponding period of its prior +developments throughout the whole period of its present growth, +though such memory has entirely failed as regards the interim between +any two corresponding periods, and is not consciously recognised by +the individual as being exercised at all? + + + +CHAPTER IX--ON THE ABEYANCE OF MEMORY + + + +Let us assume, for the moment, that the action of each impregnate +germ is due to memory, which, as it were, pulsates anew in each +succeeding generation, so that immediately on impregnation, the +germ's memory reverts to the last occasion on which it was in a like +condition, and recognising the position, is at no loss what to do. +It is plain that in all cases where there are two parents, that is to +say, in the greater number of cases, whether in the vegetable or +animal kingdoms, there must be two such last occasions, each of which +will have an equal claim upon the attention of the new germ. Its +memory would therefore revert to both, and though it would probably +adhere more closely to the course which it took either as its father +or its mother, and thus come out eventually male or female, yet it +would be not a little influenced by the less potent memory. + +And not only this, but each of the germs to which the memory of the +new germ reverts, is itself imbued with the memories of its own +parent germs, and these again with the memories of preceding +generations, and so on ad infinitum; so that, ex hypothesi, the germ +must become instinct with all these memories, epitomised as after +long time, and unperceived though they may well be, not to say +obliterated in part or entirely so far as many features are +concerned, by more recent impressions. In this case, we must +conceive of the impregnate germ as of a creature which has to repeat +a performance already repeated before on countless different +occasions, but with no more variation on the more recent ones than is +inevitable in the repetition of any performance by an intelligent +being. + +Now if we take the most parallel case to this which we can find, and +consider what we should ourselves do under such circumstances, that +is to say, if we consider what course is actually taken by beings who +are influenced by what we all call memory, when they repeat an +already often-repeated performance, and if we find a very strong +analogy between the course so taken by ourselves, and that which from +whatever cause we observe to be taken by a living germ, we shall +surely be much inclined to think that there must be a similarity in +the causes of action in each case; and hence, to conclude, that the +action of the germ is due to memory. + +It will, therefore, be necessary to consider the general tendency of +our minds in regard to impressions made upon us, and the memory of +such impressions. + +Deep impressions upon the memory are made in two ways, differing +rather in degree than kind, but with two somewhat widely different +results. They are made:- + +I. By unfamiliar objects, or combinations, which come at +comparatively long intervals, and produce their effect, as it were, +by one hard blow. The effect of these will vary with the +unfamiliarity of the impressions themselves, and the manner in which +they seem likely to lead to a further development of the unfamiliar, +i.e., with the question, whether they seem likely to compel us to +change our habits, either for better or worse. + +Thus, if an object or incident be very unfamiliar, as, we will say, a +whale or an iceberg to one travelling to America for the first time, +it will make a deep impression, though but little affecting our +interests; but if we struck against the iceberg and were shipwrecked, +or nearly so, it would produce a much deeper impression, we should +think much more about icebergs, and remember much more about them, +than if we had merely seen one. So, also, if we were able to catch +the whale and sell its oil, we should have a deep impression made +upon us. In either case we see that the amount of unfamiliarity, +either present or prospective, is the main determinant of the depth +of the impression. + +As with consciousness and volition, so with sudden unfamiliarity. It +impresses us more and more deeply the more unfamiliar it is, until it +reaches such a point of impressiveness as to make no further +impression at all; on which we then and there die. For death only +kills through unfamiliarity--that is to say, because the new +position, whatever it is, is so wide a cross as compared with the old +one, that we cannot fuse the two so as to understand the combination; +hence we lose all recognition of, and faith in, ourselves and our +surroundings. + +But however much we imagine we remember concerning the details of any +remarkable impression which has been made us by a single blow, we do +not remember as much or nearly as much as we think we do. The +subordinate details soon drop out of mind. Those who think they +remember even such a momentous matter as the battle of Waterloo +recall now probably but half-a-dozen episodes, a gleam here, and a +gleam there, so that what they call remembering the battle of +Waterloo, is, in fact, little more than a kind of dreaming--so soon +vanishes the memory of any unrepeated occurrence. + +As for smaller impressions, there is very little of what happens to +us in each week that will be in our memories a week hence; a man of +eighty remembers few of the unrepeated incidents of his life beyond +those of the last fortnight, a little here, and a little there, +forming a matter of perhaps six weeks or two months in all, if +everything that he can call to mind were acted over again with no +greater fulness than he can remember it. As for incidents that have +been often repeated, his mind strikes a balance of its past +reminiscences, remembering the two or three last performances, and a +general method of procedure, but nothing more. + +If, then, the recollection of all that is not very novel, or very +often repeated, so soon fades from our own minds, during what we +consider as our single lifetime, what wonder that the details of our +daily experience should find no place in that brief epitome of them +which is all we can give in so small a volume as offspring? + +If we cannot ourselves remember the hundred-thousandth part of what +happened to us during our own childhood, how can we expect our +offspring to remember more than what, through frequent repetition, +they can now remember as a residuum, or general impression. On the +other hand, whatever we remember in consequence of but a single +impression, we remember consciously. We can at will recall details, +and are perfectly well aware, when we do so, that we are +recollecting. A man who has never seen death looks for the first +time upon the dead face of some near relative or friend. He gazes +for a few short minutes, but the impression thus made does not soon +pass out of his mind. He remembers the room, the hour of the day or +night, and if by day, what sort of a day. He remembers in what part +of the room, and how disposed the body of the deceased was lying. +Twenty years afterwards he can, at will, recall all these matters to +his mind, and picture to himself the scene as he originally witnessed +it. + +The reason is plain; the impression was very unfamiliar, and affected +the beholder, both as regards the loss of one who was dear to him, +and as reminding him with more than common force that he will one day +die himself. Moreover the impression was a simple one, not involving +much subordinate detail; we have in this case, therefore, an example +of the most lasting kind of impression that can be made by a single +unrepeated event. But if we examine ourselves closely, we shall find +that after a lapse of years we do not remember as much as we think we +do, even in such a case as this; and that beyond the incidents above +mentioned, and the expression upon the face of the dead person, we +remember little of what we can so consciously and vividly recall. + +II. Deep impressions are also made by the repetition, more or less +often, of a feeble impression which, if unrepeated, would have soon +passed out of our minds. We observe, therefore, that we remember +best what we have done least often--any unfamiliar deviation, that is +to say, from our ordinary method of procedure--and what we have done +most often, with which, therefore, we are most familiar; our memory +being mainly affected by the force of novelty and the force of +routine--the most unfamiliar, and the most familiar, incidents or +objects. + +But we remember impressions which have been made upon us by force of +routine, in a very different way to that in which we remember a +single deep impression. As regards this second class, which +comprises far the most numerous and important of the impressions with +which our memory is stored, it is often only by the fact of our +performance itself that we are able to recognise or show to others +that we remember at all. We often do not remember how, or when, or +where we acquired our knowledge. All we remember is, that we did +learn, and that at one time and another we have done this or that +very often. + +As regards this second class of impressions we may observe:- + +1. That as a general rule we remember only the individual features +of the last few repetitions of the act--if, indeed, we remember this +much. The influence of preceding ones is to be found only in the +general average of the procedure, which is modified by them, but +unconsciously to ourselves. Take, for example, some celebrated +singer, or pianoforte player, who has sung the same air, or performed +the same sonata several hundreds or, it may be, thousands of times: +of the details of individual performances, he can probably call to +mind none but those of the last few days, yet there can be no +question that his present performance is affected by, and modified +by, all his previous ones; the care he has bestowed on these being +the secret of his present proficiency. + +In each performance (the performer being supposed in the same state +of mental and bodily health), the tendency will be to repeat the +immediately preceding performances more nearly than remoter ones. It +is the common tendency of living beings to go on doing what they have +been doing most recently. The last habit is the strongest. Hence, +if he took great pains last time, he will play better now, and will +take a like degree of pains, and play better still next time, and so +go on improving while life and vigour last. If, on the other hand, +he took less pains last time, he will play worse now, and be inclined +to take little pains next time, and so gradually deteriorate. This, +at least, is the common everyday experience of mankind. + +So with painters, actors, and professional men of every description; +after a little while the memory of many past performances strikes a +sort of fused balance in the mind, which results in a general method +of procedure with but little conscious memory of even the latest +performances, and with none whatever of by far the greater number of +the remoter ones. + +Still, it is noteworthy, that the memory of some even of these will +occasionally assert itself, so far as we can see, arbitrarily, the +reason why this or that occasion should still haunt us, when others +like them are forgotten, depending on some cause too subtle for our +powers of observation. + +Even with such a simple matter as our daily dressing and undressing, +we may remember some few details of our yesterday's toilet, but we +retain nothing but a general and fused recollection of the many +thousand earlier occasions on which we have dressed, or gone to bed. +Men invariably put the same leg first into their trousers--this is +the survival of memory in a residuum; but they cannot, till they +actually put on a pair of trousers, remember which leg they DO put in +first; this is the rapid fading away of any small individual +impression. + +The seasons may serve as another illustration; we have a general +recollection of the kind of weather which is seasonable for any month +in a year; what flowers are due about what time, and whether the +spring is on the whole backward or early; but we cannot remember the +weather on any particular day a year ago, unless some unusual +incident has impressed it upon our memory. We can remember, as a +general rule, what kind of season it was, upon the whole, a year ago, +or perhaps, even two years; but more than this, we rarely remember, +except in such cases as the winter of 1854-1855, or the summer of +1868; the rest is all merged. + +We observe, then, that as regards small and often repeated +impressions, our tendency is to remember best, and in most detail, +what we have been doing most recently, and what in general has +occurred most recently, but that the earlier impressions though +forgotten individually, are nevertheless, not wholly lost. + +2. When we have done anything very often, and have got into the +habit of doing it, we generally take the various steps in the same +order; in many cases this seems to be a sine qua non for our +repetition of the action at all. Thus, there is probably no living +man who could repeat the words of "God save the Queen" backwards, +without much hesitation and many mistakes; so the musician and the +singer must perform their pieces in the order of the notes as +written, or at any rate as they ordinarily perform them; they cannot +transpose bars or read them backwards, without being put out, nor +would the audience recognise the impressions they have been +accustomed to, unless these impressions are made in the accustomed +order. + +3. If, when we have once got well into the habit of doing anything +in a certain way, some one shows us some other way of doing it, or +some way which would in part modify our procedure, or if in our +endeavours to improve, we have hit upon some new idea which seems +likely to help us, and thus we vary our course, on the next occasion +we remember this idea by reason of its novelty, but if we try to +repeat it, we often find the residuum of our old memories pulling us +so strongly into our old groove, that we have the greatest difficulty +in repeating our performance in the new manner; there is a clashing +of memories, a conflict, which if the idea is very new, and involves, +so to speak, too sudden a cross--too wide a departure from our +ordinary course--will sometimes render the performance monstrous, or +baffle us altogether, the new memory failing to fuse harmoniously +with the old. If the idea is not too widely different from our older +ones, we can cross them with it, but with more or less difficulty, as +a general rule in proportion to the amount of variation. The whole +process of understanding a thing consists in this, and, so far as I +can see at present, in this only. + +Sometimes we repeat the new performance for a few times, in a way +which shows that the fusion of memories is still in force; and then +insensibly revert to the old, in which case the memory of the new +soon fades away, leaving a residuum too feeble to contend against +that of our many earlier memories of the same kind. If, however, the +new way is obviously to our advantage, we make an effort to retain +it, and gradually getting into the habit of using it, come to +remember it by force of routine, as we originally remembered it by +force of novelty. Even as regards our own discoveries, we do not +always succeed in remembering our most improved and most striking +performances, so as to be able to repeat them at will immediately: +in any such performance we may have gone some way beyond our ordinary +powers, owing to some unconscious action of the mind. The supreme +effort has exhausted us, and we must rest on our oars a little, +before we make further progress; or we may even fall back a little, +before we make another leap in advance. + +In this respect, almost every conceivable degree of variation is +observable, according to differences of character and circumstances. +Sometimes the new impression has to be made upon us many times from +without, before the earlier strain of action is eliminated; in this +case, there will long remain a tendency to revert to the earlier +habit. Sometimes, after the impression has been once made, we repeat +our old way two or three times, and then revert to the new, which +gradually ousts the old; sometimes, on the other hand, a single +impression, though involving considerable departure from our routine, +makes its mark so deeply that we adopt the new at once, though not +without difficulty, and repeat it in our next performance, and +henceforward in all others; but those who vary their performance thus +readily will show a tendency to vary subsequent performances +according as they receive fresh ideas from others, or reason them out +independently. They are men of genius. + +This holds good concerning all actions which we do habitually, +whether they involve laborious acquirement or not. Thus, if we have +varied our usual dinner in some way that leaves a favourable +impression upon our minds, so that our dinner may, in the language of +the horticulturist, be said to have "sported," our tendency will be +to revert to this particular dinner either next day, or as soon as +circumstances will allow, but it is possible that several hundred +dinners may elapse before we can do so successfully, or before our +memory reverts to this particular dinner. + +4. As regards our habitual actions, however unconsciously we +remember them, we, nevertheless, remember them with far greater +intensity than many individual impressions or actions, it may be of +much greater moment, that have happened to us more recently. Thus, +many a man who has familiarised himself, for example, with the odes +of Horace, so as to have had them at his fingers' ends as the result +of many repetitions, will be able years hence to repeat a given ode, +though unable to remember any circumstance in connection with his +having learnt it, and no less unable to remember when he repeated it +last. A host of individual circumstances, many of them not +unimportant, will have dropped out of his mind, along with a mass of +literature read but once or twice, and not impressed upon the memory +by several repetitions; but he returns to the well-known ode with so +little effort, that he would not know that he was remembering unless +his reason told him so. The ode seems more like something born with +him. + +We observe, also, that people who have become imbecile, or whose +memory is much impaired, yet frequently retain their power of +recalling impression which have been long ago repeatedly made upon +them. + +In such cases, people are sometimes seen to forget what happened last +week, yesterday, or an hour ago, without even the smallest power of +recovering their recollection; but the oft repeated earlier +impression remains, though there may be no memory whatever of how it +came to be impressed so deeply. The phenomena of memory, therefore, +are exactly like those of consciousness and volition, in so far as +that the consciousness of recollection vanishes, when the power of +recollection has become intense. When we are aware that we are +recollecting, and are trying, perhaps hard, to recollect, it is a +sign that we do not recollect utterly. When we remember utterly and +intensely, there is no conscious effort of recollection; our +recollection can only be recognised by ourselves and others, through +our performance itself, which testifies to the existence of a memory, +that we could not otherwise follow or detect. + +5. When circumstances have led us to change our habits of life--as +when the university has succeeded school, or professional life the +university--we get into many fresh ways, and leave many old ones. +But on revisiting the old scene, unless the lapse of time has been +inordinately great, we experience a desire to revert to old habits. +We say that old associations crowd upon us. Let a Trinity man, after +thirty years absence from Cambridge, pace for five minutes in the +cloister of Neville's Court, and listen to the echo of his footfall, +as it licks up against the end of the cloister, or let an old Johnian +stand wherever he likes in the third Court of St. John's, in either +case he will find the thirty years drop out of his life, as if they +were half-an-hour; his life will have rolled back upon itself, to the +date when he was an undergraduate, and his instinct will be to do +almost mechanically, whatever it would have come most natural to him +to do, when he was last there at the same season of the year, and the +same hour of the day; and it is plain this is due to similarity of +environment, for if the place he revisits be much changed, there will +be little or no association. + +So those who are accustomed at intervals to cross the Atlantic, get +into certain habits on board ship, different to their usual ones. It +may be that at home they never play whist; on board ship they do +nothing else all the evening. At home they never touch spirits; on +the voyage they regularly take a glass of something before they go to +bed. They do not smoke at home; here they are smoking all day. Once +the voyage is at an end, they return without an effort to their usual +habits, and do not feel any wish for cards, spirits, or tobacco. +They do not remember yesterday, when they did want all these things; +at least, not with such force as to be influenced by it in their +desires and actions; their true memory--the memory which makes them +want, and do, reverts to the last occasion on which they were in +circumstances like their present; they therefore want now what they +wanted then, and nothing more; but when the time comes for them to go +on shipboard again, no sooner do they smell the smell of the ship, +than their real memory reverts to the times when they were last at +sea, and striking a balance of their recollections, they smoke, play +cards, and drink whisky and water. + +We observe it then as a matter of the commonest daily occurrence +within our own experience, that memory does fade completely away, and +recur with the recurrence of surroundings like those which made any +particular impression in the first instance. We observe that there +is hardly any limit to the completeness and the length of time during +which our memory may remain in abeyance. A smell may remind an old +man of eighty of some incident of his childhood, forgotten for nearly +as many years as he has lived. In other words, we observe that when +an impression has been repeatedly made in a certain sequence on any +living organism--that impression not having been prejudicial to the +creature itself--the organism will have a tendency, on reassuming the +shape and conditions in which it was when the impression was last +made, to remember the impression, and therefore to do again now what +it did then; all intermediate memories dropping clean out of mind, so +far as they have any effect upon action. + +6. Finally, we should note the suddenness and apparent caprice with +which memory will assert itself at odd times; we have been saying or +doing this or that, when suddenly a memory of something which +happened to us, perhaps in infancy, comes into our head; nor can we +in the least connect this recollection with the subject of which we +have just been thinking, though doubtless there has been a +connection, too rapid and subtle for our apprehension. + +The foregoing phenomena of memory, so far as we can judge, would +appear to be present themselves throughout the animal and vegetable +kingdoms. This will be readily admitted as regards animals; as +regards plants it may be inferred from the fact that they generally +go on doing what they have been doing most lately, though accustomed +to make certain changes at certain points in their existence. When +the time comes for these changes, they appear to know it, and either +bud forth into leaf or shed their leaves, as the case may be. If we +keep a bulb in a paper bag it seems to remember having been a bulb +before, until the time comes for it to put forth roots and grow. +Then, if we supply it with earth and moisture, it seems to know where +it is, and to go on doing now whatever it did when it was last +planted; but if we keep it in the bag too long, it knows that it +ought, according to its last experience, to be treated differently, +and shows plain symptoms of uneasiness; it is distracted by the bag, +which makes it remember its bulbhood, and also by the want of earth +and water, without which associations its memory of its previous +growth cannot be duly kindled. Its roots, therefore, which are most +accustomed to earth and water, do not grow; but its leaves, which do +not require contact with these things to jog their memory, make a +more decided effort at development--a fact which would seem to go +strongly in favour of the functional independence of the parts of all +but the very simplest living organisms, if, indeed, more evidence +were wanted in support of this. + + + +CHAPTER X--WHAT WE SHOULD EXPECT TO FIND IF DIFFERENTIATIONS OF +STRUCTURE AND INSTINCT ARE MAINLY DUE TO MEMORY + + + +To repeat briefly;--we remember best our last few performances of any +given kind, and our present performance is most likely to resemble +one or other of these; we only remember our earlier performances by +way of residuum; nevertheless, at times, some older feature is liable +to reappear. + +We take our steps in the same order on each successive occasion, and +are for the most part incapable of changing that order. + +The introduction of slightly new elements into our manner is attended +with benefit; the new can be fused with the old, and the monotony of +our action is relieved. But if the new element is too foreign, we +cannot fuse the old and new--nature seeming equally to hate too wide +a deviation from our ordinary practice, and no deviation at all. Or, +in plain English--if any one gives us a new idea which is not too far +ahead of us, such an idea is often of great service to us, and may +give new life to our work--in fact, we soon go back, unless we more +or less frequently come into contact with new ideas, and are capable +of understanding and making use of them; if; on the other hand, they +are too new, and too little led up to, so that we find them too +strange and hard to be able to understand them and adopt them, then +they put us out, with every degree of completeness--from simply +causing us to fail in this or that particular part, to rendering us +incapable of even trying to do our work at all, from pure despair of +succeeding. + +It requires many repetitions to fix an impression firmly; but when it +is fixed, we cease to have much recollection of the manner in which +it came to be so, or of any single and particular recurrence. + +Our memory is mainly called into action by force of association and +similarity in the surroundings. We want to go on doing what we did +when we were last as we are now, and we forget what we did in the +meantime. + +These rules, however, are liable to many exceptions; as for example, +that a single and apparently not very extraordinary occurrence may +sometimes produce a lasting impression, and be liable to return with +sudden force at some distant time, and then to go on returning to us +at intervals. Some incidents, in fact, we know not how nor why, +dwell with us much longer than others which were apparently quite as +noteworthy or perhaps more so. + +Now I submit that if the above observations are just, and if, also, +the offspring, after having become a new and separate personality, +yet retains so much of the old identity of which it was once +indisputably part, that it remembers what it did when it was part of +that identity as soon as it finds itself in circumstances which are +calculated to refresh its memory owing to their similarity to certain +antecedent ones, then we should expect to find:- + +I. That offspring should, as a general rule, resemble its own most +immediate progenitors; that is to say, that it should remember best +what it has been doing most recently. The memory being a fusion of +its recollections of what it did, both when it was its father and +also when it was its mother, the offspring should have a very common +tendency to resemble both parents, the one in some respects, and the +other in others; but it might also hardly less commonly show a more +marked recollection of the one history than of the other, thus more +distinctly resembling one parent than the other. And this is what we +observe to be the case. Not only so far as that the offspring is +almost invariably either male or female, and generally resembles +rather the one parent than the other, but also that in spite of such +preponderance of one set of recollections, the sexual characters and +instincts of the OPPOSITE sex appear, whether in male or female, +though undeveloped and incapable of development except by abnormal +treatment, such as has occasionally caused milk to be developed in +the mammary glands of males; or by mutilation, or failure of sexual +instinct through age, upon which, male characteristics frequently +appear in the females of any species. + +Brothers and sisters, each giving their own version of the same +story, though in different words, should resemble each other more +closely than more distant relations. This too we see. + +But it should frequently happen that offspring should resemble its +penultimate rather than its latest phase, and should thus be more +like a grand-parent than a parent; for we observe that we very often +repeat a performance in a manner resembling that of some earlier, but +still recent, repetition; rather than on the precise lines of our +very last performance. First-cousins may in this case resemble each +other more closely than brothers and sisters. + +More especially, we should not expect very successful men to be +fathers of particularly gifted children; for the best men are, as it +were, the happy thoughts and successes of the race--nature's +"flukes," so to speak, in her onward progress. No creature can +repeat at will, and immediately, its highest flight. It needs +repose. The generations are the essays of any given race towards the +highest ideal which it is as yet able to see ahead of itself, and +this, in the nature of things, cannot be very far; so that we should +expect to see success followed by more or less failure, and failure +by success--a very successful creature being a GREAT "fluke." And +this is what we find. + +In its earlier stages the embryo should be simply conscious of a +general method of procedure on the part of its forefathers, and +should, by reason of long practice, compress tedious and complicated +histories into a very narrow compass, remembering no single +performance in particular. For we observe this in nature, both as +regards the sleight-of-hand which practice gives to those who are +thoroughly familiar with their business, and also as regards the +fusion of remoter memories into a general residuum. + +II. We should expect to find that the offspring, whether in its +embryonic condition, or in any stage of development till it has +reached maturity, should adopt nearly the same order in going through +all its various stages. There should be such slight variations as +are inseparable from the repetition of any performance by a living +being (as contrasted with a machine), but no more. And this is what +actually happens. A man may cut his wisdom-teeth a little later than +he gets his beard and whiskers, or a little earlier; but on the +whole, he adheres to his usual order, and is completely set off his +balance, and upset in his performance, if that order be interfered +with suddenly. It is, however, likely that gradual modifications of +order have been made and then adhered to. + +After any animal has reached the period at which it ordinarily begins +to continue its race, we should expect that it should show little +further power of development, or, at any rate, that few great changes +of structure or fresh features should appear; for we cannot suppose +offspring to remember anything that happens to the parent +subsequently to the parent's ceasing to contain the offspring within +itself; from the average age, therefore, of reproduction, offspring +would cease to have any further experience on which to fall back, and +would thus continue to make the best use of what it already knew, +till memory failing either in one part or another, the organism would +begin to decay. + +To this cause must be referred the phenomena of old age, which +interesting subject I am unable to pursue within the limits of this +volume. + +Those creatures who are longest in reaching maturity might be +expected also to be the longest lived; I am not certain, however, how +far what is called alternate generation militates against this view, +but I do not think it does so seriously. + +Lateness of marriage, provided the constitution of the individuals +marrying is in no respect impaired, should also tend to longevity. + +I believe that all the above will be found sufficiently well +supported by facts. If so, when we feel that we are getting old we +should try and give our cells such treatment as they will find it +most easy to understand, through their experience of their own +individual life, which, however, can only guide them inferentially, +and to a very small extent; and throughout life we should remember +the important bearing which memory has upon health, and both +occasionally cross the memories of our component cells with slightly +new experiences, and be careful not to put them either suddenly or +for long together into conditions which they will not be able to +understand. Nothing is so likely to make our cells forget +themselves, as neglect of one or other of these considerations. They +will either fail to recognise themselves completely, in which case we +shall die; or they will go on strike, more or less seriously as the +case may be, or perhaps, rather, they will try and remember their +usual course, and fail; they will therefore try some other, and will +probably make a mess of it, as people generally do when they try to +do things which they do not understand, unless indeed they have very +exceptional capacity. + +It also follows that when we are ill, our cells being in such or such +a state of mind, and inclined to hold a corresponding opinion with +more or less unreasoning violence, should not be puzzled more than +they are puzzled already, by being contradicted too suddenly; for +they will not be in a frame of mind which can understand the position +of an open opponent: they should therefore either be let alone, if +possible, without notice other than dignified silence, till their +spleen is over, and till they have remembered themselves; or they +should be reasoned with as by one who agrees with them, and who is +anxious to see things as far as possible from their own point of +view. And this is how experience teaches that we must deal with +monomaniacs, whom we simply infuriate by contradiction, but whose +delusion we can sometimes persuade to hang itself if we but give it +sufficient rope. All which has its bearing upon politics, too, at +much sacrifice, it may be, of political principles, but a politician +who cannot see principles where principle-mongers fail to see them, +is a dangerous person. + +I may say, in passing, that the reason why a small wound heals, and +leaves no scar, while a larger one leaves a mark which is more or +less permanent, may be looked for in the fact that when the wound is +only small, the damaged cells are snubbed, so to speak, by the vast +majority of the unhurt cells in their own neighbourhood. When the +wound is more serious they can stick to it, and bear each other out +that they were hurt. + +III. We should expect to find a predominance of sexual over asexual +generation, in the arrangements of nature for continuing her various +species, inasmuch as two heads are better than one, and a locus +poenitentiae is thus given to the embryo--an opportunity of +correcting the experience of one parent by that of the other. And +this is what the more intelligent embryos may be supposed to do; for +there would seem little reason to doubt that there are clever embryos +and stupid embryos, with better or worse memories, as the case may +be, of how they dealt with their protoplasm before, and better or +worse able to see how they can do better now; and that embryos differ +as widely in intellectual and moral capacity, and in a general sense +of the fitness of things, and of what will look well into the +bargain, as those larger embryos--to wit, children--do. Indeed it +would seem probable that all our mental powers must go through a +quasi-embryological condition, much as the power of keeping, and +wisely spending, money must do so, and that all the qualities of +human thought and character are to be found in the embryo. + +Those who have observed at what an early age differences of intellect +and temper show themselves in the young, for example, of cats and +dogs, will find it difficult to doubt that from the very moment of +impregnation, and onward, there has been a corresponding difference +in the embryo--and that of six unborn puppies, one, we will say, has +been throughout the whole process of development more sensible and +better looking--a nicer embryo, in fact--than the others. + +IV. We should expect to find that all species, whether of plants or +animals, are occasionally benefited by a cross; but we should also +expect that a cross should have a tendency to introduce a disturbing +element, if it be too wide, inasmuch as the offspring would be pulled +hither and thither by two conflicting memories or advices, much as +though a number of people speaking at once were without previous +warning to advise an unhappy performer to vary his ordinary +performance--one set of people telling him he has always hitherto +done thus, and the other saying no less loudly that he did it thus;-- +and he were suddenly to become convinced that they each spoke the +truth. In such a case he will either completely break down, if the +advice be too conflicting, or if it be less conflicting, he may yet +be so exhausted by the one supreme effort of fusing these experiences +that he will never be able to perform again; or if the conflict of +experience be not great enough to produce such a permanent effect as +this, it will yet, if it be at all serious, probably damage his +performances on their next several occasions, through his inability +to fuse the experiences into a harmonious whole, or, in other words, +to understand the ideas which are prescribed to him; for to fuse is +only to understand. + +And this is absolutely what we find in fact. Mr. Darwin writes +concerning hybrids and first crosses:- "The male element may reach +the female element, but be incapable of causing an embryo to be +developed, as seems to have been the case with some of Thuret's +experiments on Fuci. No explanation can be given of these facts any +more than why certain trees cannot be grafted on others." + +I submit that what I have written above supplies a very fair prima +facie explanation. + +Mr. Darwin continues:- + +"Lastly, an embryo may be developed, and then perish at an early +period. This latter alternative has not been sufficiently attended +to; but I believe, from observations communicated to me by Mr. +Hewitt, who has had great experience in hybridising pheasants and +fowls, that the early death of the embryo is a very frequent cause of +sterility in first crosses. Mr. Salter has recently given the +results of an examination of about five hundred eggs produced from +various crosses between three species of Gallus and their hybrids; +the majority of these eggs had been fertilised; and in the majority +of the fertilised eggs, the embryos had either been partially +developed, and had then perished, or had become nearly mature, but +the young chickens had been unable to break through the shell. Of +the chickens which were born more than four-fifths died within the +first few days, or at latest weeks, 'without any obvious cause, +apparently from mere inability to live,' so that from the five +hundred eggs only twelve chickens were reared" ("Origin of Species," +249, ed. 1876). + +No wonder the poor creatures died, distracted as they were by the +internal tumult of conflicting memories. But they must have suffered +greatly; and the Society for the Prevention of Cruelty to Animals may +perhaps think it worth while to keep an eye even on the embryos of +hybrids and first crosses. Five hundred creatures puzzled to death +is not a pleasant subject for contemplation. Ten or a dozen should, +I think, be sufficient for the future. + +As regards plants, we read:- + +"Hybridised embryos probably often perish in like manner . . . of +which fact Max Wichura has given some striking cases with hybrid +willows . . . It may be here worth noticing, that in some cases of +parthenogenesis, the embryos within the eggs of silk moths, which +have not been fertilised, pass through their early stages of +development, and then perish like the embryos produced by a cross +between distinct species" (Ibid). + +This last fact would at first sight seem to make against me, but we +must consider that the presence of a double memory, provided it be +not too conflicting, would be a part of the experience of the silk +moth's egg, which might be then as fatally puzzled by the monotony of +a single memory as it would be by two memories which were not +sufficiently like each other. So that failure here must be referred +to the utter absence of that little internal stimulant of slightly +conflicting memory which the creature has always hitherto +experienced, and without which it fails to recognise itself. In +either case, then, whether with hybrids or in cases of +parthenogenesis, the early death of the embryo is due to inability to +recollect, owing to a fault in the chain of associated ideas. All +the facts here given are an excellent illustration of the principle, +elsewhere insisted upon by Mr. Darwin, that ANY great and sudden +change of surroundings has a tendency to induce sterility; on which +head he writes ("Plants and Animals under Domestication," vol. ii. p. +143, ed. 1875):- + +"It would appear that any change in the habits of life, whatever +their habits may be, if great enough, tends to affect in an +inexplicable manner the powers of reproduction." + +And again on the next page:- + +"Finally, we must conclude, limited though the conclusion is, that +changed conditions of life have an especial power of acting +injuriously on the reproductive system. The whole case is quite +peculiar, for these organs, though not diseased, are thus rendered +incapable of performing their proper functions, or perform them +imperfectly." + +One is inclined to doubt whether the blame may not rest with the +inability on the part of the creature reproduced to recognise the new +surroundings, and hence with its failing to know itself. And this +seems to be in some measure supported--but not in such a manner as I +can hold to be quite satisfactory--by the continuation of the passage +in the "Origin of Species," from which I have just been quoting--for +Mr. Darwin goes on to say:- + +"Hybrids, however, are differently circumstanced before and after +birth. When born, and living in a country where their parents live, +they are generally placed under suitable conditions of life. But a +hybrid partakes of only half of the nature and condition of its +mother; it may therefore before birth, as long as it is nourished +within its mother's womb, or within the egg or seed produced by its +mother, be exposed to conditions in some degree unsuitable, and +consequently be liable to perish at an early period . . . " After +which, however, the conclusion arrived at is, that, "after all, the +cause more probably lies in some imperfection in the original act of +impregnation, causing the embryo to be imperfectly developed rather +than in the conditions to which it is subsequently exposed." A +conclusion which I am not prepared to accept. + +Returning to my second alternative, that is to say, to the case of +hybrids which are born well developed and healthy, but nevertheless +perfectly sterile, it is less obvious why, having succeeded in +understanding the conflicting memories of their parents, they should +fail to produce offspring; but I do not think the reader will feel +surprised that this should be the case. The following anecdote, true +or false, may not be out of place here:- + +"Plutarch tells us of a magpie, belonging to a barber at Rome, which +could imitate to a nicety almost every word it heard. Some trumpets +happened one day to be sounded before the shop, and for a day or two +afterwards the magpie was quite mute, and seemed pensive and +melancholy. All who knew it were greatly surprised at its silence; +and it was supposed that the sound of the trumpets had so stunned it +as to deprive it at once of both voice and hearing. It soon +appeared, however, that this was far from being the case; for, says +Plutarch, the bird had been all the time occupied in profound +meditation, studying how to imitate the sound of the trumpets; and +when at last master of it, the magpie, to the astonishment of all its +friends, suddenly broke its long silence by a perfect imitation of +the flourish of trumpets it had heard, observing with the greatest +exactness all the repetitions, stops, and changes. THE ACQUISITION +OF THIS LESSON HAD, HOWEVER, EXHAUSTED THE WHOLE OF THE MAGPIE'S +STOCK OF INTELLECT, FOR IT MADE IT FORGET EVERYTHING IT HAD LEARNED +BEFORE" ("Percy Anecdotes," Instinct, p. 166). + +Or, perhaps, more seriously, the memory of every impregnate ovum from +which every ancestor of a mule, for example, has sprung, has reverted +to a very long period of time during which its forefathers have been +creatures like that which it is itself now going to become: thus, +the impregnate ovum from which the mule's father was developed +remembered nothing but horse memories; but it felt its faith in these +supported by the recollection of a VAST NUMBER of previous +generations, in which it was, to all intents and purposes, what it +now is. In like manner, the impregnate ovum from which the mule's +mother was developed would be backed by the assurance that it had +done what it is going to do now a hundred thousand times already. +All would thus be plain sailing. A horse and a donkey would result. +These two are brought together; an impregnate ovum is produced which +finds an unusual conflict of memory between the two lines of its +ancestors, nevertheless, being accustomed to SOME conflict, it +manages to get over the difficulty, AS ON EITHER SIDE IT FINDS ITSELF +BACKED BY A VERY LONG SERIES OF SUFFICIENTLY STEADY MEMORY. A mule +results--a creature so distinctly different from either horse or +donkey, that reproduction is baffled, owing to the creature's having +nothing but its own knowledge of itself to fall back upon, behind +which there comes an immediate dislocation, or fault of memory, which +is sufficient to bar identity, and hence reproduction, by rendering +too severe an appeal to reason necessary--for no creature can +reproduce itself on the shallow foundation which reason can alone +give. Ordinarily, therefore, the hybrid, or the spermatozoon or +ovum, which it may throw off (as the case may be), finds one single +experience too small to give it the necessary faith, on the strength +of which even to try to reproduce itself. In other cases the hybrid +itself has failed to be developed; in others the hybrid, or first +cross, is almost fertile; in others it is fertile, but produces +depraved issue. The result will vary with the capacities of the +creatures crossed, and the amount of conflict between their several +experiences. + +The above view would remove all difficulties out of the way of +evolution, in so far as the sterility of hybrids is concerned. For +it would thus appear that this sterility has nothing to do with any +supposed immutable or fixed limits of species, but results simply +from the same principle which prevents old friends, no matter how +intimate in youth, from returning to their old intimacy after a lapse +of years, during which they have been subjected to widely different +influences, inasmuch as they will each have contracted new habits, +and have got into new ways, which they do not like now to alter. + +We should expect that our domesticated plants and animals should vary +most, inasmuch as these have been subjected to changed conditions +which would disturb the memory, and, breaking the chain of +recollection, through failure of some one or other of the associated +ideas, would thus directly and most markedly affect the reproductive +system. Every reader of Mr. Darwin will know that this is what +actually happens, and also that when once a plant or animal begins to +vary, it will probably vary a good deal further; which, again, is +what we should expect--the disturbance of the memory introducing a +fresh factor of disturbance, which has to be dealt with by the +offspring as it best may. Mr. Darwin writes: "All our domesticated +productions, with the rarest exceptions, vary far more than natural +species" ("Plants and Animals," &c., vol ii. p. 241, ed. 1875). + +On my third supposition, i.e., when the difference between parents +has not been great enough to baffle reproduction on the part of the +first cross, but when the histories of the father and mother have +been, nevertheless, widely different--as in the case of Europeans and +Indians--we should expect to have a race of offspring who should seem +to be quite clear only about those points, on which their progenitors +on both sides were in accord before the manifold divergencies in +their experiences commenced; that is to say, the offspring should +show a tendency to revert to an early savage condition. + +That this indeed occurs may be seen from Mr. Darwin's "Plants and +Animals under Domestication" (vol ii. p. 21, ed. 1875), where we find +that travellers in all parts of the world have frequently remarked +"ON THE DEGRADED STATE AND SAVAGE CONDITION OF CROSSED RACES OF MAN." +A few lines lower down Mr. Darwin tells us that he was himself +"struck with the fact that, in South America, men of complicated +descent between Negroes, Indians, and Spaniards seldom had, whatever +the cause might be, a good expression." "Livingstone" (continues Mr. +Darwin) "remarks, 'It is unaccountable why half-castes are so much +more cruel than the Portuguese, but such is undoubtedly the case.' +An inhabitant remarked to Livingstone, 'God made white men, and God +made black men, but the devil made half-castes.'" A little further +on Mr. Darwin says that we may "perhaps infer that the degraded state +of so many half-castes IS IN PART DUE TO REVERSION TO A PRIMITIVE AND +SAVAGE CONDITION, INDUCED BY THE ACT OF CROSSING, even if mainly due +to the unfavourable moral conditions under which they are generally +reared." Why the crossing should produce this particular tendency +would seem to be intelligible enough, if the fashion and instincts of +offspring are, in any case, nothing but the memories of its past +existences; but it would hardly seem to be so upon any of the +theories now generally accepted; as, indeed, is very readily admitted +by Mr. Darwin himself, who even, as regards purely-bred animals and +plants, remarks that "we are quite unable to assign any proximate +cause" for their tendency to at times reassume long lost characters. + +If the reader will follow for himself the remaining phenomena of +reversion, he will, I believe, find them all explicable on the theory +that they are due to memory of past experiences fused, and modified-- +at times specifically and definitely--by changed conditions. There +is, however, one apparently very important phenomenon which I do not +at this moment see how to connect with memory, namely, the tendency +on the part of offspring to revert to an earlier impregnation. Mr. +Darwin's "Provisional Theory of Pangenesis" seemed to afford a +satisfactory explanation of this; but the connection with memory was +not immediately apparent. I think it likely, however, that this +difficulty will vanish on further consideration, so I will not do +more than call attention to it here. + +The instincts of certain neuter insects hardly bear upon reversion, +but will be dealt with at some length in Chapter XII. + +V. We should expect to find, as was insisted on in the preceding +section in reference to the sterility of hybrids, that it required +many, or at any rate several, generations of changed habits before a +sufficiently deep impression could be made upon the living being (who +must be regarded always as one person in his whole line of ascent or +descent) for it to be unconsciously remembered by him, when making +himself anew in any succeeding generation, and thus to make him +modify his method of procedure during his next embryological +development. Nevertheless, we should expect to find that sometimes a +very deep single impression made upon a living organism, should be +remembered by it, even when it is next in an embryonic condition. + +That this is so, we find from Mr. Darwin, who writes ("Plants and +Animals under Domestication," vol. ii. p. 57, ed. 1875)--"There is +ample evidence that the effect of mutilations and of accidents, +especially, or perhaps exclusively, when followed by disease" (which +would certainly intensify the impression made), "are occasionally +inherited. There can be no doubt that the evil effects of the long +continued exposure of the parent to injurious conditions are +sometimes transmitted to the offspring." As regards impressions of a +less striking character, it is so universally admitted that they are +not observed to be repeated in what is called the offspring, until +they have been confirmed in what is called the parent, for several +generations, but that after several generations, more or fewer as the +case may be, they often are transmitted--that it seems unnecessary to +say more upon the matter. Perhaps, however, the following passage +from Mr. Darwin may be admitted as conclusive:- + +"That they" (acquired actions) "are inherited, we see with horses in +certain transmitted paces, such as cantering and ambling, which are +not natural to them--in the pointing of young pointers, and the +setting of young setters--in the peculiar manner of flight of certain +breeds of the pigeon, &c. We have analogous cases with mankind in +the inheritance of tricks or unusual gestures." . . . ("Expression of +the Emotions," p. 29). + +In another place Mr. Darwin writes:- + +"How again can we explain THE INHERITED EFFECTS of the use or disuse +of particular organs? The domesticated duck flies less and walks +more than the wild duck, and its limb bones have become diminished +and increased in a corresponding manner in comparison with those of +the wild duck. A horse is trained to certain paces, and the colt +inherits similar consensual movements. The domesticated rabbit +becomes tame from close confinement; the dog intelligent from +associating with man; the retriever is taught to fetch and carry; and +these mental endowments and bodily powers are all inherited" ("Plants +and Animals," &c., vol. ii. p. 367, ed. 1875). + +"Nothing," he continues, "in the whole circuit of physiology is more +wonderful. How can the use or disuse of a particular limb, or of the +brain, affect a small aggregate of reproductive cells, seated in a +distant part of the body in such a manner that the being developed +from these cells inherits the character of one or both parents? Even +an imperfect answer to this question would be satisfactory" ("Plants +and Animals," &c. vol. ii. p. 367, ed. 1875). + +With such an imperfect answer will I attempt to satisfy the reader, +as to say that there appears to be that kind of continuity of +existence and sameness of personality, between parents and offspring, +which would lead us to expect that the impressions made upon the +parent should be epitomised in the offspring, when they have been or +have become important enough, through repetition in the history of +several so-called existences to have earned a place in that smaller +edition, which is issued from generation to generation; or, in other +words, when they have been made so deeply, either at one blow or +through many, that the offspring can remember them. In practice we +observe this to be the case--so that the answer lies in the assertion +that offspring and parent, being in one sense but the same +individual, there is no great wonder that, in one sense, the first +should remember what had happened to the latter; and that too, much +in the same way as the individual remembers the events in the earlier +history of what he calls his own lifetime, but condensed, and pruned +of detail, and remembered as by one who has had a host of other +matters to attend to in the interim. + +It is thus easy to understand why such a rite as circumcision, though +practised during many ages, should have produced little, if any, +modification tending to make circumcision unnecessary. On the view +here supported such modification would be more surprising than not, +for unless the impression made upon the parent was of a grave +character--and probably unless also aggravated by subsequent +confusion of memories in the cells surrounding the part originally +impressed--the parent himself would not be sufficiently impressed to +prevent him from reproducing himself, as he had already done upon an +infinite number of past occasions. The child, therefore, in the womb +would do what the father in the womb had done before him, nor should +any trace of memory concerning circumcision be expected till the +eighth day after birth, when, but for the fact that the impression in +this case is forgotten almost as soon as made, some slight +presentiment of coming discomfort might, after a large number of +generations, perhaps be looked for as a general rule. It would not, +however, be surprising, that the effect of circumcision should be +occasionally inherited, and it would appear as though this was +sometimes actually the case. + +The question should turn upon whether the disuse of an organ has +arisen:- + +1. From an internal desire on the part of the creature disusing it, +to be quit of an organ which it finds troublesome. + +2. From changed conditions and habits which render the organ no +longer necessary, or which lead the creature to lay greater stress on +certain other organs or modifications. + +3. From the wish of others outside itself; the effect produced in +this case being perhaps neither very good nor very bad for the +individual, and resulting in no grave impression upon the organism as +a whole. + +4. From a single deep impression on a parent, affecting both himself +as a whole, and gravely confusing the memories of the cells to be +reproduced, or his memories in respect of those cells--according as +one adopts Pangenesis and supposes a memory to "run" each gemmule, or +as one supposes one memory to "run" the whole impregnate ovum--a +compromise between these two views being nevertheless perhaps +possible, inasmuch as the combined memories of all the cells may +possibly BE the memory which "runs" the impregnate ovum, just as we +ARE ourselves the combination of all our cells, each one of which is +both autonomous, and also takes its share in the central government. +But within the limits of this volume it is absolutely impossible for +me to go into this question. + +In the first case--under which some instances which belong more +strictly to the fourth would sometimes, but rarely, come--the organ +should soon go, and sooner or later leave no rudiment, though still +perhaps to be found crossing the life of the embryo, and then +disappearing. + +In the second it should go more slowly, and leave, it may be, a +rudimentary structure. + +In the third it should show little or no sign of natural decrease for +a very long time. + +In the fourth there may be absolute and total sterility, or sterility +in regard to the particular organ, or a scar which shall show that +the memory of the wound and of each step in the process of healing +has been remembered; or there may be simply such disturbance in the +reproduced organ as shall show a confused recollection of injury. +There may be infinite gradations between the first and last of these +possibilities. + +I think that the facts, as given by Mr. Darwin ("Plants and Animals," +&c., vol i. pp. 466-472, ed. 1875), will bear out the above to the +satisfaction of the reader. I can, however, only quote the following +passage:- + +" . . . Brown Sequard has bred during thirty years many thousand +guinea-pigs, . . . nor has he ever seen a guinea-pig born without +toes which was not the offspring of parents WHICH HAD GNAWED OFF +THEIR OWN TOES, owing to the sciatic nerve having been divided. Of +this fact thirteen instances were carefully recorded, and a greater +number were seen; yet Brown Sequard speaks of such cases as among the +rarer forms of inheritance. It is a still more interesting fact-- +'that the sciatic nerve in the congenitally toeless animal has +inherited the power of passing through ALL THE DIFFERENT MORBID +STATES which have occurred in one of its parents FROM THE TIME OF +DIVISION till after its reunion with the peripheric end. It is not +therefore the power of simply performing an action which is +inherited, but the power of performing a whole series of actions in a +certain order.'" + +I feel inclined to say it is not merely the original wound that is +remembered, but the whole process of cure which is now accordingly +repeated. Brown Sequard concludes, as Mr. Darwin tells us, "that +what is transmitted is the morbid state of the nervous system," due +to the operation performed on the parents. + +A little lower down Mr. Darwin writes that Professor Rolleston has +given him two cases--"namely, of two men, one of whom had his knee, +and the other his cheek, severely cut, and both had children born +with exactly the same spot marked or scarred." + +VI. When, however, an impression has once reached transmission +point--whether it be of the nature of a sudden striking thought, +which makes its mark deeply then and there, or whether it be the +result of smaller impressions repeated until the nail, so to speak, +has been driven home--we should expect that it should be remembered +by the offspring as something which he has done all his life, and +which he has therefore no longer any occasion to learn; he will act, +therefore, as people say, INSTINCTIVELY. No matter how complex and +difficult the process, if the parents have done it sufficiently often +(that is to say, for a sufficient number of generations), the +offspring will remember the fact when association wakens the memory; +it will need no instruction, and--unless when it has been taught to +look for it during many generations--will expect none. This may be +seen in the case of the humming-bird sphinx moth, which, as Mr. +Darwin writes, "shortly after its emergence from the cocoon, as shown +by the bloom on its unruffled scales, may be seen poised stationary +in the air with its long hair-like proboscis uncurled, and inserted +into the minute orifices of flowers; AND NO ONE I BELIEVE HAS EVER +SEEN this moth learning to perform its difficult task, which requires +such unerring aim" ("Expression of the Emotions," p. 30). + +And, indeed, when we consider that after a time the most complex and +difficult actions come to be performed by man without the least +effort or consciousness--that offspring cannot be considered as +anything but a continuation of the parent life, whose past habits and +experiences it epitomises when they have been sufficiently often +repeated to produce a lasting impression--that consciousness of +memory vanishes on the memory's becoming intense, as completely as +the consciousness of complex and difficult movements vanishes as soon +as they have been sufficiently practised--and finally, that the real +presence of memory is testified rather by performance of the repeated +action on recurrence of like surroundings, than by consciousness of +recollecting on the part of the individual--so that not only should +there be no reasonable bar to our attributing the whole range of the +more complex instinctive actions, from first to last, to memory pure +and simple, no matter how marvellous they may be, but rather that +there is so much to compel us to do so, that we find it difficult to +conceive how any other view can have been ever taken--when, I say, we +consider all these facts, we should rather feel surprise that the +hawk and sparrow still teach their offspring to fly, than that the +humming-bird sphinx moth should need no teacher. + +The phenomena, then, which we observe are exactly those which we +should expect to find. + +VII. We should also expect that the memory of animals, as regards +their earlier existences, was solely stimulated by association. For +we find, from Prof. Bain, that "actions, sensations, and states of +feeling occurring together, or in close succession, tend to grow +together or cohere in such a way that when any one of them is +afterwards presented to the mind, the others are apt to be brought up +in idea" ("The Senses and the Intellect," 2d ed. 1864, p. 332). And +Prof. Huxley says ("Elementary Lessons in Physiology," 5th ed. 1872, +p. 306), "It may be laid down as a rule that if any two mental states +be called up together, or in succession, with due frequency and +vividness, the subsequent production of the one of them will suffice +to call up the other, AND THAT WHETHER WE DESIRE IT OR NOT." I would +go one step further, and would say not only whether we desire it or +not, but WHETHER WE ARE AWARE THAT THE IDEA HAS EVER BEFORE BEEN +CALLED UP IN OUR MINDS OR NOT. I should say that I have quoted both +the above passages from Mr. Darwin's "Expression of the Emotions" (p. +30, ed. 1872). + +We should, therefore, expect that when the offspring found itself in +the presence of objects which had called up such and such ideas for a +sufficient number of generations, that is to say, "with due frequency +and vividness"--it being of the same age as its parents were, and +generally in like case as when the ideas were called up in the minds +of the parents--the same ideas should also be called up in the minds +of the offspring "WHETHER THEY DESIRE IT OR NOT;" and, I would say +also, "whether they recognise the ideas as having ever before been +present to them or not." + +I think we might also expect that no other force, save that of +association, should have power to kindle, so to speak, into the flame +of action the atomic spark of memory, which we can alone suppose to +be transmitted from one generation to another. + +That both plants and animals do as we should expect of them in this +respect is plain, not only from the performance of the most intricate +and difficult actions--difficult both physically and intellectually-- +at an age, and under circumstances which preclude all possibility of +what we call instruction, but from the fact that deviations from the +parental instinct, or rather the recurrence of a memory, unless in +connection with the accustomed train of associations, is of +comparatively rare occurrence; the result, commonly, of some one of +the many memories about which we know no more than we do of the +memory which enables a cat to find her way home after a hundred-mile +journey by train, and shut up in a hamper, or, perhaps even more +commonly, of abnormal treatment. + +VIII. If, then, memory depends on association, we should expect two +corresponding phenomena in the case of plants and animals--namely, +that they should show a tendency to resume feral habits on being +turned wild after several generations of domestication, and also that +peculiarities should tend to show themselves at a corresponding age +in the offspring and in the parents. As regards the tendency to +resume feral habits, Mr. Darwin, though apparently of opinion that +the tendency to do this has been much exaggerated, yet does not doubt +that such a tendency exists, as shown by well authenticated +instances. He writes: "It has been repeatedly asserted in the most +positive manner by various authors that feral animals and plants +invariably return to their primitive specific type." + +This shows, at any rate, that there is a considerable opinion to this +effect among observers generally. + +He continues: "It is curious on what little evidence this belief +rests. Many of our domesticated animals could not subsist in a wild +state,"--so that there is no knowing whether they would or would not +revert. "In several cases we do not know the aboriginal parent +species, and cannot tell whether or not there has been any close +degree of reversion." So that here, too, there is at any rate no +evidence AGAINST the tendency; the conclusion, however, is that, +notwithstanding the deficiency of positive evidence to warrant the +general belief as to the force of the tendency, yet "the simple fact +of animals and plants becoming feral does cause some tendency to +revert to the primitive state," and he tells us that "when variously- +coloured tame rabbits are turned out in Europe, they generally re- +acquire the colouring of the wild animal;" there can be no doubt," he +says, "that this really does occur," though he seems inclined to +account for it by the fact that oddly-coloured and conspicuous +animals would suffer much from beasts of prey and from being easily +shot. "The best known case of reversion:" he continues, "and that on +which the widely-spread belief in its universality apparently rests, +is that of pigs. These animals have run wild in the West Indies, +South America, and the Falkland Islands, and have everywhere re- +acquired the dark colour, the thick bristles, and great tusks of the +wild boar; and the young have re-acquired longitudinal stripes." And +on page 22 of "Plants and Animals under Domestication" (vol. ii. ed. +1875) we find that "the re-appearance of coloured, longitudinal +stripes on young feral pigs cannot be attributed to the direct action +of external conditions. In this case, and in many others, we can +only say that any change in the habits of life apparently favours a +tendency, inherent or latent, in the species to return to the +primitive state." On which one cannot but remark that though any +change may favour such tendency, yet the return to original habits +and surroundings appears to do so in a way so marked as not to be +readily referable to any other cause than that of association and +memory--the creature, in fact, having got into its old groove, +remembers it, and takes to all its old ways. + +As regards the tendency to inherit changes (whether embryonic, or +during post-natal development as ordinarily observed in any species), +or peculiarities of habit or form which do not partake of the nature +of disease, it must be sufficient to refer the reader to Mr. Darwin's +remarks upon this subject ("Plants and Animals Under Domestication," +vol. ii. pp. 51-57, ed. 1875). The existence of the tendency is not +likely to be denied. The instances given by Mr. Darwin are strictly +to the point as regards all ordinary developmental and metamorphic +changes, and even as regards transmitted acquired actions, and tricks +acquired before the time when the offspring has issued from the body +of the parent, or on an average of many generations does so; but it +cannot for a moment be supposed that the offspring knows by +inheritance anything about what happens to the parent subsequently to +the offspring's being born. Hence the appearance of diseases in the +offspring, at comparatively late periods in life, but at the same age +as, or earlier, than in the parents, must be regarded as due to the +fact that in each case the machine having been made after the same +pattern (which IS due to memory), is liable to have the same weak +points, and to break down after a similar amount of wear and tear; +but after less wear and tear in the case of the offspring than in +that of the parent, because a diseased organism is commonly a +deteriorating organism, and if repeated at all closely, and without +repentance and amendment of life, will be repeated for the worse. If +we do not improve, we grow worse. This, at least, is what we observe +daily. + +Nor again can we believe, as some have fancifully imagined, that the +remembrance of any occurrence of which the effect has been entirely, +or almost entirely mental, should be remembered by offspring with any +definiteness. The intellect of the offspring might be affected, for +better or worse, by the general nature of the intellectual employment +of the parent; or a great shock to a parent might destroy or weaken +the intellect of the offspring; but unless a deep impression were +made upon the cells of the body, and deepened by subsequent disease, +we could not expect it to be remembered with any definiteness, or +precision. We may talk as we will about mental pain, and mental +scars, but after all, the impressions they leave are incomparably +less durable than those made by an organic lesion. It is probable, +therefore, that the feeling which so many have described, as though +they remembered this or that in some past existence, is purely +imaginary, and due rather to unconscious recognition of the fact that +we certainly have lived before, than to any actual occurrence +corresponding to the supposed recollection. + +And lastly, we should look to find in the action of memory, as +between one generation and another, a reflection of the many +anomalies and exceptions to ordinary rules which we observe in +memory, so far as we can watch its action in what we call our own +single lives, and the single lives of others. We should expect that +reversion should be frequently capricious--that is to say, give us +more trouble to account for than we are either able or willing to +take. And assuredly we find it so in fact. Mr. Darwin--from whom it +is impossible to quote too much or too fully, inasmuch as no one else +can furnish such a store of facts, so well arranged, and so above all +suspicion of either carelessness or want of candour--so that, however +we may differ from him, it is he himself who shows us how to do so, +and whose pupils we all are--Mr. Darwin writes: "In every living +being we may rest assured that a host of long-lost characters lie +ready to be evolved under proper conditions" (does not one almost +long to substitute the word "memories" for the word "characters?") +"How can we make intelligible, and connect with other facts, this +wonderful and common capacity of reversion--this power of calling +back to life long-lost characters?" ("Plants and Animals," &c., vol. +ii. p. 369, ed. 1875). Surely the answer may be hazarded, that we +shall be able to do so when we can make intelligible the power of +calling back to life long-lost memories. But I grant that this +answer holds out no immediate prospect of a clear understanding. + +One word more. Abundant facts are to be found which point +inevitably, as will appear more plainly in the following chapter, in +the direction of thinking that offspring inherits the memories of its +parents; but I know of no single fact which suggests that parents are +in the smallest degree affected (other than sympathetically) by the +memories of their offspring AFTER THAT OFFSPRING HAS BEEN BORN. +Whether the unborn offspring affects the memory of the mother in some +particulars, and whether we have here the explanation of occasional +reversion to a previous impregnation, is a matter on which I should +hardly like to express an opinion now. Nor, again, can I find a +single fact which seems to indicate any memory of the parental life +on the part of offspring later than the average date of the +offspring's quitting the body of the parent. + + + +CHAPTER XI--INSTINCT AS INHERITED MEMORY + + + +I have already alluded to M. Ribot's work on "Heredity," from which I +will now take the following passages. + +M. Ribot writes:- + +"Instinct is innate, i.e., ANTERIOR TO ALL INDIVIDUAL EXPERIENCE." +This I deny on grounds already abundantly apparent; but let it pass. +"Whereas intelligence is developed slowly by accumulated experience, +instinct is perfect from the first" ("Heredity," p. 14). + +Obviously the memory of a habit or experience will not commonly be +transmitted to offspring in that perfection which is called +"instinct," till the habit or experience has been repeated in several +generations with more or less uniformity; for otherwise the +impression made will not be strong enough to endure through the busy +and difficult task of reproduction. This of course involves that the +habit shall have attained, as it were equilibrium with the creature's +sense of its own needs, so that it shall have long seemed the best +course possible, leaving upon the whole and under ordinary +circumstances little further to be desired, and hence that it should +have been little varied during many generations. We should expect +that it would be transmitted in a more or less partial, varying, +imperfect, and intelligent condition before equilibrium had been +attained; it would, however, continually tend towards equilibrium, +for reasons which will appear more fully later on. + +When this stage has been reached, as regards any habit, the creature +will cease trying to improve; on which the repetition of the habit +will become stable, and hence become capable of more unerring +transmission--but at the same time improvement will cease; the habit +will become fixed, and be perhaps transmitted at an earlier and +earlier age, till it has reached that date of manifestation which +shall be found most agreeable to the other habits of the creature. +It will also be manifested, as a matter of course, without further +consciousness or reflection, for people cannot be always opening up +settled questions; if they thought a matter over yesterday they +cannot think it all over again to-day, but will adopt for better or +worse the conclusion then reached; and this, too, even in spite +sometimes of considerable misgiving, that if they were to think still +further they could find a still better course. It is not, therefore, +to be expected that "instinct" should show signs of that hesitating +and tentative action which results from knowledge that is still so +imperfect as to be actively self-conscious; nor yet that it should +grow or vary, unless under such changed conditions as shall baffle +memory, and present the alternative of either invention--that is to +say, variation--or death. But every instinct must have poised +through the laboriously intelligent stages through which human +civilisations AND MECHANICAL INVENTIONS are now passing; and he who +would study the origin of an instinct with its development, partial +transmission, further growth, further transmission, approach to more +unreflecting stability, and finally, its perfection as an unerring +and unerringly transmitted instinct, must look to laws, customs, AND +MACHINERY as his best instructors. Customs and machines are +instincts AND ORGANS now in process of development; they will +assuredly one day reach the unconscious state of equilibrium which we +observe in the structures and instincts of bees and ants, and an +approach to which may be found among some savage nations. We may +reflect, however, not without pleasure, that this condition--the true +millennium--is still distant. Nevertheless the ants and bees seem +happy; perhaps more happy than when so many social questions were in +as hot discussion among them, as other, and not dissimilar ones, will +one day be amongst ourselves. + +And this, as will be apparent, opens up the whole question of the +stability of species, which we cannot follow further here, than to +say, that according to the balance of testimony, many plants and +animals do appear to have reached a phase of being from which they +are hard to move--that is to say, they will die sooner than be at the +pains of altering their habits--true martyrs to their convictions. +Such races refuse to see changes in their surroundings as long as +they can, but when compelled to recognise them, they throw up the +game because they cannot and will not, or will not and cannot, +invent. And this is perfectly intelligible, for a race is nothing +but a long-lived individual, and like any individual, or tribe of men +whom we have yet observed, will have its special capacities and its +special limitations, though, as in the case of the individual, so +also with the race, it is exceedingly hard to say what those +limitations are, and why, having been able to go so far, it should go +no further. Every man and every race is capable of education up to a +certain point, but not to the extent of being made from a sow's ear +into a silk purse. The proximate cause of the limitation seems to +lie in the absence of the wish to go further; the presence or absence +of the wish will depend upon the nature and surroundings of the +individual, which is simply a way of saying that one can get no +further, but that as the song (with a slight alteration) says:- + + +"Some breeds do, and some breeds don't, +Some breeds will, but this breed won't, +I tried very often to see if it would, +But it said it really couldn't, and I don't think it could." + + +It may perhaps be maintained, that with time and patience, one might +train a rather stupid plough-boy to understand the differential +calculus. This might be done with the help of an inward desire on +the part of the boy to learn, but never otherwise. If the boy wants +to learn or to improve generally, he will do so in spite of every +hindrance, till in time he becomes a very different being from what +he was originally. If he does not want to learn, he will not do so +for any wish of another person. If he feels that he has the power he +will wish; or if he wishes, he will begin to think he has the power, +and try to fulfil his wishes; one cannot say which comes first, for +the power and the desire go always hand in hand, or nearly so, and +the whole business is nothing but a most vicious circle from first to +last. But it is plain that there is more to be said on behalf of +such circles than we have been in the habit of thinking. Do what we +will, we must each one of us argue in a circle of our own, from +which, so long as we live at all, we can by no possibility escape. I +am not sure whether the frank acceptation and recognition of this +fact is not the best corrective for dogmatism that we are likely to +find. + +We can understand that a pigeon might in the course of ages grow to +be a peacock if there was a persistent desire on the part of the +pigeon through all these ages to do so. We know very well that this +has not probably occurred in nature, inasmuch as no pigeon is at all +likely to wish to be very different from what it is now. The idea of +being anything very different from what it now is, would be too wide +a cross with the pigeon's other ideas for it to entertain it +seriously. If the pigeon had never seen a peacock, it would not be +able to conceive the idea, so as to be able to make towards it; if, +on the other hand, it had seen one, it would not probably either want +to become one, or think that it would be any use wanting seriously, +even though it were to feel a passing fancy to be so gorgeously +arrayed; it would therefore lack that faith without which no action, +and with which, every action, is possible. + +That creatures have conceived the idea of making themselves like +other creatures or objects which it was to their advantage or +pleasure to resemble, will be believed by any one who turns to Mr. +Mivart's "Genesis of Species," where he will find (chapter ii.) an +account of some very showy South American butterflies, which give out +such a strong odour that nothing will eat them, and which are hence +mimicked both in appearance and flight by a very different kind of +butterfly; and, again, we see that certain birds, without any +particular desire of gain, no sooner hear any sound than they begin +to mimick it, merely for the pleasure of mimicking; so we all enjoy +to mimick, or to hear good mimicry, so also monkeys imitate the +actions which they observe, from pure force of sympathy. To mimick, +or to wish to mimick, is doubtless often one of the first steps +towards varying in any given direction. Not less, in all +probability, than a full twenty per cent. of all the courage and good +nature now existing in the world, derives its origin, at no very +distant date, from a desire to appear courageous and good-natured. +And this suggests a work whose title should be "On the Fine Arts as +bearing on the Reproductive System," of which the title must suffice +here. + +Against faith, then, and desire, all the "natural selection" in the +world will not stop an amoeba from becoming an elephant, if a +reasonable time be granted; without the faith and the desire, neither +"natural selection" nor artificial breeding will be able to do much +in the way of modifying any structure. When we have once thoroughly +grasped the conception that we are all one creature, and that each +one of us is many millions of years old, so that all the pigeons in +the one line of an infinite number of generations are still one +pigeon only--then we can understand that a bird, as different from a +peacock as a pigeon is now, could yet have wandered on and on, first +this way and then that, doing what it liked, and thought that it +could do, till it found itself at length a peacock; but we cannot +believe either that a bird like a pigeon should be able to apprehend +any ideal so different from itself as a peacock, and make towards it, +or that man, having wished to breed a bird anything like a peacock +from a bird anything like a pigeon, would be able to succeed in +accumulating accidental peacock-like variations till he had made the +bird he was in search of, no matter in what number of generations; +much less can we believe that the accumulation of small fortuitous +variations by "natural selection" could succeed better. We can no +more believe the above, than we can believe that a wish outside a +plough-boy could turn him into a senior wrangler. The boy would +prove to be too many for his teacher, and so would the pigeon for its +breeder. + +I do not forget that artificial breeding has modified the original +type of the horse and the dog, till it has at length produced the +dray-horse and the greyhound; but in each case man has had to get use +and disuse--that is to say, the desires of the animal itself--to help +him. + +We are led, then, to the conclusion that all races have what for +practical purposes may be considered as their limits, though there is +no saying what those limits are, nor indeed why, in theory, there +should be any limits at all, but only that there are limits in +practice. Races which vary considerably must be considered as +clever, but it may be speculative, people who commonly have a genius +in some special direction, as perhaps for mimicry, perhaps for +beauty, perhaps for music, perhaps for the higher mathematics, but +seldom in more than one or two directions; while "inflexible +organisations," like that of the goose, may be considered as +belonging to people with one idea, and the greater tendency of plants +and animals to vary under domestication may be reasonably compared +with the effects of culture and education: that is to say, may be +referred to increased range and variety of experience or perceptions, +which will either cause sterility, if they be too unfamiliar, so as +to be incapable of fusion with preceding ideas, and hence to bring +memory to a sudden fault, or will open the door for all manner of +further variation--the new ideas having suggested new trains of +thought, which a clever example of a clever race will be only too +eager to pursue. + +Let us now return to M. Ribot. He writes (p. 14):- "The duckling +hatched by the hen makes straight for water." In what conceivable +way can we account for this, except on the supposition that the +duckling knows perfectly well what it can, and what it cannot do with +water, owing to its recollection of what it did when it was still one +individuality with its parents, and hence, when it was a duckling +before? + +"The squirrel, before it knows anything of winter, lays up a store of +nuts. A bird when hatched in a cage will, when given its freedom, +build for itself a nest like that of its parents, out of the same +materials, and of the same shape." + +If this is not due to memory, even an imperfect explanation of what +else it can be due to, "would be satisfactory." + +"Intelligence gropes about, tries this way and that, misses its +object, commits mistakes, and corrects them." + +Yes. Because intelligence is of consciousness, and consciousness is +of attention, and attention is of uncertainty, and uncertainty is of +ignorance or want of consciousness. Intelligence is not yet +thoroughly up to its business. + +"Instinct advances with a mechanical certainty." + +Why mechanical? Should not "with apparent certainty" suffice? + +"Hence comes its unconscious character." + +But for the word "mechanical" this is true, and is what we have been +all along insisting on. + +"It knows nothing either of ends, or of the means of attaining them; +it implies no comparison, judgment, or choice." + +This is assumption. What is certain is that instinct does not betray +signs of self-consciousness as to its own knowledge. It has +dismissed reference to first principles, and is no longer under the +law, but under the grace of a settled conviction. + +"All seems directed by thought." + +Yes; because all HAS BEEN in earlier existences directed by thought. + +"Without ever arriving at thought." + +Because it has GOT PAST THOUGHT, and though "directed by thought" +originally, is now travelling in exactly the opposite direction. It +is not likely to reach thought again, till people get to know worse +and worse how to do things, the oftener they practise them. + +"And if this phenomenon appear strange, it must be observed that +analogous states occur in ourselves. ALL THAT WE DO FROM HABIT-- +WALKING, WRITING, OR PRACTISING A MECHANICAL ACT, FOR INSTANCE--ALL +THESE AND MANY OTHER VERY COMPLEX ACTS ARE PERFORMED WITHOUT +CONSCIOUSNESS. + +"Instinct appears stationary. It does not, like intelligence, seem +to grow and decay, to gain and to lose. It does not improve." + +Naturally. For improvement can only as a general rule be looked for +along the line of latest development, that is to say, in matters +concerning which the creature is being still consciously exercised. +Older questions are settled, and the solution must be accepted as +final, for the question of living at all would be reduced to an +absurdity, if everything decided upon one day was to be undecided +again the next; as with painting or music, so with life and politics, +let every man be fully persuaded in his own mind, for decision with +wrong will be commonly a better policy than indecision--I had almost +added with right; and a firm purpose with risk will be better than an +infirm one with temporary exemption from disaster. Every race has +made its great blunders, to which it has nevertheless adhered, +inasmuch as the corresponding modification of other structures and +instincts was found preferable to the revolution which would be +caused by a radical change of structure, with consequent havoc among +a legion of vested interests. Rudimentary organs are, as has been +often said, the survivals of these interests--the signs of their +peaceful and gradual extinction as living faiths; they are also +instances of the difficulty of breaking through any cant or trick +which we have long practised, and which is not sufficiently +troublesome to make it a serious object with us to cure ourselves of +the habit. + +"If it does not remain perfectly invariable, at least it only varies +within very narrow limits; and though this question has been warmly +debated in our day, and is yet unsettled, we may yet say that in +instinct immutability is the law, variation the exception." + +This is quite as it should be. Genius will occasionally rise a +little above convention, but with an old convention immutability will +be the rule. + +"Such," continues M. Ribot, "are the admitted characters of +instinct." + +Yes; but are they not also the admitted characters of actions that +are due to memory? + +At the bottom of p. 15, M. Ribot quotes the following from Mr. +Darwin:- + +"We have reason to believe that aboriginal habits are long retained +under domestication. Thus with the common ass, we see signs of its +original desert-life in its strong dislike to cross the smallest +stream of water, and in its pleasure in rolling in the dust. The +same strong dislike to cross a stream is common to the camel which +has been domesticated from a very early period. Young pigs, though +so tame, sometimes squat when frightened, and then try to conceal +themselves, even in an open and bare place. Young turkeys, and +occasionally even young fowls, when the hen gives the danger-cry, run +away and try to hide themselves, like young partridges or pheasants, +in order that their mother may take flight, of which she has lost the +power. The musk duck in its native country often perches and roosts +on trees, and our domesticated musk ducks, though sluggish birds, are +fond of perching on the tops of barns, walls, &c. . . . We know that +the dog, however well and regularly fed, often buries like the fox +any superfluous food; we see him turning round and round on a carpet +as if to trample down grass to form a bed. . . . In the delight with +which lambs and kids crowd together and frisk upon the smallest +hillock we see a vestige of their former alpine habits." + +What does this delightful passage go to show, if not that the young +in all these cases must still have a latent memory of their past +existences, which is called into an active condition as soon as the +associated ideas present themselves? + +Returning to M. Ribot's own observations, we find he tells us that it +usually requires three or four generations to fix the results of +training, and to prevent a return to the instincts of the wild state. +I think, however, it would not be presumptuous to suppose that if an +animal after only three or four generations of training be restored +to its original conditions of life, it will forget its intermediate +training and return to its old ways, almost as readily as a London +street Arab would forget the beneficial effects of a weeks training +in a reformatory school, if he were then turned loose again on the +streets. So if we hatch wild ducks' eggs under a tame duck, the +ducklings "will have scarce left the egg-shell when they obey the +instincts of their race and take their flight." So the colts from +wild horses, and mongrel young between wild and domesticated horses, +betray traces of their earlier memories. + +On this M. Ribot says: "Originally man had considerable trouble in +taming the animals which are now domesticated; and his work would +have been in vain had not heredity" (memory) "come to his aid. It +may be said that after man has modified a wild animal to his will, +there goes on in its progeny a silent conflict between two +heredities" (memories), "the one tending to fix the acquired +modifications and the other to preserve the primitive instincts. The +latter often get the mastery, and only after several generations is +training sure of victory. But we may see that in either case +heredity" (memory) "always asserts its rights." + +How marvellously is the above passage elucidated and made to fit in +with the results of our recognised experience, by the simple +substitution of the word "memory" for "heredity." + +"Among the higher animals"--to continue quoting--"which are possessed +not only of instinct, but also of intelligence, nothing is more +common than to see mental dispositions, which have evidently been +acquired, so fixed by heredity, that they are confounded with +instinct, so spontaneous and automatic do they become. Young +pointers have been known to point the first time they were taken out, +sometimes even better than dogs that had been for a long time in +training. The habit of saving life is hereditary in breeds that have +been brought up to it, as is also the shepherd dog's habit of moving +around the flock and guarding it." + +As soon as we have grasped the notion, that instinct is only the +epitome of past experience, revised, corrected, made perfect, and +learnt by rote, we no longer find any desire to separate "instinct" +from "mental dispositions, which have evidently been acquired and +fixed by heredity," for the simple reason that they are one and the +same thing. + +A few more examples are all that my limits will allow--they abound on +every side, and the difficulty lies only in selecting--M. Ribot being +to hand, I will venture to lay him under still further contributions. + +On page 19 we find:- "Knight has shown experimentally the truth of +the proverb, 'a good hound is bred so,' he took every care that when +the pups were first taken into the field, they should receive no +guidance from older dogs; yet the very first day, one of the pups +stood trembling with anxiety, having his eyes fixed and all his +muscles strained AT THE PARTRIDGES WHICH THEIR PARENTS HAD BEEN +TRAINED TO POINT. A spaniel belonging to a breed which had been +trained to woodcock-shooting, knew perfectly well from the first how +to act like an old dog, avoiding places where the ground was frozen, +and where it was, therefore, useless to seek the game, as there was +no scent. Finally, a young polecat terrier was thrown into a state +of great excitement the first time he ever saw one of these animals, +while a spaniel remained perfectly calm. + +"In South America, according to Roulin, dogs belonging to a breed +that has long been trained to the dangerous chase of the peccary, +when taken for the first time into the woods, know the tactics to +adopt quite as well as the old dogs, and that without any +instruction. Dogs of other races, and unacquainted with the tactics, +are killed at once, no matter how strong they may be. The American +greyhound, instead of leaping at the stag, attacks him by the belly, +and throws him over, as his ancestors had been trained to do in +hunting the Indians. + +"Thus, then, heredity transmits modification no less than natural +instincts." + +Should not this rather be--"thus, then, we see that not only older +and remoter habits, but habits which have been practised for a +comparatively small number of generations, may be so deeply impressed +on the individual that they may dwell in his memory, surviving the +so-called change of personality which he undergoes in each successive +generation"? + +"There is, however, an important difference to be noted: the +heredity of instincts admits of no exceptions, while in that of +modifications there are many." + +It may be well doubted how far the heredity of instincts admits of no +exceptions; on the contrary, it would seem probable that in many +races geniuses have from time to time arisen who remembered not only +their past experiences, as far as action and habit went, but have +been able to rise in some degree above habit where they felt that +improvement was possible, and who carried such improvement into +further practice, by slightly modifying their structure in the +desired direction on the next occasion that they had a chance of +dealing with protoplasm at all. It is by these rare instances of +intellectual genius (and I would add of moral genius, if many of the +instincts and structures of plants and animals did not show that they +had got into a region as far above morals--other than enlightened +self-interest--as they are above articulate consciousness of their +own aims in many other respects)--it is by these instances of either +rare good luck or rare genius that many species have been, in all +probability, originated or modified. Nevertheless inappreciable +modification of instinct is, and ought to be, the rule. + +As to M. Ribot's assertion, that to the heredity of modifications +there are many exceptions, I readily agree with it, and can only say +that it is exactly what I should expect; the lesson long since learnt +by rote, and repeated in an infinite number of generations, would be +repeated unintelligently, and with little or no difference, save from +a rare accidental slip, the effect of which would be the culling out +of the bungler who was guilty of it, or from the still rarer +appearance of an individual of real genius; while the newer lesson +would be repeated both with more hesitation and uncertainty, and with +more intelligence; and this is well conveyed in M. Ribot's next +sentence, for he says--"It is only when variations have been firmly +rooted; when having become organic, they constitute a second nature, +which supplants the first; when, like instinct, they have assumed a +mechanical character, that they can be transmitted." + +How nearly M. Ribot comes to the opinion which I myself venture to +propound will appear from the following further quotation. After +dealing with somnambulism, and saying, that if somnambulism were +permanent and innate, it would be impossible to distinguish it from +instinct, he continues:- + +"Hence it is less difficult than is generally supposed, to conceive +how intelligence may become instinct; we might even say that, leaving +out of consideration the character of innateness, to which we will +return, we have seen the metamorphosis take place. THERE CAN THEN BE +NO GROUND FOR MAKING INSTINCT A FACULTY APART, sui generis, a +phenomenon so mysterious, so strange, that usually no other +explanation of it is offered but that of attributing it to the direct +act of the Deity. This whole mistake is the result of a defective +psychology which makes no account of the unconscious activity of the +soul." + +We are tempted to add--"and which also makes no account of the bona +fide character of the continued personality of successive +generations." + +"But we are so accustomed," he continues, "to contrast the characters +of instinct with those of intelligence--to say that instinct is +innate, invariable, automatic, while intelligence is something +acquired, variable, spontaneous--that it looks at first paradoxical +to assert that instinct and intelligence are identical. + +"It is said that instinct is innate. But if, on the one hand, we +bear in mind that many instincts are acquired, and that, according to +a theory hereafter to be explained" (which theory, I frankly confess, +I never was able to get hold of), "ALL INSTINCTS ARE ONLY HEREDITARY +HABITS" (italics mine); "if, on the other hand, we observe that +intelligence is in some sense held to be innate by all modern schools +of philosophy, which agree to reject the theory of the tabula rasa" +(if there is no tabula rasa, there is continued psychological +personality, or words have lost their meaning), "and to accept either +latent ideas, or a priori forms of thought" (surely only a +periphrasis for continued personality and memory) "or pre-ordination +of the nervous system and of the organism; IT WILL BE SEEN THAT THIS +CHARACTER OF INNATENESS DOES NOT CONSTITUTE AN ABSOLUTE DISTINCTION +BETWEEN INSTINCT AND INTELLIGENCE. + +"It is true that intelligence is variable, but so also is instinct, +as we have seen. In winter, the Rhine beaver plasters his wall to +windward; once he was a builder, now a burrower; once he lived in +society, now he is solitary. Intelligence itself can scarcely be +more variable . . . instinct may be modified, lost, reawakened. + +"Although intelligence is, as a rule, conscious, it may also become +unconscious and automatic, without losing its identity. Neither is +instinct always so blind, so mechanical, as is supposed, for at times +it is at fault. The wasp that has faultily trimmed a leaf of its +paper begins again. The bee only gives the hexagonal form to its +cell after many attempts and alterations. It is difficult to believe +that the loftier instincts" (and surely, then, the more recent +instincts) "of the higher animals are not accompanied BY AT LEAST A +CONFUSED CONSCIOUSNESS. There is, therefore, no absolute distinction +between instinct and intelligence; there is not a single +characteristic which, seriously considered, remains the exclusive +property of either. The contrast established between instinctive +acts and intellectual acts is, nevertheless, perfectly true, but only +when we compare the extremes. AS INSTINCT RISES IT APPROACHES +INTELLIGENCE--AS INTELLIGENCE DESCENDS IT APPROACHES INSTINCT." + +M. Ribot and myself (if I may venture to say so) are continually on +the verge of coming to an understanding, when, at the very moment +that we seem most likely to do so, we fly, as it were, to opposite +poles. Surely the passage last quoted should be, "As instinct +falls," i.e., becomes less and less certain of its ground, "it +approaches intelligence; as intelligence rises," i.e., becomes more +and more convinced of the truth and expediency of its convictions-- +"it approaches instinct." + +Enough has been said to show that the opinions which I am advancing +are not new, but I have looked in vain for the conclusions which, it +appears to me, M. Ribot should draw from his facts; throughout his +interesting book I find the facts which it would seem should have +guided him to the conclusions, and sometimes almost the conclusions +themselves, but he never seems quite to have reached them, nor has he +arranged his facts so that others are likely to deduce them, unless +they had already arrived at them by another road. I cannot, however, +sufficiently express my obligations to M. Ribot. + +I cannot refrain from bringing forward a few more instances of what I +think must be considered by every reader as hereditary memory. +Sydney Smith writes:- + +"Sir James Hall hatched some chickens in an oven. Within a few +minutes after the shell was broken, a spider was turned loose before +this very youthful brood; the destroyer of flies had hardly proceeded +more than a few inches, before he was descried by one of these oven- +born chickens, and, at one peck of his bill, immediately devoured. +This certainly was not imitation. A female goat very near delivery +died; Galen cut out the young kid, and placed before it a bundle of +hay, a bunch of fruit, and a pan of milk; the young kid smelt to them +all very attentively, and then began to lap the milk. This was not +imitation. And what is commonly and rightly called instinct, cannot +be explained away, under the notion of its being imitation" (Lecture +xvii. on Moral Philosophy). + +It cannot, indeed, be explained away under the notion of its being +imitation, but I think it may well be so under that of its being +memory. + +Again, a little further on in the same lecture, as that above quoted +from, we find:- + +"Ants and beavers lay up magazines. Where do they get their +knowledge that it will not be so easy to collect food in rainy +weather, as it is in summer? Men and women know these things, +because their grandpapas and grandmammas have told them so. Ants +hatched from the egg artificially, or birds hatched in this manner, +have all this knowledge by intuition, without the smallest +communication with any of their relations. Now observe what the +solitary wasp does; she digs several holes in the sand, in each of +which she deposits an egg, though she certainly knows not (?) that an +animal is deposited in that egg, and still less that this animal must +be nourished with other animals. She collects a few green flies, +rolls them up neatly in several parcels (like Bologna sausages), and +stuffs one parcel into each hole where an egg is deposited. When the +wasp worm is hatched, it finds a store of provision ready made; and +what is most curious, the quantity allotted to each is exactly +sufficient to support it, till it attains the period of wasphood, and +can provide for itself. This instinct of the parent wasp is the more +remarkable as it does not feed upon flesh itself. Here the little +creature has never seen its parent; for by the time it is born, the +parent is always eaten by sparrows; and yet, without the slightest +education, or previous experience, it does everything that the parent +did before it. Now the objectors to the doctrine of instinct may say +what they please, but young tailors have no intuitive method of +making pantaloons; a new-born mercer cannot measure diaper; nature +teaches a cook's daughter nothing about sippets. All these things +require with us seven years' apprenticeship; but insects are like +Moliere's persons of quality--they know everything (as Moliere says), +without having learnt anything. 'Les gens de qualite savent tout, +sans avoir rien appris.'" + +How completely all difficulty vanishes from the facts so pleasantly +told in this passage when we bear in mind the true nature of personal +identity, the ordinary working of memory, and the vanishing tendency +of consciousness concerning what we know exceedingly well. + +My last instance I take from M. Ribot, who writes:- "Gratiolet, in +his Anatomie Comparee du Systeme Nerveux, states that an old piece of +wolf's skin, with the hair all worn away, when set before a little +dog, threw the animal into convulsions of fear by the slight scent +attaching to it. The dog had never seen a wolf, and we can only +explain this alarm by the hereditary transmission of certain +sentiments, coupled with a certain perception of the sense of smell" +("Heredity," p. 43). + +I should prefer to say "we can only explain the alarm by supposing +that the smell of the wolf's skin"--the sense of smell being, as we +all know, more powerful to recall the ideas that have been associated +with it than any other sense--"brought up the ideas with which it had +been associated in the dog's mind during many previous existences"-- +he on smelling the wolf's skin remembering all about wolves perfectly +well. + + + +CHAPTER XII--INSTINCTS OF NEUTER INSECTS + + + +In this chapter I will consider, as briefly as possible, the +strongest argument that I have been able to discover against the +supposition that instinct is chiefly due to habit. I have said "the +strongest argument;" I should have said, the only argument that +struck me as offering on the face of it serious difficulties. + +Turning, then, to Mr. Darwin's chapter on instinct ("Natural +Selection," ed. 1876, p. 205), we find substantially much the same +views as those taken at a later date by M. Ribot, and referred to in +the preceding chapter. Mr. Darwin writes:- + +"An action, which we ourselves require experience to enable us to +perform, when performed by an animal, more especially a very young +one, without experience, and when performed by many animals in the +same way without their knowing for what purpose it is performed, is +usually said to be instinctive." + +The above should strictly be, "without their being conscious of their +own knowledge concerning the purpose for which they act as they do;" +and though some may say that the two phrases come to the same thing, +I think there is an important difference, as what I propose +distinguishes ignorance from over-familiarity, both which states are +alike unself-conscious, though with widely different results. + +"But I could show," continues Mr. Darwin, "that none of these +characters are universal. A little dose of judgement or reason, as +Pierre Huber expresses it, often comes into play even with animals +low in the scale of nature. + +"Frederick Cuvier and several of the older metaphysicians have +compared instinct with habit." + +I would go further and would say, that instinct, in the great +majority of cases, is habit pure and simple, contracted originally by +some one or more individuals; practised, probably, in a consciously +intelligent manner during many successive lives, until the habit has +acquired the highest perfection which the circumstances admitted; +and, finally, so deeply impressed upon the memory as to survive that +effacement of minor impressions which generally takes place in every +fresh life-wave or generation. + +I would say, that unless the identity of offspring with their parents +be so far admitted that the children be allowed to remember the +deeper impressions engraved on the minds of those who begot them, it +is little less than trilling to talk, as so many writers do, about +inherited habit, or the experience of the race, or, indeed, +accumulated variations of instincts. + +When an instinct is not habit, as resulting from memory pure and +simple, it is habit modified by some treatment, generally in the +youth or embryonic stages of the individual, which disturbs his +memory, and drives him on to some unusual course, inasmuch as he +cannot recognise and remember his usual one by reason of the change +now made in it. Habits and instincts, again, may be modified by any +important change in the condition of the parents, which will then +both affect the parent's sense of his own identity, and also create +more or less fault, or dislocation of memory, in the offspring +immediately behind the memory of his last life. Change of food may +at times be sufficient to create a specific modification--that is to +say, to affect all the individuals whose food is so changed, in one +and the same way--whether as regards structure or habit. Thus we see +that certain changes in food (and domicile), from those with which +its ancestors have been familiar, will disturb the memory of a queen +bee's egg, and set it at such disadvantage as to make it make itself +into a neuter bee; but yet we find that the larva thus partly aborted +may have its memories restored to it, if not already too much +disturbed, and may thus return to its condition as a queen bee, if it +only again be restored to the food and domicile, which its past +memories can alone remember. + +So we see that opium, tobacco, alcohol, hasheesh, and tea produce +certain effects upon our own structure and instincts. But though +capable of modification, and of specific modification, which may in +time become inherited, and hence resolve itself into a true instinct +or settled question, yet I maintain that the main bulk of the +instinct (whether as affecting structure or habits of life) will be +derived from memory pure and simple; the individual growing up in the +shape he does, and liking to do this or that when he is grown up, +simply from recollection of what he did last time, and of what on the +whole suited him. + +For it must be remembered that a drug which should destroy some one +part at an early embryonic stage, and thus prevent it from +development, would prevent the creature from recognising the +surroundings which affected that part when he was last alive and +unmutilated, as being the same as his present surroundings. He would +be puzzled, for he would be viewing the position from a different +standpoint. If any important item in a number of associated ideas +disappears, the plot fails; and a great internal change is an +exceedingly important item. Life and things to a creature so treated +at an early embryonic stage would not be life and things as he last +remembered them; hence he would not be able to do the same now as he +did then; that is to say, he would vary both in structure and +instinct; but if the creature were tolerably uniform to start with, +and were treated in a tolerably uniform way, we might expect the +effect produced to be much the same in all ordinary cases. + +We see, also, that any important change in treatment and +surroundings, if not sufficient to kill, would and does tend to +produce not only variability but sterility, as part of the same story +and for the same reason--namely, default of memory; this default will +be of every degree of intensity, from total failure, to a slight +disturbance of memory as affecting some one particular organ only; +that is to say, from total sterility, to a slight variation in an +unimportant part. So that even THE SLIGHTEST CONCEIVABLE VARIATIONS +SHOULD BE REFERRED TO CHANGED CONDITIONS, EXTERNAL OR INTERNAL, AND +TO THEIR DISTURBING EFFECTS UPON THE MEMORY; and sterility, without +any apparent disease of the reproductive system, may be referred not +so much to special delicacy or susceptibility of the organs of +reproduction as to inability on the part of the creature to know +where it is, and to recognise itself as the same creature which it +has been accustomed to reproduce. + +Mr. Darwin thinks that the comparison of habit with instinct gives +"an accurate notion of the frame of mind under which an instinctive +action is performed, but not," he thinks, "of its origin." + +"How unconsciously," Mr. Darwin continues, "many habitual actions are +performed, indeed not rarely in direct opposition to our conscious +will! Yet they may be modified by the will or by reason. Habits +easily become associated with other habits, with certain periods of +time and states of body. When once acquired, they often remain +constant throughout life. Several other points of resemblance +between instincts and habits could be pointed out. As in repeating a +well-known song, so in instincts, one action follows another by a +sort of rhythm. If a person be interrupted in a song or in repeating +anything by rote, he is generally forced to go back to recover the +habitual train of thought; so P. Huber found it was with a +caterpillar, which makes a very complicated hammock. For if he took +a caterpillar which had completed its hammock up to, say, the sixth +stage of construction, and put it into a hammock completed up only to +the third stage, the caterpillar simply re-performed the fourth, +fifth, and sixth stages of construction. If, however, a caterpillar +were taken out of a hammock made up, for instance, to the third +stage, and were put into one finished up to the sixth stage, so that +much of its work was already done for it, far from deriving any +benefit from this, it was much embarrassed, and in order to complete +its hammock, seemed forced to start from the third stage, where it +had left off, and thus tried to complete the already finished work." + +I see I must have unconsciously taken my first chapter from this +passage, but it is immaterial. I owe Mr. Darwin much more than this. +I owe it to him that I believe in evolution at all. I owe him for +almost all the facts which have led me to differ from him, and which +I feel absolutely safe in taking for granted, if he has advanced +them. Nevertheless, I believe that the conclusion arrived at in the +passage which I will next quote is a mistaken one, and that not a +little only, but fundamentally. I shall therefore venture to dispute +it. + +The passage runs:- + +"If we suppose any habitual action to become inherited--and it can be +shown that this does sometimes happen--then the resemblance between +what originally was a habit and an instinct becomes so close as not +to be distinguished. . . . BUT IT WOULD BE A SERIOUS ERROR TO SUPPOSE +THAT THE GREATER NUMBER OF INSTINCTS HAVE BEEN ACQUIRED BY HABIT IN +ONE GENERATION, AND THEN TRANSMITTED BY INHERITANCE TO SUCCEEDING +GENERATIONS. IT CAN BE CLEARLY SHOWN THAT THE MOST WONDERFUL +INSTINCTS WITH WHICH WE ARE ACQUAINTED--NAMELY, THOSE OF THE HIVE-BEE +AND OF MANY ANTS, COULD NOT POSSIBLY HAVE BEEN ACQUIRED BY HABIT." +("Origin of Species," p. 206, ed. 1876.) The italics in this passage +are mine. + +No difficulty is opposed to my view (as I call it, for the sake of +brevity) by such an instinct as that of ants to milk aphids. Such +instincts may be supposed to have been acquired in much the same way +as the instinct of a farmer to keep a cow. Accidental discovery of +the fact that the excretion was good, with "a little dose of +judgement or reason" from time to time appearing in an exceptionally +clever ant, and by him communicated to his fellows, till the habit +was so confirmed as to be capable of transmission in full unself- +consciousness (if indeed the instinct be unself-conscious in this +case), would, I think, explain this as readily as the slow and +gradual accumulations of instincts which had never passed through the +intelligent and self-conscious stage, but had always prompted action +without any idea of a why or a wherefore on the part of the creature +itself. + +For it must be remembered, as I am afraid I have already perhaps too +often said, that even when we have got a slight variation of +instinct, due to some cause which we know nothing about, but which I +will not even for a moment call "spontaneous"--a word that should be +cut out of every dictionary, or in some way branded as perhaps the +most misleading in the language--we cannot see how it comes to be +repeated in successive generations, so as to be capable of being +acted upon by "natural selection" and accumulated, unless it be also +capable of being remembered by the offspring of the varying creature. +It may be answered that we cannot know anything about this, but that +"like father like son" is an ultimate fact in nature. I can only +answer that I never observe any "like father like son" without the +son's both having had every opportunity of remembering, and showing +every symptom of having remembered, in which case I decline to go +further than memory (whatever memory may be) as the cause of the +phenomenon. + +But besides inheritance, teaching must be admitted as a means of at +any rate modifying an instinct. We observe this in our own case; and +we know that animals have great powers of communicating their ideas +to one another, though their manner of doing this is as +incomprehensible by us as a plant's knowledge of chemistry, or the +manner in which an amoeba makes its test, or a spider its web, +without having gone through a long course of mathematics. I think +most readers will allow that our early training and the theological +systems of the last eighteen hundred years are likely to have made us +involuntarily under-estimate the powers of animals low in the scale +of life, both as regards intelligence and the power of communicating +their ideas to one another; but even now we admit that ants have +great powers in this respect. + +A habit, however, which is taught to the young or each successive +generation, by older members of the community who have themselves +received it by instruction, should surely rank as an inherited habit, +and be considered as due to memory, though personal teaching be +necessary to complete the inheritance. + +An objection suggests itself that if such a habit as the flight of +birds, which seems to require a little personal supervision and +instruction before it is acquired perfectly, were really due to +memory, the need of instruction would after a time cease, inasmuch as +the creature would remember its past method of procedure, and would +thus come to need no more teaching. The answer lies in the fact, +that if a creature gets to depend upon teaching and personal help for +any matter, its memory will make it look for such help on each +repetition of the action; so we see that no man's memory will exert +itself much until he is thrown upon memory as his only resource. We +may read a page of a book a hundred times, but we do not remember it +by heart unless we have either cultivated our powers of learning to +repeat, or have taken pains to learn this particular page. + +And whether we read from a book, or whether we repeat by heart, the +repetition is still due to memory; only in the one case the memory is +exerted to recall something which one saw only half a second ago, and +in the other, to recall something not seen for a much longer period. +So I imagine an instinct or habit may be called an inherited habit, +and assigned to memory, even though the memory dates, not from the +performance of the action by the learner when he was actually part of +the personality of the teacher, but rather from a performance +witnessed by, or explained by the teacher to, the pupil at a period +subsequent to birth. In either case the habit is inherited in the +sense of being acquired in one generation, and transmitted with such +modifications as genius and experience may have suggested. + +Mr. Darwin would probably admit this without hesitation; when, +therefore, he says that certain instincts could not possibly have +been acquired by habit, he must mean that they could not, under the +circumstances, have been remembered by the pupil in the person of the +teacher, and that it would be a serious error to suppose that the +greater number of instincts can be thus remembered. To which I +assent readily so far as that it is difficult (though not impossible) +to see how some of the most wonderful instincts of neuter ants and +bees can be due to the fact that the neuter ant or bee was ever in +part, or in some respects, another neuter ant or bee in a previous +generation. At the same time I maintain that this does not militate +against the supposition that both instinct and structure are in the +main due to memory. For the power of receiving any communication, +and acting on it, is due to memory; and the neuter ant or bee may +have received its lesson from another neuter ant or bee, who had it +from another and modified it; and so back and back, till the +foundation of the habit is reached, and is found to present little +more than the faintest family likeness to its more complex +descendant. Surely Mr. Darwin cannot mean that it can be shewn that +the wonderful instincts of neuter ants and bees cannot have been +acquired either, as above, by instruction, or by some not immediately +obvious form of inherited transmission, but that they must be due to +the fact that the ant or bee is, as it were, such and such a machine, +of which if you touch such and such a spring, you will get a +corresponding action. If he does, he will find, so far as I can see, +no escape from a position very similar to the one which I put into +the mouth of the first of the two professors, who dealt with the +question of machinery in my earlier work, "Erewhon," and which I have +since found that my great namesake made fun of in the following +lines:- + + +. . . "They now begun +To spur their living engines on. +For as whipped tops and bandy'd balls, +The learned hold are animals: +So horses they affirm to be +Mere engines made by geometry, +And were invented first from engines +As Indian Britons were from Penguins." +--Hudibras, Canto ii. line 53, &c. + + +I can see, then, no difficulty in the development of the ordinary so- +called instincts, whether of ants or bees, or the cuckoo, or any +other animal, on the supposition that they were, for the most part, +intelligently acquired with more or less labour, as the case may be, +in much the same way as we see any art or science now in process of +acquisition among ourselves, but were ultimately remembered by +offspring, or communicated to it. When the limits of the race's +capacity had been attained (and most races seem to have their limits, +unsatisfactory though the expression may very fairly be considered), +or when the creature had got into a condition, so to speak, of +equilibrium with its surroundings, there would be no new development +of instincts, and the old ones would cease to be improved, inasmuch +as there would be no more reasoning or difference of opinion +concerning them. The race, therefore, or species would remain in +statu quo till either domesticated, and so brought into contact with +new ideas and placed in changed conditions, or put under such +pressure, in a wild state, as should force it to further invention, +or extinguish it if incapable of rising to the occasion. That +instinct and structure may be acquired by practice in one or more +generations, and remembered in succeeding ones, is admitted by Mr. +Darwin, for he allows ("Origin of Species," p. 206) that habitual +action does sometimes become inherited, and, though he does not seem +to conceive of such action as due to memory, yet it is inconceivable +how it is inherited, if not as the result of memory. + +It must be admitted, however, that when we come to consider the +structures as well as the instincts of some of the neuter insects, +our difficulties seem greatly increased. The neuter hive-bees have a +cavity in their thighs in which to keep the wax, which it is their +business to collect; but the drones and queen, which alone bear +offspring, collect no wax, and therefore neither want, nor have, any +such cavity. The neuter bees are also, if I understand rightly, +furnished with a proboscis or trunk for extracting honey from +flowers, whereas the fertile bees, who gather no honey, have no such +proboscis. Imagine, if the reader will, that the neuter bees differ +still more widely from the fertile ones; how, then, can they in any +sense be said to derive organs from their parents, which not one of +their parents for millions of generations has ever had? How, again, +can it be supposed that they transmit these organs to the future +neuter members of the community when they are perfectly sterile? + +One can understand that the young neuter bee might be taught to make +a hexagonal cell (though I have not found that any one has seen the +lesson being given) inasmuch as it does not make the cell till after +birth, and till after it has seen other neuter bees who might tell it +much in, qua us, a very little time; but we can hardly understand its +growing a proboscis before it could possibly want it, or preparing a +cavity in its thigh, to have it ready to put wax into, when none of +its predecessors had ever done so, by supposing oral communication, +during the larvahood. Nevertheless, it must not be forgotten that +bees seem to know secrets about reproduction, which utterly baffle +ourselves; for example, the queen bee appears to know how to deposit +male or female, eggs at will; and this is a matter of almost +inconceivable sociological importance, denoting a corresponding +amount of sociological and physiological knowledge generally. It +should not, then, surprise us if the race should possess other +secrets, whose working we are unable to follow, or even detect at +all. + +Sydney Smith, indeed, writes:- + +"The warmest admirers of honey, and the greatest friends to bees, +will never, I presume, contend that the young swarm, who begin making +honey three or four months after they are born, and immediately +construct these mathematical cells, should have gained their +geometrical knowledge as we gain ours, and in three months' time +outstrip Mr. Maclaurin in mathematics as much as they did in making +honey. It would take a senior wrangler at Cambridge ten hours a day +for three years together to know enough mathematics for the +calculation of these problems, with which not only every queen bee, +but every undergraduate grub, is acquainted the moment it is born." +This last statement may be a little too strong, but it will at once +occur to the reader, that as we know the bees DO surpass Mr. +Maclaurin in the power of making honey, they may also surpass him in +capacity for those branches of mathematics with which it has been +their business to be conversant during many millions of years, and +also in knowledge of physiology and psychology in so far as the +knowledge bears upon the interests of their own community. + +We know that the larva which develops into a neuter bee, and that +again which in time becomes a queen bee, are the same kind of larva +to start with; and that if you give one of these larvae the food and +treatment which all its foremothers have been accustomed to, it will +turn out with all the structure and instincts of its foremothers--and +that it only fails to do this because it has been fed, and otherwise +treated, in such a manner as not one of its foremothers was ever yet +fed or treated. So far, this is exactly what we should expect, on +the view that structure and instinct are alike mainly due to memory, +or to medicined memory. Give the larva a fair chance of knowing +where it is, and it shows that it remembers by doing exactly what it +did before. Give it a different kind of food and house, and it +cannot be expected to be anything else than puzzled. It remembers a +great deal. It comes out a bee, and nothing but a bee; but it is an +aborted bee; it is, in fact, mutilated before birth instead of after- +-with instinct, as well as growth, correlated to its abortion, as we +see happens frequently in the case of animals a good deal higher than +bees that have been mutilated at a stage much later than that at +which the abortion of neuter bees commences. + +The larvae being similar to start with, and being similarly +mutilated--i.e., by change of food and dwelling, will naturally +exhibit much similarity of instinct and structure on arriving at +maturity. When driven from their usual course, they must take SOME +new course or die. There is nothing strange in the fact that similar +beings puzzled similarly should take a similar line of action. I +grant, however, that it is hard to see how change of food and +treatment can puzzle an insect into such "complex growth" as that it +should make a cavity in its thigh, grow an invaluable proboscis, and +betray a practical knowledge of difficult mathematical problems. + +But it must be remembered that the memory of having been queen bees +and drones--which is all that according to my supposition the larvae +can remember, (on a first view of the case), in their own proper +persons--would nevertheless carry with it a potential recollection of +all the social arrangements of the hive. They would thus potentially +remember that the mass of the bees were always neuter bees; they +would remember potentially the habits of these bees, so far as drones +and queens know anything about them; and this may be supposed to be a +very thorough acquaintance; in like manner, and with the same +limitation, they would know from the very moment that they left the +queen's body that neuter bees had a proboscis to gather honey with, +and cavities in their thighs to put wax into, and that cells were to +be made with certain angles--for surely it is not crediting the queen +with more knowledge than she is likely to possess, if we suppose her +to have a fair acquaintance with the phenomena of wax and cells +generally, even though she does not make any; they would know (while +still larvae--and earlier) the kind of cells into which neuter bees +were commonly put, and the kind of treatment they commonly received-- +they might therefore, as eggs--immediately on finding their +recollection driven from its usual course, so that they must either +find some other course, or die--know that they were being treated as +neuter bees are treated, and that they were expected to develop into +neuter bees accordingly; they might know all this, and a great deal +more into the bargain, inasmuch as even before being actually +deposited as eggs they would know and remember potentially, but +unconsciously, all that their parents knew and remembered intensely. +Is it, then, astonishing that they should adapt themselves so readily +to the position which they know it is for the social welfare of the +community, and hence of themselves, that they should occupy, and that +they should know that they will want a cavity in their thighs and a +proboscis, and hence make such implements out of their protoplasm as +readily as they make their wings? + +I admit that, under normal treatment, none of the above-mentioned +potential memories would be kindled into such a state of activity +that action would follow upon them, until the creature had attained a +more or less similar condition to that in which its parent was when +these memories were active within its mind: but the essence of the +matter is, that these larvae have been treated ABNORMALLY, so that if +they do not die, there is nothing for it but that they must vary. +One cannot argue from the normal to the abnormal. It would not, +then, be strange if the potential memories should (owing to the +margin for premature or tardy development which association admits) +serve to give the puzzled larvae a hint as to the course which they +had better take, or that, at any rate, it should greatly supplement +the instruction of the "nurse" bees themselves by rendering the +larvae so, as it were, inflammable on this point, that a spark should +set them in a blaze. Abortion is generally premature. Thus the +scars referred to in the last chapter as having appeared on the +children of men who had been correspondingly wounded, should not, +under normal circumstances, have appeared in the offspring till the +children had got fairly near the same condition generally as that in +which their fathers were when they were wounded, and even then, +normally, there should have been an instrument to wound them, much as +their fathers had been wounded. Association, however, does not +always stick to the letter of its bond. + +The line, again, might certainly be taken that the difference in +structure and instincts between neuter and fertile bees is due to the +specific effects of certain food and treatment; yet, though one would +be sorry to set limits to the convertibility of food and genius, it +seems hard to believe that there can be any untutored food which +should teach a bee to make a hexagonal cell as soon as it was born, +or which, before it was born, should teach it to prepare such +structures as it would require in after life. If, then, food be +considered as a direct agent in causing the structures and instinct, +and not an indirect agent, merely indicating to the larva itself that +it is to make itself after the fashion of neuter bees, then we should +bear in mind that, at any rate, it has been leavened and prepared in +the stomachs of those neuter bees into which the larva is now +expected to develop itself, and may thus have in it more true +germinative matter--gemmules, in fact--than is commonly supposed. +Food, when sufficiently assimilated (the whole question turning upon +what IS "sufficiently"), becomes stored with all the experience and +memories of the assimilating creature; corn becomes hen, and knows +nothing but hen, when hen has eaten it. We know also that the neuter +working-bees inject matter into the cell after the larva has been +produced; nor would it seem harsh to suppose that though devoid of a +reproductive system like that of their parents, they may yet be +practically not so neuter as is commonly believed. One cannot say +what gemmules of thigh and proboscis may not have got into the +neutral bees' stomachs, if they assimilate their food sufficiently, +and thus into the larva. + +Mr. Darwin will be the first to admit that though a creature have no +reproductive system, in any ordinary sense of the word, yet every +unit or cell of its body may throw off gemmules which may be free to +move over every part of the whole organism, and which "natural +selection" might in time cause to stray into food which had been +sufficiently prepared in the stomachs of the neuter bees. + +I cannot say, then, precisely in what way, but I can see no reason +for doubting that in some of the ways suggested above, or in some +combination of them, the phenomena of the instincts of neuter ants +and bees can be brought into the same category as the instincts and +structure of fertile animals. At any rate, I see the great fact that +when treated as they have been accustomed to be treated, these +neuters act as though they remembered, and accordingly become queen +bees; and that they only depart from their ancestral course on being +treated in such fashion as their ancestors can never have remembered; +also, that when they have been thrown off their accustomed line of +thought and action, they only take that of their nurses, who have +been about them from the moment of their being deposited as eggs by +the queen bee, who have fed them from their own bodies, and between +whom and them there may have been all manner of physical and mental +communication, of which we know no more than we do of the power which +enables a bee to find its way home after infinite shifting and +turning among flowers, which no human powers could systematise so as +to avoid confusion. + +Or take it thus: We know that mutilation at an early age produces an +effect upon the structure and instincts of cattle, sheep, and horses; +and it might be presumed that if feasible at an earlier age, it would +produce a still more marked effect. We observe that the effect +produced is uniform, or nearly so. Suppose mutilation to produce a +little more effect than it does, as we might easily do, if cattle, +sheep, and horses had been for ages accustomed to a mutilated class +living among them, which class had been always a caste apart, and had +fed the young neuters from their own bodies, from an early embryonic +stage onwards; would any one in this case dream of advancing the +structure and instincts of this mutilated class against the doctrine +that instinct is inherited habit? Or, if inclined to do this, would +he not at once refrain, on remembering that the process of mutilation +might be arrested, and the embryo be developed into an entire animal +by simply treating it in the way to which all its ancestors had been +accustomed? Surely he would not allow the difficulty (which I must +admit in some measure to remain) to outweigh the evidence derivable +from these very neuter insects themselves, as well as from such a +vast number of other sources--all pointing in the direction of +instinct as inherited habit. {5} + +Lastly, it must be remembered that the instinct to make cells and +honey is one which has no very great hold upon its possessors. Bees +CAN make cells and honey, nor do they seem to have any very violent +objection to doing so; but it is quite clear that there is nothing in +their structure and instincts which urges them on to do these things +for the mere love of doing them, as a hen is urged to sit upon a +chalk stone, concerning which she probably is at heart utterly +sceptical, rather than not sit at all. There is no honey and cell- +making instinct so strong as the instinct to eat, if they are hungry, +or to grow wings, and make themselves into bees at all. Like +ourselves, so long as they can get plenty to eat and drink, they will +do no work. Under these circumstances, not one drop of honey nor one +particle of wax will they collect, except, I presume, to make cells +for the rearing of their young. + +Sydney Smith writes:- + +"The most curious instance of a change of instinct is recorded by +Darwin. The bees carried over to Barbadoes and the Western Isles +ceased to lay up any honey after the first year, as they found it not +useful to them. They found the weather so fine, and materials for +making honey so plentiful, that they quitted their grave, prudent, +and mercantile character, became exceedingly profligate and +debauched, ate up their capital, resolved to work no more, and amused +themselves by flying about the sugar-houses and stinging the blacks" +(Lecture XVII. on Moral Philosophy). The ease, then, with which the +honey-gathering and cell-making habits are relinquished, would seem +to point strongly in the direction of their acquisition at a +comparatively late period of development. + +I have dealt with bees only, and not with ants, which would perhaps +seem to present greater difficulty, inasmuch as in some families of +these there are two, or even three, castes of neuters with well- +marked and wide differences of structure and instinct; but I think +the reader will agree with me that the ants are sufficiently covered +by the bees, and that enough, therefore, has been said already. Mr. +Darwin supposes that these modifications of structure and instinct +have been effected by the accumulation of numerous slight, +profitable, spontaneous variations on the part of the fertile +parents, which has caused them (so, at least, I understand him) to +lay this or that particular kind of egg, which should develop into a +kind of bee or ant, with this or that particular instinct, which +instinct is merely a co-ordination with structure, and in no way +attributable to use or habit in preceding generations. + +Even so, one cannot see that the habit of laying this particular kind +of egg might not be due to use and memory in previous generations on +the part of the fertile parents, "for the numerous slight spontaneous +variations," on which "natural selection" is to work, must have had +some cause than which none more reasonable than sense of need and +experience presents itself; and there seems hardly any limit to what +long-continued faith and desire, aided by intelligence, may be able +to effect. But if sense of need and experience are denied, I see no +escape from the view that machines are new species of life. + +Mr. Darwin concludes: "I am surprised that no one has hitherto +advanced this demonstrative case of neuter insects against the well- +known doctrine of inherited habit as advanced by Lamarck" ("Natural +Selection," p. 233, ed. 1876). + +After reading this, one feels as though there was no more to be said. +The well-known doctrine of inherited habit, as advanced by Lamarck, +has indeed been long since so thoroughly exploded, that it is not +worth while to go into an explanation of what it was, or to refute it +in detail. Here, however, is an argument against it, which is so +much better than anything advanced yet, that one is surprised it has +never been made use of; so we will just advance it, as it were, to +slay the slain, and pass on. Such, at least, is the effect which the +paragraph above quoted produced upon myself, and would, I think, +produce on the great majority of readers. When driven by the +exigencies of my own position to examine the value of the +demonstration more closely, I conclude, either that I have utterly +failed to grasp Mr. Darwin's meaning, or that I have no less +completely mistaken the value and bearing of the facts I have myself +advanced in these few last pages. Failing this, my surprise is, not +that "no one has hitherto advanced" the instincts of neuter insects +as a demonstrative case against the doctrine of inherited habit, but +rather that Mr. Darwin should have thought the case demonstrative; or +again, when I remember that the neuter working bee is only an aborted +queen, and may be turned back again into a queen, by giving it such +treatment as it can alone be expected to remember--then I am +surprised that the structure and instincts of neuter bees has never +(if never) been brought forward in support of the doctrine of +inherited habit as advanced by Lamarck, and against any theory which +would rob such instincts of their foundation in intelligence, and of +their connection with experience and memory. + +As for the instinct to mutilate, that is as easily accounted for as +any other inherited habit, whether of man to mutilate cattle, or of +ants to make slaves, or of birds to make their nests. I can see no +way of accounting for the existence of any one of these instincts, +except on the supposition that they have arisen gradually, through +perceptions of power and need on the part of the animal which +exhibits them--these two perceptions advancing hand in hand from +generation to generation, and being accumulated in time and in the +common course of nature. + +I have already sufficiently guarded against being supposed to +maintain that very long before an instinct or structure was +developed, the creature descried it in the far future, and made +towards it. We do not observe this to be the manner of human +progress. Our mechanical inventions, which, as I ventured to say in +"Erewhon," through the mouth of the second professor, are really +nothing but extra-corporaneous limbs--a wooden leg being nothing but +a bad kind of flesh leg, and a flesh leg being only a much better +kind of wooden leg than any creature could be expected to manufacture +introspectively and consciously--our mechanical inventions have +almost invariably grown up from small beginnings, and without any +very distant foresight on the part of the inventors. When Watt +perfected the steam engine, he did not, it seems, foresee the +locomotive, much less would any one expect a savage to invent a steam +engine. A child breathes automatically, because it has learnt to +breathe little by little, and has now breathed for an incalculable +length of time; but it cannot open oysters at all, nor even conceive +the idea of opening oysters for two or three years after it is born, +for the simple reason that this lesson is one which it is only +beginning to learn. All I maintain is, that, give a child as many +generations of practice in opening oysters as it has had in breathing +or sucking, and it would on being born, turn to the oyster-knife no +less naturally than to the breast. We observe that among certain +families of men there has been a tendency to vary in the direction of +the use and development of machinery; and that in a certain still +smaller number of families, there seems to be an almost infinitely +great capacity for varying and inventing still further, whether +socially or mechanically; while other families, and perhaps the +greater number, reach a certain point and stop; but we also observe +that not even the most inventive races ever see very far ahead. I +suppose the progress of plants and animals to be exactly analogous to +this. + +Mr. Darwin has always maintained that the effects of use and disuse +are highly important in the development of structure, and if, as he +has said, habits are sometimes inherited--then they should sometimes +be important also in the development of instinct, or habit. But what +does the development of an instinct or structure, or, indeed, any +effect upon the organism produced by "use and disuse," imply? It +implies an effect produced by a desire to do something for which the +organism was not originally well adapted or sufficient, but for which +it has come to be sufficient in consequence of the desire. The wish +has been father to the power; but this again opens up the whole +theory of Lamarck, that the development of organs has been due to the +wants or desires of the animal in which the organ appears. So far as +I can see, I am insisting on little more than this. + +Once grant that a blacksmith's arm grows thicker through hammering +iron, and you have an organ modified in accordance with a need or +wish. Let the desire and the practice be remembered, and go on for +long enough, and the slight alterations of the organ will be +accumulated, until they are checked either by the creature's having +got all that he cares about making serious further effort to obtain, +or until his wants prove inconvenient to other creatures that are +stronger than he, and he is hence brought to a standstill. Use and +disuse, then, with me, and, as I gather also, with Lamarck, are the +keys to the position, coupled, of course, with continued personality +and memory. No sudden and striking changes would be effected, except +that occasionally a blunder might prove a happy accident, as happens +not unfrequently with painters, musicians, chemists, and inventors at +the present day; or sometimes a creature, with exceptional powers of +memory or reflection, would make his appearance in this race or in +that. We all profit by our accidents as well as by our more cunning +contrivances, so that analogy would point in the direction of +thinking that many of the most happy thoughts in the animal and +vegetable kingdom were originated much as certain discoveries that +have been made by accident among ourselves. These would be +originally blind variations, though even so, probably less blind than +we think, if we could know the whole truth. When originated, they +would be eagerly taken advantage of and improved upon by the animal +in whom they appeared; but it cannot be supposed that they would be +very far in advance of the last step gained, more than are those +"flukes" which sometimes enable us to go so far beyond our own +ordinary powers. For if they were, the animal would despair of +repeating them. No creature hopes, or even wishes, for very much +more than he has been accustomed to all his life, he and his family, +and the others whom he can understand, around him. It has been well +said that "enough" is always "a little more than one has." We do not +try for things which we believe to be beyond our reach, hence one +would expect that the fortunes, as it were, of animals should have +been built up gradually. Our own riches grow with our desires and +the pains we take in pursuit of them, and our desires vary and +increase with our means of gratifying them; but unless with men of +exceptional business aptitude, wealth grows gradually by the adding +field to field and farm to farm; so with the limbs and instincts of +animals; these are but the things they have made or bought with their +money, or with money that has been left them by their forefathers, +which, though it is neither silver nor gold, but faith and protoplasm +only, is good money and capital notwithstanding. + +I have already admitted that instinct may be modified by food or +drugs, which may affect a structure or habit as powerfully as we see +certain poisons affect the structure of plants by producing, as Mr. +Darwin tells us, very complex galls upon their leaves. I do not, +therefore, for a moment insist on habit as the sole cause of +instinct. Every habit must have had its originating cause, and the +causes which have started one habit will from time to time start or +modify others; nor can I explain why some individuals of a race +should be cleverer than others, any more than I can explain why they +should exist at all; nevertheless, I observe it to be a fact that +differences in intelligence and power of growth are universal in the +individuals of all those races which we can best watch. I also most +readily admit that the common course of nature would both cause many +variations to arise independently of any desire on the part of the +animal (much as we have lately seen that the moons of Mars were on +the point of being discovered three hundred years ago, merely through +Galileo sending to Kepler a Latin anagram which Kepler could not +understand, and arranged into the line--"Salve umbistineum geminatum +Martia prolem," and interpreted to mean that Mars had two moons, +whereas Galileo had meant to say "Altissimum planetam tergeminum +observavi," meaning that he had seen Saturn's ring), and would also +preserve and accumulate such variations when they had arisen; but I +can no more believe that the wonderful adaptation of structures to +needs, which we see around us in such an infinite number of plants +and animals, can have arisen without a perception of those needs on +the part of the creature in whom the structure appears, than I can +believe that the form of the dray-horse or greyhound--so well adapted +both to the needs of the animal in his daily service to man, and to +the desires of man, that the creature should do him this daily +service--can have arisen without any desire on man's part to produce +this particular structure, or without the inherited habit of +performing the corresponding actions for man, on the part of the +greyhound and dray-horse. + +And I believe that this will be felt as reasonable by the great +majority of my readers. I believe that nine fairly intelligent and +observant men out of ten, if they were asked which they thought most +likely to have been the main cause of the development of the various +phases either of structure or instinct which we see around us, +namely--sense of need, or even whim, and hence occasional discovery, +helped by an occasional piece of good luck, communicated, it may be, +and generally adopted, long practised, remembered by offspring, +modified by changed surroundings, and accumulated in the course of +time--or, the accumulation of small divergent, indefinite, and +perfectly unintelligent variations, preserved through the survival of +their possessor in the struggle for existence, and hence in time +leading to wide differences from the original type--would answer in +favour of the former alternative; and if for no other cause yet for +this--that in the human race, which we are best able to watch, and +between which and the lower animals no difference in kind will, I +think, be supposed, but only in degree, we observe that progress must +have an internal current setting in a definite direction, but whither +we know not for very long beforehand; and that without such internal +current there is stagnation. Our own progress--or variation--is due +not to small, fortuitous inventions or modifications which have +enabled their fortunate possessors to survive in times of difficulty, +not, in fact, to strokes of luck (though these, of course, have had +some effect--but not more, probably, than strokes of ill luck have +counteracted) but to strokes of cunning--to a sense of need, and to +study of the past and present which have given shrewd people a key +with which to unlock the chambers of the future. + +Further, Mr. Darwin himself says ("Plants and Animals under +Domestication," ii. p. 237, ed. 1875):- + +"But I think we must take a broader view and conclude that organic +beings when subjected during several generations to any change +whatever in their conditions tend to vary: THE KIND OF VARIATION +WHICH ENSUES DEPENDING IN MOST CASES IN A FAR HIGHER DEGREE ON THE +NATURE OR CONSTITUTION OF THE BEING, THAN ON THE NATURE OF THE +CHANGED CONDITIONS." And this we observe in man. The history of a +man prior to his birth is more important as far as his success or +failure goes than his surroundings after birth, important though +these may indeed be. The able man rises in spite of a thousand +hindrances, the fool fails in spite of every advantage. "Natural +selection," however, does not make either the able man or the fool. +It only deals with him after other causes have made him, and would +seem in the end to amount to little more than to a statement of the +fact that when variations have arisen they will accumulate. One +cannot look, as has already been said, for the origin of species in +that part of the course of nature which settles the preservation or +extinction of variations which have already arisen from some unknown +cause, but one must look for it in the causes that have led to +variation at all. These causes must get, as it were, behind the back +of "natural selection," which is rather a shield and hindrance to our +perception of our own ignorance than an explanation of what these +causes are. + +The remarks made above will apply equally to plants such as the +misletoe and red clover. For the sake of brevity I will deal only +with the misletoe, which seems to be the more striking case. Mr. +Darwin writes:- + +"Naturalists continually refer to external conditions, such as +climate, food, &c., as the only possible cause of variation. In one +limited sense, as we shall hereafter see, this may be true; but it is +preposterous to attribute to mere external conditions, the structure, +for instance, of the woodpecker, with its feet, tail, beak, and +tongue, so admirably adapted to catch insects under the bark of +trees. In the case of the misletoe, which draws its nourishment from +certain trees, which has seeds that must be transported by certain +birds, and which has flowers with separate sexes absolutely requiring +the agency of certain insects to bring pollen from one flower to +another, it is equally preposterous to account for the structure of +this parasite with its relations to several distinct organic beings, +by the effect of external conditions, or of habit, or of the volition +of the plant itself" ("Natural Selection," p. 3, ed. 1876). + +I cannot see this. To me it seems still more preposterous to account +for it by the action of "natural selection" operating upon indefinite +variations. It would be preposterous to suppose that a bird very +different from a woodpecker should have had a conception of a +woodpecker, and so by volition gradually grown towards it. So in +like manner with the misletoe. Neither plant nor bird knew how far +they were going, or saw more than a very little ahead as to the means +of remedying this or that with which they were dissatisfied, or of +getting this or that which they desired; but given perceptions at +all, and thus a sense of needs and of the gratification of those +needs, and thus hope and fear, and a sense of content and discontent- +-given also the lowest power of gratifying those needs--given also +that some individuals have these powers in a higher degree than +others--given also continued personality and memory over a vast +extent of time--and the whole phenomena of species and genera resolve +themselves into an illustration of the old proverb, that what is one +man's meat is another man's poison. Life in its lowest form under +the above conditions--and we cannot conceive of life at all without +them--would be bound to vary, and to result after not so very many +millions of years in the infinite forms and instincts which we see +around us. + + + +CHAPTER XIII--LAMARCK AND MR. DARWIN + + + +It will have been seen that in the preceding pages the theory of +evolution, as originally propounded by Lamarck, has been more than +once supported, as against the later theory concerning it put forward +by Mr. Darwin, and now generally accepted. + +It is not possible for me, within the limits at my command, to do +anything like justice to the arguments that may be brought forward in +favour of either of these two theories. Mr. Darwin's books are at +the command of every one; and so much has been discovered since +Lamarck's day, that if he were living now, he would probably state +his case very differently; I shall therefore content myself with a +few brief remarks, which will hardly, however, aspire to the dignity +of argument. + +According to Mr. Darwin, differentiations of structure and instinct +have mainly come about through the accumulation of small, fortuitous +variations without intelligence or desire upon the part of the +creature varying; modification, however, through desire and sense of +need, is not denied entirely, inasmuch as considerable effect is +ascribed by Mr. Darwin to use and disuse, which involves, as has been +already said, the modification of a structure in accordance with the +wishes of its possessor. + +According to Lamarck, genera and species have been evolved, in the +main, by exactly the same process as that by which human inventions +and civilisations are now progressing; and this involves that +intelligence, ingenuity, heroism, and all the elements of romance, +should have had the main share in the development of every herb and +living creature around us. + +I take the following brief outline of the most important part of +Lamarck's theory from vol. xxxvi. of the Naturalist's Library +(Edinburgh, 1843):- + +"The more simple bodies," says the editor, giving Lamarck's opinion +without endorsing it, "are easily formed, and this being the case, it +is easy to conceive how in the lapse of time animals of a more +complex structure should be produced, FOR IT MUST BE ADMITTED AS A +FUNDAMENTAL LAW, THAT THE PRODUCTION OF A NEW ORGAN IN AN ANIMAL BODY +RESULTS FROM ANY NEW WANT OR DESIRE IT MAY EXPERIENCE. The first +effort of a being just beginning to develop itself must be to procure +subsistence, and hence in time there comes to be produced a stomach +or alimentary cavity." (Thus we saw that the amoeba is in the habit +of "extemporising" a stomach when it wants one.) "Other wants +occasioned by circumstances will lead to other efforts, which in +their turn will generate new organs." + +Lamarck's wonderful conception was hampered by an unnecessary +adjunct, namely, a belief in an inherent tendency towards progressive +development in every low organism. He was thus driven to account for +the presence of many very low and very ancient organisms at the +present day, and fell back upon the theory, which is not yet +supported by evidence, that such low forms are still continually +coming into existence from inorganic matter. But there seems no +necessity to suppose that all low forms should possess an inherent +tendency towards progression. It would be enough that there should +occasionally arise somewhat more gifted specimens of one or more +original forms. These would vary, and the ball would be thus set +rolling, while the less gifted would remain in statu quo, provided +they were sufficiently gifted to escape extinction. + +Nor do I gather that Lamarck insisted on continued personality and +memory so as to account for heredity at all, and so as to see life as +a single, or as at any rate, only a few, vast compound animals, but +without the connecting organism between each component item in the +whole creature, which is found in animals that are strictly called +compound. Until continued personality and memory are connected with +the idea of heredity, heredity of any kind is little more than a term +for something which one does not understand. But there seems little +a priori difficulty as regards Lamarck's main idea, now that Mr. +Darwin has familiarised us with evolution, and made us feel what a +vast array of facts can be brought forward in support of it. + +Mr. Darwin tells us, in the preface to his last edition of the +"Origin of Species," that Lamarck was partly led to his conclusions +by the analogy of domestic productions. It is rather hard to say +what these words imply; they may mean anything from a baby to an +apple dumpling, but if they imply that Lamarck drew inspirations from +the gradual development of the mechanical inventions of man, and from +the progress of man's ideas, I would say that of all sources this +would seem to be the safest and most fertile from which to draw. + +Plants and animals under domestication are indeed a suggestive field +for study, but machines are the manner in which man is varying at +this moment. We know how our own minds work, and how our mechanical +organisations--for, in all sober seriousness, this is what it comes +to--have progressed hand in hand with our desires; sometimes the +power a little ahead, and sometimes the desire; sometimes both +combining to form an organ with almost infinite capacity for +variation, and sometimes comparatively early reaching the limit of +utmost development in respect of any new conception, and accordingly +coming to a full stop; sometimes making leaps and bounds, and +sometimes advancing sluggishly. Here we are behind the scenes, and +can see how the whole thing works. We have man, the very animal +which we can best understand, caught in the very act of variation, +through his own needs, and not through the needs of others; the whole +process is a natural one; the varying of a creature as much in a wild +state as the ants and butterflies are wild. There is less occasion +here for the continual "might be" and "may be," which we are +compelled to put up with when dealing with plants and animals, of the +workings of whose minds we can only obscurely judge. Also, there is +more prospect of pecuniary profit attaching to the careful study of +machinery than can be generally hoped for from the study of the lower +animals; and though I admit that this consideration should not be +carried too far, a great deal of very unnecessary suffering will be +spared to the lower animals; for much that passes for natural history +is little better than prying into other people's business, from no +other motive than curiosity. I would, therefore, strongly advise the +reader to use man, and the present races of man, and the growing +inventions and conceptions of man, as his guide, if he would seek to +form an independent judgement on the development of organic life. +For all growth is only somebody making something. + +Lamarck's theories fell into disrepute, partly because they were too +startling to be capable of ready fusion with existing ideas; they +were, in fact, too wide a cross for fertility; partly because they +fell upon evil times, during the reaction that followed the French +Revolution; partly because, unless I am mistaken, he did not +sufficiently link on the experience of the race to that of the +individual, nor perceive the importance of the principle that +consciousness, memory, volition, intelligence, &c., vanish, or become +latent, on becoming intense. He also appears to have mixed up matter +with his system, which was either plainly wrong, or so incapable of +proof as to enable people to laugh at him, and pooh-pooh him; but I +believe it will come to be perceived, that he has received somewhat +scant justice at the hands of his successors, and that his "crude +theories," as they have been somewhat cheaply called, are far from +having had their last say. + +Returning to Mr. Darwin, we find, as we have already seen, that it is +hard to say exactly how much Mr. Darwin differs from Lamarck, and how +much he agrees with him. Mr. Darwin has always maintained that use +and disuse are highly important, and this implies that the effect +produced on the parent should be remembered by the offspring, in the +same way as the memory of a wound is transmitted by one set of cells +to succeeding ones, who long repeat the scar, though it may fade +finally away. Also, after dealing with the manner in which one eye +of a young flat-fish travels round the head till both eyes are on the +same side of the fish, he gives ("Natural Selection," p. 188, ed. +1875) an instance of a structure "which apparently owes its origin +exclusively to use or habit." He refers to the tail of some American +monkeys "which has been converted into a wonderfully perfect +prehensile organ, and serves as a fifth hand. A reviewer," he +continues, . . . "remarks on this structure--'It is impossible to +believe that in any number of ages the first slight incipient +tendency to grasp, could preserve the lives of the individuals +possessing it, or favour their chance of having and of rearing +offspring.' But there is no necessity for any such belief. Habit, +and this almost implies that some benefit, great or small, is thus +derived, would in all probability suffice for the work." If, then, +habit can do this--and it is no small thing to develop a wonderfully +perfect prehensile organ which can serve as a fifth hand--how much +more may not habit do, even though unaided, as Mr. Darwin supposes to +have been the case in this instance, by "natural selection"? After +attributing many of the structural and instinctive differences of +plants and animals to the effects of use--as we may plainly do with +Mr. Darwin's own consent--after attributing a good deal more to +unknown causes, and a good deal to changed conditions, which are +bound, if at all important, to result either in sterility or +variation--how much of the work of originating species is left for +natural selection?--which, as Mr. Darwin admits ("Natural Selection," +p. 63, ed. 1876), does not INDUCE VARIABILITY, but "implies only the +preservation of SUCH VARIATIONS AS ARISE, and are beneficial to the +being under its conditions of life?" An important part assuredly, +and one which we can never sufficiently thank Mr. Darwin for having +put so forcibly before us, but an indirect part only, like the part +played by time and space, and not, I think, the one which Mr. Darwin +would assign to it. + +Mr. Darwin himself has admitted that in the earlier editions of his +"Origin of Species" he "underrated, as it now seems probable, the +frequency and importance of modifications due to spontaneous +variability." And this involves the having over-rated the action of +"natural selection" as an agent in the evolution of species. But one +gathers that he still believes the accumulation of small and +fortuitous variations through the agency of "natural selection" to be +the main cause of the present divergencies of structure and instinct. +I do not, however, think that Mr. Darwin is clear about his own +meaning. I think the prominence given to "natural selection" in +connection with the "origin of species" has led him, in spite of +himself, and in spite of his being on his guard (as is clearly shown +by the paragraph on page 63 "Natural Selection," above referred to), +to regard "natural selection" as in some way accounting for +variation, just as the use of the dangerous word "spontaneous,"-- +though he is so often on his guard against it, and so frequently +prefaces it with the words "so-called,"--would seem to have led him +into very serious confusion of thought in the passage quoted at the +beginning of this paragraph. + +For after saying that he had underrated "the frequency and importance +of modifications due to spontaneous variability," he continues, "but +it is impossible to attribute to this cause the innumerable +structures which are so well adapted to the habits of life of each +species." That is to say, it is impossible to attribute these +innumerable structures to spontaneous variability. + +What IS spontaneous variability? + +Clearly, from his preceding paragraph, Mr. Darwin means only "so- +called spontaneous variations," such as "the appearance of a moss- +rose on a common rose, or of a nectarine on a peach-tree," which he +gives as good examples of so-called spontaneous variation. + +And these variations are, after all, due to causes, but to unknown +causes; spontaneous variation being, in fact, but another name for +variation due to causes which we know nothing about, but in no +possible sense a CAUSE OF VARIATION. So that when we come to put +clearly before our minds exactly what the sentence we are considering +amounts to, it comes to this: that it is impossible to attribute the +innumerable structures which are so well adapted to the habits of +life of each species to UNKNOWN CAUSES. + +"I can no more believe in THIS," continues Mr. Darwin, "than that the +well-adapted form of a race-horse or greyhound, which, before the +principle of selection by man was well understood, excited so much +surprise in the minds of the older naturalists, can THUS be +explained" ("Natural Selection," p. 171, ed. 1876). + +Or, in other words, "I can no more believe that the well-adapted +structures of species are due to unknown causes, than I can believe +that the well-adapted form of a race-horse can be explained by being +attributed to unknown causes. + +I have puzzled over this paragraph for several hours with the +sincerest desire to get at the precise idea which underlies it, but +the more I have studied it the more convinced I am that it does not +contain, or at any rate convey, any clear or definite idea at all. +If I thought it was a mere slip, I should not call attention to it; +this book will probably have slips enough of its own without +introducing those of a great man unnecessarily; but I submit that it +is necessary to call attention to it here, inasmuch as it is +impossible to believe that after years of reflection upon his +subject, Mr. Darwin should have written as above, especially in such +a place, if his mind was really clear about his own position. +Immediately after the admission of a certain amount of +miscalculation, there comes a more or less exculpatory sentence which +sounds so right that ninety-nine people out of a hundred would walk +through it, unless led by some exigency of their own position to +examine it closely but which yet upon examination proves to be as +nearly meaningless as a sentence can be. + +The weak point in Mr. Darwin's theory would seem to be a deficiency, +so to speak, of motive power to originate and direct the variations +which time is to accumulate. It deals admirably with the +accumulation of variations in creatures already varying, but it does +not provide a sufficient number of sufficiently important variations +to be accumulated. Given the motive power which Lamarck suggested, +and Mr. Darwin's mechanism would appear (with the help of memory, as +bearing upon reproduction, of continued personality, and hence of +inherited habit, and of the vanishing tendency of consciousness) to +work with perfect ease. Mr. Darwin has made us all feel that in some +way or other variations ARE ACCUMULATED, and that evolution is the +true solution of the present widely different structures around us, +whereas, before he wrote, hardly any one believed this. However we +may differ from him in detail, the present general acceptance of +evolution must remain as his work, and a more valuable work can +hardly be imagined. Nevertheless, I cannot think that "natural +selection," working upon small, fortuitous, indefinite, unintelligent +variations, would produce the results we see around us. One wants +something that will give a more definite aim to variations, and +hence, at times, cause bolder leaps in advance. One cannot but doubt +whether so many plants and animals would be being so continually +saved "by the skin of their teeth," as must be so saved if the +variations from which genera ultimately arise are as small in their +commencement and at each successive stage as Mr. Darwin seems to +believe. God--to use the language of the Bible--is not extreme to +mark what is done amiss, whether with plant or beast or man; on the +other hand, when towers of Siloam fall, they fall on the just as well +as the unjust. + +One feels, on considering Mr. Darwin's position, that if it be +admitted that there is in the lowest creature a power to vary, no +matter how small, one has got in this power as near the "origin of +species" as one can ever hope to get. For no one professes to +account for the origin of life; but if a creature with a power to +vary reproduces itself at all, it must reproduce another creature +WHICH SHALL ALSO HAVE THE POWER TO VARY; so that, given time and +space enough, there is no knowing where such a creature could or +would stop. + +If the primordial cell had been only capable of reproducing itself +once, there would have followed a single line of descendants, the +chain of which might at any moment have been broken by casualty. +Doubtless the millionth repetition would have differed very +materially from the original--as widely, perhaps, as we differ from +the primordial cell; but it would only have differed by addition, and +could no more in any generation resume its latest development without +having passed through the initial stage of being what its first +forefather was, and doing what its first forefather did, and without +going through all or a sufficient number of the steps whereby it had +reached its latest differentiation, than water can rise above its own +level. + +The very idea, then, of reproduction involves, unless I am mistaken, +that, no matter how much the creature reproducing itself may gain in +power and versatility, it must still always begin WITH ITSELF AGAIN +in each generation. The primordial cell being capable of reproducing +itself not only once, but many times over, each of the creatures +which it produces must be similarly gifted; hence the geometrical +ratio of increase and the existing divergence of type. In each +generation it will pass rapidly and unconsciously through all the +earlier stages of which there has been infinite experience, and for +which the conditions are reproduced with sufficient similarity to +cause no failure of memory or hesitation; but in each generation, +when it comes to the part in which the course is not so clear, it +will become conscious; still, however, where the course is plain, as +in breathing, digesting, &c., retaining unconsciousness. Thus organs +which present all the appearance of being designed--as, for example, +the tip for its beak prepared by the embryo chicken--would be +prepared in the end, as it were, by rote, and without sense of +design, though none the less owing their origin to design. + +The question is not concerning evolution, but as to the main cause +which has led to evolution in such and such shapes. To me it seems +that the "Origin of Variation," whatever it is, is the only true +"Origin of Species," and that this must, as Lamarck insisted, be +looked for in the needs and experiences of the creatures varying. +Unless we can explain the origin of variations, we are met by the +unexplained AT EVERY STEP in the progress of a creature from its +original homogeneous condition to its differentiation, we will say, +as an elephant; so that to say that an elephant has become an +elephant through the accumulation of a vast number of small, +fortuitous, but unexplained, variations in some lower creatures, is +really to say that it has become an elephant owing to a series of +causes about which we know nothing whatever, or, in other words, that +one does not know how it came to be an elephant. But to say that an +elephant has become an elephant owing to a series of variations, +nine-tenths of which were caused by the wishes of the creature or +creatures from which the elephant is descended--this is to offer a +reason, and definitely put the insoluble one step further back. The +question will then turn upon the sufficiency of the reason--that is +to say, whether the hypothesis is borne out by facts. + +The effects of competition would, of course, have an extremely +important effect upon any creature, in the same way as any other +condition of nature under which it lived, must affect its sense of +need and its opinions generally. The results of competition would +be, as it were, the decisions of an arbiter settling the question +whether such and such variation was really to the animal's advantage +or not--a matter on which the animal will, on the whole, have formed +a pretty fair judgement for itself. UNDOUBTEDLY THE PAST DECISIONS +OF SUCH AN ARBITER WOULD AFFECT THE CONDUCT OF THE CREATURE, which +would have doubtless had its shortcomings and blunders, and would +amend them. The creature would shape its course according to its +experience of the common course of events, but it would be +continually trying and often successfully, to evade the law by all +manner of sharp practice. New precedents would thus arise, so that +the law would shift with time and circumstances; but the law would +not otherwise direct the channels into which life would flow, than as +laws, whether natural or artificial, have affected the development of +the widely differing trades and professions among mankind. These +have had their origin rather in the needs and experiences of mankind +than in any laws. + +To put much the same as the above in different words. Assume that +small favourable variations are preserved more commonly, in +proportion to their numbers, than is perhaps the case, and assume +that considerable variations occur more rarely than they probably do +occur, how account for any variation at all? "Natural selection" +cannot CREATE the smallest variation unless it acts through +perception of its mode of operation, recognised inarticulately, but +none the less clearly, by the creature varying. "Natural selection" +operates on what it finds, and not on what it has made. Animals that +have been wise and lucky live longer and breed more than others less +wise and lucky. Assuredly. The wise and lucky animals transmit +their wisdom and luck. Assuredly. They add to their powers, and +diverge into widely different directions. Assuredly. What is the +cause of this? Surely the fact that they were capable of feeling +needs, and that they differed in their needs and manner of gratifying +them, and that they continued to live in successive generations, +rather than the fact that when lucky and wise they thrived and bred +more descendants. This last is an accessory hardly less important +for the DEVELOPMENT of species than the fact of the continuation of +life at all; but it is an accessory of much the same kind as this, +for if animals continue to live at all, they must live IN SOME WAY, +and will find that there are good ways and bad ways of living. An +animal which discovers the good way will gradually develop further +powers, and so species will get further and further apart; but the +origin of this is to be looked for, not in the power which decides +whether this or that way was good, but in the cause which determines +the creature, consciously or unconsciously, to try this or that way. + +But Mr. Darwin might say that this is not a fair way of stating the +issue. He might say, "You beg the question; you assume that there is +an inherent tendency in animals towards progressive development, +whereas I say that there is no good evidence of any such tendency. I +maintain that the differences that have from time to time arisen have +come about mainly from causes so far beyond our ken, that we can only +call them spontaneous; and if so, natural selection which you must +allow to have at any rate played an important part in the +ACCUMULATION of variations, must also be allowed to be the nearest +thing to the cause of Specific differences, which we are able to +arrive at." + +Thus he writes ("Natural Selection," p. 176, ed. 1876): "Although we +have no good evidence of the existence in organic beings of a +tendency towards progressive development, yet this necessarily +follows, as I have attempted to show in the fourth chapter, through +the continued action of natural selection." Mr. Darwin does not say +that organic beings have no tendency to vary at all, but only that +there is no good evidence that they have a tendency to progressive +development, which, I take it, means, to see an ideal a long way off, +and very different to their present selves, which ideal they think +will suit them, and towards which they accordingly make. I would +admit this as contrary to all experience. I doubt whether plants and +animals have any INNATE TENDENCY TO VARY at all, being led to +question this by gathering from "Plants and Animals under +Domestication" that this is Mr. Darwin's own opinion. I am inclined +rather to think that they have only an innate POWER TO VARY slightly, +in accordance with changed conditions, and an innate capability of +being affected both in structure and instinct, by causes similar to +those which we observe to affect ourselves. But however this may be, +they do vary somewhat, and unless they did, they would not in time +have come to be so widely different from each other as they now are. +The question is as to the origin and character of these variations. + +We say they mainly originate in a creature through a sense of its +needs, and vary through the varying surroundings which will cause +those needs to vary, and through the opening up of new desires in +many creatures, as the consequence of the gratification of old ones; +they depend greatly on differences of individual capacity and +temperament; they are communicated, and in the course of time +transmitted, as what we call hereditary habits or structures, though +these are only, in truth, intense and epitomised memories of how +certain creatures liked to deal with protoplasm. The question +whether this or that is really good or ill, is settled, as the proof +of the pudding by the eating thereof, i.e., by the rigorous +competitive examinations through which most living organisms must +pass. Mr. Darwin says that there is no good evidence in support of +any great principle, or tendency on the part of the creature itself, +which would steer variation, as it were, and keep its head straight, +but that the most marvellous adaptations of structures to needs are +simply the result of small and blind variations, accumulated by the +operation of "natural selection," which is thus the main cause of the +origin of species. + +Enough has perhaps already been said to make the reader feel that the +question wants reopening; I shall, therefore, here only remark that +we may assume no fundamental difference as regards intelligence, +memory, and sense of needs to exist between man and the lowest +animals, and that in man we do distinctly see a tendency towards +progressive development, operating through his power of profiting by +and transmitting his experience, but operating in directions which +man cannot foresee for any long distance. We also see this in many +of the higher animals under domestication, as with horses which have +learnt to canter and dogs which point; more especially we observe it +along the line of latest development, where equilibrium of settled +convictions has not yet been fully attained. One neither finds nor +expects much a priori knowledge, whether in man or beast; but one +does find some little in the beginnings of, and throughout the +development of, every habit, at the commencement of which, and on +every successive improvement in which, deductive and inductive +methods are, as it were, fused. Thus the effect, where we can best +watch its causes, seems mainly produced by a desire for a definite +object--in some cases a serious and sensible desire, in others an +idle one, in others, again, a mistaken one; and sometimes by a +blunder which, in the hands of an otherwise able creature, has turned +up trumps. In wild animals and plants the divergences have been +accumulated, if they answered to the prolonged desires of the +creature itself, and if these desires were to its true ultimate good; +with plants or animals under domestication they have been accumulated +if they answered a little to the original wishes of the creature, and +much, to the wishes of man. As long as man continued to like them, +they would be advantageous to the creature; when he tired of them, +they would be disadvantageous to it, and would accumulate no longer. +Surely the results produced in the adaptation of structure to need +among many plants and insects are better accounted for on this, which +I suppose to be Lamarck's view, namely, by supposing that what goes +on amongst ourselves has gone on amongst all creatures, than by +supposing that these adaptations are the results of perfectly blind +and unintelligent variations. + +Let me give two examples of such adaptations, taken from Mr. St. +George Mivart's "Genesis of Species," to which work I would wish +particularly to call the reader's attention. He should also read Mr. +Darwin's answers to Mr. Mivart (p. 176, "Natural Selection," ed. +1876, and onwards). + +Mr. Mivart writes:- + +"Some insects which imitate leaves extend the imitation even to the +very injuries on those leaves made by the attacks of insects or +fungi. Thus speaking of the walking-stick insects, Mr. Wallace says, +'One of these creatures obtained by myself in Borneo (ceroxylus +laceratus) was covered over with foliaceous excrescences of a clear +olive green colour, so as exactly to resemble a stick grown over by a +creeping moss or jungermannia. The Dyak who brought it me assured me +it was grown over with moss, though alive, and it was only after a +most minute examination that I could convince myself it was not so.' +Again, as to the leaf butterfly, he says, 'We come to a still more +extraordinary part of the imitation, for we find representations of +leaves in every stage of decay, variously blotched, and mildewed, and +pierced with holes, and in many cases irregularly covered with +powdery black dots, gathered into patches and spots so closely +resembling the various kinds of minute fungi that grow on dead +leaves, that it is impossible to avoid thinking at first sight that +the butterflies themselves have been attacked by real fungi.'" + +I can no more believe that these artificial fungi in which the moth +arrays itself are due to the accumulation of minute, perfectly blind, +and unintelligent variations, than I can believe that the artificial +flowers which a woman wears in her hat can have got there without +design; or that a detective puts on plain clothes without the +slightest intention of making his victim think that he is not a +policeman. + +Again Mr. Mivart writes:- + +"In the work just referred to ('The Fertilisation of Orchids'), Mr. +Darwin gives a series of the most wonderful and minute contrivances, +by which the visits of insects are utilised for the fertilisation of +orchids--structures so wonderful that nothing could well be more so, +except the attribution of their origin to minute, fortuitous, and +indefinite variations. + +"The instances are too numerous and too long to quote, but in his +'Origin of Species' he describes two which must not be passed over. +In one (coryanthes) the orchid has its lower lip enlarged into a +bucket, above which stand two water-secreting horns. These latter +replenish the bucket, from which, when half-filled, the water +overflows by a spout on one side. Bees visiting the flower fall into +the bucket and crawl out at the spout. By the peculiar arrangement +of the parts of the flower, the first bee which does so, carries away +the pollen mass glued to his back, and then when he has his next +involuntary bath in another flower, as he crawls out, the pollen +attached to him comes in contact with the stigma of that second +flower and fertilises it. In the other example (catasetum), when a +bee gnaws a certain part of the flower, he inevitably touches a long +delicate projection which Mr. Darwin calls the 'antenna.' 'This +antenna transmits a vibration to a membrane which is instantly +ruptured; this sets free a spring by which the pollen mass is shot +forth like an arrow in the right direction, and adheres by its viscid +extremity to the back of the bee'" ("Genesis of Species," p. 63). + +No one can tell a story so charmingly as Mr. Darwin, but I can no +more believe that all this has come about without design on the part +of the orchid, and a gradual perception of the advantages it is able +to take over the bee, and a righteous determination to enjoy them, +than I can believe that a mousetrap or a steam-engine is the result +of the accumulation of blind minute fortuitous variations in a +creature called man, which creature has never wanted either +mousetraps or steam-engines, but has had a sort of promiscuous +tendency to make them, and was benefited by making them, so that +those of the race who had a tendency to make them survived and left +issue, which issue would thus naturally tend to make more mousetraps +and more steam-engines. + +Pursuing this idea still further, can we for a moment believe that +these additions to our limbs--for this is what they are--have mainly +come about through the occasional birth of individuals, who, without +design on their own parts, nevertheless made them better or worse, +and who, accordingly, either survived and transmitted their +improvement, or perished, they and their incapacity together? + +When I can believe in this, then--and not till then--can I believe in +an origin of species which does not resolve itself mainly into sense +of need, faith, intelligence, and memory. Then, and not till then, +can I believe that such organs as the eye and ear can have arisen in +any other way than as the result of that kind of mental ingenuity, +and of moral as well as physical capacity, without which, till then, +I should have considered such an invention as the steam-engine to be +impossible. + + + +CHAPTER XIV--MR. MIVART AND MR. DARWIN + + + +"A distinguished zoologist, Mr. St. George Mivart," writes Mr. +Darwin, "has recently collected all the objections which have ever +been advanced by myself and others against the theory of natural +selection, as propounded by Mr. Wallace and myself, and has +illustrated them with admirable art and force ("Natural Selection," +p. 176, ed. 1876). I have already referred the reader to Mr. +Mivart's work, but quote the above passage as showing that Mr. Mivart +will not, probably, be found to have left much unsaid that would +appear to make against Mr. Darwin's theory. It is incumbent upon me +both to see how far Mr. Mivart's objections are weighty as against +Mr. Darwin, and also whether or not they tell with equal force +against the view which I am myself advocating. I will therefore +touch briefly upon the most important of them, with the purpose of +showing that they are serious as against the doctrine that small +fortuitous variations are the origin of species, but that they have +no force against evolution as guided by intelligence and memory. + +But before doing this, I would demur to the words used by Mr. Darwin, +and just quoted above, namely, "the theory of natural selection." I +imagine that I see in them the fallacy which I believe to run through +almost all Mr. Darwin's work, namely, that "natural selection" is a +theory (if, indeed, it can be a theory at all), in some way +accounting for the origin of variation, and so of species--"natural +selection," as we have already seen, being unable to "induce +variability," and being only able to accumulate what--on the occasion +of each successive variation, and so during the whole process--must +have been originated by something else. + +Again, Mr. Darwin writes--"In considering the origin of species it is +quite conceivable that a naturalist, reflecting on the mutual +affinities of organic beings, or their embryological relations, their +geographical distribution, geological succession, and other such +facts, might come to the conclusion that species had not been +independently created, but had descended, like varieties from other +species. Nevertheless, such a conclusion, even if well founded, +would be unsatisfactory, until it could be shown how the innumerable +species inhabiting this world had been modified, so as to acquire +that perfection of structure and co-adaptation which justly excites +our admiration" ("Origin of Species," p. 2, ed. 1876). + +After reading the above we feel that nothing more satisfactory could +be desired. We are sure that we are in the hands of one who can +indeed tell us "how the innumerable species inhabiting this world +have been modified," and we are no less sure that though others may +have written upon the subject before, there has been, as yet, no +satisfactory explanation put forward of the grand principle upon +which modification has proceeded. Then follows a delightful volume, +with facts upon facts concerning animals, all showing that species is +due to successive small modifications accumulated in the course of +nature. But one cannot suppose that Lamarck ever doubted this; for +he can never have meant to say, that a low form of life made itself +into an elephant at one or two great bounds; and if he did not mean +this, he must have meant that it made itself into an elephant through +the accumulation of small successive modifications; these, he must +have seen, were capable of accumulation in the scheme of nature, +though he may not have dwelt on the manner in which this is +accomplished, inasmuch as it is obviously a matter of secondary +importance in comparison with the origin of the variations +themselves. We believe, however, throughout Mr. Darwin's book, that +we are being told what we expected to be told; and so convinced are +we, by the facts adduced, that in some way or other evolution must be +true, and so grateful are we for being allowed to think this, that we +put down the volume without perceiving that, whereas Lamarck DID +adduce a great and general cause of variation, the insufficiency of +which, in spite of errors of detail, has yet to be shown, Mr. +Darwin's main cause of variation resolves itself into a confession of +ignorance. + +This, however, should detract but little from our admiration for Mr. +Darwin's achievement. Any one can make people see a thing if he puts +it in the right way, but Mr. Darwin made us see evolution, in spite +of his having put it, in what seems to not a few, an exceedingly +mistaken way. Yet his triumph is complete, for no matter how much +any one now moves the foundation, he cannot shake the superstructure, +which has become so currently accepted as to be above the need of any +support from reason, and to be as difficult to destroy as it was +originally difficult of construction. Less than twenty years ago, we +never met with, or heard of, any one who accepted evolution; we did +not even know that such a doctrine had been ever broached; unless it +was that some one now and again said that there was a very dreadful +book going about like a rampant lion, called "Vestiges of Creation," +whereon we said that we would on no account read it, lest it should +shake our faith; then we would shake our heads and talk of the +preposterous folly and wickedness of such shallow speculations. Had +not the book of Genesis been written for our learning? Yet, now, who +seriously disputes the main principles of evolution? I cannot +believe that there is a bishop on the bench at this moment who does +not accept them; even the "holy priests" themselves bless evolution +as their predecessors blessed Cleopatra--when they ought not. It is +not he who first conceives an idea, nor he who sets it on its legs +and makes it go on all fours, but he who makes other people accept +the main conclusion, whether on right grounds or on wrong ones, who +has done the greatest work as regards the promulgation of an opinion. +And this is what Mr. Darwin has done for evolution. He has made us +think that we know the origin of species, and so of genera, in spite +of his utmost efforts to assure us that we know nothing of the causes +from which the vast majority of modifications have arisen--that is to +say, he has made us think we know the whole road, though he has +almost ostentatiously blindfolded us at every step of the journey. +But to the end of time, if the question be asked, "Who taught people +to believe in evolution?" there can only be one answer--that it was +Mr. Darwin. + +Mr. Mivart urges with much force the difficulty of STARTING any +modification on which "natural selection" is to work, and of getting +a creature to vary in any definite direction. Thus, after quoting +from Mr. Wallace some of the wonderful cases of "mimicry" which are +to be found among insects, he writes:- + +"Now, let us suppose that the ancestors of these various animals were +all destitute of the very special protection they at present possess, +as on the Darwinian hypothesis we must do. Let it be also conceded +that small deviations from the antecedent colouring or form would +tend to make some of their ancestors escape destruction, by causing +them more or less frequently to be passed over or mistaken by their +persecutors. Yet the deviation must, as the event has shown, in each +case, be in some definite direction, whether it be towards some other +animal or plant, or towards some dead or inorganic matter. But as, +according to Mr. Darwin's theory, there is a constant tendency to +indefinite variation, and as the minute incipient variations will be +IN ALL DIRECTIONS, they must tend to neutralise each other, and at +first to form such unstable modifications, that it is difficult, if +not impossible, to see how such indefinite modifications of +insignificant beginnings can ever build up a sufficiently appreciable +resemblance to a leaf, bamboo, or other object for "natural +selection," to seize upon and perpetuate. This difficulty is +augmented when we consider--a point to be dwelt upon hereafter--how +necessary it is that many individuals should be similarly modified +simultaneously. This has been insisted on in an able article in the +'North British Review' for June 1867, p. 286, and the consideration +of the article has occasioned Mr. Darwin" ("Origin of Species," 5th +ed., p. 104) "to make an important modification in his views +("Genesis of Species," p. 38). + +To this Mr. Darwin rejoins:- + +"But in all the foregoing cases the insects in their original state, +no doubt, presented some rude and accidental resemblance to an object +commonly found in the stations frequented by them. Nor is this +improbable, considering the almost infinite number of surrounding +objects, and the diversity of form and colour of the host of insects +that exist" ("Natural Selection," p. 182, ed. 1876). + +Mr. Mivart has just said: "It is difficult to see how such +indefinite modifications of insignificant beginnings CAN EVER BUILD +UP A SUFFICIENTLY APPRECIABLE RESEMBLANCE TO A LEAF, BAMBOO, OR OTHER +OBJECT, FOR 'NATURAL SELECTION' TO WORK UPON." + +The answer is, that "natural selection" did not begin to work UNTIL, +FROM UNKNOWN CAUSES, AN APPRECIABLE RESEMBLANCE HAD NEVERTHELESS BEEN +PRESENTED. I think the reader will agree with me that the +development of the lowest life into a creature which bears even "a +rude resemblance" to the objects commonly found in the station in +which it is moving in its present differentiation, requires more +explanation than is given by the word "accidental." + +Mr. Darwin continues: "As some rude resemblance is necessary for the +first start," &c.; and a little lower he writes: "Assuming that an +insect originally happened to resemble in some degree a dead twig or +a decayed leaf, and that it varied slightly in many ways, then all +the variations which rendered the insect at all more like any such +object, and thus favoured its escape, would be preserved, while other +variations would be neglected, and ultimately lost, or if they +rendered the insect at all less like the imitated object, they would +be eliminated." + +But here, again, we are required to begin with Natural Selection when +the work is already in great part done, owing to causes about which +we are left completely in the dark; we may, I think, fairly demur to +the insects ORIGINALLY happening to resemble in some degree a dead +twig or a decayed leaf. And when we bear in mind that the +variations, being supposed by Mr. Darwin to be indefinite, or devoid +of aim, will appear in every direction, we cannot forget what Mr. +Mivart insists upon, namely, that the chances of many favourable +variations being counteracted by other unfavourable ones in the same +creature are not inconsiderable. Nor, again, is it likely that the +favourable variation would make its mark upon the race, and escape +being absorbed in the course of a few generations, unless--as Mr. +Mivart elsewhere points out, in a passage to which I shall call the +reader's attention presently--a larger number of similarly varying +creatures made their appearance at the same time than there seems +sufficient reason to anticipate, if the variations can be called +fortuitous. + +"There would," continues Mr. Darwin, "indeed be force in Mr. Mivart's +objection if we were to attempt to account for the above +resemblances, independently of 'natural selection,' through mere +fluctuating variability; but as the case stands, there is none." + +This comes to saying that, if there was no power in nature which +operates so that of all the many fluctuating variations, those only +are preserved which tend to the resemblance which is beneficial to +the creature, then indeed there would be difficulty in understanding +how the resemblance could have come about; but that as there is a +beneficial resemblance to start with, and as there is a power in +nature which would preserve and accumulate further beneficial +resemblance, should it arise from this cause or that, the difficulty +is removed. But Mr. Mivart does not, I take it, deny the existence +of such a power in nature, as Mr. Darwin supposes, though, if I +understand him rightly, he does not see that its operation UPON SMALL +FORTUITOUS VARIATIONS is at all the simple and obvious process, which +on a superficial view of the case it would appear to be. He thinks-- +and I believe the reader will agree with him--that this process is +too slow and too risky. What he wants to know is, how the insect +came even rudely to resemble the object, and how, if its variations +are indefinite, we are ever to get into such a condition as to be +able to report progress, owing to the constant liability of the +creature which has varied favourably, to play the part of Penelope +and undo its work, by varying in some one of the infinite number of +other directions which are open to it--all of which, except this one, +tend to destroy the resemblance, and yet may be in some other respect +even more advantageous to the creature, and so tend to its +preservation. Moreover, here, too, I think (though I cannot be +sure), we have a recurrence of the original fallacy in the words--"If +we were to account for the above resemblances, independently of +'natural selection,' through mere fluctuating variability." Surely +Mr. Darwin does, after all, "account for the resemblances through +mere fluctuating variability," for "natural selection" does not +account for one single variation in the whole list of them from first +to last, other than indirectly, as shewn in the preceding chapter. + +It is impossible for me to continue this subject further; but I would +beg the reader to refer to other paragraphs in the neighbourhood of +the one just quoted, in which he may--though I do not think he will-- +see reason to think that I should have given Mr. Darwin's answer more +fully. I do not quote Mr. Darwin's next paragraph, inasmuch as I see +no great difficulty about "the last touches of perfection in +mimicry," provided Mr. Darwin's theory will account for any mimicry +at all. If it could do this, it might as well do more; but a strong +impression is left on my mind, that without the help of something +over and above the power to vary, which should give a definite aim to +variations, all the "natural selection" in the world would not have +prevented stagnation and self-stultification, owing to the indefinite +tendency of the variations, which thus could not have developed +either a preyer or a preyee, but would have gone round and round and +round the primordial cell till they were weary of it. + +As against Mr. Darwin, therefore, I think that the objection just +given from Mr. Mivart is fatal. I believe, also, that the reader +will feel the force of it much more strongly if he will turn to Mr. +Mivart's own pages. Against the view which I am myself supporting, +the objection breaks down entirely, for grant "a little dose of +judgement and reason" on the part of the creature itself--grant also +continued personality and memory--and a definite tendency is at once +given to the variations. The process is thus started, and is kept +straight, and helped forward through every stage by "the little dose +of reason," &c., which enabled it to take its first step. We are, in +fact, no longer without a helm, but can steer each creature that is +so discontented with its condition, as to make a serious effort to +better itself, into SOME--and into a very distant--harbour. + + +It has been objected against Mr. Darwin's theory that if all species +and genera have come to differ through the accumulation of minute +but--as a general rule--fortuitous variations, there has not been +time enough, so far as we are able to gather, for the evolution of +all existing forms by so slow a process. On this subject I would +again refer the reader to Mr. Mivart's book, from which I take the +following:- + +"Sir William Thompson has lately advanced arguments from three +distinct lines of inquiry agreeing in one approximate result. The +three lines of inquiry are--(1) the action of the tides upon the +earth's rotation; (2) the probable length of time during which the +sun has illuminated this planet; and (3) the temperature of the +interior of the earth. The result arrived at by these investigations +is a conclusion that the existing state of things on the earth, life +on the earth, all geological history showing continuity of life, must +be limited within some such period of past time as one hundred +million years. The first question which suggests itself, supposing +Sir W. Thompson's views to be correct, is: Has this period been +anything like enough for the evolution of all organic forms by +'natural selection'? The second is: Has the period been anything +like enough for the deposition of the strata which must have been +deposited if all organic forms have been evolved by minute steps, +according to the Darwinian theory?" ("Genesis of Species," p. 154). + +Mr. Mivart then quotes from Mr. Murphy--whose work I have not seen-- +the following passage:- + +"Darwin justly mentions the greyhound as being equal to any natural +species in the perfect co-ordination of its parts, 'all adapted for +extreme fleetness and for running down weak prey.' Yet it is an +artificial species (and not physiologically a species at all) formed +by a long-continued selection under domestication; and there is no +reason to suppose that any of the variations which have been selected +to form it have been other than gradual and almost imperceptible. +Suppose that it has taken five hundred years to form the greyhound +out of his wolf-like ancestor. This is a mere guess, but it gives +the order of magnitude. Now, if so, how long would it take to obtain +an elephant from a protozoon or even from a tadpole-like fish? Ought +it not to take much more than a million times as long?" ("Genesis of +Species," p. 155). + +I should be very sorry to pronounce any opinion upon the foregoing +data; but a general impression is left upon my mind, that if the +differences between an elephant and a tadpole-like fish have arisen +from the accumulation of small variations that have had no direction +given them by intelligence and sense of needs, then no time +conceivable by man would suffice for their development. But grant "a +little dose of reason and judgement," even to animals low down in the +scale of nature, and grant this, not only during their later life, +but during their embryological existence, and see with what +infinitely greater precision of aim and with what increased speed the +variations would arise. Evolution entirely unaided by inherent +intelligence must be a very slow, if not quite inconceivable, +process. Evolution helped by intelligence would still be slow, but +not so desperately slow. One can conceive that there has been +sufficient time for the second, but one cannot conceive it for the +first. + + +I find from Mr. Mivart that objection has been taken to Mr. Darwin's +views, on account of the great odds that exist against the appearance +of any given variation at one and the same time, in a sufficient +number of individuals, to prevent its being obliterated almost as +soon as produced by the admixture of unvaried blood which would so +greatly preponderate around it; and indeed the necessity for a nearly +simultaneous and similar variation, or readiness so to vary on the +part of many individuals, seems almost a postulate for evolution at +all. On this subject Mr. Mivart writes:- + +"The 'North British Review' (speaking of the supposition that species +is changed by the survival of a few individuals in a century through +a similar and favourable variation) says - + +"'It is very difficult to see how this can be accomplished, even when +the variation is eminently favourable indeed; and still more, when +the advantage gained is very slight, as must generally be the case. +The advantage, whatever it may be, is utterly outbalanced by +numerical inferiority. A million creatures are born; ten thousand +survive to produce offspring. One of the million has twice as good a +chance as any other of surviving, but the chances are fifty to one +against the gifted individuals being one of the hundred survivors. +No doubt the chances are twice as great against any other individual, +but this does not prevent their being enormously in favour of SOME +average individual. However slight the advantage may be, if it is +shared by half the individuals produced, it will probably be present +in at least fifty-one of the survivors, and in a larger proportion of +their offspring; but the chances are against the preservation of any +one "sport" (i.e., sudden marked variation) in a numerous tribe. The +vague use of an imperfectly-understood doctrine of chance, has led +Darwinian supporters, first, to confuse the two cases above +distinguished, and secondly, to imagine that a very slight balance in +favour of some individual sport must lead to its perpetuation. All +that can be said is that in the above example the favoured sport +would be preserved once in fifty times. Let us consider what will be +its influence on the main stock when preserved. It will breed and +have a progeny of say 100; now this progeny will, on the whole, be +intermediate between the average individual and the sport. The odds +in favour of one of this generation of the new breed will be, say one +and a half to one, as compared with the average individual; the odds +in their favour will, therefore, be less than that of their parents; +but owing to their greater number the chances are that about one and +a half of them would survive. Unless these breed together--a most +improbable event--their progeny would again approach the average +individual; there would be 150 of them, and their superiority would +be, say in the ratio of one and a quarter to one; the probability +would now be that nearly two of them would survive, and have 200 +children with an eighth superiority. Rather more than two of these +would survive; but the superiority would again dwindle; until after a +few generations it would no longer be observed, and would count for +no more in the struggle for life than any of the hundred trifling +advantages which occur in the ordinary organs. + +"'An illustration will bring this conception home. Suppose a white +man to have been wrecked on an island inhabited by negroes, and to +have established himself in friendly relations with a powerful tribe, +whose customs he has learnt. Suppose him to possess the physical +strength, energy, and ability of a dominant white race, and let the +food of the island suit his constitution; grant him every advantage +which we can conceive a white to possess over the native; concede +that in the struggle for existence, his chance of a long life will be +much superior to that of the native chiefs; yet from all these +admissions there does not follow the conclusion, that after a limited +or unlimited number of generations, the inhabitants of the island +will be white. Our shipwrecked hero would probably become king; he +would kill a great many blacks in the struggle for existence; he +would have a great many wives and children . . . In the first +generation there will be some dozens of intelligent young mulattoes, +much superior in average intelligence to the negroes. We might +expect the throne for some generations to be occupied by a more or +less yellow king; but can any one believe that the whole island will +gradually acquire a white, or even a yellow population? . . . Darwin +says, that in the struggle for life a grain may turn the balance in +favour of a given structure, which will then be preserved. But one +of the weights in the scale of nature is due to the number of a given +tribe. Let there be 7000 A's and 7000 B's representing two varieties +of a given animal, and let all the B's, in virtue of a slight +difference of structure, have the better chance by one-thousandth +part. We must allow that there is a slight probability that the +descendants of B will supplant the descendants of A; but let there be +7001 A's against 7000 B's at first, and the chances are once more +equal, while if there be 7002 A's to start, the odds would be laid on +the A's. Thus they stand a greater chance of being killed; but, +then, they can better afford to be killed. The grain will only turn +the scales when these are very nicely balanced, and an advantage in +numbers counts for weight, even as an advantage in structure. As the +numbers of the favoured variety diminish, so must its relative +advantages increase, if the chance of its existence is to surpass the +chance of its extinction, until hardly any conceivable advantage +would enable the descendants of a single pair to exterminate the +descendants of many thousands, if they and their descendants are +supposed to breed freely with the inferior variety, and so gradually +lose their ascendancy,'" ("North British Review," June 1867, p. 286 +"Genesis of Species," p. 64, and onwards). + +Against this it should be remembered that there is always an +antecedent probability that several specimens of a given variation +would appear at one time and place. This would probably be the case +even on Mr. Darwin's hypothesis, that the variations are fortuitous; +if they are mainly guided by sense of need and intelligence, it would +almost certainly be so, for all would have much the same idea as to +their well-being, and the same cause which would lead one to vary in +this direction would lead not a few others to do so at the same time, +or to follow suit. Thus we see that many human ideas and inventions +have been conceived independently but simultaneously. The chances, +moreover, of specimens that have varied successfully, intermarrying, +are, I think, greater than the reviewer above quoted from would +admit. I believe that on the hypothesis that the variations are +fortuitous, and certainly on the supposition that they are +intelligent, they might be looked for in members of the same family, +who would hence have a better chance of finding each other out. +Serious as is the difficulty advanced by the reviewer as against Mr. +Darwin's theory, it may be in great measure parried without departing +from Mr. Darwin's own position, but the "little dose of judgement and +reason" removes it, absolutely and entirely. As for the reviewer's +shipwrecked hero, surely the reviewer must know that Mr. Darwin would +no more expect an island of black men to be turned white, or even +perceptibly whitened after a few generations, than the reviewer +himself would do so. But if we turn from what "might" or what +"would" happen to what "does" happen, we find that a few white +families have nearly driven the Indian from the United States, the +Australian natives from Australia, and the Maories from New Zealand. +True, these few families have been helped by immigration; but it will +be admitted that this has only accelerated a result which would +otherwise, none the less surely, have been effected. + +There is all the difference between a sudden sport, or even a variety +introduced from a foreign source, and the gradual, intelligent, and, +in the main, steady, growth of a race towards ends always a little, +but not much, in advance of what it can at present compass, until it +has reached equilibrium with its surroundings. So far as Mr. +Darwin's variations are of the nature of "sport," i.e., rare, and +owing to nothing that we can in the least assign to any known cause, +the reviewer's objections carry much weight. Against the view here +advocated, they are powerless. + +I cannot here go into the difficulties of the geologic record, but +they too will, I believe, be felt to be almost infinitely simplified +by supposing the development of structure and instinct to be guided +by intelligence and memory, which, even under unstable conditions, +would be able to meet in some measure the demands made upon them. + +When Mr. Mivart deals with evolution and ethics, I am afraid that I +differ from him even more widely than I have done from Mr. Darwin. +He writes ("Genesis of Species," p. 234): "That 'natural selection' +could not have produced from the sensations of pleasure and pain +experienced by brutes a higher degree of morality than was useful; +therefore it could have produced any amount of 'beneficial habits,' +but not abhorrence of certain acts as impure and sinful." + +Possibly "natural selection" may not be able to do much in the way of +accumulating variations that do not arise; but that, according to the +views supported in this volume, all that is highest and most +beautiful in the soul, as well as in the body, could be, and has +been, developed from beings lower than man, I do not greatly doubt. +Mr. Mivart and myself should probably differ as to what is and what +is not beautiful. Thus he writes of "the noble virtue of a Marcus +Aurelius" (p. 235), than whom, for my own part, I know few +respectable figures in history to whom I am less attracted. I cannot +but think that Mr. Mivart has taken his estimate of this emperor at +second-hand, and without reference to the writings which happily +enable us to form a fair estimate of his real character. + +Take the opening paragraphs of the "Thoughts" of Marcus Aurelius, as +translated by Mr. Long:- + +"From the reputation and remembrance of my father [I learned] modesty +and a manly character; from my mother, piety and beneficence, +abstinence not only from evil deeds, but even from evil thoughts. . . +. From my great-grandfather, not to have frequented public schools, +and to have had good teachers at home, and to know that on such +things a man should spend liberally . . . From Diognetus . . . [I +learned] to have become intimate with philosophy, . . . and to have +written dialogues in my youth, and to have desired a plank bed and +skin, and whatever else of the kind belongs to the Greek discipline. +. . . From Rusticus I received the impression that my character +required improvement and discipline;" and so on to the end of the +chapter, near which, however, it is right to say that there appears a +redeeming touch, in so far as that he thanks the gods that he could +not write poetry, and that he had never occupied himself about the +appearance of things in the heavens. + +Or, again, opening Mr. Long's translation at random I find (p. 37):- + +"As physicians have always their instruments and knives ready for +cases which suddenly require their skill, so do thou have principles +ready for the understanding of things divine and human, and for doing +everything, even the smallest, with a recollection of the bond that +unites the divine and human to one another. For neither wilt thou do +anything well which pertains to man without at the same time having a +reference to things divine; nor the contrary." + +Unhappy one! No wonder the Roman empire went to pieces soon after +him. If I remember rightly, he established and subsidised +professorships in all parts of his dominions. Whereon the same +befell the arts and literature of Rome as befell Italian painting +after the Academic system had taken root at Bologna under the +Caracci. Mr. Martin Tupper, again, is an amiable and well-meaning +man, but we should hardly like to see him in Lord Beaconsfield's +place. The Athenians poisoned Socrates; and Aristophanes--than whom +few more profoundly religious men have ever been born--did not, so +far as we can gather, think the worse of his countrymen on that +account. It is not improbable that if they had poisoned Plato too, +Aristophanes would have been well enough pleased; but I think he +would have preferred either of these two men to Marcus Aurelius. + +I know nothing about the loving but manly devotion of a St. Lewis, +but I strongly suspect that Mr. Mivart has taken him, too, upon +hearsay. + +On the other hand, among dogs we find examples of every heroic +quality, and of all that is most perfectly charming to us in man. + +As for the possible development of the more brutal human natures from +the more brutal instincts of the lower animals, those who read a +horrible story told in a note, pp. 233, 234 of Mr. Mivart's "Genesis +of Species," will feel no difficulty on that score. I must admit, +however, that the telling of that story seems to me to be a mistake +in a philosophical work, which should not, I think, unless under +compulsion, deal either with the horrors of the French Revolution--or +of the Spanish or Italian Inquisition. + +For the rest of Mr. Mivart's objections, I must refer the reader to +his own work. I have been unable to find a single one, which I do +not believe to be easily met by the Lamarckian view, with the +additions (if indeed they are additions, for I must own to no very +profound knowledge of what Lamarck did or did not say), which I have +in this volume proposed to make to it. At the same time I admit, +that as against the Darwinian view, many of them seem quite +unanswerable. + + + +CHAPTER XV--CONCLUDING REMARKS + + + +Here, then, I leave my case, though well aware that I have crossed +the threshold only of my subject. My work is of a tentative +character, put before the public as a sketch or design for a, +possibly, further endeavour, in which I hope to derive assistance +from the criticisms which this present volume may elicit. Such as it +is, however, for the present I must leave it. + +We have seen that we cannot do anything thoroughly till we can do it +unconsciously, and that we cannot do anything unconsciously till we +can do it thoroughly; this at first seems illogical; but logic and +consistency are luxuries for the gods, and the lower animals, only. +Thus a boy cannot really know how to swim till he can swim, but he +cannot swim till he knows how to swim. Conscious effort is but the +process of rubbing off the rough corners from these two contradictory +statements, till they eventually fit into one another so closely that +it is impossible to disjoin them. + +Whenever, therefore, we see any creature able to go through any +complicated and difficult process with little or no effort--whether +it be a bird building her nest, or a hen's egg making itself into a +chicken, or an ovum turning itself into a baby--we may conclude that +the creature has done the same thing on a very great number of past +occasions. + +We found the phenomena exhibited by heredity to be so like those of +memory, and to be so utterly inexplicable on any other supposition, +that it was easier to suppose them due to memory in spite of the fact +that we cannot remember having recollected, than to believe that +because we cannot so remember, therefore the phenomena cannot be due +to memory. + +We were thus led to consider "personal identity," in order to see +whether there was sufficient reason for denying that the experience, +which we must have clearly gained somewhere, was gained by us when we +were in the persons of our forefathers; we found, not without +surprise, that unless we admitted that it might be so gained, in so +far as that we once ACTUALLY WERE our remotest ancestor, we must +change our ideas concerning personality altogether. + +We therefore assumed that the phenomena of heredity, whether as +regards instinct or structure were mainly due to memory of past +experiences, accumulated and fused till they had become automatic, or +quasi automatic, much in the same way as after a long life - + + +. . "Old experience do attain +To something like prophetic strain." + + +After dealing with certain phenomena of memory, but more especially +with its abeyance and revival, we inquired what the principal +corresponding phenomena of life and species should be, on the +hypothesis that they were mainly due to memory. + +I think I may say that we found the hypothesis fit in with actual +facts in a sufficiently satisfactory manner. We found not a few +matters, as, for example, the sterility of hybrids, the phenomena of +old age, and puberty as generally near the end of development, +explain themselves with more completeness than I have yet heard of +their being explained on any other hypothesis. + +We considered the most important difficulty in the way of instinct as +hereditary habit, namely, the structure and instincts of neuter +insects; these are very unlike those of their parents, and cannot +apparently be transmitted to offspring by individuals of the previous +generation, in whom such structure and instincts appeared, inasmuch +as these creatures are sterile. I do not say that the difficulty is +wholly removed, inasmuch as some obscurity must be admitted to remain +as to the manner in which the structure of the larva is aborted; this +obscurity is likely to remain till we know more of the early history +of civilisation among bees than I can find that we know at present; +but I believe the difficulty was reduced to such proportions as to +make it little likely to be felt in comparison with that of +attributing instinct to any other cause than inherited habit, or +inherited habit modified by changed conditions. + +We then inquired what was the great principle underlying variation, +and answered, with Lamarck, that it must be "sense of need;" and +though not without being haunted by suspicion of a vicious circle, +and also well aware that we were not much nearer the origin of life +than when we started, we still concluded that here was the truest +origin of species, and hence of genera; and that the accumulation of +variations, which in time amounted to specific and generic +differences, was due to intelligence and memory on the part of the +creature varying, rather than to the operation of what Mr. Darwin has +called "natural selection." At the same time we admitted that the +course of nature is very much as Mr. Darwin has represented it, in +this respect, in so far as that there is a struggle for existence, +and that the weaker must go to the wall. But we denied that this +part of the course of nature would lead to much, if any, accumulation +of variation, unless the variation was directed mainly by intelligent +sense of need, with continued personality and memory. + +We conclude, therefore, that the small, structureless, impregnate +ovum from which we have each one of us sprung, has a potential +recollection of all that has happened to each one of its ancestors +prior to the period at which any such ancestor has issued from the +bodies of its progenitors--provided, that is to say, a sufficiently +deep, or sufficiently often-repeated, impression has been made to +admit of its being remembered at all. + +Each step of normal development will lead the impregnate ovum up to, +and remind it of, its next ordinary course of action, in the same way +as we, when we recite a well-known passage, are led up to each +successive sentence by the sentence which has immediately preceded +it. + +And for this reason, namely, that as it takes two people "to tell" a +thing--a speaker and a comprehending listener, without which last, +though much may have been said, there has been nothing told--so also +it takes two people, as it were, to "remember" a thing--the creature +remembering, and the surroundings of the creature at the time it last +remembered. Hence, though the ovum immediately after impregnation is +instinct with all the memories of both parents, not one of these +memories can normally become active till both the ovum itself, and +its surroundings, are sufficiently like what they respectively were, +when the occurrence now to be remembered last took place. The memory +will then immediately return, and the creature will do as it did on +the last occasion that it was in like case as now. This ensures that +similarity of order shall be preserved in all the stages of +development, in successive generations. + +Life, then, is faith founded upon experience, which experience is in +its turn founded upon faith--or more simply, it is memory. Plants +and animals only differ from one another because they remember +different things; plants and animals only grow up in the shapes they +assume because this shape is their memory, their idea concerning +their own past history. + +Hence the term "Natural History," as applied to the different plants +and animals around us. For surely the study of natural history means +only the study of plants and animals themselves, which, at the moment +of using the words "Natural History," we assume to be the most +important part of nature. + +A living creature well supported by a mass of healthy ancestral +memory is a young and growing creature, free from ache or pain, and +thoroughly acquainted with its business so far, but with much yet to +be reminded of. A creature which finds itself and its surroundings +not so unlike those of its parents about the time of their begetting +it, as to be compelled to recognise that it never yet was in any such +position, is a creature in the heyday of life. A creature which +begins to be aware of itself is one which is beginning to recognise +that the situation is a new one. + +It is the young and fair, then, who are the truly old and the truly +experienced; it is they who alone have a trustworthy memory to guide +them; they alone know things as they are, and it is from them that, +as we grow older, we must study if we would still cling to truth. +The whole charm of youth lies in its advantage over age in respect of +experience, and where this has for some reason failed, or been +misapplied, the charm is broken. When we say that we are getting +old, we should say rather that we are getting new or young, and are +suffering from inexperience, which drives us into doing things which +we do not understand, and lands us, eventually, in the utter +impotence of death. The kingdom of heaven is the kingdom of little +children. + +A living creature bereft of all memory dies. If bereft of a great +part of memory, it swoons or sleeps; and when its memory returns, we +say it has returned to life. + +Life and death, then, should be memory and forgetfulness, for we are +dead to all that we have forgotten. + +Life is that property of matter whereby it can remember. Matter +which can remember is living; matter which cannot remember is dead. + +LIFE, THEN, IS MEMORY. The life of a creature is the memory of a +creature. We are all the same stuff to start with, but we remember +different things, and if we did not remember different things we +should be absolutely like each other. As for the stuff itself of +which we are made, we know nothing +save only that it is "such as dreams are made of." + +I am aware that there are many expressions throughout this book, +which are not scientifically accurate. Thus I imply that we tend +towards the centre of the earth, when, I believe, I should say we +tend towards to the centre of gravity of the earth. I speak of "the +primordial cell," when I mean only the earliest form of life, and I +thus not only assume a single origin of life when there is no +necessity for doing so, and perhaps no evidence to this effect, but I +do so in spite of the fact that the amoeba, which seems to be "the +simplest form of life," does not appear to be a cell at all. I have +used the word "beget," of what, I am told, is asexual generation, +whereas the word should be confined to sexual generation only. Many +more such errors have been pointed out to me, and I doubt not that a +larger number remain of which I know nothing now, but of which I may +perhaps be told presently. + +I did not, however, think that in a work of this description the +additional words which would have been required for scientific +accuracy were worth the paper and ink and loss of breadth which their +introduction would entail. Besides, I know nothing about science, +and it is as well that there should be no mistake on this head; I +neither know, nor want to know, more detail than is necessary to +enable me to give a fairly broad and comprehensive view of my +subject. When for the purpose of giving this, a matter importunately +insisted on being made out, I endeavoured to make it out as well as I +could; otherwise--that is to say, if it did not insist on being +looked into, in spite of a good deal of snubbing, I held that, as it +was blurred and indistinct in nature, I had better so render it in my +work. + +Nevertheless, if one has gone for some time through a wood full of +burrs, some of them are bound to stick. I am afraid that I have left +more such burrs in one part and another of my book, than the kind of +reader whom I alone wish to please will perhaps put up with. +Fortunately, this kind of reader is the best-natured critic in the +world, and is long suffering of a good deal that the more consciously +scientific will not tolerate; I wish, however, that I had not used +such expressions as "centres of thought and action" quite so often. + +As for the kind of inaccuracy already alluded to, my reader will not, +I take it, as a general rule, know, or wish to know, much more about +science than I do, sometimes perhaps even less; so that he and I +shall commonly be wrong in the same places, and our two wrongs will +make a sufficiently satisfactory right for practical purposes. + +Of course, if I were a specialist writing a treatise or primer on +such and such a point of detail, I admit that scientific accuracy +would be de rigueur; but I have been trying to paint a picture rather +than to make a diagram, and I claim the painter's license "quidlibet +audendi." I have done my utmost to give the spirit of my subject, +but if the letter interfered with the spirit, I have sacrificed it +without remorse. + +May not what is commonly called a scientific subject have artistic +value which it is a pity to neglect? But if a subject is to be +treated artistically--that is to say, with a desire to consider not +only the facts, but the way in which the reader will feel concerning +those facts, and the way in which he will wish to see them rendered, +thus making his mind a factor of the intention, over and above the +subject itself--then the writer must not be denied a painter's +license. If one is painting a hillside at a sufficient distance, and +cannot see whether it is covered with chestnut-trees or walnuts, one +is not bound to go across the valley to see. If one is painting a +city, it is not necessary that one should know the names of the +streets. If a house or tree stands inconveniently for one's purpose, +it must go without more ado; if two important features, neither of +which can be left out, want a little bringing together or separating +before the spirit of the place can be well given, they must be +brought together, or separated. Which is a more truthful view, of +Shrewsbury, for example, from a spot where St. Alkmund's spire is in +parallax with St. Mary's--a view which should give only the one spire +which can be seen, or one which should give them both, although the +one is hidden? There would be, I take it, more representation in the +misrepresentation than in the representation--"the half would be +greater than the whole," unless, that is to say, one expressly told +the spectator that St. Alkmund's spire was hidden behind St. Mary's-- +a sort of explanation which seldom adds to the poetical value of any +work of art. Do what one may, and no matter how scientific one may +be, one cannot attain absolute truth. The question is rather, how do +people like to have their error? than, will they go without any error +at all? All truth and no error cannot be given by the scientist more +than by the artist; each has to sacrifice truth in one way or +another; and even if perfect truth could be given, it is doubtful +whether it would not resolve itself into unconsciousness pure and +simple, consciousness being, as it were, the clash of small +conflicting perceptions, without which there is neither intelligence +nor recollection possible. It is not, then, what a man has said, nor +what he has put down with actual paint upon his canvass, which speaks +to us with living language--IT IS WHAT HE HAS THOUGHT TO US (as is so +well put in the letter quoted on page 83), by which our opinion +should be guided;--what has he made us feel that he had it in him, +and wished to do? If he has said or painted enough to make us feel +that he meant and felt as we should wish him to have done, he has +done the utmost that man can hope to do. + +I feel sure that no additional amount of technical accuracy would +make me more likely to succeed, in this respect, if I have otherwise +failed; and as this is the only success about which I greatly care, I +have left my scientific inaccuracies uncorrected, even when aware of +them. At the same time, I should say that I have taken all possible +pains as regards anything which I thought could materially affect the +argument one way or another. + +It may be said that I have fallen between two stools, and that the +subject is one which, in my hands, has shown neither artistic nor +scientific value. This would be serious. To fall between two +stools, and to be hanged for a lamb, are the two crimes which - + + +"Nor gods, nor men, nor any schools allow." + + +Of the latter, I go in but little danger; about the former, I shall +know better when the public have enlightened me. + +The practical value of the views here advanced (if they be admitted +as true at all) would appear to be not inconsiderable, alike as +regards politics or the well-being of the community, and medicine +which deals with that of the individual. In the first case we see +the rationale of compromise, and the equal folly of making +experiments upon too large a scale, and of not making them at all. +We see that new ideas cannot be fused with old, save gradually and by +patiently leading up to them in such a way as to admit of a sense of +continued identity between the old and the new. This should teach us +moderation. For even though nature wishes to travel in a certain +direction, she insists on being allowed to take her own time; she +will not be hurried, and will cull a creature out even more surely +for forestalling her wishes too readily, than for lagging a little +behind them. So the greatest musicians, painters, and poets owe +their greatness rather to their fusion and assimilation of all the +good that has been done up to, and especially near about, their own +time, than to any very startling steps they have taken in advance. +Such men will be sure to take some, and important, steps forward; for +unless they have this power, they will not be able to assimilate well +what has been done already, and if they have it, their study of older +work will almost indefinitely assist it; but, on the whole, they owe +their greatness to their completer fusion and assimilation of older +ideas; for nature is distinctly a fairly liberal conservative rather +than a conservative liberal. All which is well said in the old +couplet - + + +"Be not the first by whom the new is tried, +Nor yet the last to throw the old aside." + + +Mutatis mutandis, the above would seem to hold as truly about +medicine as about politics. We cannot reason with our cells, for +they know so much more than we do that they cannot understand us;-- +but though we cannot reason with them, we can find out what they have +been most accustomed to, and what, therefore, they are most likely to +expect; we can see that they get this, as far as it is in our power +to give it them, and may then generally leave the rest to them, only +bearing in mind that they will rebel equally against too sudden a +change of treatment, and no change at all. + +Friends have complained to me that they can never tell whether I am +in jest or earnest. I think, however, it should be sufficiently +apparent that I am in very serious earnest, perhaps too much so, from +the first page of my book to the last. I am not aware of a single +argument put forward which is not a bona fide argument, although, +perhaps, sometimes admitting of a humorous side. If a grain of corn +looks like a piece of chaff, I confess I prefer it occasionally to +something which looks like a grain, but which turns out to be a piece +of chaff only. There is no lack of matter of this description going +about in some very decorous volumes; I have, therefore, endeavoured, +for a third time, to furnish the public with a book whose fault +should lie rather in the direction of seeming less serious than it +is, than of being less so than it seems. + +At the same time, I admit that when I began to write upon my subject +I did not seriously believe in it. I saw, as it were, a pebble upon +the ground, with a sheen that pleased me; taking it up, I turned it +over and over for my amusement, and found it always grow brighter and +brighter the more I examined it. At length I became fascinated, and +gave loose rein to self-illusion. The aspect of the world seemed +changed; the trifle which I had picked up idly had proved to be a +talisman of inestimable value, and had opened a door through which I +caught glimpses of a strange and interesting transformation. Then +came one who told me that the stone was not mine, but that it had +been dropped by Lamarck, to whom it belonged rightfully, but who had +lost it; whereon I said I cared not who was the owner, if only I +might use it and enjoy it. Now, therefore, having polished it with +what art and care one who is no jeweller could bestow upon it, I +return it, as best I may, to its possessor. + +What am I to think or say? That I tried to deceive others till I +have fallen a victim to my own falsehood? Surely this is the most +reasonable conclusion to arrive at. Or that I have really found +Lamarck's talisman, which had been for some time lost sight of? + +Will the reader bid me wake with him to a world of chance and +blindness? Or can I persuade him to dream with me of a more living +faith than either he or I had as yet conceived as possible? As I +have said, reason points remorselessly to an awakening, but faith and +hope still beckon to the dream. + + + +APPENDIX--AUTHOR'S ADDENDA + + + +{2} But I may say in passing that though articulate speech and the +power to maintain the upright position come much about the same time, +yet the power of making gestures of more or less significance is +prior to that of walking uprightly, and therefore to that of speech. +Not only is gesticulation the earlier faculty in the individual, but +it was so also in the history of our race. Our semi-simious +ancestors could gesticulate long before they could talk articulately. +It is significant of this that gesture is still found easier than +speech even by adults, as may be observed on our river steamers, +where the captain moves his hand but does not speak, a boy +interpreting his gesture into language. To develop this here would +complicate the argument; let us be content to note it and pass on. + +{3} Nevertheless, the smallness of the effort touches upon the +deepest mystery of organic life--the power to originate, to err, to +sport, the power which differentiates the living organism from the +machine, however complicated. The action and working of this power +is found to be like the action of any other mental and, therefore, +physical power (for all physical action of living beings is but the +expression of a mental action), but I can throw no light upon its +origin any more than upon the origin of life. This, too, must be +noted and passed over. + +{4} How different from the above uncertain sound is the full clear +note of one who truly believes:- + +"The Church of England is commonly called a Lutheran church, but +whoever compares it with the Lutheran churches on the Continent will +have reason to congratulate himself on its superiority. It is in +fact a church sui generis, yielding in point of dignity, purity and +decency of its doctrines, establishment and ceremonies, to no +congregation of christians in the world; modelled to a certain and +considerable extent, but not entirely, by our great and wise pious +reformers on the doctrines of Luther, so far as they are in +conformity with the sure and solid foundation on which it rests, and +we trust for ever will rest--the authority of the Holy Scriptures, +Jesus Christ himself being the chief corner stone." ("Sketch of +Modern and Ancient Geography," by Dr. Samuel Butler, of Shrewsbury. +Ed. 1813.) + +This is the language of faith, compelled by the exigencies of the +occasion to be for a short time conscious of its own existence, but +surely very little likely to become so to the extent of feeling the +need of any assistance from reason. It is the language of one whose +convictions are securely founded upon the current opinion of those +among whom he has been born and bred; and of all merely post-natal +faiths a faith so founded is the strongest. It is pleasing to see +that the only alterations in the edition of 1838 consist in spelling +Christians with a capital C and the omission of the epithet "wise" as +applied to the reformers, an omission more probably suggested by a +desire for euphony than by any nascent doubts concerning the +applicability of the epithet itself. + +{5} Or take, again, the constitution of the Church of England. The +bishops are the spiritual queens, the clergy are the neuter workers. +They differ widely in structure (for dress must be considered as a +part of structure), in the delicacy of the food they eat and the kind +of house they inhabit, and also in many of their instincts, from the +bishops, who are their spiritual parents. Not only this, but there +are two distinct kinds of neuter workers--priests and deacons; and of +the former there are deans, archdeacons, prebends, canons, rural +deans, vicars, rectors, curates, yet all spiritually sterile. In +spite of this sterility, however, is there anyone who will maintain +that the widely differing structures and instincts of these castes +are not due to inherited spiritual habit? Still less will he be +inclined to do so when he reflects that by such slight modification +of treatment as consecration and endowment any one of them can be +rendered spiritually fertile. + + + +Footnotes: + +{1} Although the original edition of "Life and Habit" is dated 1878, +the book was actually published in December, 1877. + + + + + +*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, LIFE AND HABIT *** + +This file should be named lfhb10.txt or lfhb10.zip +Corrected EDITIONS of our eBooks get a new NUMBER, lfhb11.txt +VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, lfhb10a.txt + +Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + +We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance +of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing. +Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections, +even years after the official publication date. + +Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til +midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement. +The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at +Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A +preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment +and editing by those who wish to do so. + +Most people start at our Web sites at: +http://gutenberg.net or +http://promo.net/pg + +These Web sites include award-winning information about Project +Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new +eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!). + + +Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement +can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is +also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the +indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an +announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter. + +http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext04 or +ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext04 + +Or /etext03, 02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90 + +Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want, +as it appears in our Newsletters. + + +Information about Project Gutenberg (one page) + +We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The +time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours +to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright +searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our +projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value +per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2 +million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text +files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+ +We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002 +If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total +will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end. + +The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks! +This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers, +which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users. + +Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated): + +eBooks Year Month + + 1 1971 July + 10 1991 January + 100 1994 January + 1000 1997 August + 1500 1998 October + 2000 1999 December + 2500 2000 December + 3000 2001 November + 4000 2001 October/November + 6000 2002 December* + 9000 2003 November* +10000 2004 January* + + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created +to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium. + +We need your donations more than ever! + +As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people +and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut, +Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois, +Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts, +Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New +Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio, +Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South +Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West +Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming. + +We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones +that have responded. + +As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list +will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states. +Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state. + +In answer to various questions we have received on this: + +We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally +request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and +you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have, +just ask. + +While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are +not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting +donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to +donate. + +International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about +how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made +deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are +ways. + +Donations by check or money order may be sent to: + +Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +PMB 113 +1739 University Ave. +Oxford, MS 38655-4109 + +Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment +method other than by check or money order. + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by +the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN +[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are +tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising +requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be +made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states. + +We need your donations more than ever! + +You can get up to date donation information online at: + +http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html + + +*** + +If you can't reach Project Gutenberg, +you can always email directly to: + +Michael S. Hart <hart@pobox.com> + +Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message. + +We would prefer to send you information by email. + + +**The Legal Small Print** + + +(Three Pages) + +***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START*** +Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers. +They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with +your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from +someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our +fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement +disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how +you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to. + +*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK +By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm +eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept +this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive +a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by +sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person +you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical +medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request. + +ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS +This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks, +is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart +through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project"). +Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright +on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and +distribute it in the United States without permission and +without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth +below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook +under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark. + +Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market +any commercial products without permission. + +To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable +efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain +works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any +medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other +things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other +intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged +disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer +codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. + +LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES +But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below, +[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may +receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims +all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including +legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR +UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, +INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE +OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE +POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES. + +If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of +receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) +you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that +time to the person you received it from. If you received it +on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and +such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement +copy. If you received it electronically, such person may +choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to +receive it electronically. + +THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS +TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT +LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A +PARTICULAR PURPOSE. + +Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or +the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the +above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you +may have other legal rights. + +INDEMNITY +You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation, +and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated +with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm +texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including +legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the +following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook, +[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook, +or [3] any Defect. + +DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm" +You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by +disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this +"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg, +or: + +[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this + requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the + eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however, + if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable + binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form, + including any form resulting from conversion by word + processing or hypertext software, but only so long as + *EITHER*: + + [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and + does *not* contain characters other than those + intended by the author of the work, although tilde + (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may + be used to convey punctuation intended by the + author, and additional characters may be used to + indicate hypertext links; OR + + [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at + no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent + form by the program that displays the eBook (as is + the case, for instance, with most word processors); + OR + + [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at + no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the + eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC + or other equivalent proprietary form). + +[2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this + "Small Print!" statement. + +[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the + gross profits you derive calculated using the method you + already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you + don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are + payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation" + the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were + legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent + periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to + let us know your plans and to work out the details. + +WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO? +Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of +public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed +in machine readable form. + +The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time, +public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses. +Money should be paid to the: +"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or +software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at: +hart@pobox.com + +[Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only +when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by +Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be +used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be +they hardware or software or any other related product without +express permission.] + +*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END* + diff --git a/old/lfhb10.zip b/old/lfhb10.zip Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..1890be3 --- /dev/null +++ b/old/lfhb10.zip diff --git a/old/lfhb10h.htm b/old/lfhb10h.htm new file mode 100644 index 0000000..8b55bc0 --- /dev/null +++ b/old/lfhb10h.htm @@ -0,0 +1,7776 @@ +<!DOCTYPE html + PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" + "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd"> +<html> +<head> +<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=US-ASCII" /> +<title>Life and Habit</title> +</head> +<body> +<h2> +<a href="#startoftext">Life and Habit, by Samuel Butler</a> +</h2> +<pre> +The Project Gutenberg EBook of Life and Habit, by Samuel Butler +(#13 in our series by Samuel Butler) + +Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the +copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing +this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook. + +This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project +Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the +header without written permission. + +Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the +eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is +important information about your specific rights and restrictions in +how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a +donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved. + + +**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts** + +**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971** + +*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!***** + + +Title: Life and Habit + +Author: Samuel Butler + +Release Date: July, 2004 [EBook #6138] +[Yes, we are more than one year ahead of schedule] +[This file was first posted on November 18, 2002] + +Edition: 10 + +Language: English + +Character set encoding: ASCII +</pre> +<p><a name="startoftext"></a></p> +<p>Transcribed from the 1910 Jonathan Cape edition by David Price, email +ccx074@coventry.ac.uk</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines3"><br /><br /><br /></div> +<h1>LIFE AND HABIT</h1> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines3"><br /><br /><br /></div> +<h2>PREFACE</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>Since Samuel Butler published “Life and Habit” thirty-three +<a name="citation1"></a><a href="#footnote1">{1}</a> years have elapsed +- years fruitful in change and discovery, during which many of the mighty +have been put down from their seat and many of the humble have been +exalted. I do not know that Butler can truthfully be called humble, +indeed, I think he had very few misgivings as to his ultimate triumph, +but he has certainly been exalted with a rapidity that he himself can +scarcely have foreseen. During his lifetime he was a literary +pariah, the victim of an organized conspiracy of silence. He is +now, I think it may be said without exaggeration, universally accepted +as one of the most remarkable English writers of the latter part of +the nineteenth century. I will not weary my readers by quoting +the numerous tributes paid by distinguished contemporary writers to +Butler’s originality and force of mind, but I cannot refrain from +illustrating the changed attitude of the scientific world to Butler +and his theories by a reference to “Darwin and Modern Science,” +the collection of essays published in 1909 by the University of Cambridge, +in commemoration of the Darwin centenary. In that work Professor +Bateson, while referring repeatedly to Butler’s biological works, +speaks of him as “the most brilliant and by far the most interesting +of Darwin’s opponents, whose works are at length emerging from +oblivion.” With the growth of Butler’s reputation +“Life and Habit” has had much to do. It was the first +and is undoubtedly the most important of his writings on evolution. +From its loins, as it were, sprang his three later books, “Evolution +Old and New,” “Unconscious Memory,” and “Luck +or Cunning”, which carried its arguments further afield. +It will perhaps interest Butler’s readers if I here quote a passage +from his note-books, lately published in the “New Quarterly Review” +(Vol. III. No. 9), in which he summarizes his work in biology:</p> +<p>“To me it seems that my contributions to the theory of evolution +have been mainly these</p> +<p>“1. The identification of heredity and memory, and the +corollaries relating to sports, the reversion to remote ancestors, the +phenomena of old age, the causes of the sterility of hybrids, and the +principles underlying longevity - all of which follow as a matter of +course. This was ‘Life and Habit’ [1877].</p> +<p>“2. The re-introduction of teleology into organic life, +which to me seems hardly, if at all, less important than the ‘Life +and Habit’ theory. This was ‘Evolution Old and New’ +[1879].</p> +<p>“3. An attempt to suggest an explanation of the physics +of memory. This was Unconscious Memory’ [1880]. I +was alarmed by the suggestion and fathered it upon Professor Hering, +who never, that I can see, meant to say anything of the kind, but I +forced my view upon him, as it were, by taking hold of a sentence or +two in his lecture, ‘On Memory as a Universal Function of Organised +Matter,’ and thus connected memory with vibrations.</p> +<p>“What I want to do now (1885) is to connect vibrations not +only with memory but with the physical constitution of that body in +which the memory resides, thus adopting Newland’s law (sometimes +called Mendelejeff’s law) that there is only one substance, and +that the characteristics of the vibrations going on within it at any +given time will determine whether it will appear to us as, we will say, +hydrogen, or sodium, or chicken doing this, or chicken doing the other.” +[This is touched upon in the concluding chapter of “Luck or Cunning?” +1887].</p> +<p>The present edition of “Life and Habit” is practically +a re-issue of that of 1878. I find that about the year 1890, although +the original edition was far from being exhausted, Butler began to make +corrections of the text of “Life and Habit,” presumably +with the intention of publishing a revised edition. The copy of +the book so corrected is now in my possession. In the first five +chapters there are numerous emendations, very few of which, however, +affect the meaning to any appreciable extent, being mainly concerned +with the excision of redundancies and the simplification of style. +I imagine that by the time he had reached the end of the fifth chapter +Butler realised that the corrections he had made were not of sufficient +importance to warrant a new edition, and determined to let the book +stand as it was. I believe, therefore, that I am carrying out +his wishes in reprinting the present edition from the original plates. +I have found, however, among his papers three entirely new passages, +which he probably wrote during the period of correction and no doubt +intended to incorporate into the revised edition. Mr. Henry Festing +Jones has also given me a copy of a passage which Butler wrote and gummed +into Mr. Jones’s copy of “Life and Habit.” These +four passages I have printed as an appendix at the end of the present +volume.</p> +<p>One more point deserves notice. Butler often refers in “Life +and Habit” to Darwin’s “Variations of Animals and +Plants under Domestication.” When he does so it is always +under the name “Plants and Animals.” More often still +he refers to Darwin’s “Origin of Species by means Natural +Selection,” terming it at one time “Origin of Species” +and at another “Natural Selection,” sometimes, as on p. +278, using both names within a few lines of each other. Butler +was as a rule scrupulously careful about quotations, and I can offer +no explanation of this curious confusion of titles.</p> +<p>R. A. STREATFEILD.<br /><i>November</i>, 1910.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>AUTHOR’S PREFACE</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>The Italics in the passages quoted in this book are generally mine, +but I found it almost impossible to call the reader’s attention +to this upon every occasion. I have done so once or twice, as +thinking it necessary in these cases that there should be no mistake; +on the whole, however, I thought it better to content myself with calling +attention in a preface to the fact that the author quoted is not, as +a general rule, responsible for the Italics.</p> +<p>S. BUTLER.<br /><i>November</i> 13, 1877.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER I - ON CERTAIN ACQUIRED HABITS</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>It will be our business in the following chapters to consider whether +the unconsciousness, or quasi-unconsciousness, with which we perform +certain acquired actions, would seem to throw any light upon Embryology +and inherited instincts, and otherwise to follow the train of thought +which the class of actions above-mentioned would suggest; more especially +in so far as they appear to bear upon the origin of species and the +continuation of life by successive generations, whether in the animal +or vegetable kingdoms.</p> +<p>In the outset, however, I would wish most distinctly to disclaim +for these pages the smallest pretension to scientific value, originality, +or even to accuracy of more than a very rough and ready kind - for unless +a matter be true enough to stand a good deal of misrepresentation, its +truth is not of a very robust order, and the blame will rather lie with +its own delicacy if it be crushed, than with the carelessness of the +crusher. I have no wish to instruct, and not much to be instructed; +my aim is simply to entertain and interest the numerous class of people +who, like myself, know nothing of science, but who enjoy speculating +and reflecting (not too deeply) upon the phenomena around them. +I have therefore allowed myself a loose rein, to run on with whatever +came uppermost, without regard to whether it was new or old; feeling +sure that if true, it must be very old or it never could have occurred +to one so little versed in science as myself; and knowing that it is +sometimes pleasanter to meet the old under slightly changed conditions, +than to go through the formalities and uncertainties of making new acquaintance. +At the same time, I should say that whatever I have knowingly taken +from any one else, I have always acknowledged.</p> +<p>It is plain, therefore, that my book cannot be intended for the perusal +of scientific people; it is intended for the general public only, with +whom I believe myself to be in harmony, as knowing neither much more +nor much less than they do.</p> +<p>Taking then, the art of playing the piano as an example of the kind +of action we are in search of, we observe that a practised player will +perform very difficult pieces apparently without effort, often, indeed, +while thinking and talking of something quite other than his music; +yet he will play accurately and, possibly, with much expression. +If he has been playing a fugue, say in four parts, he will have kept +each part well distinct, in such a manner as to prove that his mind +was not prevented, by its other occupations, from consciously or unconsciously +following four distinct trains of musical thought at the same time, +nor from making his fingers act in exactly the required manner as regards +each note of each part.</p> +<p>It commonly happens that in the course of four or five minutes a +player may have struck four or five thousand notes. If we take +into consideration the rests, dotted notes, accidentals, variations +of time, &c., we shall find his attention must have been exercised +on many more occasions than when he was actually striking notes: so +that it may not be too much to say that the attention of a first-rate +player may have been exercised - to an infinitesimally small extent +- but still truly exercised - on as many as ten thousand occasions within +the space of five minutes, for no note can be struck nor point attended +to without a certain amount of attention, no matter how rapidly or unconsciously +given.</p> +<p>Moreover, each act of attention has been followed by an act of volition, +and each act of volition by a muscular action, which is composed of +many minor actions; some so small that we can no more follow them than +the player himself can perceive them; nevertheless, it may have been +perfectly plain that the player was not attending to what he was doing, +but was listening to conversation on some other subject, not to say +joining in it himself. If he has been playing the violin, he may +have done all the above, and may also have been walking about. +Herr Joachim would unquestionably be able to do all that has here been +described.</p> +<p>So complete would the player’s unconsciousness of the attention +he is giving, and the brain power he is exerting appear to be, that +we shall find it difficult to awaken his attention to any particular +part of his performance without putting him out. Indeed we cannot +do so. We shall observe that he finds it hardly less difficult +to compass a voluntary consciousness of what he has once learnt so thoroughly +that it has passed, so to speak, into the domain of unconsciousness, +than he found it to learn the note or passage in the first instance. +The effort after a second consciousness of detail baffles him - compels +him to turn to his music or play slowly. In fact it seems as though +he knew the piece too well to be able to know that he knows it, and +is only conscious of knowing those passages which he does not know so +thoroughly.</p> +<p>At the end of his performance, his memory would appear to be no less +annihilated than was his consciousness of attention and volition. +For of the thousands of acts requiring the exercise of both the one +and the other, which he has done during the five minutes, we will say, +of his performance, he will remember hardly one when it is over. +If he calls to mind anything beyond the main fact that he has played +such and such a piece, it will probably be some passage which he has +found more difficult than the others, and with the like of which he +has not been so long familiar. All the rest he will forget as +completely as the breath which he has drawn while playing.</p> +<p>He finds it difficult to remember even the difficulties he experienced +in learning to play. A few may have so impressed him that they +remain with him, but the greater part will have escaped him as completely +as the remembrance of what he ate, or how he put on his clothes, this +day ten years ago; nevertheless, it is plain he remembers more than +he remembers remembering, for he avoids mistakes which he made at one +time, and his performance proves that all the notes are in his memory, +though if called upon to play such and such a bar at random from the +middle of the piece, and neither more nor less, he will probably say +that he cannot remember it unless he begins from the beginning of the +phrase which leads to it. Very commonly he will be obliged to +begin from the beginning of the movement itself, and be unable to start +at any other point unless he have the music before him; and if disturbed, +as we have seen above, he will have to start <i>de novo</i> from an +accustomed starting-point.</p> +<p>Yet nothing can be more obvious than that there must have been a +time when what is now so easy as to be done without conscious effort +of the brain was only done by means of brain work which was very keenly +perceived, even to fatigue and positive distress. Even now, if +the player is playing something the like of which he has not met before, +we observe he pauses and becomes immediately conscious of attention.</p> +<p>We draw the inference, therefore, as regards pianoforte or violin +playing, that the more the familiarity or knowledge of the art, the +less is there consciousness of such knowledge; even so far as that there +should seem to be almost as much difficulty in awakening consciousness +which has become, so to speak, latent, - a consciousness of that which +is known too well to admit of recognised self-analysis while the knowledge +is being exercised - as in creating a consciousness of that which is +not yet well enough known to be properly designated as known at all. +On the other hand, we observe that the less the familiarly or knowledge, +the greater the consciousness of whatever knowledge there is.</p> +<p>Considering other like instances of the habitual exercise of intelligence +and volition, which, from long familiarity with the method of procedure, +escape the notice of the person exercising them, we naturally think +of writing. The formation of each letter requires attention and +volition, yet in a few minutes a practised writer will form several +hundred letters, and be able to think and talk of something else all +the time he is doing so. It will not probably remember the formation +of a single character in any page that he has written; nor will he be +able to give more than the substance of his writing if asked to do so. +He knows how to form each letter so well, and he knows so well each +word that he is about to write, that he has ceased to be conscious of +his knowledge or to notice his acts of volition, each one of which is, +nevertheless, followed by a corresponding muscular action. Yet +the uniformity of our handwriting, and the manner in which we almost +invariably adhere to one method of forming the same character, would +seem to suggest that during the momentary formation of each letter our +memories must revert (with an intensity too rapid for our perception) +to many if not to all the occasions on which we have ever written the +same letter previously - the memory of these occasions dwelling in our +minds as what has been called a residuum - an unconsciously struck balance +or average of them all - a fused mass of individual reminiscences of +which no trace can be found in our consciousness, and of which the only +effect would seem to lie in the gradual changes of handwriting which +are perceptible in most people till they have reached middle-age, and +sometimes even later. So far are we from consciously remembering +any one of the occasions on which we have written such and such a letter, +that we are not even conscious of exercising our memory at all, any +more than we are in health conscious of the action of our heart. +But, if we are writing in some unfamiliar way, as when printing our +letters instead of writing them in our usual running hand, our memory +is so far awakened that we become conscious of every character we form; +sometimes it is even perceptible as memory to ourselves, as when we +try to remember how to print some letter, for example a g, and cannot +call to mind on which side of the upper half of the letter we ought +to put the link which connects it with the lower, and are successful +in remembering; but if we become very conscious of remembering, it shows +that we are on the brink of only trying to remember, - that is to say, +of not remembering at all.</p> +<p>As a general rule, we remember for a time the substance of what we +have written, for the subject is generally new to us; but if we are +writing what we have often written before, we lose consciousness of +this too, as fully as we do of the characters necessary to convey the +substance to another person, and we shall find ourselves writing on +as it were mechanically while thinking and talking of something else. +So a paid copyist, to whom the subject of what he is writing is of no +importance, does not even notice it. He deals only with familiar +words and familiar characters without caring to go behind them, and +thereupon writes on in a quasi-unconscious manner; but if he comes to +a word or to characters with which he is but little acquainted, he becomes +immediately awakened to the consciousness of either remembering or trying +to remember. His consciousness of his own knowledge or memory +would seem to belong to a period, so to speak, of twilight between the +thick darkness of ignorance and the brilliancy of perfect knowledge; +as colour which vanishes with extremes of light or of shade. Perfect +ignorance and perfect knowledge are alike unselfconscious.</p> +<p>The above holds good even more noticeably in respect of reading. +How many thousands of individual letters do our eyes run over every +morning in the “Times” newspaper, how few of them do we +notice, or remember having noticed? Yet there was a time when +we had such difficulty in reading even the simplest words, that we had +to take great pains to impress them upon our memory so as to know them +when we came to then again. Now, not even a single word of all +we have seen will remain with us, unless it is a new one, or an old +one used in an unfamiliar sense, in which case we notice, and may very +likely remember it. Our memory retains the substance only, the +substance only being unfamiliar. Nevertheless, although we do +not perceive more than the general result of our perception, there can +be no doubt of our having perceived every letter in every word that +we have read at all, for if we come upon a word misspelt our attention +is at once aroused; unless, indeed, we have actually corrected the misspelling, +as well as noticed it, unconsciously, through exceeding familiarity +with the way in which it ought to be spelt. Not only do we perceive +the letters we have seen without noticing that we have perceived them, +but we find it almost impossible to notice that we notice them when +we have once learnt to read fluently. To try to do so puts us +out, and prevents our being able to read. We may even go so far +as to say that if a man can attend to the individual characters, it +is a sign that he cannot yet read fluently. If we know how to +read well, we are as unconscious of the means and processes whereby +we attain the desired result as we are about the growth of our hair +or the circulation of our blood. So that here again it would seem +that we only know what we know still to some extent imperfectly, and +that what we know thoroughly escapes our conscious perception though +none the less actually perceived. Our perception in fact passes +into a latent stage, as also our memory and volition.</p> +<p>Walking is another example of the rapid exercise of volition with +but little perception of each individual act of exercise. We notice +any obstacle in our path, but it is plain we do not notice that we perceive +much that we have nevertheless been perceiving; for if a man goes down +a lane by night he will stumble over many things which he would have +avoided by day, although he would not have noticed them. Yet time +was when walking was to each one of us a new and arduous task - as arduous +as we should now find it to wheel a wheelbarrow on a tight-rope; whereas, +at present, though we can think of our steps to a certain extent without +checking our power to walk, we certainly cannot consider our muscular +action in detail without having to come to a dead stop.</p> +<p>Talking - especially in one’s mother tongue - may serve as +a last example. We find it impossible to follow the muscular action +of the mouth and tongue in framing every letter or syllable we utter. +We have probably spoken for years and years before we became aware that +the letter h is a labial sound, and until we have to utter a word which +is difficult from its unfamiliarity we speak “trippingly on the +tongue” with no attention except to the substance of what we wish +to say. Yet talking was not always the easy matter to us which +it is at present - as we perceive more readily when we are learning +a new language which it may take us months to master. Nevertheless, +when we have once mastered it we speak it without further consciousness +of knowledge or memory, as regards the more common words, and without +even noticing our consciousness. Here, as in the other instances +already given, as long as we did not know perfectly, we were conscious +of our acts of perception, volition, and reflection, but when our knowledge +has become perfect we no longer notice our consciousness, nor our volition; +nor can we awaken a second artificial consciousness without some effort, +and disturbance of the process of which we are endeavouring to become +conscious. We are no longer, so to speak, under the law, but under +grace.</p> +<p>An ascending scale may be perceived in the above instances.</p> +<p>In playing, we have an action acquired long after birth, difficult +of acquisition, and never thoroughly familiarised to the power of absolutely +unconscious performance, except in the case of those who have either +an exceptional genius for music, or who have devoted the greater part +of their time to practising. Except in the case of these persons +it is generally found easy to become more or less conscious of any passage +without disturbing the performance, and our action remains so completely +within our control that we can stop playing at any moment we please.</p> +<p>In writing, we have an action generally acquired earlier, done for +the most part with great unconsciousness of detail, fairly well within +our control to stop at any moment; though not so completely as would +be imagined by those who have not made the experiment of trying to stop +in the middle of a given character when writing at fit speed. +Also, we can notice our formation of any individual character without +our writing being materially hindered.</p> +<p>Reading is usually acquired earlier still. We read with more +unconsciousness of attention than we write. We find it more difficult +to become conscious of any character without discomfiture, and we cannot +arrest ourselves in the middle of a word, for example, and hardly before +the end of a sentence; nevertheless it is on the whole well within our +control.</p> +<p>Walking is so early an acquisition that we cannot remember having +acquired it. In running fast over average ground we find it very +difficult to become conscious of each individual step, and should possibly +find it more difficult still, if the inequalities and roughness of uncultured +land had not perhaps caused the development of a power to create a second +consciousness of our steps without hindrance to our running or walking. +Pursuit and flight, whether in the chase or in war, must for many generations +have played a much more prominent part in the lives of our ancestors +than they do in our own. If the ground over which they had to +travel had been generally as free from obstruction as our modern cultivated +lands, it is possible that we might not find it as easy to notice our +several steps as we do at present. Even as it is, if while we +are running we would consider the action of our muscles, we come to +a dead stop, and should probably fall if we tried to observe too suddenly; +for we must stop to do this, and running, when we have once committed +ourselves to it beyond a certain point, is not controllable to a step +or two without loss of equilibrium.</p> +<p>We learn to talk, much about the same time that we learn to walk, +but talking requires less muscular effort than walking, and makes generally +less demand upon our powers. A man may talk a long while before +he has done the equivalent of a five-mile walk; it is natural, therefore, +that we should have had more practice in talking than in walking, and +hence that we should find it harder to pay attention to our words than +to our steps. Certainly it is very hard to become conscious of +every syllable or indeed of every word we say; the attempt to do so +will often bring us to a check at once; nevertheless we can generally +stop talking if we wish to do so, unless the crying of infants be considered +as a kind of <i>quasi</i>-speech: this comes earlier, and is often quite +uncontrollable, or more truly perhaps is done with such complete control +over the muscles by the will, and with such absolute certainty of his +own purpose on the part of the wilier, that there is no longer any more +doubt, uncertainty, or suspense, and hence no power of perceiving any +of the processes whereby the result is attained - as a wheel which may +look fast fixed because it is so fast revolving. <a name="citation2"></a><a href="#footnote2">{2}</a></p> +<p>We may observe therefore in this ascending scale, imperfect as it +is, that the older the habit the longer the practice, the longer the +practice, the more knowledge - or, the less uncertainty; the less uncertainty +the less power of conscious self-analysis and control.</p> +<p>It will occur to the reader that in all the instances given above, +different individuals attain the unconscious stage of perfect knowledge +with very different degrees of facility. Some have to attain it +with a great sum; others are free born. Some learn to play, to +read, write, and talk, with hardly an effort - some show such an instinctive +aptitude for arithmetic that, like Zerah Colburn, at eight years old, +they achieve results without instruction, which in the case of most +people would require a long education. The account of Zerah Colburn, +as quoted from Mr. Baily in Dr. Carpenter’s “Mental Physiology,” +may perhaps be given here.</p> +<p>“He raised any number consisting of <i>one</i> figure progressively +to the tenth power, giving the results (by actual multiplication and +not by memory) <i>faster</i> <i>than they could be set down in figures</i> +by the person appointed to record them. He raised the number 8 +progressively to the <i>sixteenth</i> power, and in naming the last +result, which consisted of 15 figures, he was right in every one. +Some numbers consisting of <i>two</i> figures he raised as high as the +eighth power, though he found a difficulty in proceeding when the products +became very large.</p> +<p>“On being asked the <i>square root</i> of 106,929, he answered +327 before the original number could be written down. He was then +required to find the cube root of 268,336,125, and with equal facility +and promptness he replied 645.</p> +<p>“He was asked how many minutes there are in 48 years, and before +the question could be taken down he replied 25,228,800, and immediately +afterwards he gave the correct number of seconds.</p> +<p>“On being requested to give the factors which would produce +the number 247,483, he immediately named 941 and 263, which are the +only two numbers from the multiplication of which it would result. +On 171,395 being proposed, he named 5 × 34,279, 7 × 24,485, +59 × 2905, 83 × 2065, 35 × 4897, 295 × 581, +and 413 × 415.</p> +<p>“He was then asked to give the factors of 36,083, but he immediately +replied that it had none, which was really the case, this being a prime +number. Other numbers being proposed to him indiscriminately, +he always succeeded in giving the correct factors except in the case +of prime numbers, which he generally discovered almost as soon as they +were proposed to him. The number 4,294,967,297, which is 2^32 ++ 1, having been given him, he discovered, as Euler had previously done, +that it was not the prime number which Fermat had supposed it to be, +but that it is the product of the factors 6,700,417 × 641. +The solution of this problem was only given after the lapse of some +weeks, but the method he took to obtain it clearly showed that he had +not derived his information from any extraneous source.</p> +<p>“When he was asked to multiply together numbers both consisting +of more than these figures, he seemed to decompose one or both of them +into its factors, and to work with them separately. Thus, on being +asked to give the square of 4395, he multiplied 293 by itself, and then +twice multiplied the product by 15. And on being asked to tell +the square of 999,999 he obtained the correct result, 999,998,000,001, +by twice multiplying the square of 37,037 by 27. He then of his +own accord multiplied that product by 49, and said that the result (viz., +48,999,902,000,049) was equal to the square of 6,999,993. He afterwards +multiplied this product by 49, and observed that the result (viz., 2,400,995,198,002,401) +was equal to the square of 48,999,951. He was again asked to multiply +the product by 25, and in naming the result (viz., 60,024,879,950,060,025) +he said it was equal to the square of 244,999,755.</p> +<p>“On being interrogated as to the manner in which he obtained +these results, the boy constantly said he did not know <i>how</i> the +answers came into his mind. In the act of multiplying two numbers +together, and in the raising of powers, it was evident (alike from the +facts just stated and from the motion of his lips) that <i>some</i> +operation was going forward in his mind; yet that operation could not +(from the readiness with which his answers were furnished) have been +at all allied to the usual modes of procedure, of which, indeed, he +was entirely ignorant, not being able to perform on paper a simple sum +in multiplication or division. But in the extraction of roots, +and in the discovery of the factors of large numbers, it did not appear +that any operation <i>could</i> take place, since he gave answers <i>immediately</i>, +or in a very few seconds, which, according to the ordinary methods, +would have required very difficult and laborious calculations, and prime +numbers cannot be recognised as such by any known rule.”</p> +<p>I should hope that many of the above figures are wrong. I have +verified them carefully with Dr. Carpenter’s quotation, but further +than this I cannot and will not go. Also I am happy to find that +in the end the boy overcame the mathematics, and turned out a useful +but by no means particularly calculating member of society.</p> +<p>The case, however, is typical of others in which persons have been +found able to do without apparent effort what in the great majority +of cases requires a long apprenticeship. It is needless to multiply +instances; the point that concerns us is, that knowledge under such +circumstances being very intense, and the ease with which the result +is produced extreme, it eludes the conscious apprehension of the performer +himself, who only becomes conscious when a difficulty arises which taxes +even his abnormal power. Such a case, therefore, confirms rather +than militates against our opinion that consciousness of knowledge vanishes +on the knowledge becoming perfect - the only difference between those +possessed of any such remarkable special power and the general run of +people being, that the first are born with such an unusual aptitude +for their particular specialty that they are able to dispense with all +or nearly all the preliminary exercise of their faculty, while the latter +must exercise it for a considerable time before they can get it to work +smoothly and easily; but in either case when once the knowledge is intense +it is unconscious.</p> +<p>Nor again would such an instance as that of Zerah Colburn warrant +us in believing that this white heat, as it were, of unconscious knowledge +can be attained by any one without his ever having been originally cold. +Young Colburn, for example, could not extract roots when he was an embryo +of three weeks’ standing. It is true we can seldom follow +the process, but we know there must have been a time in every case when +even the desire for information or action had not been kindled; the +forgetfulness of effort on the part of those with exceptional genius +for a special subject is due to the smallness of the effort necessary, +so that it makes no impression upon the individual himself, rather than +to the absence of any effort at all. <a name="citation3"></a><a href="#footnote3">{3}</a></p> +<p>It would, therefore, appear as though perfect knowledge and perfect +ignorance were extremes which meet and become indistinguishable from +one another; so also perfect volition and perfect absence of volition, +perfect memory and utter forgetfulness; for we are unconscious of knowing, +willing, or remembering, either from not yet having known or willed, +or from knowing and willing so well and so intensely as to be no longer +conscious of either. Conscious knowledge and volition are of attention; +attention is of suspense; suspense is of doubt; doubt is of uncertainty; +uncertainty is of ignorance; so that the mere fact of conscious knowing +or willing implies the presence of more or less novelty and doubt.</p> +<p>It would also appear as a general principle on a superficial view +of the foregoing instances (and the reader may readily supply himself +with others which are perhaps more to the purpose), that unconscious +knowledge and unconscious volition are never acquired otherwise than +as the result of experience, familiarity, or habit; so that whenever +we observe a person able to do any complicated action unconsciously, +we may assume both that he must have done it very often before he could +acquire so great proficiency, and also that there must have been a time +when he did not know how to do it at all.</p> +<p>We may assume that there was a time when he was yet so nearly on +the point of neither knowing nor willing perfectly, that he was quite +alive to whatever knowledge or volition he could exert; going further +back, we shall find him still more keenly alive to a less perfect knowledge; +earlier still, we find him well aware that he does not know nor will +correctly, but trying hard to do both the one and the other; and so +on, back and back, till both difficulty and consciousness become little +more than a sound of going in the brain, a flitting to and fro of something +barely recognisable as the desire to will or know at all - much less +as the desire to know or will definitely this or that. Finally, +they retreat beyond our ken into the repose - the inorganic kingdom +- of as yet unawakened interest.</p> +<p>In either case, - the repose of perfect ignorance or of perfect knowledge +- disturbance is troublesome. When first starting on an Atlantic +steamer, our rest is hindered by the screw; after a short time, it is +hindered if the screw stops. A uniform impression is practically +no impression. One cannot either learn or unlearn without pains +or pain.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER II - CONSCIOUS AND UNCONSCIOUS KNOWERS - THE LAW AND GRACE</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines3"><br /><br /><br /></div> +<p>In this chapter we shall show that the law, which we have observed +to hold as to the vanishing tendency of knowledge upon becoming perfect, +holds good not only concerning acquired actions or habits of body, but +concerning opinions, modes of thought, and mental habits generally, +which are no more recognised as soon as firmly fixed, than are the steps +with which we go about our daily avocations. I am aware that I +may appear in the latter part of the chapter to have wandered somewhat +beyond the limits of my subject, but, on the whole, decide upon leaving +what I have written, inasmuch as it serves to show how far-reaching +is the principle on which I am insisting. Having said so much, +I shall during the remainder of the book keep more closely to the point.</p> +<p>Certain it is that we know best what we are least conscious of knowing, +or at any rate least able to prove, as, for example, our own existence, +or that there is a country England. If any one asks us for proof +on matters of this sort, we have none ready, and are justly annoyed +at being called to consider what we regard as settled questions. +Again, there is hardly anything which so much affects our actions as +the centre of the earth (unless, perhaps, it be that still hotter and +more unprofitable spot the centre of the universe), for we are incessantly +trying to get as near it as circumstances will allow, or to avoid getting +nearer than is for the time being convenient. Walking, running, +standing, sitting, lying, waking, or sleeping, from birth till death +it is a paramount object with us; even after death - if it be not fanciful +to say so - it is one of the few things of which what is left of us +can still feel the influence; yet what can engross less of our attention +than this dark and distant spot so many thousands of miles away?</p> +<p>The air we breathe, so long as it is neither too hot nor cold, nor +rough, nor full of smoke - that is to say, so long as it is in that +state within which we are best acquainted - seldom enters into our thoughts; +yet there is hardly anything with which we are more incessantly occupied +night and day.</p> +<p>Indeed, it is not too much to say that we have no really profound +knowledge upon any subject - no knowledge on the strength of which we +are ready to act at all moments unhesitatingly without either preparation +or after-thought - till we have left off feeling conscious of the possession +of such knowledge, and of the grounds on which it rests. A lesson +thoroughly learned must be like the air which feels so light, though +pressing so heavily against us, because every pore of our skin is saturated, +so to speak, with it on all sides equally. This perfection of +knowledge sometimes extends to positive disbelief in the thing known, +so that the most thorough knower shall believe himself altogether ignorant. +No thief, for example, is such an utter thief - so <i>good</i> a thief +- as the kleptomaniac. Until he has become a kleptomaniac, and +can steal a horse as it were by a reflex action, he is still but half +a thief, with many unthievish notions still clinging to him. Yet +the kleptomaniac is probably unaware that he can steal at all, much +less that he can steal so well. He would be shocked if he were +to know the truth. So again, no man is a great hypocrite until +he has left off knowing that he is a hypocrite. The great hypocrites +of the world are almost invariably under the impression that they are +among the very few really honest people to be found and, as we must +all have observed, it is rare to find any one strongly under this impression +without ourselves having good reason to differ from him.</p> +<p>Our own existence is another case in point. When we have once +become articulately conscious of existing, it is an easy matter to begin +doubting whether we exist at all. As long as man was too unreflecting +a creature to articulate in words his consciousness of his own existence, +he knew very well that he existed, but he did not know that he knew +it. With introspection, and the perception recognised, for better +or worse, that he was a fact, came also the perception that he had no +solid ground for believing that he was a fact at all. That nice, +sensible, unintrospective people who were too busy trying to exist pleasantly +to trouble their heads as to whether they existed or no - that this +best part of mankind should have gratefully caught at such a straw as +“<i>cogito ergo sum</i>,” is intelligible enough. +They felt the futility of the whole question, and were thankful to one +who seemed to clench the matter with a cant catchword, especially with +a catchword in a foreign language; but how one, who was so far gone +as to recognise that he could not prove his own existence, should be +able to comfort himself with such a begging of the question, would seem +unintelligible except upon the ground of sheer exhaustion.</p> +<p>At the risk of appearing to wander too far from the matter in hand, +a few further examples may perhaps be given of that irony of nature, +by which it comes about that we so often most know and are, what we +least think ourselves to know and be - and on the other hand hold most +strongly what we are least capable of demonstrating.</p> +<p>Take the existence of a Personal God, - one of the most profoundly-received +and widely-spread ideas that have ever prevailed among mankind. +Has there ever been a <i>demonstration</i> of the existence of such +a God as has satisfied any considerable section of thinkers for long +together? Hardly has what has been conceived to be a demonstration +made its appearance and received a certain acceptance as though it were +actual proof, when it has been impugned with sufficient success to show +that, however true the fact itself, the demonstration is naught. +I do not say that this is an argument against the personality of God; +the drift, indeed, of the present reasoning would be towards an opposite +conclusion, inasmuch as it insists upon the fact that what is most true +and best known is often least susceptible of demonstration owing to +the very perfectness with which it is known; nevertheless, the fact +remains that many men in many ages and countries - the subtlest thinkers +over the whole world for some fifteen hundred years - have hunted for +a demonstration of God’s personal existence; yet though so many +have sought, - so many, and so able, and for so long a time - none have +found. There is no demonstration which can be pointed to with +any unanimity as settling the matter beyond power of reasonable cavil. +On the contrary, it may be observed that from the attempt to prove the +existence of a personal God to the denial of that existence altogether, +the path is easy. As in the case of our own existence, it will +be found that they alone are perfect believers in a personal Deity and +in the Christian religion who have not yet begun to feel that either +stands in need of demonstration. We observe that most people, +whether Christians, or Jews, or Mohammedans, are unable to give their +reasons for the faith that is in them with any readiness or completeness; +and this is sure proof that they really hold it so utterly as to have +no further sense that it either can be demonstrated or ought to be so, +but feel towards it as towards the air which they breathe but do not +notice. On the other hand, a living prelate was reported in the +“Times” to have said in one of his latest charges: “My +belief is that a widely extended good practice must be founded upon +Christian doctrine.” The fact of the Archbishop’s +recognising this as among the number of his beliefs is conclusive evidence +with those who have devoted attention to the laws of thought, that his +mind is not yet clear as to whether or no there is any connection at +all between Christian doctrine and widely extended good practice. <a name="citation4"></a><a href="#footnote4">{4}</a></p> +<p>Again, it has been often and very truly said that it is not the conscious +and self-styled sceptic, as Shelley for example, who is the true unbeliever. +Such a man as Shelley will, as indeed his life abundantly proves, have +more in common than not with the true unselfconscious believer. +Gallio again, whose indifference to religious animosities has won him +the cheapest immortality which, so far as I can remember, was ever yet +won, was probably if the truth were known, a person of the sincerest +piety. It is the unconscious unbeliever who is the true infidel, +however greatly he would be surprised to know the truth. Mr. Spurgeon +was reported as having recently asked the Almighty to “change +our rulers <i>as soon as possible</i>.” There lurks a more +profound distrust of God’s power in these words than in almost +any open denial of His existence.</p> +<p>So it rather shocks us to find Mr. Darwin writing (“Plants +and Animals under Domestication,” vol. ii., p. 275): “No +doubt, in every case there must have been some exciting cause.” +And again, six or seven pages later: “No doubt, each slight variation +must have its efficient cause.” The repetition within so +short a space of this expression of confidence in the impossibility +of causeless effects would suggest that Mr. Darwin’s mind at the +time of writing was, unconsciously to himself, in a state of more or +less uneasiness as to whether effects could not occasionally come about +of themselves, and without cause of any sort, - that he may have been +standing, in fact, for a short time upon the brink of a denial of the +indestructibility of force and matter.</p> +<p>In like manner, the most perfect humour and irony is generally quite +unconscious. Examples of both are frequently given by men whom +the world considers as deficient in humour; it is more probably true +that these persons are unconscious of their own delightful power through +the very mastery and perfection with which they hold it. There +is a play, for instance, of genuine fun in some of the more serious +scientific and theological journals which for some time past we have +looked for in vain in “ --- .”</p> +<p>The following extract, from a journal which I will not advertise, +may serve as an example:</p> +<p>“Lycurgus, when they had abandoned to his revenge him who had +put out his eyes, took him home, and the punishment he inflicted upon +him was sedulous instructions to virtue.” Yet this truly +comic paper does not probably know that it is comic, any more than the +kleptomaniac knows that he steals, or than John Milton knew he was a +humorist when he wrote a hymn upon the circumcision, and spent his honeymoon +in composing a treatise on divorce. No more again did Goethe know +how exquisitely humorous he was when he wrote, in his Wilhelm Meister, +that a beautiful tear glistened in Theresa’s right eye, and then +went on to explain that it glistened in her right eye and not in her +left, because she had had a wart on her left which had been removed +- and successfully. Goethe probably wrote this without a chuckle; +he believed what a good many people who have never read Wilhelm Meister +believe still, namely, that it was a work full of pathos, of fine and +tender feeling; yet a less consummate humorist must have felt that there +was scarcely a paragraph in it from first to last the chief merit of +which did not lie in its absurdity.</p> +<p>Another example may be taken from Bacon of the manner in which sayings +which drop from men unconsciously, give the key of their inner thoughts +to another person, though they themselves know not that they have such +thoughts at all; much less that these thoughts are their only true convictions. +In his Essay on Friendship the great philosopher writes: “Reading +good books on morality is a little flat and dead.” Innocent, +not to say pathetic, as this passage may sound it is pregnant with painful +inferences concerning Bacon’s moral character. For if he +knew that he found reading good books of morality a little flat and +dead, it follows he must have tried to read them; nor is he saved by +the fact that he found them a little flat and dead; for though this +does indeed show that he had begun to be so familiar with a few first +principles as to find it more or less exhausting to have his attention +directed to them further - yet his words prove that they were not so +incorporate with him that he should feel the loathing for further discourse +upon the matter which honest people commonly feel now. It will +be remembered that he took bribes when he came to be Lord Chancellor.</p> +<p>It is on the same principle that we find it so distasteful to hear +one praise another for earnestness. For such praise raises a suspicion +in our minds (<i>pace</i> the late Dr. Arnold and his following) that +the praiser’s attention must have been arrested by sincerity, +as by something more or less unfamiliar to himself. So universally +is this recognised that the world has for some time been discarded entirely +by all reputable people. Truly, if there is one who cannot find +himself in the same room with the life and letters of an earnest person +without being made instantly unwell, the same is a just man and perfect +in all his ways.</p> +<p>But enough has perhaps been said. As the fish in the sea, or +the bird in the air, so unreasoningly and inarticulately safe must a +man feel before he can be said to know. It is only those who are +ignorant and uncultivated who can know anything at all in a proper sense +of the words. Cultivation will breed in any man a certainty of +the uncertainty even of his most assured convictions. It is perhaps +fortunate for our comfort that we can none of us be cultivated upon +very many subjects, so that considerable scope for assurance will still +remain to us; but however this may be, we certainly observe it as a +fact that the greatest men are they who are most uncertain in spite +of certainty, and at the same time most certain in spite of uncertainty, +and who are thus best able to feel that there is nothing in such complete +harmony with itself as a flat contradiction in terms. For nature +hates that any principle should breed, so to speak, hermaphroditically, +but will give to each an help meet for it which shall cross it and be +the undoing of it; as in the case of descent with modification, of which +the essence would appear to be that every offspring should resemble +its parents, and yet, at the same time, that no offspring should resemble +its parents. But for the slightly irritating stimulant of this +perpetual crossing, we should pass our lives unconsciously as though +in slumber.</p> +<p>Until we have got to understand that though black is not white, yet +it may be whiter than white itself (and any painter will readily paint +that which shall show obviously as black, yet it shall be whiter than +that which shall show no less obviously as white), we may be good logicians, +but we are still poor reasoners. Knowledge is in an inchoate state +as long as it is capable of logical treatment; it must be transmuted +into that sense or instinct which rises altogether above the sphere +in which words can have being at all, otherwise it is not yet vital. +For sense is to knowledge what conscience is to reasoning about right +and wrong; the reasoning must be so rapid as to defy conscious reference +to first principles, and even at times to be apparently subversive of +them altogether, or the action will halt. It must, in fact, become +automatic before we are safe with it. While we are fumbling for +the grounds of our conviction, our conviction is prone to fall, as Peter +for lack of faith sinking into the waves of Galilee; so that the very +power to prove at all is an <i>à priori</i> argument against +the truth - or at any rate the practical importance to the vast majority +of mankind - of all that is supported by demonstration. For the +power to prove implies a sense of the need of proof, and things which +the majority of mankind find practically important are in ninety-nine +cases out of a hundred above proof. The need of proof becomes +as obsolete in the case of assumed knowledge, as the practice of fortifying +towns in the middle of an old and long settled country. Who builds +defences for that which is impregnable or little likely to be assailed? +The answer is ready, that unless the defences had been built in former +times it would be impossible to do without them now; but this does not +touch the argument, which is not that demonstration is unwise, but that +as long as a demonstration is still felt necessary, and therefore kept +ready to hand, the subject of such demonstration is not yet securely +known. <i>Qui s’excuse, s’accuse</i>; and unless a +matter can hold its own without the brag and self-assertion of continual +demonstration, it is still more or less of a parvenu, which we shall +not lose much by neglecting till it has less occasion to blow its own +trumpet. The only alternative is that it is an error in process +of detection, for if evidence concerning any opinion has long been denied +superfluous, and ever after this comes to be again felt necessary, we +know that the opinion is doomed.</p> +<p>If there is any truth in the above, it should follow that our conception +of the words “science” and “scientific” should +undergo some modification. Not that we should speak slightingly +of science, but that we should recognise more than we do, that there +are two distinct classes of scientific people corresponding not inaptly +with the two main parties unto which the political world is divided. +The one class is deeply versed in those sciences which have already +become the common property of mankind; enjoying, enforcing, perpetuating, +and engraving still more deeply unto the mind of man acquisitions already +approved by common experience, but somewhat careless about extension +of empire, or at any rate disinclined, for the most part, to active +effort on their own part for the sake of such extension - neither progressive, +in fact, nor aggressive - but quiet, peaceable people, who wish to live +and let live, as their fathers before them; while the other class is +chiefly intent upon pushing forward the boundaries of science, and is +comparatively indifferent to what is known already save in so far as +necessary for purposes of extension. These last are called pioneers +of science, and to them alone is the title “scientific” +commonly accorded; but pioneers, unimportant to an army as they are, +are still not the army itself; which can get on better without the pioneers +than the pioneers without the army. Surely the class which knows +thoroughly well what it knows, and which adjudicates upon the value +of the discoveries made by the pioneers - surely this class has as good +a right or better to be called scientific than the pioneers themselves.</p> +<p>These two classes above described blend into one another with every +shade of gradation. Some are admirably proficient in the well-known +sciences - that is to say, they have good health, good looks, good temper, +common sense, and energy, and they hold all these good things in such +perfection as to lie altogether without introspection - to be not under +the law, but so utterly and entirely under grace that every one who +sees them likes them. But such may, and perhaps more commonly +will, have very little inclination to extend the boundaries of human +knowledge; their aim is in another direction altogether. Of the +pioneers, on the other hand, some are agreeable people, well versed +in the older sciences, though still more eminent as pioneers, while +others, whose services in this last capacity have been of inestimable +value, are noticeably ignorant of the sciences which have already become +current with the larger part of mankind - in other words, they are ugly, +rude, and disagreeable people, very progressive, it may be, but very +aggressive to boot.</p> +<p>The main difference between these two classes lies in the fact that +the knowledge of the one, so far as it is new, is known consciously, +while that of the other is unconscious, consisting of sense and instinct +rather than of recognised knowledge. So long as a man has these, +and of the same kind as the more powerful body of his fellow-countrymen, +he is a true man of science, though he can hardly read or write. +As my great namesake said so well, “He knows what’s what, +and that’s as high as metaphysic wit can fly.” As +usual, these true and thorough knowers do not know that they are scientific, +and can seldom give a reason for the faith that is in them. They +believe themselves to be ignorant, uncultured men, nor can even the +professors whom they sometimes outwit in their own professorial domain +perceive that they have been outwitted by men of superior scientific +attainments to their own. The following passage from Dr. Carpenter’s +“Mesmerism, Spiritualism,” &c., may serve as an illustration:-</p> +<p>“It is well known that persons who are conversant with the +geological structure of a district are often able to indicate with considerable +certainty in what spot and at what depth water will be found; and men +<i>of less scientific knowledge, but of considerable practical experience</i>” +- (so that in Dr. Carpenter’s mind there seems to be some sort +of contrast or difference in kind between the knowledge which is derived +from observation of facts and scientific knowledge) - “frequently +arrive at a true conclusion upon this point without being able to assign +reasons for their opinions.</p> +<p>“Exactly the same may be said in regard to the mineral structure +of a mining district; the course of a metallic vein being often correctly +indicated by the shrewd guess of an <i>observant</i> workman, when <i>the +scientific reasoning</i> of the mining engineer altogether fails.”</p> +<p>Precisely. Here we have exactly the kind of thing we are in +search of: the man who has observed and observed till the facts are +so thoroughly in his head that through familiarity he has lost sight +both of them and of the processes whereby he deduced his conclusions +from them - is apparently not considered scientific, though he knows +how to solve the problem before him; the mining engineer, on the other +hand, who reasons scientifically - that is to say, with a knowledge +of his own knowledge - is found not to know, and to fail in discovering +the mineral.</p> +<p>“It is an experience we are continually encountering in other +walks of life,” continues Dr. Carpenter, “that particular +persons are guided - some apparently by an original and others by <i>an +acquired intuition</i> - to conclusions for which they can give no adequate +reason, but which subsequent events prove to have been correct.” +And this, I take it, implies what I have been above insisting on, namely, +that on becoming intense, knowledge seems also to become unaware of +the grounds on which it rests, or that it has or requires grounds at +all, or indeed even exists. The only issue between myself and +Dr. Carpenter would appear to be, that Dr. Carpenter, himself an acknowledged +leader in the scientific world, restricts the term “scientific” +to the people who know that they know, but are beaten by those who are +not so conscious of their own knowledge; while I say that the term “scientific” +should be applied (only that they would not like it) to the nice sensible +people who know what’s what rather than to the discovering class.</p> +<p>And this is easily understood when we remember that the pioneer cannot +hope to acquire any of the new sciences in a single lifetime so perfectly +as to become unaware of his own knowledge. As a general rule, +we observe him to be still in a state of active consciousness concerning +whatever particular science he is extending, and as long as he is in +this state he cannot know utterly. It is, as I have already so +often insisted on, those who do not know that they know so much who +have the firmest grip of their knowledge: the best class, for example, +of our English youth, who live much in the open air, and, as Lord Beaconsfield +finely said, never read. These are the people who know best those +things which are best worth knowing - that is to say, they are the most +truly scientific. Unfortunately, the apparatus necessary for this +kind of science is so costly as to be within the reach of few, involving, +as it does, an experience in the use of it for some preceding generations. +Even those who are born with the means within their reach must take +no less pains, and exercise no less self-control, before they can attain +the perfect unconscious use of them, than would go to the making of +a James Watt or a Stephenson; it is vain, therefore, to hope that this +best kind of science can ever be put within the reach of the many; nevertheless +it may be safely said that all the other and more generally recognised +kinds of science are valueless except in so far as they tend to minister +to this the highest kind. They have no <i>raison d’être</i> +except so far as they tend to do away with the necessity for work, and +to diffuse good health, and that good sense which is above self-consciousness. +They are to be encouraged because they have rendered the most fortunate +kind of modern European possible, and because they tend to make possible +a still more fortunate kind than any now existing. But the man +who devotes himself to science cannot - with the rarest, if any, exceptions +- belong to this most fortunate class himself. He occupies a lower +place, both scientifically and morally, for it is not possible but that +his drudgery should somewhat soil him both in mind and health of body, +or, if this be denied, surely it must let him and hinder him in running +the race for unconsciousness. We do not feel that it increases +the glory of a king or great nobleman that he should excel in what is +commonly called science. Certainly he should not go further than +Prince Rupert’s drops. Nor should he excel in music, art, +literature, or theology - all which things are more or less parts of +science. He should be above them all, save in so far as he can +without effort reap renown from the labours of others. It is a +<i>lâche</i> in him that he should write music or books, or paint +pictures at all; but if he must do so, his work should be at best contemptible. +Much as we must condemn Marcus Aurelius, we condemn James I. ever more +severely.</p> +<p>It is a pity there should exist so general a confusion of thought +upon this subject, for it may be asserted without fear of contradiction +that there is hardly any form of immorality now rife which produces +more disastrous effects upon those who give themselves up to it, and +upon society in general, than the so-called science of those who know +that they know too well to be able to know truly. With very clever +people - the people who know that they know - it is much as with the +members of the early Corinthian Church, to whom St. Paul wrote, that +if they looked their numbers over, they would not find many wise, nor +powerful, nor well-born people among them. Dog-fanciers tell us +that performing dogs never carry their tails; such dogs have eaten of +the tree of knowledge, and are convinced of sin accordingly - they know +that they know things, in respect of which, therefore, they are no longer +under grace, but under the law, and they have yet so much grace left +as to be ashamed. So with the human clever dog; he may speak with +the tongues of men and angels, but so long as he knows that he knows, +his tail will droop. More especially does this hold in the case +of those who are born to wealth and of old family. We must all +feel that a rich young nobleman with a taste for science and principles +is rarely a pleasant object. We do not even like the rich young +man in the Bible who wanted to inherit eternal life, unless, indeed, +he merely wanted to know whether there was not some way by which he +could avoid dying, and even so he is hardly worth considering. +Principles are like logic, which never yet made a good reasoner of a +bad one, but might still be occasionally useful if they did not invariably +contradict each other whenever there is any temptation to appeal to +them. They are like fire, good servants but bad masters. +As many people or more have been wrecked on principle as from want of +principle. They are, as their name implies, of an elementary character, +suitable for beginners only, and he who has so little mastered them +as to have occasion to refer to them consciously, is out of place in +the society of well-educated people. The truly scientific invariably +hate him, and, for the most part, the more profoundly in proportion +to the unconsciousness with which they do so.</p> +<p>If the reader hesitates, let him go down into the streets and look +in the shop-windows at the photographs of eminent men, whether literary, +artistic, or scientific, and note the work which the consciousness of +knowledge has wrought on nine out of every ten of them; then let him +go to the masterpieces of Greek and Italian art, the truest preachers +of the truest gospel of grace; let him look at the Venus of Milo, the +Discobolus, the St. George of Donatello. If it had pleased these +people to wish to study, there was no lack of brains to do it with; +but imagine “what a deal of scorn” would “look beautiful” +upon the Venus of Milo’s face if it were suggested to her that +she should learn to read. Which, think you, knows most, the Theseus, +or any modern professor taken at random? True, the advancement +of learning must have had a great share in the advancement of beauty, +inasmuch as beauty is but knowledge perfected and incarnate - but with +the pioneers it is <i>sic vos non vobis</i>; the grace is not for them, +but for those who come after. Science is like offences. +It must needs come, but woe unto that man through whom it comes; for +there cannot be much beauty where there is consciousness of knowledge, +and while knowledge is still new it must in the nature of things involve +much consciousness.</p> +<p>It is not knowledge, then, that is incompatible with beauty; there +cannot be too much knowledge, but it must have passed through many people +who it is to be feared must be more or less disagreeable, before beauty +or grace will have anything to say to it; it must be so incarnate in +a man’s whole being that he shall not be aware of it, or it will +fit him constrainedly as one under the law, and not as one under grace.</p> +<p>And grace is best, for where grace is, love is not distant. +Grace! the old Pagan ideal whose charm even unlovely Paul could not +understand, but, as the legend tells us, his soul fainted within him, +his heart misgave him, and, standing alone on the seashore at dusk, +he “troubled deaf heaven with his bootless cries,” his thin +voice pleading for grace after the flesh.</p> +<p>The waves came in one after another, the sea-gulls cried together +after their kind, the wind rustled among the dried canes upon the sandbanks, +and there came a voice from heaven saying, “Let My grace be sufficient +for thee.” Whereon, failing of the thing itself, he stole +the word and strove to crush its meaning to the measure of his own limitations. +But the true grace, with her groves and high places, and troups of young +men and maidens crowned with flowers, and singing of love and youth +and wine - the true grace he drove out into the wilderness - high up, +it may be, into Piora, and into such-like places. Happy they who +harboured her in her ill report.</p> +<p>It is common to hear men wonder what new faith will be adopted by +mankind if disbelief in the Christian religion should become general. +They seem to expect that some new theological or quasi-theological system +will arise, which, <i>mutatis mutandis</i>, shall be Christianity over +again. It is a frequent reproach against those who maintain that +the supernatural element of Christianity is without foundation, that +they bring forward no such system of their own. They pull down +but cannot build. We sometimes hear even those who have come to +the same conclusions as the destroyers say, that having nothing new +to set up, they will not attack the old. But how can people set +up a new superstition, knowing it to be a superstition? Without +faith in their own platform, a faith as intense as that manifested by +the early Christians, how can they preach? A new superstition +will come, but it is in the very essence of things that its apostles +should have no suspicion of its real nature; that they should no more +recognise the common element between the new and the old than the early +Christians recognised it between their faith and Paganism. If +they did, they would be paralysed. Others say that the new fabric +may be seen rising on every side, and that the coming religion is science. +Certainly its apostles preach it without misgiving, but it is not on +that account less possible that it may prove only to be the coming superstition +- like Christianity, true to its true votaries, and, like Christianity, +false to those who follow it introspectively.</p> +<p>It may well be we shall find we have escaped from one set of taskmasters +to fall into the hands of others far more ruthless. The tyranny +of the Church is light in comparison with that which future generations +may have to undergo at the hands of the doctrinaires. The Church +did uphold a grace of some sort as the <i>summum bonum</i>, in comparison +with which all so-called earthly knowledge - knowledge, that is to say, +which had not passed through so many people as to have become living +and incarnate - was unimportant. Do what we may, we are still +drawn to the unspoken teaching of her less introspective ages with a +force which no falsehood could command. Her buildings, her music, +her architecture, touch us as none other on the whole can do; when she +speaks there are many of us who think that she denies the deeper truths +of her own profounder mind, and unfortunately her tendency is now towards +more rather than less introspection. The more she gives way to +this - the more she becomes conscious of knowing - the less she will +know. But still her ideal is in grace.</p> +<p>The so-called man of science, on the other hand, seems now generally +inclined to make light of all knowledge, save of the pioneer character. +His ideal is in self-conscious knowledge. Let us have no more +Lo, here, with the professor; he very rarely knows what he says he knows; +no sooner has he misled the world for a sufficient time with a great +flourish of trumpets than he is toppled over by one more plausible than +himself. He is but medicine-man, augur, priest, in its latest +development; useful it may be, but requiring to be well watched by those +who value freedom. Wait till he has become more powerful, and +note the vagaries which his conceit of knowledge will indulge in. +The Church did not persecute while she was still weak. Of course +every system has had, and will have, its heroes, but, as we all very +well know, the heroism of the hero is but remotely due to system; it +is due not to arguments, nor reasoning, nor to any consciously recognised +perceptions, but to those deeper sciences which lie far beyond the reach +of self-analysis, and for the sturdy of which there is but one schooling +- to have had good forefathers for many generations.</p> +<p>Above all things, let no unwary reader do me the injustice of believing +in <i>me</i>. In that I write at all I am among the dammed. +If he must believe in anything, let him believe in the music of Handel, +the painting of Giovanni Bellini, and in the thirteenth chapter of St. +Paul’s First Epistle to the Corinthians.</p> +<p>But to return. Whenever we find people knowing that they know +this or that, we have the same story over and over again. They +do not yet know it perfectly.</p> +<p>We come, therefore, to the conclusion that our knowledge and reasoning +thereupon, only become perfect, assured, unhesitating, when they have +become automatic, and are thus exercised without further conscious effort +of the mind, much in the same way as we cannot walk nor read nor write +perfectly till we can do so automatically.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER III - APPLICATION OF FOREGOING CHAPTERS TO CERTAIN HABITS +ACQUIRED AFTER BIRTH WHICH ARE COMMONLY CONSIDERED INSTINCTIVE.</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>What is true of knowing is also true of willing. The more intensely +we will, the less is our will deliberate and capable of being recognised +as will at all. So that it is common to hear men declare under +certain circumstances that they had no will, but were forced into their +own action under stress of passion or temptation. But in the more +ordinary actions of life, we observe, as in walking or breathing, that +we do not will anything utterly and without remnant of hesitation, till +we have lost sight of the fact that we are exercising our will.</p> +<p>The question, therefore, is forced upon us, how far this principle +extends, and whether there may not be unheeded examples of its operation +which, if we consider them, will land us in rather unexpected conclusions. +If it be granted that consciousness of knowledge and of volition vanishes +when the knowledge and the volition have become intense and perfect, +may it not be possible that many actions which we do without knowing +how we do them, and without any conscious exercise of the will - actions +which we certainly could not do if we tried to do them, nor refrain +from doing if for any reason we wished to do so - are done so easily +and so unconsciously owing to excess of knowledge or experience rather +than deficiency, we having done them too often, knowing how to do them +too well, and having too little hesitation as to the method of procedure, +to be capable of following our own action without the utter derangement +of such action altogether; or, in other cases, because we have so long +settled the question, that we have stowed away the whole apparatus with +which we work in corners of our system which we cannot now conveniently +reach?</p> +<p>It may be interesting to see whether we can find any class or classes +of actions which would seem to link actions which for some time after +birth we could not do at all, and in which our proficiency has reached +the stage of unconscious performance obviously through repeated effort +and failure, and through this only, with actions which we could do as +soon as we were born, and concerning which it would at first sight appear +absurd to say that they can have been acquired by any process in the +least analogous to that which we commonly call experience, inasmuch +as the creature itself which does them has only just begun to exist, +and cannot, therefore, in the very nature of things, have had experience.</p> +<p>Can we see that actions, for the acquisition of which experience +is such an obvious necessity, that whenever we see the acquisition we +assume the experience, gradate away imperceptibly into actions which +would seem, according to all reasonable analogy, to presuppose experience, +of which, however, the time and place seem obscure, if not impossible?</p> +<p>Eating and drinking would appear to be such actions. The new-born +child cannot eat, and cannot drink, but he can swallow as soon as he +is born; and swallowing would appear (as we may remark in passing) to +have been an earlier faculty of animal life than that of eating with +teeth. The ease and unconsciousness with which we eat and drink +is clearly attributable to practice; but a very little practice seems +to go a long way - a suspiciously small amount of practice - as though +somewhere or at some other time there must have been more practice than +we can account for. We can very readily stop eating or drinking, +and can follow our own action without difficulty in either process; +but, as regards swallowing, which is the earlier habit, we have less +power of self-analysis and control: when we have once committed ourselves +beyond a certain point to swallowing, we must finish doing so, - that +is to say, our control over the operation ceases. Also, a still +smaller experience seems necessary for the acquisition of the power +to swallow than appeared necessary in the case of eating; and if we +get into a difficulty we choke, and are more at a loss how to become +introspective than we are about eating and drinking.</p> +<p>Why should a baby be able to swallow - which one would have said +was the more complicated process of the two - with so much less practice +than it takes him to learn to eat? How comes it that he exhibits +in the case of the more difficult operation all the phenomena which +ordinarily accompany a more complete mastery and longer practice? +Analogy would certainly seem to point in the direction of thinking that +the necessary experience cannot have been wanting, and that, too, not +in such a quibbling sort as when people talk about inherited habit or +the experience of the race, which, without explanation, is to plain-speaking +persons very much the same, in regard to the individual, as no experience +at all, but <i>bonâ fide</i> in the child’s own person.</p> +<p>Breathing, again, is an action acquired after birth, generally with +some little hesitation and difficulty, but still acquired in a time +seldom longer, as I am informed, than ten minutes or a quarter of an +hour. For an ant which has to be acquired at all, there would +seem here, as in the case of eating, to be a disproportion between, +on the one hand, the intricacy of the process performed, and on the +other, the shortness of the time taken to acquire the practice, and +the ease and unconsciousness with which its exercise is continued from +the moment of acquisition.</p> +<p>We observe that in later life much less difficult and intricate operations +than breathing acquire much longer practice before they can be mastered +to the extent of unconscious performance. We observe also that +the phenomena attendant on the learning by an infant to breathe are +extremely like those attendant upon the repetition of some performance +by one who has done it very often before, but who requires just a little +prompting to set him off, on getting which, the whole familiar routine +presents itself before him, and he repeats his task by rote. Surely +then we are justified in suspecting that there must have been more <i>bonâ +fide</i> personal recollection and experience, with more effort and +failure on the part of the infant itself than meet the eye.</p> +<p>It should be noticed, also, that our control over breathing is very +limited. We can hold our breath a little, or breathe a little +faster for a short time, but we cannot do this for long, and after having +gone without air for a certain time we must breath.</p> +<p>Seeing and hearing require some practice before their free use is +mastered, but not very much. They are so far within our control +that we can see more by looking harder, and hear more by listening attentively +- but they are beyond our control in so far as that we must see and +hear the greater part of what presents itself to us as near, and at +the same time unfamiliar, unless we turn away or shut our eyes, or stop +our ears by a mechanical process; and when we do this it is a sign that +we have already involuntarily seen or heard more than we wished. +The familiar, whether sight or sound, very commonly escapes us.</p> +<p>Take again the processes of digestion, the action of the heart, and +the oxygenisation of the blood - processes of extreme intricacy, done +almost entirely unconsciously, and quite beyond the control of our volition.</p> +<p>Is it possible that our unconsciousness concerning our own performance +of all these processes arises from over-experience?</p> +<p>Is there anything in digestion, or the oxygenisation of the blood, +different in kind to the rapid unconscious action of a man playing a +difficult piece of music on the piano? There may be in degree, +but as a man who sits down to play what he well knows, plays on, when +once started, almost, as we say, mechanically, so, having eaten his +dinner, he digests it as a matter of course, unless it has been in some +way unfamiliar to him, or he to it, owing to some derangement or occurrence +with which he is unfamiliar, and under which therefore he is at a loss +now to comport himself, as a player would be at a loss how to play with +gloves on, or with gout in his fingers, or if set to play music upside +down.</p> +<p>Can we show that all the acquired actions of childhood and after-life, +which we now do unconsciously, or without conscious exercise of the +will, are familiar acts - acts which we have already done a very great +number of times?</p> +<p>Can we also show that there are no acquired actions which we can +perform in this automatic manner, which were not at one time difficult, +requiring attention, and liable to repeated failure, our volition failing +to command obedience from the members which should carry its purposes +into execution?</p> +<p>If so, analogy will point in the direction of thinking that other +acts which we do even more unconsciously may only escape our power of +self-examination and control because they are even more familiar - because +we have done them oftener; and we may imagine that if there were a microscope +which could show us the minutest atoms of consciousness and volition, +we should find that even the apparently most automatic actions were +yet done in due course, upon a balance of considerations, and under +the deliberate exercise of the will.</p> +<p>We should also incline to think that even such an action as the oxygenisation +of its blood by an infant of ten minutes’ old, can only be done +so well and so unconsciously, after repeated failures on the part of +the infant itself.</p> +<p>True, as has been already implied, we do not immediately see when +the baby could have made the necessary mistakes and acquired that infinite +practice without which it could never go through such complex processes +satisfactorily; we have therefore invented the words “hereditary +instinct,” and consider them as accounting for the phenomenon; +but a very little reflection will show that though these words may be +a very good way of stating the difficulty, they do little or nothing +towards removing it.</p> +<p>Why should hereditary instinct enable a creature to dispense with +the experience which we see to be necessary in all other cases before +difficult operations can be performed successfully?</p> +<p>What is this talk that is made about the experience <i>of the race</i>, +as though the experience of one man could profit another who knows nothing +about him? If a man eats his dinner, it nourishes <i>him</i> and +not his neighbour; if he learns a different art, it is <i>he</i> that +can do it and not his neighbour. Yet, practically, we see that +the vicarious experience, which seems so contrary to our common observation, +does nevertheless appear to hold good in the case of creatures and their +descendants. Is there, then, any way of bringing these apparently +conflicting phenomena under the operation of one law? Is there +any way of showing that this experience of the race, of which so much +is said without the least attempt to show in what way it may or does +become the experience of the individual, is in sober seriousness the +experience of one single being only, repeating in a great many different +ways certain performances with which he has become exceedingly familiar?</p> +<p>It would seem that we must either suppose the conditions of experience +to differ during the earlier stages of life from those which we observe +them to become during the heyday of any existence - and this would appear +very gratuitous, tolerable only as a suggestion because the beginnings +of life are so obscure, that in such twilight we may do pretty much +whatever we please without danger of confutation - or that we must suppose +the continuity of life and sameness between living beings, whether plants +or animals, and their descendants, to be far closer than we have hitherto +believed; so that the experience of one person is not enjoyed by his +successor, so much as that the successor is <i>bonâ fide</i> but +a part of the life of his progenitor, imbued with all his memories, +profiting by all his experiences - which are, in fact, his own - and +only unconscious of the extent of his own memories and experiences owing +to their vastness and already infinite repetitions.</p> +<p>Certainly it presents itself to us at once as a singular coincidence +-</p> +<p>I. That we are <i>most conscious of, and have most control +over</i>, such habits as speech, the upright position, the arts and +sciences, which are acquisitions peculiar to the human race, always +acquired after birth, and not common to ourselves and any ancestor who +had not become entirely human.</p> +<p>II. That we are <i>less conscious of, and have less control +over</i>, eating and drinking, swallowing, breathing, seeing and hearing, +which were acquisitions of our prehuman ancestry, and for which we had +provided ourselves with all the necessary apparatus before we saw light, +but which are still, geologically speaking, recent, or comparatively +recent.</p> +<p>III. That we are <i>most unconscious of, and have least control +over</i>, our digestion and circulation, which belonged even to our +invertebrate ancestry, and which are habits, geologically speaking, +of extreme antiquity.</p> +<p>There is something too like method in this for it to be taken as +the result of mere chance - chance again being but another illustration +of Nature’s love of a contradiction in terms; for everything is +chance, and nothing is chance. And you may take it that all is +chance or nothing chance, according as you please, but you must not +have half chance and half not chance.</p> +<p>Does it not seem as though the older and more confirmed the habit, +the more unquestioning the act of volition, till, in the case of the +oldest habits, the practice of succeeding existences has so formulated +the procedure, that, on being once committed to such and such a line +beyond a certain point, the subsequent course is so clear as to be open +to no further doubt, to admit of no alternative, till the very power +of questioning is gone, and even the consciousness of volition? +And this too upon matters which, in earlier stages of a man’s +existence, admitted of passionate argument and anxious deliberation +whether to resolve them thus or thus, with heroic hazard and experiment, +which on the losing side proved to be vice, and on the winning virtue. +For there was passionate argument once what shape a man’s teeth +should be, nor can the colour of his hair be considered as ever yet +settled, or likely to be settled for a very long time.</p> +<p>It is one against legion when a creature tries to differ from his +own past selves. He must yield or die if he wants to differ widely, +so as to lack natural instincts, such as hunger or thirst, or not to +gratify them. It is more righteous in a man that he should “eat +strange food,” and that his cheek should “so much as lank +not,” than that he should starve if the strange food be at his +command. His past selves are living in him at this moment with +the accumulated life of centuries. “Do this, this, this, +which we too have done, and found our profit in it,” cry the souls +of his forefathers within him. Faint are the far ones, coming +and going as the sound of bells wafted on to a high mountain; loud and +clear are the near ones, urgent as an alarm of fire. “Withhold,” +cry some. “Go on boldly,” cry others. “Me, +me, me, revert hitherward, my descendant,” shouts one as it were +from some high vantage-ground over the heads of the clamorous multitude. +“Nay, but me, me, me,” echoes another; and our former selves +fight within us and wrangle for our possession. Have we not here +what is commonly called an <i>internal tumult</i>, when dead pleasures +and pains tug within us hither and thither? Then may the battle +be decided by what people are pleased to call our own experience. +Our own indeed! What is our own save by mere courtesy of speech? +A matter of fashion. Sanction sanctifieth and fashion fashioneth. +And so with death - the most inexorable of all conventions.</p> +<p>However this may be, we may assume it as an axiom with regard to +actions acquired after birth, that we never do them automatically save +as the result of long practice, and after having thus acquired perfect +mastery over the action in question.</p> +<p>But given the practice or experience, and the intricacy of the process +to be performed appears to matter very little. There is hardly +anything conceivable as being done by man, which a certain amount of +familiarity will not enable him to do, as it were mechanically and without +conscious effort. “The most complex and difficult movements,” +writes Mr Darwin, “can in time be performed without the least +effort or consciousness.” All the main business of life +is done thus unconsciously or semi-unconsciously. For what is +the main business of life? We work that we may eat and digest, +rather than eat and digest that we may work; this, at any rate, is the +normal state of things: the more important business then is that which +is carried on unconsciously. So again the action of the brain, +which goes on prior to our realising the idea in which it results, is +not perceived by the individual. So also all the deeper springs +of action and conviction. The residuum with which we fret and +worry ourselves is a mere matter of detail, as the higgling and haggling +of the market, which is not over the bulk of the price, but over the +last halfpenny.</p> +<p>Shall we say, then, that a baby of a day old sucks (which involves +the whole principle of the pump, and hence a profound practical knowledge +of the laws of pneumatics and hydrostatics), digests, oxygenises its +blood (millions of years before Sir Humphry Davy discovered oxygen), +sees and hears - all most difficult and complicated operations, involving +a knowledge of the facts concerning optics and acoustics, compared with +which the discoveries of Newton sink into utter insignificance? +Shall we say that a baby can do all these things at once, doing them +so well and so regularly, without being even able to direct its attention +to them, and without mistake, and at the same time not know how to do +them, and never have done them before?</p> +<p>Such an assertion would be a contradiction to the whole experience +of mankind. Surely the <i>onus probandi</i> must rest with him +who makes it.</p> +<p>A man may make a lucky hit now and again by what is called a fluke, +but even this must be only a little in advance of his other performances +of the same kind. He may multiply seven by eight by a fluke after +a little study of the multiplication table, but he will not be able +to extract the cube root of 4913 by a fluke, without long training in +arithmetic, any more than an agricultural labourer would be able to +operate successfully for cataract. If, then, a grown man cannot +perform so simple an operation as that we will say, for cataract, unless +he have been long trained in other similar operations, and until he +has done what comes to the same thing many times over, with what show +of reason can we maintain that one who is so far less capable than a +grown man, can perform such vastly more difficult operations, without +knowing how to do them, and without ever having done them before? +There is no sign of “fluke” about the circulation of a baby’s +blood. There may perhaps be some little hesitation about its earliest +breathing, but this, as a general rule, soon passes over, both breathing +and circulation, within an hour after birth, being as regular and easy +as at any time during life. Is it reasonable, then, to say that +the baby does these things without knowing how to do them, and without +ever having done them before, and continues to do them by a series of +lifelong flukes?</p> +<p>It would be well if those who feel inclined to hazard such an assertion +would find some other instances of intricate processes gone through +by people who know nothing about them, and never had any practice therein. +What <i>is</i> to know how to do a thing? Surely to do it. +What is proof that we know how to do a thing? Surely the fact +that we can do it. A man shows that he knows how to throw the +boomerang by throwing the boomerang. No amount of talking or writing +can get over this; <i>ipso facto</i>, that a baby breathes and makes +its blood circulate, it knows how to do so and the fact that it does +not know its own knowledge is only proof of the perfection of that knowledge, +and of the vast number of past occasions on which it must have been +exercised already. As we have said already, it is less obvious +when the baby could have gained its experience, so as to be able so +readily to remember exactly what to do; but it is more easy to suppose +that the necessary occasions cannot have been wanting, than that the +power which we observe should have been obtained without practice and +memory.</p> +<p>If we saw any self-consciousness on the baby’s part about its +breathing or circulation, we might suspect that it had had less experience, +or profited less by its experience, than its neighbours - exactly in +the same manner as we suspect a deficiency of any quality which we see +a man inclined to parade. We all become introspective when we +find that we do not know our business, and whenever we are introspective +we may generally suspect that we are on the verge of unproficiency. +Unfortunately, in the case of sickly children, we observe that they +sometimes do become conscious of their breathing and circulation, just +as in later life we become conscious that we have a liver or a digestion. +In that case there is always something wrong. The baby that becomes +aware of its breathing does not know how to breathe, and will suffer +for his ignorance and incapacity, exactly in the same way as he will +suffer in later life for ignorance and incapacity in any other respect +in which his peers are commonly knowing and capable. In the case +of inability to breath, the punishment is corporal, breathing being +a matter of fashion, so old and long settled that nature can admit of +no departure from the established custom, and the procedure in case +of failure is as much formulated as the fashion itself in the case of +the circulation, the whole performance has become one so utterly of +rote, that the mere discovery that we could do it at all was considered +one of the highest flights of human genius.</p> +<p>It has been said a day will come when the Polar ice shall have accumulated, +till it forms vast continents many thousands of feet above the level +of the sea, all of solid ice. The weight of this mass will, it +is believed, cause the world to topple over on its axis, so that the +earth will be upset as an ant-heap overturned by a ploughshare. +In that day time icebergs will come crunching against our proudest cities, +razing them from off the face of the earth as though they were made +of rotten blotting-paper. There is no respect now of Handel nor +of Shakespeare; the works of Rembrandt and Bellini fossilise at the +bottom of the sea. Grace, beauty, and wit, all that is precious +in music, literature, and art - all gone. In the morning there +was Europe. In the evening there are no more populous cities nor +busy hum of men, but a sea of jagged ice, a lurid sunset, and the doom +of many ages. Then shall a scared remnant escape in places, and +settle upon the changed continent when the waters have subsided - a +simple people, busy hunting shellfish on the drying ocean beds, and +with little time for introspection yet they can read and write and sum, +for by that time these accomplishments will have become universal, and +will be acquired as easily as we now learn to talk; but they do so as +a matter of course, and without self-consciousness. Also they +make the simpler kinds of machinery too easily to be able to follow +their own operations - the manner of their own apprenticeship being +to them as a buried city. May we not imagine that, after the lapse +of another ten thousand years or so, some one of them may again become +cursed with lust of introspection, and a second Harvey may astonish +the world by discovering that it can read and write, and that steam-engines +do not grow, but are made? It may be safely prophesied that he +will die a martyr, and be honoured in the fourth generation.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER IV - APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING PRINCIPLES TO ACTIONS +AND HABITS ACQUIRED BEFORE BIRTH</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>But if we once admit the principle that consciousness and volition +have a tendency to vanish as soon as practice has rendered any habit +exceedingly familiar, so that the mere presence of an elaborate but +unconscious performance shall carry with it a presumption of infinite +practice, we shall find it impossible to draw the line at those actions +which we see acquired after birth, no matter at how early a period. +The whole history and development of the embryo in all its stages forces +itself on our consideration. Birth has been made too much of. +It is a salient feature in the history of the individual, but not more +salient than a hundred others, and far less so than the commencement +of his existence as a single cell uniting in itself elements derived +from both parents, or perhaps than any point in his whole existence +as an embryo. For many years after we are born we are still very +incomplete. We cease to oxygenise our blood vicariously as soon +as we are born, but we still derive our sustenance from our mothers. +Birth is but the beginning of doubt, the first hankering after scepticism, +the dreaming of a dawn of trouble, the end of certainty and of settled +convictions. Not but what before birth there have been unsettled +convictions (more’s the pity) with not a few, and after birth +we have still so made up our minds upon many points as to have no further +need of reflection concerning them; nevertheless, in the main, birth +is the end of that time when we really knew our business, and the beginning +of the days wherein we know not what we would do, or do. It is +therefore the beginning of consciousness, and infancy is as the dosing +of one who turns in his bed on waking, and takes another short sleep +before he rises. When we were yet unborn, our thoughts kept the +roadway decently enough; then were we blessed; we thought as every man +thinks, and held the same opinions as our fathers and mothers had done +upon nearly every subject. Life was not an art - and a very difficult +art - much too difficult to be acquired in a lifetime; it was a science +of which we were consummate masters.</p> +<p>In this sense, then, birth may indeed be looked upon as the most +salient feature in a man’s life; but this is not at all the sense +in which it is commonly so regarded. It is commonly considered +as the point at which we begin to live. More truly it is the point +at which we leave off knowing how to live.</p> +<p>A chicken, for example, is never so full of consciousness, activity, +reasoning faculty, and volition, as when it is an embryo in the eggshell, +making bones, and flesh, and feathers, and eyes, and claws, with nothing +but a little warmth and white of egg to make them from. This is +indeed to make bricks with but a small modicum of straw. There +is no man in the whole world who knows consciously and articulately +as much as a half-hatched hen’s egg knows unconsciously. +Surely the egg in its own way must know quite as much as the chicken +does. We say of the chicken that it knows how to run about as +soon as it is hatched. So it does; but had it no knowledge before +it was hatched? What made it lay the foundations of those limbs +which should enable it to run about? What made it grow a horny +tip to its bill before it was hatched, so that it might peck all round +the larger end of the eggshell and make a hole for itself to get out +at? Having once got outside the eggshell, the chicken throws away +this horny tip; but is it reasonable to suppose that it would have grown +it at all unless it had known that it would want something with which +to break the eggshell? And again, is it in the least agreeable +to our experience that such elaborate machinery should be made without +endeavour, failure, perseverance, intelligent contrivance, experience, +and practice?</p> +<p>In the presence of such considerations, it seems impossible to refrain +from thinking that there must be a closer continuity of identity, life, +and memory, between successive generations than we generally imagine. +To shear the thread of life, and hence of memory, between one generation +and its successor, is so to speak, a brutal measure, an act of intellectual +butchery, and like all such strong high-handed measures, a sign of weakness +in him who is capable of it till all other remedies have been exhausted. +It is mere horse science, akin to the theories of the convulsionists +in the geological kingdom, and of the believers in the supernatural +origin of the species of plants and animals. Yet it is to be feared +that we have not a few among us who would feel shocked rather at the +attempt towards a milder treatment of the facts before them, than at +a continuance of the present crass tyranny with which we try to crush +them inside our preconceived opinions. It is quite common to hear +men of education maintain that not even when it was on the point of +being hatched, had the chicken sense enough to know that it wanted to +get outside the eggshell. It did indeed peck all round the end +of the shell, which, if it wanted to get out, would certainly be the +easiest way of effecting its purpose; but it did not, they say, peck +because it was aware of this, but “promiscuously.” +Curious, such a uniformity of promiscuous action among so many eggs +for so many generations. If we see a man knock a hole in a wall +on finding that he cannot get out of a place by any other means, and +if we see him knock this hole in a very workmanlike way, with an implement +with which he has been at great pains to make for a long the past, but +which he throws away as soon as he has no longer use for it, thus showing +that he had made it expressly for the purpose of escape, do we say that +this person made the implement and broke the wall of his prison promiscuously? +No jury would acquit a burglar on these grounds. Then why, without +much more evidence to the contrary than we have, or can hope to have, +should we not suppose that with chickens, as with men, signs of contrivance +are indeed signs of contrivance, however quick, subtle, and untraceable, +the contrivance may be? Again, I have heard people argue that +though the chicken, when nearly hatched, had such a glimmering of sense +that it pecked the shell because it wanted to get out, yet that it is +not conceivable that, so long before it was hatched, it should have +had the sense to grow the horny tip to its bill for use when wanted. +This, at any rate, they say, it must have grown, as the persons previously +referred to would maintain, promiscuously.</p> +<p>Now no one indeed supposes that the chicken does what it does, with +the same self-consciousness with which a tailor makes a suit of clothes. +Not any one who has thought upon the subject is likely to do it so great +an injustice. The probability is that it knows what it is about +to an extent greater than any tailor ever did or will, for, to say the +least of it, many thousands of years to come. It works with such +absolute certainty and so vast an experience, that it is utterly incapable +of following the operations of its own mind - as accountants have been +known to add up long columns of pounds, shillings, and pence, running +the three fingers of one hand, a finger for each column, up the page, +and putting the result down correctly at the bottom, apparently without +an effort. In the case of the accountant, we say that the processes +which his mind goes through are so rapid and subtle as to elude his +own power of observation as well as ours. We do not deny that +his mind goes though processes of some kind; we very readily admit that +it must do so, and say that these processes are so rapid and subtle, +owing, as a general rule, to long experience in addition. Why +then should we find it so difficult to conceive that this principle, +which we observe to play so large a part in mental physiology, wherever +we can observe mental physiology at all, may have a share also in the +performance of intricate operations otherwise inexplicable, though the +creature performing them is not man, or man only in embryo?</p> +<p>Again, after the chicken is hatched, it grows more feathers and bones +and blood, but we still say that it knows nothing about all this. +What then do we say it <i>does</i> know? One is almost ashamed +to confess that we only credit it with knowing what it appears to know +by processes which we find it exceedingly easy to follow, or perhaps +rather, which we find it absolutely impossible to avoid following, as +recognising too great a family likeness between them, and those which +are most easily followed in our own minds, to be able to sit down in +comfort under a denial of the resemblance. Thus, for example, +if we see a chicken running away from a fox, we do admit that the chicken +knows the fox would kill it if it caught it.</p> +<p>On the other hand, if we allow that the half-hatched chicken grew +the horny tip to be ready for use, with an intensity of unconscious +contrivance which can be only attributed to experience, we are driven +to admit that from the first moment the men began to sit upon it - and +earlier too than this - the egg was always full of consciousness and +volition, and that during its embryological condition the unhatched +chicken is doing exactly what it continues doing from the moment it +is hatched till it dies; that is to say, attempting to better itself, +doing (as Aristotle says all creatures do all things upon all occasions) +what it considers most for its advantage under the existing circumstances. +What it may think most advantageous will depend, while it is in the +eggshell, upon exactly the same causes as will influence its opinions +in later life - to wit, upon its habits, its past circumstances and +ways of thinking; for there is nothing, as Shakespeare tells us, good +or ill, but thinking makes it so.</p> +<p>The egg thinks feathers much more to its advantage than hair or fur, +and much more easily made. If it could speak, it would probably +tell us that we could make them ourselves very easily after a few lessons, +if we took the trouble to try, but that hair was another matter, which +it really could not see how any protoplasm could be got to make. +Indeed, during the more intense and active part of our existence, in +the earliest stages, that is to say, of our embryological life, we could +probably have turned our protoplasm into feathers instead of hair if +we had cared about doing so. If the chicken can make feathers, +there seems no sufficient reason for thinking that we cannot do so, +beyond the fact that we prefer hair, and have preferred it for so many +ages that we have lost the art along with the desire of making feathers, +if indeed any of our ancestors ever possessed it. The stuff with +which we make hair is practically the same as that with which chickens +make feathers. It is nothing but protoplasm, and protoplasm is +like certain prophecies, out of which anything can be made by the creature +which wants to make it. Everything depends upon whether a creature +knows its own mind sufficiently well, and has enough faith in its own +powers of achievement. When these two requisites are wanting, +the strongest giant cannot lift a two-ounce weight; when they are given, +a bullock can take an eyelash out of its eye with its hind-foot, or +a minute jelly speck can build itself a house out of various materials +which it will select according to its purpose with the nicest care, +though it have neither brain to think with, nor eyes to see with, nor +hands nor feet to work with, nor is it anything but a minute speck of +jelly - faith and protoplasm only.</p> +<p>That this is indeed so, the following passage from Dr. Carpenter’s +“Mental Physiology” may serve to show:-</p> +<p>“The simplest type of an animal consists of a minute mass of +‘protoplasm,’ or living jelly, which is not yet <i>differentiated</i> +into ‘organs;’ every part having the same endowments, and +taking an equal share in every action which the creature performs. +One of these ‘jelly specks,’ the amœba, moves itself +about by changing the form of its body, extemporising a foot (or pseudopodium), +first in one direction, and then in another; and then, when it has met +with a nutritive particle, extemporises a stomach for its reception, +by wrapping its soft body around it. Another, instead of going +about in search of food, remains in one place, but projects its protoplasmic +substance into long pseudopodia, which entrap and draw in very minute +particles, or absorb nutrient material from the liquid through which +they extend themselves, and are continually becoming fused (as it were) +into the central body, which is itself continually giving off new pseudopodia. +Now we can scarcely conceive that a creature of such simplicity should +possess any distinct <i>consciousness</i> of its needs” (why not?), +“or that its actions should be directed by any <i>intention</i> +of its own; and yet the writer has lately found results of the most +singular elaborateness to be wrought out by the instrumentality of these +minute jelly specks, which build up tests or casings of the most regular +geometrical symmetry of form, and of the most artificial construction.”</p> +<p>On this Dr. Carpenter remarks:- “Suppose a human mason to be +put down by the side of a pile of stones of various shapes and sizes, +and to be told to build a dome of these, smooth on both surfaces, without +using more than the least possible quantity of a very tenacious, but +very costly, cement, in holding the stones together. If he accomplished +this well, he would receive credit for great intelligence and skill. +Yet this is exactly what these little ‘jelly specks’ do +on a most minute scale; the ‘tests’ they construct, when +highly magnified, bearing comparison with the most skilful masonry of +man. From <i>the same sandy bottom</i> one species picks up the +<i>coarser</i> quartz grains, cements them together with <i>phosphate +of iron</i> secreted from its own substance” (should not this +rather be, “which it has contrived in some way or other to manufacture”?) +and thus constructs a flask-shaped ‘test,’ having a short +neck and a large single orifice. Another picks up the <i>finest</i> +grains, and puts them together, with the same cement, into perfectly +spherical ‘tests’ of the most extraordinary finish, perforated +with numerous small pores disposed at pretty regular intervals. +Another selects the <i>minutest</i> sand grains and the terminal portions +of sponge spicules, and works them up together - apparently with no +cement at all, by the mere laying of the spicules - into perfect white +spheres, like homœopathic globules, each having a single-fissured +orifice. And another, which makes a straight, many-chambered ‘test,’ +that resembles in form the chambered shell of an orthoceratite - the +conical mouth of each chamber projecting into the cavity of the next +- while forming the walls of its chambers of ordinary sand grains rather +loosely held together, shapes the conical mouth of the successive chambers +by firmly cementing together grains of ferruginous quartz, which it +must have picked out from the general mass.”</p> +<p>“To give these actions,” continues Dr. Carpenter, “the +vague designation of ‘instinctive’ does not in the least +help us to account for them, since what we want is to discover the <i>mechanism</i> +by which they are worked out; and it is most difficult to conceive how +so artificial a selection can be made by a creature so simple” +(Mental Physiology, 4th ed. pp. 41-43)</p> +<p>This is what protoplasm can do when it has the talisman of faith +- of faith which worketh all wonders, either in the heavens above, or +in the earth beneath, or in the waters under the earth. Truly +if a man have faith, even as a grain of mustard seed, though he may +not be able to remove mountains, he will at any rate be able to do what +is no less difficult - make a mustard plant.</p> +<p>Yet this is but a barren kind of comfort, for we have not, and in +the nature of things cannot have, sufficient faith in the unfamiliar, +inasmuch as the very essence of faith involves the notion of familiarity, +which can grow but slowly, from experience to confidence, and can make +no sudden leap at any time. Such faith cannot be founded upon +reason, - that is to say, upon a recognised perception on the part of +the person holding it that he is holding it, and of the reasons for +his doing so - or it will shift as other reasons come to disturb it. +A house built upon reason is a house built upon the sand. It must +be built upon the current cant and practice of one’s peers, for +this is the rock which, though not immovable, is still most hard to +move.</p> +<p>But however this may be, we observe broadly that the intensity of +the will to make this or that, and of the confidence that one can make +it, depends upon the length of time during which the maker’s forefathers +have wanted the same thing before it; the older the custom the more +inveterate the habit, and, with the exception, perhaps, that the reproductive +system is generally the crowning act of development - an exception which +I will hereafter explain - the earlier its manifestation, until, for +some reason or another, we relinquish it and take to another, which +we must, as a general rule, again adhere to for a vast number of generations, +before it will permanently supplant the older habit. In our own +case, the habit of breathing like a fish through gills may serve as +an example. We have now left off this habit, yet we did it formerly +for so many generations that we still do it a little; it still crosses +our embryological existence like a faint memory or dream, for not easily +is an inveterate habit broken. On the other hand - again speaking +broadly - the more recent the habit the later the fashion of its organ, +as with the teeth, speech, and the higher intellectual powers, which +are too new for development before we are actually born.</p> +<p>But to return for a short time to Dr. Carpenter. Dr. Carpenter +evidently feels, what must indeed be felt by every candid mind, that +there is no sufficient reason for supposing that these little specks +of jelly, without brain or eyes, or stomach, or hands, or feet, but +the very lowest known form of animal life, are not imbued with a consciousness +of their needs, and the reasoning faculties which shall enable them +to gratify those needs in a manner, all things considered, equalling +the highest flights of the ingenuity of the highest animal - man. +This is no exaggeration. It is true, that in an earlier part of +the passage, Dr. Carpenter has said that we can scarcely conceive so +simple a creature to “possess any distinct <i>consciousness</i> +of its needs, or that its actions should be directed by any intention +of its own;” but, on the other hand, a little lower down he says, +that if a workman did what comes to the same thing as what the amœba +does, he “would receive credit for great intelligence and skill.” +Now if an amœba can do that, for which a workman would receive +credit as for a highly skilful and intelligent performance, the amœba +should receive no less credit than the workman; he should also be no +less credited with skill and intelligence, which words unquestionably +involve a distinct consciousness of needs and an action directed by +an intention of its own. So that Dr. Carpenter seems rather to +blow hot and cold with one breath. Nevertheless there can be no +doubt to which side the minds of the great majority of mankind will +incline upon the evidence before them; they will say that the creature +is highly reasonable and intelligent, though they would readily admit +that long practice and familiarity may have exhausted its powers of +attention to all the stages of its own performance, just as a practised +workman in building a wall certainly does not consciously follow all +the processes which he goes through.</p> +<p>As an example, however, of the extreme dislike which philosophers +of a certain school have for making the admissions which seem somewhat +grudgingly conceded by Dr. Carpenter, we may take the paragraph which +immediately follows the ones which we have just quoted. Dr. Carpenter +there writes:-</p> +<p>“The writer has often amused himself and others, when by the +seaside, with getting a <i>terebella</i> (a marine worm that cases its +body in a sandy tube) out of its house, and then, putting it into a +saucer of water with a supply of sand and comminuted shell, watching +its appropriation of these materials in constructing a new tube. +The extended tentacles soon spread themselves over the bottom of the +saucer and lay hold of whatever comes in their way, ‘all being +fish that comes to their net,’ and in half an hour or thereabouts +the new house is finished, though on a very rude and artificial type. +Now here the organisation is far higher; the instrumentality obviously +serves the needs of the animal and suffices for them; and we characterise +the action, on account of its uniformity and apparent <i>un</i>intelligence, +as instinctive.”</p> +<p>No comment will, one would think, be necessary to make the reader +feel that the difference between the terebella and the amœba is +one of degree rather than kind, and that if the action of the second +is as conscious and reasonable as that, we will say, of a bird making +her nest, the action of the first should be so also. It is only +a question of being a little less skilful, or more so, but skill and +intelligence would seem present in both cases. Moreover, it is +more clever of the terebella to have made itself the limbs with which +it can work, than of the amœba to be able to work without the +limbs; and perhaps it is more sensible also to want a less elaborate +dwelling, provided it is sufficient for practical purposes. But +whether the terebella be less intelligent than the amœba or not, +it does quite enough to establish its claim to intelligence of a higher +order; and one does not see ground for the satisfaction which Dr. Carpenter +appears to find at having, as it were, taken the taste of the amœba’s +performance out of our mouth, by setting us about the less elaborate +performance of the terebella, which he thinks we can call unintelligent +and instinctive.</p> +<p>I may be mistaken in the impression I have derived from the paragraphs +I have quoted. I commonly say they give me the impression that +I have tried to convey to the reader, <i>i.e</i>., that the writer’s +assent to anything like intelligence, or consciousness of needs, an +animal low down in the scale of life, is grudging, and that he is more +comfortable when he has got hold of onto to which he can point and say +that mere, at any rate, is an unintelligent and merely instinctive creature. +I have only called attention to the passage as an example of the intellectual +bias of a large number of exceedingly able and thoughtful persons, among +whom, so far as I am able to form an opinion at all, few have greater +claims to our respectful attention than Dr. Carpenter himself.</p> +<p>For the embryo of a chicken, then, we damn exactly the same kind +of reasoning power and contrivance which we damn for the amœba, +or for our own intelligent performances in later life. We do not +claim for it much, if any, perception of its own forethought, for we +know very well that it is among the most prominent features of intellectual +activity that, after a number of repetitions, it ceases to be perceived, +and that it does not, in ordinary cases, cease to be perceived till +after a very great number of repetitions. The fact that the embryo +chicken makes itself always as nearly as may be in the same way, would +lead us to suppose that it would be unconscious of much of its own action, +<i>provided it were always the same chicken which made itself over and +over again</i>. So far we can see, it always <i>is</i> unconscious +of the greater part of its own wonderful performance. Surely then +we have a presumption that <i>it is the same chicken which makes itself +over and over again</i>; for such unconsciousness is not won, so far +as our experience goes, by any other means than by frequent repetition +of the same act on the part of one and the same individual. How +this can be we shall perceive in subsequent chapters. In the meantime, +we may say that all knowledge and volition would seem to be merely parts +of the knowledge and volition of the primordial cell (whatever this +may be), which slumbers but never dies - which has grown, and multiplied, +and differentiated itself into the compound life of the womb, and which +never becomes conscious of knowing what it has once learnt effectually, +till it is for some reason on the point of, or in danger of, forgetting +it.</p> +<p>The action, therefore, of an embryo making its way up in the world +from a simple cell to a baby, developing for itself eyes, ears, hands, +and feet while yet unborn, proves to be exactly of one and the same +kind as that of a man of fifty who goes into the City and tells his +broker to buy him so many Great Northern A shares - that is to say, +an effort of the will exercised in due course on a balance of considerations +as to the immediate expediency, and guided by past experience; while +children who do not reach birth are but prenatal spendthrifts, ne’er-do-weels, +inconsiderate innovators, the unfortunate in business, either through +their own fault or that of others, or through inevitable mischances, +beings who are culled out before birth instead of after; so that even +the lowest idiot, the most contemptible in health or beauty, may yet +reflect with pride that they were <i>born</i>. Certainly we observe +that those who have had good fortune (mother and sole cause of virtue, +and sole virtue in itself), and have profited by their experience, and +known their business best before birth, so that they made themselves +both to be and to look well, do commonly on an average prove to know +it best in after-life: they grow their clothes best who have grown their +limbs best. It is rare that those who have not remembered how +to finish their own bodies fairly well should finish anything well in +later life. But how small is the addition to their unconscious +attainments which even the Titans of human intellect have consciously +accomplished, in comparison with the problems solved by the meanest +baby living, nay, even by one whose birth is untimely! In other +words, how vast is that back knowledge over which we have gone fast +asleep, through the prosiness of perpetual repetition; and how little +in comparison, is that whose novelty keeps it still within the scope +of our conscious perception! What is the discovery of the laws +of gravitation as compared with the knowledge which sleeps in every +hen’s egg upon a kitchen shelf?</p> +<p>It is all a matter of habit and fashion. Thus we see kings +and councillors of the earth admired for facing death before what they +are pleased to call dishonour. If, on being required to go without +anything they have been accustomed to, or to change their habits, or +do what is unusual in the case of other kings under like circumstances, +then, if they but fold their cloak decently around them, and die upon +the spot of shame at having had it even required of them to do thus +or thus, then are they kings indeed, of old race, that know their business +from generation to generation. Or if, we will say, a prince, on +having his dinner brought to him ill-cooked, were to feel the indignity +so keenly as that he should turn his face to the wall, and breathe out +his wounded soul in one sigh, do we not admire him as a “<i>real</i> +prince,” who knows the business of princes so well that he can +conceive of nothing foreign to it in connection with himself, the bare +effort to realise a state of things other than what princes have been +accustomed to being immediately fatal to him? Yet is there no +less than this in the demise of every half-hatched hen’s egg, +shaken rudely by a schoolboy, or neglected by a truant mother; for surely +the prince would not die if he knew how to do otherwise, and the hen’s +egg only dies of being required to do something to which it is not accustomed.</p> +<p>But the further consideration of this and other like reflections +would too long detain us. Suffice it that we have established +the position that all living creatures which show any signs of intelligence, +must certainly each one have already gone through the embryonic stages +an infinite number of times, or they could no more have achieved the +intricate process of self-development unconsciously, than they could +play the piano unconsciously without any previous knowledge of the instrument. +It remains, therefore, to show the when and where of their having done +so, and this leads us naturally to the subject of the following chapter +- Personal Identity.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER V - PERSONAL IDENTITY</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>“Strange difficulties have been raised by some,” says +Bishop Butler, “concerning personal identity, or the sameness +of living agents as implied in the notion of our existing now and hereafter, +or indeed in any two consecutive moments.” But in truth +it is not easy to see the strangeness of the difficulty, if the words +either “personal” or “identity” are used in +any strictness.</p> +<p>Personality is one of those ideas with which we are so familiar that +we have lost sight of the foundations upon which it rests. We +regard our personality as a simple definite whole; as a plain, palpable, +individual thing, which can be seen going about the streets or sitting +indoors at home, which lasts us our lifetime, and about the confines +of which no doubt can exist in the minds of reasonable people. +But in truth this “we,” which looks so simple and definite, +is a nebulous and indefinable aggregation of many component parts which +war not a little among themselves, our perception of our existence at +all being perhaps due to this very clash of warfare, as our sense of +sound and light is due to the jarring of vibrations. Moreover, +as the component parts of our identity change from moment to moment, +our personality becomes a thing dependent upon the present, which has +no logical existence, but lives only upon the sufferance of times past +and future, slipping out of our hands into the domain of one or other +of these two claimants the moment we try to apprehend it. And +not only is our personality as fleeting as the present moment, but the +parts which compose it blend some of them so imperceptibly into, and +are so inextricably linked on to, outside things which clearly form +no part of our personality, that when we try to bring ourselves to book, +and determine wherein we consist, or to draw a line as to where we begin +or end, we find ourselves completely baffled. There is nothing +but fusion and confusion.</p> +<p>Putting theology on one side, and dealing only with the common daily +experience of mankind, our body is certainly part of our personality. +With the destruction of our bodies, our personality, as far as we can +follow it, comes to a full stop; and with every modification of them +it is correspondingly modified. But what are the limits of our +bodies? They are composed of parts, some of them so unessential +as to be hardly included in personality at all, and to be separable +from ourselves without perceptible effect, as the hair, nails, and daily +waste of tissue. Again, other parts are very important, as our +hands, feet, arms, legs, &c., but still are no essential parts of +our “self” or “soul,” which continues to exist +in spite of their amputation. Other parts, as the brain, heart, +and blood, are so essential that they cannot be dispensed with, yet +it is impossible to say that personality consists in any one of them.</p> +<p>Each one of these component members of our personality is continually +dying and being born again, supported in this process by the food we +eat, the water we drink, and the air we breathe; which three things +link us on, and fetter us down, to the organic and inorganic world about +us. For our meat and drink, though no part of our personality +before we eat and drink, cannot, after we have done so, be separated +entirely from us without the destruction of our personality altogether, +so far as we can follow it; and who shall say at what precise moment +our food has or has not become part of ourselves? A famished man +eats food; after a short time his whole personality is so palpably affected +that we know the food to have entered into him and taken, as it were, +possession of him; but who can say at what precise moment it did so? +Thus we find that we are rooted into outside things and melt away into +them, nor can any man say he consists absolutely in this or that, nor +define himself so certainly as to include neither more nor less than +himself; many undoubted parts of his personality being more separable +from it, and changing it less when so separated, both to his own senses +and those of other people, than other parts which are strictly speaking +no parts at all.</p> +<p>A man’s clothes, for example, as they lie on a chair at night +are no part of him, but when he wears them they would appear to be so, +as being a kind of food which warms him and hatches him, and the loss +of which may kill him of cold. If this be denied, and a man’s +clothes be considered as no part of his self, nevertheless they, with +his money, and it may perhaps be added his religious opinions, stamp +a man’s individuality as strongly as any natural feature could +stamp it. Change in style of dress, gain or loss of money, make +a man feel and appear more changed than having his chin shaved or his +nails cut. In fact, as soon as we leave common parlance on one +side, and try for a scientific definition of personality, we find that +there is none possible, any more than there can be a demonstration of +the fact that we exist at all - a demonstration for which, as for that +of a personal God, many have hunted but none have found. The only +solid foundation is, as in the case of the earth’s crust, pretty +near the surface of things; the deeper we try to go, the damper and +darker and altogether more uncongenial we find it. There is no +knowing into what quagmire of superstition we may not find ourselves +drawn, if we once cut ourselves adrift from those superficial aspects +of things, in which alone our nature permits us to be comforted.</p> +<p>Common parlance, however, settles the difficulty readily enough (as +indeed it settles most others if they show signs of awkwardness) by +the simple process of ignoring it: we decline, and very properly, to +go into the question of where personality begins and ends, but assume +it to be known by every one, and throw the onus of not knowing it upon +the over-curious, who had better think as their neighbours do, right +or wrong, or there is no knowing into what villainy they may not presently +fall.</p> +<p>Assuming, then, that every one knows what is meant by the word “person” +(and such superstitious bases as this are the foundations upon which +all action, whether of man, beast, or plant, is constructed and rendered +possible; for even the corn in the fields grows upon a superstitious +basis as to its own existence, and only turns the earth and moisture +into wheat through the conceit of its own ability to do so, without +which faith it were powerless; and the lichen only grows upon the granite +rock by first saying to itself, “I think I can do it;” so +that it would not be able to grow unless it thought it could grow, and +would not think it could grow unless it found itself able to grow, and +thus spends its life arguing in a most vicious circle, basing its action +upon a hypothesis, which hypothesis is in turn based upon its action) +- assuming that we know what is meant by the word “person,” +we say that we are one and the same from the moment of our birth to +the moment of our death, so that whatever is done by or happens to any +one between birth and death, is said to happen to or be done by one +individual. This in practice is found to be sufficient for the +law courts and the purposes of daily life, which, being full of hurry +and the pressure of business, can only tolerate compromise, or conventional +rendering of intricate phenomena. When facts of extreme complexity +have to be daily and hourly dealt with by people whose time is money, +they must be simplified, and treated much as a painter treats them, +drawing them in squarely, seizing the more important features, and neglecting +all that does not assert itself as too essential to be passed over - +hence the slang and cant words of every profession, and indeed all language; +for language at best is but a kind of “patter,” the only +way, it is true, in many cases, of expressing our ideas to one another, +but still a very bad way, and not for one moment comparable to the unspoken +speech which we may sometimes have recourse to. The metaphors +and <i>façons de parler</i> to which even in the plainest speech +we are perpetually recurring (as, for example, in this last two lines, +“plain,” “perpetually,” and “recurring,” +are all words based on metaphor, and hence more or less liable to mislead) +often deceive us, as though there were nothing more than what we see +and say, and as though words, instead of being, as they are, the creatures +of our convenience, had some claim to be the actual ideas themselves +concerning which we are conversing.</p> +<p>This is so well expressed in a letter I have recently received from +a friend, now in New Zealand, and certainly not intended by him for +publication, that I shall venture to quote the passage, but should say +that I do so without his knowledge or permission which I should not +be able to receive before this book must be completed.</p> +<p>“Words, words, words,” he writes, “are the stumbling-blocks +in the way of truth. Until you think of things as they are, and +not of the words that misrepresent them, you cannot think rightly. +Words produce the appearance of hard and fast lines where there are +none. Words divide; thus we call this a man, that an ape, that +a monkey, while they are all only differentiations of the same thing. +To think of a thing they must be got rid of: they are the clothes that +thoughts wear - only the clothes. I say this over and over again, +for there is nothing of more importance. Other men’s words +will stop you at the beginning of an investigation. A man may +play with words all his life, arranging them and rearranging them like +dominoes. If I could <i>think</i> to you without words you would +understand me better.”</p> +<p>If such remarks as the above hold good at all, they do so with the +words “personal identity.” The least reflection will +show that personal identity in any sort of strictness is an impossibility. +The expression is one of the many ways in which we are obliged to scamp +our thoughts through pressure of other business which pays us better. +For surely all reasonable people will feel that an infant an hour before +birth, when in the eye of the law he has no existence, and could not +be called a peer for another sixty minutes, though his father were a +peer, and already dead, - surely such an embryo is more personally identical +with the baby into which he develops within an hour’s time than +the born baby is so with itself (if the expression may be pardoned), +one, twenty, or it may be eighty years after birth. There is more +sameness of matter; there are fewer differences of any kind perceptible +by a third person; there is more sense of continuity on the part of +the person himself; and far more of all that goes to make up our sense +of sameness of personality between an embryo an hour before birth and +the child on being born, than there is between the child just born and +the man of twenty. Yet there is no hesitation about admitting +sameness of personality between these two last.</p> +<p>On the other hand, if that hazy contradiction in terms, “personal +identity,” be once allowed to retreat behind the threshold of +the womb, it has eluded us once for all. What is true of one hour +before birth is true of two, and so on till we get back to the impregnate +ovum, which may fairly claim to have been personally identical with +the man of eighty into which it ultimately developed, in spite of the +fact that there is no particle of same matter nor sense of continuity +between them, nor recognised community of instinct, nor indeed of anything +which goes to the making up of that which we call identity.</p> +<p>There is far more of all these things common to the impregnate ovum +and the ovum immediately before impregnation, or again between the impregnate +ovum, and both the ovum before impregnation and the spermatozoon which +impregnated it. Nor, if we admit personal identity between the +ovum and the octogenarian, is there any sufficient reason why we should +not admit it between the impregnate ovum and the two factors of which +it is composed, which two factors are but offshoots from two distinct +personalities, of which they are as much part as the apple is of the +apple-tree; so that an impregnate ovum cannot without a violation of +first principles be debarred from claiming personal identity with both +its parents, and hence, by an easy chain of reasoning, <i>with each +of the impregnate ova from which its parents were developed.</i></p> +<p>So that each ovum when impregnate should be considered not as descended +from its ancestors, but as being a continuation of the personality of +every ovum in the chain of its ancestry, which every ovum <i>it actually +is</i> quite as truly as the octogenarian <i>is</i> the same identity +with the ovum from which he has been developed.</p> +<p>This process cannot stop short of the primordial cell, which again +will probably turn out to be but a brief resting-place. We therefore +prove each one of us to <i>be actually</i> the primordial cell which +never died nor dies, but has differentiated itself into the life of +the world, all living beings whatever, being one with it, and members +one of another.</p> +<p>To look at the matter for a moment in another light, it will be admitted +that if the primordial cell had been killed before leaving issue, all +its possible descendants would have been killed at one and the same +time. It is hard to see how this single fact does not establish +at the point, as it were, of a logical bayonet, an identity, between +any creature and all others that are descended from it.</p> +<p>In Bishop Butler’s first dissertation on personality, we find +expressed very much the same opinions as would follow from the above +considerations, though they are mentioned by the Bishop only to be condemned, +namely, “that personality is not a permanent but a transient thing; +that it lives and dies, begins and ends continually; that no man can +any more remain one and the same person two moments together, than two +successive moments can be one and the same moment;” in which case, +he continues, our present self would not be “in reality the same +with the self of yesterday, but another like self or person coming up +in its room and mistaken for it, to which another self will succeed +to-morrow.” This view the Bishop proceeds to reduce to absurdity +by saying, “It must be a fallacy upon ourselves to charge our +present selves with anything we did, or to imagine our present selves +interested in anything which befell us yesterday; or that our present +self will be interested in what will befall us to-morrow. This, +I say, must follow, for if the self or person of to-day and that of +to-morrow are not the same, but only like persons, the person of to-day +is really no more interested in what will befall the person of to-morrow +than in what will befall any other person. It may be thought, +perhaps, that this is not a just representation of the opinion we are +speaking of, because those who maintain it allow that a person is the +same as far back as his remembrance reaches. And indeed they do +use the words <i>identity</i> and <i>same person</i>. Nor will +language permit these words to be laid aside, since, if they were, there +must be I know not what ridiculous periphrasis substituted in the room +of them. But they cannot consistently with themselves mean that +the person is really the same. For it is self-evident that the +personality cannot be really the same, if, as they expressly assert, +that in which it consists is not the same. And as consistently +with themselves they cannot, so I think it appears they do not mean +that the person is really the same, but only that he is so in a fictitious +sense; in such a sense only as they assert - for this they do assert +- that any number of persons whatever may be the same person. +The bare unfolding of this notion, and laying it thus naked and open, +seems the best confutation of it.”</p> +<p>This fencing, for it does not deserve the name of serious disputation, +is rendered possible by the laxness with which the words “identical” +and “identity” are commonly used. Bishop Butler would +not seriously deny that personality undergoes great changes between +infancy and old age, and hence that it must undergo some change from +moment to moment. So universally is this recognised, that it is +common to hear it said of such and such a man that he is not at all +the person he was, or of such and such another that he is twice the +man he used to be - expressions than which none nearer the truth can +well be found. On the other hand, those whom Bishop Butler is +intending to confute would be the first to admit that, though there +are many changes between infancy and old age, yet they come about in +any one individual under such circumstances as we are all agreed in +considering as the factors of personal identity rather than as hindrances +thereto - that is to say, there has been no death on the part of the +individual between any two phases of his existence, and any one phase +has had a permanent though perhaps imperceptible effect upon all succeeding +ones. So that no one ever seriously argued in the manner supposed +by Bishop Butler, unless with modifications and saving clauses, to which +it does not suit his purpose to call attention.</p> +<p>Identical strictly means “one and the same;” and if it +were tied down to its strictest usage, it would indeed follow very logically, +as we have said already, that no such thing as personal identity is +possible, but that the case actually is as Bishop Butler has supposed +his opponents without qualification to maintain it. In common +use, however, the word “identical” is taken to mean anything +so like another that no vital or essential differences can be perceived +between them; as in the case of two specimens of the same kind of plant, +when we say they are identical in spite of considerable individual differences. +So with two impressions of a print from the same plate; so with the +plate itself, which is somewhat modified with every impression taken +from it. In like manner “identity” is not held to +its strict meaning - absolute sameness - but is predicated rightly of +a past and present which are now very widely asunder, provided they +have been continuously connected by links so small as not to give too +sudden a sense of change at any one point; as, for instance, in the +case of the Thames at Oxford and Windsor or again at Greenwich, we say +the same river flows by all three places, by which we mean that much +of the water at Greenwich has come down from Oxford and Windsor in a +continuous stream. How sudden a change at any one point, or how +great a difference between the two extremes is sufficient to bar identity, +is one of the most uncertain things imaginable, and seems to be decided +on different grounds in different cases, sometimes very intelligibly, +and again at others arbitrarily and capriciously.</p> +<p>Personal identity is barred at one end, in the common opinion, by +birth, and at the other by death. Before birth, a child cannot +complain either by himself or another, in such way as to set the law +in motion; after death he is in like manner powerless to make himself +felt by society, except in so far as he can do so by acts done before +the breath has left his body. At any point between birth and death +he is liable, either by himself or another, to affect his fellow-creatures; +hence, no two other epochs can be found of equal convenience for social +purposes, and therefore they have been seized by society as settling +the whole question of when personal identity begins and ends - society +being rightly concerned with its own practical convenience, rather than +with the abstract truth concerning its individual members. No +one who is capable of reflection will deny that the limitation of personality +is certainly arbitrary to a degree as regards birth, nor yet that it +is very possibly arbitrary as regards death; and as for intermediate +points, no doubt it would be more strictly accurate to say, “you +are the now phase of the person I met last night,” or “you +are the being which has been evolved from the being I met last night,” +than “you are the person I met last night.” But life +is too short for the pen-phrases which would crowd upon us from every +quarter, if we did not set our face against all that is under the surface +of things, unless, that is to say, the going beneath the surface is, +for some special chance of profit, excusable or capable of extenuation.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER VI - PERSONAL IDENTITY - (Continued)</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>How arbitrary current notions concerning identity really are, may +perhaps be perceived by reflecting upon some of the many different phases +of reproduction.</p> +<p>Direct reproduction in which a creation reproduces another, the <i>facsimile</i>, +or nearly so, of itself may perhaps occur among the lowest forms of +animal life; but it is certainly not the rule among beings of a higher +order.</p> +<p>A hen lays an egg, which egg becomes a chicken, which chicken, in +the course of time, becomes a hen.</p> +<p>A moth lays an egg, which egg becomes a caterpillar, which caterpillar, +after going through several stages, becomes a chrysalis, which chrysalis +becomes a moth.</p> +<p>A medusa begets a ciliated larva, the larva begets a polyp, the polyp +begets a strobila, and the strobila begets a medusa again; the cycle +of reproduction being completed in the fourth generation.</p> +<p>A frog lays an egg, which egg becomes a tadpole; the tadpole, after +more or fewer intermediate stages, becomes a frog.</p> +<p>The mammals lay eggs, which they hatch inside their own bodies, instead +of outside them; but the difference is one of degree and not of kind. +In all these cases how difficult is it to say where identity begins +or ends, or again where death begins or ends, or where reproduction +begins or ends.</p> +<p>How small and unimportant is the difference between the changes which +a caterpillar undergoes before becoming a moth, and those of a strobila +before becoming a medusa. Yet in the one case we say the caterpillar +does not die, but is changed (though, if the various changes in its +existence be produced metagenetically, as is the case with many insects, +it would appear to make a clean sweep of every organ of its existence, +and start <i>de novo</i>, growing a head where its feet were, and so +on - at least twice between its lives as caterpillar and butterfly); +in this case, however, we say the caterpillar does not die, but is changed; +being, nevertheless, one personality with the moth, into which it is +developed. But in the case of the strobila we say that it is not +changed, but dies, and is no part of the personality of the medusa.</p> +<p>We say the egg becomes the caterpillar, not by the death of the egg +and birth of the caterpillar, but by the ordinary process of nutrition +and waste - waste and repair - waste and repair continually. In +like manner we say the caterpillar becomes the chrysalis, and the chrysalis +the moth, not through the death of either one or the other, but by the +development of the same creature, and the ordinary processes of waste +and repair. But the medusa after three or four cycles becomes +the medusa again, not, we say, by these same processes of nutrition +and waste, but by a series of generations, each one involving an actual +birth and an actual death. Why this difference? Surely only +because the changes in the offspring of the medusa are marked by the +leaving a little more husk behind them, and that husk less shrivelled, +than is left on the occasion of each change between the caterpillar +and the butterfly. A little more residuum, which residuum, it +may be, can move about; and though shrivelling from hour to hour, may +yet leave a little more offspring before it is reduced to powder; or +again, perhaps, because in the one case, though the actors are changed, +they are changed behind the scenes, and come on in parts and dresses, +more nearly resembling those of the original actors, than in the other.</p> +<p>When the caterpillar emerges from the egg, almost all that was inside +the egg has become caterpillar; the shell is nearly empty, and cannot +move; therefore we do not count it, and call the caterpillar a continuation +of the egg’s existence, and personally identical with the egg. +So with the chrysalis and the moth; but after the moth has laid her +eggs she can still move her wings about, and she looks nearly as large +as she did before she laid them; besides, she may yet lay a few more, +therefore we do not consider the moth’s life as continued in the +life of her eggs, but rather in their husk, which we still call the +moth, and which we say dies in a day or two, and there is an end of +it. Moreover, if we hold the moth’s life to be continued +in that of her eggs, we shall be forced to admit her to be personally +identical with each single egg, and, hence, each egg to be identical +with every other egg, as far as the past, and community of memories, +are concerned; and it is not easy at first to break the spell which +words have cast around us, and to feel that one person may become many +persons, and that many different persons may be practically one and +the same person, as far as their past experience is concerned; and again, +that two or more persons may unite and become one person, with the memories +and experiences of both, though this has been actually the case with +every one of us.</p> +<p>Our present way of looking at these matters is perfectly right and +reasonable, so long as we bear in mind that it is a <i>façon +de parler</i>, a sort of hieroglyphic which shall stand for the course +of nature, but nothing more. Repair (as is now universally admitted +by physiologists) is only a phase of reproduction, or rather reproduction +and repair are only phases of the same power; and again, death and the +ordinary daily waste of tissue, are phases of the same thing. +As for identity it is determined in any true sense of the word, not +by death alone, but by a combination of death and failure of issue, +whether of mind or body.</p> +<p>To repeat. Wherever there is a separate centre of thought and +action, we see that it is connected with its successive stages of being, +by a series of infinitely small changes from moment to moment, with, +perhaps, at times more startling and rapid changes, but, nevertheless, +with no such sudden, complete, and unrepaired break up of the preceding +condition, as we shall agree in calling death. The branching out +from it at different times of new centres of thought and action, has +commonly as little appreciable effect upon the parent-stock as the fall +of an apple full of ripe seeds has upon an apple-tree; and though the +life of the parent, from the date of the branching off of such personalities, +is more truly continued in these than in the residuum of its own life, +we should find ourselves involved in a good deal of trouble if we were +commonly to take this view of the matter. The residuum has generally +the upper hand. He has more money, and can eat up his new life +more easily than his new life, him. A moral residuum will therefore +prefer to see the remainder of his life in his own person, than in that +of his descendants, and will act accordingly. Hence we, in common +with most other living beings, ignore the offspring as forming part +of the personality of the parent, except in so far as that we make the +father liable for its support and for its extravagances (than which +no greater proof need be wished that the law is at heart a philosopher, +and perceives the completeness of the personal identity between father +and son) for twenty-one years from birth. In other respects we +are accustomed, probably rather from considerations of practical convenience +than as the result of pure reason, to ignore the identity between parent +and offspring as completely as we ignore personality before birth. +With these exceptions, however, the common opinion concerning personal +identity is reasonable enough, and is found to consist neither in consciousness +of such identity, nor yet in the power of recollecting its various phases +(for it is plain that identity survives the distinction or suspension +of both these), but in the fact that the various stages appear to the +majority of people to have been in some way or other linked together.</p> +<p>For a very little reflection will show that identity, as commonly +predicated of living agents, does not consist in identity of matter, +of which there is no same particle in the infant, we will say, and the +octogenarian into whom he has developed. Nor, again, does it depend +upon sameness of form or fashion; for personality is felt to survive +frequent and radical modification of structure, as in the case of caterpillars +and other insects. Mr. Darwin, quoting from Professor Owen, tells +us (Plants and Animals under Domestication, vol. ii. p. 362, ed. 1875), +that in the case of what is called metagenetic development, “the +new parts are not moulded upon the inner surfaces of the old ones. +The plastic force has changed its mode of operation. <i>The outer +case, and all that gave form and character to the precedent individual, +perish, and are cast off; they are not changed</i> into the corresponding +parts of the same individual. These are due to a new and distinct +developmental process.” Assuredly, there is more birth and +death in the world than is dreamt of by the greater part of us; but +it is so masked, and on the whole, so little to our purpose, that we +fail to see it. Yet radical and sweeping as the changes of organism +above described must be, we do not feel them to be more a bar to personal +identity than the considerable changes which take place in the structure +of our own bodies between youth and old age.</p> +<p>Perhaps the most striking illustration of this is to be found in +the case of some Echinoderms, concerning which Mr. Darwin tells us, +that “the animal in the second stage of development is formed +almost like a bud within the animal of the first stage, the latter being +then cast off like an old vestment, yet sometimes maintaining for a +short period an independent vitality” (“Plants and Animals +under Domestication,” vol. ii. p. 362, ed. 1875).</p> +<p>Nor yet does personality depend upon any consciousness or sense of +such personality on the part of the creature itself - it is not likely +that the moth remembers having been a caterpillar, more than we ourselves +remember having been children of a day old. It depends simply +upon the fact that the various phases of existence have been linked +together, by links which we agree in considering sufficient to cause +identity, and that they have flowed the one out of the other in what +we see as a continuous, though it may be at times, a troubled stream. +This is the very essence of personality, but it involves the probable +unity of all animal and vegetable life, as being, in reality, nothing +but one single creature, of which the component members are but, as +it were, blood corpuscles or individual cells; life being a sort of +leaven, which, if once introduced into the world, will leaven it altogether; +or of fire, which will consume all it can burn; or of air or water, +which will turn most things into themselves. Indeed, no difficulty +would probably be felt about admitting the continued existence of personal +identity between parents and their offspring through all time (there +being no <i>sudden</i> break at any time between the existence of any +maternal parent and that of its offspring), were it not that after a +certain time the changes in outward appearance between descendants and +ancestors become very great, the two seeming to stand so far apart, +that it seems absurd in any way to say that they are one and the same +being; much in the same way as after a time - though exactly when no +one can say - the Thames becomes the sea. Moreover, the separation +of the identity is practically of far greater importance to it than +its continuance. We want to be ourselves; we do not want any one +else to claim part and parcel of our identity. This community +of identities is not found to answer in everyday life. When then +our love of independence is backed up by the fact that continuity of +life between parents and offspring is a matter which depends on things +which are a good deal hidden, and that thus birth gives us an opportunity +of pretending that there has been a sudden leap into a separate life; +when also we have regard to the utter ignorance of embryology, which +prevailed till quite recently, it is not surprising that our ordinary +language should be found to have regard to what is important and obvious, +rather than to what is not quite obvious, and is quite unimportant.</p> +<p>Personality is the creature of time and space, changing, as time +changes, imperceptibly; we are therefore driven to deal with it as with +all continuous and blending things; as with time, for example, itself, +which we divide into days, and seasons, and times, and years, into divisions +that are often arbitrary, but coincide, on the whole, as nearly as we +can make them do so, with the more marked changes which we can observe. +We lay hold, in fact, of anything we can catch; the most important feature +in any existence as regards ourselves being that which we can best lay +hold of rather than that which is most essential to the existence itself. +We can lay hold of the continued personality of the egg and the moth +into which the egg develops, but it is less easy to catch sight of the +continued personality between the moth and the eggs which she lays; +yet the one continuation of personality is just as true and free from +quibble as the other. A moth becomes each egg that she lays, and +that she does so, she will in good time show by doing, now that she +has got a fresh start, as near as may be what she did when first she +was an egg, and then a moth, before; and this I take it, so far as I +can gather from looking at life and things generally, she would not +be able to do if she had not travelled the same road often enough already, +to be able to know it in her sleep and blindfold, that is to say, to +remember it without any conscious act of memory.</p> +<p>So also a grain of wheat is linked with an ear, containing, we will +say, a dozen grains, by a series of changes so subtle that we cannot +say at what moment the original grain became the blade, nor when each +ear of the head became possessed of an individual centre of action. +To say that each grain of the head is personally identical with the +original grain would perhaps be an abuse of terms; but it can be no +abuse to say that each grain is a continuation of the personality of +the original grain, and if so, of every grain in the chain of its own +ancestry; and that, as being such a continuation, it must be stored +with the memories and experiences of its past existences, to be recollected +under the circumstances most favourable to recollection, <i>i.e</i>., +when under similar conditions to those when the impression was last +made and last remembered. Truly, then, in each case the new egg +and the new grain <i>is</i> the egg, and the grain from which its parent +sprang, as completely as the full-grown ox is the calf from which it +has grown.</p> +<p>Again, in the case of some weeping trees, whose boughs spring up +into fresh trees when they have reached the ground, who shall say at +what time they cease to be members of the parent tree? In the +case of cuttings from plants it is easy to elude the difficulty by making +a parade of the sharp and sudden act of separation from the parent stock, +but this is only a piece of mental sleight of hand; the cutting remains +as much part of its parent plant as though it had never been severed +from it; it goes on profiting by the experience which it had before +it was cut off, as much as though it had never been cut off at all. +This will be more readily seen in the case of worms which have been +cut in half. Let a worm be cut in half, and the two halves will +become fresh worms; which of them is the original worm? Surely +both. Perhaps no simpler case than this could readily be found +of the manner in which personality eludes us, the moment we try to investigate +its real nature. There are few ideas which on first consideration +appear so simple, and none which becomes more utterly incapable of limitation +or definition as soon as it is examined closely.</p> +<p>Finally, Mr. Darwin (“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” +vol. ii. p. 38, ed. 1875), writes -</p> +<p>“Even with plants multiplied by bulbs, layers, &c., which +may <i>in one sense</i> be said to form part of the same individual,” +&c., &c.; and again, p. 58, “The same rule holds good +with plants when propagated by bulbs, offsets, &c., which <i>in +one sense</i> still form parts of the same individual,” &c. +In each of these passages it is plain that the difficulty of separating +the personality of the offspring from that of the parent plant is present +to his mind. Yet, p. 351 of the same volume as above, he tells +us that asexual generation “is effected in many ways - by the +formation of buds of various kinds, and by fissiparous generation, that +is, by spontaneous or artificial division.” The multiplication +of plants by bulbs and layers clearly comes under this head, nor will +any essential difference be felt between one kind of asexual generation +and another; if, then, the offspring formed by bulbs and layers is in +one sense part of the original plant, so also, it would appear, is all +offspring developed by asexual generation in its manifold phrases.</p> +<p>If we now turn to p. 357, we find the conclusion arrived at, as it +would appear, on the most satisfactory evidence, that “sexual +and asexual reproduction are not seen to differ essentially; and . . +. . that asexual reproduction, the power of regrowth, and development +are all parts of one and the same great law.” Does it not +then follow, quite reasonably and necessarily, that all offspring, however +generated, is <i>in one sense</i> part of the individuality of its parent +or parents. The question, therefore, turns upon “in what +sense” this may be said to be the case? To which I would +venture to reply, “In the same sense as the parent plant (which +is but the representative of the outside matter which it has assimilated +during growth, and of its own powers of development) is the same individual +that it was when it was itself an offset, or a cow the same individual +that it was when it was a calf - but no otherwise.”</p> +<p>Not much difficulty will be felt about supposing the offset of a +plant, to be imbued with the memory of the past history of the plant +of which it is an offset. It is part of the plant itself; and +will know whatever the plant knows. Why, then, should there be +more difficulty in supposing the offspring of the highest mammals, to +remember in a profound but unselfconscious way, the anterior history +of the creatures of which they too have been part and parcel?</p> +<p>Personal identity, then, is much like species itself. It is +now, thanks to Mr. Darwin, generally held that species blend or have +blended into one another; so that any possibility of arrangement and +apparent subdivision into definite groups, is due to the suppression +by death both of individuals and whole genera, which, had they been +now existing, would have linked all living beings by a series of gradations +so subtle that little classification could have been attempted. +How it is that the one great personality of life as a whole, should +have split itself up into so many centres of thought and action, each +one of which is wholly, or at any rate nearly, unconscious of its connection +with the other members, instead of having grown up into a huge polyp, +or as it were coral reef or compound animal over the whole world, which +should be conscious but of its own one single existence; how it is that +the daily waste of this creature should be carried on by the conscious +death of its individual members, instead of by the unconscious waste +of tissue which goes on in the bodies of each individual (if indeed +the tissue which we waste daily in our own bodies is so unconscious +of its birth and death as we suppose); how, again, that the daily repair +of this huge creature life should have become decentralised, and be +carried on by conscious reproduction on the part of its component items, +instead of by the unconscious nutrition of the whole from a single centre, +as the nutrition of our own bodies would appear (though perhaps falsely) +to be carried on; these are matters upon which I dare not speculate +here, but on which some reflections may follow in subsequent chapters.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER VII - OUR SUBORDINATE PERSONALITIES</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>We have seen that we can apprehend neither the beginning nor the +end of our personality, which comes up out of infinity as an island +out of the sea, so gently, that none can say when it is first visible +on our mental horizon, and fades away in the case of those who leave +offspring, so imperceptibly that none can say when it is out of sight. +But, like the island, whether we can see it or no, it is always there. +Not only are we infinite as regards time, but we are so also as regards +extension, being so linked on to the external world that we cannot say +where we either begin or end. If those who so frequently declare +that man is a finite creature would point out his boundaries, it might +lead to a better understanding.</p> +<p>Nevertheless, we are in the habit of considering that our personality, +or soul, no matter where it begins or ends, and no matter what it comprises, +is nevertheless a single thing, uncompounded of other souls. Yet +there is nothing more certain than that this is not at all the case, +but that every individual person is a compound creature, being made +up of an infinite number of distinct centres of sensation and will, +each one of which is personal, and has a soul and individual existence, +a reproductive system, intelligence, and memory of its own, with probably +its hopes and fears, its times of scarcity and repletion, and a strong +conviction that it is itself the centre of the universe.</p> +<p>True, no one is aware of more than one individuality in his own person +at one time. We are, indeed, often greatly influenced by other +people, so much so, that we act on many occasions in accordance with +their will rather than our own, making our actions answer to their sensations, +and register the conclusions of their cerebral action and not our own; +for the time being, we become so completely part of them, that we are +ready to do things most distasteful and dangerous to us, if they think +it for their advantage that we should do so. Thus we sometimes +see people become mere processes of their wives or nearest relations. +Yet there is a something which blinds us, so that we cannot see how +completely we are possessed by the souls which influence us upon these +occasions. We still think we are ourselves, and ourselves only, +and are as certain as we can be of any fact, that we are single sentient +beings, uncompounded of other sentient beings, and that our action is +determined by the sole operation of a single will.</p> +<p>But in reality, over and above this possession of our souls by others +of our own species, the will of the lower animals often enters into +our bodies and possesses them, making us do as they will, and not as +we will; as, for example, when people try to drive pigs, or are run +away with by a restive horse, or are attacked by a savage animal which +masters them. It is absurd to say that a person is a single “ego” +when he is in the clutches of a lion. Even when we are alone, +and uninfluenced by other people except in so far as we remember their +wishes, we yet generally conform to the usages which the current feeling +of our peers has taught us to respect; their will having so mastered +our original nature, that, do what we may, we can never again separate +ourselves and dwell in the isolation of our own single personality. +And even though we succeeded in this, and made a clean sweep of every +mental influence which had ever been brought to bear upon us, and though +at the same time we were alone in some desert where there was neither +beast nor bird to attract our attention or in any way influence our +action, yet we could not escape the parasites which abound within us; +whose action, as every medical man well knows, is often such as to drive +men to the commission of grave crimes, or to throw them into convulsions, +make lunatics of them, kill them - when but for the existence and course +of conduct pursued by these parasites they would have done no wrong +to any man.</p> +<p>These parasites - are they part of us or no? Some are plainly +not so in any strict sense of the word, yet their action may, in cases +which it is unnecessary to detail, affect us so powerfully that we are +irresistibly impelled to act in such or such a manner; and yet we are +as wholly unconscious of any impulse outside of our own “ego” +as though they were part of ourselves; others again are essential to +our very existence, as the corpuscles of the blood, which the best authorities +concur in supposing to be composed of an infinite number of living souls, +on whose welfare the healthy condition of our blood, and hence of our +whole bodies, depends. We breathe that they may breathe, not that +we may do so; we only care about oxygen in so far as the infinitely +small beings which course up and down in our veins care about it: the +whole arrangement and mechanism of our lungs may be our doing, but is +for their convenience, and they only serve us because it suits their +purpose to do so, as long as we serve them. Who shall draw the +line between the parasites which are part of us, and the parasites which +are not part of us? Or again, between the influence of those parasites +which are within us, but are yet not <i>us</i>, and the external influence +of other sentient beings and our fellow-men? There is no line +possible. Everything melts away into everything else; there are +no hard edges; it is only from a little distance that we see the effect +as of individual features and existences. When we go close up, +there is nothing but a blur and confused mass of apparently meaningless +touches, as in a picture by Turner.</p> +<p>The following passage from Mr. Darwin’s provisional theory +of Pangenesis, will sufficiently show that the above is no strange and +paradoxical view put forward wantonly, but that it follows as a matter +of course from the conclusions arrived at by those who are acknowledged +leaders in the scientific world. Mr. Darwin writes thus:-</p> +<p>“<i>The functional independence of the elements or units of +the body</i>. - Physiologists agree that the whole organism consists +of a multitude of elemental parts, which are to a great extent independent +of one another. Each organ, says Claude Bernard, has its proper +life, its autonomy; it can develop and reproduce itself independently +of the adjoining tissues. A great German authority, Virchow, asserts +still more emphatically that each system consists of ‘an enormous +mass of minute centres of action. . . . Every element has its +own special action, and even though it derive its stimulus to activity +from other parts, yet alone effects the actual performance of duties. +. . . Every single epithelial and muscular fibre-cell leads a +sort of parasitical existence in relation to the rest of the body. . +. . Every single bone corpuscle really possesses conditions of +nutrition peculiar to itself.’ Each element, as Sir J. Paget +remarks, lives its appointed time, and then dies, and is replaced after +being cast off and absorbed. I presume that no physiologist doubts +that, for instance, each bone corpuscle of the finger differs from the +corresponding corpuscle of the corresponding joint of the toe,” +&c., &c. (“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” +vol ii. pp. 364, 365, ed. 1875).</p> +<p>In a work on heredity by M. Ribot, I find him saying, “Some +recent authors attribute a memory” (and if so, surely every attribute +of complete individuality) “to every organic element of the body;” +among them Dr. Maudsley, who is quoted by M. Ribot, as saying, “The +permanent effects of a particular virus, such as that of the variola, +in the constitution, shows that the organic element remembers for the +remainder of its life certain modifications it has received. The +manner in which a cicatrix in a child’s finger grows with the +growth of the body, proves, as has been shown by Paget, that the organic +element of the part does not forget the impression it has received. +What has been said about the different nervous centres of the body demonstrates +the existence of a memory in the nerve cells diffused through the heart +and intestines; in those of the spinal cord, in the cells of the motor +ganglia, and in the cells of the cortical substance of the cerebal hemispheres.”</p> +<p>Now, if words have any meaning at all, it must follow from the passages +quoted above, that each cell in the human body is a person with an intelligent +soul, of a low class, perhaps, but still differing from our own more +complex soul in degree, and not in kind; and, like ourselves, being +born, living, and dying. So that each single creature, whether +man or beast, proves to be as a ray of white light, which, though single, +is compounded of the red, blue, and yellow rays. It would appear, +then, as though “we,” “our souls,” or “selves,” +or “personalities,” or by whatever name we may prefer to +be called, are but the <i>consensus</i> and full flowing stream of countless +sensations and impulses on the part of our tributary souls or “selves,” +who probably know no more that we exist, and that they exist as part +of us, than a microscopic water-flea knows the results of spectrum analysis, +or than an agricultural labourer knows the working of the British constitution: +and of whom we know no more, until some misconduct on our part, or some +confusion of ideas on theirs, has driven them into insurrection, than +we do of the habits and feelings of some class widely separated from +our own.</p> +<p>These component souls are of many and very different natures, living +in territories which are to them vast continents, and rivers, and seas, +but which are yet only the bodies of our other component souls; coral +reefs and sponge-beds within us; the animal itself being a kind of mean +proportional between its house and its soul, and none being able to +say where house ends and animal begins, more than they can say where +animal ends and soul begins. For our bones within us are but inside +walls and buttresses, that is to say, houses constructed of lime and +stone, as it were, by coral insects; and our houses without us are but +outside bones, a kind of exterior skeleton or shell, so that we perish +of cold if permanently and suddenly deprived of the coverings which +warm us and cherish us, as the wing of a hen cherishes her chickens. +If we consider the shells of many living creatures, we shall find it +hard to say whether they are rather houses, or part of the animal itself, +being, as they are, inseparable from the animal, without the destruction +of its personality.</p> +<p>Is it possible, then, to avoid imagining that if we have within us +so many tributary souls, so utterly different from the soul which they +unite to form, that they neither can perceive us, nor we them, though +it is in us that they live and move and have their being, and though +we are what we are, solely as the result of their co-operation - is +it possible to avoid imagining that we may be ourselves atoms, undesignedly +combining to form some vaster being, though we are utterly incapable +of perceiving that any such being exists, or of realising the scheme +or scope of our own combination? And this, too, not a spiritual +being, which, without matter, or what we think matter of some sort, +is as complete nonsense to us as though men bade us love and lean upon +an intelligent vacuum, but a being with what is virtually flesh and +blood and bones; with organs, senses, dimensions, in some way analogous +to our own, into some other part of which being, at the time of our +great change we must infallibly re-enter, starting clean anew, with +bygones bygones, and no more ache for ever from either age or antecedents. +Truly, sufficient for the life is the evil thereof. Any speculations +of ours concerning the nature of such a being, must be as futile and +little valuable as those of a blood corpuscle might be expected to be +concerning the nature of man; but if I were myself a blood corpuscle, +I should be amused at making the discovery that I was not only enjoying +life in my own sphere, but was <i>bonâ fide</i> part of an animal +which would not die with myself, and in which I might thus think of +myself as continuing to live to all eternity, or to what, as far as +my power of thought would carry me, must seem practically eternal. +But, after all, the amusement would be of a rather dreary nature.</p> +<p>On the other hand, if I were the being of whom such an introspective +blood corpuscle was a component item, I should conceive he served me +better by attending to my blood and making himself a successful corpuscle, +than by speculating about my nature. He would serve me best by +serving himself best, without being over curious. I should expect +that my blood might suffer if his brain were to become too active. +If, therefore, I could discover the vein in which he was, I should let +him out to begin life anew in some other and, <i>quâ</i> me, more +profitable capacity.</p> +<p>With the units of our bodies it is as with the stars of heaven: there +is neither speech nor language, but their voices are heard among them. +Our will is the <i>fiat</i> of their collective wisdom, as sanctioned +in their parliament, the brain; it is they who make us do whatever we +do - it is they who should be rewarded if they have done well, or hanged +if they have committed murder. When the balance of power is well +preserved among them, when they respect each other’s rights and +work harmoniously together, then we thrive and are well; if we are ill, +it is because they are quarrelling with themselves, or are gone on strike +for this or that addition to their environment, and our doctor must +pacify or chastise them as best he may. They are we and we are +they; and when we die it is but a redistribution of the balance of power +among them or a change of dynasty, the result, it may be, of heroic +struggle, with more epics and love romances than we could read from +now to the Millennium, if they were so written down that we could comprehend +them.</p> +<p>It is plain, then, that the more we examine the question of personality +the more it baffles us, the only safeguard against utter confusion and +idleness of thought being to fall back upon the superficial and common +sense view, and refuse to tolerate discussions which seem to hold out +little prospect of commercial value, and which would compel us, if logically +followed, to be at the inconvenience of altering our opinions upon matters +which we have come to consider as settled.</p> +<p>And we observe that this is what is practically done by some of our +ablest philosophers, who seem unwilling, if one may say so without presumption, +to accept the conclusions to which their own experiments and observations +would seem to point.</p> +<p>Dr. Carpenter, for example, quotes the well-known experiments upon +headless frogs. If we cut off a frog’s head and pinch any +part of its skin, the animal at once begins to move away with the same +regularity as though the brain had not been removed. Flourens +took guinea-pigs, deprived them of the cerebral lobes, and then irritated +their skin; the animals immediately walked, leaped, and trotted about, +but when the irritation was discontinued they ceased to move. +Headless birds, under excitation, can still perform with their wings +the rhythmic movements of flying. But here are some facts more +curious still, and more difficult of explanation. If we take a +frog or a strong and healthy triton, and subject it to various experiments; +if we touch, pinch, or burn it with acetic acid, and if then, after +decapitating the animal, we subject it to the same experiments, it will +be seen that the reactions are exactly the same; it will strive to be +free of the pain, and to shake off the acetic acid that is burning it; +it will bring its foot up to the part of its body that is irritated, +and this movement of the member will follow the irritation wherever +it may be produced.</p> +<p>The above is mainly taken from M. Ribot’s work on heredity +rather than Dr. Carpenter’s, because M. Ribot tells us that the +head of the frog was actually cut off, a fact which does not appear +so plainly in Dr. Carpenter’s allusion to the same experiments. +But Dr. Carpenter tells us that <i>after the brain of a frog has been +removed</i> - which would seem to be much the same thing as though its +head were cut off - “if acetic acid be applied over the upper +and under part of the thigh, the foot of the same side will wipe it +away; <i>but if that foot be cut off, after some ineffectual efforts +and a short period of inaction</i>,” during which it is hard not +to surmise that the headless body is considering what it had better +do under the circumstances, “<i>the same movement will be made +by the foot of the opposite side</i>,” which, to ordinary people, +would convey the impression that the headless body was capable of feeling +the impressions it had received, and of reasoning upon them by a psychological +act; and this of course involves the possession of a soul of some sort.</p> +<p>Here is a frog whose right thigh you burn with acetic acid. +Very naturally it tries to get at the place with its right foot to remove +the acid. You then cut off the frog’s head, and put more +acetic acid on the some place: the headless frog, or rather the body +of the late frog, does just what the frog did before its head was cut +off - it tries to get at the place with its right foot. You now +cut off its right foot: the headless body deliberates, and after a while +tries to do with its left foot what it can no longer do with its right. +Plain matter-of-fact people will draw their own inference. They +will not be seduced from the superficial view of the matter. They +will say that the headless body can still, to some extent, feel, think, +and act, and if so, that it must have a living soul.</p> +<p>Dr. Carpenter writes as follows:- “Now the performance of these, +as well as of many other movements, that show a most remarkable adaptation +to a purpose, might be supposed to indicate that sensations are called +up by the <i>impressions</i>, and that the animal can not only <i>feel</i>, +but can voluntarily direct its movements so as to get rid of the irritation +which annoys it. But such an inference would be inconsistent with +other facts. In the first place, the motions performed under such +circumstances are never spontaneous, but are always excited by a stimulus +of some kind.”</p> +<p>Here we pause to ask ourselves whether any action of any creature +under any circumstances is ever excited without “stimulus of some +kind,” and unless we can answer this question in the affirmative, +it is not easy to see how Dr. Carpenter’s objection is valid.</p> +<p>“Thus,” he continues, “a decapitated frog” +(here then we have it that the frog’s head was actually cut off) +“after the first violent convulsive moments occasioned by the +operation have passed away, remains at rest until it is touched; and +then the leg, or its whole body may be thrown into sudden action, which +suddenly subsides again.” (How does this quiescence when +it no longer feels anything show that the “leg or whole body” +had not perceived something which made it feel when it was not quiescent?) +- “Again we find that such movements may be performed not only +when the brain has been removed, the spinal cord remaining entire, but +also when the spinal cord has been itself cut across, so as to be divided +into two or more portions, each of them completely isolated from each +other, and from other parts of the nervous centres. Thus, if the +head of a frog be cut off, and its spinal cord be divided in the middle +of the back, so that its fore legs remain connected with the upper part, +and its hind legs with the lower, each pair of members may be excited +to movements by stimulants applied to itself; but the two pairs will +not exhibit any consentaneous motions, as they will do when the spinal +cord is undivided.”</p> +<p>This may be put perhaps more plainly thus. If you take a frog +and cut it into three pieces - say, the head for one piece, the fore +legs and shoulder for another, and the hind legs for a third - and then +irritate any one of these pieces, you will find it move much as it would +have moved under like irritation if the animal had remained undivided, +but you will no longer find any concert between the movements of the +three pieces; that is to say, if you irritate the head, the other two +pieces will remain quiet, and if you irritate the hind legs, you will +excite no action in the fore legs or head.</p> +<p>Dr. Carpenter continues: “Or if the spinal cord be cut across +without the removal of the brain, the lower limbs may be <i>excited</i> +to movement by an appropriate stimulant, though the animal has clearly +no power over them, whilst the upper part remains under its control +as completely as before.”</p> +<p>Why are the head and shoulders “the animal” more than +the hind legs under these circumstances? Neither half can exist +long without the other; the two parts, therefore, being equally important +to each other, we have surely as good a right to claim the title of +“the animal” for the hind legs, and to maintain that they +have no power over the head and shoulders, as any one else has to claim +the animalship for these last. What we say is, that the animal +has ceased to exist as a frog on being cut in half, and that the two +halves are no longer, either of them, the frog, but are simply pieces +of still living organism, each of which has a soul of its own, being +capable of sensation, and of intelligent psychological action as the +consequence of sensations, though the one part has probably a much higher +and more intelligent soul than the other, and neither part has a soul +for a moment comparable in power and durability to that of the original +frog.</p> +<p>“Now it is scarcely conceivable,” continues Dr Carpenter, +“that in this last case sensations should be felt and volition +exercised through the instrumentality of that portion of the spinal +cord which remains connected with the nerves of the posterior extremities, +but which is cut off from the brain. For if it were so, there +must be two distinct centres of sensation and will in the same animal, +the attributes of the brain not being affected; and by dividing the +spinal cord into two or more segments we might thus create in the body +of one animal two or more such independent centres in addition to that +which holds its proper place in the head.”</p> +<p>In the face of the facts before us, it does not seen far-fetched +to suppose that there <i>are</i> two, or indeed an infinite number of +centres of sensation and will in an animal, the attributes of whose +brain are not affected but that these centres, while the brain is intact, +habitually act in connection with and in subordination to that central +authority; as in the ordinary state of the fish trade, fish is caught, +we will say, at Yarmouth, sent up to London, and then sent down to Yarmouth +again to be eaten, instead of being eaten at Yarmouth when caught. +But from the phenomena exhibited by three pieces of an animal, it is +impossible to argue that the causes of the phenomena were present in +the quondam animal itself; the memory of an infinite series of generations +having so habituated the local centres of sensation and will, to act +in concert with the central government, that as long as they can get +at that government, they are absolutely incapable of acting independently. +When thrown on their own resources, they are so demoralised by ages +of dependence on the brain, that they die after a few efforts at self-assertion, +from sheer unfamiliarity with the position, and inability to recognise +themselves when disjointed rudely from their habitual associations.</p> +<p>In conclusion, Dr. Carpenter says, “To say that two or more +distinct centres of sensation and will are present in such a case, would +really be the same as saying that we have the power of constituting +two or more distinct egos in one body, <i>which is manifestly absurd</i>.” +One sees the absurdity of maintaining that we can make one frog into +two frogs by cutting a frog into two pieces, but there is no absurdity +in believing that the two pieces have minor centres of sensation and +intelligence within themselves, which, when the animal is entire, act +in much concert with the brain, and with each other, that it is not +easy to detect their originally autonomous character, but which, when +deprived of their power of acting in concert, are thrown back upon earlier +habit, now too long forgotten to be capable of permanent resumption.</p> +<p>Illustrations are apt to mislead, nevertheless they may perhaps be +sometimes tolerated. Suppose, for example, that London to the +extent, say, of a circle with a six-mile radius from Charing Cross, +were utterly annihilated in the space of five minutes during the Session +of Parliament. Suppose, also, that two entirely impassable barriers, +say of five miles in width, half a mile high, and red hot, were thrown +across England; one from Gloucester to Harwich, and another from Liverpool +to Hull, and at the same time the sea were to become a mass of molten +lava, so no water communication should be possible; the political, mercantile, +social, and intellectual life of the country would be convulsed in a +manner which it is hardly possible to realise. Hundreds of thousands +would die through the dislocation of existing arrangements. Nevertheless, +each of the three parts into which England was divided would show signs +of provincial life for which it would find certain imperfect organisms +ready to hand. Bristol, Birmingham, Liverpool, and Manchester, +accustomed though they are to act in subordination to London, would +probably take up the reins of government in their several sections; +they would make their town councils into local governments, appoint +judges from the ablest of their magistrates, organise relief committees, +and endeavour as well as they could to remove any acetic acid that might +be now poured on Wiltshire, Warwickshire, or Northumberland, but no +concert between the three divisions of the country would be any longer +possible. Should we be justified, under these circumstances, in +calling any of the three parts of England, England? Or, again, +when we observed the provincial action to be as nearly like that of +the original undivided nation as circumstances would allow, should we +be justified in saying that the action, such as it was, was not political? +And, lastly, should we for a moment think that an admission that the +provincial action was of a <i>bonâ fide</i> political character +would involve the supposition that England, undivided, had more than +one “ego” as England, no matter how many subordinate “egos” +might go to the making of it, each one of which proved, on emergency, +to be capable of a feeble autonomy?</p> +<p>M. Ribot would seem to take a juster view of the phenomenon when +he says (p. 222 of the English translation) -</p> +<p>“We can hardly say that here the movements are co-ordinated +like those of a machine; the acts of the animal are adapted to a special +end; we find in them the characters of intelligence and will, a knowledge +and choice of means, since they are as variable as the cause which provokes +them.</p> +<p>“If these, then, and similar acts, were such that both the +impressions which produced them and the acts themselves were perceived +by the animal, would they not be called psychological? Is there +not in them all that constitutes an intelligent act - adaptation of +means to ends; not a general and vague adaptation, but a determinate +adaptation to a determinate end? In the reflex action we find +all that constitutes in some sort the very groundwork of an intelligent +act - that is to say, the same series of stages, in the same order, +with the same relations between them. We have thus, in the reflex +act, all that constitutes the psychological act except consciousness. +The reflex act, which is physiological, differs in nothing from the +psychological act, save only in this - that it is without consciousness.”</p> +<p>The only remark which suggests itself upon this, is that we have +no right to say that the part of the animal which moves does not also +perceive its own act of motion, as much as it has perceived the impression +which has caused it to move. It is plain “the animal” +cannot do so, for the animal cannot be said to be any longer in existence. +Half a frog is not a frog; nevertheless, if the hind legs are capable, +as M. Ribot appears to admit, of “perceiving the impression” +which produces their action, and if in that action there is (and there +would certainly appear to be so) “all that constitutes an intelligent +act, . . . a determinate adaptation to a determinate end,” one +fails to see on what ground they should be supposed to be incapable +of perceiving their own action, in which case the action of the hind +legs becomes distinctly psychological.</p> +<p>Secondly, M. Ribot appears to forget that it is the tendency of all +psychological action to become unconscious on being frequently repeated, +and that no line can be drawn between psychological acts and those reflex +acts which he calls physiological. All we can say is, that there +are acts which we do without knowing that we do them; but the analogy +of many habits which we have been able to watch in their passage from +laborious consciousness to perfect unconsciousness, would suggest that +all action is really psychological, only that the soul’s action +becomes invisible to ourselves after it has been repeated sufficiently +often - that there is, in fact, a law as simple as in the case of optics +or gravitation, whereby conscious perception of any action shall vary +inversely as the square, say, of its being repeated.</p> +<p>It is easy to understand the advantage to the individual of this +power of doing things rightly without thinking about them; for were +there no such power, the attention would be incapable of following the +multitude of matters which would be continually arresting it; those +animals which had developed a power of working automatically, and without +a recurrence to first principles when they had once mastered any particular +process, would, in the common course of events, stand a better chance +of continuing their species, and thus of transmitting their new power +to their descendants.</p> +<p>M. Ribot declines to pursue the subject further, and has only cursorily +alluded to it. He writes, however, that, on the “obscure +problem” of the difference between reflex and psychological actions, +some say, “when there can be no consciousness, because the brain +is wanting, there is, in spite of appearances, only mechanism,” +whilst others maintain, that “when there is selection, reflection, +psychical action, there must also be consciousness in spite of appearances.” +A little later (p. 223), he says, “It is quite possible that if +a headless animal could live a sufficient length of time” (that +is to say, if <i>the hind legs of an animal</i> could live a sufficient +length of time without the brain), “there would be found in it” +<i>(them</i>) “a consciousness like that of the lower species, +which would consist merely in the faculty of apprehending the external +world.” (Why merely? It is more than apprehending +the outside world to be able to try to do a thing with one’s left +foot, when one finds that one cannot do it with one’s right.) +“It would not be correct to say that the amphioxus, the only one +among fishes and vertebrata which has a spinal cord without a brain, +has no consciousness because it has no brain; and if it be admitted +that the little ganglia of the invertebrata can form a consciousness, +the same may hold good for the spinal cord.”</p> +<p>We conclude, therefore, that it is within the common scope and meaning +of the words “personal identity,” not only that one creature +can become many as the moth becomes manifold in her eggs, but that each +individual may be manifold in the sense of being compounded of a vast +number of subordinate individualities which have their separate lives +within him, with their hopes, and fears, and intrigues, being born and +dying within us, many generations, of them during our single lifetime.</p> +<p>“An organic being,” writes Mr. Darwin, “is a microcosm, +a little universe, formed of a host of self-propagating organisms, inconceivably +minute, and numerous as the stars in heaven.”</p> +<p>As these myriads of smaller organisms are parts and processes of +us, so are we but parts and processes of life at large.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER VIII - APPLICATION OF THE FOREGOING CHAPTERS - THE ASSIMILATION +OF OUTSIDE MATTER</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>Let us now return to the position which we left at the end of the +fourth chapter. We had then concluded that the self-development +of each new life in succeeding generations - the various stages through +which it passes (as it would appear, at first sight, without rhyme or +reason) - the manner in which it prepares structures of the most surpassing +intricacy and delicacy, for which it has no use at the time when it +prepares them - and the many elaborate instincts which it exhibits immediately +on, and indeed before, birth - all point in the direction of habit and +memory, as the only causes which could produce them.</p> +<p>Why should the embryo of any animal go through so many stages - embryological +allusions to forefathers of a widely different type? And why, +again, should the germs of the same kind of creature always go through +the same stages? If the germ of any animal now living is, in its +simplest state, but part of the personal identity of one of the original +germs of all life whatsoever, and hence, if any now living organism +must be considered without quibble as being itself millions of years +old, and as imbued with an intense though unconscious memory of all +that it has done sufficiently often to have made a permanent impression; +if this be so, we can answer the above questions perfectly well. +The creature goes through so many intermediate stages between its earliest +state as life at all, and its latest development, for the simplest of +all reasons, namely, because this is the road by which it has always +hitherto travelled to its present differentiation; this is the road +it knows, and into every turn and up or down of which, it has been guided +by the force of circumstances and the balance of considerations. +These, acting in such a manner for such and such a time, caused it to +travel in such and such fashion, which fashion having been once sufficiently +established, becomes a matter of trick or routine to which the creature +is still a slave, and in which it confirms itself by repetition in each +succeeding generation.</p> +<p>Thus I suppose, as almost every one else, so far as I can gather, +supposes, that we are descended from ancestors of widely different characters +to our own. If we could see some of our forefathers a million +years back, we should find them unlike anything we could call man; if +we were to go back fifty million years, we should find them, it may +be, fishes pure and simple, breathing through gills, and unable to exist +for many minutes in air.</p> +<p>It is admitted on all hands that there is more or less analogy between +the embryological development of the individual, and the various phases +or conditions of life through which his forefathers have passed. +I suppose, then, that the fish of fifty million years back and the man +of to-day are one single living being, in the same sense, or very nearly +so, as the octogenarian is one single living being with the infant from +which he has grown; and that the fish has lived himself into manhood, +not as we live out our little life, living, and living, and living till +we die, but living by pulsations, so to speak; living so far, and after +a certain time going into a new body, and throwing off the old; making +his body much as we make anything that we want, and have often made +already, that is to say, as nearly as may be in the same way as he made +it last time; also that he is as unable as we ourselves are, to make +what he wants without going through the usual processes with which he +is familiar, even though there may be other better ways of doing the +same thing, which might not be far to seek, if the creature thought +them better, and had not got so accustomed to such and such a method, +that he would only be baffled and put out by any attempt to teach him +otherwise.</p> +<p>And this oneness of personality between ourselves and our supposed +fishlike ancestors of many millions of years ago, must hold also between +each individual one of us and the single pair of fishes from which we +are each (on the present momentary hypothesis) descended; and it must +also hold between such pair of fishes and all their descendants besides +man, it may be some of them birds, and others fishes; all these descendants, +whether human or otherwise, being but the way in which the creature +(which was a pair of fishes when we first took it in hand though it +was a hundred thousand other things as well, and had been all manner +of other things before any part of it became fishlike) continues to +exist - its manner, in fact, of growing. As the manner in which +the human body grows is by the continued birth and death, in our single +lifetime, of many generations of cells which we know nothing about, +but say that we have had only one hand or foot all our lives, when we +have really had many, one after another; so this huge compound creature, +LIFE, probably thinks itself but one single animal whose component cells, +as it may imagine, grow, and it may be waste and repair, but do not +die.</p> +<p>It may be that the cells of which we are built up, and which we have +already seen must be considered as separate persons, each one of them +with a life and memory of its own - it may be that these cells reckon +time in a manner inconceivable by us, so that no word can convey any +idea of it whatever. What may to them appear a long and painful +process may to us be so instantaneous as to escape us altogether, we +wanting some microscope to show us the details of time. If, in +like manner, we were to allow our imagination to conceive the existence +of a being as much in need of a microscope for our time and affairs +as we for those of our own component cells, the years would be to such +a being but as the winkings or the twinklings of an eye. Would +he think, then, that all the ants and flies of one wink were different +from those of the next? or would he not rather believe that they were +always the same flies, and, again, always the same men and women, if +he could see them at all, and if the whole human race did not appear +to him as a sort of spreading and lichen-like growth over the earth, +not differentiated at all into individuals? With the help of a +microscope and the intelligent exercise of his reason, he would in time +conceive the truth. He would put Covent Garden Market on the field +of his microscope, and would perhaps write a great deal of nonsense +about the unerring “instinct” which taught each costermonger +to recognise his own basket or his own donkey-cart; and this, <i>mutatis +mutandis</i>, is what we are getting to do as regards our own bodies. +What I wish is, to make the same sort of step in an upward direction +which has already been taken in a downward one, and to show reason for +thinking that we are only component atoms of a single compound creature, +LIFE, which has probably a distinct conception of its own personality +though none whatever of ours, more than we of our own units. I +wish also to show reason for thinking that this creature, LIFE, has +only come to be what it is, by the same sort of process as that by which +any human art or manufacture is developed, <i>i.e</i>., through constantly +doing the same thing over and over again, beginning from something which +is barely recognisable as faith, or as the desire to know, or do, or +live at all, and as to the origin of which we are in utter darkness, +- and growing till it is first conscious of effort, then conscious of +power, then powerful with but little consciousness, and finally, so +powerful and so charged with memory as to be absolutely without all +self-consciousness whatever, except as regards its latest phases in +each of its many differentiations, or when placed in such new circumstances +as compel it to choose between death and a reconsideration of its position.</p> +<p>No conjecture can be hazarded as to how the smallest particle of +matter became so imbued with faith that it must be considered as the +beginning of LIFE, or as to what such faith is, except that it is the +very essence of all things, and that it has no foundation.</p> +<p>In this way, then, I conceive we can fairly transfer the experience +of the race to the individual, without any other meaning to our words +than what they would naturally suggest; that is to say, that there is +in every impregnate ovum a <i>bonâ fide</i> memory, which carries +it back not only to the time when it was last an impregnate ovum, but +to that earlier date when it was the very beginning of life at all, +which same creature it still is, whether as man or ovum, and hence imbued, +so far as time and circumstance allow, with all its memories. +Surely this is no strained hypothesis; for the mere fact that the germ, +from the earliest moment that we are able to detect it, appears to be +so perfectly familiar with its business, acts with so little hesitation +and so little introspection or reference to principles, this alone should +incline us to suspect that it must be armed with that which, so far +as we observe in daily life, can alone ensure such a result - to wit, +long practice, and the memory of many similar performances.</p> +<p>The difficulty is, that we are conscious of no such memory in our +own persons, and beyond the one great proof of memory given by the actual +repetition of the performance - and of some of the latest deviations +from the ordinary performance (and this proof ought in itself, one would +have thought, to outweigh any save the directest evidence to the contrary) +we can detect no symptom of any such mental operation as recollection +on the part of the embryo. On the other hand, we have seen that +we know most intensely those things that we are least conscious of knowing; +we will most intensely what we are least conscious of willing; we feel +continually without knowing that we feel, and our attention is hourly +arrested without our attention being arrested by the arresting of our +attention. Memory is no less capable of unconscious exercise, +and on becoming intense through frequent repetition, vanishes no less +completely as a conscious action of the mind than knowledge and volition. +We must all be aware of instances in which it is plain we must have +remembered, without being in the smallest degree conscious of remembering. +Is it then absurd to suppose that our past existences have been repeated +on such a vast number of occasions that the germ, linked on to all preceding +germs, and, by once having become part of their identity, imbued with +all their memories, remembers too intensely to be conscious of remembering, +and works on with the same kind of unconsciousness with which we play, +or walk, or read, until something unfamiliar happens to us? and is it +not singularly in accordance with this view that consciousness should +begin with that part of the creature’s performance with which +it is least familiar, as having repeated it least often - that is to +say, in our own case, with the commencement of our human life - at birth, +or thereabouts?</p> +<p>It is certainly noteworthy that the embryo is never at a loss, unless +something happens to it which has not usually happened to its forefathers, +and which in the nature of things it cannot remember.</p> +<p>When events are happening to it which have ordinarily happened to +its forefathers, and which it would therefore remember, if it was possessed +of the kind of memory which we are here attributing to it, <i>it acts +precisely as it would act if it were possessed of such memory.</i></p> +<p>When, on the other hand, events are happening to it which, if it +has the kind of memory we are attributing to it, would baffle that memory, +or which have rarely or never been included in the category of its recollections, +<i>it acts precisely as a creature acts when its recollection is disturbed, +or when it is required to do something which it has never done before.</i></p> +<p>We cannot remember having been in the embryonic stage, but we do +not on that account deny that we ever were in such a stage at all. +On a little reflection it will appear no more reasonable to maintain +that, when we were in the embryonic stage, we did not remember our past +existences, than to say that we never were embryos at all. We +cannot remember what we did or did not recollect in that state; we cannot +now remember having grown the eyes which we undoubtedly did grow, much +less can we remember whether or not we then remembered having grown +them before; but it is probable that our memory was then, in respect +of our previous existences as embryos, as much more intense than it +is now in respect of our childhood, as our power of acquiring a new +language was greater when we were one or two years old, than when we +were twenty. And why should this power of acquiring languages +be greater at two years than at twenty, but that for many generations +we have learnt to speak at about this age, and hence look to learn to +do so again on reaching it, just as we looked to making eyes, when the +time came at which we were accustomed to make them.</p> +<p>If we once had the memory of having been infants (which we had from +day to day during infancy), and have lost it, we may well have had other +and more intense memories which we have lost no less completely. +Indeed, there is nothing more extraordinary in the supposition that +the impregnate ovum has an intense sense of its continuity with, and +therefore of its identity with, the two impregnate ova from which it +has sprung, than in the fact that we have no sense of our continuity +with ourselves as infants. If then, there is no <i>à priori</i> +objection to this view, and if the impregnate ovum acts in such a manner +as to carry the strongest conviction that it must have already on many +occasions done what it is doing now, and that it has a vivid though +unconscious recollection of what all, and more especially its nearer, +ancestral ova did under similar circumstances, there would seem to be +little doubt what conclusion we ought to come to.</p> +<p>A hen’s egg, for example, as soon as the hen begins to sit, +sets to work immediately to do as nearly as may be what the two eggs +from which its father and mother were hatched did when hens began to +sit upon them. The inference would seem almost irresistible, - +that the second egg remembers the course pursued by the eggs from which +it has sprung, and of whose present identity it is unquestionably a +part-phase; it also seems irresistibly forced upon us to believe that +the intensity of this memory is the secret of its easy action.</p> +<p>It has, I believe, been often remarked, that a hen is only an egg’s +way of making another egg. Every creature must be allowed to “run” +its own development in its own way; the egg’s way may seem a very +roundabout manner of doing things; but it <i>is</i> its way, and it +is one of which man, upon the whole, has no great reason to complain. +Why the fowl should be considered more alive than the egg, and why it +should be said that the hen lays the egg, and not that the egg lays +the hen, these are questions which lie beyond the power of philosophic +explanation, but are perhaps most answerable by considering the conceit +of man, and his habit, persisted in during many ages, of ignoring all +that does not remind him of himself, or hurt him, or profit him; also +by considering the use of language, which, if it is to serve at all, +can only do so by ignoring a vast number of facts which gradually drop +out of mind from being out of sight. But, perhaps, after all, +the real reason is, that the egg does not cackle when it has laid the +hen, and that it works towards the hen with gradual and noiseless steps, +which we can watch if we be so minded; whereas, we can less easily watch +the steps which lead from the hen to the egg, but hear a noise, and +see an egg where there was no egg. Therefore, we say, the development +of the fowl from the egg bears no sort of resemblance to that of the +egg from the fowl, whereas, in truth, a hen, or any other living creature, +is only the primordial cell’s way of going back upon itself.</p> +<p>But to return. We see an egg, A, which evidently knows its +own meaning perfectly well, and we know that a twelvemonth ago there +were two other such eggs, B and C, which have now disappeared, but from +which we know A to have been so continuously developed as to be part +of the present form of their identity. A’s meaning is seen +to be precisely the same as B and C’s meaning; A’s personal +appearance is, to all intents and purposes, B and C’s personal +appearance; it would seem, then, unreasonable to deny that A is only +B and C come back, with such modification as they may have incurred +since their disappearance; and that, in spite of any such modification, +they remember in A perfectly well what they did as B and C.</p> +<p>We have considered the question of personal identity so as to see +whether, without abuse of terms, we can claim it as existing between +any two generations of living agents (and if between two, then between +any number up to infinity), and we found that we were not only at liberty +to claim this, but that we are compelled irresistibly to do so, unless, +that is to say, we would think very differently concerning personal +identity than we do at present. We found it impossible to hold +the ordinary common sense opinions concerning personal identity, without +admitting that we are personally identical with all our forefathers, +who have successfully assimilated outside matter to themselves, and +by assimilation imbued it with all their own memories; we being nothing +else than this outside matter so assimilated and imbued with such memories. +This, at least, will, I believe, balance the account correctly.</p> +<p>A few remarks upon the assimilation of outside matter by living organisms +may perhaps be hazarded here.</p> +<p>As long as any living organism can maintain itself in a position +to which it has been accustomed, more or less nearly, both in its own +life and in those of its forefathers, nothing can harm it. As +long as the organism is familiar with the position, and remembers its +antecedents, nothing can assimilate it. It must be first dislodged +from the position with which it is familiar, as being able to remember +it, before mischief can happen to it. Nothing can assimilate living +organism.</p> +<p>On the other hand, the moment living organism loses sight of its +own position and antecedents, it is liable to immediate assimilation, +and to be thus familiarised with the position and antecedents of some +other creature. If any living organism be kept for but a very +short time in a position wholly different from what it has been accustomed +to in its own life, and in the lives of its forefathers, it commonly +loses its memories completely, once and for ever; but it must immediately +acquire new ones, for nothing can know nothing; everything must remember +either its own antecedents, or some one else’s. And as nothing +can know nothing, so nothing can believe in nothing.</p> +<p>A grain of corn, for example, has never been accustomed to find itself +in a hen’s stomach - neither it nor its forefathers. For +a grain so placed leaves no offspring, and hence cannot transmit its +experience. The first minute or so after being eaten, it may think +it has just been sown, and begin to prepare for sprouting, but in a +few seconds, it discovers the environment to be unfamiliar; it therefore +gets frightened, loses its head, is carried into the gizzard, and comminuted +among the gizzard stones. The hen succeeded in putting it into +a position with which it was unfamiliar; from this it was an easy stage +to assimilating it entirely. Once assimilated, the grain ceases +to remember any more as a grain, but becomes initiated into all that +happens to, and has happened to, fowls for countless ages. Then +it will attack all other grains whenever it sees them; there is no such +persecutor of grain, as another grain when it has once fairly identified +itself with a hen.</p> +<p>We may remark in passing, that if anything be once familiarised with +anything, it is content. The only things we really care for in +life are familiar things; let us have the means of doing what we have +been accustomed to do, of dressing as we have been accustomed to dress, +of eating as we have been accustomed to eat, and let us have no less +liberty than we are accustomed to have, and last, but not least, let +us not be disturbed in thinking as we have been accustomed to think, +and the vast majority of mankind will be very fairly contented - all +plants and animals will certainly be so. This would seem to suggest +a possible doctrine of a future state; concerning which we may reflect +that though, after we die, we cease to be familiar with ourselves, we +shall nevertheless become immediately familiar with many other histories +compared with which our present life must then seem intolerably uninteresting.</p> +<p>This is the reason why a very heavy and sudden shock to the nervous +system does not pain, but kills outright at once; while one with which +the system can, at any rate, try to familiarise itself is exceedingly +painful. We cannot bear unfamiliarity. The part that is +treated in a manner with which it is not familiar cries immediately +to the brain - its central government - for help, and makes itself generally +as troublesome as it can, till it is in some way comforted. Indeed, +the law against cruelty to animals is but an example of the hatred we +feel on seeing even dumb creatures put into positions with which they +are not familiar. We hate this so much for ourselves, that we +will not tolerate it for other creatures if we can possibly avoid it. +So again, it is said, that when Andromeda and Perseus had travelled +but a little way from the rock where Andromeda had so long been chained, +she began upbraiding him with the loss of her dragon, who, on the whole, +she said, had been very good to her. The only things we really +hate are unfamiliar things, and though nature would not be nature if +she did not cross our love of the familiar with a love also of the unfamiliar, +yet there can be no doubt which of the two principles is master.</p> +<p>Let us return, however, to the grain of corn. If the grain +had had presence of mind to avoid being carried into the gizzard stones, +as many seeds do which are carried for hundreds of miles in birds’ +stomachs, and if it had persuaded itself that the novelty of the position +was not greater than it could very well manage to put up with - if, +in fact, it had not known when it was beaten - it might have stuck in +the hen’s stomach and begun to grow; in this case it would have +assimilated a good part of the hen before many days were over; for hens +are not familiar with grains that grow in their stomachs, and unless +the one in question was as strongminded for a hen, as the grain that +could avoid being assimilated would be for a grain, the hen would soon +cease to take an interest in her antecedents. It is to be doubted, +however, whether a grain has ever been grown which has had strength +of mind enough to avoid being set off its balance on finding itself +inside a hen’s gizzard. For living organism is the creature +of habit and routine, and the inside of a gizzard is not in the grain’s +programme.</p> +<p>Suppose, then, that the grain, instead of being carried into the +gizzard, had stuck in the hen’s throat and choked her. It +would now find itself in a position very like what it had often been +in before. That is to say, it would be in a damp, dark, quiet +place, not too far from light, and with decaying matter around it. +It would therefore know perfectly well what to do, and would begin to +grow until disturbed, and again put into a position with which it might, +very possibly, be unfamiliar.</p> +<p>The great question between vast masses of living organism is simply +this: “Am I to put you into a position with which your forefathers +have been unfamiliar, or are you to put me into one about which my own +have been in like manner ignorant?” Man is only the dominant +animal on the earth, because he can, as a general rule, settle this +question in his own favour.</p> +<p>The only manner in which an organism, which has once forgotten its +antecedents, can ever recover its memory, is by being assimilated by +a creature of its own kind; one, moreover, which knows its business, +or is not in such a false position as to be compelled to be aware of +being so. It was, doubtless, owing to the recognition of this +fact, that some Eastern nations, as we are told by Herodotus, were in +the habit of eating their deceased parents - for matter which has once +been assimilated by any identity or personality, becomes for all practical +purposes part of the assimilating personality.</p> +<p>The bearing of the above will become obvious when we return, as we +will now do, to the question of personal identity. The only difficulty +would seem to lie in our unfamiliarity with the real meanings which +we attach to words in daily use. Hence, while recognising continuity +without sudden break as the underlying principle of identity, we forget +that this involves personal identity between all the beings who are +in one chain of descent, the numbers of such beings, whether in succession, +or contemporaneous, going for nothing at all. Thus we take two +eggs, one male and one female, and hatch them; after some months the +pair of fowls so hatched, having succeeded in putting a vast quantity +of grain and worms into false positions, become full-grown, breed, and +produce a dozen new eggs.</p> +<p>Two live fowls and a dozen eggs are the present phase of the personality +of the two original eggs. They are also part of the present phase +of the personality of all the worms and grain which the fowls have assimilated +from their leaving the eggshell; but the personalities of these last +do not count; they have lost their grain and worm memories, and are +instinct with the memorises of the whole ancestry of the creature which +has assimilated them.</p> +<p>We cannot, perhaps, strictly say that the two fowls and the dozen +new eggs actually <i>are</i> the two original eggs; these two eggs are +no longer in existence, and we see the two birds themselves which were +hatched from them. A bird cannot be called an egg without an abuse +of terms. Nevertheless, it is doubtful how far we should not say +this, for it is only with a mental reserve - and with no greater mental +reserve - that we predicate absolute identity concerning any living +being for two consecutive moments; and it is certainly as free from +quibble to say to two fowls and a dozen eggs, “you are the two +eggs I had on my kitchen shelf twelve months ago,” as to say to +a man, “you are the child whom I remember thirty years ago in +your mother’s arms.” In either case we mean, “you +have been continually putting other organisms into a false position, +and then assimilating them, ever since I last saw you, while nothing +has yet occurred to put <i>you</i> into such a false position as to +have made you lose the memory of your antecedents.”</p> +<p>It would seem perfectly fair, therefore, to say to any egg of the +twelve, or to the two fowls and the whole twelve eggs together, “you +were a couple of eggs twelve months ago; twelve months before that you +were four eggs;” and so on, <i>ad infinitum</i>, the number neither +of the ancestors nor of the descendants counting for anything, and continuity +being the sole thing looked to. From daily observation we are +familiar with the fact that identity does both unite with other identities, +so that a single new identity is the result, and does also split itself +up into several identities, so that the one becomes many. This +is plain from the manner in which the male and female sexual elements +unite to form a single ovum, which we observe to be instinct with the +memories of both the individuals from which it has been derived; and +there is the additional consideration, that each of the elements whose +fusion goes to make up the impregnate ovum, is held by some to be itself +composed of a fused mass of germs, which stand very much in the same +relation to the spermatozoon and ovum, as the living cellular units +of which we are composed do to ourselves - that is to say, are living +independent organisms, which probably have no conception of the existence +of the spermatozoon nor of the ovum, more than the spermatozoon or ovum +have of theirs.</p> +<p>This, at least, is what I gather from Mr. Darwin’s provisional +theory of Pangenesis; and, again, from one of the concluding sentences +in his “Effects of Cross and Self Fertilisation,” where, +asking the question why two sexes have been developed, he replies that +the answer seems to lie “in the great good which is derived from +the fusion of two somewhat differentiated individuals. With the +exception,” he continues, “or the lowest organisms this +is possible only by means of the sexual elements - <i>these consisting +of cells separated from the body</i>” (<i>i.e</i>., separated +from the bodies of each parent) “<i>containing the germs of every +part</i>” (<i>i.e</i>., consisting of the seeds or germs from +which each individual cell of the coming organism will be developed +- these seeds or germs having been shed by each individual cell of the +parent forms), “<i>and capable of being fused completely together</i>” +(<i>i.e</i>., so at least I gather, capable of being fused completely, +in the same way as the cells of our own bodies are fused, and thus, +of forming a single living personality in the case of both the male +and female element; which elements are themselves capable of a second +fusion so as to form the impregnate ovum). This single impregnate +ovum, then, is a single identity that has taken the place of and come +up in the room of two distinct personalities, each of whose characteristics +it, to a certain extent, partakes, and which consist, each one of them, +of the fused germs of a vast mass of other personalities.</p> +<p>As regards the dispersion of one identity into many, this also is +a matter of daily observation in the case of all female creatures that +are with egg or young; the identity of the young with the female parent +is in many respects so complete, as to need no enforcing, in spite of +the entrance into the offspring of all the elements derived from the +male parent, and of the gradual separation of the two identities, which +becomes more and more complete, till in time it is hard to conceive +that they can ever have been united.</p> +<p>Numbers, therefore, go for nothing; and, as far as identity or continued +personality goes, it is as fair to say to the two fowls, above referred +to, “you were four fowls twelve months ago,” as it is to +say to a dozen eggs, “you were two eggs twelve months ago.” +But here a difficulty meets us; for if we say, “you were two eggs +twelve months ago,” it follows that we mean, “you are now +those two eggs;” just as when we say to a person, “you were +such and such a boy twenty years ago,” we mean, “you are +now that boy, or all that represents him;” it would seem, then, +that in like manner we should say to the two fowls, “you <i>are</i> +the four fowls who between them laid the two eggs from which you sprung.” +But it may be that all these four fowls are still to be seen running +about; we should be therefore saying, “you two fowls are really +not yourselves only, but you are also the other four fowls into the +bargain;” and this might be philosophically true, and might, perhaps, +be considered so, but for the convenience of the law courts.</p> +<p>The difficulty would seem to arise from the fact that the eggs must +disappear before fowls can be hatched from them, whereas, the hens so +hatched may outlive the development of other hens, from the eggs which +they in due course have laid. The original eggs being out of sight +are out of mind, and it is without an effort that we acquiesce in the +assertion, - that the dozen new eggs actually are the two original ones. +But the original four fowls being still in sight, cannot be ignored, +we only, therefore, see the new ones as growths from the original ones.</p> +<p>The strict rendering of the facts should be, “you are part +of the present phase of the identity of such and such a past identity,” +<i>i.e</i>., either of the two eggs or the four fowls, as the case may +be; this will put the eggs and the fowls, as it were, into the same +box, and will meet both the philosophical and legal requirement of the +case, only it is a little long.</p> +<p>So far then, as regards actual identity of personality; which, we +find, will allow us to say, that eggs are part of the present phase +of a certain past identity, whether of other eggs, or of fowls, or chickens, +and in like, manner that chickens are part of the present phase of certain +other chickens, or eggs, or fowls; in fact, that anything is part of +the present phase of any past identity in the line of its ancestry. +But as regards the actual memory of such identity (unconscious memory, +but still clearly memory), we observe that the egg, as long as it is +an egg, appears to have a very distinct recollection of having been +an egg before, and the fowl of having been a fowl before, but that neither +egg nor fowl appear to have any recollection of any other stage of their +past existences, than the one corresponding to that in which they are +themselves at the moment existing.</p> +<p>So we, at six or seven years old, have no recollection of ever having +been infants, much less of having been embryos; but the manner in which +we shed our teeth and make new ones, and the way in which we grow generally, +making ourselves for the most part exceedingly like what we made ourselves, +in the person of some one of our nearer ancestors, and not unfrequently +repeating the very blunders which we made upon that occasion when we +come to a corresponding age, proves most incontestably that we remember +our past existences, though too utterly to be capable of introspection +in the matter. So, when we grow wisdom teeth, at the age it may +be of one or two and twenty, it is plain we remember our past existences +at that age, however completely we may have forgotten the earlier stages +of our present existence. It may be said that it is the jaw which +remembers, and not we, but it seems hard to deny the jaw a right of +citizenship in our personality; and in the case of a growing boy, every +part of him seems to remember equally well, and if every part of him +combined does not make <i>him</i>, there would seem but little use in +continuing the argument further.</p> +<p>In like manner, a caterpillar appears not to remember having been +an egg, either in its present or any past existence. It has no +concern with eggs as soon as it is hatched, but it clearly remembers +not only having been a caterpillar before, but also having turned itself +into a chrysalis before; for when the time comes for it to do this, +it is at no loss, as it would certainly be if the position was unfamiliar, +but it immediately begins doing what it did when last it was in a like +case, repeating the process as nearly as the environment will allow, +taking every step in the same order as last time, and doing its work +with that ease and perfection which we observe to belong to the force +of habit, and to be utterly incompatible with any other supposition +than that of long long practice.</p> +<p>Once having become a chrysalis, its memory of its caterpillarhood +appears to leave it for good and all, not to return until it again assumes +the shape of a caterpillar by process of descent. Its memory now +overleaps all past modifications, and reverts to the time when it was +last what it is now, and though it is probable that both caterpillar +and chrysalis, on any given day of their existence in either of these +forms, have some sort of dim power of recollecting what happened to +them yesterday, or the day before; yet it is plain their main memory +goes back to the corresponding day of their last existence in their +present form, the chrysalis remembering what happened to it on such +a day far more practically, though less consciously, than what happened +to it yesterday; and naturally, for yesterday is but once, and its past +existences have been legion. Hence, it prepares its wings in due +time, doing each day what it did on the corresponding day of its last +chrysalishood and at length becoming a moth; whereon its circumstances +are so changed that it loses all sense of its identity as a chrysalis +(as completely as we, for precisely the same reason, lose all sense +of our identity with ourselves as infants), and remembers nothing but +its past existences as a moth.</p> +<p>We observe this to hold throughout the animal and vegetable kingdoms. +In any one phase of the existence of the lower animals, we observe that +they remember the corresponding stage, and a little on either side of +it, of all their past existences for a very great length of time. +In their present existence they remember a little behind the present +moment (remembering more and more the higher they advance in the scale +of life), and being able to foresee about as much as they could foresee +in their past existences, sometimes more and sometimes less. As +with memory, so with prescience. The higher they advance in the +scale of life the more prescient they are. It must, of course, +be remembered, and will later on be more fully dwelt upon, that no offspring +can remember anything which happens to its parents after it and its +parents have parted company; and this is why there is, perhaps, more +irregularity as regards our wisdom-teeth than about anything else that +we grow; inasmuch as it must not uncommonly have happened in a long +series of generations, that the offspring has been born before the parents +have grown their wisdom-teeth, and thus there will be faults in the +memory.</p> +<p>Is there, then, anything in memory, as we observe it in ourselves +and others, under circumstances in which we shall agree in calling it +memory pure and simple without ambiguity of terms - is there anything +in memory which bars us from supposing it capable of overleaping a long +time of abeyance, and thus of enabling each impregnate ovum, or each +grain, to remember what it did when last in a like condition, and to +go on remembering the corresponding period of its prior developments +throughout the whole period of its present growth, though such memory +has entirely failed as regards the interim between any two corresponding +periods, and is not consciously recognised by the individual as being +exercised at all?</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER IX - ON THE ABEYANCE OF MEMORY</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>Let us assume, for the moment, that the action of each impregnate +germ is due to memory, which, as it were, pulsates anew in each succeeding +generation, so that immediately on impregnation, the germ’s memory +reverts to the last occasion on which it was in a like condition, and +recognising the position, is at no loss what to do. It is plain +that in all cases where there are two parents, that is to say, in the +greater number of cases, whether in the vegetable or animal kingdoms, +there must be two such last occasions, each of which will have an equal +claim upon the attention of the new germ. Its memory would therefore +revert to both, and though it would probably adhere more closely to +the course which it took either as its father or its mother, and thus +come out eventually male or female, yet it would be not a little influenced +by the less potent memory.</p> +<p>And not only this, but each of the germs to which the memory of the +new germ reverts, is itself imbued with the memories of its own parent +germs, and these again with the memories of preceding generations, and +so on <i>ad infinitum</i>; so that, <i>ex hypothesi</i>, the germ must +become instinct with all these memories, epitomised as after long time, +and unperceived though they may well be, not to say obliterated in part +or entirely so far as many features are concerned, by more recent impressions. +In this case, we must conceive of the impregnate germ as of a creature +which has to repeat a performance already repeated before on countless +different occasions, but with no more variation on the more recent ones +than is inevitable in the repetition of any performance by an intelligent +being.</p> +<p>Now if we take the most parallel case to this which we can find, +and consider what we should ourselves do under such circumstances, that +is to say, if we consider what course is actually taken by beings who +are influenced by what we all call memory, when they repeat an already +often-repeated performance, and if we find a very strong analogy between +the course so taken by ourselves, and that which from whatever cause +we observe to be taken by a living germ, we shall surely be much inclined +to think that there must be a similarity in the causes of action in +each case; and hence, to conclude, that the action of the germ is due +to memory.</p> +<p>It will, therefore, be necessary to consider the general tendency +of our minds in regard to impressions made upon us, and the memory of +such impressions.</p> +<p>Deep impressions upon the memory are made in two ways, differing +rather in degree than kind, but with two somewhat widely different results. +They are made:-</p> +<p>I. By unfamiliar objects, or combinations, which come at comparatively +long intervals, and produce their effect, as it were, by one hard blow. +The effect of these will vary with the unfamiliarity of the impressions +themselves, and the manner in which they seem likely to lead to a further +development of the unfamiliar, <i>i.e</i>., with the question, whether +they seem likely to compel us to change our habits, either for better +or worse.</p> +<p>Thus, if an object or incident be very unfamiliar, as, we will say, +a whale or an iceberg to one travelling to America for the first time, +it will make a deep impression, though but little affecting our interests; +but if we struck against the iceberg and were shipwrecked, or nearly +so, it would produce a much deeper impression, we should think much +more about icebergs, and remember much more about them, than if we had +merely seen one. So, also, if we were able to catch the whale +and sell its oil, we should have a deep impression made upon us. +In either case we see that the amount of unfamiliarity, either present +or prospective, is the main determinant of the depth of the impression.</p> +<p>As with consciousness and volition, so with sudden unfamiliarity. +It impresses us more and more deeply the more unfamiliar it is, until +it reaches such a point of impressiveness as to make no further impression +at all; on which we then and there die. For death only kills through +unfamiliarity - that is to say, because the new position, whatever it +is, is so wide a cross as compared with the old one, that we cannot +fuse the two so as to understand the combination; hence we lose all +recognition of, and faith in, ourselves and our surroundings.</p> +<p>But however much we imagine we remember concerning the details of +any remarkable impression which has been made us by a single blow, we +do not remember as much or nearly as much as we think we do. The +subordinate details soon drop out of mind. Those who think they +remember even such a momentous matter as the battle of Waterloo recall +now probably but half-a-dozen episodes, a gleam here, and a gleam there, +so that what they call remembering the battle of Waterloo, is, in fact, +little more than a kind of dreaming - so soon vanishes the memory of +any unrepeated occurrence.</p> +<p>As for smaller impressions, there is very little of what happens +to us in each week that will be in our memories a week hence; a man +of eighty remembers few of the unrepeated incidents of his life beyond +those of the last fortnight, a little here, and a little there, forming +a matter of perhaps six weeks or two months in all, if everything that +he can call to mind were acted over again with no greater fulness than +he can remember it. As for incidents that have been often repeated, +his mind strikes a balance of its past reminiscences, remembering the +two or three last performances, and a general method of procedure, but +nothing more.</p> +<p>If, then, the recollection of all that is not very novel, or very +often repeated, so soon fades from our own minds, during what we consider +as our single lifetime, what wonder that the details of our daily experience +should find no place in that brief epitome of them which is all we can +give in so small a volume as offspring?</p> +<p>If we cannot ourselves remember the hundred-thousandth part of what +happened to us during our own childhood, how can we expect our offspring +to remember more than what, through frequent repetition, they can now +remember as a residuum, or general impression. On the other hand, +whatever we remember in consequence of but a single impression, we remember +consciously. We can at will recall details, and are perfectly +well aware, when we do so, that we are recollecting. A man who +has never seen death looks for the first time upon the dead face of +some near relative or friend. He gazes for a few short minutes, +but the impression thus made does not soon pass out of his mind. +He remembers the room, the hour of the day or night, and if by day, +what sort of a day. He remembers in what part of the room, and +how disposed the body of the deceased was lying. Twenty years +afterwards he can, at will, recall all these matters to his mind, and +picture to himself the scene as he originally witnessed it.</p> +<p>The reason is plain; the impression was very unfamiliar, and affected +the beholder, both as regards the loss of one who was dear to him, and +as reminding him with more than common force that he will one day die +himself. Moreover the impression was a simple one, not involving +much subordinate detail; we have in this case, therefore, an example +of the most lasting kind of impression that can be made by a single +unrepeated event. But if we examine ourselves closely, we shall +find that after a lapse of years we do not remember as much as we think +we do, even in such a case as this; and that beyond the incidents above +mentioned, and the expression upon the face of the dead person, we remember +little of what we can so consciously and vividly recall.</p> +<p>II. Deep impressions are also made by the repetition, more +or less often, of a feeble impression which, if unrepeated, would have +soon passed out of our minds. We observe, therefore, that we remember +best what we have done least often - any unfamiliar deviation, that +is to say, from our ordinary method of procedure - and what we have +done most often, with which, therefore, we are most familiar; our memory +being mainly affected by the force of novelty and the force of routine +- the most unfamiliar, and the most familiar, incidents or objects.</p> +<p>But we remember impressions which have been made upon us by force +of routine, in a very different way to that in which we remember a single +deep impression. As regards this second class, which comprises +far the most numerous and important of the impressions with which our +memory is stored, it is often only by the fact of our performance itself +that we are able to recognise or show to others that we remember at +all. We often do not remember how, or when, or where we acquired +our knowledge. All we remember is, that we did learn, and that +at one time and another we have done this or that very often.</p> +<p>As regards this second class of impressions we may observe:-</p> +<p>1. That as a general rule we remember only the individual features +of the last few repetitions of the act - if, indeed, we remember this +much. The influence of preceding ones is to be found only in the +general average of the procedure, which is modified by them, but unconsciously +to ourselves. Take, for example, some celebrated singer, or pianoforte +player, who has sung the same air, or performed the same sonata several +hundreds or, it may be, thousands of times: of the details of individual +performances, he can probably call to mind none but those of the last +few days, yet there can be no question that his present performance +is affected by, and modified by, all his previous ones; the care he +has bestowed on these being the secret of his present proficiency.</p> +<p>In each performance (the performer being supposed in the same state +of mental and bodily health), the tendency will be to repeat the immediately +preceding performances more nearly than remoter ones. It is the +common tendency of living beings to go on doing what they have been +doing most recently. The last habit is the strongest. Hence, +if he took great pains last time, he will play better now, and will +take a like degree of pains, and play better still next time, and so +go on improving while life and vigour last. If, on the other hand, +he took less pains last time, he will play worse now, and be inclined +to take little pains next time, and so gradually deteriorate. +This, at least, is the common everyday experience of mankind.</p> +<p>So with painters, actors, and professional men of every description; +after a little while the memory of many past performances strikes a +sort of fused balance in the mind, which results in a general method +of procedure with but little conscious memory of even the latest performances, +and with none whatever of by far the greater number of the remoter ones.</p> +<p>Still, it is noteworthy, that the memory of some even of these will +occasionally assert itself, so far as we can see, arbitrarily, the reason +why this or that occasion should still haunt us, when others like them +are forgotten, depending on some cause too subtle for our powers of +observation.</p> +<p>Even with such a simple matter as our daily dressing and undressing, +we may remember some few details of our yesterday’s toilet, but +we retain nothing but a general and fused recollection of the many thousand +earlier occasions on which we have dressed, or gone to bed. Men +invariably put the same leg first into their trousers - this is the +survival of memory in a residuum; but they cannot, till they actually +put on a pair of trousers, remember which leg they <i>do</i> put in +first; this is the rapid fading away of any small individual impression.</p> +<p>The seasons may serve as another illustration; we have a general +recollection of the kind of weather which is seasonable for any month +in a year; what flowers are due about what time, and whether the spring +is on the whole backward or early; but we cannot remember the weather +on any particular day a year ago, unless some unusual incident has impressed +it upon our memory. We can remember, as a general rule, what kind +of season it was, upon the whole, a year ago, or perhaps, even two years; +but more than this, we rarely remember, except in such cases as the +winter of 1854-1855, or the summer of 1868; the rest is all merged.</p> +<p>We observe, then, that as regards small and often repeated impressions, +our tendency is to remember best, and in most detail, what we have been +doing most recently, and what in general has occurred most recently, +but that the earlier impressions though forgotten individually, are +nevertheless, not wholly lost.</p> +<p>2. When we have done anything very often, and have got into +the habit of doing it, we generally take the various steps in the same +order; in many cases this seems to be a <i>sine quâ non</i> for +our repetition of the action at all. Thus, there is probably no +living man who could repeat the words of “God save the Queen” +backwards, without much hesitation and many mistakes; so the musician +and the singer must perform their pieces in the order of the notes as +written, or at any rate as they ordinarily perform them; they cannot +transpose bars or read them backwards, without being put out, nor would +the audience recognise the impressions they have been accustomed to, +unless these impressions are made in the accustomed order.</p> +<p>3. If, when we have once got well into the habit of doing anything +in a certain way, some one shows us some other way of doing it, or some +way which would in part modify our procedure, or if in our endeavours +to improve, we have hit upon some new idea which seems likely to help +us, and thus we vary our course, on the next occasion we remember this +idea by reason of its novelty, but if we try to repeat it, we often +find the residuum of our old memories pulling us so strongly into our +old groove, that we have the greatest difficulty in repeating our performance +in the new manner; there is a clashing of memories, a conflict, which +if the idea is very new, and involves, so to speak, too sudden a cross +- too wide a departure from our ordinary course - will sometimes render +the performance monstrous, or baffle us altogether, the new memory failing +to fuse harmoniously with the old. If the idea is not too widely +different from our older ones, we can cross them with it, but with more +or less difficulty, as a general rule in proportion to the amount of +variation. The whole process of understanding a thing consists +in this, and, so far as I can see at present, in this only.</p> +<p>Sometimes we repeat the new performance for a few times, in a way +which shows that the fusion of memories is still in force; and then +insensibly revert to the old, in which case the memory of the new soon +fades away, leaving a residuum too feeble to contend against that of +our many earlier memories of the same kind. If, however, the new +way is obviously to our advantage, we make an effort to retain it, and +gradually getting into the habit of using it, come to remember it by +force of routine, as we originally remembered it by force of novelty. +Even as regards our own discoveries, we do not always succeed in remembering +our most improved and most striking performances, so as to be able to +repeat them at will immediately: in any such performance we may have +gone some way beyond our ordinary powers, owing to some unconscious +action of the mind. The supreme effort has exhausted us, and we +must rest on our oars a little, before we make further progress; or +we may even fall back a little, before we make another leap in advance.</p> +<p>In this respect, almost every conceivable degree of variation is +observable, according to differences of character and circumstances. +Sometimes the new impression has to be made upon us many times from +without, before the earlier strain of action is eliminated; in this +case, there will long remain a tendency to revert to the earlier habit. +Sometimes, after the impression has been once made, we repeat our old +way two or three times, and then revert to the new, which gradually +ousts the old; sometimes, on the other hand, a single impression, though +involving considerable departure from our routine, makes its mark so +deeply that we adopt the new at once, though not without difficulty, +and repeat it in our next performance, and henceforward in all others; +but those who vary their performance thus readily will show a tendency +to vary subsequent performances according as they receive fresh ideas +from others, or reason them out independently. They are men of +genius.</p> +<p>This holds good concerning all actions which we do habitually, whether +they involve laborious acquirement or not. Thus, if we have varied +our usual dinner in some way that leaves a favourable impression upon +our minds, so that our dinner may, in the language of the horticulturist, +be said to have “sported,” our tendency will be to revert +to this particular dinner either next day, or as soon as circumstances +will allow, but it is possible that several hundred dinners may elapse +before we can do so successfully, or before our memory reverts to this +particular dinner.</p> +<p>4. As regards our habitual actions, however unconsciously we +remember them, we, nevertheless, remember them with far greater intensity +than many individual impressions or actions, it may be of much greater +moment, that have happened to us more recently. Thus, many a man +who has familiarised himself, for example, with the odes of Horace, +so as to have had them at his fingers’ ends as the result of many +repetitions, will be able years hence to repeat a given ode, though +unable to remember any circumstance in connection with his having learnt +it, and no less unable to remember when he repeated it last. A +host of individual circumstances, many of them not unimportant, will +have dropped out of his mind, along with a mass of literature read but +once or twice, and not impressed upon the memory by several repetitions; +but he returns to the well-known ode with so little effort, that he +would not know that he was remembering unless his reason told him so. +The ode seems more like something born with him.</p> +<p>We observe, also, that people who have become imbecile, or whose +memory is much impaired, yet frequently retain their power of recalling +impression which have been long ago repeatedly made upon them.</p> +<p>In such cases, people are sometimes seen to forget what happened +last week, yesterday, or an hour ago, without even the smallest power +of recovering their recollection; but the oft repeated earlier impression +remains, though there may be no memory whatever of how it came to be +impressed so deeply. The phenomena of memory, therefore, are exactly +like those of consciousness and volition, in so far as that the consciousness +of recollection vanishes, when the power of recollection has become +intense. When we are aware that we are recollecting, and are trying, +perhaps hard, to recollect, it is a sign that we do not recollect utterly. +When we remember utterly and intensely, there is no conscious effort +of recollection; our recollection can only be recognised by ourselves +and others, through our performance itself, which testifies to the existence +of a memory, that we could not otherwise follow or detect.</p> +<p>5. When circumstances have led us to change our habits of life +- as when the university has succeeded school, or professional life +the university - we get into many fresh ways, and leave many old ones. +But on revisiting the old scene, unless the lapse of time has been inordinately +great, we experience a desire to revert to old habits. We say +that old associations crowd upon us. Let a Trinity man, after +thirty years absence from Cambridge, pace for five minutes in the cloister +of Neville’s Court, and listen to the echo of his footfall, as +it licks up against the end of the cloister, or let an old Johnian stand +wherever he likes in the third Court of St. John’s, in either +case he will find the thirty years drop out of his life, as if they +were half-an-hour; his life will have rolled back upon itself, to the +date when he was an undergraduate, and his instinct will be to do almost +mechanically, whatever it would have come most natural to him to do, +when he was last there at the same season of the year, and the same +hour of the day; and it is plain this is due to similarity of environment, +for if the place he revisits be much changed, there will be little or +no association.</p> +<p>So those who are accustomed at intervals to cross the Atlantic, get +into certain habits on board ship, different to their usual ones. +It may be that at home they never play whist; on board ship they do +nothing else all the evening. At home they never touch spirits; +on the voyage they regularly take a glass of something before they go +to bed. They do not smoke at home; here they are smoking all day. +Once the voyage is at an end, they return without an effort to their +usual habits, and do not feel any wish for cards, spirits, or tobacco. +They do not remember yesterday, when they did want all these things; +at least, not with such force as to be influenced by it in their desires +and actions; their true memory - the memory which makes them want, and +do, reverts to the last occasion on which they were in circumstances +like their present; they therefore want now what they wanted then, and +nothing more; but when the time comes for them to go on shipboard again, +no sooner do they smell the smell of the ship, than their real memory +reverts to the times when they were last at sea, and striking a balance +of their recollections, they smoke, play cards, and drink whisky and +water.</p> +<p>We observe it then as a matter of the commonest daily occurrence +within our own experience, that memory does fade completely away, and +recur with the recurrence of surroundings like those which made any +particular impression in the first instance. We observe that there +is hardly any limit to the completeness and the length of time during +which our memory may remain in abeyance. A smell may remind an +old man of eighty of some incident of his childhood, forgotten for nearly +as many years as he has lived. In other words, we observe that +when an impression has been repeatedly made in a certain sequence on +any living organism - that impression not having been prejudicial to +the creature itself - the organism will have a tendency, on reassuming +the shape and conditions in which it was when the impression was last +made, to remember the impression, and therefore to do again now what +it did then; all intermediate memories dropping clean out of mind, so +far as they have any effect upon action.</p> +<p>6. Finally, we should note the suddenness and apparent caprice +with which memory will assert itself at odd times; we have been saying +or doing this or that, when suddenly a memory of something which happened +to us, perhaps in infancy, comes into our head; nor can we in the least +connect this recollection with the subject of which we have just been +thinking, though doubtless there has been a connection, too rapid and +subtle for our apprehension.</p> +<p>The foregoing phenomena of memory, so far as we can judge, would +appear to be present themselves throughout the animal and vegetable +kingdoms. This will be readily admitted as regards animals; as +regards plants it may be inferred from the fact that they generally +go on doing what they have been doing most lately, though accustomed +to make certain changes at certain points in their existence. +When the time comes for these changes, they appear to know it, and either +bud forth into leaf or shed their leaves, as the case may be. +If we keep a bulb in a paper bag it seems to remember having been a +bulb before, until the time comes for it to put forth roots and grow. +Then, if we supply it with earth and moisture, it seems to know where +it is, and to go on doing now whatever it did when it was last planted; +but if we keep it in the bag too long, it knows that it ought, according +to its last experience, to be treated differently, and shows plain symptoms +of uneasiness; it is distracted by the bag, which makes it remember +its bulbhood, and also by the want of earth and water, without which +associations its memory of its previous growth cannot be duly kindled. +Its roots, therefore, which are most accustomed to earth and water, +do not grow; but its leaves, which do not require contact with these +things to jog their memory, make a more decided effort at development +- a fact which would seem to go strongly in favour of the functional +independence of the parts of all but the very simplest living organisms, +if, indeed, more evidence were wanted in support of this.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER X - WHAT WE SHOULD EXPECT TO FIND IF DIFFERENTIATIONS OF +STRUCTURE AND INSTINCT ARE MAINLY DUE TO MEMORY</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>To repeat briefly; - we remember best our last few performances of +any given kind, and our present performance is most likely to resemble +one or other of these; we only remember our earlier performances by +way of residuum; nevertheless, at times, some older feature is liable +to reappear.</p> +<p>We take our steps in the same order on each successive occasion, +and are for the most part incapable of changing that order.</p> +<p>The introduction of slightly new elements into our manner is attended +with benefit; the new can be fused with the old, and the monotony of +our action is relieved. But if the new element is too foreign, +we cannot fuse the old and new - nature seeming equally to hate too +wide a deviation from our ordinary practice, and no deviation at all. +Or, in plain English - if any one gives us a new idea which is not too +far ahead of us, such an idea is often of great service to us, and may +give new life to our work - in fact, we soon go back, unless we more +or less frequently come into contact with new ideas, and are capable +of understanding and making use of them; if; on the other hand, they +are too new, and too little led up to, so that we find them too strange +and hard to be able to understand them and adopt them, then they put +us out, with every degree of completeness - from simply causing us to +fail in this or that particular part, to rendering us incapable of even +trying to do our work at all, from pure despair of succeeding.</p> +<p>It requires many repetitions to fix an impression firmly; but when +it is fixed, we cease to have much recollection of the manner in which +it came to be so, or of any single and particular recurrence.</p> +<p>Our memory is mainly called into action by force of association and +similarity in the surroundings. We want to go on doing what we +did when we were last as we are now, and we forget what we did in the +meantime.</p> +<p>These rules, however, are liable to many exceptions; as for example, +that a single and apparently not very extraordinary occurrence may sometimes +produce a lasting impression, and be liable to return with sudden force +at some distant time, and then to go on returning to us at intervals. +Some incidents, in fact, we know not how nor why, dwell with us much +longer than others which were apparently quite as noteworthy or perhaps +more so.</p> +<p>Now I submit that if the above observations are just, and if, also, +the offspring, after having become a new and separate personality, yet +retains so much of the old identity of which it was once indisputably +part, that it remembers what it did when it was part of that identity +as soon as it finds itself in circumstances which are calculated to +refresh its memory owing to their similarity to certain antecedent ones, +then we should expect to find:-</p> +<p>I. That offspring should, as a general rule, resemble its own +most immediate progenitors; that is to say, that it should remember +best what it has been doing most recently. The memory being a +fusion of its recollections of what it did, both when it was its father +and also when it was its mother, the offspring should have a very common +tendency to resemble both parents, the one in some respects, and the +other in others; but it might also hardly less commonly show a more +marked recollection of the one history than of the other, thus more +distinctly resembling one parent than the other. And this is what +we observe to be the case. Not only so far as that the offspring +is almost invariably either male or female, and generally resembles +rather the one parent than the other, but also that in spite of such +preponderance of one set of recollections, the sexual characters and +instincts of the <i>opposite</i> sex appear, whether in male or female, +though undeveloped and incapable of development except by abnormal treatment, +such as has occasionally caused milk to be developed in the mammary +glands of males; or by mutilation, or failure of sexual instinct through +age, upon which, male characteristics frequently appear in the females +of any species.</p> +<p>Brothers and sisters, each giving their own version of the same story, +though in different words, should resemble each other more closely than +more distant relations. This too we see.</p> +<p>But it should frequently happen that offspring should resemble its +penultimate rather than its latest phase, and should thus be more like +a grand-parent than a parent; for we observe that we very often repeat +a performance in a manner resembling that of some earlier, but still +recent, repetition; rather than on the precise lines of our very last +performance. First-cousins may in this case resemble each other +more closely than brothers and sisters.</p> +<p>More especially, we should not expect very successful men to be fathers +of particularly gifted children; for the best men are, as it were, the +happy thoughts and successes of the race - nature’s “flukes,” +so to speak, in her onward progress. No creature can repeat at +will, and immediately, its highest flight. It needs repose. +The generations are the essays of any given race towards the highest +ideal which it is as yet able to see ahead of itself, and this, in the +nature of things, cannot be very far; so that we should expect to see +success followed by more or less failure, and failure by success - a +very successful creature being a <i>great</i> “fluke.” +And this is what we find.</p> +<p>In its earlier stages the embryo should be simply conscious of a +general method of procedure on the part of its forefathers, and should, +by reason of long practice, compress tedious and complicated histories +into a very narrow compass, remembering no single performance in particular. +For we observe this in nature, both as regards the sleight-of-hand which +practice gives to those who are thoroughly familiar with their business, +and also as regards the fusion of remoter memories into a general residuum.</p> +<p>II. We should expect to find that the offspring, whether in +its embryonic condition, or in any stage of development till it has +reached maturity, should adopt nearly the same order in going through +all its various stages. There should be such slight variations +as are inseparable from the repetition of any performance by a living +being (as contrasted with a machine), but no more. And this is +what actually happens. A man may cut his wisdom-teeth a little +later than he gets his beard and whiskers, or a little earlier; but +on the whole, he adheres to his usual order, and is completely set off +his balance, and upset in his performance, if that order be interfered +with suddenly. It is, however, likely that gradual modifications +of order have been made and then adhered to.</p> +<p>After any animal has reached the period at which it ordinarily begins +to continue its race, we should expect that it should show little further +power of development, or, at any rate, that few great changes of structure +or fresh features should appear; for we cannot suppose offspring to +remember anything that happens to the parent subsequently to the parent’s +ceasing to contain the offspring within itself; from the average age, +therefore, of reproduction, offspring would cease to have any further +experience on which to fall back, and would thus continue to make the +best use of what it already knew, till memory failing either in one +part or another, the organism would begin to decay.</p> +<p>To this cause must be referred the phenomena of old age, which interesting +subject I am unable to pursue within the limits of this volume.</p> +<p>Those creatures who are longest in reaching maturity might be expected +also to be the longest lived; I am not certain, however, how far what +is called alternate generation militates against this view, but I do +not think it does so seriously.</p> +<p>Lateness of marriage, provided the constitution of the individuals +marrying is in no respect impaired, should also tend to longevity.</p> +<p>I believe that all the above will be found sufficiently well supported +by facts. If so, when we feel that we are getting old we should +try and give our cells such treatment as they will find it most easy +to understand, through their experience of their own individual life, +which, however, can only guide them inferentially, and to a very small +extent; and throughout life we should remember the important bearing +which memory has upon health, and both occasionally cross the memories +of our component cells with slightly new experiences, and be careful +not to put them either suddenly or for long together into conditions +which they will not be able to understand. Nothing is so likely +to make our cells forget themselves, as neglect of one or other of these +considerations. They will either fail to recognise themselves +completely, in which case we shall die; or they will go on strike, more +or less seriously as the case may be, or perhaps, rather, they will +try and remember their usual course, and fail; they will therefore try +some other, and will probably make a mess of it, as people generally +do when they try to do things which they do not understand, unless indeed +they have very exceptional capacity.</p> +<p>It also follows that when we are ill, our cells being in such or +such a state of mind, and inclined to hold a corresponding opinion with +more or less unreasoning violence, should not be puzzled more than they +are puzzled already, by being contradicted too suddenly; for they will +not be in a frame of mind which can understand the position of an open +opponent: they should therefore either be let alone, if possible, without +notice other than dignified silence, till their spleen is over, and +till they have remembered themselves; or they should be reasoned with +as by one who agrees with them, and who is anxious to see things as +far as possible from their own point of view. And this is how +experience teaches that we must deal with monomaniacs, whom we simply +infuriate by contradiction, but whose delusion we can sometimes persuade +to hang itself if we but give it sufficient rope. All which has +its bearing upon politics, too, at much sacrifice, it may be, of political +principles, but a politician who cannot see principles where principle-mongers +fail to see them, is a dangerous person.</p> +<p>I may say, in passing, that the reason why a small wound heals, and +leaves no scar, while a larger one leaves a mark which is more or less +permanent, may be looked for in the fact that when the wound is only +small, the damaged cells are snubbed, so to speak, by the vast majority +of the unhurt cells in their own neighbourhood. When the wound +is more serious they can stick to it, and bear each other out that they +were hurt.</p> +<p>III. We should expect to find a predominance of sexual over +asexual generation, in the arrangements of nature for continuing her +various species, inasmuch as two heads are better than one, and a <i>locus +pœnitentiæ</i> is thus given to the embryo - an opportunity +of correcting the experience of one parent by that of the other. +And this is what the more intelligent embryos may be supposed to do; +for there would seem little reason to doubt that there are clever embryos +and stupid embryos, with better or worse memories, as the case may be, +of how they dealt with their protoplasm before, and better or worse +able to see how they can do better now; and that embryos differ as widely +in intellectual and moral capacity, and in a general sense of the fitness +of things, and of what will look well into the bargain, as those larger +embryos - to wit, children - do. Indeed it would seem probable +that all our mental powers must go through a quasi-embryological condition, +much as the power of keeping, and wisely spending, money must do so, +and that all the qualities of human thought and character are to be +found in the embryo.</p> +<p>Those who have observed at what an early age differences of intellect +and temper show themselves in the young, for example, of cats and dogs, +will find it difficult to doubt that from the very moment of impregnation, +and onward, there has been a corresponding difference in the embryo +- and that of six unborn puppies, one, we will say, has been throughout +the whole process of development more sensible and better looking - +a nicer embryo, in fact - than the others.</p> +<p>IV. We should expect to find that all species, whether of plants +or animals, are occasionally benefited by a cross; but we should also +expect that a cross should have a tendency to introduce a disturbing +element, if it be too wide, inasmuch as the offspring would be pulled +hither and thither by two conflicting memories or advices, much as though +a number of people speaking at once were without previous warning to +advise an unhappy performer to vary his ordinary performance - one set +of people telling him he has always hitherto done thus, and the other +saying no less loudly that he did it thus; - and he were suddenly to +become convinced that they each spoke the truth. In such a case +he will either completely break down, if the advice be too conflicting, +or if it be less conflicting, he may yet be so exhausted by the one +supreme effort of fusing these experiences that he will never be able +to perform again; or if the conflict of experience be not great enough +to produce such a permanent effect as this, it will yet, if it be at +all serious, probably damage his performances on their next several +occasions, through his inability to fuse the experiences into a harmonious +whole, or, in other words, to understand the ideas which are prescribed +to him; for to fuse is only to understand.</p> +<p>And this is absolutely what we find in fact. Mr. Darwin writes +concerning hybrids and first crosses:- “The male element may reach +the female element, but be incapable of causing an embryo to be developed, +as seems to have been the case with some of Thuret’s experiments +on Fuci. No explanation can be given of these facts any more than +why certain trees cannot be grafted on others.”</p> +<p>I submit that what I have written above supplies a very fair <i>primâ +facie</i> explanation.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin continues:-</p> +<p>“Lastly, an embryo may be developed, and then perish at an +early period. This latter alternative has not been sufficiently +attended to; but I believe, from observations communicated to me by +Mr. Hewitt, who has had great experience in hybridising pheasants and +fowls, that the early death of the embryo is a very frequent cause of +sterility in first crosses. Mr. Salter has recently given the +results of an examination of about five hundred eggs produced from various +crosses between three species of Gallus and their hybrids; the majority +of these eggs had been fertilised; and in the majority of the fertilised +eggs, the embryos had either been partially developed, and had then +perished, or had become nearly mature, but the young chickens had been +unable to break through the shell. Of the chickens which were +born more than four-fifths died within the first few days, or at latest +weeks, ‘without any obvious cause, apparently from mere inability +to live,’ so that from the five hundred eggs only twelve chickens +were reared” (“Origin of Species,” 249, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>No wonder the poor creatures died, distracted as they were by the +internal tumult of conflicting memories. But they must have suffered +greatly; and the Society for the Prevention of Cruelty to Animals may +perhaps think it worth while to keep an eye even on the embryos of hybrids +and first crosses. Five hundred creatures puzzled to death is +not a pleasant subject for contemplation. Ten or a dozen should, +I think, be sufficient for the future.</p> +<p>As regards plants, we read:-</p> +<p>“Hybridised embryos probably often perish in like manner . +. . of which fact Max Wichura has given some striking cases with hybrid +willows . . . It may be here worth noticing, that in some cases of parthenogenesis, +the embryos within the eggs of silk moths, which have not been fertilised, +pass through their early stages of development, and then perish like +the embryos produced by a cross between distinct species” <i>(Ibid).</i></p> +<p>This last fact would at first sight seem to make against me, but +we must consider that the presence of a double memory, provided it be +not too conflicting, would be a part of the experience of the silk moth’s +egg, which might be then as fatally puzzled by the monotony of a single +memory as it would be by two memories which were not sufficiently like +each other. So that failure here must be referred to the utter +absence of that little internal stimulant of slightly conflicting memory +which the creature has always hitherto experienced, and without which +it fails to recognise itself. In either case, then, whether with +hybrids or in cases of parthenogenesis, the early death of the embryo +is due to inability to recollect, owing to a fault in the chain of associated +ideas. All the facts here given are an excellent illustration +of the principle, elsewhere insisted upon by Mr. Darwin, that <i>any</i> +great and sudden change of surroundings has a tendency to induce sterility; +on which head he writes (“Plants and Animals under Domestication,” +vol. ii. p. 143, ed. 1875):-</p> +<p>“It would appear that any change in the habits of life, whatever +their habits may be, if great enough, tends to affect in an inexplicable +manner the powers of reproduction.”</p> +<p>And again on the next page:-</p> +<p>“Finally, we must conclude, limited though the conclusion is, +that changed conditions of life have an especial power of acting injuriously +on the reproductive system. The whole case is quite peculiar, +for these organs, though not diseased, are thus rendered incapable of +performing their proper functions, or perform them imperfectly.”</p> +<p>One is inclined to doubt whether the blame may not rest with the +inability on the part of the creature reproduced to recognise the new +surroundings, and hence with its failing to know itself. And this +seems to be in some measure supported - but not in such a manner as +I can hold to be quite satisfactory - by the continuation of the passage +in the “Origin of Species,” from which I have just been +quoting - for Mr. Darwin goes on to say:-</p> +<p>“Hybrids, however, are differently circumstanced before and +after birth. When born, and living in a country where their parents +live, they are generally placed under suitable conditions of life. +But a hybrid partakes of only half of the nature and condition of its +mother; it may therefore before birth, as long as it is nourished within +its mother’s womb, or within the egg or seed produced by its mother, +be exposed to conditions in some degree unsuitable, and consequently +be liable to perish at an early period . . . ” After which, +however, the conclusion arrived at is, that, “after all, the cause +more probably lies in some imperfection in the original act of impregnation, +causing the embryo to be imperfectly developed rather than in the conditions +to which it is subsequently exposed.” A conclusion which +I am not prepared to accept.</p> +<p>Returning to my second alternative, that is to say, to the case of +hybrids which are born well developed and healthy, but nevertheless +perfectly sterile, it is less obvious why, having succeeded in understanding +the conflicting memories of their parents, they should fail to produce +offspring; but I do not think the reader will feel surprised that this +should be the case. The following anecdote, true or false, may +not be out of place here:-</p> +<p>“Plutarch tells us of a magpie, belonging to a barber at Rome, +which could imitate to a nicety almost every word it heard. Some +trumpets happened one day to be sounded before the shop, and for a day +or two afterwards the magpie was quite mute, and seemed pensive and +melancholy. All who knew it were greatly surprised at its silence; +and it was supposed that the sound of the trumpets had so stunned it +as to deprive it at once of both voice and hearing. It soon appeared, +however, that this was far from being the case; for, says Plutarch, +the bird had been all the time occupied in profound meditation, studying +how to imitate the sound of the trumpets; and when at last master of +it, the magpie, to the astonishment of all its friends, suddenly broke +its long silence by a perfect imitation of the flourish of trumpets +it had heard, observing with the greatest exactness all the repetitions, +stops, and changes. <i>The acquisition of this lesson had, however, +exhausted the whole of the magpie’s stock of intellect, for it +made it forget everything it had learned before</i>” (“Percy +Anecdotes,” Instinct, p. 166).</p> +<p>Or, perhaps, more seriously, the memory of every impregnate ovum +from which every ancestor of a mule, for example, has sprung, has reverted +to a very long period of time during which its forefathers have been +creatures like that which it is itself now going to become: thus, the +impregnate ovum from which the mule’s father was developed remembered +nothing but horse memories; but it felt its faith in these supported +by the recollection of a <i>vast number</i> of previous generations, +in which it was, to all intents and purposes, what it now is. +In like manner, the impregnate ovum from which the mule’s mother +was developed would be backed by the assurance that it had done what +it is going to do now a hundred thousand times already. All would +thus be plain sailing. A horse and a donkey would result. +These two are brought together; an impregnate ovum is produced which +finds an unusual conflict of memory between the two lines of its ancestors, +nevertheless, being accustomed to <i>some</i> conflict, it manages to +get over the difficulty, <i>as on either side it finds itself backed +by a very long series of sufficiently steady memory</i>. A mule +results - a creature so distinctly different from either horse or donkey, +that reproduction is baffled, owing to the creature’s having nothing +but its own knowledge of itself to fall back upon, behind which there +comes an immediate dislocation, or fault of memory, which is sufficient +to bar identity, and hence reproduction, by rendering too severe an +appeal to reason necessary - for no creature can reproduce itself on +the shallow foundation which reason can alone give. Ordinarily, +therefore, the hybrid, or the spermatozoon or ovum, which it may throw +off (as the case may be), finds one single experience too small to give +it the necessary faith, on the strength of which even to try to reproduce +itself. In other cases the hybrid itself has failed to be developed; +in others the hybrid, or first cross, is almost fertile; in others it +is fertile, but produces depraved issue. The result will vary +with the capacities of the creatures crossed, and the amount of conflict +between their several experiences.</p> +<p>The above view would remove all difficulties out of the way of evolution, +in so far as the sterility of hybrids is concerned. For it would +thus appear that this sterility has nothing to do with any supposed +immutable or fixed limits of species, but results simply from the same +principle which prevents old friends, no matter how intimate in youth, +from returning to their old intimacy after a lapse of years, during +which they have been subjected to widely different influences, inasmuch +as they will each have contracted new habits, and have got into new +ways, which they do not like now to alter.</p> +<p>We should expect that our domesticated plants and animals should +vary most, inasmuch as these have been subjected to changed conditions +which would disturb the memory, and, breaking the chain of recollection, +through failure of some one or other of the associated ideas, would +thus directly and most markedly affect the reproductive system. +Every reader of Mr. Darwin will know that this is what actually happens, +and also that when once a plant or animal begins to vary, it will probably +vary a good deal further; which, again, is what we should expect - the +disturbance of the memory introducing a fresh factor of disturbance, +which has to be dealt with by the offspring as it best may. Mr. +Darwin writes: “All our domesticated productions, with the rarest +exceptions, vary far more than natural species” (“Plants +and Animals,” &c., vol ii. p. 241, ed. 1875).</p> +<p>On my third supposition, <i>i.e</i>., when the difference between +parents has not been great enough to baffle reproduction on the part +of the first cross, but when the histories of the father and mother +have been, nevertheless, widely different - as in the case of Europeans +and Indians - we should expect to have a race of offspring who should +seem to be quite clear only about those points, on which their progenitors +on both sides were in accord before the manifold divergencies in their +experiences commenced; that is to say, the offspring should show a tendency +to revert to an early savage condition.</p> +<p>That this indeed occurs may be seen from Mr. Darwin’s “Plants +and Animals under Domestication” (vol ii. p. 21, ed. 1875), where +we find that travellers in all parts of the world have frequently remarked +“<i>on the degraded state and savage condition of crossed races +of man</i>.” A few lines lower down Mr. Darwin tells us +that he was himself “struck with the fact that, in South America, +men of complicated descent between Negroes, Indians, and Spaniards seldom +had, whatever the cause might be, a good expression.” “Livingstone” +(continues Mr. Darwin) “remarks, ‘It is unaccountable why +half-castes are so much more cruel than the Portuguese, but such is +undoubtedly the case.’ An inhabitant remarked to Livingstone, +‘God made white men, and God made black men, but the devil made +half-castes.’” A little further on Mr. Darwin says +that we may “perhaps infer that the degraded state of so many +half-castes <i>is in part due to reversion to a primitive and savage +condition, induced by the act of crossing</i>, even if mainly due to +the unfavourable moral conditions under which they are generally reared.” +Why the crossing should produce this particular tendency would seem +to be intelligible enough, if the fashion and instincts of offspring +are, in any case, nothing but the memories of its past existences; but +it would hardly seem to be so upon any of the theories now generally +accepted; as, indeed, is very readily admitted by Mr. Darwin himself, +who even, as regards purely-bred animals and plants, remarks that “we +are quite unable to assign any proximate cause” for their tendency +to at times reassume long lost characters.</p> +<p>If the reader will follow for himself the remaining phenomena of +reversion, he will, I believe, find them all explicable on the theory +that they are due to memory of past experiences fused, and modified +- at times specifically and definitely - by changed conditions. +There is, however, one apparently very important phenomenon which I +do not at this moment see how to connect with memory, namely, the tendency +on the part of offspring to revert to an earlier impregnation. +Mr. Darwin’s “Provisional Theory of Pangenesis” seemed +to afford a satisfactory explanation of this; but the connection with +memory was not immediately apparent. I think it likely, however, +that this difficulty will vanish on further consideration, so I will +not do more than call attention to it here.</p> +<p>The instincts of certain neuter insects hardly bear upon reversion, +but will be dealt with at some length in Chapter XII.</p> +<p>V. We should expect to find, as was insisted on in the preceding +section in reference to the sterility of hybrids, that it required many, +or at any rate several, generations of changed habits before a sufficiently +deep impression could be made upon the living being (who must be regarded +always as one person in his whole line of ascent or descent) for it +to be unconsciously remembered by him, when making himself anew in any +succeeding generation, and thus to make him modify his method of procedure +during his next embryological development. Nevertheless, we should +expect to find that sometimes a very deep single impression made upon +a living organism, should be remembered by it, even when it is next +in an embryonic condition.</p> +<p>That this is so, we find from Mr. Darwin, who writes (“Plants +and Animals under Domestication,” vol. ii. p. 57, ed. 1875) - +“There is ample evidence that the effect of mutilations and of +accidents, especially, or perhaps exclusively, when followed by disease” +(which would certainly intensify the impression made), “are occasionally +inherited. There can be no doubt that the evil effects of the +long continued exposure of the parent to injurious conditions are sometimes +transmitted to the offspring.” As regards impressions of +a less striking character, it is so universally admitted that they are +not observed to be repeated in what is called the offspring, until they +have been confirmed in what is called the parent, for several generations, +but that after several generations, more or fewer as the case may be, +they often are transmitted - that it seems unnecessary to say more upon +the matter. Perhaps, however, the following passage from Mr. Darwin +may be admitted as conclusive:-</p> +<p>“That they” (acquired actions) “are inherited, +we see with horses in certain transmitted paces, such as cantering and +ambling, which are not natural to them - in the pointing of young pointers, +and the setting of young setters - in the peculiar manner of flight +of certain breeds of the pigeon, &c. We have analogous cases +with mankind in the inheritance of tricks or unusual gestures.” +. . . (“Expression of the Emotions,” p. 29).</p> +<p>In another place Mr. Darwin writes:-</p> +<p>“How again can we explain <i>the inherited effects</i> of the +use or disuse of particular organs? The domesticated duck flies +less and walks more than the wild duck, and its limb bones have become +diminished and increased in a corresponding manner in comparison with +those of the wild duck. A horse is trained to certain paces, and +the colt inherits similar consensual movements. The domesticated +rabbit becomes tame from close confinement; the dog intelligent from +associating with man; the retriever is taught to fetch and carry; and +these mental endowments and bodily powers are all inherited” (“Plants +and Animals,” &c., vol. ii. p. 367, ed. 1875).</p> +<p>“Nothing,” he continues, “in the whole circuit +of physiology is more wonderful. How can the use or disuse of +a particular limb, or of the brain, affect a small aggregate of reproductive +cells, seated in a distant part of the body in such a manner that the +being developed from these cells inherits the character of one or both +parents? Even an imperfect answer to this question would be satisfactory” +(“Plants and Animals,” &c. vol. ii. p. 367, ed. 1875).</p> +<p>With such an imperfect answer will I attempt to satisfy the reader, +as to say that there appears to be that kind of continuity of existence +and sameness of personality, between parents and offspring, which would +lead us to expect that the impressions made upon the parent should be +epitomised in the offspring, when they have been or have become important +enough, through repetition in the history of several so-called existences +to have earned a place in that smaller edition, which is issued from +generation to generation; or, in other words, when they have been made +so deeply, either at one blow or through many, that the offspring can +remember them. In practice we observe this to be the case - so +that the answer lies in the assertion that offspring and parent, being +in one sense but the same individual, there is no great wonder that, +in one sense, the first should remember what had happened to the latter; +and that too, much in the same way as the individual remembers the events +in the earlier history of what he calls his own lifetime, but condensed, +and pruned of detail, and remembered as by one who has had a host of +other matters to attend to in the interim.</p> +<p>It is thus easy to understand why such a rite as circumcision, though +practised during many ages, should have produced little, if any, modification +tending to make circumcision unnecessary. On the view here supported +such modification would be more surprising than not, for unless the +impression made upon the parent was of a grave character - and probably +unless also aggravated by subsequent confusion of memories in the cells +surrounding the part originally impressed - the parent himself would +not be sufficiently impressed to prevent him from reproducing himself, +as he had already done upon an infinite number of past occasions. +The child, therefore, in the womb would do what the father in the womb +had done before him, nor should any trace of memory concerning circumcision +be expected till the eighth day after birth, when, but for the fact +that the impression in this case is forgotten almost as soon as made, +some slight presentiment of coming discomfort might, after a large number +of generations, perhaps be looked for as a general rule. It would +not, however, be surprising, that the effect of circumcision should +be occasionally inherited, and it would appear as though this was sometimes +actually the case.</p> +<p>The question should turn upon whether the disuse of an organ has +arisen:-</p> +<p>1. From an internal desire on the part of the creature disusing +it, to be quit of an organ which it finds troublesome.</p> +<p>2. From changed conditions and habits which render the organ +no longer necessary, or which lead the creature to lay greater stress +on certain other organs or modifications.</p> +<p>3. From the wish of others outside itself; the effect produced +in this case being perhaps neither very good nor very bad for the individual, +and resulting in no grave impression upon the organism as a whole.</p> +<p>4. From a single deep impression on a parent, affecting both +himself as a whole, and gravely confusing the memories of the cells +to be reproduced, or his memories in respect of those cells - according +as one adopts Pangenesis and supposes a memory to “run” +each gemmule, or as one supposes one memory to “run” the +whole impregnate ovum - a compromise between these two views being nevertheless +perhaps possible, inasmuch as the combined memories of all the cells +may possibly <i>be</i> the memory which “runs” the impregnate +ovum, just as we <i>are</i> ourselves the combination of all our cells, +each one of which is both autonomous, and also takes its share in the +central government. But within the limits of this volume it is +absolutely impossible for me to go into this question.</p> +<p>In the first case - under which some instances which belong more +strictly to the fourth would sometimes, but rarely, come - the organ +should soon go, and sooner or later leave no rudiment, though still +perhaps to be found crossing the life of the embryo, and then disappearing.</p> +<p>In the second it should go more slowly, and leave, it may be, a rudimentary +structure.</p> +<p>In the third it should show little or no sign of natural decrease +for a very long time.</p> +<p>In the fourth there may be absolute and total sterility, or sterility +in regard to the particular organ, or a scar which shall show that the +memory of the wound and of each step in the process of healing has been +remembered; or there may be simply such disturbance in the reproduced +organ as shall show a confused recollection of injury. There may +be infinite gradations between the first and last of these possibilities.</p> +<p>I think that the facts, as given by Mr. Darwin (“Plants and +Animals,” &c., vol i. pp. 466-472, ed. 1875), will bear out +the above to the satisfaction of the reader. I can, however, only +quote the following passage:-</p> +<p>“ . . . Brown Séquard has bred during thirty years many +thousand guinea-pigs, . . . nor has he ever seen a guinea-pig born without +toes which was not the offspring of parents <i>which had gnawed off +their own toes</i>, owing to the sciatic nerve having been divided. +Of this fact thirteen instances were carefully recorded, and a greater +number were seen; yet Brown Séquard speaks of such cases as among +the rarer forms of inheritance. It is a still more interesting +fact - ‘that the sciatic nerve in the congenitally toeless animal +has inherited the power of passing through <i>all the different morbid +states</i> which have occurred in one of its parents <i>from the time +of division</i> till after its reunion with the peripheric end. +It is not therefore the power of simply performing an action which is +inherited, but the power of performing a whole series of actions in +a certain order.’”</p> +<p>I feel inclined to say it is not merely the original wound that is +remembered, but the whole process of cure which is now accordingly repeated. +Brown Séquard concludes, as Mr. Darwin tells us, “that +what is transmitted is the morbid state of the nervous system,” +due to the operation performed on the parents.</p> +<p>A little lower down Mr. Darwin writes that Professor Rolleston has +given him two cases - “namely, of two men, one of whom had his +knee, and the other his cheek, severely cut, and both had children born +with exactly the same spot marked or scarred.”</p> +<p>VI. When, however, an impression has once reached transmission +point - whether it be of the nature of a sudden striking thought, which +makes its mark deeply then and there, or whether it be the result of +smaller impressions repeated until the nail, so to speak, has been driven +home - we should expect that it should be remembered by the offspring +as something which he has done all his life, and which he has therefore +no longer any occasion to learn; he will act, therefore, as people say, +<i>instinctively</i>. No matter how complex and difficult the +process, if the parents have done it sufficiently often (that is to +say, for a sufficient number of generations), the offspring will remember +the fact when association wakens the memory; it will need no instruction, +and - unless when it has been taught to look for it during many generations +- will expect none. This may be seen in the case of the humming-bird +sphinx moth, which, as Mr. Darwin writes, “shortly after its emergence +from the cocoon, as shown by the bloom on its unruffled scales, may +be seen poised stationary in the air with its long hair-like proboscis +uncurled, and inserted into the minute orifices of flowers; <i>and no +one I believe has ever seen</i> this moth learning to perform its difficult +task, which requires such unerring aim” (“Expression of +the Emotions,” p. 30).</p> +<p>And, indeed, when we consider that after a time the most complex +and difficult actions come to be performed by man without the least +effort or consciousness - that offspring cannot be considered as anything +but a continuation of the parent life, whose past habits and experiences +it epitomises when they have been sufficiently often repeated to produce +a lasting impression - that consciousness of memory vanishes on the +memory’s becoming intense, as completely as the consciousness +of complex and difficult movements vanishes as soon as they have been +sufficiently practised - and finally, that the real presence of memory +is testified rather by performance of the repeated action on recurrence +of like surroundings, than by consciousness of recollecting on the part +of the individual - so that not only should there be no reasonable bar +to our attributing the whole range of the more complex instinctive actions, +from first to last, to memory pure and simple, no matter how marvellous +they may be, but rather that there is so much to compel us to do so, +that we find it difficult to conceive how any other view can have been +ever taken - when, I say, we consider all these facts, we should rather +feel surprise that the hawk and sparrow still teach their offspring +to fly, than that the humming-bird sphinx moth should need no teacher.</p> +<p>The phenomena, then, which we observe are exactly those which we +should expect to find.</p> +<p>VII. We should also expect that the memory of animals, as regards +their earlier existences, was solely stimulated by association. +For we find, from Prof. Bain, that “actions, sensations, and states +of feeling occurring together, or in close succession, tend to grow +together or cohere in such a way that when any one of them is afterwards +presented to the mind, the others are apt to be brought up in idea” +(“The Senses and the Intellect,” 2d ed. 1864, p. 332). +And Prof. Huxley says (“Elementary Lessons in Physiology,” +5th ed. 1872, p. 306), “It may be laid down as a rule that if +any two mental states be called up together, or in succession, with +due frequency and vividness, the subsequent production of the one of +them will suffice to call up the other, <i>and that whether we desire +it or not</i>.” I would go one step further, and would say +not only whether we desire it or not, but <i>whether we are aware that +the idea has ever before been called up in our minds or not</i>. +I should say that I have quoted both the above passages from Mr. Darwin’s +“Expression of the Emotions” (p. 30, ed. 1872).</p> +<p>We should, therefore, expect that when the offspring found itself +in the presence of objects which had called up such and such ideas for +a sufficient number of generations, that is to say, “with due +frequency and vividness” - it being of the same age as its parents +were, and generally in like case as when the ideas were called up in +the minds of the parents - the same ideas should also be called up in +the minds of the offspring “<i>whether they desire it or not</i>;” +and, I would say also, “whether they recognise the ideas as having +ever before been present to them or not.”</p> +<p>I think we might also expect that no other force, save that of association, +should have power to kindle, so to speak, into the flame of action the +atomic spark of memory, which we can alone suppose to be transmitted +from one generation to another.</p> +<p>That both plants and animals do as we should expect of them in this +respect is plain, not only from the performance of the most intricate +and difficult actions - difficult both physically and intellectually +- at an age, and under circumstances which preclude all possibility +of what we call instruction, but from the fact that deviations from +the parental instinct, or rather the recurrence of a memory, unless +in connection with the accustomed train of associations, is of comparatively +rare occurrence; the result, commonly, of some one of the many memories +about which we know no more than we do of the memory which enables a +cat to find her way home after a hundred-mile journey by train, and +shut up in a hamper, or, perhaps even more commonly, of abnormal treatment.</p> +<p>VIII. If, then, memory depends on association, we should expect +two corresponding phenomena in the case of plants and animals - namely, +that they should show a tendency to resume feral habits on being turned +wild after several generations of domestication, and also that peculiarities +should tend to show themselves at a corresponding age in the offspring +and in the parents. As regards the tendency to resume feral habits, +Mr. Darwin, though apparently of opinion that the tendency to do this +has been much exaggerated, yet does not doubt that such a tendency exists, +as shown by well authenticated instances. He writes: “It +has been repeatedly asserted in the most positive manner by various +authors that feral animals and plants invariably return to their primitive +specific type.”</p> +<p>This shows, at any rate, that there is a considerable opinion to +this effect among observers generally.</p> +<p>He continues: “It is curious on what little evidence this belief +rests. Many of our domesticated animals could not subsist in a +wild state,” - so that there is no knowing whether they would +or would not revert. “In several cases we do not know the +aboriginal parent species, and cannot tell whether or not there has +been any close degree of reversion.” So that here, too, +there is at any rate no evidence <i>against</i> the tendency; the conclusion, +however, is that, notwithstanding the deficiency of positive evidence +to warrant the general belief as to the force of the tendency, yet “the +simple fact of animals and plants becoming feral does cause some tendency +to revert to the primitive state,” and he tells us that “when +variously-coloured tame rabbits are turned out in Europe, they generally +re-acquire the colouring of the wild animal;” there can be no +doubt,” he says, “that this really does occur,” though +he seems inclined to account for it by the fact that oddly-coloured +and conspicuous animals would suffer much from beasts of prey and from +being easily shot. “The best known case of reversion:” +he continues, “and that on which the widely-spread belief in its +universality apparently rests, is that of pigs. These animals +have run wild in the West Indies, South America, and the Falkland Islands, +and have everywhere re-acquired the dark colour, the thick bristles, +and great tusks of the wild boar; and the young have re-acquired longitudinal +stripes.” And on page 22 of “Plants and Animals under +Domestication” (vol. ii. ed. 1875) we find that “the re-appearance +of coloured, longitudinal stripes on young feral pigs cannot be attributed +to the direct action of external conditions. In this case, and +in many others, we can only say that any change in the habits of life +apparently favours a tendency, inherent or latent, in the species to +return to the primitive state.” On which one cannot but +remark that though any change may favour such tendency, yet the return +to original habits and surroundings appears to do so in a way so marked +as not to be readily referable to any other cause than that of association +and memory - the creature, in fact, having got into its old groove, +remembers it, and takes to all its old ways.</p> +<p>As regards the tendency to inherit changes (whether embryonic, or +during post-natal development as ordinarily observed in any species), +or peculiarities of habit or form which do not partake of the nature +of disease, it must be sufficient to refer the reader to Mr. Darwin’s +remarks upon this subject (“Plants and Animals Under Domestication,” +vol. ii. pp. 51-57, ed. 1875). The existence of the tendency is +not likely to be denied. The instances given by Mr. Darwin are +strictly to the point as regards all ordinary developmental and metamorphic +changes, and even as regards transmitted acquired actions, and tricks +acquired before the time when the offspring has issued from the body +of the parent, or on an average of many generations does so; but it +cannot for a moment be supposed that the offspring knows by inheritance +anything about what happens to the parent subsequently to the offspring’s +being born. Hence the appearance of diseases in the offspring, +at comparatively late periods in life, but at the same age as, or earlier, +than in the parents, must be regarded as due to the fact that in each +case the machine having been made after the same pattern (which <i>is</i> +due to memory), is liable to have the same weak points, and to break +down after a similar amount of wear and tear; but after less wear and +tear in the case of the offspring than in that of the parent, because +a diseased organism is commonly a deteriorating organism, and if repeated +at all closely, and without repentance and amendment of life, will be +repeated for the worse. If we do not improve, we grow worse. +This, at least, is what we observe daily.</p> +<p>Nor again can we believe, as some have fancifully imagined, that +the remembrance of any occurrence of which the effect has been entirely, +or almost entirely mental, should be remembered by offspring with any +definiteness. The intellect of the offspring might be affected, +for better or worse, by the general nature of the intellectual employment +of the parent; or a great shock to a parent might destroy or weaken +the intellect of the offspring; but unless a deep impression were made +upon the cells of the body, and deepened by subsequent disease, we could +not expect it to be remembered with any definiteness, or precision. +We may talk as we will about mental pain, and mental scars, but after +all, the impressions they leave are incomparably less durable than those +made by an organic lesion. It is probable, therefore, that the +feeling which so many have described, as though they remembered this +or that in some past existence, is purely imaginary, and due rather +to unconscious recognition of the fact that we certainly have lived +before, than to any actual occurrence corresponding to the supposed +recollection.</p> +<p>And lastly, we should look to find in the action of memory, as between +one generation and another, a reflection of the many anomalies and exceptions +to ordinary rules which we observe in memory, so far as we can watch +its action in what we call our own single lives, and the single lives +of others. We should expect that reversion should be frequently +capricious - that is to say, give us more trouble to account for than +we are either able or willing to take. And assuredly we find it +so in fact. Mr. Darwin - from whom it is impossible to quote too +much or too fully, inasmuch as no one else can furnish such a store +of facts, so well arranged, and so above all suspicion of either carelessness +or want of candour - so that, however we may differ from him, it is +he himself who shows us how to do so, and whose pupils we all are - +Mr. Darwin writes: “In every living being we may rest assured +that a host of long-lost characters lie ready to be evolved under proper +conditions” (does not one almost long to substitute the word “memories” +for the word “characters?”) “How can we make +intelligible, and connect with other facts, this wonderful and common +capacity of reversion - this power of calling back to life long-lost +characters?” (“Plants and Animals,” &c., +vol. ii. p. 369, ed. 1875). Surely the answer may be hazarded, +that we shall be able to do so when we can make intelligible the power +of calling back to life long-lost memories. But I grant that this +answer holds out no immediate prospect of a clear understanding.</p> +<p>One word more. Abundant facts are to be found which point inevitably, +as will appear more plainly in the following chapter, in the direction +of thinking that offspring inherits the memories of its parents; but +I know of no single fact which suggests that parents are in the smallest +degree affected (other than sympathetically) by the memories of their +offspring <i>after that offspring has been born</i>. Whether the +unborn offspring affects the memory of the mother in some particulars, +and whether we have here the explanation of occasional reversion to +a previous impregnation, is a matter on which I should hardly like to +express an opinion now. Nor, again, can I find a single fact which +seems to indicate any memory of the parental life on the part of offspring +later than the average date of the offspring’s quitting the body +of the parent.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER XI - INSTINCT AS INHERITED MEMORY</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>I have already alluded to M. Ribot’s work on “Heredity,” +from which I will now take the following passages.</p> +<p>M. Ribot writes:-</p> +<p>“Instinct is innate, <i>i.e., anterior to all individual experience</i>.” +This I deny on grounds already abundantly apparent; but let it pass. +“Whereas intelligence is developed slowly by accumulated experience, +instinct is perfect from the first” (“Heredity,” p. +14).</p> +<p>Obviously the memory of a habit or experience will not commonly be +transmitted to offspring in that perfection which is called “instinct,” +till the habit or experience has been repeated in several generations +with more or less uniformity; for otherwise the impression made will +not be strong enough to endure through the busy and difficult task of +reproduction. This of course involves that the habit shall have +attained, as it were equilibrium with the creature’s sense of +its own needs, so that it shall have long seemed the best course possible, +leaving upon the whole and under ordinary circumstances little further +to be desired, and hence that it should have been little varied during +many generations. We should expect that it would be transmitted +in a more or less partial, varying, imperfect, and intelligent condition +before equilibrium had been attained; it would, however, continually +tend towards equilibrium, for reasons which will appear more fully later +on.</p> +<p>When this stage has been reached, as regards any habit, the creature +will cease trying to improve; on which the repetition of the habit will +become stable, and hence become capable of more unerring transmission +- but at the same time improvement will cease; the habit will become +fixed, and be perhaps transmitted at an earlier and earlier age, till +it has reached that date of manifestation which shall be found most +agreeable to the other habits of the creature. It will also be +manifested, as a matter of course, without further consciousness or +reflection, for people cannot be always opening up settled questions; +if they thought a matter over yesterday they cannot think it all over +again to-day, but will adopt for better or worse the conclusion then +reached; and this, too, even in spite sometimes of considerable misgiving, +that if they were to think still further they could find a still better +course. It is not, therefore, to be expected that “instinct” +should show signs of that hesitating and tentative action which results +from knowledge that is still so imperfect as to be actively self-conscious; +nor yet that it should grow or vary, unless under such changed conditions +as shall baffle memory, and present the alternative of either invention +- that is to say, variation - or death. But every instinct must +have poised through the laboriously intelligent stages through which +human civilisations <i>and mechanical inventions</i> are now passing; +and he who would study the origin of an instinct with its development, +partial transmission, further growth, further transmission, approach +to more unreflecting stability, and finally, its perfection as an unerring +and unerringly transmitted instinct, must look to laws, customs, <i>and +machinery</i> as his best instructors. Customs and machines are +instincts <i>and organs</i> now in process of development; they will +assuredly one day reach the unconscious state of equilibrium which we +observe in the structures and instincts of bees and ants, and an approach +to which may be found among some savage nations. We may reflect, +however, not without pleasure, that this condition - the true millennium +- is still distant. Nevertheless the ants and bees seem happy; +perhaps more happy than when so many social questions were in as hot +discussion among them, as other, and not dissimilar ones, will one day +be amongst ourselves.</p> +<p>And this, as will be apparent, opens up the whole question of the +stability of species, which we cannot follow further here, than to say, +that according to the balance of testimony, many plants and animals +do appear to have reached a phase of being from which they are hard +to move - that is to say, they will die sooner than be at the pains +of altering their habits - true martyrs to their convictions. +Such races refuse to see changes in their surroundings as long as they +can, but when compelled to recognise them, they throw up the game because +they cannot and will not, or will not and cannot, invent. And +this is perfectly intelligible, for a race is nothing but a long-lived +individual, and like any individual, or tribe of men whom we have yet +observed, will have its special capacities and its special limitations, +though, as in the case of the individual, so also with the race, it +is exceedingly hard to say what those limitations are, and why, having +been able to go so far, it should go no further. Every man and +every race is capable of education up to a certain point, but not to +the extent of being made from a sow’s ear into a silk purse. +The proximate cause of the limitation seems to lie in the absence of +the wish to go further; the presence or absence of the wish will depend +upon the nature and surroundings of the individual, which is simply +a way of saying that one can get no further, but that as the song (with +a slight alteration) says:-</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>“Some breeds do, and some breeds don’t,<br />Some breeds +will, but this breed won’t,<br />I tried very often to see if +it would,<br />But it said it really couldn’t, and I don’t +think it could.”</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>It may perhaps be maintained, that with time and patience, one might +train a rather stupid plough-boy to understand the differential calculus. +This might be done with the help of an inward desire on the part of +the boy to learn, but never otherwise. If the boy wants to learn +or to improve generally, he will do so in spite of every hindrance, +till in time he becomes a very different being from what he was originally. +If he does not want to learn, he will not do so for any wish of another +person. If he feels that he has the power he will wish; or if +he wishes, he will begin to think he has the power, and try to fulfil +his wishes; one cannot say which comes first, for the power and the +desire go always hand in hand, or nearly so, and the whole business +is nothing but a most vicious circle from first to last. But it +is plain that there is more to be said on behalf of such circles than +we have been in the habit of thinking. Do what we will, we must +each one of us argue in a circle of our own, from which, so long as +we live at all, we can by no possibility escape. I am not sure +whether the frank acceptation and recognition of this fact is not the +best corrective for dogmatism that we are likely to find.</p> +<p>We can understand that a pigeon might in the course of ages grow +to be a peacock if there was a persistent desire on the part of the +pigeon through all these ages to do so. We know very well that +this has not probably occurred in nature, inasmuch as no pigeon is at +all likely to wish to be very different from what it is now. The +idea of being anything very different from what it now is, would be +too wide a cross with the pigeon’s other ideas for it to entertain +it seriously. If the pigeon had never seen a peacock, it would +not be able to conceive the idea, so as to be able to make towards it; +if, on the other hand, it had seen one, it would not probably either +want to become one, or think that it would be any use wanting seriously, +even though it were to feel a passing fancy to be so gorgeously arrayed; +it would therefore lack that faith without which no action, and with +which, every action, is possible.</p> +<p>That creatures have conceived the idea of making themselves like +other creatures or objects which it was to their advantage or pleasure +to resemble, will be believed by any one who turns to Mr. Mivart’s +“Genesis of Species,” where he will find (chapter ii.) an +account of some very showy South American butterflies, which give out +such a strong odour that nothing will eat them, and which are hence +mimicked both in appearance and flight by a very different kind of butterfly; +and, again, we see that certain birds, without any particular desire +of gain, no sooner hear any sound than they begin to mimick it, merely +for the pleasure of mimicking; so we all enjoy to mimick, or to hear +good mimicry, so also monkeys imitate the actions which they observe, +from pure force of sympathy. To mimick, or to wish to mimick, +is doubtless often one of the first steps towards varying in any given +direction. Not less, in all probability, than a full twenty per +cent. of all the courage and good nature now existing in the world, +derives its origin, at no very distant date, from a desire to appear +courageous and good-natured. And this suggests a work whose title +should be “On the Fine Arts as bearing on the Reproductive System,” +of which the title must suffice here.</p> +<p>Against faith, then, and desire, all the “natural selection” +in the world will not stop an amœba from becoming an elephant, +if a reasonable time be granted; without the faith and the desire, neither +“natural selection” nor artificial breeding will be able +to do much in the way of modifying any structure. When we have +once thoroughly grasped the conception that we are all one creature, +and that each one of us is many millions of years old, so that all the +pigeons in the one line of an infinite number of generations are still +one pigeon only - then we can understand that a bird, as different from +a peacock as a pigeon is now, could yet have wandered on and on, first +this way and then that, doing what it liked, and thought that it could +do, till it found itself at length a peacock; but we cannot believe +either that a bird like a pigeon should be able to apprehend any ideal +so different from itself as a peacock, and make towards it, or that +man, having wished to breed a bird anything like a peacock from a bird +anything like a pigeon, would be able to succeed in accumulating accidental +peacock-like variations till he had made the bird he was in search of, +no matter in what number of generations; much less can we believe that +the accumulation of small fortuitous variations by “natural selection” +could succeed better. We can no more believe the above, than we +can believe that a wish outside a plough-boy could turn him into a senior +wrangler. The boy would prove to be too many for his teacher, +and so would the pigeon for its breeder.</p> +<p>I do not forget that artificial breeding has modified the original +type of the horse and the dog, till it has at length produced the dray-horse +and the greyhound; but in each case man has had to get use and disuse +- that is to say, the desires of the animal itself - to help him.</p> +<p>We are led, then, to the conclusion that all races have what for +practical purposes may be considered as their limits, though there is +no saying what those limits are, nor indeed why, in theory, there should +be any limits at all, but only that there are limits in practice. +Races which vary considerably must be considered as clever, but it may +be speculative, people who commonly have a genius in some special direction, +as perhaps for mimicry, perhaps for beauty, perhaps for music, perhaps +for the higher mathematics, but seldom in more than one or two directions; +while “inflexible organisations,” like that of the goose, +may be considered as belonging to people with one idea, and the greater +tendency of plants and animals to vary under domestication may be reasonably +compared with the effects of culture and education: that is to say, +may be referred to increased range and variety of experience or perceptions, +which will either cause sterility, if they be too unfamiliar, so as +to be incapable of fusion with preceding ideas, and hence to bring memory +to a sudden fault, or will open the door for all manner of further variation +- the new ideas having suggested new trains of thought, which a clever +example of a clever race will be only too eager to pursue.</p> +<p>Let us now return to M. Ribot. He writes (p. 14):- “The +duckling hatched by the hen makes straight for water.” In +what conceivable way can we account for this, except on the supposition +that the duckling knows perfectly well what it can, and what it cannot +do with water, owing to its recollection of what it did when it was +still one individuality with its parents, and hence, when it was a duckling +before?</p> +<p>“The squirrel, before it knows anything of winter, lays up +a store of nuts. A bird when hatched in a cage will, when given +its freedom, build for itself a nest like that of its parents, out of +the same materials, and of the same shape.”</p> +<p>If this is not due to memory, even an imperfect explanation of what +else it can be due to, “would be satisfactory.”</p> +<p>“Intelligence gropes about, tries this way and that, misses +its object, commits mistakes, and corrects them.”</p> +<p>Yes. Because intelligence is of consciousness, and consciousness +is of attention, and attention is of uncertainty, and uncertainty is +of ignorance or want of consciousness. Intelligence is not yet +thoroughly up to its business.</p> +<p>“Instinct advances with a mechanical certainty.”</p> +<p>Why mechanical? Should not “with apparent certainty” +suffice?</p> +<p>“Hence comes its unconscious character.”</p> +<p>But for the word “mechanical” this is true, and is what +we have been all along insisting on.</p> +<p>“It knows nothing either of ends, or of the means of attaining +them; it implies no comparison, judgment, or choice.”</p> +<p>This is assumption. What is certain is that instinct does not +betray signs of self-consciousness as to its own knowledge. It +has dismissed reference to first principles, and is no longer under +the law, but under the grace of a settled conviction.</p> +<p>“All seems directed by thought.”</p> +<p>Yes; because all <i>has been</i> in earlier existences directed by +thought.</p> +<p>“Without ever arriving at thought.”</p> +<p>Because it has <i>got past thought</i>, and though “directed +by thought” originally, is now travelling in exactly the opposite +direction. It is not likely to reach thought again, till people +get to know worse and worse how to do things, the oftener they practise +them.</p> +<p>“And if this phenomenon appear strange, it must be observed +that analogous states occur in ourselves. <i>All that we do from +habit - walking, writing, or practising a mechanical act, for instance +- all these and many other very complex acts are performed without consciousness.</i></p> +<p>“Instinct appears stationary. It does not, like intelligence, +seem to grow and decay, to gain and to lose. It does not improve.”</p> +<p>Naturally. For improvement can only as a general rule be looked +for along the line of latest development, that is to say, in matters +concerning which the creature is being still consciously exercised. +Older questions are settled, and the solution must be accepted as final, +for the question of living at all would be reduced to an absurdity, +if everything decided upon one day was to be undecided again the next; +as with painting or music, so with life and politics, let every man +be fully persuaded in his own mind, for decision with wrong will be +commonly a better policy than indecision - I had almost added with right; +and a firm purpose with risk will be better than an infirm one with +temporary exemption from disaster. Every race has made its great +blunders, to which it has nevertheless adhered, inasmuch as the corresponding +modification of other structures and instincts was found preferable +to the revolution which would be caused by a radical change of structure, +with consequent havoc among a legion of vested interests. Rudimentary +organs are, as has been often said, the survivals of these interests +- the signs of their peaceful and gradual extinction as living faiths; +they are also instances of the difficulty of breaking through any cant +or trick which we have long practised, and which is not sufficiently +troublesome to make it a serious object with us to cure ourselves of +the habit.</p> +<p>“If it does not remain perfectly invariable, at least it only +varies within very narrow limits; and though this question has been +warmly debated in our day, and is yet unsettled, we may yet say that +in instinct immutability is the law, variation the exception.”</p> +<p>This is quite as it should be. Genius will occasionally rise +a little above convention, but with an old convention immutability will +be the rule.</p> +<p>“Such,” continues M. Ribot, “are the admitted characters +of instinct.”</p> +<p>Yes; but are they not also the admitted characters of actions that +are due to memory?</p> +<p>At the bottom of p. 15, M. Ribot quotes the following from Mr. Darwin:-</p> +<p>“We have reason to believe that aboriginal habits are long +retained under domestication. Thus with the common ass, we see +signs of its original desert-life in its strong dislike to cross the +smallest stream of water, and in its pleasure in rolling in the dust. +The same strong dislike to cross a stream is common to the camel which +has been domesticated from a very early period. Young pigs, though +so tame, sometimes squat when frightened, and then try to conceal themselves, +even in an open and bare place. Young turkeys, and occasionally +even young fowls, when the hen gives the danger-cry, run away and try +to hide themselves, like young partridges or pheasants, in order that +their mother may take flight, of which she has lost the power. +The musk duck in its native country often perches and roosts on trees, +and our domesticated musk ducks, though sluggish birds, are fond of +perching on the tops of barns, walls, &c. . . . We know that +the dog, however well and regularly fed, often buries like the fox any +superfluous food; we see him turning round and round on a carpet as +if to trample down grass to form a bed. . . . In the delight with which +lambs and kids crowd together and frisk upon the smallest hillock we +see a vestige of their former alpine habits.”</p> +<p>What does this delightful passage go to show, if not that the young +in all these cases must still have a latent memory of their past existences, +which is called into an active condition as soon as the associated ideas +present themselves?</p> +<p>Returning to M. Ribot’s own observations, we find he tells +us that it usually requires three or four generations to fix the results +of training, and to prevent a return to the instincts of the wild state. +I think, however, it would not be presumptuous to suppose that if an +animal after only three or four generations of training be restored +to its original conditions of life, it will forget its intermediate +training and return to its old ways, almost as readily as a London street +Arab would forget the beneficial effects of a weeks training in a reformatory +school, if he were then turned loose again on the streets. So +if we hatch wild ducks’ eggs under a tame duck, the ducklings +“will have scarce left the egg-shell when they obey the instincts +of their race and take their flight.” So the colts from +wild horses, and mongrel young between wild and domesticated horses, +betray traces of their earlier memories.</p> +<p>On this M. Ribot says: “Originally man had considerable trouble +in taming the animals which are now domesticated; and his work would +have been in vain had not heredity” (memory) “come to his +aid. It may be said that after man has modified a wild animal +to his will, there goes on in its progeny a silent conflict between +two heredities” (memories), “the one tending to fix the +acquired modifications and the other to preserve the primitive instincts. +The latter often get the mastery, and only after several generations +is training sure of victory. But we may see that in either case +heredity” (memory) “always asserts its rights.”</p> +<p>How marvellously is the above passage elucidated and made to fit +in with the results of our recognised experience, by the simple substitution +of the word “memory” for “heredity.”</p> +<p>“Among the higher animals” - to continue quoting - “which +are possessed not only of instinct, but also of intelligence, nothing +is more common than to see mental dispositions, which have evidently +been acquired, so fixed by heredity, that they are confounded with instinct, +so spontaneous and automatic do they become. Young pointers have +been known to point the first time they were taken out, sometimes even +better than dogs that had been for a long time in training. The +habit of saving life is hereditary in breeds that have been brought +up to it, as is also the shepherd dog’s habit of moving around +the flock and guarding it.”</p> +<p>As soon as we have grasped the notion, that instinct is only the +epitome of past experience, revised, corrected, made perfect, and learnt +by rote, we no longer find any desire to separate “instinct” +from “mental dispositions, which have evidently been acquired +and fixed by heredity,” for the simple reason that they are one +and the same thing.</p> +<p>A few more examples are all that my limits will allow - they abound +on every side, and the difficulty lies only in selecting - M. Ribot +being to hand, I will venture to lay him under still further contributions.</p> +<p>On page 19 we find:- “Knight has shown experimentally the truth +of the proverb, ‘a good hound is bred so,’ he took every +care that when the pups were first taken into the field, they should +receive no guidance from older dogs; yet the very first day, one of +the pups stood trembling with anxiety, having his eyes fixed and all +his muscles strained <i>at the partridges which their parents had been +trained to point</i>. A spaniel belonging to a breed which had +been trained to woodcock-shooting, knew perfectly well from the first +how to act like an old dog, avoiding places where the ground was frozen, +and where it was, therefore, useless to seek the game, as there was +no scent. Finally, a young polecat terrier was thrown into a state +of great excitement the first time he ever saw one of these animals, +while a spaniel remained perfectly calm.</p> +<p>“In South America, according to Roulin, dogs belonging to a +breed that has long been trained to the dangerous chase of the peccary, +when taken for the first time into the woods, know the tactics to adopt +quite as well as the old dogs, and that without any instruction. +Dogs of other races, and unacquainted with the tactics, are killed at +once, no matter how strong they may be. The American greyhound, +instead of leaping at the stag, attacks him by the belly, and throws +him over, as his ancestors had been trained to do in hunting the Indians.</p> +<p>“Thus, then, heredity transmits modification no less than natural +instincts.”</p> +<p>Should not this rather be - “thus, then, we see that not only +older and remoter habits, but habits which have been practised for a +comparatively small number of generations, may be so deeply impressed +on the individual that they may dwell in his memory, surviving the so-called +change of personality which he undergoes in each successive generation”?</p> +<p>“There is, however, an important difference to be noted: the +heredity of instincts admits of no exceptions, while in that of modifications +there are many.”</p> +<p>It may be well doubted how far the heredity of instincts admits of +no exceptions; on the contrary, it would seem probable that in many +races geniuses have from time to time arisen who remembered not only +their past experiences, as far as action and habit went, but have been +able to rise in some degree above habit where they felt that improvement +was possible, and who carried such improvement into further practice, +by slightly modifying their structure in the desired direction on the +next occasion that they had a chance of dealing with protoplasm at all. +It is by these rare instances of intellectual genius (and I would add +of moral genius, if many of the instincts and structures of plants and +animals did not show that they had got into a region as far above morals +- other than enlightened self-interest - as they are above articulate +consciousness of their own aims in many other respects) - it is by these +instances of either rare good luck or rare genius that many species +have been, in all probability, originated or modified. Nevertheless +inappreciable modification of instinct is, and ought to be, the rule.</p> +<p>As to M. Ribot’s assertion, that to the heredity of modifications +there are many exceptions, I readily agree with it, and can only say +that it is exactly what I should expect; the lesson long since learnt +by rote, and repeated in an infinite number of generations, would be +repeated unintelligently, and with little or no difference, save from +a rare accidental slip, the effect of which would be the culling out +of the bungler who was guilty of it, or from the still rarer appearance +of an individual of real genius; while the newer lesson would be repeated +both with more hesitation and uncertainty, and with more intelligence; +and this is well conveyed in M. Ribot’s next sentence, for he +says - “It is only when variations have been firmly rooted; when +having become organic, they constitute a second nature, which supplants +the first; when, like instinct, they have assumed a mechanical character, +that they can be transmitted.”</p> +<p>How nearly M. Ribot comes to the opinion which I myself venture to +propound will appear from the following further quotation. After +dealing with somnambulism, and saying, that if somnambulism were permanent +and innate, it would be impossible to distinguish it from instinct, +he continues:-</p> +<p>“Hence it is less difficult than is generally supposed, to +conceive how intelligence may become instinct; we might even say that, +leaving out of consideration the character of innateness, to which we +will return, we have seen the metamorphosis take place. <i>There +can then be no ground for making instinct a faculty apart, sui generis</i>, +a phenomenon so mysterious, so strange, that usually no other explanation +of it is offered but that of attributing it to the direct act of the +Deity. This whole mistake is the result of a defective psychology +which makes no account of the unconscious activity of the soul.”</p> +<p>We are tempted to add - “and which also makes no account of +the <i>bonâ</i> <i>fide</i> character of the continued personality +of successive generations.”</p> +<p>“But we are so accustomed,” he continues, “to contrast +the characters of instinct with those of intelligence - to say that +instinct is innate, invariable, automatic, while intelligence is something +acquired, variable, spontaneous - that it looks at first paradoxical +to assert that instinct and intelligence are identical.</p> +<p>“It is said that instinct is innate. But if, on the one +hand, we bear in mind that many instincts are acquired, and that, according +to a theory hereafter to be explained” (which theory, I frankly +confess, I never was able to get hold of), <i>“all instincts are +only hereditary habits</i>” (italics mine); “if, on the +other hand, we observe that intelligence is in some sense held to be +innate by all modern schools of philosophy, which agree to reject the +theory of the <i>tabula rasa</i>” (if there is no <i>tabula rasa</i>, +there is continued psychological personality, or words have lost their +meaning), “and to accept either latent ideas, or <i>à priori</i> +forms of thought” (surely only a periphrasis for continued personality +and memory) “or pre-ordination of the nervous system and of the +organism; <i>it will be seen that this character of innateness does +not</i> <i>constitute an absolute distinction between instinct and intelligence</i>.</p> +<p>“It is true that intelligence is variable, but so also is instinct, +as we have seen. In winter, the Rhine beaver plasters his wall +to windward; once he was a builder, now a burrower; once he lived in +society, now he is solitary. Intelligence itself can scarcely +be more variable . . . instinct may be modified, lost, reawakened.</p> +<p>“Although intelligence is, as a rule, conscious, it may also +become unconscious and automatic, without losing its identity. +Neither is instinct always so blind, so mechanical, as is supposed, +for at times it is at fault. The wasp that has faultily trimmed +a leaf of its paper begins again. The bee only gives the hexagonal +form to its cell after many attempts and alterations. It is difficult +to believe that the loftier instincts” (and surely, then, the +more recent instincts) “of the higher animals are not accompanied +<i>by at least a confused consciousness</i>. There is, therefore, +no absolute distinction between instinct and intelligence; there is +not a single characteristic which, seriously considered, remains the +exclusive property of either. The contrast established between +instinctive acts and intellectual acts is, nevertheless, perfectly true, +but only when we compare the extremes. <i>As instinct rises it +approaches intelligence - as intelligence descends it approaches instinct</i>.”</p> +<p>M. Ribot and myself (if I may venture to say so) are continually +on the verge of coming to an understanding, when, at the very moment +that we seem most likely to do so, we fly, as it were, to opposite poles. +Surely the passage last quoted should be, “As instinct falls,” +<i>i.e</i>., becomes less and less certain of its ground, “it +approaches intelligence; as intelligence rises,” <i>i.e</i>., +becomes more and more convinced of the truth and expediency of its convictions +- “it approaches instinct.”</p> +<p>Enough has been said to show that the opinions which I am advancing +are not new, but I have looked in vain for the conclusions which, it +appears to me, M. Ribot should draw from his facts; throughout his interesting +book I find the facts which it would seem should have guided him to +the conclusions, and sometimes almost the conclusions themselves, but +he never seems quite to have reached them, nor has he arranged his facts +so that others are likely to deduce them, unless they had already arrived +at them by another road. I cannot, however, sufficiently express +my obligations to M. Ribot.</p> +<p>I cannot refrain from bringing forward a few more instances of what +I think must be considered by every reader as hereditary memory. +Sydney Smith writes:-</p> +<p>“Sir James Hall hatched some chickens in an oven. Within +a few minutes after the shell was broken, a spider was turned loose +before this very youthful brood; the destroyer of flies had hardly proceeded +more than a few inches, before he was descried by one of these oven-born +chickens, and, at one peck of his bill, immediately devoured. +This certainly was not imitation. A female goat very near delivery +died; Galen cut out the young kid, and placed before it a bundle of +hay, a bunch of fruit, and a pan of milk; the young kid smelt to them +all very attentively, and then began to lap the milk. This was +not imitation. And what is commonly and rightly called instinct, +cannot be explained away, under the notion of its being imitation” +(Lecture xvii. on Moral Philosophy).</p> +<p>It cannot, indeed, be explained away under the notion of its being +imitation, but I think it may well be so under that of its being memory.</p> +<p>Again, a little further on in the same lecture, as that above quoted +from, we find:-</p> +<p>“Ants and beavers lay up magazines. Where do they get +their knowledge that it will not be so easy to collect food in rainy +weather, as it is in summer? Men and women know these things, +because their grandpapas and grandmammas have told them so. Ants +hatched from the egg artificially, or birds hatched in this manner, +have all this knowledge by intuition, without the smallest communication +with any of their relations. Now observe what the solitary wasp +does; she digs several holes in the sand, in each of which she deposits +an egg, though she certainly knows not (?) that an animal is deposited +in that egg, and still less that this animal must be nourished with +other animals. She collects a few green flies, rolls them up neatly +in several parcels (like Bologna sausages), and stuffs one parcel into +each hole where an egg is deposited. When the wasp worm is hatched, +it finds a store of provision ready made; and what is most curious, +the quantity allotted to each is exactly sufficient to support it, till +it attains the period of wasphood, and can provide for itself. +This instinct of the parent wasp is the more remarkable as it does not +feed upon flesh itself. Here the little creature has never seen +its parent; for by the time it is born, the parent is always eaten by +sparrows; and yet, without the slightest education, or previous experience, +it does everything that the parent did before it. Now the objectors +to the doctrine of instinct may say what they please, but young tailors +have no intuitive method of making pantaloons; a new-born mercer cannot +measure diaper; nature teaches a cook’s daughter nothing about +sippets. All these things require with us seven years’ apprenticeship; +but insects are like Molière’s persons of quality - they +know everything (as Molière says), without having learnt anything. +‘Les gens de qualité savent tout, sans avoir rien appris.’”</p> +<p>How completely all difficulty vanishes from the facts so pleasantly +told in this passage when we bear in mind the true nature of personal +identity, the ordinary working of memory, and the vanishing tendency +of consciousness concerning what we know exceedingly well.</p> +<p>My last instance I take from M. Ribot, who writes:- “Gratiolet, +in his <i>Anatomie Comparèe du Système Nerveux</i>, states +that an old piece of wolf’s skin, with the hair all worn away, +when set before a little dog, threw the animal into convulsions of fear +by the slight scent attaching to it. The dog had never seen a +wolf, and we can only explain this alarm by the hereditary transmission +of certain sentiments, coupled with a certain perception of the sense +of smell” (“Heredity,” p. 43).</p> +<p>I should prefer to say “we can only explain the alarm by supposing +that the smell of the wolf’s skin” - the sense of smell +being, as we all know, more powerful to recall the ideas that have been +associated with it than any other sense - “brought up the ideas +with which it had been associated in the dog’s mind during many +previous existences” - he on smelling the wolf’s skin remembering +all about wolves perfectly well.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER XII - INSTINCTS OF NEUTER INSECTS</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>In this chapter I will consider, as briefly as possible, the strongest +argument that I have been able to discover against the supposition that +instinct is chiefly due to habit. I have said “the strongest +argument;” I should have said, the only argument that struck me +as offering on the face of it serious difficulties.</p> +<p>Turning, then, to Mr. Darwin’s chapter on instinct (“Natural +Selection,” ed. 1876, p. 205), we find substantially much the +same views as those taken at a later date by M. Ribot, and referred +to in the preceding chapter. Mr. Darwin writes:-</p> +<p>“An action, which we ourselves require experience to enable +us to perform, when performed by an animal, more especially a very young +one, without experience, and when performed by many animals in the same +way without their knowing for what purpose it is performed, is usually +said to be instinctive.”</p> +<p>The above should strictly be, “without their being conscious +of their own knowledge concerning the purpose for which they act as +they do;” and though some may say that the two phrases come to +the same thing, I think there is an important difference, as what I +propose distinguishes ignorance from over-familiarity, both which states +are alike unself-conscious, though with widely different results.</p> +<p>“But I could show,” continues Mr. Darwin, “that +none of these characters are universal. A little dose of judgement +or reason, as Pierre Huber expresses it, often comes into play even +with animals low in the scale of nature.</p> +<p>“Frederick Cuvier and several of the older metaphysicians have +compared instinct with habit.”</p> +<p>I would go further and would say, that instinct, in the great majority +of cases, is habit pure and simple, contracted originally by some one +or more individuals; practised, probably, in a consciously intelligent +manner during many successive lives, until the habit has acquired the +highest perfection which the circumstances admitted; and, finally, so +deeply impressed upon the memory as to survive that effacement of minor +impressions which generally takes place in every fresh life-wave or +generation.</p> +<p>I would say, that unless the identity of offspring with their parents +be so far admitted that the children be allowed to remember the deeper +impressions engraved on the minds of those who begot them, it is little +less than trilling to talk, as so many writers do, about inherited habit, +or the experience of the race, or, indeed, accumulated variations of +instincts.</p> +<p>When an instinct is not habit, as resulting from memory pure and +simple, it is habit modified by some treatment, generally in the youth +or embryonic stages of the individual, which disturbs his memory, and +drives him on to some unusual course, inasmuch as he cannot recognise +and remember his usual one by reason of the change now made in it. +Habits and instincts, again, may be modified by any important change +in the condition of the parents, which will then both affect the parent’s +sense of his own identity, and also create more or less fault, or dislocation +of memory, in the offspring immediately behind the memory of his last +life. Change of food may at times be sufficient to create a specific +modification - that is to say, to affect all the individuals whose food +is so changed, in one and the same way - whether as regards structure +or habit. Thus we see that certain changes in food (and domicile), +from those with which its ancestors have been familiar, will disturb +the memory of a queen bee’s egg, and set it at such disadvantage +as to make it make itself into a neuter bee; but yet we find that the +larva thus partly aborted may have its memories restored to it, if not +already too much disturbed, and may thus return to its condition as +a queen bee, if it only again be restored to the food and domicile, +which its past memories can alone remember.</p> +<p>So we see that opium, tobacco, alcohol, hasheesh, and tea produce +certain effects upon our own structure and instincts. But though +capable of modification, and of specific modification, which may in +time become inherited, and hence resolve itself into a true instinct +or settled question, yet I maintain that the main bulk of the instinct +(whether as affecting structure or habits of life) will be derived from +memory pure and simple; the individual growing up in the shape he does, +and liking to do this or that when he is grown up, simply from recollection +of what he did last time, and of what on the whole suited him.</p> +<p>For it must be remembered that a drug which should destroy some one +part at an early embryonic stage, and thus prevent it from development, +would prevent the creature from recognising the surroundings which affected +that part when he was last alive and unmutilated, as being the same +as his present surroundings. He would be puzzled, for he would +be viewing the position from a different standpoint. If any important +item in a number of associated ideas disappears, the plot fails; and +a great internal change is an exceedingly important item. Life +and things to a creature so treated at an early embryonic stage would +not be life and things as he last remembered them; hence he would not +be able to do the same now as he did then; that is to say, he would +vary both in structure and instinct; but if the creature were tolerably +uniform to start with, and were treated in a tolerably uniform way, +we might expect the effect produced to be much the same in all ordinary +cases.</p> +<p>We see, also, that any important change in treatment and surroundings, +if not sufficient to kill, would and does tend to produce not only variability +but sterility, as part of the same story and for the same reason - namely, +default of memory; this default will be of every degree of intensity, +from total failure, to a slight disturbance of memory as affecting some +one particular organ only; that is to say, from total sterility, to +a slight variation in an unimportant part. So that even <i>the +slightest conceivable variations should be referred to changed conditions, +external or internal, and to their disturbing effects upon the memory</i>; +and sterility, without any apparent disease of the reproductive system, +may be referred not so much to special delicacy or susceptibility of +the organs of reproduction as to inability on the part of the creature +to know where it is, and to recognise itself as the same creature which +it has been accustomed to reproduce.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin thinks that the comparison of habit with instinct gives +“an accurate notion of the frame of mind under which an instinctive +action is performed, but not,” he thinks, “of its origin.”</p> +<p>“How unconsciously,” Mr. Darwin continues, “many +habitual actions are performed, indeed not rarely in direct opposition +to our conscious will! Yet they may be modified by the will or +by reason. Habits easily become associated with other habits, +with certain periods of time and states of body. When once acquired, +they often remain constant throughout life. Several other points +of resemblance between instincts and habits could be pointed out. +As in repeating a well-known song, so in instincts, one action follows +another by a sort of rhythm. If a person be interrupted in a song +or in repeating anything by rote, he is generally forced to go back +to recover the habitual train of thought; so P. Huber found it was with +a caterpillar, which makes a very complicated hammock. For if +he took a caterpillar which had completed its hammock up to, say, the +sixth stage of construction, and put it into a hammock completed up +only to the third stage, the caterpillar simply re-performed the fourth, +fifth, and sixth stages of construction. If, however, a caterpillar +were taken out of a hammock made up, for instance, to the third stage, +and were put into one finished up to the sixth stage, so that much of +its work was already done for it, far from deriving any benefit from +this, it was much embarrassed, and in order to complete its hammock, +seemed forced to start from the third stage, where it had left off, +and thus tried to complete the already finished work.”</p> +<p>I see I must have unconsciously taken my first chapter from this +passage, but it is immaterial. I owe Mr. Darwin much more than +this. I owe it to him that I believe in evolution at all. +I owe him for almost all the facts which have led me to differ from +him, and which I feel absolutely safe in taking for granted, if he has +advanced them. Nevertheless, I believe that the conclusion arrived +at in the passage which I will next quote is a mistaken one, and that +not a little only, but fundamentally. I shall therefore venture +to dispute it.</p> +<p>The passage runs:-</p> +<p>“If we suppose any habitual action to become inherited - and +it can be shown that this does sometimes happen - then the resemblance +between what originally was a habit and an instinct becomes so close +as not to be distinguished. . . . <i>But it would be a serious error +to suppose that the greater number of instincts have been acquired by +habit in one generation, and then transmitted by inheritance to succeeding +generations. It can be clearly shown that the most wonderful instincts +with which we are acquainted - namely, those of the hive-bee and of +many ants, could not possibly have been acquired by habit</i>.” +(“Origin of Species,” p. 206, ed. 1876.) The italics +in this passage are mine.</p> +<p>No difficulty is opposed to my view (as I call it, for the sake of +brevity) by such an instinct as that of ants to milk aphids. Such +instincts may be supposed to have been acquired in much the same way +as the instinct of a farmer to keep a cow. Accidental discovery +of the fact that the excretion was good, with “a little dose of +judgement or reason” from time to time appearing in an exceptionally +clever ant, and by him communicated to his fellows, till the habit was +so confirmed as to be capable of transmission in full unself-consciousness +(if indeed the instinct be unself-conscious in this case), would, I +think, explain this as readily as the slow and gradual accumulations +of instincts which had never passed through the intelligent and self-conscious +stage, but had always prompted action without any idea of a why or a +wherefore on the part of the creature itself.</p> +<p>For it must be remembered, as I am afraid I have already perhaps +too often said, that even when we have got a slight variation of instinct, +due to some cause which we know nothing about, but which I will not +even for a moment call “spontaneous” - a word that should +be cut out of every dictionary, or in some way branded as perhaps the +most misleading in the language - we cannot see how it comes to be repeated +in successive generations, so as to be capable of being acted upon by +“natural selection” and accumulated, unless it be also capable +of being remembered by the offspring of the varying creature. +It may be answered that we cannot know anything about this, but that +“like father like son” is an ultimate fact in nature. +I can only answer that I never observe any “like father like son” +without the son’s both having had every opportunity of remembering, +and showing every symptom of having remembered, in which case I decline +to go further than memory (whatever memory may be) as the cause of the +phenomenon.</p> +<p>But besides inheritance, teaching must be admitted as a means of +at any rate modifying an instinct. We observe this in our own +case; and we know that animals have great powers of communicating their +ideas to one another, though their manner of doing this is as incomprehensible +by us as a plant’s knowledge of chemistry, or the manner in which +an amœba makes its test, or a spider its web, without having gone +through a long course of mathematics. I think most readers will +allow that our early training and the theological systems of the last +eighteen hundred years are likely to have made us involuntarily under-estimate +the powers of animals low in the scale of life, both as regards intelligence +and the power of communicating their ideas to one another; but even +now we admit that ants have great powers in this respect.</p> +<p>A habit, however, which is taught to the young or each successive +generation, by older members of the community who have themselves received +it by instruction, should surely rank as an inherited habit, and be +considered as due to memory, though personal teaching be necessary to +complete the inheritance.</p> +<p>An objection suggests itself that if such a habit as the flight of +birds, which seems to require a little personal supervision and instruction +before it is acquired perfectly, were really due to memory, the need +of instruction would after a time cease, inasmuch as the creature would +remember its past method of procedure, and would thus come to need no +more teaching. The answer lies in the fact, that if a creature +gets to depend upon teaching and personal help for any matter, its memory +will make it look for such help on each repetition of the action; so +we see that no man’s memory will exert itself much until he is +thrown upon memory as his only resource. We may read a page of +a book a hundred times, but we do not remember it by heart unless we +have either cultivated our powers of learning to repeat, or have taken +pains to learn this particular page.</p> +<p>And whether we read from a book, or whether we repeat by heart, the +repetition is still due to memory; only in the one case the memory is +exerted to recall something which one saw only half a second ago, and +in the other, to recall something not seen for a much longer period. +So I imagine an instinct or habit may be called an inherited habit, +and assigned to memory, even though the memory dates, not from the performance +of the action by the learner when he was actually part of the personality +of the teacher, but rather from a performance witnessed by, or explained +by the teacher to, the pupil at a period subsequent to birth. +In either case the habit is inherited in the sense of being acquired +in one generation, and transmitted with such modifications as genius +and experience may have suggested.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin would probably admit this without hesitation; when, therefore, +he says that certain instincts could not possibly have been acquired +by habit, he must mean that they could not, under the circumstances, +have been remembered by the pupil in the person of the teacher, and +that it would be a serious error to suppose that the greater number +of instincts can be thus remembered. To which I assent readily +so far as that it is difficult (though not impossible) to see how some +of the most wonderful instincts of neuter ants and bees can be due to +the fact that the neuter ant or bee was ever in part, or in some respects, +another neuter ant or bee in a previous generation. At the same +time I maintain that this does not militate against the supposition +that both instinct and structure are in the main due to memory. +For the power of receiving any communication, and acting on it, is due +to memory; and the neuter ant or bee may have received its lesson from +another neuter ant or bee, who had it from another and modified it; +and so back and back, till the foundation of the habit is reached, and +is found to present little more than the faintest family likeness to +its more complex descendant. Surely Mr. Darwin cannot mean that +it can be shewn that the wonderful instincts of neuter ants and bees +cannot have been acquired either, as above, by instruction, or by some +not immediately obvious form of inherited transmission, but that they +must be due to the fact that the ant or bee is, as it were, such and +such a machine, of which if you touch such and such a spring, you will +get a corresponding action. If he does, he will find, so far as +I can see, no escape from a position very similar to the one which I +put into the mouth of the first of the two professors, who dealt with +the question of machinery in my earlier work, “Erewhon,” +and which I have since found that my great namesake made fun of in the +following lines:-</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>. . . “They now begun<br />To spur their living engines on.<br />For +as whipped tops and bandy’d balls,<br />The learned hold are animals:<br />So +horses they affirm to be<br />Mere engines made by geometry,<br />And +were invented first from engines<br />As Indian Britons were from Penguins.”<br /><i> - +Hudibras</i>, Canto ii. line 53, &c.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>I can see, then, no difficulty in the development of the ordinary +so-called instincts, whether of ants or bees, or the cuckoo, or any +other animal, on the supposition that they were, for the most part, +intelligently acquired with more or less labour, as the case may be, +in much the same way as we see any art or science now in process of +acquisition among ourselves, but were ultimately remembered by offspring, +or communicated to it. When the limits of the race’s capacity +had been attained (and most races seem to have their limits, unsatisfactory +though the expression may very fairly be considered), or when the creature +had got into a condition, so to speak, of equilibrium with its surroundings, +there would be no new development of instincts, and the old ones would +cease to be improved, inasmuch as there would be no more reasoning or +difference of opinion concerning them. The race, therefore, or +species would remain in <i>statu quo</i> till either domesticated, and +so brought into contact with new ideas and placed in changed conditions, +or put under such pressure, in a wild state, as should force it to further +invention, or extinguish it if incapable of rising to the occasion. +That instinct and structure may be acquired by practice in one or more +generations, and remembered in succeeding ones, is admitted by Mr. Darwin, +for he allows (“Origin of Species,” p. 206) that habitual +action does sometimes become inherited, and, though he does not seem +to conceive of such action as due to memory, yet it is inconceivable +how it is inherited, if not as the result of memory.</p> +<p>It must be admitted, however, that when we come to consider the structures +as well as the instincts of some of the neuter insects, our difficulties +seem greatly increased. The neuter hive-bees have a cavity in +their thighs in which to keep the wax, which it is their business to +collect; but the drones and queen, which alone bear offspring, collect +no wax, and therefore neither want, nor have, any such cavity. +The neuter bees are also, if I understand rightly, furnished with a +proboscis or trunk for extracting honey from flowers, whereas the fertile +bees, who gather no honey, have no such proboscis. Imagine, if +the reader will, that the neuter bees differ still more widely from +the fertile ones; how, then, can they in any sense be said to derive +organs from their parents, which not one of their parents for millions +of generations has ever had? How, again, can it be supposed that +they transmit these organs to the future neuter members of the community +when they are perfectly sterile?</p> +<p>One can understand that the young neuter bee might be taught to make +a hexagonal cell (though I have not found that any one has seen the +lesson being given) inasmuch as it does not make the cell till after +birth, and till after it has seen other neuter bees who might tell it +much in, <i>quâ</i> us, a very little time; but we can hardly +understand its growing a proboscis before it could possibly want it, +or preparing a cavity in its thigh, to have it ready to put wax into, +when none of its predecessors had ever done so, by supposing oral communication, +during the larvahood. Nevertheless, it must not be forgotten that +bees seem to know secrets about reproduction, which utterly baffle ourselves; +for example, the queen bee appears to know how to deposit male or female, +eggs at will; and this is a matter of almost inconceivable sociological +importance, denoting a corresponding amount of sociological and physiological +knowledge generally. It should not, then, surprise us if the race +should possess other secrets, whose working we are unable to follow, +or even detect at all.</p> +<p>Sydney Smith, indeed, writes:-</p> +<p>“The warmest admirers of honey, and the greatest friends to +bees, will never, I presume, contend that the young swarm, who begin +making honey three or four months after they are born, and immediately +construct these mathematical cells, should have gained their geometrical +knowledge as we gain ours, and in three months’ time outstrip +Mr. Maclaurin in mathematics as much as they did in making honey. +It would take a senior wrangler at Cambridge ten hours a day for three +years together to know enough mathematics for the calculation of these +problems, with which not only every queen bee, but every undergraduate +grub, is acquainted the moment it is born.” This last statement +may be a little too strong, but it will at once occur to the reader, +that as we know the bees <i>do</i> surpass Mr. Maclaurin in the power +of making honey, they may also surpass him in capacity for those branches +of mathematics with which it has been their business to be conversant +during many millions of years, and also in knowledge of physiology and +psychology in so far as the knowledge bears upon the interests of their +own community.</p> +<p>We know that the larva which develops into a neuter bee, and that +again which in time becomes a queen bee, are the same kind of larva +to start with; and that if you give one of these larvæ the food +and treatment which all its foremothers have been accustomed to, it +will turn out with all the structure and instincts of its foremothers +- and that it only fails to do this because it has been fed, and otherwise +treated, in such a manner as not one of its foremothers was ever yet +fed or treated. So far, this is exactly what we should expect, +on the view that structure and instinct are alike mainly due to memory, +or to medicined memory. Give the larva a fair chance of knowing +where it is, and it shows that it remembers by doing exactly what it +did before. Give it a different kind of food and house, and it +cannot be expected to be anything else than puzzled. It remembers +a great deal. It comes out a bee, and nothing but a bee; but it +is an aborted bee; it is, in fact, mutilated before birth instead of +after - with instinct, as well as growth, correlated to its abortion, +as we see happens frequently in the case of animals a good deal higher +than bees that have been mutilated at a stage much later than that at +which the abortion of neuter bees commences.</p> +<p>The larvæ being similar to start with, and being similarly +mutilated - i.e., by change of food and dwelling, will naturally exhibit +much similarity of instinct and structure on arriving at maturity. +When driven from their usual course, they must take <i>some</i> new +course or die. There is nothing strange in the fact that similar +beings puzzled similarly should take a similar line of action. +I grant, however, that it is hard to see how change of food and treatment +can puzzle an insect into such “complex growth” as that +it should make a cavity in its thigh, grow an invaluable proboscis, +and betray a practical knowledge of difficult mathematical problems.</p> +<p>But it must be remembered that the memory of having been queen bees +and drones - which is all that according to my supposition the larvæ +can remember, (on a first view of the case), in their own proper persons +- would nevertheless carry with it a potential recollection of all the +social arrangements of the hive. They would thus potentially remember +that the mass of the bees were always neuter bees; they would remember +potentially the habits of these bees, so far as drones and queens know +anything about them; and this may be supposed to be a very thorough +acquaintance; in like manner, and with the same limitation, they would +know from the very moment that they left the queen’s body that +neuter bees had a proboscis to gather honey with, and cavities in their +thighs to put wax into, and that cells were to be made with certain +angles - for surely it is not crediting the queen with more knowledge +than she is likely to possess, if we suppose her to have a fair acquaintance +with the phenomena of wax and cells generally, even though she does +not make any; they would know (while still larvæ - and earlier) +the kind of cells into which neuter bees were commonly put, and the +kind of treatment they commonly received - they might therefore, as +eggs - immediately on finding their recollection driven from its usual +course, so that they must either find some other course, or die - know +that they were being treated as neuter bees are treated, and that they +were expected to develop into neuter bees accordingly; they might know +all this, and a great deal more into the bargain, inasmuch as even before +being actually deposited as eggs they would know and remember potentially, +but unconsciously, all that their parents knew and remembered intensely. +Is it, then, astonishing that they should adapt themselves so readily +to the position which they know it is for the social welfare of the +community, and hence of themselves, that they should occupy, and that +they should know that they will want a cavity in their thighs and a +proboscis, and hence make such implements out of their protoplasm as +readily as they make their wings?</p> +<p>I admit that, under normal treatment, none of the above-mentioned +potential memories would be kindled into such a state of activity that +action would follow upon them, until the creature had attained a more +or less similar condition to that in which its parent was when these +memories were active within its mind: but the essence of the matter +is, that these larvæ have been treated <i>abnormally</i>, so that +if they do not die, there is nothing for it but that they must vary. +One cannot argue from the normal to the abnormal. It would not, +then, be strange if the potential memories should (owing to the margin +for premature or tardy development which association admits) serve to +give the puzzled larvæ a hint as to the course which they had +better take, or that, at any rate, it should greatly supplement the +instruction of the “nurse” bees themselves by rendering +the larvæ so, as it were, inflammable on this point, that a spark +should set them in a blaze. Abortion is generally premature. +Thus the scars referred to in the last chapter as having appeared on +the children of men who had been correspondingly wounded, should not, +under normal circumstances, have appeared in the offspring till the +children had got fairly near the same condition generally as that in +which their fathers were when they were wounded, and even then, normally, +there should have been an instrument to wound them, much as their fathers +had been wounded. Association, however, does not always stick +to the letter of its bond.</p> +<p>The line, again, might certainly be taken that the difference in +structure and instincts between neuter and fertile bees is due to the +specific effects of certain food and treatment; yet, though one would +be sorry to set limits to the convertibility of food and genius, it +seems hard to believe that there can be any untutored food which should +teach a bee to make a hexagonal cell as soon as it was born, or which, +before it was born, should teach it to prepare such structures as it +would require in after life. If, then, food be considered as a +direct agent in causing the structures and instinct, and not an indirect +agent, merely indicating to the larva itself that it is to make itself +after the fashion of neuter bees, then we should bear in mind that, +at any rate, it has been leavened and prepared in the stomachs of those +neuter bees into which the larva is now expected to develop itself, +and may thus have in it more true germinative matter - gemmules, in +fact - than is commonly supposed. Food, when sufficiently assimilated +(the whole question turning upon what <i>is</i> “sufficiently”), +becomes stored with all the experience and memories of the assimilating +creature; corn becomes hen, and knows nothing but hen, when hen has +eaten it. We know also that the neuter working-bees inject matter +into the cell after the larva has been produced; nor would it seem harsh +to suppose that though devoid of a reproductive system like that of +their parents, they may yet be practically not so neuter as is commonly +believed. One cannot say what gemmules of thigh and proboscis +may not have got into the neutral bees’ stomachs, if they assimilate +their food sufficiently, and thus into the larva.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin will be the first to admit that though a creature have +no reproductive system, in any ordinary sense of the word, yet every +unit or cell of its body may throw off gemmules which may be free to +move over every part of the whole organism, and which “natural +selection” might in time cause to stray into food which had been +sufficiently prepared in the stomachs of the neuter bees.</p> +<p>I cannot say, then, precisely in what way, but I can see no reason +for doubting that in some of the ways suggested above, or in some combination +of them, the phenomena of the instincts of neuter ants and bees can +be brought into the same category as the instincts and structure of +fertile animals. At any rate, I see the great fact that when treated +as they have been accustomed to be treated, these neuters act as though +they remembered, and accordingly become queen bees; and that they only +depart from their ancestral course on being treated in such fashion +as their ancestors can never have remembered; also, that when they have +been thrown off their accustomed line of thought and action, they only +take that of their nurses, who have been about them from the moment +of their being deposited as eggs by the queen bee, who have fed them +from their own bodies, and between whom and them there may have been +all manner of physical and mental communication, of which we know no +more than we do of the power which enables a bee to find its way home +after infinite shifting and turning among flowers, which no human powers +could systematise so as to avoid confusion.</p> +<p>Or take it thus: We know that mutilation at an early age produces +an effect upon the structure and instincts of cattle, sheep, and horses; +and it might be presumed that if feasible at an earlier age, it would +produce a still more marked effect. We observe that the effect +produced is uniform, or nearly so. Suppose mutilation to produce +a little more effect than it does, as we might easily do, if cattle, +sheep, and horses had been for ages accustomed to a mutilated class +living among them, which class had been always a caste apart, and had +fed the young neuters from their own bodies, from an early embryonic +stage onwards; would any one in this case dream of advancing the structure +and instincts of this mutilated class against the doctrine that instinct +is inherited habit? Or, if inclined to do this, would he not at +once refrain, on remembering that the process of mutilation might be +arrested, and the embryo be developed into an entire animal by simply +treating it in the way to which all its ancestors had been accustomed? +Surely he would not allow the difficulty (which I must admit in some +measure to remain) to outweigh the evidence derivable from these very +neuter insects themselves, as well as from such a vast number of other +sources - all pointing in the direction of instinct as inherited habit. +<a name="citation5"></a><a href="#footnote5">{5}</a></p> +<p>Lastly, it must be remembered that the instinct to make cells and +honey is one which has no very great hold upon its possessors. +Bees <i>can</i> make cells and honey, nor do they seem to have any very +violent objection to doing so; but it is quite clear that there is nothing +in their structure and instincts which urges them on to do these things +for the mere love of doing them, as a hen is urged to sit upon a chalk +stone, concerning which she probably is at heart utterly sceptical, +rather than not sit at all. There is no honey and cell-making +instinct so strong as the instinct to eat, if they are hungry, or to +grow wings, and make themselves into bees at all. Like ourselves, +so long as they can get plenty to eat and drink, they will do no work. +Under these circumstances, not one drop of honey nor one particle of +wax will they collect, except, I presume, to make cells for the rearing +of their young.</p> +<p>Sydney Smith writes:-</p> +<p>“The most curious instance of a change of instinct is recorded +by Darwin. The bees carried over to Barbadoes and the Western +Isles ceased to lay up any honey after the first year, as they found +it not useful to them. They found the weather so fine, and materials +for making honey so plentiful, that they quitted their grave, prudent, +and mercantile character, became exceedingly profligate and debauched, +ate up their capital, resolved to work no more, and amused themselves +by flying about the sugar-houses and stinging the blacks” (Lecture +XVII. on Moral Philosophy). The ease, then, with which the honey-gathering +and cell-making habits are relinquished, would seem to point strongly +in the direction of their acquisition at a comparatively late period +of development.</p> +<p>I have dealt with bees only, and not with ants, which would perhaps +seem to present greater difficulty, inasmuch as in some families of +these there are two, or even three, castes of neuters with well-marked +and wide differences of structure and instinct; but I think the reader +will agree with me that the ants are sufficiently covered by the bees, +and that enough, therefore, has been said already. Mr. Darwin +supposes that these modifications of structure and instinct have been +effected by the accumulation of numerous slight, profitable, spontaneous +variations on the part of the fertile parents, which has caused them +(so, at least, I understand him) to lay this or that particular kind +of egg, which should develop into a kind of bee or ant, with this or +that particular instinct, which instinct is merely a co-ordination with +structure, and in no way attributable to use or habit in preceding generations.</p> +<p>Even so, one cannot see that the habit of laying this particular +kind of egg might not be due to use and memory in previous generations +on the part of the fertile parents, “for the numerous slight spontaneous +variations,” on which “natural selection” is to work, +must have had some cause than which none more reasonable than sense +of need and experience presents itself; and there seems hardly any limit +to what long-continued faith and desire, aided by intelligence, may +be able to effect. But if sense of need and experience are denied, +I see no escape from the view that machines are new species of life.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin concludes: “I am surprised that no one has hitherto +advanced this demonstrative case of neuter insects against the well-known +doctrine of inherited habit as advanced by Lamarck” (“Natural +Selection,” p. 233, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>After reading this, one feels as though there was no more to be said. +The well-known doctrine of inherited habit, as advanced by Lamarck, +has indeed been long since so thoroughly exploded, that it is not worth +while to go into an explanation of what it was, or to refute it in detail. +Here, however, is an argument against it, which is so much better than +anything advanced yet, that one is surprised it has never been made +use of; so we will just advance it, as it were, to slay the slain, and +pass on. Such, at least, is the effect which the paragraph above +quoted produced upon myself, and would, I think, produce on the great +majority of readers. When driven by the exigencies of my own position +to examine the value of the demonstration more closely, I conclude, +either that I have utterly failed to grasp Mr. Darwin’s meaning, +or that I have no less completely mistaken the value and bearing of +the facts I have myself advanced in these few last pages. Failing +this, my surprise is, not that “no one has hitherto advanced” +the instincts of neuter insects as a demonstrative case against the +doctrine of inherited habit, but rather that Mr. Darwin should have +thought the case demonstrative; or again, when I remember that the neuter +working bee is only an aborted queen, and may be turned back again into +a queen, by giving it such treatment as it can alone be expected to +remember - then I am surprised that the structure and instincts of neuter +bees has never (if never) been brought forward in support of the doctrine +of inherited habit as advanced by Lamarck, and against any theory which +would rob such instincts of their foundation in intelligence, and of +their connection with experience and memory.</p> +<p>As for the instinct to mutilate, that is as easily accounted for +as any other inherited habit, whether of man to mutilate cattle, or +of ants to make slaves, or of birds to make their nests. I can +see no way of accounting for the existence of any one of these instincts, +except on the supposition that they have arisen gradually, through perceptions +of power and need on the part of the animal which exhibits them - these +two perceptions advancing hand in hand from generation to generation, +and being accumulated in time and in the common course of nature.</p> +<p>I have already sufficiently guarded against being supposed to maintain +that very long before an instinct or structure was developed, the creature +descried it in the far future, and made towards it. We do not +observe this to be the manner of human progress. Our mechanical +inventions, which, as I ventured to say in “Erewhon,” through +the mouth of the second professor, are really nothing but extra-corporaneous +limbs - a wooden leg being nothing but a bad kind of flesh leg, and +a flesh leg being only a much better kind of wooden leg than any creature +could be expected to manufacture introspectively and consciously - our +mechanical inventions have almost invariably grown up from small beginnings, +and without any very distant foresight on the part of the inventors. +When Watt perfected the steam engine, he did not, it seems, foresee +the locomotive, much less would any one expect a savage to invent a +steam engine. A child breathes automatically, because it has learnt +to breathe little by little, and has now breathed for an incalculable +length of time; but it cannot open oysters at all, nor even conceive +the idea of opening oysters for two or three years after it is born, +for the simple reason that this lesson is one which it is only beginning +to learn. All I maintain is, that, give a child as many generations +of practice in opening oysters as it has had in breathing or sucking, +and it would on being born, turn to the oyster-knife no less naturally +than to the breast. We observe that among certain families of +men there has been a tendency to vary in the direction of the use and +development of machinery; and that in a certain still smaller number +of families, there seems to be an almost infinitely great capacity for +varying and inventing still further, whether socially or mechanically; +while other families, and perhaps the greater number, reach a certain +point and stop; but we also observe that not even the most inventive +races ever see very far ahead. I suppose the progress of plants +and animals to be exactly analogous to this.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin has always maintained that the effects of use and disuse +are highly important in the development of structure, and if, as he +has said, habits are sometimes inherited - then they should sometimes +be important also in the development of instinct, or habit. But +what does the development of an instinct or structure, or, indeed, any +effect upon the organism produced by “use and disuse,” imply? +It implies an effect produced by a desire to do something for which +the organism was not originally well adapted or sufficient, but for +which it has come to be sufficient in consequence of the desire. +The wish has been father to the power; but this again opens up the whole +theory of Lamarck, that the development of organs has been due to the +wants or desires of the animal in which the organ appears. So +far as I can see, I am insisting on little more than this.</p> +<p>Once grant that a blacksmith’s arm grows thicker through hammering +iron, and you have an organ modified in accordance with a need or wish. +Let the desire and the practice be remembered, and go on for long enough, +and the slight alterations of the organ will be accumulated, until they +are checked either by the creature’s having got all that he cares +about making serious further effort to obtain, or until his wants prove +inconvenient to other creatures that are stronger than he, and he is +hence brought to a standstill. Use and disuse, then, with me, +and, as I gather also, with Lamarck, are the keys to the position, coupled, +of course, with continued personality and memory. No sudden and +striking changes would be effected, except that occasionally a blunder +might prove a happy accident, as happens not unfrequently with painters, +musicians, chemists, and inventors at the present day; or sometimes +a creature, with exceptional powers of memory or reflection, would make +his appearance in this race or in that. We all profit by our accidents +as well as by our more cunning contrivances, so that analogy would point +in the direction of thinking that many of the most happy thoughts in +the animal and vegetable kingdom were originated much as certain discoveries +that have been made by accident among ourselves. These would be +originally blind variations, though even so, probably less blind than +we think, if we could know the whole truth. When originated, they +would be eagerly taken advantage of and improved upon by the animal +in whom they appeared; but it cannot be supposed that they would be +very far in advance of the last step gained, more than are those “flukes” +which sometimes enable us to go so far beyond our own ordinary powers. +For if they were, the animal would despair of repeating them. +No creature hopes, or even wishes, for very much more than he has been +accustomed to all his life, he and his family, and the others whom he +can understand, around him. It has been well said that “enough” +is always “a little more than one has.” We do not +try for things which we believe to be beyond our reach, hence one would +expect that the fortunes, as it were, of animals should have been built +up gradually. Our own riches grow with our desires and the pains +we take in pursuit of them, and our desires vary and increase with our +means of gratifying them; but unless with men of exceptional business +aptitude, wealth grows gradually by the adding field to field and farm +to farm; so with the limbs and instincts of animals; these are but the +things they have made or bought with their money, or with money that +has been left them by their forefathers, which, though it is neither +silver nor gold, but faith and protoplasm only, is good money and capital +notwithstanding.</p> +<p>I have already admitted that instinct may be modified by food or +drugs, which may affect a structure or habit as powerfully as we see +certain poisons affect the structure of plants by producing, as Mr. +Darwin tells us, very complex galls upon their leaves. I do not, +therefore, for a moment insist on habit as the sole cause of instinct. +Every habit must have had its originating cause, and the causes which +have started one habit will from time to time start or modify others; +nor can I explain why some individuals of a race should be cleverer +than others, any more than I can explain why they should exist at all; +nevertheless, I observe it to be a fact that differences in intelligence +and power of growth are universal in the individuals of all those races +which we can best watch. I also most readily admit that the common +course of nature would both cause many variations to arise independently +of any desire on the part of the animal (much as we have lately seen +that the moons of Mars were on the point of being discovered three hundred +years ago, merely through Galileo sending to Kepler a Latin anagram +which Kepler could not understand, and arranged into the line - “<i>Salve +umbistineum geminatum Martia prolem</i>,” and interpreted to mean +that Mars had two moons, whereas Galileo had meant to say “<i>Altissimum +planetam tergeminum observavi</i>,” meaning that he had seen Saturn’s +ring), and would also preserve and accumulate such variations when they +had arisen; but I can no more believe that the wonderful adaptation +of structures to needs, which we see around us in such an infinite number +of plants and animals, can have arisen without a perception of those +needs on the part of the creature in whom the structure appears, than +I can believe that the form of the dray-horse or greyhound - so well +adapted both to the needs of the animal in his daily service to man, +and to the desires of man, that the creature should do him this daily +service - can have arisen without any desire on man’s part to +produce this particular structure, or without the inherited habit of +performing the corresponding actions for man, on the part of the greyhound +and dray-horse.</p> +<p>And I believe that this will be felt as reasonable by the great majority +of my readers. I believe that nine fairly intelligent and observant +men out of ten, if they were asked which they thought most likely to +have been the main cause of the development of the various phases either +of structure or instinct which we see around us, namely - sense of need, +or even whim, and hence occasional discovery, helped by an occasional +piece of good luck, communicated, it may be, and generally adopted, +long practised, remembered by offspring, modified by changed surroundings, +and accumulated in the course of time - or, the accumulation of small +divergent, indefinite, and perfectly unintelligent variations, preserved +through the survival of their possessor in the struggle for existence, +and hence in time leading to wide differences from the original type +- would answer in favour of the former alternative; and if for no other +cause yet for this - that in the human race, which we are best able +to watch, and between which and the lower animals no difference in kind +will, I think, be supposed, but only in degree, we observe that progress +must have an internal current setting in a definite direction, but whither +we know not for very long beforehand; and that without such internal +current there is stagnation. Our own progress - or variation - +is due not to small, fortuitous inventions or modifications which have +enabled their fortunate possessors to survive in times of difficulty, +not, in fact, to strokes of luck (though these, of course, have had +some effect - but not more, probably, than strokes of ill luck have +counteracted) but to strokes of cunning - to a sense of need, and to +study of the past and present which have given shrewd people a key with +which to unlock the chambers of the future.</p> +<p>Further, Mr. Darwin himself says (“Plants and Animals under +Domestication,” ii. p. 237, ed. 1875):-</p> +<p>“But I think we must take a broader view and conclude that +organic beings when subjected during several generations to any change +whatever in their conditions tend to vary: <i>the kind of variation +which ensues depending in most cases in a far higher degree on the nature +or constitution of the being, than on the nature of the changed conditions</i>.” +And this we observe in man. The history of a man prior to his +birth is more important as far as his success or failure goes than his +surroundings after birth, important though these may indeed be. +The able man rises in spite of a thousand hindrances, the fool fails +in spite of every advantage. “Natural selection,” +however, does not make either the able man or the fool. It only +deals with him after other causes have made him, and would seem in the +end to amount to little more than to a statement of the fact that when +variations have arisen they will accumulate. One cannot look, +as has already been said, for the origin of species in that part of +the course of nature which settles the preservation or extinction of +variations which have already arisen from some unknown cause, but one +must look for it in the causes that have led to variation at all. +These causes must get, as it were, behind the back of “natural +selection,” which is rather a shield and hindrance to our perception +of our own ignorance than an explanation of what these causes are.</p> +<p>The remarks made above will apply equally to plants such as the misletoe +and red clover. For the sake of brevity I will deal only with +the misletoe, which seems to be the more striking case. Mr. Darwin +writes:-</p> +<p>“Naturalists continually refer to external conditions, such +as climate, food, &c., as the only possible cause of variation. +In one limited sense, as we shall hereafter see, this may be true; but +it is preposterous to attribute to mere external conditions, the structure, +for instance, of the woodpecker, with its feet, tail, beak, and tongue, +so admirably adapted to catch insects under the bark of trees. +In the case of the misletoe, which draws its nourishment from certain +trees, which has seeds that must be transported by certain birds, and +which has flowers with separate sexes absolutely requiring the agency +of certain insects to bring pollen from one flower to another, it is +equally preposterous to account for the structure of this parasite with +its relations to several distinct organic beings, by the effect of external +conditions, or of habit, or of the volition of the plant itself” +(“Natural Selection,” p. 3, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>I cannot see this. To me it seems still more preposterous to +account for it by the action of “natural selection” operating +upon indefinite variations. It would be preposterous to suppose +that a bird very different from a woodpecker should have had a conception +of a woodpecker, and so by volition gradually grown towards it. +So in like manner with the misletoe. Neither plant nor bird knew +how far they were going, or saw more than a very little ahead as to +the means of remedying this or that with which they were dissatisfied, +or of getting this or that which they desired; but given perceptions +at all, and thus a sense of needs and of the gratification of those +needs, and thus hope and fear, and a sense of content and discontent +- given also the lowest power of gratifying those needs - given also +that some individuals have these powers in a higher degree than others +- given also continued personality and memory over a vast extent of +time - and the whole phenomena of species and genera resolve themselves +into an illustration of the old proverb, that what is one man’s +meat is another man’s poison. Life in its lowest form under +the above conditions - and we cannot conceive of life at all without +them - would be bound to vary, and to result after not so very many +millions of years in the infinite forms and instincts which we see around +us.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER XIII - LAMARCK AND MR. DARWIN</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>It will have been seen that in the preceding pages the theory of +evolution, as originally propounded by Lamarck, has been more than once +supported, as against the later theory concerning it put forward by +Mr. Darwin, and now generally accepted.</p> +<p>It is not possible for me, within the limits at my command, to do +anything like justice to the arguments that may be brought forward in +favour of either of these two theories. Mr. Darwin’s books +are at the command of every one; and so much has been discovered since +Lamarck’s day, that if he were living now, he would probably state +his case very differently; I shall therefore content myself with a few +brief remarks, which will hardly, however, aspire to the dignity of +argument.</p> +<p>According to Mr. Darwin, differentiations of structure and instinct +have mainly come about through the accumulation of small, fortuitous +variations without intelligence or desire upon the part of the creature +varying; modification, however, through desire and sense of need, is +not denied entirely, inasmuch as considerable effect is ascribed by +Mr. Darwin to use and disuse, which involves, as has been already said, +the modification of a structure in accordance with the wishes of its +possessor.</p> +<p>According to Lamarck, genera and species have been evolved, in the +main, by exactly the same process as that by which human inventions +and civilisations are now progressing; and this involves that intelligence, +ingenuity, heroism, and all the elements of romance, should have had +the main share in the development of every herb and living creature +around us.</p> +<p>I take the following brief outline of the most important part of +Lamarck’s theory from vol. xxxvi. of the Naturalist’s Library +(Edinburgh, 1843):-</p> +<p>“The more simple bodies,” says the editor, giving Lamarck’s +opinion without endorsing it, “are easily formed, and this being +the case, it is easy to conceive how in the lapse of time animals of +a more complex structure should be produced, <i>for it must be admitted +as a fundamental law, that the production of a new organ in an animal +body results from any new want or desire it may experience</i>. +The first effort of a being just beginning to develop itself must be +to procure subsistence, and hence in time there comes to be produced +a stomach or alimentary cavity.” (Thus we saw that the amœba +is in the habit of “extemporising” a stomach when it wants +one.) “Other wants occasioned by circumstances will lead +to other efforts, which in their turn will generate new organs.”</p> +<p>Lamarck’s wonderful conception was hampered by an unnecessary +adjunct, namely, a belief in an inherent tendency towards progressive +development in every low organism. He was thus driven to account +for the presence of many very low and very ancient organisms at the +present day, and fell back upon the theory, which is not yet supported +by evidence, that such low forms are still continually coming into existence +from inorganic matter. But there seems no necessity to suppose +that all low forms should possess an inherent tendency towards progression. +It would be enough that there should occasionally arise somewhat more +gifted specimens of one or more original forms. These would vary, +and the ball would be thus set rolling, while the less gifted would +remain <i>in statu quo</i>, provided they were sufficiently gifted to +escape extinction.</p> +<p>Nor do I gather that Lamarck insisted on continued personality and +memory so as to account for heredity at all, and so as to see life as +a single, or as at any rate, only a few, vast compound animals, but +without the connecting organism between each component item in the whole +creature, which is found in animals that are strictly called compound. +Until continued personality and memory are connected with the idea of +heredity, heredity of any kind is little more than a term for something +which one does not understand. But there seems little <i>à +priori</i> difficulty as regards Lamarck’s main idea, now that +Mr. Darwin has familiarised us with evolution, and made us feel what +a vast array of facts can be brought forward in support of it.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin tells us, in the preface to his last edition of the “Origin +of Species,” that Lamarck was partly led to his conclusions by +the analogy of domestic productions. It is rather hard to say +what these words imply; they may mean anything from a baby to an apple +dumpling, but if they imply that Lamarck drew inspirations from the +gradual development of the mechanical inventions of man, and from the +progress of man’s ideas, I would say that of all sources this +would seem to be the safest and most fertile from which to draw.</p> +<p>Plants and animals under domestication are indeed a suggestive field +for study, but machines are the manner in which man is varying at this +moment. We know how our own minds work, and how our mechanical +organisations - for, in all sober seriousness, this is what it comes +to - have progressed hand in hand with our desires; sometimes the power +a little ahead, and sometimes the desire; sometimes both combining to +form an organ with almost infinite capacity for variation, and sometimes +comparatively early reaching the limit of utmost development in respect +of any new conception, and accordingly coming to a full stop; sometimes +making leaps and bounds, and sometimes advancing sluggishly. Here +we are behind the scenes, and can see how the whole thing works. +We have man, the very animal which we can best understand, caught in +the very act of variation, through his own needs, and not through the +needs of others; the whole process is a natural one; the varying of +a creature as much in a wild state as the ants and butterflies are wild. +There is less occasion here for the continual “might be” +and “may be,” which we are compelled to put up with when +dealing with plants and animals, of the workings of whose minds we can +only obscurely judge. Also, there is more prospect of pecuniary +profit attaching to the careful study of machinery than can be generally +hoped for from the study of the lower animals; and though I admit that +this consideration should not be carried too far, a great deal of very +unnecessary suffering will be spared to the lower animals; for much +that passes for natural history is little better than prying into other +people’s business, from no other motive than curiosity. +I would, therefore, strongly advise the reader to use man, and the present +races of man, and the growing inventions and conceptions of man, as +his guide, if he would seek to form an independent judgement on the +development of organic life. For all growth is only somebody making +something.</p> +<p>Lamarck’s theories fell into disrepute, partly because they +were too startling to be capable of ready fusion with existing ideas; +they were, in fact, too wide a cross for fertility; partly because they +fell upon evil times, during the reaction that followed the French Revolution; +partly because, unless I am mistaken, he did not sufficiently link on +the experience of the race to that of the individual, nor perceive the +importance of the principle that consciousness, memory, volition, intelligence, +&c., vanish, or become latent, on becoming intense. He also +appears to have mixed up matter with his system, which was either plainly +wrong, or so incapable of proof as to enable people to laugh at him, +and pooh-pooh him; but I believe it will come to be perceived, that +he has received somewhat scant justice at the hands of his successors, +and that his “crude theories,” as they have been somewhat +cheaply called, are far from having had their last say.</p> +<p>Returning to Mr. Darwin, we find, as we have already seen, that it +is hard to say exactly how much Mr. Darwin differs from Lamarck, and +how much he agrees with him. Mr. Darwin has always maintained +that use and disuse are highly important, and this implies that the +effect produced on the parent should be remembered by the offspring, +in the same way as the memory of a wound is transmitted by one set of +cells to succeeding ones, who long repeat the scar, though it may fade +finally away. Also, after dealing with the manner in which one +eye of a young flat-fish travels round the head till both eyes are on +the same side of the fish, he gives (“Natural Selection,” +p. 188, ed. 1875) an instance of a structure “which apparently +owes its origin exclusively to use or habit.” He refers +to the tail of some American monkeys “which has been converted +into a wonderfully perfect prehensile organ, and serves as a fifth hand. +A reviewer,” he continues, . . . “remarks on this +structure - ‘It is impossible to believe that in any number of +ages the first slight incipient tendency to grasp, could preserve the +lives of the individuals possessing it, or favour their chance of having +and of rearing offspring.’ But there is no necessity for +any such belief. Habit, and this almost implies that some benefit, +great or small, is thus derived, would in all probability suffice for +the work.” If, then, habit can do this - and it is no small +thing to develop a wonderfully perfect prehensile organ which can serve +as a fifth hand - how much more may not habit do, even though unaided, +as Mr. Darwin supposes to have been the case in this instance, by “natural +selection”? After attributing many of the structural and +instinctive differences of plants and animals to the effects of use +- as we may plainly do with Mr. Darwin’s own consent - after attributing +a good deal more to unknown causes, and a good deal to changed conditions, +which are bound, if at all important, to result either in sterility +or variation - how much of the work of originating species is left for +natural selection? - which, as Mr. Darwin admits (“Natural Selection,” +p. 63, ed. 1876), does not <i>induce variability</i>, but “implies +only the preservation of <i>such variations as arise</i>, and are beneficial +to the being under its conditions of life?” An important +part assuredly, and one which we can never sufficiently thank Mr. Darwin +for having put so forcibly before us, but an indirect part only, like +the part played by time and space, and not, I think, the one which Mr. +Darwin would assign to it.</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin himself has admitted that in the earlier editions of his +“Origin of Species” he “underrated, as it now seems +probable, the frequency and importance of modifications due to spontaneous +variability.” And this involves the having over-rated the +action of “natural selection” as an agent in the evolution +of species. But one gathers that he still believes the accumulation +of small and fortuitous variations through the agency of “natural +selection” to be the main cause of the present divergencies of +structure and instinct. I do not, however, think that Mr. Darwin +is clear about his own meaning. I think the prominence given to +“natural selection” in connection with the “origin +of species” has led him, in spite of himself, and in spite of +his being on his guard (as is clearly shown by the paragraph on page +63 “Natural Selection,” above referred to), to regard “natural +selection” as in some way accounting for variation, just as the +use of the dangerous word “spontaneous,” - though he is +so often on his guard against it, and so frequently prefaces it with +the words “so-called,” - would seem to have led him into +very serious confusion of thought in the passage quoted at the beginning +of this paragraph.</p> +<p>For after saying that he had underrated “the frequency and +importance of modifications due to spontaneous variability,” he +continues, “but it is impossible to attribute to this cause the +innumerable structures which are so well adapted to the habits of life +of each species.” That is to say, it is impossible to attribute +these innumerable structures to spontaneous variability.</p> +<p>What <i>is</i> spontaneous variability?</p> +<p>Clearly, from his preceding paragraph, Mr. Darwin means only “so-called +spontaneous variations,” such as “the appearance of a moss-rose +on a common rose, or of a nectarine on a peach-tree,” which he +gives as good examples of so-called spontaneous variation.</p> +<p>And these variations are, after all, due to causes, but to unknown +causes; spontaneous variation being, in fact, but another name for variation +due to causes which we know nothing about, but in no possible sense +a <i>cause of variation</i>. So that when we come to put clearly +before our minds exactly what the sentence we are considering amounts +to, it comes to this: that it is impossible to attribute the innumerable +structures which are so well adapted to the habits of life of each species +to <i>unknown causes.</i></p> +<p>“I can no more believe in <i>this</i>,” continues Mr. +Darwin, “than that the well-adapted form of a race-horse or greyhound, +which, before the principle of selection by man was well understood, +excited so much surprise in the minds of the older naturalists, can +<i>thus</i> be explained” (“Natural Selection,” p. +171, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>Or, in other words, “I can no more believe that the well-adapted +structures of species are due to unknown causes, than I can believe +that the well-adapted form of a race-horse can be explained by being +attributed to unknown causes.</p> +<p>I have puzzled over this paragraph for several hours with the sincerest +desire to get at the precise idea which underlies it, but the more I +have studied it the more convinced I am that it does not contain, or +at any rate convey, any clear or definite idea at all. If I thought +it was a mere slip, I should not call attention to it; this book will +probably have slips enough of its own without introducing those of a +great man unnecessarily; but I submit that it is necessary to call attention +to it here, inasmuch as it is impossible to believe that after years +of reflection upon his subject, Mr. Darwin should have written as above, +especially in such a place, if his mind was really clear about his own +position. Immediately after the admission of a certain amount +of miscalculation, there comes a more or less exculpatory sentence which +sounds so right that ninety-nine people out of a hundred would walk +through it, unless led by some exigency of their own position to examine +it closely but which yet upon examination proves to be as nearly meaningless +as a sentence can be.</p> +<p>The weak point in Mr. Darwin’s theory would seem to be a deficiency, +so to speak, of motive power to originate and direct the variations +which time is to accumulate. It deals admirably with the accumulation +of variations in creatures already varying, but it does not provide +a sufficient number of sufficiently important variations to be accumulated. +Given the motive power which Lamarck suggested, and Mr. Darwin’s +mechanism would appear (with the help of memory, as bearing upon reproduction, +of continued personality, and hence of inherited habit, and of the vanishing +tendency of consciousness) to work with perfect ease. Mr. Darwin +has made us all feel that in some way or other variations <i>are accumulated</i>, +and that evolution is the true solution of the present widely different +structures around us, whereas, before he wrote, hardly any one believed +this. However we may differ from him in detail, the present general +acceptance of evolution must remain as his work, and a more valuable +work can hardly be imagined. Nevertheless, I cannot think that +“natural selection,” working upon small, fortuitous, indefinite, +unintelligent variations, would produce the results we see around us. +One wants something that will give a more definite aim to variations, +and hence, at times, cause bolder leaps in advance. One cannot +but doubt whether so many plants and animals would be being so continually +saved “by the skin of their teeth,” as must be so saved +if the variations from which genera ultimately arise are as small in +their commencement and at each successive stage as Mr. Darwin seems +to believe. God - to use the language of the Bible - is not extreme +to mark what is done amiss, whether with plant or beast or man; on the +other hand, when towers of Siloam fall, they fall on the just as well +as the unjust.</p> +<p>One feels, on considering Mr. Darwin’s position, that if it +be admitted that there is in the lowest creature a power to vary, no +matter how small, one has got in this power as near the “origin +of species” as one can ever hope to get. For no one professes +to account for the origin of life; but if a creature with a power to +vary reproduces itself at all, it must reproduce another creature <i>which +shall also have the power to vary</i>; so that, given time and space +enough, there is no knowing where such a creature could or would stop.</p> +<p>If the primordial cell had been only capable of reproducing itself +once, there would have followed a single line of descendants, the chain +of which might at any moment have been broken by casualty. Doubtless +the millionth repetition would have differed very materially from the +original - as widely, perhaps, as we differ from the primordial cell; +but it would only have differed by addition, and could no more in any +generation resume its latest development without having passed through +the initial stage of being what its first forefather was, and doing +what its first forefather did, and without going through all or a sufficient +number of the steps whereby it had reached its latest differentiation, +than water can rise above its own level.</p> +<p>The very idea, then, of reproduction involves, unless I am mistaken, +that, no matter how much the creature reproducing itself may gain in +power and versatility, it must still always begin <i>with itself again</i> +in each generation. The primordial cell being capable of reproducing +itself not only once, but many times over, each of the creatures which +it produces must be similarly gifted; hence the geometrical ratio of +increase and the existing divergence of type. In each generation +it will pass rapidly and unconsciously through all the earlier stages +of which there has been infinite experience, and for which the conditions +are reproduced with sufficient similarity to cause no failure of memory +or hesitation; but in each generation, when it comes to the part in +which the course is not so clear, it will become conscious; still, however, +where the course is plain, as in breathing, digesting, &c., retaining +unconsciousness. Thus organs which present all the appearance +of being designed - as, for example, the tip for its beak prepared by +the embryo chicken - would be prepared in the end, as it were, by rote, +and without sense of design, though none the less owing their origin +to design.</p> +<p>The question is not concerning evolution, but as to the main cause +which has led to evolution in such and such shapes. To me it seems +that the “Origin of Variation,” whatever it is, is the only +true “Origin of Species,” and that this must, as Lamarck +insisted, be looked for in the needs and experiences of the creatures +varying. Unless we can explain the origin of variations, we are +met by the unexplained <i>at every step</i> in the progress of a creature +from its original homogeneous condition to its differentiation, we will +say, as an elephant; so that to say that an elephant has become an elephant +through the accumulation of a vast number of small, fortuitous, but +unexplained, variations in some lower creatures, is really to say that +it has become an elephant owing to a series of causes about which we +know nothing whatever, or, in other words, that one does not know how +it came to be an elephant. But to say that an elephant has become +an elephant owing to a series of variations, nine-tenths of which were +caused by the wishes of the creature or creatures from which the elephant +is descended - this is to offer a reason, and definitely put the insoluble +one step further back. The question will then turn upon the sufficiency +of the reason - that is to say, whether the hypothesis is borne out +by facts.</p> +<p>The effects of competition would, of course, have an extremely important +effect upon any creature, in the same way as any other condition of +nature under which it lived, must affect its sense of need and its opinions +generally. The results of competition would be, as it were, the +decisions of an arbiter settling the question whether such and such +variation was really to the animal’s advantage or not - a matter +on which the animal will, on the whole, have formed a pretty fair judgement +for itself. <i>Undoubtedly the past decisions of such an arbiter +would affect the conduct of the creature</i>, which would have doubtless +had its shortcomings and blunders, and would amend them. The creature +would shape its course according to its experience of the common course +of events, but it would be continually trying and often successfully, +to evade the law by all manner of sharp practice. New precedents +would thus arise, so that the law would shift with time and circumstances; +but the law would not otherwise direct the channels into which life +would flow, than as laws, whether natural or artificial, have affected +the development of the widely differing trades and professions among +mankind. These have had their origin rather in the needs and experiences +of mankind than in any laws.</p> +<p>To put much the same as the above in different words. Assume +that small favourable variations are preserved more commonly, in proportion +to their numbers, than is perhaps the case, and assume that considerable +variations occur more rarely than they probably do occur, how account +for any variation at all? “Natural selection” cannot +<i>create</i> the smallest variation unless it acts through perception +of its mode of operation, recognised inarticulately, but none the less +clearly, by the creature varying. “Natural selection” +operates on what it finds, and not on what it has made. Animals +that have been wise and lucky live longer and breed more than others +less wise and lucky. Assuredly. The wise and lucky animals +transmit their wisdom and luck. Assuredly. They add to their +powers, and diverge into widely different directions. Assuredly. +What is the cause of this? Surely the fact that they were capable +of feeling needs, and that they differed in their needs and manner of +gratifying them, and that they continued to live in successive generations, +rather than the fact that when lucky and wise they thrived and bred +more descendants. This last is an accessory hardly less important +for the <i>development</i> of species than the fact of the continuation +of life at all; but it is an accessory of much the same kind as this, +for if animals continue to live at all, they must live <i>in some way</i>, +and will find that there are good ways and bad ways of living. +An animal which discovers the good way will gradually develop further +powers, and so species will get further and further apart; but the origin +of this is to be looked for, not in the power which decides whether +this or that way was good, but in the cause which determines the creature, +consciously or unconsciously, to try this or that way.</p> +<p>But Mr. Darwin might say that this is not a fair way of stating the +issue. He might say, “You beg the question; you assume that +there is an inherent tendency in animals towards progressive development, +whereas I say that there is no good evidence of any such tendency. +I maintain that the differences that have from time to time arisen have +come about mainly from causes so far beyond our ken, that we can only +call them spontaneous; and if so, natural selection which you must allow +to have at any rate played an important part in the <i>accumulation</i> +of variations, must also be allowed to be the nearest thing to the cause +of Specific differences, which we are able to arrive at.”</p> +<p>Thus he writes (“Natural Selection,” p. 176, ed. 1876): +“Although we have no good evidence of the existence in organic +beings of a tendency towards progressive development, yet this necessarily +follows, as I have attempted to show in the fourth chapter, through +the continued action of natural selection.” Mr. Darwin does +not say that organic beings have no tendency to vary at all, but only +that there is no good evidence that they have a tendency to progressive +development, which, I take it, means, to see an ideal a long way off, +and very different to their present selves, which ideal they think will +suit them, and towards which they accordingly make. I would admit +this as contrary to all experience. I doubt whether plants and +animals have any <i>innate tendency to vary</i> at all, being led to +question this by gathering from “Plants and Animals under Domestication” +that this is Mr. Darwin’s own opinion. I am inclined rather +to think that they have only an innate <i>power to vary</i> slightly, +in accordance with changed conditions, and an innate capability of being +affected both in structure and instinct, by causes similar to those +which we observe to affect ourselves. But however this may be, +they do vary somewhat, and unless they did, they would not in time have +come to be so widely different from each other as they now are. +The question is as to the origin and character of these variations.</p> +<p>We say they mainly originate in a creature through a sense of its +needs, and vary through the varying surroundings which will cause those +needs to vary, and through the opening up of new desires in many creatures, +as the consequence of the gratification of old ones; they depend greatly +on differences of individual capacity and temperament; they are communicated, +and in the course of time transmitted, as what we call hereditary habits +or structures, though these are only, in truth, intense and epitomised +memories of how certain creatures liked to deal with protoplasm. +The question whether this or that is really good or ill, is settled, +as the proof of the pudding by the eating thereof, <i>i.e</i>., by the +rigorous competitive examinations through which most living organisms +must pass. Mr. Darwin says that there is no good evidence in support +of any great principle, or tendency on the part of the creature itself, +which would steer variation, as it were, and keep its head straight, +but that the most marvellous adaptations of structures to needs are +simply the result of small and blind variations, accumulated by the +operation of “natural selection,” which is thus the main +cause of the origin of species.</p> +<p>Enough has perhaps already been said to make the reader feel that +the question wants reopening; I shall, therefore, here only remark that +we may assume no fundamental difference as regards intelligence, memory, +and sense of needs to exist between man and the lowest animals, and +that in man we do distinctly see a tendency towards progressive development, +operating through his power of profiting by and transmitting his experience, +but operating in directions which man cannot foresee for any long distance. +We also see this in many of the higher animals under domestication, +as with horses which have learnt to canter and dogs which point; more +especially we observe it along the line of latest development, where +equilibrium of settled convictions has not yet been fully attained. +One neither finds nor expects much <i>a priori</i> knowledge, whether +in man or beast; but one does find some little in the beginnings of, +and throughout the development of, every habit, at the commencement +of which, and on every successive improvement in which, deductive and +inductive methods are, as it were, fused. Thus the effect, where +we can best watch its causes, seems mainly produced by a desire for +a definite object - in some cases a serious and sensible desire, in +others an idle one, in others, again, a mistaken one; and sometimes +by a blunder which, in the hands of an otherwise able creature, has +turned up trumps. In wild animals and plants the divergences have +been accumulated, if they answered to the prolonged desires of the creature +itself, and if these desires were to its true ultimate good; with plants +or animals under domestication they have been accumulated if they answered +a little to the original wishes of the creature, and much, to the wishes +of man. As long as man continued to like them, they would be advantageous +to the creature; when he tired of them, they would be disadvantageous +to it, and would accumulate no longer. Surely the results produced +in the adaptation of structure to need among many plants and insects +are better accounted for on this, which I suppose to be Lamarck’s +view, namely, by supposing that what goes on amongst ourselves has gone +on amongst all creatures, than by supposing that these adaptations are +the results of perfectly blind and unintelligent variations.</p> +<p>Let me give two examples of such adaptations, taken from Mr. St. +George Mivart’s “Genesis of Species,” to which work +I would wish particularly to call the reader’s attention. +He should also read Mr. Darwin’s answers to Mr. Mivart (p. 176, +“Natural Selection,” ed. 1876, and onwards).</p> +<p>Mr. Mivart writes:-</p> +<p>“Some insects which imitate leaves extend the imitation even +to the very injuries on those leaves made by the attacks of insects +or fungi. Thus speaking of the walking-stick insects, Mr. Wallace +says, ‘One of these creatures obtained by myself in Borneo (<i>ceroxylus +laceratus</i>) was covered over with foliaceous excrescences of a clear +olive green colour, so as exactly to resemble a stick grown over by +a creeping moss or jungermannia. The Dyak who brought it me assured +me it was grown over with moss, though alive, and it was only after +a most minute examination that I could convince myself it was not so.’ +Again, as to the leaf butterfly, he says, ‘We come to a still +more extraordinary part of the imitation, for we find representations +of leaves in every stage of decay, variously blotched, and mildewed, +and pierced with holes, and in many cases irregularly covered with powdery +black dots, gathered into patches and spots so closely resembling the +various kinds of minute fungi that grow on dead leaves, that it is impossible +to avoid thinking at first sight that the butterflies themselves have +been attacked by real fungi.’”</p> +<p>I can no more believe that these artificial fungi in which the moth +arrays itself are due to the accumulation of minute, perfectly blind, +and unintelligent variations, than I can believe that the artificial +flowers which a woman wears in her hat can have got there without design; +or that a detective puts on plain clothes without the slightest intention +of making his victim think that he is not a policeman.</p> +<p>Again Mr. Mivart writes:-</p> +<p>“In the work just referred to (‘The Fertilisation of +Orchids’), Mr. Darwin gives a series of the most wonderful and +minute contrivances, by which the visits of insects are utilised for +the fertilisation of orchids - structures so wonderful that nothing +could well be more so, except the attribution of their origin to minute, +fortuitous, and indefinite variations.</p> +<p>“The instances are too numerous and too long to quote, but +in his ‘Origin of Species’ he describes two which must not +be passed over. In one (<i>coryanthes</i>) the orchid has its +lower lip enlarged into a bucket, above which stand two water-secreting +horns. These latter replenish the bucket, from which, when half-filled, +the water overflows by a spout on one side. Bees visiting the +flower fall into the bucket and crawl out at the spout. By the +peculiar arrangement of the parts of the flower, the first bee which +does so, carries away the pollen mass glued to his back, and then when +he has his next involuntary bath in another flower, as he crawls out, +the pollen attached to him comes in contact with the stigma of that +second flower and fertilises it. In the other example (<i>catasetum</i>), +when a bee gnaws a certain part of the flower, he inevitably touches +a long delicate projection which Mr. Darwin calls the ‘antenna.’ +‘This antenna transmits a vibration to a membrane which is instantly +ruptured; this sets free a spring by which the pollen mass is shot forth +like an arrow in the right direction, and adheres by its viscid extremity +to the back of the bee’” (“Genesis of Species,” +p. 63).</p> +<p>No one can tell a story so charmingly as Mr. Darwin, but I can no +more believe that all this has come about without design on the part +of the orchid, and a gradual perception of the advantages it is able +to take over the bee, and a righteous determination to enjoy them, than +I can believe that a mousetrap or a steam-engine is the result of the +accumulation of blind minute fortuitous variations in a creature called +man, which creature has never wanted either mousetraps or steam-engines, +but has had a sort of promiscuous tendency to make them, and was benefited +by making them, so that those of the race who had a tendency to make +them survived and left issue, which issue would thus naturally tend +to make more mousetraps and more steam-engines.</p> +<p>Pursuing this idea still further, can we for a moment believe that +these additions to our limbs - for this is what they are - have mainly +come about through the occasional birth of individuals, who, without +design on their own parts, nevertheless made them better or worse, and +who, accordingly, either survived and transmitted their improvement, +or perished, they and their incapacity together?</p> +<p>When I can believe in this, then - and not till then - can I believe +in an origin of species which does not resolve itself mainly into sense +of need, faith, intelligence, and memory. Then, and not till then, +can I believe that such organs as the eye and ear can have arisen in +any other way than as the result of that kind of mental ingenuity, and +of moral as well as physical capacity, without which, till then, I should +have considered such an invention as the steam-engine to be impossible.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER XIV - MR. MIVART AND MR. DARWIN</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>“A distinguished zoologist, Mr. St. George Mivart,” writes +Mr. Darwin, “has recently collected all the objections which have +ever been advanced by myself and others against the theory of natural +selection, as propounded by Mr. Wallace and myself, and has illustrated +them with admirable art and force (“Natural Selection,” +p. 176, ed. 1876). I have already referred the reader to Mr. Mivart’s +work, but quote the above passage as showing that Mr. Mivart will not, +probably, be found to have left much unsaid that would appear to make +against Mr. Darwin’s theory. It is incumbent upon me both +to see how far Mr. Mivart’s objections are weighty as against +Mr. Darwin, and also whether or not they tell with equal force against +the view which I am myself advocating. I will therefore touch +briefly upon the most important of them, with the purpose of showing +that they are serious as against the doctrine that small fortuitous +variations are the origin of species, but that they have no force against +evolution as guided by intelligence and memory.</p> +<p>But before doing this, I would demur to the words used by Mr. Darwin, +and just quoted above, namely, “the theory of natural selection.” +I imagine that I see in them the fallacy which I believe to run through +almost all Mr. Darwin’s work, namely, that “natural selection” +is a theory (if, indeed, it can be a theory at all), in some way accounting +for the origin of variation, and so of species - “natural selection,” +as we have already seen, being unable to “induce variability,” +and being only able to accumulate what - on the occasion of each successive +variation, and so during the whole process - must have been originated +by something else.</p> +<p>Again, Mr. Darwin writes - “In considering the origin of species +it is quite conceivable that a naturalist, reflecting on the mutual +affinities of organic beings, or their embryological relations, their +geographical distribution, geological succession, and other such facts, +might come to the conclusion that species had not been independently +created, but had descended, like varieties from other species. +Nevertheless, such a conclusion, even if well founded, would be unsatisfactory, +until it could be shown how the innumerable species inhabiting this +world had been modified, so as to acquire that perfection of structure +and co-adaptation which justly excites our admiration” (“Origin +of Species,” p. 2, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>After reading the above we feel that nothing more satisfactory could +be desired. We are sure that we are in the hands of one who can +indeed tell us “how the innumerable species inhabiting this world +have been modified,” and we are no less sure that though others +may have written upon the subject before, there has been, as yet, no +satisfactory explanation put forward of the grand principle upon which +modification has proceeded. Then follows a delightful volume, +with facts upon facts concerning animals, all showing that species is +due to successive small modifications accumulated in the course of nature. +But one cannot suppose that Lamarck ever doubted this; for he can never +have meant to say, that a low form of life made itself into an elephant +at one or two great bounds; and if he did not mean this, he must have +meant that it made itself into an elephant through the accumulation +of small successive modifications; these, he must have seen, were capable +of accumulation in the scheme of nature, though he may not have dwelt +on the manner in which this is accomplished, inasmuch as it is obviously +a matter of secondary importance in comparison with the origin of the +variations themselves. We believe, however, throughout Mr. Darwin’s +book, that we are being told what we expected to be told; and so convinced +are we, by the facts adduced, that in some way or other evolution must +be true, and so grateful are we for being allowed to think this, that +we put down the volume without perceiving that, whereas Lamarck <i>did</i> +adduce a great and general cause of variation, the insufficiency of +which, in spite of errors of detail, has yet to be shown, Mr. Darwin’s +main cause of variation resolves itself into a confession of ignorance.</p> +<p>This, however, should detract but little from our admiration for +Mr. Darwin’s achievement. Any one can make people see a +thing if he puts it in the right way, but Mr. Darwin made us see evolution, +in spite of his having put it, in what seems to not a few, an exceedingly +mistaken way. Yet his triumph is complete, for no matter how much +any one now moves the foundation, he cannot shake the superstructure, +which has become so currently accepted as to be above the need of any +support from reason, and to be as difficult to destroy as it was originally +difficult of construction. Less than twenty years ago, we never +met with, or heard of, any one who accepted evolution; we did not even +know that such a doctrine had been ever broached; unless it was that +some one now and again said that there was a very dreadful book going +about like a rampant lion, called “Vestiges of Creation,” +whereon we said that we would on no account read it, lest it should +shake our faith; then we would shake our heads and talk of the preposterous +folly and wickedness of such shallow speculations. Had not the +book of Genesis been written for our learning? Yet, now, who seriously +disputes the main principles of evolution? I cannot believe that +there is a bishop on the bench at this moment who does not accept them; +even the “holy priests” themselves bless evolution as their +predecessors blessed Cleopatra - when they ought not. It is not +he who first conceives an idea, nor he who sets it on its legs and makes +it go on all fours, but he who makes other people accept the main conclusion, +whether on right grounds or on wrong ones, who has done the greatest +work as regards the promulgation of an opinion. And this is what +Mr. Darwin has done for evolution. He has made us think that we +know the origin of species, and so of genera, in spite of his utmost +efforts to assure us that we know nothing of the causes from which the +vast majority of modifications have arisen - that is to say, he has +made us think we know the whole road, though he has almost ostentatiously +blindfolded us at every step of the journey. But to the end of +time, if the question be asked, “Who taught people to believe +in evolution?” there can only be one answer - that it was Mr. +Darwin.</p> +<p>Mr. Mivart urges with much force the difficulty of <i>starting</i> +any modification on which “natural selection” is to work, +and of getting a creature to vary in any definite direction. Thus, +after quoting from Mr. Wallace some of the wonderful cases of “mimicry” +which are to be found among insects, he writes:-</p> +<p>“Now, let us suppose that the ancestors of these various animals +were all destitute of the very special protection they at present possess, +as on the Darwinian hypothesis we must do. Let it be also conceded +that small deviations from the antecedent colouring or form would tend +to make some of their ancestors escape destruction, by causing them +more or less frequently to be passed over or mistaken by their persecutors. +Yet the deviation must, as the event has shown, in each case, be in +some definite direction, whether it be towards some other animal or +plant, or towards some dead or inorganic matter. But as, according +to Mr. Darwin’s theory, there is a constant tendency to indefinite +variation, and as the minute incipient variations will be <i>in all +directions</i>, they must tend to neutralise each other, and at first +to form such unstable modifications, that it is difficult, if not impossible, +to see how such indefinite modifications of insignificant beginnings +can ever build up a sufficiently appreciable resemblance to a leaf, +bamboo, or other object for “natural selection,” to seize +upon and perpetuate. This difficulty is augmented when we consider +- a point to be dwelt upon hereafter - how necessary it is that many +individuals should be similarly modified simultaneously. This +has been insisted on in an able article in the ‘North British +Review’ for June 1867, p. 286, and the consideration of the article +has occasioned Mr. Darwin” (“Origin of Species,” 5th +ed., p. 104) “to make an important modification in his views (“Genesis +of Species,” p. 38).</p> +<p>To this Mr. Darwin rejoins:-</p> +<p>“But in all the foregoing cases the insects in their original +state, no doubt, presented some rude and accidental resemblance to an +object commonly found in the stations frequented by them. Nor +is this improbable, considering the almost infinite number of surrounding +objects, and the diversity of form and colour of the host of insects +that exist” (“Natural Selection,” p. 182, ed. 1876).</p> +<p>Mr. Mivart has just said: “It is difficult to see how such +indefinite modifications of insignificant beginnings <i>can ever build +up a sufficiently appreciable resemblance to a leaf, bamboo, or other +object, for</i> ‘<i>natural selection</i>’ <i>to work upon</i>.”</p> +<p>The answer is, that “natural selection” did not begin +to work <i>until, from unknown causes, an appreciable resemblance had +nevertheless been presented</i>. I think the reader will agree +with me that the development of the lowest life into a creature which +bears even “a rude resemblance” to the objects commonly +found in the station in which it is moving in its present differentiation, +requires more explanation than is given by the word “accidental.”</p> +<p>Mr. Darwin continues: “As some rude resemblance is necessary +for the first start,” &c.; and a little lower he writes: “Assuming +that an insect originally happened to resemble in some degree a dead +twig or a decayed leaf, and that it varied slightly in many ways, then +all the variations which rendered the insect at all more like any such +object, and thus favoured its escape, would be preserved, while other +variations would be neglected, and ultimately lost, or if they rendered +the insect at all less like the imitated object, they would be eliminated.”</p> +<p>But here, again, we are required to begin with Natural Selection +when the work is already in great part done, owing to causes about which +we are left completely in the dark; we may, I think, fairly demur to +the insects <i>originally</i> happening to resemble in some degree a +dead twig or a decayed leaf. And when we bear in mind that the +variations, being supposed by Mr. Darwin to be indefinite, or devoid +of aim, will appear in every direction, we cannot forget what Mr. Mivart +insists upon, namely, that the chances of many favourable variations +being counteracted by other unfavourable ones in the same creature are +not inconsiderable. Nor, again, is it likely that the favourable +variation would make its mark upon the race, and escape being absorbed +in the course of a few generations, unless - as Mr. Mivart elsewhere +points out, in a passage to which I shall call the reader’s attention +presently - a larger number of similarly varying creatures made their +appearance at the same time than there seems sufficient reason to anticipate, +if the variations can be called fortuitous.</p> +<p>“There would,” continues Mr. Darwin, “indeed be +force in Mr. Mivart’s objection if we were to attempt to account +for the above resemblances, independently of ‘natural selection,’ +through mere fluctuating variability; but as the case stands, there +is none.”</p> +<p>This comes to saying that, if there was no power in nature which +operates so that of all the many fluctuating variations, those only +are preserved which tend to the resemblance which is beneficial to the +creature, then indeed there would be difficulty in understanding how +the resemblance could have come about; but that as there is a beneficial +resemblance to start with, and as there is a power in nature which would +preserve and accumulate further beneficial resemblance, should it arise +from this cause or that, the difficulty is removed. But Mr. Mivart +does not, I take it, deny the existence of such a power in nature, as +Mr. Darwin supposes, though, if I understand him rightly, he does not +see that its operation <i>upon small fortuitous variations</i> is at +all the simple and obvious process, which on a superficial view of the +case it would appear to be. He thinks - and I believe the reader +will agree with him - that this process is too slow and too risky. +What he wants to know is, how the insect came even rudely to resemble +the object, and how, if its variations are indefinite, we are ever to +get into such a condition as to be able to report progress, owing to +the constant liability of the creature which has varied favourably, +to play the part of Penelope and undo its work, by varying in some one +of the infinite number of other directions which are open to it - all +of which, except this one, tend to destroy the resemblance, and yet +may be in some other respect even more advantageous to the creature, +and so tend to its preservation. Moreover, here, too, I think +(though I cannot be sure), we have a recurrence of the original fallacy +in the words - “If we were to account for the above resemblances, +independently of ‘natural selection,’ through mere fluctuating +variability.” Surely Mr. Darwin does, after all, “account +for the resemblances through mere fluctuating variability,” for +“natural selection” does not account for one single variation +in the whole list of them from first to last, other than indirectly, +as shewn in the preceding chapter.</p> +<p>It is impossible for me to continue this subject further; but I would +beg the reader to refer to other paragraphs in the neighbourhood of +the one just quoted, in which he may - though I do not think he will +- see reason to think that I should have given Mr. Darwin’s answer +more fully. I do not quote Mr. Darwin’s next paragraph, +inasmuch as I see no great difficulty about “the last touches +of perfection in mimicry,” provided Mr. Darwin’s theory +will account for any mimicry at all. If it could do this, it might +as well do more; but a strong impression is left on my mind, that without +the help of something over and above the power to vary, which should +give a definite aim to variations, all the “natural selection” +in the world would not have prevented stagnation and self-stultification, +owing to the indefinite tendency of the variations, which thus could +not have developed either a preyer or a preyee, but would have gone +round and round and round the primordial cell till they were weary of +it.</p> +<p>As against Mr. Darwin, therefore, I think that the objection just +given from Mr. Mivart is fatal. I believe, also, that the reader +will feel the force of it much more strongly if he will turn to Mr. +Mivart’s own pages. Against the view which I am myself supporting, +the objection breaks down entirely, for grant “a little dose of +judgement and reason” on the part of the creature itself - grant +also continued personality and memory - and a definite tendency is at +once given to the variations. The process is thus started, and +is kept straight, and helped forward through every stage by “the +little dose of reason,” &c., which enabled it to take its +first step. We are, in fact, no longer without a helm, but can +steer each creature that is so discontented with its condition, as to +make a serious effort to better itself, into <i>some</i> - and into +a very distant - harbour.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>It has been objected against Mr. Darwin’s theory that if all +species and genera have come to differ through the accumulation of minute +but - as a general rule - fortuitous variations, there has not been +time enough, so far as we are able to gather, for the evolution of all +existing forms by so slow a process. On this subject I would again +refer the reader to Mr. Mivart’s book, from which I take the following:-</p> +<p>“Sir William Thompson has lately advanced arguments from three +distinct lines of inquiry agreeing in one approximate result. +The three lines of inquiry are - (1) the action of the tides upon the +earth’s rotation; (2) the probable length of time during which +the sun has illuminated this planet; and (3) the temperature of the +interior of the earth. The result arrived at by these investigations +is a conclusion that the existing state of things on the earth, life +on the earth, all geological history showing continuity of life, must +be limited within some such period of past time as one hundred million +years. The first question which suggests itself, supposing Sir +W. Thompson’s views to be correct, is: Has this period been anything +like enough for the evolution of all organic forms by ‘natural +selection’? The second is: Has the period been anything +like enough for the deposition of the strata which must have been deposited +if all organic forms have been evolved by minute steps, according to +the Darwinian theory?” (“Genesis of Species,” +p. 154).</p> +<p>Mr. Mivart then quotes from Mr. Murphy - whose work I have not seen +- the following passage:-</p> +<p>“Darwin justly mentions the greyhound as being equal to any +natural species in the perfect co-ordination of its parts, ‘all +adapted for extreme fleetness and for running down weak prey.’ +Yet it is an artificial species (and not physiologically a species at +all) formed by a long-continued selection under domestication; and there +is no reason to suppose that any of the variations which have been selected +to form it have been other than gradual and almost imperceptible. +Suppose that it has taken five hundred years to form the greyhound out +of his wolf-like ancestor. This is a mere guess, but it gives +the order of magnitude. Now, if so, how long would it take to +obtain an elephant from a protozoon or even from a tadpole-like fish? +Ought it not to take much more than a million times as long?” +(“Genesis of Species,” p. 155).</p> +<p>I should be very sorry to pronounce any opinion upon the foregoing +data; but a general impression is left upon my mind, that if the differences +between an elephant and a tadpole-like fish have arisen from the accumulation +of small variations that have had no direction given them by intelligence +and sense of needs, then no time conceivable by man would suffice for +their development. But grant “a little dose of reason and +judgement,” even to animals low down in the scale of nature, and +grant this, not only during their later life, but during their embryological +existence, and see with what infinitely greater precision of aim and +with what increased speed the variations would arise. Evolution +entirely unaided by inherent intelligence must be a very slow, if not +quite inconceivable, process. Evolution helped by intelligence +would still be slow, but not so desperately slow. One can conceive +that there has been sufficient time for the second, but one cannot conceive +it for the first.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>I find from Mr. Mivart that objection has been taken to Mr. Darwin’s +views, on account of the great odds that exist against the appearance +of any given variation at one and the same time, in a sufficient number +of individuals, to prevent its being obliterated almost as soon as produced +by the admixture of unvaried blood which would so greatly preponderate +around it; and indeed the necessity for a nearly simultaneous and similar +variation, or readiness so to vary on the part of many individuals, +seems almost a postulate for evolution at all. On this subject +Mr. Mivart writes:-</p> +<p>“The ‘North British Review’ (speaking of the supposition +that species is changed by the survival of a few individuals in a century +through a similar and favourable variation) says -</p> +<p>“‘It is very difficult to see how this can be accomplished, +even when the variation is eminently favourable indeed; and still more, +when the advantage gained is very slight, as must generally be the case. +The advantage, whatever it may be, is utterly outbalanced by numerical +inferiority. A million creatures are born; ten thousand survive +to produce offspring. One of the million has twice as good a chance +as any other of surviving, but the chances are fifty to one against +the gifted individuals being one of the hundred survivors. No +doubt the chances are twice as great against any other individual, but +this does not prevent their being enormously in favour of <i>some</i> +average individual. However slight the advantage may be, if it +is shared by half the individuals produced, it will probably be present +in at least fifty-one of the survivors, and in a larger proportion of +their offspring; but the chances are against the preservation of any +one “sport” (<i>i.e</i>., sudden marked variation) in a +numerous tribe. The vague use of an imperfectly-understood doctrine +of chance, has led Darwinian supporters, first, to confuse the two cases +above distinguished, and secondly, to imagine that a very slight balance +in favour of some individual sport must lead to its perpetuation. +All that can be said is that in the above example the favoured sport +would be preserved once in fifty times. Let us consider what will +be its influence on the main stock when preserved. It will breed +and have a progeny of say 100; now this progeny will, on the whole, +be intermediate between the average individual and the sport. +The odds in favour of one of this generation of the new breed will be, +say one and a half to one, as compared with the average individual; +the odds in their favour will, therefore, be less than that of their +parents; but owing to their greater number the chances are that about +one and a half of them would survive. Unless these breed together +- a most improbable event - their progeny would again approach the average +individual; there would be 150 of them, and their superiority would +be, say in the ratio of one and a quarter to one; the probability would +now be that nearly two of them would survive, and have 200 children +with an eighth superiority. Rather more than two of these would +survive; but the superiority would again dwindle; until after a few +generations it would no longer be observed, and would count for no more +in the struggle for life than any of the hundred trifling advantages +which occur in the ordinary organs.</p> +<p>“‘An illustration will bring this conception home. +Suppose a white man to have been wrecked on an island inhabited by negroes, +and to have established himself in friendly relations with a powerful +tribe, whose customs he has learnt. Suppose him to possess the +physical strength, energy, and ability of a dominant white race, and +let the food of the island suit his constitution; grant him every advantage +which we can conceive a white to possess over the native; concede that +in the struggle for existence, his chance of a long life will be much +superior to that of the native chiefs; yet from all these admissions +there does not follow the conclusion, that after a limited or unlimited +number of generations, the inhabitants of the island will be white. +Our shipwrecked hero would probably become king; he would kill a great +many blacks in the struggle for existence; he would have a great many +wives and children . . . In the first generation there will be some +dozens of intelligent young mulattoes, much superior in average intelligence +to the negroes. We might expect the throne for some generations +to be occupied by a more or less yellow king; but can any one believe +that the whole island will gradually acquire a white, or even a yellow +population? . . . Darwin says, that in the struggle for life a grain +may turn the balance in favour of a given structure, which will then +be preserved. But one of the weights in the scale of nature is +due to the number of a given tribe. Let there be 7000 A’s +and 7000 B’s representing two varieties of a given animal, and +let all the B’s, in virtue of a slight difference of structure, +have the better chance by one-thousandth part. We must allow that +there is a slight probability that the descendants of B will supplant +the descendants of A; but let there be 7001 A’s against 7000 B’s +at first, and the chances are once more equal, while if there be 7002 +A’s to start, the odds would be laid on the A’s. Thus +they stand a greater chance of being killed; but, then, they can better +afford to be killed. The grain will only turn the scales when +these are very nicely balanced, and an advantage in numbers counts for +weight, even as an advantage in structure. As the numbers of the +favoured variety diminish, so must its relative advantages increase, +if the chance of its existence is to surpass the chance of its extinction, +until hardly any conceivable advantage would enable the descendants +of a single pair to exterminate the descendants of many thousands, if +they and their descendants are supposed to breed freely with the inferior +variety, and so gradually lose their ascendancy,’” (“North +British Review,” June 1867, p. 286 “Genesis of Species,” +p. 64, and onwards).</p> +<p>Against this it should be remembered that there is always an antecedent +probability that several specimens of a given variation would appear +at one time and place. This would probably be the case even on +Mr. Darwin’s hypothesis, that the variations are fortuitous; if +they are mainly guided by sense of need and intelligence, it would almost +certainly be so, for all would have much the same idea as to their well-being, +and the same cause which would lead one to vary in this direction would +lead not a few others to do so at the same time, or to follow suit. +Thus we see that many human ideas and inventions have been conceived +independently but simultaneously. The chances, moreover, of specimens +that have varied successfully, intermarrying, are, I think, greater +than the reviewer above quoted from would admit. I believe that +on the hypothesis that the variations are fortuitous, and certainly +on the supposition that they are intelligent, they might be looked for +in members of the same family, who would hence have a better chance +of finding each other out. Serious as is the difficulty advanced +by the reviewer as against Mr. Darwin’s theory, it may be in great +measure parried without departing from Mr. Darwin’s own position, +but the “little dose of judgement and reason” removes it, +absolutely and entirely. As for the reviewer’s shipwrecked +hero, surely the reviewer must know that Mr. Darwin would no more expect +an island of black men to be turned white, or even perceptibly whitened +after a few generations, than the reviewer himself would do so. +But if we turn from what “might” or what “would” +happen to what “does” happen, we find that a few white families +have nearly driven the Indian from the United States, the Australian +natives from Australia, and the Maories from New Zealand. True, +these few families have been helped by immigration; but it will be admitted +that this has only accelerated a result which would otherwise, none +the less surely, have been effected.</p> +<p>There is all the difference between a sudden sport, or even a variety +introduced from a foreign source, and the gradual, intelligent, and, +in the main, steady, growth of a race towards ends always a little, +but not much, in advance of what it can at present compass, until it +has reached equilibrium with its surroundings. So far as Mr. Darwin’s +variations are of the nature of “sport,” <i>i.e</i>., rare, +and owing to nothing that we can in the least assign to any known cause, +the reviewer’s objections carry much weight. Against the +view here advocated, they are powerless.</p> +<p>I cannot here go into the difficulties of the geologic record, but +they too will, I believe, be felt to be almost infinitely simplified +by supposing the development of structure and instinct to be guided +by intelligence and memory, which, even under unstable conditions, would +be able to meet in some measure the demands made upon them.</p> +<p>When Mr. Mivart deals with evolution and ethics, I am afraid that +I differ from him even more widely than I have done from Mr. Darwin. +He writes (“Genesis of Species,” p. 234): “That ‘natural +selection’ could not have produced from the sensations of pleasure +and pain experienced by brutes a higher degree of morality than was +useful; therefore it could have produced any amount of ‘beneficial +habits,’ but not abhorrence of certain acts as impure and sinful.”</p> +<p>Possibly “natural selection” may not be able to do much +in the way of accumulating variations that do not arise; but that, according +to the views supported in this volume, all that is highest and most +beautiful in the soul, as well as in the body, could be, and has been, +developed from beings lower than man, I do not greatly doubt. +Mr. Mivart and myself should probably differ as to what is and what +is not beautiful. Thus he writes of “the noble virtue of +a Marcus Aurelius” (p. 235), than whom, for my own part, I know +few respectable figures in history to whom I am less attracted. +I cannot but think that Mr. Mivart has taken his estimate of this emperor +at second-hand, and without reference to the writings which happily +enable us to form a fair estimate of his real character.</p> +<p>Take the opening paragraphs of the “Thoughts” of Marcus +Aurelius, as translated by Mr. Long:-</p> +<p>“From the reputation and remembrance of my father [I learned] +modesty and a manly character; from my mother, piety and beneficence, +abstinence not only from evil deeds, but even from evil thoughts. . +. . From my great-grandfather, not to have frequented public schools, +and to have had good teachers at home, and to know that on such things +a man should spend liberally . . . From Diognetus . . . [I learned] +to have become intimate with philosophy, . . . and to have written dialogues +in my youth, and to have desired a plank bed and skin, and whatever +else of the kind belongs to the Greek discipline. . . . From Rusticus +I received the impression that my character required improvement and +discipline;” and so on to the end of the chapter, near which, +however, it is right to say that there appears a redeeming touch, in +so far as that he thanks the gods that he could not write poetry, and +that he had never occupied himself about the appearance of things in +the heavens.</p> +<p>Or, again, opening Mr. Long’s translation at random I find +(p. 37):-</p> +<p>“As physicians have always their instruments and knives ready +for cases which suddenly require their skill, so do thou have principles +ready for the understanding of things divine and human, and for doing +everything, even the smallest, with a recollection of the bond that +unites the divine and human to one another. For neither wilt thou +do anything well which pertains to man without at the same time having +a reference to things divine; nor the contrary.”</p> +<p>Unhappy one! No wonder the Roman empire went to pieces soon +after him. If I remember rightly, he established and subsidised +professorships in all parts of his dominions. Whereon the same +befell the arts and literature of Rome as befell Italian painting after +the Academic system had taken root at Bologna under the Caracci. +Mr. Martin Tupper, again, is an amiable and well-meaning man, but we +should hardly like to see him in Lord Beaconsfield’s place. +The Athenians poisoned Socrates; and Aristophanes - than whom few more +profoundly religious men have ever been born - did not, so far as we +can gather, think the worse of his countrymen on that account. +It is not improbable that if they had poisoned Plato too, Aristophanes +would have been well enough pleased; but I think he would have preferred +either of these two men to Marcus Aurelius.</p> +<p>I know nothing about the loving but manly devotion of a St. Lewis, +but I strongly suspect that Mr. Mivart has taken him, too, upon hearsay.</p> +<p>On the other hand, among dogs we find examples of every heroic quality, +and of all that is most perfectly charming to us in man.</p> +<p>As for the possible development of the more brutal human natures +from the more brutal instincts of the lower animals, those who read +a horrible story told in a note, pp. 233, 234 of Mr. Mivart’s +“Genesis of Species,” will feel no difficulty on that score. +I must admit, however, that the telling of that story seems to me to +be a mistake in a philosophical work, which should not, I think, unless +under compulsion, deal either with the horrors of the French Revolution +- or of the Spanish or Italian Inquisition.</p> +<p>For the rest of Mr. Mivart’s objections, I must refer the reader +to his own work. I have been unable to find a single one, which +I do not believe to be easily met by the Lamarckian view, with the additions +(if indeed they are additions, for I must own to no very profound knowledge +of what Lamarck did or did not say), which I have in this volume proposed +to make to it. At the same time I admit, that as against the Darwinian +view, many of them seem quite unanswerable.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>CHAPTER XV - CONCLUDING REMARKS</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>Here, then, I leave my case, though well aware that I have crossed +the threshold only of my subject. My work is of a tentative character, +put before the public as a sketch or design for a, possibly, further +endeavour, in which I hope to derive assistance from the criticisms +which this present volume may elicit. Such as it is, however, +for the present I must leave it.</p> +<p>We have seen that we cannot do anything thoroughly till we can do +it unconsciously, and that we cannot do anything unconsciously till +we can do it thoroughly; this at first seems illogical; but logic and +consistency are luxuries for the gods, and the lower animals, only. +Thus a boy cannot really know how to swim till he can swim, but he cannot +swim till he knows how to swim. Conscious effort is but the process +of rubbing off the rough corners from these two contradictory statements, +till they eventually fit into one another so closely that it is impossible +to disjoin them.</p> +<p>Whenever, therefore, we see any creature able to go through any complicated +and difficult process with little or no effort - whether it be a bird +building her nest, or a hen’s egg making itself into a chicken, +or an ovum turning itself into a baby - we may conclude that the creature +has done the same thing on a very great number of past occasions.</p> +<p>We found the phenomena exhibited by heredity to be so like those +of memory, and to be so utterly inexplicable on any other supposition, +that it was easier to suppose them due to memory in spite of the fact +that we cannot remember having recollected, than to believe that because +we cannot so remember, therefore the phenomena cannot be due to memory.</p> +<p>We were thus led to consider “personal identity,” in +order to see whether there was sufficient reason for denying that the +experience, which we must have clearly gained somewhere, was gained +by us when we were in the persons of our forefathers; we found, not +without surprise, that unless we admitted that it might be so gained, +in so far as that we once <i>actually were</i> our remotest ancestor, +we must change our ideas concerning personality altogether.</p> +<p>We therefore assumed that the phenomena of heredity, whether as regards +instinct or structure were mainly due to memory of past experiences, +accumulated and fused till they had become automatic, or quasi automatic, +much in the same way as after a long life -</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>. . “Old experience do attain<br />To something like +prophetic strain.”</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>After dealing with certain phenomena of memory, but more especially +with its abeyance and revival, we inquired what the principal corresponding +phenomena of life and species should be, on the hypothesis that they +were mainly due to memory.</p> +<p>I think I may say that we found the hypothesis fit in with actual +facts in a sufficiently satisfactory manner. We found not a few +matters, as, for example, the sterility of hybrids, the phenomena of +old age, and puberty as generally near the end of development, explain +themselves with more completeness than I have yet heard of their being +explained on any other hypothesis.</p> +<p>We considered the most important difficulty in the way of instinct +as hereditary habit, namely, the structure and instincts of neuter insects; +these are very unlike those of their parents, and cannot apparently +be transmitted to offspring by individuals of the previous generation, +in whom such structure and instincts appeared, inasmuch as these creatures +are sterile. I do not say that the difficulty is wholly removed, +inasmuch as some obscurity must be admitted to remain as to the manner +in which the structure of the larva is aborted; this obscurity is likely +to remain till we know more of the early history of civilisation among +bees than I can find that we know at present; but I believe the difficulty +was reduced to such proportions as to make it little likely to be felt +in comparison with that of attributing instinct to any other cause than +inherited habit, or inherited habit modified by changed conditions.</p> +<p>We then inquired what was the great principle underlying variation, +and answered, with Lamarck, that it must be “sense of need;” +and though not without being haunted by suspicion of a vicious circle, +and also well aware that we were not much nearer the origin of life +than when we started, we still concluded that here was the truest origin +of species, and hence of genera; and that the accumulation of variations, +which in time amounted to specific and generic differences, was due +to intelligence and memory on the part of the creature varying, rather +than to the operation of what Mr. Darwin has called “natural selection.” +At the same time we admitted that the course of nature is very much +as Mr. Darwin has represented it, in this respect, in so far as that +there is a struggle for existence, and that the weaker must go to the +wall. But we denied that this part of the course of nature would +lead to much, if any, accumulation of variation, unless the variation +was directed mainly by intelligent sense of need, with continued personality +and memory.</p> +<p>We conclude, therefore, that the small, structureless, impregnate +ovum from which we have each one of us sprung, has a potential recollection +of all that has happened to each one of its ancestors prior to the period +at which any such ancestor has issued from the bodies of its progenitors +- provided, that is to say, a sufficiently deep, or sufficiently often-repeated, +impression has been made to admit of its being remembered at all.</p> +<p>Each step of normal development will lead the impregnate ovum up +to, and remind it of, its next ordinary course of action, in the same +way as we, when we recite a well-known passage, are led up to each successive +sentence by the sentence which has immediately preceded it.</p> +<p>And for this reason, namely, that as it takes two people “to +tell” a thing - a speaker and a comprehending listener, without +which last, though much may have been said, there has been nothing told +- so also it takes two people, as it were, to “remember” +a thing - the creature remembering, and the surroundings of the creature +at the time it last remembered. Hence, though the ovum immediately +after impregnation is instinct with all the memories of both parents, +not one of these memories can normally become active till both the ovum +itself, and its surroundings, are sufficiently like what they respectively +were, when the occurrence now to be remembered last took place. +The memory will then immediately return, and the creature will do as +it did on the last occasion that it was in like case as now. This +ensures that similarity of order shall be preserved in all the stages +of development, in successive generations.</p> +<p>Life, then, is faith founded upon experience, which experience is +in its turn founded upon faith - or more simply, it is memory. +Plants and animals only differ from one another because they remember +different things; plants and animals only grow up in the shapes they +assume because this shape is their memory, their idea concerning their +own past history.</p> +<p>Hence the term “Natural History,” as applied to the different +plants and animals around us. For surely the study of natural +history means only the study of plants and animals themselves, which, +at the moment of using the words “Natural History,” we assume +to be the most important part of nature.</p> +<p>A living creature well supported by a mass of healthy ancestral memory +is a young and growing creature, free from ache or pain, and thoroughly +acquainted with its business so far, but with much yet to be reminded +of. A creature which finds itself and its surroundings not so +unlike those of its parents about the time of their begetting it, as +to be compelled to recognise that it never yet was in any such position, +is a creature in the heyday of life. A creature which begins to +be aware of itself is one which is beginning to recognise that the situation +is a new one.</p> +<p>It is the young and fair, then, who are the truly old and the truly +experienced; it is they who alone have a trustworthy memory to guide +them; they alone know things as they are, and it is from them that, +as we grow older, we must study if we would still cling to truth. +The whole charm of youth lies in its advantage over age in respect of +experience, and where this has for some reason failed, or been misapplied, +the charm is broken. When we say that we are getting old, we should +say rather that we are getting new or young, and are suffering from +inexperience, which drives us into doing things which we do not understand, +and lands us, eventually, in the utter impotence of death. The +kingdom of heaven is the kingdom of little children.</p> +<p>A living creature bereft of all memory dies. If bereft of a +great part of memory, it swoons or sleeps; and when its memory returns, +we say it has returned to life.</p> +<p>Life and death, then, should be memory and forgetfulness, for we +are dead to all that we have forgotten.</p> +<p>Life is that property of matter whereby it can remember. Matter +which can remember is living; matter which cannot remember is dead.</p> +<p><i>Life, then, is memory</i>. The life of a creature is the +memory of a creature. We are all the same stuff to start with, +but we remember different things, and if we did not remember different +things we should be absolutely like each other. As for the stuff +itself of which we are made, we know nothing <br />save only that it +is “such as dreams are made of.”</p> +<p>I am aware that there are many expressions throughout this book, +which are not scientifically accurate. Thus I imply that we tend +towards the centre of the earth, when, I believe, I should say we tend +towards to the centre of gravity of the earth. I speak of “the +primordial cell,” when I mean only the earliest form of life, +and I thus not only assume a single origin of life when there is no +necessity for doing so, and perhaps no evidence to this effect, but +I do so in spite of the fact that the amœba, which seems to be +“the simplest form of life,” does not appear to be a cell +at all. I have used the word “beget,” of what, I am +told, is asexual generation, whereas the word should be confined to +sexual generation only. Many more such errors have been pointed +out to me, and I doubt not that a larger number remain of which I know +nothing now, but of which I may perhaps be told presently.</p> +<p>I did not, however, think that in a work of this description the +additional words which would have been required for scientific accuracy +were worth the paper and ink and loss of breadth which their introduction +would entail. Besides, I know nothing about science, and it is +as well that there should be no mistake on this head; I neither know, +nor want to know, more detail than is necessary to enable me to give +a fairly broad and comprehensive view of my subject. When for +the purpose of giving this, a matter importunately insisted on being +made out, I endeavoured to make it out as well as I could; otherwise +- that is to say, if it did not insist on being looked into, in spite +of a good deal of snubbing, I held that, as it was blurred and indistinct +in nature, I had better so render it in my work.</p> +<p>Nevertheless, if one has gone for some time through a wood full of +burrs, some of them are bound to stick. I am afraid that I have +left more such burrs in one part and another of my book, than the kind +of reader whom I alone wish to please will perhaps put up with. +Fortunately, this kind of reader is the best-natured critic in the world, +and is long suffering of a good deal that the more consciously scientific +will not tolerate; I wish, however, that I had not used such expressions +as “centres of thought and action” quite so often.</p> +<p>As for the kind of inaccuracy already alluded to, my reader will +not, I take it, as a general rule, know, or wish to know, much more +about science than I do, sometimes perhaps even less; so that he and +I shall commonly be wrong in the same places, and our two wrongs will +make a sufficiently satisfactory right for practical purposes.</p> +<p>Of course, if I were a specialist writing a treatise or primer on +such and such a point of detail, I admit that scientific accuracy would +be <i>de rigueur</i>; but I have been trying to paint a picture rather +than to make a diagram, and I claim the painter’s license “<i>quidlibet +audendi</i>.” I have done my utmost to give the spirit of +my subject, but if the letter interfered with the spirit, I have sacrificed +it without remorse.</p> +<p>May not what is commonly called a scientific subject have artistic +value which it is a pity to neglect? But if a subject is to be +treated artistically - that is to say, with a desire to consider not +only the facts, but the way in which the reader will feel concerning +those facts, and the way in which he will wish to see them rendered, +thus making his mind a factor of the intention, over and above the subject +itself - then the writer must not be denied a painter’s license. +If one is painting a hillside at a sufficient distance, and cannot see +whether it is covered with chestnut-trees or walnuts, one is not bound +to go across the valley to see. If one is painting a city, it +is not necessary that one should know the names of the streets. +If a house or tree stands inconveniently for one’s purpose, it +must go without more ado; if two important features, neither of which +can be left out, want a little bringing together or separating before +the spirit of the place can be well given, they must be brought together, +or separated. Which is a more truthful view, of Shrewsbury, for +example, from a spot where St. Alkmund’s spire is in parallax +with St. Mary’s - a view which should give only the one spire +which can be seen, or one which should give them both, although the +one is hidden? There would be, I take it, more representation +in the misrepresentation than in the representation - “the half +would be greater than the whole,” unless, that is to say, one +expressly told the spectator that St. Alkmund’s spire was hidden +behind St. Mary’s - a sort of explanation which seldom adds to +the poetical value of any work of art. Do what one may, and no +matter how scientific one may be, one cannot attain absolute truth. +The question is rather, how do people like to have their error? than, +will they go without any error at all? All truth and no error +cannot be given by the scientist more than by the artist; each has to +sacrifice truth in one way or another; and even if perfect truth could +be given, it is doubtful whether it would not resolve itself into unconsciousness +pure and simple, consciousness being, as it were, the clash of small +conflicting perceptions, without which there is neither intelligence +nor recollection possible. It is not, then, what a man has said, +nor what he has put down with actual paint upon his canvass, which speaks +to us with living language - <i>it is what he has thought to us</i> +(as is so well put in the letter quoted on page 83), by which our opinion +should be guided; - what has he made us feel that he had it in him, +and wished to do? If he has said or painted enough to make us +feel that he meant and felt as we should wish him to have done, he has +done the utmost that man can hope to do.</p> +<p>I feel sure that no additional amount of technical accuracy would +make me more likely to succeed, in this respect, if I have otherwise +failed; and as this is the only success about which I greatly care, +I have left my scientific inaccuracies uncorrected, even when aware +of them. At the same time, I should say that I have taken all +possible pains as regards anything which I thought could materially +affect the argument one way or another.</p> +<p>It may be said that I have fallen between two stools, and that the +subject is one which, in my hands, has shown neither artistic nor scientific +value. This would be serious. To fall between two stools, +and to be hanged for a lamb, are the two crimes which -</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>“Nor gods, nor men, nor any schools allow.”</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>Of the latter, I go in but little danger; about the former, I shall +know better when the public have enlightened me.</p> +<p>The practical value of the views here advanced (if they be admitted +as true at all) would appear to be not inconsiderable, alike as regards +politics or the well-being of the community, and medicine which deals +with that of the individual. In the first case we see the rationale +of compromise, and the equal folly of making experiments upon too large +a scale, and of not making them at all. We see that new ideas +cannot be fused with old, save gradually and by patiently leading up +to them in such a way as to admit of a sense of continued identity between +the old and the new. This should teach us moderation. For +even though nature wishes to travel in a certain direction, she insists +on being allowed to take her own time; she will not be hurried, and +will cull a creature out even more surely for forestalling her wishes +too readily, than for lagging a little behind them. So the greatest +musicians, painters, and poets owe their greatness rather to their fusion +and assimilation of all the good that has been done up to, and especially +near about, their own time, than to any very startling steps they have +taken in advance. Such men will be sure to take some, and important, +steps forward; for unless they have this power, they will not be able +to assimilate well what has been done already, and if they have it, +their study of older work will almost indefinitely assist it; but, on +the whole, they owe their greatness to their completer fusion and assimilation +of older ideas; for nature is distinctly a fairly liberal conservative +rather than a conservative liberal. All which is well said in +the old couplet -</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p>“Be not the first by whom the new is tried,<br />Nor yet the +last to throw the old aside.”</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines1"><br /></div> +<p><i>Mutatis mutandis</i>, the above would seem to hold as truly about +medicine as about politics. We cannot reason with our cells, for +they know so much more than we do that they cannot understand us; - +but though we cannot reason with them, we can find out what they have +been most accustomed to, and what, therefore, they are most likely to +expect; we can see that they get this, as far as it is in our power +to give it them, and may then generally leave the rest to them, only +bearing in mind that they will rebel equally against too sudden a change +of treatment, and no change at all.</p> +<p>Friends have complained to me that they can never tell whether I +am in jest or earnest. I think, however, it should be sufficiently +apparent that I am in very serious earnest, perhaps too much so, from +the first page of my book to the last. I am not aware of a single +argument put forward which is not a <i>bonâ fide</i> argument, +although, perhaps, sometimes admitting of a humorous side. If +a grain of corn looks like a piece of chaff, I confess I prefer it occasionally +to something which looks like a grain, but which turns out to be a piece +of chaff only. There is no lack of matter of this description +going about in some very decorous volumes; I have, therefore, endeavoured, +for a third time, to furnish the public with a book whose fault should +lie rather in the direction of seeming less serious than it is, than +of being less so than it seems.</p> +<p>At the same time, I admit that when I began to write upon my subject +I did not seriously believe in it. I saw, as it were, a pebble +upon the ground, with a sheen that pleased me; taking it up, I turned +it over and over for my amusement, and found it always grow brighter +and brighter the more I examined it. At length I became fascinated, +and gave loose rein to self-illusion. The aspect of the world +seemed changed; the trifle which I had picked up idly had proved to +be a talisman of inestimable value, and had opened a door through which +I caught glimpses of a strange and interesting transformation. +Then came one who told me that the stone was not mine, but that it had +been dropped by Lamarck, to whom it belonged rightfully, but who had +lost it; whereon I said I cared not who was the owner, if only I might +use it and enjoy it. Now, therefore, having polished it with what +art and care one who is no jeweller could bestow upon it, I return it, +as best I may, to its possessor.</p> +<p>What am I to think or say? That I tried to deceive others till +I have fallen a victim to my own falsehood? Surely this is the +most reasonable conclusion to arrive at. Or that I have really +found Lamarck’s talisman, which had been for some time lost sight +of?</p> +<p>Will the reader bid me wake with him to a world of chance and blindness? +Or can I persuade him to dream with me of a more living faith than either +he or I had as yet conceived as possible? As I have said, reason +points remorselessly to an awakening, but faith and hope still beckon +to the dream.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<h2>APPENDIX - AUTHOR’S ADDENDA</h2> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p><a name="footnote2"></a><a href="#citation2">{2}</a> But I +may say in passing that though articulate speech and the power to maintain +the upright position come much about the same time, yet the power of +making gestures of more or less significance is prior to that of walking +uprightly, and therefore to that of speech. Not only is gesticulation +the earlier faculty in the individual, but it was so also in the history +of our race. Our semi-simious ancestors could gesticulate long +before they could talk articulately. It is significant of this +that gesture is still found easier than speech even by adults, as may +be observed on our river steamers, where the captain moves his hand +but does not speak, a boy interpreting his gesture into language. +To develop this here would complicate the argument; let us be content +to note it and pass on.</p> +<p><a name="footnote3"></a><a href="#citation3">{3}</a> Nevertheless, +the smallness of the effort touches upon the deepest mystery of organic +life - the power to originate, to err, to sport, the power which differentiates +the living organism from the machine, however complicated. The +action and working of this power is found to be like the action of any +other mental and, therefore, physical power (for all physical action +of living beings is but the expression of a mental action), but I can +throw no light upon its origin any more than upon the origin of life. +This, too, must be noted and passed over.</p> +<p><a name="footnote4"></a><a href="#citation4">{4}</a> How different +from the above uncertain sound is the full clear note of one who truly +believes:-</p> +<p>“The Church of England is commonly called a Lutheran church, +but whoever compares it with the Lutheran churches on the Continent +will have reason to congratulate himself on its superiority. It +is in fact a church <i>sui generis</i>, yielding in point of dignity, +purity and decency of its doctrines, establishment and ceremonies, to +no congregation of christians in the world; modelled to a certain and +considerable extent, but not entirely, by our great and wise pious reformers +on the doctrines of Luther, so far as they are in conformity with the +sure and solid foundation on which it rests, and we trust for ever will +rest - the authority of the Holy Scriptures, Jesus Christ himself being +the chief corner stone.” (“Sketch of Modern and Ancient +Geography,” by Dr. Samuel Butler, of Shrewsbury. Ed. 1813.)</p> +<p>This is the language of faith, compelled by the exigencies of the +occasion to be for a short time conscious of its own existence, but +surely very little likely to become so to the extent of feeling the +need of any assistance from reason. It is the language of one +whose convictions are securely founded upon the current opinion of those +among whom he has been born and bred; and of all merely post-natal faiths +a faith so founded is the strongest. It is pleasing to see that +the only alterations in the edition of 1838 consist in spelling Christians +with a capital C and the omission of the epithet “wise” +as applied to the reformers, an omission more probably suggested by +a desire for euphony than by any nascent doubts concerning the applicability +of the epithet itself.</p> +<p><a name="footnote5"></a><a href="#citation5">{5}</a> Or take, +again, the constitution of the Church of England. The bishops +are the spiritual queens, the clergy are the neuter workers. They +differ widely in structure (for dress must be considered as a part of +structure), in the delicacy of the food they eat and the kind of house +they inhabit, and also in many of their instincts, from the bishops, +who are their spiritual parents. Not only this, but there are +two distinct kinds of neuter workers - priests and deacons; and of the +former there are deans, archdeacons, prebends, canons, rural deans, +vicars, rectors, curates, yet all spiritually sterile. In spite +of this sterility, however, is there anyone who will maintain that the +widely differing structures and instincts of these castes are not due +to inherited spiritual habit? Still less will he be inclined to +do so when he reflects that by such slight modification of treatment +as consecration and endowment any one of them can be rendered spiritually +fertile.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines2"><br /><br /></div> +<p>Footnotes:</p> +<p><a name="footnote1"></a><a href="#citation1">{1}</a> Although +the original edition of “Life and Habit” is dated 1878, +the book was actually published in December, 1877.</p> +<div class="GutenbergBlankLines4"><br /><br /><br /><br /></div> +<p>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, LIFE AND HABIT ***</p> +<pre> + +******This file should be named lfhb10h.htm or lfhb10h.zip****** +Corrected EDITIONS of our EBooks get a new NUMBER, lfhb11h.htm +VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, lfhb10ah.htm + +Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed +editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US +unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not +keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. + +We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance +of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing. +Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections, +even years after the official publication date. + +Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til +midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement. +The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at +Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A +preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment +and editing by those who wish to do so. + +Most people start at our Web sites at: +http://gutenberg.net or +http://promo.net/pg + +These Web sites include award-winning information about Project +Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new +eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!). + + +Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement +can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is +also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the +indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an +announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter. + +http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext04 or +ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext04 + +Or /etext03, 02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90 + +Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want, +as it appears in our Newsletters. + + +Information about Project Gutenberg (one page) + +We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The +time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours +to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright +searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our +projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value +per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2 +million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text +files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+ +We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002 +If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total +will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end. + +The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks! +This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers, +which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users. + +Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated): + +eBooks Year Month + + 1 1971 July + 10 1991 January + 100 1994 January + 1000 1997 August + 1500 1998 October + 2000 1999 December + 2500 2000 December + 3000 2001 November + 4000 2001 October/November + 6000 2002 December* + 9000 2003 November* +10000 2004 January* + + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created +to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium. + +We need your donations more than ever! + +As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people +and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut, +Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois, +Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts, +Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New +Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio, +Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South +Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West +Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming. + +We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones +that have responded. + +As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list +will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states. +Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state. + +In answer to various questions we have received on this: + +We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally +request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and +you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have, +just ask. + +While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are +not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting +donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to +donate. + +International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about +how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made +deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are +ways. + +Donations by check or money order may be sent to: + +Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation +PMB 113 +1739 University Ave. +Oxford, MS 38655-4109 + +Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment +method other than by check or money order. + +The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by +the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN +[Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are +tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising +requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be +made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states. + +We need your donations more than ever! + +You can get up to date donation information online at: + +http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html + + +*** + +If you can't reach Project Gutenberg, +you can always email directly to: + +Michael S. Hart hart@pobox.com + +Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message. + +We would prefer to send you information by email. + + +**The Legal Small Print** + + +(Three Pages) + +***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START*** +Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers. +They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with +your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from +someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our +fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement +disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how +you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to. + +*BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK +By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm +eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept +this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive +a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by +sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person +you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical +medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request. + +ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS +This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks, +is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart +through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project"). +Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright +on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and +distribute it in the United States without permission and +without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth +below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook +under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark. + +Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market +any commercial products without permission. + +To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable +efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain +works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any +medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other +things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or +corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other +intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged +disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer +codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. + +LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES +But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below, +[1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may +receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims +all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including +legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR +UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, +INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE +OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE +POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES. + +If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of +receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) +you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that +time to the person you received it from. If you received it +on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and +such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement +copy. If you received it electronically, such person may +choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to +receive it electronically. + +THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER +WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS +TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT +LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A +PARTICULAR PURPOSE. + +Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or +the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the +above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you +may have other legal rights. + +INDEMNITY +You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation, +and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated +with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm +texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including +legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the +following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook, +[2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook, +or [3] any Defect. + +DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm" +You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by +disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this +"Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg, +or: + +[1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this + requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the + eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however, + if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable + binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form, + including any form resulting from conversion by word + processing or hypertext software, but only so long as + *EITHER*: + + [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and + does *not* contain characters other than those + intended by the author of the work, although tilde + (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may + be used to convey punctuation intended by the + author, and additional characters may be used to + indicate hypertext links; OR + + [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at + no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent + form by the program that displays the eBook (as is + the case, for instance, with most word processors); + OR + + [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at + no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the + eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC + or other equivalent proprietary form). + +[2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this + "Small Print!" statement. + +[3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the + gross profits you derive calculated using the method you + already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you + don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are + payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation" + the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were + legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent + periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to + let us know your plans and to work out the details. + +WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO? +Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of +public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed +in machine readable form. + +The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time, +public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses. +Money should be paid to the: +"Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." + +If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or +software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at: +hart@pobox.com + +[Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only +when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by +Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be +used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be +they hardware or software or any other related product without +express permission.] + +*END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END* +</pre></body> +</html> diff --git a/old/lfhb10h.zip b/old/lfhb10h.zip Binary files differnew file mode 100644 index 0000000..031e9e6 --- /dev/null +++ b/old/lfhb10h.zip |
